Quotations.ch
  Directory : The Pickwick Papers
GUIDE SUPPORT US BLOG
  • The Project Gutenberg EBook of The Pickwick Papers, by Charles Dickens
  • This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with almost
  • no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
  • under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
  • eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
  • Title: The Pickwick Papers
  • Author: Charles Dickens
  • Release Date: April 22, 2009 [EBook #580]
  • Last Updated: September 25, 2016
  • Last Updated: February 20, 2016
  • Language: English
  • Character set encoding: UTF-8
  • *** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE PICKWICK PAPERS ***
  • Produced by Jo Churcher, and David Widger
  • THE PICKWICK PAPERS
  • By Charles Dickens
  • CONTENTS
  • THE POSTHUMOUS PAPERS OF THE PICKWICK CLUB
  • CHAPTER I. THE PICKWICKIANS
  • CHAPTER II. THE FIRST DAY’S JOURNEY, AND THE FIRST EVENING’S
  • ADVENTURES; WITH THEIR CONSEQUENCES
  • CHAPTER III. A NEW ACQUAINTANCE--THE STROLLER’S TALE; A DISAGREEABLE
  • INTERRUPTION, AND AN UNPLEASANT ENCOUNTER
  • CHAPTER IV. A FIELD DAY AND BIVOUAC--MORE NEW FRIENDS
  • CHAPTER V. A SHORT ONE--SHOWING, AMONG OTHER MATTERS
  • CHAPTER VI. AN OLD-FASHIONED CARD-PARTY--THE CLERGYMAN’S VERSES
  • CHAPTER VII. HOW MR. WINKLE, INSTEAD OF SHOOTING AT THE PIGEON
  • CHAPTER VIII. STRONGLY ILLUSTRATIVE OF THE POSITION
  • CHAPTER IX. A DISCOVERY AND A CHASE
  • CHAPTER X. CLEARING UP ALL DOUBTS (IF ANY EXISTED)
  • CHAPTER XI. INVOLVING ANOTHER JOURNEY, AND AN ANTIQUARIAN DISCOVERY
  • CHAPTER XII. DESCRIPTIVE OF A VERY IMPORTANT PROCEEDING
  • CHAPTER XIII. SOME ACCOUNT OF EATANSWILL; OF THE STATE OF PARTIES
  • CHAPTER XIV. COMPRISING A BRIEF DESCRIPTION OF THE COMPANY
  • CHAPTER XV. IN WHICH IS GIVEN A FAITHFUL PORTRAITURE
  • CHAPTER XVI. TOO FULL OF ADVENTURE TO BE BRIEFLY DESCRIBED
  • CHAPTER XVII. SHOWING THAT AN ATTACK OF RHEUMATISM
  • CHAPTER XVIII. BRIEFLY ILLUSTRATIVE OF TWO POINTS
  • CHAPTER XIX. A PLEASANT DAY WITH AN UNPLEASANT TERMINATION
  • CHAPTER XX. SHOWING HOW DODSON AND FOGG WERE MEN OF BUSINESS
  • CHAPTER XXI. IN WHICH THE OLD MAN LAUNCHES FORTH
  • CHAPTER XXII. MR. PICKWICK JOURNEYS TO IPSWICH AND MEETS WITH A
  • ROMANTIC
  • CHAPTER XXIII. IN WHICH MR. SAMUEL WELLER BEGINS TO DEVOTE HIS
  • ENERGIES
  • CHAPTER XXIV. WHEREIN MR. PETER MAGNUS GROWS JEALOUS
  • CHAPTER XXV. SHOWING, AMONG A VARIETY OF PLEASANT MATTERS, HOW
  • MAJESTIC
  • CHAPTER XXVI. WHICH CONTAINS A BRIEF ACCOUNT OF THE PROGRESS
  • CHAPTER XXVII. SAMUEL WELLER MAKES A PILGRIMAGE TO DORKING
  • CHAPTER XXVIII. A GOOD-HUMOURED CHRISTMAS CHAPTER
  • CHAPTER XXIX. THE STORY OF THE GOBLINS WHO STOLE A SEXTON
  • CHAPTER XXX. HOW THE PICKWICKIANS MADE AND CULTIVATED THE ACQUAINTANCE
  • CHAPTER XXXI. WHICH IS ALL ABOUT THE LAW, AND SUNDRY GREAT AUTHORITIES
  • CHAPTER XXXII. DESCRIBES, FAR MORE FULLY THAN THE COURT NEWSMAN EVER
  • CHAPTER XXXIII. MR. WELLER THE ELDER DELIVERS SOME CRITICAL SENTIMENTS
  • CHAPTER XXXIV. IS WHOLLY DEVOTED TO A FULL AND FAITHFUL REPORT
  • CHAPTER XXXV. IN WHICH MR. PICKWICK THINKS HE HAD BETTER GO TO BATH
  • CHAPTER XXXVI. THE CHIEF FEATURES OF WHICH WILL BE FOUND
  • CHAPTER XXXVII. HONOURABLY ACCOUNTS FOR MR. WELLER’S ABSENCE
  • CHAPTER XXXVIII. HOW MR. WINKLE, WHEN HE STEPPED OUT OF THE FRYING-
  • PAN
  • CHAPTER XXXIX. MR. SAMUEL WELLER, BEING INTRUSTED WITH A MISSION
  • CHAPTER XL. INTRODUCES MR. PICKWICK TO A NEW AND NOT UNINTERESTING
  • SCENE
  • CHAPTER XLI. WHAT BEFELL MR. PICKWICK WHEN HE GOT INTO THE FLEET
  • CHAPTER XLII. ILLUSTRATIVE, LIKE THE PRECEDING ONE, OF THE OLD PROVERB
  • CHAPTER XLIII. SHOWING HOW Mr. SAMUEL WELLER GOT INTO DIFFICULTIES
  • CHAPTER LXIV. TREATS OF DIVERS LITTLE MATTERS WHICH OCCURRED
  • CHAPTER XLIV. DESCRIPTIVE OF AN AFFECTING INTERVIEW
  • CHAPTER XLVI. RECORDS A TOUCHING ACT OF DELICATE FEELING
  • CHAPTER XLVII. IS CHIEFLY DEVOTED TO MATTERS OF BUSINESS
  • CHAPTER XLVIII. RELATES HOW MR. PICKWICK, WITH THE ASSISTANCE OF
  • SAMUEL
  • CHAPTER XLIX. CONTAINING THE STORY OF THE BAGMAN’S UNCLE
  • CHAPTER L. HOW MR. PICKWICK SPED UPON HIS MISSION
  • CHAPTER LI. IN WHICH MR. PICKWICK ENCOUNTERS AN OLD ACQUAINTANCE
  • CHAPTER LII. INVOLVING A SERIOUS CHANGE IN THE WELLER FAMILY
  • CHAPTER LIII. COMPRISING THE FINAL EXIT OF MR. JINGLE AND JOB TROTTER
  • CHAPTER LIV. CONTAINING SOME PARTICULARS RELATIVE TO THE DOUBLE KNOCK
  • CHAPTER LV. MR. SOLOMON PELL, ASSISTED BY A SELECT COMMITTEE
  • CHAPTER LVI. AN IMPORTANT CONFERENCE TAKES PLACE
  • CHAPTER LVII. IN WHICH THE PICKWICK CLUB IS FINALLY DISSOLVED
  • DETAILED CONTENTS
  • 1. The Pickwickians 2. The first Day’s Journey, and the first Evening’s
  • Adventures; with their Consequences 3. A new Acquaintance--The
  • Stroller’s Tale--A disagreeable Interruption, and an unpleasant
  • Encounter 4. A Field Day and Bivouac--More new Friends--An Invitation to
  • the Country 5. A short one--Showing, among other Matters, how Mr.
  • Pickwick undertook to drive, and Mr. Winkle to ride, and how they both
  • did it 6. An old-fashioned Card-party--The Clergyman’s verses--The Story
  • of the Convict’s Return 7. How Mr. Winkle, instead of shooting at the
  • Pigeon and killing the Crow, shot at the Crow and wounded the Pigeon;
  • how the Dingley Dell Cricket Club played All-Muggleton, and how All-
  • Muggleton dined at the Dingley Dell Expense; with other interesting and
  • instructive Matters 8. Strongly illustrative of the Position, that the
  • Course of True Love is not a Railway 9. A Discovery and a Chase 10.
  • Clearing up all Doubts (if any existed) of the Disinterestedness of Mr.
  • A. Jingle’s Character 11. Involving another Journey, and an Antiquarian
  • Discovery; Recording Mr. Pickwick’s Determination to be present at an
  • Election; and containing a Manuscript of the old Clergyman’s 12.
  • Descriptive of a very important Proceeding on the Part of Mr. Pickwick;
  • no less an Epoch in his Life, than in this History 13. Some Account of
  • Eatanswill; of the State of Parties therein; and of the Election of a
  • Member to serve in Parliament for that ancient, loyal, and patriotic
  • Borough 14. Comprising a brief Description of the Company at the Peacock
  • assembled; and a Tale told by a Bagman 15. In which is given a faithful
  • Portraiture of two distinguished Persons; and an accurate Description of
  • a public Breakfast in their House and Grounds: which public Breakfast
  • leads to the Recognition of an old Acquaintance, and the Commencement of
  • anothe r Chapter 16. Too full of Adventure to be briefly described 17.
  • Showing that an Attack of Rheumatism, in some Cases, acts as a Quickener
  • to inventive Genius 18. Briefly illustrative of two Points; first, the
  • Power of Hysterics, and, secondly, the Force of Circumstances 19. A
  • pleasant Day with an unpleasant Termination 20. Showing how Dodson and
  • Fogg were Men of Business, and their Clerks Men of pleasure; and how an
  • affecting Interview took place between Mr. Weller and his long-lost
  • Parent; showing also what Choice Spirits assembled at the Magpie and
  • Stump, and what a C apital Chapter the next one will be 21. In which the
  • old Man launches forth into his favourite Theme, and relates a Story
  • about a queer Client 22. Mr. Pickwick journeys to Ipswich and meets with
  • a romantic Adventure with a middle-aged Lady in yellow Curl-papers 23.
  • In which Mr. Samuel Weller begins to devote his Energies to the Return
  • Match between himself and Mr. Trotter 24. Wherein Mr. Peter Magnus grows
  • jealous, and the middle-aged Lady apprehensive, which brings the
  • Pickwickians within the Grasp of the Law 25. Showing, among a Variety of
  • pleasant Matters, how majestic and impartial Mr. Nupkins was; and how
  • Mr. Weller returned Mr. Job Trotter’s Shuttlecock as heavily as it came-
  • -With another Matter, which will be found in its Place 26. Which
  • contains a brief Account of the Progress of the Action of Bardell
  • against Pickwick 27. Samuel Weller makes a Pilgrimage to Dorking, and
  • beholds his Mother-in-law 28. A good-humoured Christmas Chapter,
  • containing an Account of a Wedding, and some other Sports beside: which
  • although in their Way even as good Customs as Marriage itself, are not
  • quite so religiously kept up, in these degenerate Times 29. The Story of
  • the Goblins who stole a Sexton 30. How the Pickwickians made and
  • cultivated the Acquaintance of a Couple of nice young Men belonging to
  • one of the liberal Professions; how they disported themselves on the
  • Ice; and how their Visit came to a Conclusion 31. Which is all about the
  • Law, and sundry Great Authorities learned therein 32. Describes, far
  • more fully than the Court Newsman ever did, a Bachelor’s Party, given by
  • Mr. Bob Sawyer at his Lodgings in the Borough 33. Mr. Weller the elder
  • delivers some Critical Sentiments respecting Literary Composition; and,
  • assisted by his Son Samuel, pays a small Instalment of Retaliation to
  • the Account of the Reverend Gentleman with the Red Nose 34. Is wholly
  • devoted to a full and faithful Report of the memorable Trial of Bardell
  • against Pickwick 35. In which Mr. Pickwick thinks he had better go to
  • Bath; and goes accordingly 36. The chief Features of which will be found
  • to be an authentic Version of the Legend of Prince Bladud, and a most
  • extraordinary Calamity that befell Mr. Winkle 37. Honourably accounts
  • for Mr. Weller’s Absence, by describing a Soiree to which he was invited
  • and went; also relates how he was intrusted by Mr. Pickwick with a
  • Private Mission of Delicacy and Importance 38. How Mr. Winkle, when he
  • stepped out of the Frying-pan, walked gently and comfortably into the
  • Fire 39. Mr. Samuel Weller, being intrusted with a Mission of Love,
  • proceeds to execute it; with what Success will hereinafter appear 40.
  • Introduces Mr. Pickwick to a new and not uninteresting Scene in the
  • great Drama of Life 41. What befell Mr. Pickwick when he got into the
  • Fleet; what Prisoners he saw there; and how he passed the Night 42.
  • Illustrative, like the preceding one, of the old Proverb, that Adversity
  • brings a Man acquainted with strange Bedfellows--Likewise containing Mr.
  • Pickwick’s extraordinary and startling Announcement to Mr. Samuel Weller
  • 43. Showing how Mr. Samuel Weller got into Difficulties 44. Treats of
  • divers little Matters which occurred in the Fleet, and of Mr. Winkle’s
  • mysterious Behaviour; and shows how the poor Chancery Prisoner obtained
  • his Release at last 45. Descriptive of an affecting Interview between
  • Mr. Samuel Weller and a Family Party. Mr. Pickwick makes a Tour of the
  • diminutive World he inhabits, and resolves to mix with it, in Future, as
  • little as possible 46. Records a touching Act of delicate Feeling not
  • unmixed with Pleasantry, achieved and performed by Messrs. Dodson and
  • Fogg 47. Is chiefly devoted to Matters of Business, and the temporal
  • Advantage of Dodson and Fogg--Mr. Winkle reappears under extraordinary
  • Circumstances--Mr. Pickwick’s Benevolence proves stronger than his
  • Obstinacy 48. Relates how Mr. Pickwick, with the Assistance of Samuel
  • Weller, essayed to soften the Heart of Mr. Benjamin Allen, and to
  • mollify the Wrath of Mr. Robert Sawyer 49. Containing the Story of the
  • Bagman’s Uncle 50. How Mr. Pickwick sped upon his Mission, and how he
  • was reinforced in the Outset by a most unexpected Auxiliary 51. In which
  • Mr. Pickwick encounters an old Acquaintance--To which fortunate
  • Circumstance the Reader is mainly indebted for Matter of thrilling
  • Interest herein set down, concerning two great Public Men of Might and
  • Power 52. Involving a serious Change in the Weller Family, and the
  • untimely Downfall of Mr. Stiggins 53. Comprising the final Exit of Mr.
  • Jingle and Job Trotter, with a great Morning of business in Gray’s Inn
  • Square--Concluding with a Double Knock at Mr. Perker’s Door 54.
  • Containing some Particulars relative to the Double Knock, and other
  • Matters: among which certain interesting Disclosures relative to Mr.
  • Snodgrass and a Young Lady are by no Means irrelevant to this History
  • 55. Mr. Solomon Pell, assisted by a Select Committee of Coachmen,
  • arranges the affairs of the elder Mr. Weller 56. An important Conference
  • takes place between Mr. Pickwick and Samuel Weller, at which his Parent
  • assists--An old Gentleman in a snuff-coloured Suit arrives unexpectedly
  • 57. In which the Pickwick Club is finally dissolved, and everything
  • concluded to the Satisfaction of Everybody
  • THE POSTHUMOUS PAPERS OF THE PICKWICK CLUB
  • CHAPTER I. THE PICKWICKIANS
  • The first ray of light which illumines the gloom, and converts into a
  • dazzling brilliancy that obscurity in which the earlier history of the
  • public career of the immortal Pickwick would appear to be involved, is
  • derived from the perusal of the following entry in the Transactions of
  • the Pickwick Club, which the editor of these papers feels the highest
  • pleasure in laying before his readers, as a proof of the careful
  • attention, indefatigable assiduity, and nice discrimination, with which
  • his search among the multifarious documents confided to him has been
  • conducted.
  • ‘May 12, 1827. Joseph Smiggers, Esq., P.V.P.M.P.C. [Perpetual Vice-
  • President--Member Pickwick Club], presiding. The following resolutions
  • unanimously agreed to:--
  • ‘That this Association has heard read, with feelings of unmingled
  • satisfaction, and unqualified approval, the paper communicated by Samuel
  • Pickwick, Esq., G.C.M.P.C. [General Chairman--Member Pickwick Club],
  • entitled “Speculations on the Source of the Hampstead Ponds, with some
  • Observations on the Theory of Tittlebats;” and that this Association
  • does hereby return its warmest thanks to the said Samuel Pickwick, Esq.,
  • G.C.M.P.C., for the same.
  • ‘That while this Association is deeply sensible of the advantages which
  • must accrue to the cause of science, from the production to which they
  • have just adverted--no less than from the unwearied researches of Samuel
  • Pickwick, Esq., G.C.M.P.C., in Hornsey, Highgate, Brixton, and
  • Camberwell--they cannot but entertain a lively sense of the inestimable
  • benefits which must inevitably result from carrying the speculations of
  • that learned man into a wider field, from extending his travels, and,
  • consequently, enlarging his sphere of observation, to the advancement of
  • knowledge, and the diffusion of learning.
  • ‘That, with the view just mentioned, this Association has taken into its
  • serious consideration a proposal, emanating from the aforesaid, Samuel
  • Pickwick, Esq., G.C.M.P.C., and three other Pickwickians hereinafter
  • named, for forming a new branch of United Pickwickians, under the title
  • of The Corresponding Society of the Pickwick Club.
  • ‘That the said proposal has received the sanction and approval of this
  • Association.
  • ‘That the Corresponding Society of the Pickwick Club is therefore hereby
  • constituted; and that Samuel Pickwick, Esq., G.C.M.P.C., Tracy Tupman,
  • Esq., M.P.C., Augustus Snodgrass, Esq., M.P.C., and Nathaniel Winkle,
  • Esq., M.P.C., are hereby nominated and appointed members of the same;
  • and that they be requested to forward, from time to time, authenticated
  • accounts of their journeys and investigations, of their observations of
  • character and manners, and of the whole of their adventures, together
  • with all tales and papers to which local scenery or associations may
  • give rise, to the Pickwick Club, stationed in London.
  • ‘That this Association cordially recognises the principle of every
  • member of the Corresponding Society defraying his own travelling
  • expenses; and that it sees no objection whatever to the members of the
  • said society pursuing their inquiries for any length of time they
  • please, upon the same terms.
  • ‘That the members of the aforesaid Corresponding Society be, and are
  • hereby informed, that their proposal to pay the postage of their
  • letters, and the carriage of their parcels, has been deliberated upon by
  • this Association: that this Association considers such proposal worthy
  • of the great minds from which it emanated, and that it hereby signifies
  • its perfect acquiescence therein.’
  • A casual observer, adds the secretary, to whose notes we are indebted
  • for the following account--a casual observer might possibly have
  • remarked nothing extraordinary in the bald head, and circular
  • spectacles, which were intently turned towards his (the secretary’s)
  • face, during the reading of the above resolutions: to those who knew
  • that the gigantic brain of Pickwick was working beneath that forehead,
  • and that the beaming eyes of Pickwick were twinkling behind those
  • glasses, the sight was indeed an interesting one. There sat the man who
  • had traced to their source the mighty ponds of Hampstead, and agitated
  • the scientific world with his Theory of Tittlebats, as calm and unmoved
  • as the deep waters of the one on a frosty day, or as a solitary specimen
  • of the other in the inmost recesses of an earthen jar. And how much more
  • interesting did the spectacle become, when, starting into full life and
  • animation, as a simultaneous call for ‘Pickwick’ burst from his
  • followers, that illustrious man slowly mounted into the Windsor chair,
  • on which he had been previously seated, and addressed the club himself
  • had founded. What a study for an artist did that exciting scene present!
  • The eloquent Pickwick, with one hand gracefully concealed behind his
  • coat tails, and the other waving in air to assist his glowing
  • declamation; his elevated position revealing those tights and gaiters,
  • which, had they clothed an ordinary man, might have passed without
  • observation, but which, when Pickwick clothed them--if we may use the
  • expression--inspired involuntary awe and respect; surrounded by the men
  • who had volunteered to share the perils of his travels, and who were
  • destined to participate in the glories of his discoveries. On his right
  • sat Mr. Tracy Tupman--the too susceptible Tupman, who to the wisdom and
  • experience of maturer years superadded the enthusiasm and ardour of a
  • boy in the most interesting and pardonable of human weaknesses--love.
  • Time and feeding had expanded that once romantic form; the black silk
  • waistcoat had become more and more developed; inch by inch had the gold
  • watch-chain beneath it disappeared from within the range of Tupman’s
  • vision; and gradually had the capacious chin encroached upon the borders
  • of the white cravat: but the soul of Tupman had known no change--
  • admiration of the fair sex was still its ruling passion. On the left of
  • his great leader sat the poetic Snodgrass, and near him again the
  • sporting Winkle; the former poetically enveloped in a mysterious blue
  • cloak with a canine-skin collar, and the latter communicating additional
  • lustre to a new green shooting-coat, plaid neckerchief, and closely-
  • fitted drabs.
  • Mr. Pickwick’s oration upon this occasion, together with the debate
  • thereon, is entered on the Transactions of the Club. Both bear a strong
  • affinity to the discussions of other celebrated bodies; and, as it is
  • always interesting to trace a resemblance between the proceedings of
  • great men, we transfer the entry to these pages.
  • ‘Mr. Pickwick observed (says the secretary) that fame was dear to the
  • heart of every man. Poetic fame was dear to the heart of his friend
  • Snodgrass; the fame of conquest was equally dear to his friend Tupman;
  • and the desire of earning fame in the sports of the field, the air, and
  • the water was uppermost in the breast of his friend Winkle. He (Mr.
  • Pickwick) would not deny that he was influenced by human passions and
  • human feelings (cheers)--possibly by human weaknesses (loud cries of
  • “No”); but this he would say, that if ever the fire of self-importance
  • broke out in his bosom, the desire to benefit the human race in
  • preference effectually quenched it. The praise of mankind was his swing;
  • philanthropy was his insurance office. (Vehement cheering.) He had felt
  • some pride--he acknowledged it freely, and let his enemies make the most
  • of it--he had felt some pride when he presented his Tittlebatian Theory
  • to the world; it might be celebrated or it might not. (A cry of “It is,”
  • and great cheering.) He would take the assertion of that honourable
  • Pickwickian whose voice he had just heard--it was celebrated; but if the
  • fame of that treatise were to extend to the farthest confines of the
  • known world, the pride with which he should reflect on the authorship of
  • that production would be as nothing compared with the pride with which
  • he looked around him, on this, the proudest moment of his existence.
  • (Cheers.) He was a humble individual. (“No, no.”) Still he could not but
  • feel that they had selected him for a service of great honour, and of
  • some danger. Travelling was in a troubled state, and the minds of
  • coachmen were unsettled. Let them look abroad and contemplate the scenes
  • which were enacting around them. Stage-coaches were upsetting in all
  • directions, horses were bolting, boats were overturning, and boilers
  • were bursting. (Cheers--a voice “No.”) No! (Cheers.) Let that honourable
  • Pickwickian who cried “No” so loudly come forward and deny it, if he
  • could. (Cheers.) Who was it that cried “No”? (Enthusiastic cheering.)
  • Was it some vain and disappointed man--he would not say haberdasher
  • (loud cheers)--who, jealous of the praise which had been--perhaps
  • undeservedly--bestowed on his (Mr. Pickwick’s) researches, and smarting
  • under the censure which had been heaped upon his own feeble attempts at
  • rivalry, now took this vile and calumnious mode of--
  • ‘MR. BLOTTON (of Aldgate) rose to order. Did the honourable Pickwickian
  • allude to him? (Cries of “Order,” “Chair,” “Yes,” “No,” “Go on,” “Leave
  • off,” etc.)
  • ‘MR. PICKWICK would not put up to be put down by clamour. He had alluded
  • to the honourable gentleman. (Great excitement.)
  • ‘MR. BLOTTON would only say then, that he repelled the hon. gent.’s
  • false and scurrilous accusation, with profound contempt. (Great
  • cheering.) The hon. gent. was a humbug. (Immense confusion, and loud
  • cries of “Chair,” and “Order.”)
  • ‘Mr. A. SNODGRASS rose to order. He threw himself upon the chair.
  • (Hear.) He wished to know whether this disgraceful contest between two
  • members of that club should be allowed to continue. (Hear, hear.)
  • ‘The CHAIRMAN was quite sure the hon. Pickwickian would withdraw the
  • expression he had just made use of.
  • ‘MR. BLOTTON, with all possible respect for the chair, was quite sure he
  • would not.
  • ‘The CHAIRMAN felt it his imperative duty to demand of the honourable
  • gentleman, whether he had used the expression which had just escaped him
  • in a common sense.
  • ‘MR. BLOTTON had no hesitation in saying that he had not--he had used
  • the word in its Pickwickian sense. (Hear, hear.) He was bound to
  • acknowledge that, personally, he entertained the highest regard and
  • esteem for the honourable gentleman; he had merely considered him a
  • humbug in a Pickwickian point of view. (Hear, hear.)
  • ‘MR. PICKWICK felt much gratified by the fair, candid, and full
  • explanation of his honourable friend. He begged it to be at once
  • understood, that his own observations had been merely intended to bear a
  • Pickwickian construction. (Cheers.)’
  • Here the entry terminates, as we have no doubt the debate did also,
  • after arriving at such a highly satisfactory and intelligible point. We
  • have no official statement of the facts which the reader will find
  • recorded in the next chapter, but they have been carefully collated from
  • letters and other MS. authorities, so unquestionably genuine as to
  • justify their narration in a connected form.
  • CHAPTER II. THE FIRST DAY’S JOURNEY, AND THE FIRST EVENING’S ADVENTURES;
  • WITH THEIR CONSEQUENCES
  • That punctual servant of all work, the sun, had just risen, and begun to
  • strike a light on the morning of the thirteenth of May, one thousand
  • eight hundred and twenty-seven, when Mr. Samuel Pickwick burst like
  • another sun from his slumbers, threw open his chamber window, and looked
  • out upon the world beneath. Goswell Street was at his feet, Goswell
  • Street was on his right hand--as far as the eye could reach, Goswell
  • Street extended on his left; and the opposite side of Goswell Street was
  • over the way. ‘Such,’ thought Mr. Pickwick, ‘are the narrow views of
  • those philosophers who, content with examining the things that lie
  • before them, look not to the truths which are hidden beyond. As well
  • might I be content to gaze on Goswell Street for ever, without one
  • effort to penetrate to the hidden countries which on every side surround
  • it.’ And having given vent to this beautiful reflection, Mr. Pickwick
  • proceeded to put himself into his clothes, and his clothes into his
  • portmanteau. Great men are seldom over scrupulous in the arrangement of
  • their attire; the operation of shaving, dressing, and coffee-imbibing
  • was soon performed; and, in another hour, Mr. Pickwick, with his
  • portmanteau in his hand, his telescope in his greatcoat pocket, and his
  • note-book in his waistcoat, ready for the reception of any discoveries
  • worthy of being noted down, had arrived at the coach-stand in St.
  • Martin’s-le-Grand.
  • ‘Cab!’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Here you are, sir,’ shouted a strange specimen of the human race, in a
  • sackcloth coat, and apron of the same, who, with a brass label and
  • number round his neck, looked as if he were catalogued in some
  • collection of rarities. This was the waterman. ‘Here you are, sir. Now,
  • then, fust cab!’ And the first cab having been fetched from the public-
  • house, where he had been smoking his first pipe, Mr. Pickwick and his
  • portmanteau were thrown into the vehicle.
  • ‘Golden Cross,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Only a bob’s vorth, Tommy,’ cried the driver sulkily, for the
  • information of his friend the waterman, as the cab drove off.
  • ‘How old is that horse, my friend?’ inquired Mr. Pickwick, rubbing his
  • nose with the shilling he had reserved for the fare.
  • ‘Forty-two,’ replied the driver, eyeing him askant.
  • ‘What!’ ejaculated Mr. Pickwick, laying his hand upon his note-book. The
  • driver reiterated his former statement. Mr. Pickwick looked very hard at
  • the man’s face, but his features were immovable, so he noted down the
  • fact forthwith.
  • ‘And how long do you keep him out at a time?’ inquired Mr. Pickwick,
  • searching for further information.
  • ‘Two or three veeks,’ replied the man.
  • ‘Weeks!’ said Mr. Pickwick in astonishment, and out came the note-book
  • again.
  • ‘He lives at Pentonwil when he’s at home,’ observed the driver coolly,
  • ‘but we seldom takes him home, on account of his weakness.’
  • ‘On account of his weakness!’ reiterated the perplexed Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘He always falls down when he’s took out o’ the cab,’ continued the
  • driver, ‘but when he’s in it, we bears him up werry tight, and takes him
  • in werry short, so as he can’t werry well fall down; and we’ve got a
  • pair o’ precious large wheels on, so ven he does move, they run after
  • him, and he must go on--he can’t help it.’
  • Mr. Pickwick entered every word of this statement in his note-book, with
  • the view of communicating it to the club, as a singular instance of the
  • tenacity of life in horses under trying circumstances. The entry was
  • scarcely completed when they reached the Golden Cross. Down jumped the
  • driver, and out got Mr. Pickwick. Mr. Tupman, Mr. Snodgrass, and Mr.
  • Winkle, who had been anxiously waiting the arrival of their illustrious
  • leader, crowded to welcome him.
  • ‘Here’s your fare,’ said Mr. Pickwick, holding out the shilling to the
  • driver.
  • What was the learned man’s astonishment, when that unaccountable person
  • flung the money on the pavement, and requested in figurative terms to be
  • allowed the pleasure of fighting him (Mr. Pickwick) for the amount!
  • ‘You are mad,’ said Mr. Snodgrass.
  • ‘Or drunk,’ said Mr. Winkle.
  • ‘Or both,’ said Mr. Tupman.
  • ‘Come on!’ said the cab-driver, sparring away like clockwork. ‘Come on--
  • all four on you.’
  • ‘Here’s a lark!’ shouted half a dozen hackney coachmen. ‘Go to vork,
  • Sam!--and they crowded with great glee round the party.
  • ‘What’s the row, Sam?’ inquired one gentleman in black calico sleeves.
  • ‘Row!’ replied the cabman, ‘what did he want my number for?’
  • ‘I didn’t want your number,’ said the astonished Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘What did you take it for, then?’ inquired the cabman.
  • ‘I didn’t take it,’ said Mr. Pickwick indignantly.
  • ‘Would anybody believe,’ continued the cab-driver, appealing to the
  • crowd, ‘would anybody believe as an informer’ud go about in a man’s cab,
  • not only takin’ down his number, but ev’ry word he says into the
  • bargain’ (a light flashed upon Mr. Pickwick--it was the note-book).
  • ‘Did he though?’ inquired another cabman.
  • ‘Yes, did he,’ replied the first; ‘and then arter aggerawatin’ me to
  • assault him, gets three witnesses here to prove it. But I’ll give it
  • him, if I’ve six months for it. Come on!’ and the cabman dashed his hat
  • upon the ground, with a reckless disregard of his own private property,
  • and knocked Mr. Pickwick’s spectacles off, and followed up the attack
  • with a blow on Mr. Pickwick’s nose, and another on Mr. Pickwick’s chest,
  • and a third in Mr. Snodgrass’s eye, and a fourth, by way of variety, in
  • Mr. Tupman’s waistcoat, and then danced into the road, and then back
  • again to the pavement, and finally dashed the whole temporary supply of
  • breath out of Mr. Winkle’s body; and all in half a dozen seconds.
  • ‘Where’s an officer?’ said Mr. Snodgrass.
  • ‘Put ‘em under the pump,’ suggested a hot-pieman.
  • ‘You shall smart for this,’ gasped Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Informers!’ shouted the crowd.
  • ‘Come on,’ cried the cabman, who had been sparring without cessation the
  • whole time.
  • The mob hitherto had been passive spectators of the scene, but as the
  • intelligence of the Pickwickians being informers was spread among them,
  • they began to canvass with considerable vivacity the propriety of
  • enforcing the heated pastry-vendor’s proposition: and there is no saying
  • what acts of personal aggression they might have committed, had not the
  • affray been unexpectedly terminated by the interposition of a new-comer.
  • ‘What’s the fun?’ said a rather tall, thin, young man, in a green coat,
  • emerging suddenly from the coach-yard.
  • ‘Informers!’ shouted the crowd again.
  • ‘We are not,’ roared Mr. Pickwick, in a tone which, to any dispassionate
  • listener, carried conviction with it.
  • ‘Ain’t you, though--ain’t you?’ said the young man, appealing to Mr.
  • Pickwick, and making his way through the crowd by the infallible process
  • of elbowing the countenances of its component members.
  • That learned man in a few hurried words explained the real state of the
  • case.
  • ‘Come along, then,’ said he of the green coat, lugging Mr. Pickwick
  • after him by main force, and talking the whole way. Here, No. 924, take
  • your fare, and take yourself off--respectable gentleman--know him well--
  • none of your nonsense--this way, sir--where’s your friends?--all a
  • mistake, I see--never mind--accidents will happen--best regulated
  • families--never say die--down upon your luck--Pull him _up_--Put that in
  • his pipe--like the flavour--damned rascals.’ And with a lengthened
  • string of similar broken sentences, delivered with extraordinary
  • volubility, the stranger led the way to the traveller’s waiting-room,
  • whither he was closely followed by Mr. Pickwick and his disciples.
  • ‘Here, waiter!’ shouted the stranger, ringing the bell with tremendous
  • violence, ‘glasses round--brandy-and-water, hot and strong, and sweet,
  • and plenty,--eye damaged, Sir? Waiter! raw beef-steak for the
  • gentleman’s eye--nothing like raw beef-steak for a bruise, sir; cold
  • lamp-post very good, but lamp-post inconvenient--damned odd standing in
  • the open street half an hour, with your eye against a lamp-post--eh,--
  • very good--ha! ha!’ And the stranger, without stopping to take breath,
  • swallowed at a draught full half a pint of the reeking brandy-and-water,
  • and flung himself into a chair with as much ease as if nothing uncommon
  • had occurred.
  • While his three companions were busily engaged in proffering their
  • thanks to their new acquaintance, Mr. Pickwick had leisure to examine
  • his costume and appearance.
  • He was about the middle height, but the thinness of his body, and the
  • length of his legs, gave him the appearance of being much taller. The
  • green coat had been a smart dress garment in the days of swallow-tails,
  • but had evidently in those times adorned a much shorter man than the
  • stranger, for the soiled and faded sleeves scarcely reached to his
  • wrists. It was buttoned closely up to his chin, at the imminent hazard
  • of splitting the back; and an old stock, without a vestige of shirt
  • collar, ornamented his neck. His scanty black trousers displayed here
  • and there those shiny patches which bespeak long service, and were
  • strapped very tightly over a pair of patched and mended shoes, as if to
  • conceal the dirty white stockings, which were nevertheless distinctly
  • visible. His long, black hair escaped in negligent waves from beneath
  • each side of his old pinched-up hat; and glimpses of his bare wrists
  • might be observed between the tops of his gloves and the cuffs of his
  • coat sleeves. His face was thin and haggard; but an indescribable air of
  • jaunty impudence and perfect self-possession pervaded the whole man.
  • Such was the individual on whom Mr. Pickwick gazed through his
  • spectacles (which he had fortunately recovered), and to whom he
  • proceeded, when his friends had exhausted themselves, to return in
  • chosen terms his warmest thanks for his recent assistance.
  • ‘Never mind,’ said the stranger, cutting the address very short, ‘said
  • enough--no more; smart chap that cabman--handled his fives well; but if
  • I’d been your friend in the green jemmy--damn me--punch his head,--‘cod
  • I would,--pig’s whisper--pieman too,--no gammon.’
  • This coherent speech was interrupted by the entrance of the Rochester
  • coachman, to announce that ‘the Commodore’ was on the point of starting.
  • ‘Commodore!’ said the stranger, starting up, ‘my coach--place booked,--
  • one outside--leave you to pay for the brandy-and-water,--want change for
  • a five,--bad silver--Brummagem buttons--won’t do--no go--eh?’ and he
  • shook his head most knowingly.
  • Now it so happened that Mr. Pickwick and his three companions had
  • resolved to make Rochester their first halting-place too; and having
  • intimated to their new-found acquaintance that they were journeying to
  • the same city, they agreed to occupy the seat at the back of the coach,
  • where they could all sit together.
  • ‘Up with you,’ said the stranger, assisting Mr. Pickwick on to the roof
  • with so much precipitation as to impair the gravity of that gentleman’s
  • deportment very materially.
  • ‘Any luggage, Sir?’ inquired the coachman.
  • ‘Who--I? Brown paper parcel here, that’s all--other luggage gone by
  • water--packing-cases, nailed up--big as houses--heavy, heavy, damned
  • heavy,’ replied the stranger, as he forced into his pocket as much as he
  • could of the brown paper parcel, which presented most suspicious
  • indications of containing one shirt and a handkerchief.
  • ‘Heads, heads--take care of your heads!’ cried the loquacious stranger,
  • as they came out under the low archway, which in those days formed the
  • entrance to the coach-yard. ‘Terrible place--dangerous work--other day--
  • five children--mother--tall lady, eating sandwiches--forgot the arch--
  • crash--knock--children look round--mother’s head off--sandwich in her
  • hand--no mouth to put it in--head of a family off--shocking, shocking!
  • Looking at Whitehall, sir?--fine place--little window--somebody else’s
  • head off there, eh, sir?--he didn’t keep a sharp look-out enough either-
  • -eh, Sir, eh?’
  • ‘I am ruminating,’ said Mr. Pickwick, ‘on the strange mutability of
  • human affairs.’
  • ‘Ah! I see--in at the palace door one day, out at the window the next.
  • Philosopher, Sir?’
  • ‘An observer of human nature, Sir,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Ah, so am I. Most people are when they’ve little to do and less to get.
  • Poet, Sir?’
  • ‘My friend Mr. Snodgrass has a strong poetic turn,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘So have I,’ said the stranger. ‘Epic poem--ten thousand lines--
  • revolution of July--composed it on the spot--Mars by day, Apollo by
  • night--bang the field-piece, twang the lyre.’
  • ‘You were present at that glorious scene, sir?’ said Mr. Snodgrass.
  • ‘Present! think I was;* fired a musket--fired with an idea--rushed into
  • wine shop--wrote it down--back again--whiz, bang--another idea--wine
  • shop again--pen and ink--back again--cut and slash--noble time, Sir.
  • Sportsman, sir?’ abruptly turning to Mr. Winkle.
  • * A remarkable instance of the prophetic force of Mr. Jingle’s
  • imagination; this dialogue occurring in the year 1827, and the
  • Revolution in 1830.
  • ‘A little, Sir,’ replied that gentleman.
  • ‘Fine pursuit, sir--fine pursuit.--Dogs, Sir?’
  • ‘Not just now,’ said Mr. Winkle.
  • ‘Ah! you should keep dogs--fine animals--sagacious creatures--dog of my
  • own once--pointer--surprising instinct--out shooting one day--entering
  • inclosure--whistled--dog stopped--whistled again--Ponto--no go; stock
  • still--called him--Ponto, Ponto--wouldn’t move--dog transfixed--staring
  • at a board--looked up, saw an inscription--“Gamekeeper has orders to
  • shoot all dogs found in this inclosure”--wouldn’t pass it--wonderful
  • dog--valuable dog that--very.’
  • ‘Singular circumstance that,’ said Mr. Pickwick. ‘Will you allow me to
  • make a note of it?’
  • ‘Certainly, Sir, certainly--hundred more anecdotes of the same animal.--
  • Fine girl, Sir’ (to Mr. Tracy Tupman, who had been bestowing sundry
  • anti-Pickwickian glances on a young lady by the roadside).
  • ‘Very!’ said Mr. Tupman.
  • ‘English girls not so fine as Spanish--noble creatures--jet hair--black
  • eyes--lovely forms--sweet creatures--beautiful.’
  • ‘You have been in Spain, sir?’ said Mr. Tracy Tupman.
  • ‘Lived there--ages.’
  • ‘Many conquests, sir?’ inquired Mr. Tupman.
  • ‘Conquests! Thousands. Don Bolaro Fizzgig--grandee--only daughter--Donna
  • Christina--splendid creature--loved me to distraction--jealous father--
  • high-souled daughter--handsome Englishman--Donna Christina in despair--
  • prussic acid--stomach pump in my portmanteau--operation performed--old
  • Bolaro in ecstasies--consent to our union--join hands and floods of
  • tears--romantic story--very.’
  • ‘Is the lady in England now, sir?’ inquired Mr. Tupman, on whom the
  • description of her charms had produced a powerful impression.
  • ‘Dead, sir--dead,’ said the stranger, applying to his right eye the
  • brief remnant of a very old cambric handkerchief. ‘Never recovered the
  • stomach pump--undermined constitution--fell a victim.’
  • ‘And her father?’ inquired the poetic Snodgrass.
  • ‘Remorse and misery,’ replied the stranger. ‘Sudden disappearance--talk
  • of the whole city--search made everywhere without success--public
  • fountain in the great square suddenly ceased playing--weeks elapsed--
  • still a stoppage--workmen employed to clean it--water drawn off--father-
  • in-law discovered sticking head first in the main pipe, with a full
  • confession in his right boot--took him out, and the fountain played away
  • again, as well as ever.’
  • ‘Will you allow me to note that little romance down, Sir?’ said Mr.
  • Snodgrass, deeply affected.
  • ‘Certainly, Sir, certainly--fifty more if you like to hear ‘em--strange
  • life mine--rather curious history--not extraordinary, but singular.’
  • In this strain, with an occasional glass of ale, by way of parenthesis,
  • when the coach changed horses, did the stranger proceed, until they
  • reached Rochester bridge, by which time the note-books, both of Mr.
  • Pickwick and Mr. Snodgrass, were completely filled with selections from
  • his adventures.
  • ‘Magnificent ruin!’ said Mr. Augustus Snodgrass, with all the poetic
  • fervour that distinguished him, when they came in sight of the fine old
  • castle.
  • ‘What a study for an antiquarian!’ were the very words which fell from
  • Mr. Pickwick’s mouth, as he applied his telescope to his eye.
  • ‘Ah! fine place,’ said the stranger, ‘glorious pile--frowning walls--
  • tottering arches--dark nooks--crumbling staircases--old cathedral too--
  • earthy smell--pilgrims’ feet wore away the old steps--little Saxon
  • doors--confessionals like money-takers’ boxes at theatres--queer
  • customers those monks--popes, and lord treasurers, and all sorts of old
  • fellows, with great red faces, and broken noses, turning up every day--
  • buff jerkins too--match-locks--sarcophagus--fine place--old legends too-
  • -strange stories: capital;’ and the stranger continued to soliloquise
  • until they reached the Bull Inn, in the High Street, where the coach
  • stopped.
  • ‘Do you remain here, Sir?’ inquired Mr. Nathaniel Winkle.
  • ‘Here--not I--but you’d better--good house--nice beds--Wright’s next
  • house, dear--very dear--half-a-crown in the bill if you look at the
  • waiter--charge you more if you dine at a friend’s than they would if you
  • dined in the coffee-room--rum fellows--very.’
  • Mr. Winkle turned to Mr. Pickwick, and murmured a few words; a whisper
  • passed from Mr. Pickwick to Mr. Snodgrass, from Mr. Snodgrass to Mr.
  • Tupman, and nods of assent were exchanged. Mr. Pickwick addressed the
  • stranger.
  • ‘You rendered us a very important service this morning, sir,’ said he,
  • ‘will you allow us to offer a slight mark of our gratitude by begging
  • the favour of your company at dinner?’
  • ‘Great pleasure--not presume to dictate, but broiled fowl and mushrooms-
  • -capital thing! What time?’
  • ‘Let me see,’ replied Mr. Pickwick, referring to his watch, ‘it is now
  • nearly three. Shall we say five?’
  • ‘Suit me excellently,’ said the stranger, ‘five precisely--till then--
  • care of yourselves;’ and lifting the pinched-up hat a few inches from
  • his head, and carelessly replacing it very much on one side, the
  • stranger, with half the brown paper parcel sticking out of his pocket,
  • walked briskly up the yard, and turned into the High Street.
  • ‘Evidently a traveller in many countries, and a close observer of men
  • and things,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘I should like to see his poem,’ said Mr. Snodgrass.
  • ‘I should like to have seen that dog,’ said Mr. Winkle.
  • Mr. Tupman said nothing; but he thought of Donna Christina, the stomach
  • pump, and the fountain; and his eyes filled with tears.
  • A private sitting-room having been engaged, bedrooms inspected, and
  • dinner ordered, the party walked out to view the city and adjoining
  • neighbourhood.
  • We do not find, from a careful perusal of Mr. Pickwick’s notes of the
  • four towns, Stroud, Rochester, Chatham, and Brompton, that his
  • impressions of their appearance differ in any material point from those
  • of other travellers who have gone over the same ground. His general
  • description is easily abridged.
  • ‘The principal productions of these towns,’ says Mr. Pickwick, ‘appear
  • to be soldiers, sailors, Jews, chalk, shrimps, officers, and dockyard
  • men. The commodities chiefly exposed for sale in the public streets are
  • marine stores, hard-bake, apples, flat-fish, and oysters. The streets
  • present a lively and animated appearance, occasioned chiefly by the
  • conviviality of the military. It is truly delightful to a philanthropic
  • mind to see these gallant men staggering along under the influence of an
  • overflow both of animal and ardent spirits; more especially when we
  • remember that the following them about, and jesting with them, affords a
  • cheap and innocent amusement for the boy population. Nothing,’ adds Mr.
  • Pickwick, ‘can exceed their good-humour. It was but the day before my
  • arrival that one of them had been most grossly insulted in the house of
  • a publican. The barmaid had positively refused to draw him any more
  • liquor; in return for which he had (merely in playfulness) drawn his
  • bayonet, and wounded the girl in the shoulder. And yet this fine fellow
  • was the very first to go down to the house next morning and express his
  • readiness to overlook the matter, and forget what had occurred!
  • ‘The consumption of tobacco in these towns,’ continues Mr. Pickwick,
  • ‘must be very great, and the smell which pervades the streets must be
  • exceedingly delicious to those who are extremely fond of smoking. A
  • superficial traveller might object to the dirt, which is their leading
  • characteristic; but to those who view it as an indication of traffic and
  • commercial prosperity, it is truly gratifying.’
  • Punctual to five o’clock came the stranger, and shortly afterwards the
  • dinner. He had divested himself of his brown paper parcel, but had made
  • no alteration in his attire, and was, if possible, more loquacious than
  • ever.
  • ‘What’s that?’ he inquired, as the waiter removed one of the covers.
  • ‘Soles, Sir.’
  • ‘Soles--ah!--capital fish--all come from London-stage-coach proprietors
  • get up political dinners--carriage of soles--dozens of baskets--cunning
  • fellows. Glass of wine, Sir.’
  • ‘With pleasure,’ said Mr. Pickwick; and the stranger took wine, first
  • with him, and then with Mr. Snodgrass, and then with Mr. Tupman, and
  • then with Mr. Winkle, and then with the whole party together, almost as
  • rapidly as he talked.
  • ‘Devil of a mess on the staircase, waiter,’ said the stranger. ‘Forms
  • going up--carpenters coming down--lamps, glasses, harps. What’s going
  • forward?’
  • ‘Ball, Sir,’ said the waiter.
  • ‘Assembly, eh?’
  • ‘No, Sir, not assembly, Sir. Ball for the benefit of a charity, Sir.’
  • ‘Many fine women in this town, do you know, Sir?’ inquired Mr. Tupman,
  • with great interest.
  • ‘Splendid--capital. Kent, sir--everybody knows Kent--apples, cherries,
  • hops, and women. Glass of wine, Sir!’
  • ‘With great pleasure,’ replied Mr. Tupman. The stranger filled, and
  • emptied.
  • ‘I should very much like to go,’ said Mr. Tupman, resuming the subject
  • of the ball, ‘very much.’
  • ‘Tickets at the bar, Sir,’ interposed the waiter; ‘half-a-guinea each,
  • Sir.’
  • Mr. Tupman again expressed an earnest wish to be present at the
  • festivity; but meeting with no response in the darkened eye of Mr.
  • Snodgrass, or the abstracted gaze of Mr. Pickwick, he applied himself
  • with great interest to the port wine and dessert, which had just been
  • placed on the table. The waiter withdrew, and the party were left to
  • enjoy the cosy couple of hours succeeding dinner.
  • ‘Beg your pardon, sir,’ said the stranger, ‘bottle stands--pass it
  • round--way of the sun--through the button-hole--no heeltaps,’ and he
  • emptied his glass, which he had filled about two minutes before, and
  • poured out another, with the air of a man who was used to it.
  • The wine was passed, and a fresh supply ordered. The visitor talked, the
  • Pickwickians listened. Mr. Tupman felt every moment more disposed for
  • the ball. Mr. Pickwick’s countenance glowed with an expression of
  • universal philanthropy, and Mr. Winkle and Mr. Snodgrass fell fast
  • asleep.
  • ‘They’re beginning upstairs,’ said the stranger--‘hear the company--
  • fiddles tuning--now the harp--there they go.’ The various sounds which
  • found their way downstairs announced the commencement of the first
  • quadrille.
  • ‘How I should like to go,’ said Mr. Tupman again.
  • ‘So should I,’ said the stranger--‘confounded luggage,--heavy smacks--
  • nothing to go in--odd, ain’t it?’
  • Now general benevolence was one of the leading features of the
  • Pickwickian theory, and no one was more remarkable for the zealous
  • manner in which he observed so noble a principle than Mr. Tracy Tupman.
  • The number of instances recorded on the Transactions of the Society, in
  • which that excellent man referred objects of charity to the houses of
  • other members for left-off garments or pecuniary relief is almost
  • incredible.
  • ‘I should be very happy to lend you a change of apparel for the
  • purpose,’ said Mr. Tracy Tupman, ‘but you are rather slim, and I am--’
  • ‘Rather fat--grown-up Bacchus--cut the leaves--dismounted from the tub,
  • and adopted kersey, eh?--not double distilled, but double milled--ha!
  • ha! pass the wine.’
  • Whether Mr. Tupman was somewhat indignant at the peremptory tone in
  • which he was desired to pass the wine which the stranger passed so
  • quickly away, or whether he felt very properly scandalised at an
  • influential member of the Pickwick Club being ignominiously compared to
  • a dismounted Bacchus, is a fact not yet completely ascertained. He
  • passed the wine, coughed twice, and looked at the stranger for several
  • seconds with a stern intensity; as that individual, however, appeared
  • perfectly collected, and quite calm under his searching glance, he
  • gradually relaxed, and reverted to the subject of the ball.
  • ‘I was about to observe, Sir,’ he said, ‘that though my apparel would be
  • too large, a suit of my friend Mr. Winkle’s would, perhaps, fit you
  • better.’
  • The stranger took Mr. Winkle’s measure with his eye, and that feature
  • glistened with satisfaction as he said, ‘Just the thing.’
  • Mr. Tupman looked round him. The wine, which had exerted its somniferous
  • influence over Mr. Snodgrass and Mr. Winkle, had stolen upon the senses
  • of Mr. Pickwick. That gentleman had gradually passed through the various
  • stages which precede the lethargy produced by dinner, and its
  • consequences. He had undergone the ordinary transitions from the height
  • of conviviality to the depth of misery, and from the depth of misery to
  • the height of conviviality. Like a gas-lamp in the street, with the wind
  • in the pipe, he had exhibited for a moment an unnatural brilliancy, then
  • sank so low as to be scarcely discernible; after a short interval, he
  • had burst out again, to enlighten for a moment; then flickered with an
  • uncertain, staggering sort of light, and then gone out altogether. His
  • head was sunk upon his bosom, and perpetual snoring, with a partial
  • choke occasionally, were the only audible indications of the great man’s
  • presence.
  • The temptation to be present at the ball, and to form his first
  • impressions of the beauty of the Kentish ladies, was strong upon Mr.
  • Tupman. The temptation to take the stranger with him was equally great.
  • He was wholly unacquainted with the place and its inhabitants, and the
  • stranger seemed to possess as great a knowledge of both as if he had
  • lived there from his infancy. Mr. Winkle was asleep, and Mr. Tupman had
  • had sufficient experience in such matters to know that the moment he
  • awoke he would, in the ordinary course of nature, roll heavily to bed.
  • He was undecided. ‘Fill your glass, and pass the wine,’ said the
  • indefatigable visitor.
  • Mr. Tupman did as he was requested; and the additional stimulus of the
  • last glass settled his determination.
  • ‘Winkle’s bedroom is inside mine,’ said Mr. Tupman; ‘I couldn’t make him
  • understand what I wanted, if I woke him now, but I know he has a dress-
  • suit in a carpet bag; and supposing you wore it to the ball, and took it
  • off when we returned, I could replace it without troubling him at all
  • about the matter.’
  • ‘Capital,’ said the stranger, ‘famous plan--damned odd situation--
  • fourteen coats in the packing-cases, and obliged to wear another man’s--
  • very good notion, that--very.’
  • ‘We must purchase our tickets,’ said Mr. Tupman.
  • ‘Not worth while splitting a guinea,’ said the stranger, ‘toss who shall
  • pay for both--I call; you spin--first time--woman--woman--bewitching
  • woman,’ and down came the sovereign with the dragon (called by courtesy
  • a woman) uppermost.
  • Mr. Tupman rang the bell, purchased the tickets, and ordered chamber
  • candlesticks. In another quarter of an hour the stranger was completely
  • arrayed in a full suit of Mr. Nathaniel Winkle’s.
  • ‘It’s a new coat,’ said Mr. Tupman, as the stranger surveyed himself
  • with great complacency in a cheval glass; ‘the first that’s been made
  • with our club button,’ and he called his companions’ attention to the
  • large gilt button which displayed a bust of Mr. Pickwick in the centre,
  • and the letters ‘P. C.’ on either side.
  • ‘“P. C.”’ said the stranger--‘queer set out--old fellow’s likeness, and
  • “P. C.”--What does “P. C.” stand for--Peculiar Coat, eh?’ Mr. Tupman,
  • with rising indignation and great importance, explained the mystic
  • device.
  • ‘Rather short in the waist, ain’t it?’ said the stranger, screwing
  • himself round to catch a glimpse in the glass of the waist buttons,
  • which were half-way up his back. ‘Like a general postman’s coat--queer
  • coats those--made by contract--no measuring--mysterious dispensations of
  • Providence--all the short men get long coats--all the long men short
  • ones.’ Running on in this way, Mr. Tupman’s new companion adjusted his
  • dress, or rather the dress of Mr. Winkle; and, accompanied by Mr.
  • Tupman, ascended the staircase leading to the ballroom.
  • ‘What names, sir?’ said the man at the door. Mr. Tracy Tupman was
  • stepping forward to announce his own titles, when the stranger prevented
  • him.
  • ‘No names at all;’ and then he whispered Mr. Tupman, ‘names won’t do--
  • not known--very good names in their way, but not great ones--capital
  • names for a small party, but won’t make an impression in public
  • assemblies--incog. the thing--gentlemen from London--distinguished
  • foreigners--anything.’ The door was thrown open, and Mr. Tracy Tupman
  • and the stranger entered the ballroom.
  • It was a long room, with crimson-covered benches, and wax candles in
  • glass chandeliers. The musicians were securely confined in an elevated
  • den, and quadrilles were being systematically got through by two or
  • three sets of dancers. Two card-tables were made up in the adjoining
  • card-room, and two pair of old ladies, and a corresponding number of
  • stout gentlemen, were executing whist therein.
  • The finale concluded, the dancers promenaded the room, and Mr. Tupman
  • and his companion stationed themselves in a corner to observe the
  • company.
  • ‘Charming women,’ said Mr. Tupman.
  • ‘Wait a minute,’ said the stranger, ‘fun presently--nobs not come yet--
  • queer place--dockyard people of upper rank don’t know dockyard people of
  • lower rank--dockyard people of lower rank don’t know small gentry--small
  • gentry don’t know tradespeople--commissioner don’t know anybody.’
  • ‘Who’s that little boy with the light hair and pink eyes, in a fancy
  • dress?’ inquired Mr. Tupman.
  • ‘Hush, pray--pink eyes--fancy dress--little boy--nonsense--ensign 97th--
  • Honourable Wilmot Snipe--great family--Snipes--very.’
  • ‘Sir Thomas Clubber, Lady Clubber, and the Misses Clubber!’ shouted the
  • man at the door in a stentorian voice. A great sensation was created
  • throughout the room by the entrance of a tall gentleman in a blue coat
  • and bright buttons, a large lady in blue satin, and two young ladies, on
  • a similar scale, in fashionably-made dresses of the same hue.
  • ‘Commissioner--head of the yard--great man--remarkably great man,’
  • whispered the stranger in Mr. Tupman’s ear, as the charitable committee
  • ushered Sir Thomas Clubber and family to the top of the room. The
  • Honourable Wilmot Snipe, and other distinguished gentlemen crowded to
  • render homage to the Misses Clubber; and Sir Thomas Clubber stood bolt
  • upright, and looked majestically over his black kerchief at the
  • assembled company.
  • ‘Mr. Smithie, Mrs. Smithie, and the Misses Smithie,’ was the next
  • announcement.
  • ‘What’s Mr. Smithie?’ inquired Mr. Tracy Tupman.
  • ‘Something in the yard,’ replied the stranger. Mr. Smithie bowed
  • deferentially to Sir Thomas Clubber; and Sir Thomas Clubber acknowledged
  • the salute with conscious condescension. Lady Clubber took a telescopic
  • view of Mrs. Smithie and family through her eye-glass and Mrs. Smithie
  • stared in her turn at Mrs. Somebody-else, whose husband was not in the
  • dockyard at all.
  • ‘Colonel Bulder, Mrs. Colonel Bulder, and Miss Bulder,’ were the next
  • arrivals.
  • ‘Head of the garrison,’ said the stranger, in reply to Mr. Tupman’s
  • inquiring look.
  • Miss Bulder was warmly welcomed by the Misses Clubber; the greeting
  • between Mrs. Colonel Bulder and Lady Clubber was of the most
  • affectionate description; Colonel Bulder and Sir Thomas Clubber
  • exchanged snuff-boxes, and looked very much like a pair of Alexander
  • Selkirks--‘Monarchs of all they surveyed.’
  • While the aristocracy of the place--the Bulders, and Clubbers, and
  • Snipes--were thus preserving their dignity at the upper end of the room,
  • the other classes of society were imitating their example in other parts
  • of it. The less aristocratic officers of the 97th devoted themselves to
  • the families of the less important functionaries from the dockyard. The
  • solicitors’ wives, and the wine-merchant’s wife, headed another grade
  • (the brewer’s wife visited the Bulders); and Mrs. Tomlinson, the post-
  • office keeper, seemed by mutual consent to have been chosen the leader
  • of the trade party.
  • One of the most popular personages, in his own circle, present, was a
  • little fat man, with a ring of upright black hair round his head, and an
  • extensive bald plain on the top of it--Doctor Slammer, surgeon to the
  • 97th. The doctor took snuff with everybody, chatted with everybody,
  • laughed, danced, made jokes, played whist, did everything, and was
  • everywhere. To these pursuits, multifarious as they were, the little
  • doctor added a more important one than any--he was indefatigable in
  • paying the most unremitting and devoted attention to a little old widow,
  • whose rich dress and profusion of ornament bespoke her a most desirable
  • addition to a limited income.
  • Upon the doctor, and the widow, the eyes of both Mr. Tupman and his
  • companion had been fixed for some time, when the stranger broke silence.
  • ‘Lots of money--old girl--pompous doctor--not a bad idea--good fun,’
  • were the intelligible sentences which issued from his lips. Mr. Tupman
  • looked inquisitively in his face.
  • ‘I’ll dance with the widow,’ said the stranger.
  • ‘Who is she?’ inquired Mr. Tupman.
  • ‘Don’t know--never saw her in all my life--cut out the doctor--here
  • goes.’ And the stranger forthwith crossed the room; and, leaning against
  • a mantel-piece, commenced gazing with an air of respectful and
  • melancholy admiration on the fat countenance of the little old lady. Mr.
  • Tupman looked on, in mute astonishment. The stranger progressed rapidly;
  • the little doctor danced with another lady; the widow dropped her fan;
  • the stranger picked it up, and presented it--a smile--a bow--a curtsey--
  • a few words of conversation. The stranger walked boldly up to, and
  • returned with, the master of the ceremonies; a little introductory
  • pantomime; and the stranger and Mrs. Budger took their places in a
  • quadrille.
  • The surprise of Mr. Tupman at this summary proceeding, great as it was,
  • was immeasurably exceeded by the astonishment of the doctor. The
  • stranger was young, and the widow was flattered. The doctor’s attentions
  • were unheeded by the widow; and the doctor’s indignation was wholly lost
  • on his imperturbable rival. Doctor Slammer was paralysed. He, Doctor
  • Slammer, of the 97th, to be extinguished in a moment, by a man whom
  • nobody had ever seen before, and whom nobody knew even now! Doctor
  • Slammer--Doctor Slammer of the 97th rejected! Impossible! It could not
  • be! Yes, it was; there they were. What! introducing his friend! Could he
  • believe his eyes! He looked again, and was under the painful necessity
  • of admitting the veracity of his optics; Mrs. Budger was dancing with
  • Mr. Tracy Tupman; there was no mistaking the fact. There was the widow
  • before him, bouncing bodily here and there, with unwonted vigour; and
  • Mr. Tracy Tupman hopping about, with a face expressive of the most
  • intense solemnity, dancing (as a good many people do) as if a quadrille
  • were not a thing to be laughed at, but a severe trial to the feelings,
  • which it requires inflexible resolution to encounter.
  • Silently and patiently did the doctor bear all this, and all the
  • handings of negus, and watching for glasses, and darting for biscuits,
  • and coquetting, that ensued; but, a few seconds after the stranger had
  • disappeared to lead Mrs. Budger to her carriage, he darted swiftly from
  • the room with every particle of his hitherto-bottled-up indignation
  • effervescing, from all parts of his countenance, in a perspiration of
  • passion.
  • The stranger was returning, and Mr. Tupman was beside him. He spoke in a
  • low tone, and laughed. The little doctor thirsted for his life. He was
  • exulting. He had triumphed.
  • ‘Sir!’ said the doctor, in an awful voice, producing a card, and
  • retiring into an angle of the passage, ‘my name is Slammer, Doctor
  • Slammer, sir--97th Regiment--Chatham Barracks--my card, Sir, my card.’
  • He would have added more, but his indignation choked him.
  • ‘Ah!’ replied the stranger coolly, ‘Slammer--much obliged--polite
  • attention--not ill now, Slammer--but when I am--knock you up.’
  • ‘You--you’re a shuffler, sir,’ gasped the furious doctor, ‘a poltroon--a
  • coward--a liar--a--a--will nothing induce you to give me your card,
  • sir!’
  • ‘Oh! I see,’ said the stranger, half aside, ‘negus too strong here--
  • liberal landlord--very foolish--very--lemonade much better--hot rooms--
  • elderly gentlemen--suffer for it in the morning--cruel--cruel;’ and he
  • moved on a step or two.
  • ‘You are stopping in this house, Sir,’ said the indignant little man;
  • ‘you are intoxicated now, Sir; you shall hear from me in the morning,
  • sir. I shall find you out, sir; I shall find you out.’
  • ‘Rather you found me out than found me at home,’ replied the unmoved
  • stranger.
  • Doctor Slammer looked unutterable ferocity, as he fixed his hat on his
  • head with an indignant knock; and the stranger and Mr. Tupman ascended
  • to the bedroom of the latter to restore the borrowed plumage to the
  • unconscious Winkle.
  • That gentleman was fast asleep; the restoration was soon made. The
  • stranger was extremely jocose; and Mr. Tracy Tupman, being quite
  • bewildered with wine, negus, lights, and ladies, thought the whole
  • affair was an exquisite joke. His new friend departed; and, after
  • experiencing some slight difficulty in finding the orifice in his
  • nightcap, originally intended for the reception of his head, and finally
  • overturning his candlestick in his struggles to put it on, Mr. Tracy
  • Tupman managed to get into bed by a series of complicated evolutions,
  • and shortly afterwards sank into repose.
  • Seven o’clock had hardly ceased striking on the following morning, when
  • Mr. Pickwick’s comprehensive mind was aroused from the state of
  • unconsciousness, in which slumber had plunged it, by a loud knocking at
  • his chamber door.
  • ‘Who’s there?’ said Mr. Pickwick, starting up in bed.
  • ‘Boots, sir.’
  • ‘What do you want?’
  • ‘Please, sir, can you tell me which gentleman of your party wears a
  • bright blue dress-coat, with a gilt button with “P. C.” on it?’
  • ‘It’s been given out to brush,’ thought Mr. Pickwick, ‘and the man has
  • forgotten whom it belongs to.’
  • Mr. Winkle,’ he called out, ‘next room but two, on the right hand.’
  • ‘Thank’ee, sir,’ said the Boots, and away he went.
  • ‘What’s the matter?’ cried Mr. Tupman, as a loud knocking at his door
  • roused him from his oblivious repose.
  • ‘Can I speak to Mr. Winkle, sir?’ replied Boots from the outside.
  • ‘Winkle--Winkle!’ shouted Mr. Tupman, calling into the inner room.
  • ‘Hollo!’ replied a faint voice from within the bed-clothes.
  • ‘You’re wanted--some one at the door;’ and, having exerted himself to
  • articulate thus much, Mr. Tracy Tupman turned round and fell fast asleep
  • again.
  • ‘Wanted!’ said Mr. Winkle, hastily jumping out of bed, and putting on a
  • few articles of clothing; ‘wanted! at this distance from town--who on
  • earth can want me?’
  • ‘Gentleman in the coffee-room, sir,’ replied the Boots, as Mr. Winkle
  • opened the door and confronted him; ‘gentleman says he’ll not detain you
  • a moment, Sir, but he can take no denial.’
  • ‘Very odd!’ said Mr. Winkle; ‘I’ll be down directly.’
  • He hurriedly wrapped himself in a travelling-shawl and dressing-gown,
  • and proceeded downstairs. An old woman and a couple of waiters were
  • cleaning the coffee-room, and an officer in undress uniform was looking
  • out of the window. He turned round as Mr. Winkle entered, and made a
  • stiff inclination of the head. Having ordered the attendants to retire,
  • and closed the door very carefully, he said, ‘Mr. Winkle, I presume?’
  • ‘My name is Winkle, sir.’
  • ‘You will not be surprised, sir, when I inform you that I have called
  • here this morning on behalf of my friend, Doctor Slammer, of the 97th.’
  • ‘Doctor Slammer!’ said Mr. Winkle.
  • ‘Doctor Slammer. He begged me to express his opinion that your conduct
  • of last evening was of a description which no gentleman could endure;
  • and’ (he added) ‘which no one gentleman would pursue towards another.’
  • Mr. Winkle’s astonishment was too real, and too evident, to escape the
  • observation of Doctor Slammer’s friend; he therefore proceeded--
  • ‘My friend, Doctor Slammer, requested me to add, that he was firmly
  • persuaded you were intoxicated during a portion of the evening, and
  • possibly unconscious of the extent of the insult you were guilty of. He
  • commissioned me to say, that should this be pleaded as an excuse for
  • your behaviour, he will consent to accept a written apology, to be
  • penned by you, from my dictation.’
  • ‘A written apology!’ repeated Mr. Winkle, in the most emphatic tone of
  • amazement possible.
  • ‘Of course you know the alternative,’ replied the visitor coolly.
  • ‘Were you intrusted with this message to me by name?’ inquired Mr.
  • Winkle, whose intellects were hopelessly confused by this extraordinary
  • conversation.
  • ‘I was not present myself,’ replied the visitor, ‘and in consequence of
  • your firm refusal to give your card to Doctor Slammer, I was desired by
  • that gentleman to identify the wearer of a very uncommon coat--a bright
  • blue dress-coat, with a gilt button displaying a bust, and the letters
  • “P. C.”’
  • Mr. Winkle actually staggered with astonishment as he heard his own
  • costume thus minutely described. Doctor Slammer’s friend proceeded:--
  • ‘From the inquiries I made at the bar, just now, I was convinced that
  • the owner of the coat in question arrived here, with three gentlemen,
  • yesterday afternoon. I immediately sent up to the gentleman who was
  • described as appearing the head of the party, and he at once referred me
  • to you.’
  • If the principal tower of Rochester Castle had suddenly walked from its
  • foundation, and stationed itself opposite the coffee-room window, Mr.
  • Winkle’s surprise would have been as nothing compared with the profound
  • astonishment with which he had heard this address. His first impression
  • was that his coat had been stolen. ‘Will you allow me to detain you one
  • moment?’ said he.
  • ‘Certainly,’ replied the unwelcome visitor.
  • Mr. Winkle ran hastily upstairs, and with a trembling hand opened the
  • bag. There was the coat in its usual place, but exhibiting, on a close
  • inspection, evident tokens of having been worn on the preceding night.
  • ‘It must be so,’ said Mr. Winkle, letting the coat fall from his hands.
  • ‘I took too much wine after dinner, and have a very vague recollection
  • of walking about the streets, and smoking a cigar afterwards. The fact
  • is, I was very drunk;--I must have changed my coat--gone somewhere--and
  • insulted somebody--I have no doubt of it; and this message is the
  • terrible consequence.’ Saying which, Mr. Winkle retraced his steps in
  • the direction of the coffee-room, with the gloomy and dreadful resolve
  • of accepting the challenge of the warlike Doctor Slammer, and abiding by
  • the worst consequences that might ensue.
  • To this determination Mr. Winkle was urged by a variety of
  • considerations, the first of which was his reputation with the club. He
  • had always been looked up to as a high authority on all matters of
  • amusement and dexterity, whether offensive, defensive, or inoffensive;
  • and if, on this very first occasion of being put to the test, he shrunk
  • back from the trial, beneath his leader’s eye, his name and standing
  • were lost for ever. Besides, he remembered to have heard it frequently
  • surmised by the uninitiated in such matters that by an understood
  • arrangement between the seconds, the pistols were seldom loaded with
  • ball; and, furthermore, he reflected that if he applied to Mr. Snodgrass
  • to act as his second, and depicted the danger in glowing terms, that
  • gentleman might possibly communicate the intelligence to Mr. Pickwick,
  • who would certainly lose no time in transmitting it to the local
  • authorities, and thus prevent the killing or maiming of his follower.
  • Such were his thoughts when he returned to the coffee-room, and
  • intimated his intention of accepting the doctor’s challenge.
  • ‘Will you refer me to a friend, to arrange the time and place of
  • meeting?’ said the officer.
  • ‘Quite unnecessary,’ replied Mr. Winkle; ‘name them to me, and I can
  • procure the attendance of a friend afterwards.’
  • ‘Shall we say--sunset this evening?’ inquired the officer, in a careless
  • tone.
  • ‘Very good,’ replied Mr. Winkle, thinking in his heart it was very bad.
  • ‘You know Fort Pitt?’
  • ‘Yes; I saw it yesterday.’
  • ‘If you will take the trouble to turn into the field which borders the
  • trench, take the foot-path to the left when you arrive at an angle of
  • the fortification, and keep straight on, till you see me, I will precede
  • you to a secluded place, where the affair can be conducted without fear
  • of interruption.’
  • ‘Fear of interruption!’ thought Mr. Winkle.
  • ‘Nothing more to arrange, I think,’ said the officer.
  • ‘I am not aware of anything more,’ replied Mr. Winkle. ‘Good-morning.’
  • ‘Good-morning;’ and the officer whistled a lively air as he strode away.
  • That morning’s breakfast passed heavily off. Mr. Tupman was not in a
  • condition to rise, after the unwonted dissipation of the previous night;
  • Mr. Snodgrass appeared to labour under a poetical depression of spirits;
  • and even Mr. Pickwick evinced an unusual attachment to silence and soda-
  • water. Mr. Winkle eagerly watched his opportunity: it was not long
  • wanting. Mr. Snodgrass proposed a visit to the castle, and as Mr. Winkle
  • was the only other member of the party disposed to walk, they went out
  • together.
  • ‘Snodgrass,’ said Mr. Winkle, when they had turned out of the public
  • street.’Snodgrass, my dear fellow, can I rely upon your secrecy?’ As he
  • said this, he most devoutly and earnestly hoped he could not.
  • ‘You can,’ replied Mr. Snodgrass. ‘Hear me swear--’
  • ‘No, no,’ interrupted Winkle, terrified at the idea of his companion’s
  • unconsciously pledging himself not to give information; ‘don’t swear,
  • don’t swear; it’s quite unnecessary.’
  • Mr. Snodgrass dropped the hand which he had, in the spirit of poesy,
  • raised towards the clouds as he made the above appeal, and assumed an
  • attitude of attention.
  • ‘I want your assistance, my dear fellow, in an affair of honour,’ said
  • Mr. Winkle.
  • ‘You shall have it,’ replied Mr. Snodgrass, clasping his friend’s hand.
  • ‘With a doctor--Doctor Slammer, of the 97th,’ said Mr. Winkle, wishing
  • to make the matter appear as solemn as possible; ‘an affair with an
  • officer, seconded by another officer, at sunset this evening, in a
  • lonely field beyond Fort Pitt.’
  • ‘I will attend you,’ said Mr. Snodgrass.
  • He was astonished, but by no means dismayed. It is extraordinary how
  • cool any party but the principal can be in such cases. Mr. Winkle had
  • forgotten this. He had judged of his friend’s feelings by his own.
  • ‘The consequences may be dreadful,’ said Mr. Winkle.
  • ‘I hope not,’ said Mr. Snodgrass.
  • ‘The doctor, I believe, is a very good shot,’ said Mr. Winkle.
  • ‘Most of these military men are,’ observed Mr. Snodgrass calmly; ‘but so
  • are you, ain’t you?’
  • Mr. Winkle replied in the affirmative; and perceiving that he had not
  • alarmed his companion sufficiently, changed his ground.
  • ‘Snodgrass,’ he said, in a voice tremulous with emotion, ‘if I fall, you
  • will find in a packet which I shall place in your hands a note for my--
  • for my father.’
  • This attack was a failure also. Mr. Snodgrass was affected, but he
  • undertook the delivery of the note as readily as if he had been a
  • twopenny postman.
  • ‘If I fall,’ said Mr. Winkle, ‘or if the doctor falls, you, my dear
  • friend, will be tried as an accessory before the fact. Shall I involve
  • my friend in transportation--possibly for life!’
  • Mr. Snodgrass winced a little at this, but his heroism was invincible.
  • ‘In the cause of friendship,’ he fervently exclaimed, ‘I would brave all
  • dangers.’
  • How Mr. Winkle cursed his companion’s devoted friendship internally, as
  • they walked silently along, side by side, for some minutes, each
  • immersed in his own meditations! The morning was wearing away; he grew
  • desperate.
  • ‘Snodgrass,’ he said, stopping suddenly, ‘do not let me be balked in
  • this matter--do not give information to the local authorities--do not
  • obtain the assistance of several peace officers, to take either me or
  • Doctor Slammer, of the 97th Regiment, at present quartered in Chatham
  • Barracks, into custody, and thus prevent this duel!--I say, do not.’
  • Mr. Snodgrass seized his friend’s hand warmly, as he enthusiastically
  • replied, ‘Not for worlds!’
  • A thrill passed over Mr. Winkle’s frame as the conviction that he had
  • nothing to hope from his friend’s fears, and that he was destined to
  • become an animated target, rushed forcibly upon him.
  • The state of the case having been formally explained to Mr. Snodgrass,
  • and a case of satisfactory pistols, with the satisfactory accompaniments
  • of powder, ball, and caps, having been hired from a manufacturer in
  • Rochester, the two friends returned to their inn; Mr. Winkle to ruminate
  • on the approaching struggle, and Mr. Snodgrass to arrange the weapons of
  • war, and put them into proper order for immediate use.
  • It was a dull and heavy evening when they again sallied forth on their
  • awkward errand. Mr. Winkle was muffled up in a huge cloak to escape
  • observation, and Mr. Snodgrass bore under his the instruments of
  • destruction.
  • ‘Have you got everything?’ said Mr. Winkle, in an agitated tone.
  • ‘Everything,’ replied Mr. Snodgrass; ‘plenty of ammunition, in case the
  • shots don’t take effect. There’s a quarter of a pound of powder in the
  • case, and I have got two newspapers in my pocket for the loadings.’
  • These were instances of friendship for which any man might reasonably
  • feel most grateful. The presumption is, that the gratitude of Mr. Winkle
  • was too powerful for utterance, as he said nothing, but continued to
  • walk on--rather slowly.
  • ‘We are in excellent time,’ said Mr. Snodgrass, as they climbed the
  • fence of the first field; ‘the sun is just going down.’ Mr. Winkle
  • looked up at the declining orb and painfully thought of the probability
  • of his ‘going down’ himself, before long.
  • ‘There’s the officer,’ exclaimed Mr. Winkle, after a few minutes
  • walking.
  • ‘Where?’ said Mr. Snodgrass.
  • ‘There--the gentleman in the blue cloak.’ Mr. Snodgrass looked in the
  • direction indicated by the forefinger of his friend, and observed a
  • figure, muffled up, as he had described. The officer evinced his
  • consciousness of their presence by slightly beckoning with his hand; and
  • the two friends followed him at a little distance, as he walked away.
  • The evening grew more dull every moment, and a melancholy wind sounded
  • through the deserted fields, like a distant giant whistling for his
  • house-dog. The sadness of the scene imparted a sombre tinge to the
  • feelings of Mr. Winkle. He started as they passed the angle of the
  • trench--it looked like a colossal grave.
  • The officer turned suddenly from the path, and after climbing a paling,
  • and scaling a hedge, entered a secluded field. Two gentlemen were
  • waiting in it; one was a little, fat man, with black hair; and the
  • other--a portly personage in a braided surtout--was sitting with perfect
  • equanimity on a camp-stool.
  • ‘The other party, and a surgeon, I suppose,’ said Mr. Snodgrass; ‘take a
  • drop of brandy.’ Mr. Winkle seized the wicker bottle which his friend
  • proffered, and took a lengthened pull at the exhilarating liquid.
  • ‘My friend, Sir, Mr. Snodgrass,’ said Mr. Winkle, as the officer
  • approached. Doctor Slammer’s friend bowed, and produced a case similar
  • to that which Mr. Snodgrass carried.
  • ‘We have nothing further to say, Sir, I think,’ he coldly remarked, as
  • he opened the case; ‘an apology has been resolutely declined.’
  • ‘Nothing, Sir,’ said Mr. Snodgrass, who began to feel rather
  • uncomfortable himself.
  • ‘Will you step forward?’ said the officer.
  • ‘Certainly,’ replied Mr. Snodgrass. The ground was measured, and
  • preliminaries arranged.
  • ‘You will find these better than your own,’ said the opposite second,
  • producing his pistols. ‘You saw me load them. Do you object to use
  • them?’
  • ‘Certainly not,’ replied Mr. Snodgrass. The offer relieved him from
  • considerable embarrassment, for his previous notions of loading a pistol
  • were rather vague and undefined.
  • ‘We may place our men, then, I think,’ observed the officer, with as
  • much indifference as if the principals were chess-men, and the seconds
  • players.
  • ‘I think we may,’ replied Mr. Snodgrass; who would have assented to any
  • proposition, because he knew nothing about the matter. The officer
  • crossed to Doctor Slammer, and Mr. Snodgrass went up to Mr. Winkle.
  • ‘It’s all ready,’ said he, offering the pistol. ‘Give me your cloak.’
  • ‘You have got the packet, my dear fellow,’ said poor Winkle.
  • ‘All right,’ said Mr. Snodgrass. ‘Be steady, and wing him.’
  • It occurred to Mr. Winkle that this advice was very like that which
  • bystanders invariably give to the smallest boy in a street fight,
  • namely, ‘Go in, and win’--an admirable thing to recommend, if you only
  • know how to do it. He took off his cloak, however, in silence--it always
  • took a long time to undo that cloak--and accepted the pistol. The
  • seconds retired, the gentleman on the camp-stool did the same, and the
  • belligerents approached each other.
  • Mr. Winkle was always remarkable for extreme humanity. It is conjectured
  • that his unwillingness to hurt a fellow-creature intentionally was the
  • cause of his shutting his eyes when he arrived at the fatal spot; and
  • that the circumstance of his eyes being closed, prevented his observing
  • the very extraordinary and unaccountable demeanour of Doctor Slammer.
  • That gentleman started, stared, retreated, rubbed his eyes, stared
  • again, and, finally, shouted, ‘Stop, stop!’
  • ‘What’s all this?’ said Doctor Slammer, as his friend and Mr. Snodgrass
  • came running up; ‘that’s not the man.’
  • ‘Not the man!’ said Doctor Slammer’s second.
  • ‘Not the man!’ said Mr. Snodgrass.
  • ‘Not the man!’ said the gentleman with the camp-stool in his hand.
  • ‘Certainly not,’ replied the little doctor. ‘That’s not the person who
  • insulted me last night.’
  • ‘Very extraordinary!’ exclaimed the officer.
  • ‘Very,’ said the gentleman with the camp-stool. ‘The only question is,
  • whether the gentleman, being on the ground, must not be considered, as a
  • matter of form, to be the individual who insulted our friend, Doctor
  • Slammer, yesterday evening, whether he is really that individual or
  • not;’ and having delivered this suggestion, with a very sage and
  • mysterious air, the man with the camp-stool took a large pinch of snuff,
  • and looked profoundly round, with the air of an authority in such
  • matters.
  • Now Mr. Winkle had opened his eyes, and his ears too, when he heard his
  • adversary call out for a cessation of hostilities; and perceiving by
  • what he had afterwards said that there was, beyond all question, some
  • mistake in the matter, he at once foresaw the increase of reputation he
  • should inevitably acquire by concealing the real motive of his coming
  • out; he therefore stepped boldly forward, and said--
  • ‘I am not the person. I know it.’
  • ‘Then, that,’ said the man with the camp-stool, ‘is an affront to Doctor
  • Slammer, and a sufficient reason for proceeding immediately.’
  • ‘Pray be quiet, Payne,’ said the doctor’s second. ‘Why did you not
  • communicate this fact to me this morning, Sir?’
  • ‘To be sure--to be sure,’ said the man with the camp-stool indignantly.
  • ‘I entreat you to be quiet, Payne,’ said the other. ‘May I repeat my
  • question, Sir?’
  • ‘Because, Sir,’ replied Mr. Winkle, who had had time to deliberate upon
  • his answer, ‘because, Sir, you described an intoxicated and
  • ungentlemanly person as wearing a coat which I have the honour, not only
  • to wear but to have invented--the proposed uniform, Sir, of the Pickwick
  • Club in London. The honour of that uniform I feel bound to maintain, and
  • I therefore, without inquiry, accepted the challenge which you offered
  • me.’
  • ‘My dear Sir,’ said the good-humoured little doctor advancing with
  • extended hand, ‘I honour your gallantry. Permit me to say, Sir, that I
  • highly admire your conduct, and extremely regret having caused you the
  • inconvenience of this meeting, to no purpose.’
  • ‘I beg you won’t mention it, Sir,’ said Mr. Winkle.
  • ‘I shall feel proud of your acquaintance, Sir,’ said the little doctor.
  • ‘It will afford me the greatest pleasure to know you, sir,’ replied Mr.
  • Winkle. Thereupon the doctor and Mr. Winkle shook hands, and then Mr.
  • Winkle and Lieutenant Tappleton (the doctor’s second), and then Mr.
  • Winkle and the man with the camp-stool, and, finally, Mr. Winkle and Mr.
  • Snodgrass--the last-named gentleman in an excess of admiration at the
  • noble conduct of his heroic friend.
  • ‘I think we may adjourn,’ said Lieutenant Tappleton.
  • ‘Certainly,’ added the doctor.
  • ‘Unless,’ interposed the man with the camp-stool, ‘unless Mr. Winkle
  • feels himself aggrieved by the challenge; in which case, I submit, he
  • has a right to satisfaction.’
  • Mr. Winkle, with great self-denial, expressed himself quite satisfied
  • already.
  • ‘Or possibly,’ said the man with the camp-stool, ‘the gentleman’s second
  • may feel himself affronted with some observations which fell from me at
  • an early period of this meeting; if so, I shall be happy to give him
  • satisfaction immediately.’
  • Mr. Snodgrass hastily professed himself very much obliged with the
  • handsome offer of the gentleman who had spoken last, which he was only
  • induced to decline by his entire contentment with the whole proceedings.
  • The two seconds adjusted the cases, and the whole party left the ground
  • in a much more lively manner than they had proceeded to it.
  • ‘Do you remain long here?’ inquired Doctor Slammer of Mr. Winkle, as
  • they walked on most amicably together.
  • ‘I think we shall leave here the day after to-morrow,’ was the reply.
  • ‘I trust I shall have the pleasure of seeing you and your friend at my
  • rooms, and of spending a pleasant evening with you, after this awkward
  • mistake,’ said the little doctor; ‘are you disengaged this evening?’
  • ‘We have some friends here,’ replied Mr. Winkle, ‘and I should not like
  • to leave them to-night. Perhaps you and your friend will join us at the
  • Bull.’
  • ‘With great pleasure,’ said the little doctor; ‘will ten o’clock be too
  • late to look in for half an hour?’
  • ‘Oh dear, no,’ said Mr. Winkle. ‘I shall be most happy to introduce you
  • to my friends, Mr. Pickwick and Mr. Tupman.’
  • ‘It will give me great pleasure, I am sure,’ replied Doctor Slammer,
  • little suspecting who Mr. Tupman was.
  • ‘You will be sure to come?’ said Mr. Snodgrass.
  • ‘Oh, certainly.’
  • By this time they had reached the road. Cordial farewells were
  • exchanged, and the party separated. Doctor Slammer and his friends
  • repaired to the barracks, and Mr. Winkle, accompanied by Mr. Snodgrass,
  • returned to their inn.
  • CHAPTER III. A NEW ACQUAINTANCE--THE STROLLER’S TALE--A DISAGREEABLE
  • INTERRUPTION, AND AN UNPLEASANT ENCOUNTER
  • Mr. Pickwick had felt some apprehensions in consequence of the unusual
  • absence of his two friends, which their mysterious behaviour during the
  • whole morning had by no means tended to diminish. It was, therefore,
  • with more than ordinary pleasure that he rose to greet them when they
  • again entered; and with more than ordinary interest that he inquired
  • what had occurred to detain them from his society. In reply to his
  • questions on this point, Mr. Snodgrass was about to offer an historical
  • account of the circumstances just now detailed, when he was suddenly
  • checked by observing that there were present, not only Mr. Tupman and
  • their stage-coach companion of the preceding day, but another stranger
  • of equally singular appearance. It was a careworn-looking man, whose
  • sallow face, and deeply-sunken eyes, were rendered still more striking
  • than Nature had made them, by the straight black hair which hung in
  • matted disorder half-way down his face. His eyes were almost unnaturally
  • bright and piercing; his cheek-bones were high and prominent; and his
  • jaws were so long and lank, that an observer would have supposed that he
  • was drawing the flesh of his face in, for a moment, by some contraction
  • of the muscles, if his half-opened mouth and immovable expression had
  • not announced that it was his ordinary appearance. Round his neck he
  • wore a green shawl, with the large ends straggling over his chest, and
  • making their appearance occasionally beneath the worn button-holes of
  • his old waistcoat. His upper garment was a long black surtout; and below
  • it he wore wide drab trousers, and large boots, running rapidly to seed.
  • It was on this uncouth-looking person that Mr. Winkle’s eye rested, and
  • it was towards him that Mr. Pickwick extended his hand when he said, ‘A
  • friend of our friend’s here. We discovered this morning that our friend
  • was connected with the theatre in this place, though he is not desirous
  • to have it generally known, and this gentleman is a member of the same
  • profession. He was about to favour us with a little anecdote connected
  • with it, when you entered.’
  • ‘Lots of anecdote,’ said the green-coated stranger of the day before,
  • advancing to Mr. Winkle and speaking in a low and confidential tone.
  • ‘Rum fellow--does the heavy business--no actor--strange man--all sorts
  • of miseries--Dismal Jemmy, we call him on the circuit.’ Mr. Winkle and
  • Mr. Snodgrass politely welcomed the gentleman, elegantly designated as
  • ‘Dismal Jemmy’; and calling for brandy-and-water, in imitation of the
  • remainder of the company, seated themselves at the table.
  • ‘Now sir,’ said Mr. Pickwick, ‘will you oblige us by proceeding with
  • what you were going to relate?’
  • The dismal individual took a dirty roll of paper from his pocket, and
  • turning to Mr. Snodgrass, who had just taken out his note-book, said in
  • a hollow voice, perfectly in keeping with his outward man--‘Are you the
  • poet?’
  • ‘I--I do a little in that way,’ replied Mr. Snodgrass, rather taken
  • aback by the abruptness of the question.
  • ‘Ah! poetry makes life what light and music do the stage--strip the one
  • of the false embellishments, and the other of its illusions, and what is
  • there real in either to live or care for?’
  • ‘Very true, Sir,’ replied Mr. Snodgrass.
  • ‘To be before the footlights,’ continued the dismal man, ‘is like
  • sitting at a grand court show, and admiring the silken dresses of the
  • gaudy throng; to be behind them is to be the people who make that
  • finery, uncared for and unknown, and left to sink or swim, to starve or
  • live, as fortune wills it.’
  • ‘Certainly,’ said Mr. Snodgrass: for the sunken eye of the dismal man
  • rested on him, and he felt it necessary to say something.
  • ‘Go on, Jemmy,’ said the Spanish traveller, ‘like black-eyed Susan--all
  • in the Downs--no croaking--speak out--look lively.’
  • ‘Will you make another glass before you begin, Sir?’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • The dismal man took the hint, and having mixed a glass of brandy-and-
  • water, and slowly swallowed half of it, opened the roll of paper and
  • proceeded, partly to read, and partly to relate, the following incident,
  • which we find recorded on the Transactions of the Club as ‘The
  • Stroller’s Tale.’
  • THE STROLLER’S TALE
  • ‘There is nothing of the marvellous in what I am going to relate,’ said
  • the dismal man; ‘there is nothing even uncommon in it. Want and sickness
  • are too common in many stations of life to deserve more notice than is
  • usually bestowed on the most ordinary vicissitudes of human nature. I
  • have thrown these few notes together, because the subject of them was
  • well known to me for many years. I traced his progress downwards, step
  • by step, until at last he reached that excess of destitution from which
  • he never rose again.
  • ‘The man of whom I speak was a low pantomime actor; and, like many
  • people of his class, an habitual drunkard. In his better days, before he
  • had become enfeebled by dissipation and emaciated by disease, he had
  • been in the receipt of a good salary, which, if he had been careful and
  • prudent, he might have continued to receive for some years--not many;
  • because these men either die early, or by unnaturally taxing their
  • bodily energies, lose, prematurely, those physical powers on which alone
  • they can depend for subsistence. His besetting sin gained so fast upon
  • him, however, that it was found impossible to employ him in the
  • situations in which he really was useful to the theatre. The public-
  • house had a fascination for him which he could not resist. Neglected
  • disease and hopeless poverty were as certain to be his portion as death
  • itself, if he persevered in the same course; yet he did persevere, and
  • the result may be guessed. He could obtain no engagement, and he wanted
  • bread.
  • ‘Everybody who is at all acquainted with theatrical matters knows what a
  • host of shabby, poverty-stricken men hang about the stage of a large
  • establishment--not regularly engaged actors, but ballet people,
  • procession men, tumblers, and so forth, who are taken on during the run
  • of a pantomime, or an Easter piece, and are then discharged, until the
  • production of some heavy spectacle occasions a new demand for their
  • services. To this mode of life the man was compelled to resort; and
  • taking the chair every night, at some low theatrical house, at once put
  • him in possession of a few more shillings weekly, and enabled him to
  • gratify his old propensity. Even this resource shortly failed him; his
  • irregularities were too great to admit of his earning the wretched
  • pittance he might thus have procured, and he was actually reduced to a
  • state bordering on starvation, only procuring a trifle occasionally by
  • borrowing it of some old companion, or by obtaining an appearance at one
  • or other of the commonest of the minor theatres; and when he did earn
  • anything it was spent in the old way.
  • ‘About this time, and when he had been existing for upwards of a year no
  • one knew how, I had a short engagement at one of the theatres on the
  • Surrey side of the water, and here I saw this man, whom I had lost sight
  • of for some time; for I had been travelling in the provinces, and he had
  • been skulking in the lanes and alleys of London. I was dressed to leave
  • the house, and was crossing the stage on my way out, when he tapped me
  • on the shoulder. Never shall I forget the repulsive sight that met my
  • eye when I turned round. He was dressed for the pantomimes in all the
  • absurdity of a clown’s costume. The spectral figures in the Dance of
  • Death, the most frightful shapes that the ablest painter ever portrayed
  • on canvas, never presented an appearance half so ghastly. His bloated
  • body and shrunken legs--their deformity enhanced a hundredfold by the
  • fantastic dress--the glassy eyes, contrasting fearfully with the thick
  • white paint with which the face was besmeared; the grotesquely-
  • ornamented head, trembling with paralysis, and the long skinny hands,
  • rubbed with white chalk--all gave him a hideous and unnatural
  • appearance, of which no description could convey an adequate idea, and
  • which, to this day, I shudder to think of. His voice was hollow and
  • tremulous as he took me aside, and in broken words recounted a long
  • catalogue of sickness and privations, terminating as usual with an
  • urgent request for the loan of a trifling sum of money. I put a few
  • shillings in his hand, and as I turned away I heard the roar of laughter
  • which followed his first tumble on the stage.
  • ‘A few nights afterwards, a boy put a dirty scrap of paper in my hand,
  • on which were scrawled a few words in pencil, intimating that the man
  • was dangerously ill, and begging me, after the performance, to see him
  • at his lodgings in some street--I forget the name of it now--at no great
  • distance from the theatre. I promised to comply, as soon as I could get
  • away; and after the curtain fell, sallied forth on my melancholy errand.
  • ‘It was late, for I had been playing in the last piece; and, as it was a
  • benefit night, the performances had been protracted to an unusual
  • length. It was a dark, cold night, with a chill, damp wind, which blew
  • the rain heavily against the windows and house-fronts. Pools of water
  • had collected in the narrow and little-frequented streets, and as many
  • of the thinly-scattered oil-lamps had been blown out by the violence of
  • the wind, the walk was not only a comfortless, but most uncertain one. I
  • had fortunately taken the right course, however, and succeeded, after a
  • little difficulty, in finding the house to which I had been directed--a
  • coal-shed, with one storey above it, in the back room of which lay the
  • object of my search.
  • ‘A wretched-looking woman, the man’s wife, met me on the stairs, and,
  • telling me that he had just fallen into a kind of doze, led me softly
  • in, and placed a chair for me at the bedside. The sick man was lying
  • with his face turned towards the wall; and as he took no heed of my
  • presence, I had leisure to observe the place in which I found myself.
  • ‘He was lying on an old bedstead, which turned up during the day. The
  • tattered remains of a checked curtain were drawn round the bed’s head,
  • to exclude the wind, which, however, made its way into the comfortless
  • room through the numerous chinks in the door, and blew it to and fro
  • every instant. There was a low cinder fire in a rusty, unfixed grate;
  • and an old three-cornered stained table, with some medicine bottles, a
  • broken glass, and a few other domestic articles, was drawn out before
  • it. A little child was sleeping on a temporary bed which had been made
  • for it on the floor, and the woman sat on a chair by its side. There
  • were a couple of shelves, with a few plates and cups and saucers; and a
  • pair of stage shoes and a couple of foils hung beneath them. With the
  • exception of little heaps of rags and bundles which had been carelessly
  • thrown into the corners of the room, these were the only things in the
  • apartment.
  • ‘I had had time to note these little particulars, and to mark the heavy
  • breathing and feverish startings of the sick man, before he was aware of
  • my presence. In the restless attempts to procure some easy resting-place
  • for his head, he tossed his hand out of the bed, and it fell on mine. He
  • started up, and stared eagerly in my face.
  • ‘“Mr. Hutley, John,” said his wife; “Mr. Hutley, that you sent for to-
  • night, you know.”
  • ‘“Ah!” said the invalid, passing his hand across his forehead; “Hutley--
  • Hutley--let me see.” He seemed endeavouring to collect his thoughts for
  • a few seconds, and then grasping me tightly by the wrist said, “Don’t
  • leave me--don’t leave me, old fellow. She’ll murder me; I know she
  • will.”
  • ‘“Has he been long so?” said I, addressing his weeping wife.
  • ‘“Since yesterday night,” she replied. “John, John, don’t you know me?”
  • ‘“Don’t let her come near me,” said the man, with a shudder, as she
  • stooped over him. “Drive her away; I can’t bear her near me.” He stared
  • wildly at her, with a look of deadly apprehension, and then whispered in
  • my ear, “I beat her, Jem; I beat her yesterday, and many times before. I
  • have starved her and the boy too; and now I am weak and helpless, Jem,
  • she’ll murder me for it; I know she will. If you’d seen her cry, as I
  • have, you’d know it too. Keep her off.” He relaxed his grasp, and sank
  • back exhausted on the pillow.
  • ‘I knew but too well what all this meant. If I could have entertained
  • any doubt of it, for an instant, one glance at the woman’s pale face and
  • wasted form would have sufficiently explained the real state of the
  • case. “You had better stand aside,” said I to the poor creature. “You
  • can do him no good. Perhaps he will be calmer, if he does not see you.”
  • She retired out of the man’s sight. He opened his eyes after a few
  • seconds, and looked anxiously round.
  • ‘“Is she gone?” he eagerly inquired.
  • ‘“Yes--yes,” said I; “she shall not hurt you.”
  • ‘“I’ll tell you what, Jem,” said the man, in a low voice, “she does hurt
  • me. There’s something in her eyes wakes such a dreadful fear in my
  • heart, that it drives me mad. All last night, her large, staring eyes
  • and pale face were close to mine; wherever I turned, they turned; and
  • whenever I started up from my sleep, she was at the bedside looking at
  • me.” He drew me closer to him, as he said in a deep alarmed whisper,
  • “Jem, she must be an evil spirit--a devil! Hush! I know she is. If she
  • had been a woman she would have died long ago. No woman could have borne
  • what she has.”
  • ‘I sickened at the thought of the long course of cruelty and neglect
  • which must have occurred to produce such an impression on such a man. I
  • could say nothing in reply; for who could offer hope, or consolation, to
  • the abject being before me?
  • ‘I sat there for upwards of two hours, during which time he tossed
  • about, murmuring exclamations of pain or impatience, restlessly throwing
  • his arms here and there, and turning constantly from side to side. At
  • length he fell into that state of partial unconsciousness, in which the
  • mind wanders uneasily from scene to scene, and from place to place,
  • without the control of reason, but still without being able to divest
  • itself of an indescribable sense of present suffering. Finding from his
  • incoherent wanderings that this was the case, and knowing that in all
  • probability the fever would not grow immediately worse, I left him,
  • promising his miserable wife that I would repeat my visit next evening,
  • and, if necessary, sit up with the patient during the night.
  • ‘I kept my promise. The last four-and-twenty hours had produced a
  • frightful alteration. The eyes, though deeply sunk and heavy, shone with
  • a lustre frightful to behold. The lips were parched, and cracked in many
  • places; the hard, dry skin glowed with a burning heat; and there was an
  • almost unearthly air of wild anxiety in the man’s face, indicating even
  • more strongly the ravages of the disease. The fever was at its height.
  • ‘I took the seat I had occupied the night before, and there I sat for
  • hours, listening to sounds which must strike deep to the heart of the
  • most callous among human beings--the awful ravings of a dying man. From
  • what I had heard of the medical attendant’s opinion, I knew there was no
  • hope for him: I was sitting by his death-bed. I saw the wasted limbs--
  • which a few hours before had been distorted for the amusement of a
  • boisterous gallery, writhing under the tortures of a burning fever--I
  • heard the clown’s shrill laugh, blending with the low murmurings of the
  • dying man.
  • ‘It is a touching thing to hear the mind reverting to the ordinary
  • occupations and pursuits of health, when the body lies before you weak
  • and helpless; but when those occupations are of a character the most
  • strongly opposed to anything we associate with grave and solemn ideas,
  • the impression produced is infinitely more powerful. The theatre and the
  • public-house were the chief themes of the wretched man’s wanderings. It
  • was evening, he fancied; he had a part to play that night; it was late,
  • and he must leave home instantly. Why did they hold him, and prevent his
  • going?--he should lose the money--he must go. No! they would not let
  • him. He hid his face in his burning hands, and feebly bemoaned his own
  • weakness, and the cruelty of his persecutors. A short pause, and he
  • shouted out a few doggerel rhymes--the last he had ever learned. He rose
  • in bed, drew up his withered limbs, and rolled about in uncouth
  • positions; he was acting--he was at the theatre. A minute’s silence, and
  • he murmured the burden of some roaring song. He had reached the old
  • house at last--how hot the room was. He had been ill, very ill, but he
  • was well now, and happy. Fill up his glass. Who was that, that dashed it
  • from his lips? It was the same persecutor that had followed him before.
  • He fell back upon his pillow and moaned aloud. A short period of
  • oblivion, and he was wandering through a tedious maze of low-arched
  • rooms--so low, sometimes, that he must creep upon his hands and knees to
  • make his way along; it was close and dark, and every way he turned, some
  • obstacle impeded his progress. There were insects, too, hideous crawling
  • things, with eyes that stared upon him, and filled the very air around,
  • glistening horribly amidst the thick darkness of the place. The walls
  • and ceiling were alive with reptiles--the vault expanded to an enormous
  • size--frightful figures flitted to and fro--and the faces of men he
  • knew, rendered hideous by gibing and mouthing, peered out from among
  • them; they were searing him with heated irons, and binding his head with
  • cords till the blood started; and he struggled madly for life.
  • ‘At the close of one of these paroxysms, when I had with great
  • difficulty held him down in his bed, he sank into what appeared to be a
  • slumber. Overpowered with watching and exertion, I had closed my eyes
  • for a few minutes, when I felt a violent clutch on my shoulder. I awoke
  • instantly. He had raised himself up, so as to seat himself in bed--a
  • dreadful change had come over his face, but consciousness had returned,
  • for he evidently knew me. The child, who had been long since disturbed
  • by his ravings, rose from its little bed, and ran towards its father,
  • screaming with fright--the mother hastily caught it in her arms, lest he
  • should injure it in the violence of his insanity; but, terrified by the
  • alteration of his features, stood transfixed by the bedside. He grasped
  • my shoulder convulsively, and, striking his breast with the other hand,
  • made a desperate attempt to articulate. It was unavailing; he extended
  • his arm towards them, and made another violent effort. There was a
  • rattling noise in the throat--a glare of the eye--a short stifled groan-
  • -and he fell back--dead!’
  • It would afford us the highest gratification to be enabled to record Mr.
  • Pickwick’s opinion of the foregoing anecdote. We have little doubt that
  • we should have been enabled to present it to our readers, but for a most
  • unfortunate occurrence.
  • Mr. Pickwick had replaced on the table the glass which, during the last
  • few sentences of the tale, he had retained in his hand; and had just
  • made up his mind to speak--indeed, we have the authority of Mr.
  • Snodgrass’s note-book for stating, that he had actually opened his
  • mouth--when the waiter entered the room, and said--
  • ‘Some gentlemen, Sir.’
  • It has been conjectured that Mr. Pickwick was on the point of delivering
  • some remarks which would have enlightened the world, if not the Thames,
  • when he was thus interrupted; for he gazed sternly on the waiter’s
  • countenance, and then looked round on the company generally, as if
  • seeking for information relative to the new-comers.
  • ‘Oh!’ said Mr. Winkle, rising, ‘some friends of mine--show them in. Very
  • pleasant fellows,’ added Mr. Winkle, after the waiter had retired--
  • ‘officers of the 97th, whose acquaintance I made rather oddly this
  • morning. You will like them very much.’
  • Mr. Pickwick’s equanimity was at once restored. The waiter returned, and
  • ushered three gentlemen into the room.
  • ‘Lieutenant Tappleton,’ said Mr. Winkle, ‘Lieutenant Tappleton, Mr.
  • Pickwick--Doctor Payne, Mr. Pickwick--Mr. Snodgrass you have seen
  • before, my friend Mr. Tupman, Doctor Payne--Doctor Slammer, Mr.
  • Pickwick--Mr. Tupman, Doctor Slam--’
  • Here Mr. Winkle suddenly paused; for strong emotion was visible on the
  • countenance both of Mr. Tupman and the doctor.
  • ‘I have met _this_ gentleman before,’ said the Doctor, with marked
  • emphasis.
  • ‘Indeed!’ said Mr. Winkle.
  • ‘And--and that person, too, if I am not mistaken,’ said the doctor,
  • bestowing a scrutinising glance on the green-coated stranger. ‘I think I
  • gave that person a very pressing invitation last night, which he thought
  • proper to decline.’ Saying which the doctor scowled magnanimously on the
  • stranger, and whispered his friend Lieutenant Tappleton.
  • ‘You don’t say so,’ said that gentleman, at the conclusion of the
  • whisper.
  • ‘I do, indeed,’ replied Doctor Slammer.
  • ‘You are bound to kick him on the spot,’ murmured the owner of the camp-
  • stool, with great importance.
  • ‘Do be quiet, Payne,’ interposed the lieutenant. ‘Will you allow me to
  • ask you, sir,’ he said, addressing Mr. Pickwick, who was considerably
  • mystified by this very unpolite by-play--‘will you allow me to ask you,
  • Sir, whether that person belongs to your party?’
  • ‘No, Sir,’ replied Mr. Pickwick, ‘he is a guest of ours.’
  • ‘He is a member of your club, or I am mistaken?’ said the lieutenant
  • inquiringly.
  • ‘Certainly not,’ responded Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘And never wears your club-button?’ said the lieutenant.
  • ‘No--never!’ replied the astonished Mr. Pickwick.
  • Lieutenant Tappleton turned round to his friend Doctor Slammer, with a
  • scarcely perceptible shrug of the shoulder, as if implying some doubt of
  • the accuracy of his recollection. The little doctor looked wrathful, but
  • confounded; and Mr. Payne gazed with a ferocious aspect on the beaming
  • countenance of the unconscious Pickwick.
  • ‘Sir,’ said the doctor, suddenly addressing Mr. Tupman, in a tone which
  • made that gentleman start as perceptibly as if a pin had been cunningly
  • inserted in the calf of his leg, ‘you were at the ball here last night!’
  • Mr. Tupman gasped a faint affirmative, looking very hard at Mr. Pickwick
  • all the while.
  • ‘That person was your companion,’ said the doctor, pointing to the still
  • unmoved stranger.
  • Mr. Tupman admitted the fact.
  • ‘Now, sir,’ said the doctor to the stranger, ‘I ask you once again, in
  • the presence of these gentlemen, whether you choose to give me your
  • card, and to receive the treatment of a gentleman; or whether you impose
  • upon me the necessity of personally chastising you on the spot?’
  • ‘Stay, sir,’ said Mr. Pickwick, ‘I really cannot allow this matter to go
  • any further without some explanation. Tupman, recount the
  • circumstances.’
  • Mr. Tupman, thus solemnly adjured, stated the case in a few words;
  • touched slightly on the borrowing of the coat; expatiated largely on its
  • having been done ‘after dinner’; wound up with a little penitence on his
  • own account; and left the stranger to clear himself as best he could.
  • He was apparently about to proceed to do so, when Lieutenant Tappleton,
  • who had been eyeing him with great curiosity, said with considerable
  • scorn, ‘Haven’t I seen you at the theatre, Sir?’
  • ‘Certainly,’ replied the unabashed stranger.
  • ‘He is a strolling actor!’ said the lieutenant contemptuously, turning
  • to Doctor Slammer.--‘He acts in the piece that the officers of the 52nd
  • get up at the Rochester Theatre to-morrow night. You cannot proceed in
  • this affair, Slammer--impossible!’
  • ‘Quite!’ said the dignified Payne.
  • ‘Sorry to have placed you in this disagreeable situation,’ said
  • Lieutenant Tappleton, addressing Mr. Pickwick; ‘allow me to suggest,
  • that the best way of avoiding a recurrence of such scenes in future will
  • be to be more select in the choice of your companions. Good-evening,
  • Sir!’ and the lieutenant bounced out of the room.
  • ‘And allow me to say, Sir,’ said the irascible Doctor Payne, ‘that if I
  • had been Tappleton, or if I had been Slammer, I would have pulled your
  • nose, Sir, and the nose of every man in this company. I would, sir--
  • every man. Payne is my name, sir--Doctor Payne of the 43rd. Good-
  • evening, Sir.’ Having concluded this speech, and uttered the last three
  • words in a loud key, he stalked majestically after his friend, closely
  • followed by Doctor Slammer, who said nothing, but contented himself by
  • withering the company with a look.
  • Rising rage and extreme bewilderment had swelled the noble breast of Mr.
  • Pickwick, almost to the bursting of his waistcoat, during the delivery
  • of the above defiance. He stood transfixed to the spot, gazing on
  • vacancy. The closing of the door recalled him to himself. He rushed
  • forward with fury in his looks, and fire in his eye. His hand was upon
  • the lock of the door; in another instant it would have been on the
  • throat of Doctor Payne of the 43rd, had not Mr. Snodgrass seized his
  • revered leader by the coat tail, and dragged him backwards.
  • ‘Restrain him,’ cried Mr. Snodgrass; ‘Winkle, Tupman--he must not peril
  • his distinguished life in such a cause as this.’
  • ‘Let me go,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Hold him tight,’ shouted Mr. Snodgrass; and by the united efforts of
  • the whole company, Mr. Pickwick was forced into an arm-chair.
  • ‘Leave him alone,’ said the green-coated stranger; ‘brandy-and-water--
  • jolly old gentleman--lots of pluck--swallow this--ah!--capital stuff.’
  • Having previously tested the virtues of a bumper, which had been mixed
  • by the dismal man, the stranger applied the glass to Mr. Pickwick’s
  • mouth; and the remainder of its contents rapidly disappeared.
  • There was a short pause; the brandy-and-water had done its work; the
  • amiable countenance of Mr. Pickwick was fast recovering its customary
  • expression.
  • ‘They are not worth your notice,’ said the dismal man.
  • ‘You are right, sir,’ replied Mr. Pickwick, ‘they are not. I am ashamed
  • to have been betrayed into this warmth of feeling. Draw your chair up to
  • the table, Sir.’
  • The dismal man readily complied; a circle was again formed round the
  • table, and harmony once more prevailed. Some lingering irritability
  • appeared to find a resting-place in Mr. Winkle’s bosom, occasioned
  • possibly by the temporary abstraction of his coat--though it is scarcely
  • reasonable to suppose that so slight a circumstance can have excited
  • even a passing feeling of anger in a Pickwickian’s breast. With this
  • exception, their good-humour was completely restored; and the evening
  • concluded with the conviviality with which it had begun.
  • CHAPTER IV. A FIELD DAY AND BIVOUAC--MORE NEW FRIENDS--AN INVITATION TO
  • THE COUNTRY
  • Many authors entertain, not only a foolish, but a really dishonest
  • objection to acknowledge the sources whence they derive much valuable
  • information. We have no such feeling. We are merely endeavouring to
  • discharge, in an upright manner, the responsible duties of our editorial
  • functions; and whatever ambition we might have felt under other
  • circumstances to lay claim to the authorship of these adventures, a
  • regard for truth forbids us to do more than claim the merit of their
  • judicious arrangement and impartial narration. The Pickwick papers are
  • our New River Head; and we may be compared to the New River Company. The
  • labours of others have raised for us an immense reservoir of important
  • facts. We merely lay them on, and communicate them, in a clear and
  • gentle stream, through the medium of these pages, to a world thirsting
  • for Pickwickian knowledge.
  • Acting in this spirit, and resolutely proceeding on our determination to
  • avow our obligations to the authorities we have consulted, we frankly
  • say, that to the note-book of Mr. Snodgrass are we indebted for the
  • particulars recorded in this and the succeeding chapter--particulars
  • which, now that we have disburdened our consciences, we shall proceed to
  • detail without further comment.
  • The whole population of Rochester and the adjoining towns rose from
  • their beds at an early hour of the following morning, in a state of the
  • utmost bustle and excitement. A grand review was to take place upon the
  • lines. The manoeuvres of half a dozen regiments were to be inspected by
  • the eagle eye of the commander-in-chief; temporary fortifications had
  • been erected, the citadel was to be attacked and taken, and a mine was
  • to be sprung.
  • Mr. Pickwick was, as our readers may have gathered from the slight
  • extract we gave from his description of Chatham, an enthusiastic admirer
  • of the army. Nothing could have been more delightful to him--nothing
  • could have harmonised so well with the peculiar feeling of each of his
  • companions--as this sight. Accordingly they were soon afoot, and walking
  • in the direction of the scene of action, towards which crowds of people
  • were already pouring from a variety of quarters.
  • The appearance of everything on the lines denoted that the approaching
  • ceremony was one of the utmost grandeur and importance. There were
  • sentries posted to keep the ground for the troops, and servants on the
  • batteries keeping places for the ladies, and sergeants running to and
  • fro, with vellum-covered books under their arms, and Colonel Bulder, in
  • full military uniform, on horseback, galloping first to one place and
  • then to another, and backing his horse among the people, and prancing,
  • and curvetting, and shouting in a most alarming manner, and making
  • himself very hoarse in the voice, and very red in the face, without any
  • assignable cause or reason whatever. Officers were running backwards and
  • forwards, first communicating with Colonel Bulder, and then ordering the
  • sergeants, and then running away altogether; and even the very privates
  • themselves looked from behind their glazed stocks with an air of
  • mysterious solemnity, which sufficiently bespoke the special nature of
  • the occasion.
  • Mr. Pickwick and his three companions stationed themselves in the front
  • of the crowd, and patiently awaited the commencement of the proceedings.
  • The throng was increasing every moment; and the efforts they were
  • compelled to make, to retain the position they had gained, sufficiently
  • occupied their attention during the two hours that ensued. At one time
  • there was a sudden pressure from behind, and then Mr. Pickwick was
  • jerked forward for several yards, with a degree of speed and elasticity
  • highly inconsistent with the general gravity of his demeanour; at
  • another moment there was a request to ‘keep back’ from the front, and
  • then the butt-end of a musket was either dropped upon Mr. Pickwick’s
  • toe, to remind him of the demand, or thrust into his chest, to insure
  • its being complied with. Then some facetious gentlemen on the left,
  • after pressing sideways in a body, and squeezing Mr. Snodgrass into the
  • very last extreme of human torture, would request to know ‘vere he vos a
  • shovin’ to’; and when Mr. Winkle had done expressing his excessive
  • indignation at witnessing this unprovoked assault, some person behind
  • would knock his hat over his eyes, and beg the favour of his putting his
  • head in his pocket. These, and other practical witticisms, coupled with
  • the unaccountable absence of Mr. Tupman (who had suddenly disappeared,
  • and was nowhere to be found), rendered their situation upon the whole
  • rather more uncomfortable than pleasing or desirable.
  • At length that low roar of many voices ran through the crowd which
  • usually announces the arrival of whatever they have been waiting for.
  • All eyes were turned in the direction of the sally-port. A few moments
  • of eager expectation, and colours were seen fluttering gaily in the air,
  • arms glistened brightly in the sun, column after column poured on to the
  • plain. The troops halted and formed; the word of command rang through
  • the line; there was a general clash of muskets as arms were presented;
  • and the commander-in-chief, attended by Colonel Bulder and numerous
  • officers, cantered to the front. The military bands struck up
  • altogether; the horses stood upon two legs each, cantered backwards, and
  • whisked their tails about in all directions; the dogs barked, the mob
  • screamed, the troops recovered, and nothing was to be seen on either
  • side, as far as the eye could reach, but a long perspective of red coats
  • and white trousers, fixed and motionless.
  • Mr. Pickwick had been so fully occupied in falling about, and
  • disentangling himself, miraculously, from between the legs of horses,
  • that he had not enjoyed sufficient leisure to observe the scene before
  • him, until it assumed the appearance we have just described. When he was
  • at last enabled to stand firmly on his legs, his gratification and
  • delight were unbounded.
  • ‘Can anything be finer or more delightful?’ he inquired of Mr. Winkle.
  • ‘Nothing,’ replied that gentleman, who had had a short man standing on
  • each of his feet for the quarter of an hour immediately preceding.
  • ‘It is indeed a noble and a brilliant sight,’ said Mr. Snodgrass, in
  • whose bosom a blaze of poetry was rapidly bursting forth, ‘to see the
  • gallant defenders of their country drawn up in brilliant array before
  • its peaceful citizens; their faces beaming--not with warlike ferocity,
  • but with civilised gentleness; their eyes flashing--not with the rude
  • fire of rapine or revenge, but with the soft light of humanity and
  • intelligence.’
  • Mr. Pickwick fully entered into the spirit of this eulogium, but he
  • could not exactly re-echo its terms; for the soft light of intelligence
  • burned rather feebly in the eyes of the warriors, inasmuch as the
  • command ‘eyes front’ had been given, and all the spectator saw before
  • him was several thousand pair of optics, staring straight forward,
  • wholly divested of any expression whatever.
  • ‘We are in a capital situation now,’ said Mr. Pickwick, looking round
  • him. The crowd had gradually dispersed in their immediate vicinity, and
  • they were nearly alone.
  • ‘Capital!’ echoed both Mr. Snodgrass and Mr. Winkle.
  • ‘What are they doing now?’ inquired Mr. Pickwick, adjusting his
  • spectacles.
  • ‘I--I--rather think,’ said Mr. Winkle, changing colour--‘I rather think
  • they’re going to fire.’
  • ‘Nonsense,’ said Mr. Pickwick hastily.
  • ‘I--I--really think they are,’ urged Mr. Snodgrass, somewhat alarmed.
  • ‘Impossible,’ replied Mr. Pickwick. He had hardly uttered the word, when
  • the whole half-dozen regiments levelled their muskets as if they had but
  • one common object, and that object the Pickwickians, and burst forth
  • with the most awful and tremendous discharge that ever shook the earth
  • to its centres, or an elderly gentleman off his.
  • It was in this trying situation, exposed to a galling fire of blank
  • cartridges, and harassed by the operations of the military, a fresh body
  • of whom had begun to fall in on the opposite side, that Mr. Pickwick
  • displayed that perfect coolness and self-possession, which are the
  • indispensable accompaniments of a great mind. He seized Mr. Winkle by
  • the arm, and placing himself between that gentleman and Mr. Snodgrass,
  • earnestly besought them to remember that beyond the possibility of being
  • rendered deaf by the noise, there was no immediate danger to be
  • apprehended from the firing.
  • ‘But--but--suppose some of the men should happen to have ball cartridges
  • by mistake,’ remonstrated Mr. Winkle, pallid at the supposition he was
  • himself conjuring up. ‘I heard something whistle through the air now--so
  • sharp; close to my ear.’
  • ‘We had better throw ourselves on our faces, hadn’t we?’ said Mr.
  • Snodgrass.
  • ‘No, no--it’s over now,’ said Mr. Pickwick. His lip might quiver, and
  • his cheek might blanch, but no expression of fear or concern escaped the
  • lips of that immortal man.
  • Mr. Pickwick was right--the firing ceased; but he had scarcely time to
  • congratulate himself on the accuracy of his opinion, when a quick
  • movement was visible in the line; the hoarse shout of the word of
  • command ran along it, and before either of the party could form a guess
  • at the meaning of this new manoeuvre, the whole of the half-dozen
  • regiments, with fixed bayonets, charged at double-quick time down upon
  • the very spot on which Mr. Pickwick and his friends were stationed.
  • Man is but mortal; and there is a point beyond which human courage
  • cannot extend. Mr. Pickwick gazed through his spectacles for an instant
  • on the advancing mass, and then fairly turned his back and--we will not
  • say fled; firstly, because it is an ignoble term, and, secondly, because
  • Mr. Pickwick’s figure was by no means adapted for that mode of retreat--
  • he trotted away, at as quick a rate as his legs would convey him; so
  • quickly, indeed, that he did not perceive the awkwardness of his
  • situation, to the full extent, until too late.
  • The opposite troops, whose falling-in had perplexed Mr. Pickwick a few
  • seconds before, were drawn up to repel the mimic attack of the sham
  • besiegers of the citadel; and the consequence was that Mr. Pickwick and
  • his two companions found themselves suddenly inclosed between two lines
  • of great length, the one advancing at a rapid pace, and the other firmly
  • waiting the collision in hostile array.
  • ‘Hoi!’ shouted the officers of the advancing line.
  • ‘Get out of the way!’ cried the officers of the stationary one.
  • ‘Where are we to go to?’ screamed the agitated Pickwickians.
  • ‘Hoi--hoi--hoi!’ was the only reply. There was a moment of intense
  • bewilderment, a heavy tramp of footsteps, a violent concussion, a
  • smothered laugh; the half-dozen regiments were half a thousand yards
  • off, and the soles of Mr. Pickwick’s boots were elevated in air.
  • Mr. Snodgrass and Mr. Winkle had each performed a compulsory somerset
  • with remarkable agility, when the first object that met the eyes of the
  • latter as he sat on the ground, staunching with a yellow silk
  • handkerchief the stream of life which issued from his nose, was his
  • venerated leader at some distance off, running after his own hat, which
  • was gambolling playfully away in perspective.
  • There are very few moments in a man’s existence when he experiences so
  • much ludicrous distress, or meets with so little charitable
  • commiseration, as when he is in pursuit of his own hat. A vast deal of
  • coolness, and a peculiar degree of judgment, are requisite in catching a
  • hat. A man must not be precipitate, or he runs over it; he must not rush
  • into the opposite extreme, or he loses it altogether. The best way is to
  • keep gently up with the object of pursuit, to be wary and cautious, to
  • watch your opportunity well, get gradually before it, then make a rapid
  • dive, seize it by the crown, and stick it firmly on your head; smiling
  • pleasantly all the time, as if you thought it as good a joke as anybody
  • else.
  • There was a fine gentle wind, and Mr. Pickwick’s hat rolled sportively
  • before it. The wind puffed, and Mr. Pickwick puffed, and the hat rolled
  • over and over as merrily as a lively porpoise in a strong tide: and on
  • it might have rolled, far beyond Mr. Pickwick’s reach, had not its
  • course been providentially stopped, just as that gentleman was on the
  • point of resigning it to its fate.
  • Mr. Pickwick, we say, was completely exhausted, and about to give up the
  • chase, when the hat was blown with some violence against the wheel of a
  • carriage, which was drawn up in a line with half a dozen other vehicles
  • on the spot to which his steps had been directed. Mr. Pickwick,
  • perceiving his advantage, darted briskly forward, secured his property,
  • planted it on his head, and paused to take breath. He had not been
  • stationary half a minute, when he heard his own name eagerly pronounced
  • by a voice, which he at once recognised as Mr. Tupman’s, and, looking
  • upwards, he beheld a sight which filled him with surprise and pleasure.
  • In an open barouche, the horses of which had been taken out, the better
  • to accommodate it to the crowded place, stood a stout old gentleman, in
  • a blue coat and bright buttons, corduroy breeches and top-boots, two
  • young ladies in scarfs and feathers, a young gentleman apparently
  • enamoured of one of the young ladies in scarfs and feathers, a lady of
  • doubtful age, probably the aunt of the aforesaid, and Mr. Tupman, as
  • easy and unconcerned as if he had belonged to the family from the first
  • moments of his infancy. Fastened up behind the barouche was a hamper of
  • spacious dimensions--one of those hampers which always awakens in a
  • contemplative mind associations connected with cold fowls, tongues, and
  • bottles of wine--and on the box sat a fat and red-faced boy, in a state
  • of somnolency, whom no speculative observer could have regarded for an
  • instant without setting down as the official dispenser of the contents
  • of the before-mentioned hamper, when the proper time for their
  • consumption should arrive.
  • Mr. Pickwick had bestowed a hasty glance on these interesting objects,
  • when he was again greeted by his faithful disciple.
  • ‘Pickwick--Pickwick,’ said Mr. Tupman; ‘come up here. Make haste.’
  • ‘Come along, Sir. Pray, come up,’ said the stout gentleman. ‘Joe!--damn
  • that boy, he’s gone to sleep again.--Joe, let down the steps.’ The fat
  • boy rolled slowly off the box, let down the steps, and held the carriage
  • door invitingly open. Mr. Snodgrass and Mr. Winkle came up at the
  • moment.
  • ‘Room for you all, gentlemen,’ said the stout man. ‘Two inside, and one
  • out. Joe, make room for one of these gentlemen on the box. Now, Sir,
  • come along;’ and the stout gentleman extended his arm, and pulled first
  • Mr. Pickwick, and then Mr. Snodgrass, into the barouche by main force.
  • Mr. Winkle mounted to the box, the fat boy waddled to the same perch,
  • and fell fast asleep instantly.
  • ‘Well, gentlemen,’ said the stout man, ‘very glad to see you. Know you
  • very well, gentlemen, though you mayn’t remember me. I spent some
  • ev’nin’s at your club last winter--picked up my friend Mr. Tupman here
  • this morning, and very glad I was to see him. Well, Sir, and how are
  • you? You do look uncommon well, to be sure.’
  • Mr. Pickwick acknowledged the compliment, and cordially shook hands with
  • the stout gentleman in the top-boots.
  • ‘Well, and how are you, sir?’ said the stout gentleman, addressing Mr.
  • Snodgrass with paternal anxiety. ‘Charming, eh? Well, that’s right--
  • that’s right. And how are you, sir (to Mr. Winkle)? Well, I am glad to
  • hear you say you are well; very glad I am, to be sure. My daughters,
  • gentlemen--my gals these are; and that’s my sister, Miss Rachael Wardle.
  • She’s a Miss, she is; and yet she ain’t a Miss--eh, Sir, eh?’ And the
  • stout gentleman playfully inserted his elbow between the ribs of Mr.
  • Pickwick, and laughed very heartily.
  • ‘Lor, brother!’ said Miss Wardle, with a deprecating smile.
  • ‘True, true,’ said the stout gentleman; ‘no one can deny it. Gentlemen,
  • I beg your pardon; this is my friend Mr. Trundle. And now you all know
  • each other, let’s be comfortable and happy, and see what’s going
  • forward; that’s what I say.’ So the stout gentleman put on his
  • spectacles, and Mr. Pickwick pulled out his glass, and everybody stood
  • up in the carriage, and looked over somebody else’s shoulder at the
  • evolutions of the military.
  • Astounding evolutions they were, one rank firing over the heads of
  • another rank, and then running away; and then the other rank firing over
  • the heads of another rank, and running away in their turn; and then
  • forming squares, with officers in the centre; and then descending the
  • trench on one side with scaling-ladders, and ascending it on the other
  • again by the same means; and knocking down barricades of baskets, and
  • behaving in the most gallant manner possible. Then there was such a
  • ramming down of the contents of enormous guns on the battery, with
  • instruments like magnified mops; such a preparation before they were let
  • off, and such an awful noise when they did go, that the air resounded
  • with the screams of ladies. The young Misses Wardle were so frightened,
  • that Mr. Trundle was actually obliged to hold one of them up in the
  • carriage, while Mr. Snodgrass supported the other; and Mr. Wardle’s
  • sister suffered under such a dreadful state of nervous alarm, that Mr.
  • Tupman found it indispensably necessary to put his arm round her waist,
  • to keep her up at all. Everybody was excited, except the fat boy, and he
  • slept as soundly as if the roaring of cannon were his ordinary lullaby.
  • ‘Joe, Joe!’ said the stout gentleman, when the citadel was taken, and
  • the besiegers and besieged sat down to dinner. ‘Damn that boy, he’s gone
  • to sleep again. Be good enough to pinch him, sir--in the leg, if you
  • please; nothing else wakes him--thank you. Undo the hamper, Joe.’
  • The fat boy, who had been effectually roused by the compression of a
  • portion of his leg between the finger and thumb of Mr. Winkle, rolled
  • off the box once again, and proceeded to unpack the hamper with more
  • expedition than could have been expected from his previous inactivity.
  • ‘Now we must sit close,’ said the stout gentleman. After a great many
  • jokes about squeezing the ladies’ sleeves, and a vast quantity of
  • blushing at sundry jocose proposals, that the ladies should sit in the
  • gentlemen’s laps, the whole party were stowed down in the barouche; and
  • the stout gentleman proceeded to hand the things from the fat boy (who
  • had mounted up behind for the purpose) into the carriage.
  • ‘Now, Joe, knives and forks.’ The knives and forks were handed in, and
  • the ladies and gentlemen inside, and Mr. Winkle on the box, were each
  • furnished with those useful instruments.
  • ‘Plates, Joe, plates.’ A similar process employed in the distribution of
  • the crockery.
  • ‘Now, Joe, the fowls. Damn that boy; he’s gone to sleep again. Joe!
  • Joe!’ (Sundry taps on the head with a stick, and the fat boy, with some
  • difficulty, roused from his lethargy.) ‘Come, hand in the eatables.’
  • There was something in the sound of the last word which roused the
  • unctuous boy. He jumped up, and the leaden eyes which twinkled behind
  • his mountainous cheeks leered horribly upon the food as he unpacked it
  • from the basket.
  • ‘Now make haste,’ said Mr. Wardle; for the fat boy was hanging fondly
  • over a capon, which he seemed wholly unable to part with. The boy sighed
  • deeply, and, bestowing an ardent gaze upon its plumpness, unwillingly
  • consigned it to his master.
  • ‘That’s right--look sharp. Now the tongue--now the pigeon pie. Take care
  • of that veal and ham--mind the lobsters--take the salad out of the
  • cloth--give me the dressing.’ Such were the hurried orders which issued
  • from the lips of Mr. Wardle, as he handed in the different articles
  • described, and placed dishes in everybody’s hands, and on everybody’s
  • knees, in endless number.
  • ‘Now ain’t this capital?’ inquired that jolly personage, when the work
  • of destruction had commenced.
  • ‘Capital!’ said Mr. Winkle, who was carving a fowl on the box.
  • ‘Glass of wine?’
  • ‘With the greatest pleasure.’
  • ‘You’d better have a bottle to yourself up there, hadn’t you?’
  • ‘You’re very good.’
  • ‘Joe!’
  • ‘Yes, Sir.’ (He wasn’t asleep this time, having just succeeded in
  • abstracting a veal patty.)
  • ‘Bottle of wine to the gentleman on the box. Glad to see you, Sir.’
  • ‘Thank’ee.’ Mr. Winkle emptied his glass, and placed the bottle on the
  • coach-box, by his side.
  • ‘Will you permit me to have the pleasure, Sir?’ said Mr. Trundle to Mr.
  • Winkle.
  • ‘With great pleasure,’ replied Mr. Winkle to Mr. Trundle, and then the
  • two gentlemen took wine, after which they took a glass of wine round,
  • ladies and all.
  • ‘How dear Emily is flirting with the strange gentleman,’ whispered the
  • spinster aunt, with true spinster-aunt-like envy, to her brother, Mr.
  • Wardle.
  • ‘Oh! I don’t know,’ said the jolly old gentleman; ‘all very natural, I
  • dare say--nothing unusual. Mr. Pickwick, some wine, Sir?’ Mr. Pickwick,
  • who had been deeply investigating the interior of the pigeon-pie,
  • readily assented.
  • ‘Emily, my dear,’ said the spinster aunt, with a patronising air, ‘don’t
  • talk so loud, love.’
  • ‘Lor, aunt!’
  • ‘Aunt and the little old gentleman want to have it all to themselves, I
  • think,’ whispered Miss Isabella Wardle to her sister Emily. The young
  • ladies laughed very heartily, and the old one tried to look amiable, but
  • couldn’t manage it.
  • ‘Young girls have such spirits,’ said Miss Wardle to Mr. Tupman, with an
  • air of gentle commiseration, as if animal spirits were contraband, and
  • their possession without a permit a high crime and misdemeanour.
  • ‘Oh, they have,’ replied Mr. Tupman, not exactly making the sort of
  • reply that was expected from him. ‘It’s quite delightful.’
  • ‘Hem!’ said Miss Wardle, rather dubiously.
  • ‘Will you permit me?’ said Mr. Tupman, in his blandest manner, touching
  • the enchanting Rachael’s wrist with one hand, and gently elevating the
  • bottle with the other. ‘Will you permit me?’
  • ‘Oh, sir!’ Mr. Tupman looked most impressive; and Rachael expressed her
  • fear that more guns were going off, in which case, of course, she should
  • have required support again.
  • ‘Do you think my dear nieces pretty?’ whispered their affectionate aunt
  • to Mr. Tupman.
  • ‘I should, if their aunt wasn’t here,’ replied the ready Pickwickian,
  • with a passionate glance.
  • ‘Oh, you naughty man--but really, if their complexions were a little
  • better, don’t you think they would be nice-looking girls--by
  • candlelight?’
  • ‘Yes; I think they would,’ said Mr. Tupman, with an air of indifference.
  • ‘Oh, you quiz--I know what you were going to say.’
  • ‘What?’ inquired Mr. Tupman, who had not precisely made up his mind to
  • say anything at all.
  • ‘You were going to say that Isabel stoops--I know you were--you men are
  • such observers. Well, so she does; it can’t be denied; and, certainly,
  • if there is one thing more than another that makes a girl look ugly it
  • is stooping. I often tell her that when she gets a little older she’ll
  • be quite frightful. Well, you are a quiz!’
  • Mr. Tupman had no objection to earning the reputation at so cheap a
  • rate: so he looked very knowing, and smiled mysteriously.
  • ‘What a sarcastic smile,’ said the admiring Rachael; ‘I declare I’m
  • quite afraid of you.’
  • ‘Afraid of me!’
  • ‘Oh, you can’t disguise anything from me--I know what that smile means
  • very well.’
  • ‘What?’ said Mr. Tupman, who had not the slightest notion himself.
  • ‘You mean,’ said the amiable aunt, sinking her voice still lower--‘you
  • mean, that you don’t think Isabella’s stooping is as bad as Emily’s
  • boldness. Well, she is bold! You cannot think how wretched it makes me
  • sometimes--I’m sure I cry about it for hours together--my dear brother
  • is _so_ good, and so unsuspicious, that he never sees it; if he did, I’m
  • quite certain it would break his heart. I wish I could think it was only
  • manner--I hope it may be--’ (Here the affectionate relative heaved a
  • deep sigh, and shook her head despondingly).
  • ‘I’m sure aunt’s talking about us,’ whispered Miss Emily Wardle to her
  • sister--‘I’m quite certain of it--she looks so malicious.’
  • ‘Is she?’ replied Isabella.--‘Hem! aunt, dear!’
  • ‘Yes, my dear love!’
  • ‘I’m _so_ afraid you’ll catch cold, aunt--have a silk handkerchief to
  • tie round your dear old head--you really should take care of yourself--
  • consider your age!’
  • However well deserved this piece of retaliation might have been, it was
  • as vindictive a one as could well have been resorted to. There is no
  • guessing in what form of reply the aunt’s indignation would have vented
  • itself, had not Mr. Wardle unconsciously changed the subject, by calling
  • emphatically for Joe.
  • ‘Damn that boy,’ said the old gentleman, ‘he’s gone to sleep again.’
  • ‘Very extraordinary boy, that,’ said Mr. Pickwick; ‘does he always sleep
  • in this way?’
  • ‘Sleep!’ said the old gentleman, ‘he’s always asleep. Goes on errands
  • fast asleep, and snores as he waits at table.’
  • ‘How very odd!’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Ah! odd indeed,’ returned the old gentleman; ‘I’m proud of that boy--
  • wouldn’t part with him on any account--he’s a natural curiosity! Here,
  • Joe--Joe--take these things away, and open another bottle--d’ye hear?’
  • The fat boy rose, opened his eyes, swallowed the huge piece of pie he
  • had been in the act of masticating when he last fell asleep, and slowly
  • obeyed his master’s orders--gloating languidly over the remains of the
  • feast, as he removed the plates, and deposited them in the hamper. The
  • fresh bottle was produced, and speedily emptied: the hamper was made
  • fast in its old place--the fat boy once more mounted the box--the
  • spectacles and pocket-glass were again adjusted--and the evolutions of
  • the military recommenced. There was a great fizzing and banging of guns,
  • and starting of ladies--and then a mine was sprung, to the gratification
  • of everybody--and when the mine had gone off, the military and the
  • company followed its example, and went off too.
  • ‘Now, mind,’ said the old gentleman, as he shook hands with Mr. Pickwick
  • at the conclusion of a conversation which had been carried on at
  • intervals, during the conclusion of the proceedings, ‘we shall see you
  • all to-morrow.’
  • ‘Most certainly,’ replied Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘You have got the address?’
  • ‘Manor Farm, Dingley Dell,’ said Mr. Pickwick, consulting his pocket-
  • book.
  • ‘That’s it,’ said the old gentleman. ‘I don’t let you off, mind, under a
  • week; and undertake that you shall see everything worth seeing. If
  • you’ve come down for a country life, come to me, and I’ll give you
  • plenty of it. Joe--damn that boy, he’s gone to sleep again--Joe, help
  • Tom put in the horses.’
  • The horses were put in--the driver mounted--the fat boy clambered up by
  • his side--farewells were exchanged--and the carriage rattled off. As the
  • Pickwickians turned round to take a last glimpse of it, the setting sun
  • cast a rich glow on the faces of their entertainers, and fell upon the
  • form of the fat boy. His head was sunk upon his bosom; and he slumbered
  • again.
  • CHAPTER V. A SHORT ONE--SHOWING, AMONG OTHER MATTERS, HOW Mr. PICKWICK
  • UNDERTOOK TO DRIVE, AND MR. WINKLE TO RIDE, AND HOW THEY BOTH DID IT
  • Bright and pleasant was the sky, balmy the air, and beautiful the
  • appearance of every object around, as Mr. Pickwick leaned over the
  • balustrades of Rochester Bridge, contemplating nature, and waiting for
  • breakfast. The scene was indeed one which might well have charmed a far
  • less reflective mind, than that to which it was presented.
  • On the left of the spectator lay the ruined wall, broken in many places,
  • and in some, overhanging the narrow beach below in rude and heavy
  • masses. Huge knots of seaweed hung upon the jagged and pointed stones,
  • trembling in every breath of wind; and the green ivy clung mournfully
  • round the dark and ruined battlements. Behind it rose the ancient
  • castle, its towers roofless, and its massive walls crumbling away, but
  • telling us proudly of its old might and strength, as when, seven hundred
  • years ago, it rang with the clash of arms, or resounded with the noise
  • of feasting and revelry. On either side, the banks of the Medway,
  • covered with cornfields and pastures, with here and there a windmill, or
  • a distant church, stretched away as far as the eye could see, presenting
  • a rich and varied landscape, rendered more beautiful by the changing
  • shadows which passed swiftly across it as the thin and half-formed
  • clouds skimmed away in the light of the morning sun. The river,
  • reflecting the clear blue of the sky, glistened and sparkled as it
  • flowed noiselessly on; and the oars of the fishermen dipped into the
  • water with a clear and liquid sound, as their heavy but picturesque
  • boats glided slowly down the stream.
  • Mr. Pickwick was roused from the agreeable reverie into which he had
  • been led by the objects before him, by a deep sigh, and a touch on his
  • shoulder. He turned round: and the dismal man was at his side.
  • ‘Contemplating the scene?’ inquired the dismal man.
  • ‘I was,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘And congratulating yourself on being up so soon?’
  • Mr. Pickwick nodded assent.
  • ‘Ah! people need to rise early, to see the sun in all his splendour, for
  • his brightness seldom lasts the day through. The morning of day and the
  • morning of life are but too much alike.’
  • ‘You speak truly, sir,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘How common the saying,’ continued the dismal man, ‘“The morning’s too
  • fine to last.” How well might it be applied to our everyday existence.
  • God! what would I forfeit to have the days of my childhood restored, or
  • to be able to forget them for ever!’
  • ‘You have seen much trouble, sir,’ said Mr. Pickwick compassionately.
  • ‘I have,’ said the dismal man hurriedly; ‘I have. More than those who
  • see me now would believe possible.’ He paused for an instant, and then
  • said abruptly--
  • ‘Did it ever strike you, on such a morning as this, that drowning would
  • be happiness and peace?’
  • ‘God bless me, no!’ replied Mr. Pickwick, edging a little from the
  • balustrade, as the possibility of the dismal man’s tipping him over, by
  • way of experiment, occurred to him rather forcibly.
  • ‘I have thought so, often,’ said the dismal man, without noticing the
  • action. ‘The calm, cool water seems to me to murmur an invitation to
  • repose and rest. A bound, a splash, a brief struggle; there is an eddy
  • for an instant, it gradually subsides into a gentle ripple; the waters
  • have closed above your head, and the world has closed upon your miseries
  • and misfortunes for ever.’ The sunken eye of the dismal man flashed
  • brightly as he spoke, but the momentary excitement quickly subsided; and
  • he turned calmly away, as he said--
  • ‘There--enough of that. I wish to see you on another subject. You
  • invited me to read that paper, the night before last, and listened
  • attentively while I did so.’
  • ‘I did,’ replied Mr. Pickwick; ‘and I certainly thought--’
  • ‘I asked for no opinion,’ said the dismal man, interrupting him, ‘and I
  • want none. You are travelling for amusement and instruction. Suppose I
  • forward you a curious manuscript--observe, not curious because wild or
  • improbable, but curious as a leaf from the romance of real life--would
  • you communicate it to the club, of which you have spoken so frequently?’
  • ‘Certainly,’ replied Mr. Pickwick, ‘if you wished it; and it would be
  • entered on their transactions.’
  • ‘You shall have it,’ replied the dismal man. ‘Your address;’ and, Mr.
  • Pickwick having communicated their probable route, the dismal man
  • carefully noted it down in a greasy pocket-book, and, resisting Mr.
  • Pickwick’s pressing invitation to breakfast, left that gentleman at his
  • inn, and walked slowly away.
  • Mr. Pickwick found that his three companions had risen, and were waiting
  • his arrival to commence breakfast, which was ready laid in tempting
  • display. They sat down to the meal; and broiled ham, eggs, tea, coffee
  • and sundries, began to disappear with a rapidity which at once bore
  • testimony to the excellence of the fare, and the appetites of its
  • consumers.
  • ‘Now, about Manor Farm,’ said Mr. Pickwick. ‘How shall we go?’
  • ‘We had better consult the waiter, perhaps,’ said Mr. Tupman; and the
  • waiter was summoned accordingly.
  • ‘Dingley Dell, gentlemen--fifteen miles, gentlemen--cross road--post-
  • chaise, sir?’
  • ‘Post-chaise won’t hold more than two,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘True, sir--beg your pardon, sir.--Very nice four-wheel chaise, sir--
  • seat for two behind--one in front for the gentleman that drives--oh! beg
  • your pardon, sir--that’ll only hold three.’
  • ‘What’s to be done?’ said Mr. Snodgrass.
  • ‘Perhaps one of the gentlemen would like to ride, sir?’ suggested the
  • waiter, looking towards Mr. Winkle; ‘very good saddle-horses, sir--any
  • of Mr. Wardle’s men coming to Rochester, bring ‘em back, Sir.’
  • ‘The very thing,’ said Mr. Pickwick. ‘Winkle, will you go on horseback?’
  • Now Mr. Winkle did entertain considerable misgivings in the very lowest
  • recesses of his own heart, relative to his equestrian skill; but, as he
  • would not have them even suspected, on any account, he at once replied
  • with great hardihood, ‘Certainly. I should enjoy it of all things.’
  • Mr. Winkle had rushed upon his fate; there was no resource.
  • ‘Let them be at the door by eleven,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Very well, sir,’ replied the waiter.
  • The waiter retired; the breakfast concluded; and the travellers ascended
  • to their respective bedrooms, to prepare a change of clothing, to take
  • with them on their approaching expedition.
  • Mr. Pickwick had made his preliminary arrangements, and was looking over
  • the coffee-room blinds at the passengers in the street, when the waiter
  • entered, and announced that the chaise was ready--an announcement which
  • the vehicle itself confirmed, by forthwith appearing before the coffee-
  • room blinds aforesaid.
  • It was a curious little green box on four wheels, with a low place like
  • a wine-bin for two behind, and an elevated perch for one in front, drawn
  • by an immense brown horse, displaying great symmetry of bone. An hostler
  • stood near, holding by the bridle another immense horse--apparently a
  • near relative of the animal in the chaise--ready saddled for Mr. Winkle.
  • ‘Bless my soul!’ said Mr. Pickwick, as they stood upon the pavement
  • while the coats were being put in. ‘Bless my soul! who’s to drive? I
  • never thought of that.’
  • ‘Oh! you, of course,’ said Mr. Tupman.
  • ‘Of course,’ said Mr. Snodgrass.
  • ‘I!’ exclaimed Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Not the slightest fear, Sir,’ interposed the hostler. ‘Warrant him
  • quiet, Sir; a hinfant in arms might drive him.’
  • ‘He don’t shy, does he?’ inquired Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Shy, sir?-he wouldn’t shy if he was to meet a vagin-load of monkeys
  • with their tails burned off.’
  • The last recommendation was indisputable. Mr. Tupman and Mr. Snodgrass
  • got into the bin; Mr. Pickwick ascended to his perch, and deposited his
  • feet on a floor-clothed shelf, erected beneath it for that purpose.
  • ‘Now, shiny Villiam,’ said the hostler to the deputy hostler, ‘give the
  • gen’lm’n the ribbons.’
  • Shiny Villiam’--so called, probably, from his sleek hair and oily
  • countenance--placed the reins in Mr. Pickwick’s left hand; and the upper
  • hostler thrust a whip into his right.
  • ‘Wo-o!’ cried Mr. Pickwick, as the tall quadruped evinced a decided
  • inclination to back into the coffee-room window.
  • ‘Wo-o!’ echoed Mr. Tupman and Mr. Snodgrass, from the bin.
  • ‘Only his playfulness, gen’lm’n,’ said the head hostler encouragingly;
  • ‘jist kitch hold on him, Villiam.’ The deputy restrained the animal’s
  • impetuosity, and the principal ran to assist Mr. Winkle in mounting.
  • ‘T’other side, sir, if you please.’
  • ‘Blowed if the gen’lm’n worn’t a-gettin’ up on the wrong side,’
  • whispered a grinning post-boy to the inexpressibly gratified waiter.
  • Mr. Winkle, thus instructed, climbed into his saddle, with about as much
  • difficulty as he would have experienced in getting up the side of a
  • first-rate man-of-war.
  • ‘All right?’ inquired Mr. Pickwick, with an inward presentiment that it
  • was all wrong.
  • ‘All right,’ replied Mr. Winkle faintly.
  • ‘Let ‘em go,’ cried the hostler.--‘Hold him in, sir;’ and away went the
  • chaise, and the saddle-horse, with Mr. Pickwick on the box of the one,
  • and Mr. Winkle on the back of the other, to the delight and
  • gratification of the whole inn-yard.
  • ‘What makes him go sideways?’ said Mr. Snodgrass in the bin, to Mr.
  • Winkle in the saddle.
  • ‘I can’t imagine,’ replied Mr. Winkle. His horse was drifting up the
  • street in the most mysterious manner--side first, with his head towards
  • one side of the way, and his tail towards the other.
  • Mr. Pickwick had no leisure to observe either this or any other
  • particular, the whole of his faculties being concentrated in the
  • management of the animal attached to the chaise, who displayed various
  • peculiarities, highly interesting to a bystander, but by no means
  • equally amusing to any one seated behind him. Besides constantly jerking
  • his head up, in a very unpleasant and uncomfortable manner, and tugging
  • at the reins to an extent which rendered it a matter of great difficulty
  • for Mr. Pickwick to hold them, he had a singular propensity for darting
  • suddenly every now and then to the side of the road, then stopping
  • short, and then rushing forward for some minutes, at a speed which it
  • was wholly impossible to control.
  • ‘What _can_ he mean by this?’ said Mr. Snodgrass, when the horse had
  • executed this manoeuvre for the twentieth time.
  • ‘I don’t know,’ replied Mr. Tupman; ‘it looks very like shying, don’t
  • it?’ Mr. Snodgrass was about to reply, when he was interrupted by a
  • shout from Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Woo!’ said that gentleman; ‘I have dropped my whip.’
  • ‘Winkle,’ said Mr. Snodgrass, as the equestrian came trotting up on the
  • tall horse, with his hat over his ears, and shaking all over, as if he
  • would shake to pieces, with the violence of the exercise, ‘pick up the
  • whip, there’s a good fellow.’ Mr. Winkle pulled at the bridle of the
  • tall horse till he was black in the face; and having at length succeeded
  • in stopping him, dismounted, handed the whip to Mr. Pickwick, and
  • grasping the reins, prepared to remount.
  • Now whether the tall horse, in the natural playfulness of his
  • disposition, was desirous of having a little innocent recreation with
  • Mr. Winkle, or whether it occurred to him that he could perform the
  • journey as much to his own satisfaction without a rider as with one, are
  • points upon which, of course, we can arrive at no definite and distinct
  • conclusion. By whatever motives the animal was actuated, certain it is
  • that Mr. Winkle had no sooner touched the reins, than he slipped them
  • over his head, and darted backwards to their full length.
  • ‘Poor fellow,’ said Mr. Winkle soothingly--‘poor fellow--good old
  • horse.’ The ‘poor fellow’ was proof against flattery; the more Mr.
  • Winkle tried to get nearer him, the more he sidled away; and,
  • notwithstanding all kinds of coaxing and wheedling, there were Mr.
  • Winkle and the horse going round and round each other for ten minutes,
  • at the end of which time each was at precisely the same distance from
  • the other as when they first commenced--an unsatisfactory sort of thing
  • under any circumstances, but particularly so in a lonely road, where no
  • assistance can be procured.
  • ‘What am I to do?’ shouted Mr. Winkle, after the dodging had been
  • prolonged for a considerable time. ‘What am I to do? I can’t get on
  • him.’
  • ‘You had better lead him till we come to a turnpike,’ replied Mr.
  • Pickwick from the chaise.
  • ‘But he won’t come!’ roared Mr. Winkle. ‘Do come and hold him.’
  • Mr. Pickwick was the very personation of kindness and humanity: he threw
  • the reins on the horse’s back, and having descended from his seat,
  • carefully drew the chaise into the hedge, lest anything should come
  • along the road, and stepped back to the assistance of his distressed
  • companion, leaving Mr. Tupman and Mr. Snodgrass in the vehicle.
  • The horse no sooner beheld Mr. Pickwick advancing towards him with the
  • chaise whip in his hand, than he exchanged the rotary motion in which he
  • had previously indulged, for a retrograde movement of so very determined
  • a character, that it at once drew Mr. Winkle, who was still at the end
  • of the bridle, at a rather quicker rate than fast walking, in the
  • direction from which they had just come. Mr. Pickwick ran to his
  • assistance, but the faster Mr. Pickwick ran forward, the faster the
  • horse ran backward. There was a great scraping of feet, and kicking up
  • of the dust; and at last Mr. Winkle, his arms being nearly pulled out of
  • their sockets, fairly let go his hold. The horse paused, stared, shook
  • his head, turned round, and quietly trotted home to Rochester, leaving
  • Mr. Winkle and Mr. Pickwick gazing on each other with countenances of
  • blank dismay. A rattling noise at a little distance attracted their
  • attention. They looked up.
  • ‘Bless my soul!’ exclaimed the agonised Mr. Pickwick; ‘there’s the other
  • horse running away!’
  • It was but too true. The animal was startled by the noise, and the reins
  • were on his back. The results may be guessed. He tore off with the four-
  • wheeled chaise behind him, and Mr. Tupman and Mr. Snodgrass in the four-
  • wheeled chaise. The heat was a short one. Mr. Tupman threw himself into
  • the hedge, Mr. Snodgrass followed his example, the horse dashed the
  • four--wheeled chaise against a wooden bridge, separated the wheels from
  • the body, and the bin from the perch; and finally stood stock still to
  • gaze upon the ruin he had made.
  • The first care of the two unspilt friends was to extricate their
  • unfortunate companions from their bed of quickset--a process which gave
  • them the unspeakable satisfaction of discovering that they had sustained
  • no injury, beyond sundry rents in their garments, and various
  • lacerations from the brambles. The next thing to be done was to
  • unharness the horse. This complicated process having been effected, the
  • party walked slowly forward, leading the horse among them, and
  • abandoning the chaise to its fate.
  • An hour’s walk brought the travellers to a little road-side public-
  • house, with two elm-trees, a horse trough, and a signpost, in front; one
  • or two deformed hay-ricks behind, a kitchen garden at the side, and
  • rotten sheds and mouldering outhouses jumbled in strange confusion all
  • about it. A red-headed man was working in the garden; and to him Mr.
  • Pickwick called lustily, ‘Hollo there!’
  • The red-headed man raised his body, shaded his eyes with his hand, and
  • stared, long and coolly, at Mr. Pickwick and his companions.
  • ‘Hollo there!’ repeated Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Hollo!’ was the red-headed man’s reply.
  • ‘How far is it to Dingley Dell?’
  • ‘Better er seven mile.’
  • ‘Is it a good road?’
  • ‘No, ‘tain’t.’ Having uttered this brief reply, and apparently satisfied
  • himself with another scrutiny, the red-headed man resumed his work. ‘We
  • want to put this horse up here,’ said Mr. Pickwick; ‘I suppose we can,
  • can’t we?’
  • Want to put that ere horse up, do ee?’ repeated the red-headed man,
  • leaning on his spade.
  • ‘Of course,’ replied Mr. Pickwick, who had by this time advanced, horse
  • in hand, to the garden rails.
  • ‘Missus’--roared the man with the red head, emerging from the garden,
  • and looking very hard at the horse--‘missus!’
  • A tall, bony woman--straight all the way down--in a coarse, blue
  • pelisse, with the waist an inch or two below her arm-pits, responded to
  • the call.
  • ‘Can we put this horse up here, my good woman?’ said Mr. Tupman,
  • advancing, and speaking in his most seductive tones. The woman looked
  • very hard at the whole party; and the red-headed man whispered something
  • in her ear.
  • ‘No,’ replied the woman, after a little consideration, ‘I’m afeerd on
  • it.’
  • ‘Afraid!’ exclaimed Mr. Pickwick, ‘what’s the woman afraid of?’
  • ‘It got us in trouble last time,’ said the woman, turning into the
  • house; ‘I woan’t have nothin’ to say to ‘un.’
  • ‘Most extraordinary thing I have ever met with in my life,’ said the
  • astonished Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘I--I--really believe,’ whispered Mr. Winkle, as his friends gathered
  • round him, ‘that they think we have come by this horse in some dishonest
  • manner.’
  • ‘What!’ exclaimed Mr. Pickwick, in a storm of indignation. Mr. Winkle
  • modestly repeated his suggestion.
  • ‘Hollo, you fellow,’ said the angry Mr. Pickwick, ‘do you think we stole
  • the horse?’
  • ‘I’m sure ye did,’ replied the red-headed man, with a grin which
  • agitated his countenance from one auricular organ to the other. Saying
  • which he turned into the house and banged the door after him.
  • ‘It’s like a dream,’ ejaculated Mr. Pickwick, ‘a hideous dream. The idea
  • of a man’s walking about all day with a dreadful horse that he can’t get
  • rid of!’ The depressed Pickwickians turned moodily away, with the tall
  • quadruped, for which they all felt the most unmitigated disgust,
  • following slowly at their heels.
  • It was late in the afternoon when the four friends and their four-footed
  • companion turned into the lane leading to Manor Farm; and even when they
  • were so near their place of destination, the pleasure they would
  • otherwise have experienced was materially damped as they reflected on
  • the singularity of their appearance, and the absurdity of their
  • situation. Torn clothes, lacerated faces, dusty shoes, exhausted looks,
  • and, above all, the horse. Oh, how Mr. Pickwick cursed that horse: he
  • had eyed the noble animal from time to time with looks expressive of
  • hatred and revenge; more than once he had calculated the probable amount
  • of the expense he would incur by cutting his throat; and now the
  • temptation to destroy him, or to cast him loose upon the world, rushed
  • upon his mind with tenfold force. He was roused from a meditation on
  • these dire imaginings by the sudden appearance of two figures at a turn
  • of the lane. It was Mr. Wardle, and his faithful attendant, the fat boy.
  • ‘Why, where have you been?’ said the hospitable old gentleman; ‘I’ve
  • been waiting for you all day. Well, you _do_ look tired. What!
  • Scratches! Not hurt, I hope--eh? Well, I _am_ glad to hear that--very.
  • So you’ve been spilt, eh? Never mind. Common accident in these parts.
  • Joe--he’s asleep again!--Joe, take that horse from the gentlemen, and
  • lead it into the stable.’
  • The fat boy sauntered heavily behind them with the animal; and the old
  • gentleman, condoling with his guests in homely phrase on so much of the
  • day’s adventures as they thought proper to communicate, led the way to
  • the kitchen.
  • ‘We’ll have you put to rights here,’ said the old gentleman, ‘and then
  • I’ll introduce you to the people in the parlour. Emma, bring out the
  • cherry brandy; now, Jane, a needle and thread here; towels and water,
  • Mary. Come, girls, bustle about.’
  • Three or four buxom girls speedily dispersed in search of the different
  • articles in requisition, while a couple of large-headed, circular-
  • visaged males rose from their seats in the chimney-corner (for although
  • it was a May evening their attachment to the wood fire appeared as
  • cordial as if it were Christmas), and dived into some obscure recesses,
  • from which they speedily produced a bottle of blacking, and some half-
  • dozen brushes.
  • ‘Bustle!’ said the old gentleman again, but the admonition was quite
  • unnecessary, for one of the girls poured out the cherry brandy, and
  • another brought in the towels, and one of the men suddenly seizing Mr.
  • Pickwick by the leg, at imminent hazard of throwing him off his balance,
  • brushed away at his boot till his corns were red-hot; while the other
  • shampooed Mr. Winkle with a heavy clothes-brush, indulging, during the
  • operation, in that hissing sound which hostlers are wont to produce when
  • engaged in rubbing down a horse.
  • Mr. Snodgrass, having concluded his ablutions, took a survey of the
  • room, while standing with his back to the fire, sipping his cherry
  • brandy with heartfelt satisfaction. He describes it as a large
  • apartment, with a red brick floor and a capacious chimney; the ceiling
  • garnished with hams, sides of bacon, and ropes of onions. The walls were
  • decorated with several hunting-whips, two or three bridles, a saddle,
  • and an old rusty blunderbuss, with an inscription below it, intimating
  • that it was ‘Loaded’--as it had been, on the same authority, for half a
  • century at least. An old eight-day clock, of solemn and sedate
  • demeanour, ticked gravely in one corner; and a silver watch, of equal
  • antiquity, dangled from one of the many hooks which ornamented the
  • dresser.
  • ‘Ready?’ said the old gentleman inquiringly, when his guests had been
  • washed, mended, brushed, and brandied.
  • ‘Quite,’ replied Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Come along, then;’ and the party having traversed several dark
  • passages, and being joined by Mr. Tupman, who had lingered behind to
  • snatch a kiss from Emma, for which he had been duly rewarded with sundry
  • pushings and scratchings, arrived at the parlour door.
  • ‘Welcome,’ said their hospitable host, throwing it open and stepping
  • forward to announce them, ‘welcome, gentlemen, to Manor Farm.’
  • CHAPTER VI. AN OLD-FASHIONED CARD-PARTY--THE CLERGYMAN’S VERSES--THE
  • STORY OF THE CONVICT’S RETURN
  • Several guests who were assembled in the old parlour rose to greet Mr.
  • Pickwick and his friends upon their entrance; and during the performance
  • of the ceremony of introduction, with all due formalities, Mr. Pickwick
  • had leisure to observe the appearance, and speculate upon the characters
  • and pursuits, of the persons by whom he was surrounded--a habit in which
  • he, in common with many other great men, delighted to indulge.
  • A very old lady, in a lofty cap and faded silk gown--no less a personage
  • than Mr. Wardle’s mother--occupied the post of honour on the right-hand
  • corner of the chimney-piece; and various certificates of her having been
  • brought up in the way she should go when young, and of her not having
  • departed from it when old, ornamented the walls, in the form of samplers
  • of ancient date, worsted landscapes of equal antiquity, and crimson silk
  • tea-kettle holders of a more modern period. The aunt, the two young
  • ladies, and Mr. Wardle, each vying with the other in paying zealous and
  • unremitting attentions to the old lady, crowded round her easy-chair,
  • one holding her ear-trumpet, another an orange, and a third a smelling-
  • bottle, while a fourth was busily engaged in patting and punching the
  • pillows which were arranged for her support. On the opposite side sat a
  • bald-headed old gentleman, with a good-humoured, benevolent face--the
  • clergyman of Dingley Dell; and next him sat his wife, a stout, blooming
  • old lady, who looked as if she were well skilled, not only in the art
  • and mystery of manufacturing home-made cordials greatly to other
  • people’s satisfaction, but of tasting them occasionally very much to her
  • own. A little hard-headed, Ripstone pippin-faced man, was conversing
  • with a fat old gentleman in one corner; and two or three more old
  • gentlemen, and two or three more old ladies, sat bolt upright and
  • motionless on their chairs, staring very hard at Mr. Pickwick and his
  • fellow-voyagers.
  • ‘Mr. Pickwick, mother,’ said Mr. Wardle, at the very top of his voice.
  • ‘Ah!’ said the old lady, shaking her head; ‘I can’t hear you.’
  • ‘Mr. Pickwick, grandma!’ screamed both the young ladies together.
  • ‘Ah!’ exclaimed the old lady. ‘Well, it don’t much matter. He don’t care
  • for an old ‘ooman like me, I dare say.’
  • ‘I assure you, ma’am,’ said Mr. Pickwick, grasping the old lady’s hand,
  • and speaking so loud that the exertion imparted a crimson hue to his
  • benevolent countenance--‘I assure you, ma’am, that nothing delights me
  • more than to see a lady of your time of life heading so fine a family,
  • and looking so young and well.’
  • ‘Ah!’ said the old lady, after a short pause: ‘it’s all very fine, I
  • dare say; but I can’t hear him.’
  • ‘Grandma’s rather put out now,’ said Miss Isabella Wardle, in a low
  • tone; ‘but she’ll talk to you presently.’
  • Mr. Pickwick nodded his readiness to humour the infirmities of age, and
  • entered into a general conversation with the other members of the
  • circle.
  • ‘Delightful situation this,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Delightful!’ echoed Messrs. Snodgrass, Tupman, and Winkle.
  • ‘Well, I think it is,’ said Mr. Wardle.
  • ‘There ain’t a better spot o’ ground in all Kent, sir,’ said the hard-
  • headed man with the pippin--face; ‘there ain’t indeed, sir--I’m sure
  • there ain’t, Sir.’ The hard-headed man looked triumphantly round, as if
  • he had been very much contradicted by somebody, but had got the better
  • of him at last.
  • ‘There ain’t a better spot o’ ground in all Kent,’ said the hard-headed
  • man again, after a pause.
  • ‘’Cept Mullins’s Meadows,’ observed the fat man solemnly.
  • ‘Mullins’s Meadows!’ ejaculated the other, with profound contempt.
  • ‘Ah, Mullins’s Meadows,’ repeated the fat man.
  • ‘Reg’lar good land that,’ interposed another fat man.
  • ‘And so it is, sure-ly,’ said a third fat man.
  • ‘Everybody knows that,’ said the corpulent host.
  • The hard-headed man looked dubiously round, but finding himself in a
  • minority, assumed a compassionate air and said no more.
  • ‘What are they talking about?’ inquired the old lady of one of her
  • granddaughters, in a very audible voice; for, like many deaf people, she
  • never seemed to calculate on the possibility of other persons hearing
  • what she said herself.
  • ‘About the land, grandma.’
  • ‘What about the land?--Nothing the matter, is there?’
  • ‘No, no. Mr. Miller was saying our land was better than Mullins’s
  • Meadows.’
  • ‘How should he know anything about it?’ inquired the old lady
  • indignantly. ‘Miller’s a conceited coxcomb, and you may tell him I said
  • so.’ Saying which, the old lady, quite unconscious that she had spoken
  • above a whisper, drew herself up, and looked carving-knives at the hard-
  • headed delinquent.
  • ‘Come, come,’ said the bustling host, with a natural anxiety to change
  • the conversation, ‘what say you to a rubber, Mr. Pickwick?’
  • ‘I should like it of all things,’ replied that gentleman; ‘but pray
  • don’t make up one on my account.’
  • ‘Oh, I assure you, mother’s very fond of a rubber,’ said Mr. Wardle;
  • ‘ain’t you, mother?’
  • The old lady, who was much less deaf on this subject than on any other,
  • replied in the affirmative.
  • ‘Joe, Joe!’ said the gentleman; ‘Joe--damn that--oh, here he is; put out
  • the card-tables.’
  • The lethargic youth contrived without any additional rousing to set out
  • two card-tables; the one for Pope Joan, and the other for whist. The
  • whist-players were Mr. Pickwick and the old lady, Mr. Miller and the fat
  • gentleman. The round game comprised the rest of the company.
  • The rubber was conducted with all that gravity of deportment and
  • sedateness of demeanour which befit the pursuit entitled ‘whist’--a
  • solemn observance, to which, as it appears to us, the title of ‘game’
  • has been very irreverently and ignominiously applied. The round-game
  • table, on the other hand, was so boisterously merry as materially to
  • interrupt the contemplations of Mr. Miller, who, not being quite so much
  • absorbed as he ought to have been, contrived to commit various high
  • crimes and misdemeanours, which excited the wrath of the fat gentleman
  • to a very great extent, and called forth the good-humour of the old lady
  • in a proportionate degree.
  • ‘There!’ said the criminal Miller triumphantly, as he took up the odd
  • trick at the conclusion of a hand; ‘that could not have been played
  • better, I flatter myself; impossible to have made another trick!’
  • ‘Miller ought to have trumped the diamond, oughtn’t he, Sir?’ said the
  • old lady.
  • Mr. Pickwick nodded assent.
  • ‘Ought I, though?’ said the unfortunate, with a doubtful appeal to his
  • partner.
  • ‘You ought, Sir,’ said the fat gentleman, in an awful voice.
  • ‘Very sorry,’ said the crestfallen Miller.
  • ‘Much use that,’ growled the fat gentleman.
  • ‘Two by honours--makes us eight,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Another hand. ‘Can you one?’ inquired the old lady.
  • ‘I can,’ replied Mr. Pickwick. ‘Double, single, and the rub.’
  • ‘Never was such luck,’ said Mr. Miller.
  • ‘Never was such cards,’ said the fat gentleman.
  • A solemn silence; Mr. Pickwick humorous, the old lady serious, the fat
  • gentleman captious, and Mr. Miller timorous.
  • ‘Another double,’ said the old lady, triumphantly making a memorandum of
  • the circumstance, by placing one sixpence and a battered halfpenny under
  • the candlestick.
  • ‘A double, sir,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Quite aware of the fact, Sir,’ replied the fat gentleman sharply.
  • Another game, with a similar result, was followed by a revoke from the
  • unlucky Miller; on which the fat gentleman burst into a state of high
  • personal excitement which lasted until the conclusion of the game, when
  • he retired into a corner, and remained perfectly mute for one hour and
  • twenty-seven minutes; at the end of which time he emerged from his
  • retirement, and offered Mr. Pickwick a pinch of snuff with the air of a
  • man who had made up his mind to a Christian forgiveness of injuries
  • sustained. The old lady’s hearing decidedly improved and the unlucky
  • Miller felt as much out of his element as a dolphin in a sentry-box.
  • Meanwhile the round game proceeded right merrily. Isabella Wardle and
  • Mr. Trundle ‘went partners,’ and Emily Wardle and Mr. Snodgrass did the
  • same; and even Mr. Tupman and the spinster aunt established a joint-
  • stock company of fish and flattery. Old Mr. Wardle was in the very
  • height of his jollity; and he was so funny in his management of the
  • board, and the old ladies were so sharp after their winnings, that the
  • whole table was in a perpetual roar of merriment and laughter. There was
  • one old lady who always had about half a dozen cards to pay for, at
  • which everybody laughed, regularly every round; and when the old lady
  • looked cross at having to pay, they laughed louder than ever; on which
  • the old lady’s face gradually brightened up, till at last she laughed
  • louder than any of them, Then, when the spinster aunt got ‘matrimony,’
  • the young ladies laughed afresh, and the Spinster aunt seemed disposed
  • to be pettish; till, feeling Mr. Tupman squeezing her hand under the
  • table, she brightened up too, and looked rather knowing, as if matrimony
  • in reality were not quite so far off as some people thought for;
  • whereupon everybody laughed again, and especially old Mr. Wardle, who
  • enjoyed a joke as much as the youngest. As to Mr. Snodgrass, he did
  • nothing but whisper poetical sentiments into his partner’s ear, which
  • made one old gentleman facetiously sly, about partnerships at cards and
  • partnerships for life, and caused the aforesaid old gentleman to make
  • some remarks thereupon, accompanied with divers winks and chuckles,
  • which made the company very merry and the old gentleman’s wife
  • especially so. And Mr. Winkle came out with jokes which are very well
  • known in town, but are not all known in the country; and as everybody
  • laughed at them very heartily, and said they were very capital, Mr.
  • Winkle was in a state of great honour and glory. And the benevolent
  • clergyman looked pleasantly on; for the happy faces which surrounded the
  • table made the good old man feel happy too; and though the merriment was
  • rather boisterous, still it came from the heart and not from the lips;
  • and this is the right sort of merriment, after all.
  • The evening glided swiftly away, in these cheerful recreations; and when
  • the substantial though homely supper had been despatched, and the little
  • party formed a social circle round the fire, Mr. Pickwick thought he had
  • never felt so happy in his life, and at no time so much disposed to
  • enjoy, and make the most of, the passing moment.
  • ‘Now this,’ said the hospitable host, who was sitting in great state
  • next the old lady’s arm-chair, with her hand fast clasped in his--‘this
  • is just what I like--the happiest moments of my life have been passed at
  • this old fireside; and I am so attached to it, that I keep up a blazing
  • fire here every evening, until it actually grows too hot to bear it.
  • Why, my poor old mother, here, used to sit before this fireplace upon
  • that little stool when she was a girl; didn’t you, mother?’
  • The tear which starts unbidden to the eye when the recollection of old
  • times and the happiness of many years ago is suddenly recalled, stole
  • down the old lady’s face as she shook her head with a melancholy smile.
  • ‘You must excuse my talking about this old place, Mr. Pickwick,’ resumed
  • the host, after a short pause, ‘for I love it dearly, and know no other-
  • -the old houses and fields seem like living friends to me; and so does
  • our little church with the ivy, about which, by the bye, our excellent
  • friend there made a song when he first came amongst us. Mr. Snodgrass,
  • have you anything in your glass?’
  • ‘Plenty, thank you,’ replied that gentleman, whose poetic curiosity had
  • been greatly excited by the last observation of his entertainer. ‘I beg
  • your pardon, but you were talking about the song of the Ivy.’
  • ‘You must ask our friend opposite about that,’ said the host knowingly,
  • indicating the clergyman by a nod of his head.
  • ‘May I say that I should like to hear you repeat it, sir?’ said Mr.
  • Snodgrass.
  • ‘Why, really,’ replied the clergyman, ‘it’s a very slight affair; and
  • the only excuse I have for having ever perpetrated it is, that I was a
  • young man at the time. Such as it is, however, you shall hear it, if you
  • wish.’
  • A murmur of curiosity was of course the reply; and the old gentleman
  • proceeded to recite, with the aid of sundry promptings from his wife,
  • the lines in question. ‘I call them,’ said he,
  • THE IVY GREEN
  • Oh, a dainty plant is the Ivy green, That creepeth o’er ruins old! Of
  • right choice food are his meals, I ween, In his cell so lone and cold.
  • The wall must be crumbled, the stone decayed, To pleasure his dainty
  • whim; And the mouldering dust that years have made, Is a merry meal for
  • him. Creeping where no life is seen, A rare old plant is the Ivy green.
  • Fast he stealeth on, though he wears no wings, And a staunch old heart
  • has he. How closely he twineth, how tight he clings To his friend the
  • huge Oak Tree! And slily he traileth along the ground, And his leaves he
  • gently waves, As he joyously hugs and crawleth round The rich mould of
  • dead men’s graves. Creeping where grim death has been, A rare old plant
  • is the Ivy green.
  • Whole ages have fled and their works decayed, And nations have scattered
  • been; But the stout old Ivy shall never fade, From its hale and hearty
  • green. The brave old plant in its lonely days, Shall fatten upon the
  • past; For the stateliest building man can raise, Is the Ivy’s food at
  • last. Creeping on where time has been, A rare old plant is the Ivy
  • green.
  • While the old gentleman repeated these lines a second time, to enable
  • Mr. Snodgrass to note them down, Mr. Pickwick perused the lineaments of
  • his face with an expression of great interest. The old gentleman having
  • concluded his dictation, and Mr. Snodgrass having returned his note-book
  • to his pocket, Mr. Pickwick said--
  • ‘Excuse me, sir, for making the remark on so short an acquaintance; but
  • a gentleman like yourself cannot fail, I should think, to have observed
  • many scenes and incidents worth recording, in the course of your
  • experience as a minister of the Gospel.’
  • ‘I have witnessed some certainly,’ replied the old gentleman, ‘but the
  • incidents and characters have been of a homely and ordinary nature, my
  • sphere of action being so very limited.’
  • ‘You did make some notes, I think, about John Edmunds, did you not?’
  • inquired Mr. Wardle, who appeared very desirous to draw his friend out,
  • for the edification of his new visitors.
  • The old gentleman slightly nodded his head in token of assent, and was
  • proceeding to change the subject, when Mr. Pickwick said--
  • ‘I beg your pardon, sir, but pray, if I may venture to inquire, who was
  • John Edmunds?’
  • ‘The very thing I was about to ask,’ said Mr. Snodgrass eagerly.
  • ‘You are fairly in for it,’ said the jolly host. ‘You must satisfy the
  • curiosity of these gentlemen, sooner or later; so you had better take
  • advantage of this favourable opportunity, and do so at once.’
  • The old gentleman smiled good-humouredly as he drew his chair forward--
  • the remainder of the party drew their chairs closer together, especially
  • Mr. Tupman and the spinster aunt, who were possibly rather hard of
  • hearing; and the old lady’s ear-trumpet having been duly adjusted, and
  • Mr. Miller (who had fallen asleep during the recital of the verses)
  • roused from his slumbers by an admonitory pinch, administered beneath
  • the table by his ex-partner the solemn fat man, the old gentleman,
  • without further preface, commenced the following tale, to which we have
  • taken the liberty of prefixing the title of
  • THE CONVICT’S RETURN
  • ‘When I first settled in this village,’ said the old gentleman, ‘which
  • is now just five-and-twenty years ago, the most notorious person among
  • my parishioners was a man of the name of Edmunds, who leased a small
  • farm near this spot. He was a morose, savage-hearted, bad man; idle and
  • dissolute in his habits; cruel and ferocious in his disposition. Beyond
  • the few lazy and reckless vagabonds with whom he sauntered away his time
  • in the fields, or sotted in the ale-house, he had not a single friend or
  • acquaintance; no one cared to speak to the man whom many feared, and
  • every one detested--and Edmunds was shunned by all.
  • ‘This man had a wife and one son, who, when I first came here, was about
  • twelve years old. Of the acuteness of that woman’s sufferings, of the
  • gentle and enduring manner in which she bore them, of the agony of
  • solicitude with which she reared that boy, no one can form an adequate
  • conception. Heaven forgive me the supposition, if it be an uncharitable
  • one, but I do firmly and in my soul believe, that the man systematically
  • tried for many years to break her heart; but she bore it all for her
  • child’s sake, and, however strange it may seem to many, for his father’s
  • too; for brute as he was, and cruelly as he had treated her, she had
  • loved him once; and the recollection of what he had been to her,
  • awakened feelings of forbearance and meekness under suffering in her
  • bosom, to which all God’s creatures, but women, are strangers.
  • ‘They were poor--they could not be otherwise when the man pursued such
  • courses; but the woman’s unceasing and unwearied exertions, early and
  • late, morning, noon, and night, kept them above actual want. These
  • exertions were but ill repaid. People who passed the spot in the
  • evening--sometimes at a late hour of the night--reported that they had
  • heard the moans and sobs of a woman in distress, and the sound of blows;
  • and more than once, when it was past midnight, the boy knocked softly at
  • the door of a neighbour’s house, whither he had been sent, to escape the
  • drunken fury of his unnatural father.
  • ‘During the whole of this time, and when the poor creature often bore
  • about her marks of ill-usage and violence which she could not wholly
  • conceal, she was a constant attendant at our little church. Regularly
  • every Sunday, morning and afternoon, she occupied the same seat with the
  • boy at her side; and though they were both poorly dressed--much more so
  • than many of their neighbours who were in a lower station--they were
  • always neat and clean. Every one had a friendly nod and a kind word for
  • “poor Mrs. Edmunds”; and sometimes, when she stopped to exchange a few
  • words with a neighbour at the conclusion of the service in the little
  • row of elm-trees which leads to the church porch, or lingered behind to
  • gaze with a mother’s pride and fondness upon her healthy boy, as he
  • sported before her with some little companions, her careworn face would
  • lighten up with an expression of heartfelt gratitude; and she would
  • look, if not cheerful and happy, at least tranquil and contented.
  • ‘Five or six years passed away; the boy had become a robust and well-
  • grown youth. The time that had strengthened the child’s slight frame and
  • knit his weak limbs into the strength of manhood had bowed his mother’s
  • form, and enfeebled her steps; but the arm that should have supported
  • her was no longer locked in hers; the face that should have cheered her,
  • no more looked upon her own. She occupied her old seat, but there was a
  • vacant one beside her. The Bible was kept as carefully as ever, the
  • places were found and folded down as they used to be: but there was no
  • one to read it with her; and the tears fell thick and fast upon the
  • book, and blotted the words from her eyes. Neighbours were as kind as
  • they were wont to be of old, but she shunned their greetings with
  • averted head. There was no lingering among the old elm-trees now--no
  • cheering anticipations of happiness yet in store. The desolate woman
  • drew her bonnet closer over her face, and walked hurriedly away.
  • ‘Shall I tell you that the young man, who, looking back to the earliest
  • of his childhood’s days to which memory and consciousness extended, and
  • carrying his recollection down to that moment, could remember nothing
  • which was not in some way connected with a long series of voluntary
  • privations suffered by his mother for his sake, with ill-usage, and
  • insult, and violence, and all endured for him--shall I tell you, that
  • he, with a reckless disregard for her breaking heart, and a sullen,
  • wilful forgetfulness of all she had done and borne for him, had linked
  • himself with depraved and abandoned men, and was madly pursuing a
  • headlong career, which must bring death to him, and shame to her? Alas
  • for human nature! You have anticipated it long since.
  • ‘The measure of the unhappy woman’s misery and misfortune was about to
  • be completed. Numerous offences had been committed in the neighbourhood;
  • the perpetrators remained undiscovered, and their boldness increased. A
  • robbery of a daring and aggravated nature occasioned a vigilance of
  • pursuit, and a strictness of search, they had not calculated on. Young
  • Edmunds was suspected, with three companions. He was apprehended--
  • committed--tried--condemned--to die.
  • ‘The wild and piercing shriek from a woman’s voice, which resounded
  • through the court when the solemn sentence was pronounced, rings in my
  • ears at this moment. That cry struck a terror to the culprit’s heart,
  • which trial, condemnation--the approach of death itself, had failed to
  • awaken. The lips which had been compressed in dogged sullenness
  • throughout, quivered and parted involuntarily; the face turned ashy pale
  • as the cold perspiration broke forth from every pore; the sturdy limbs
  • of the felon trembled, and he staggered in the dock.
  • ‘In the first transports of her mental anguish, the suffering mother
  • threw herself on her knees at my feet, and fervently sought the Almighty
  • Being who had hitherto supported her in all her troubles to release her
  • from a world of woe and misery, and to spare the life of her only child.
  • A burst of grief, and a violent struggle, such as I hope I may never
  • have to witness again, succeeded. I knew that her heart was breaking
  • from that hour; but I never once heard complaint or murmur escape her
  • lips.
  • ‘It was a piteous spectacle to see that woman in the prison-yard from
  • day to day, eagerly and fervently attempting, by affection and entreaty,
  • to soften the hard heart of her obdurate son. It was in vain. He
  • remained moody, obstinate, and unmoved. Not even the unlooked-for
  • commutation of his sentence to transportation for fourteen years,
  • softened for an instant the sullen hardihood of his demeanour.
  • ‘But the spirit of resignation and endurance that had so long upheld
  • her, was unable to contend against bodily weakness and infirmity. She
  • fell sick. She dragged her tottering limbs from the bed to visit her son
  • once more, but her strength failed her, and she sank powerless on the
  • ground.
  • ‘And now the boasted coldness and indifference of the young man were
  • tested indeed; and the retribution that fell heavily upon him nearly
  • drove him mad. A day passed away and his mother was not there; another
  • flew by, and she came not near him; a third evening arrived, and yet he
  • had not seen her--, and in four-and-twenty hours he was to be separated
  • from her, perhaps for ever. Oh! how the long-forgotten thoughts of
  • former days rushed upon his mind, as he almost ran up and down the
  • narrow yard--as if intelligence would arrive the sooner for his
  • hurrying--and how bitterly a sense of his helplessness and desolation
  • rushed upon him, when he heard the truth! His mother, the only parent he
  • had ever known, lay ill--it might be, dying--within one mile of the
  • ground he stood on; were he free and unfettered, a few minutes would
  • place him by her side. He rushed to the gate, and grasping the iron
  • rails with the energy of desperation, shook it till it rang again, and
  • threw himself against the thick wall as if to force a passage through
  • the stone; but the strong building mocked his feeble efforts, and he
  • beat his hands together and wept like a child.
  • ‘I bore the mother’s forgiveness and blessing to her son in prison; and
  • I carried the solemn assurance of repentance, and his fervent
  • supplication for pardon, to her sick-bed. I heard, with pity and
  • compassion, the repentant man devise a thousand little plans for her
  • comfort and support when he returned; but I knew that many months before
  • he could reach his place of destination, his mother would be no longer
  • of this world.
  • ‘He was removed by night. A few weeks afterwards the poor woman’s soul
  • took its flight, I confidently hope, and solemnly believe, to a place of
  • eternal happiness and rest. I performed the burial service over her
  • remains. She lies in our little churchyard. There is no stone at her
  • grave’s head. Her sorrows were known to man; her virtues to God.
  • ‘It had been arranged previously to the convict’s departure, that he
  • should write to his mother as soon as he could obtain permission, and
  • that the letter should be addressed to me. The father had positively
  • refused to see his son from the moment of his apprehension; and it was a
  • matter of indifference to him whether he lived or died. Many years
  • passed over without any intelligence of him; and when more than half his
  • term of transportation had expired, and I had received no letter, I
  • concluded him to be dead, as, indeed, I almost hoped he might be.
  • ‘Edmunds, however, had been sent a considerable distance up the country
  • on his arrival at the settlement; and to this circumstance, perhaps, may
  • be attributed the fact, that though several letters were despatched,
  • none of them ever reached my hands. He remained in the same place during
  • the whole fourteen years. At the expiration of the term, steadily
  • adhering to his old resolution and the pledge he gave his mother, he
  • made his way back to England amidst innumerable difficulties, and
  • returned, on foot, to his native place.
  • ‘On a fine Sunday evening, in the month of August, John Edmunds set foot
  • in the village he had left with shame and disgrace seventeen years
  • before. His nearest way lay through the churchyard. The man’s heart
  • swelled as he crossed the stile. The tall old elms, through whose
  • branches the declining sun cast here and there a rich ray of light upon
  • the shady part, awakened the associations of his earliest days. He
  • pictured himself as he was then, clinging to his mother’s hand, and
  • walking peacefully to church. He remembered how he used to look up into
  • her pale face; and how her eyes would sometimes fill with tears as she
  • gazed upon his features--tears which fell hot upon his forehead as she
  • stooped to kiss him, and made him weep too, although he little knew then
  • what bitter tears hers were. He thought how often he had run merrily
  • down that path with some childish playfellow, looking back, ever and
  • again, to catch his mother’s smile, or hear her gentle voice; and then a
  • veil seemed lifted from his memory, and words of kindness unrequited,
  • and warnings despised, and promises broken, thronged upon his
  • recollection till his heart failed him, and he could bear it no longer.
  • ‘He entered the church. The evening service was concluded and the
  • congregation had dispersed, but it was not yet closed. His steps echoed
  • through the low building with a hollow sound, and he almost feared to be
  • alone, it was so still and quiet. He looked round him. Nothing was
  • changed. The place seemed smaller than it used to be; but there were the
  • old monuments on which he had gazed with childish awe a thousand times;
  • the little pulpit with its faded cushion; the Communion table before
  • which he had so often repeated the Commandments he had reverenced as a
  • child, and forgotten as a man. He approached the old seat; it looked
  • cold and desolate. The cushion had been removed, and the Bible was not
  • there. Perhaps his mother now occupied a poorer seat, or possibly she
  • had grown infirm and could not reach the church alone. He dared not
  • think of what he feared. A cold feeling crept over him, and he trembled
  • violently as he turned away. ‘An old man entered the porch just as he
  • reached it. Edmunds started back, for he knew him well; many a time he
  • had watched him digging graves in the churchyard. What would he say to
  • the returned convict?
  • ‘The old man raised his eyes to the stranger’s face, bade him “good-
  • evening,” and walked slowly on. He had forgotten him.
  • ‘He walked down the hill, and through the village. The weather was warm,
  • and the people were sitting at their doors, or strolling in their little
  • gardens as he passed, enjoying the serenity of the evening, and their
  • rest from labour. Many a look was turned towards him, and many a
  • doubtful glance he cast on either side to see whether any knew and
  • shunned him. There were strange faces in almost every house; in some he
  • recognised the burly form of some old schoolfellow--a boy when he last
  • saw him--surrounded by a troop of merry children; in others he saw,
  • seated in an easy-chair at a cottage door, a feeble and infirm old man,
  • whom he only remembered as a hale and hearty labourer; but they had all
  • forgotten him, and he passed on unknown.
  • ‘The last soft light of the setting sun had fallen on the earth, casting
  • a rich glow on the yellow corn sheaves, and lengthening the shadows of
  • the orchard trees, as he stood before the old house--the home of his
  • infancy--to which his heart had yearned with an intensity of affection
  • not to be described, through long and weary years of captivity and
  • sorrow. The paling was low, though he well remembered the time that it
  • had seemed a high wall to him; and he looked over into the old garden.
  • There were more seeds and gayer flowers than there used to be, but there
  • were the old trees still--the very tree under which he had lain a
  • thousand times when tired of playing in the sun, and felt the soft, mild
  • sleep of happy boyhood steal gently upon him. There were voices within
  • the house. He listened, but they fell strangely upon his ear; he knew
  • them not. They were merry too; and he well knew that his poor old mother
  • could not be cheerful, and he away. The door opened, and a group of
  • little children bounded out, shouting and romping. The father, with a
  • little boy in his arms, appeared at the door, and they crowded round
  • him, clapping their tiny hands, and dragging him out, to join their
  • joyous sports. The convict thought on the many times he had shrunk from
  • his father’s sight in that very place. He remembered how often he had
  • buried his trembling head beneath the bedclothes, and heard the harsh
  • word, and the hard stripe, and his mother’s wailing; and though the man
  • sobbed aloud with agony of mind as he left the spot, his fist was
  • clenched, and his teeth were set, in a fierce and deadly passion.
  • ‘And such was the return to which he had looked through the weary
  • perspective of many years, and for which he had undergone so much
  • suffering! No face of welcome, no look of forgiveness, no house to
  • receive, no hand to help him--and this too in the old village. What was
  • his loneliness in the wild, thick woods, where man was never seen, to
  • this!
  • ‘He felt that in the distant land of his bondage and infamy, he had
  • thought of his native place as it was when he left it; and not as it
  • would be when he returned. The sad reality struck coldly at his heart,
  • and his spirit sank within him. He had not courage to make inquiries, or
  • to present himself to the only person who was likely to receive him with
  • kindness and compassion. He walked slowly on; and shunning the roadside
  • like a guilty man, turned into a meadow he well remembered; and covering
  • his face with his hands, threw himself upon the grass.
  • ‘He had not observed that a man was lying on the bank beside him; his
  • garments rustled as he turned round to steal a look at the new-comer;
  • and Edmunds raised his head.
  • ‘The man had moved into a sitting posture. His body was much bent, and
  • his face was wrinkled and yellow. His dress denoted him an inmate of the
  • workhouse: he had the appearance of being very old, but it looked more
  • the effect of dissipation or disease, than the length of years. He was
  • staring hard at the stranger, and though his eyes were lustreless and
  • heavy at first, they appeared to glow with an unnatural and alarmed
  • expression after they had been fixed upon him for a short time, until
  • they seemed to be starting from their sockets. Edmunds gradually raised
  • himself to his knees, and looked more and more earnestly on the old
  • man’s face. They gazed upon each other in silence.
  • ‘The old man was ghastly pale. He shuddered and tottered to his feet.
  • Edmunds sprang to his. He stepped back a pace or two. Edmunds advanced.
  • ‘“Let me hear you speak,” said the convict, in a thick, broken voice.
  • ‘“Stand off!” cried the old man, with a dreadful oath. The convict drew
  • closer to him.
  • ‘“Stand off!” shrieked the old man. Furious with terror, he raised his
  • stick, and struck Edmunds a heavy blow across the face.
  • ‘“Father--devil!” murmured the convict between his set teeth. He rushed
  • wildly forward, and clenched the old man by the throat--but he was his
  • father; and his arm fell powerless by his side.
  • ‘The old man uttered a loud yell which rang through the lonely fields
  • like the howl of an evil spirit. His face turned black, the gore rushed
  • from his mouth and nose, and dyed the grass a deep, dark red, as he
  • staggered and fell. He had ruptured a blood-vessel, and he was a dead
  • man before his son could raise him.
  • ‘In that corner of the churchyard,’ said the old gentleman, after a
  • silence of a few moments, ‘in that corner of the churchyard of which I
  • have before spoken, there lies buried a man who was in my employment for
  • three years after this event, and who was truly contrite, penitent, and
  • humbled, if ever man was. No one save myself knew in that man’s lifetime
  • who he was, or whence he came--it was John Edmunds, the returned
  • convict.’
  • CHAPTER VII. HOW MR. WINKLE, INSTEAD OF SHOOTING AT THE PIGEON AND
  • KILLING THE CROW, SHOT AT THE CROW AND WOUNDED THE PIGEON; HOW THE
  • DINGLEY DELL CRICKET CLUB PLAYED ALL-MUGGLETON, AND HOW ALL-MUGGLETON
  • DINED AT THE DINGLEY DELL EXPENSE; WITH OTHER INTERESTING AND
  • INSTRUCTIVE MATTERS
  • The fatiguing adventures of the day or the somniferous influence of the
  • clergyman’s tale operated so strongly on the drowsy tendencies of Mr.
  • Pickwick, that in less than five minutes after he had been shown to his
  • comfortable bedroom he fell into a sound and dreamless sleep, from which
  • he was only awakened by the morning sun darting his bright beams
  • reproachfully into the apartment. Mr. Pickwick was no sluggard, and he
  • sprang like an ardent warrior from his tent-bedstead.
  • ‘Pleasant, pleasant country,’ sighed the enthusiastic gentleman, as he
  • opened his lattice window. ‘Who could live to gaze from day to day on
  • bricks and slates who had once felt the influence of a scene like this?
  • Who could continue to exist where there are no cows but the cows on the
  • chimney-pots; nothing redolent of Pan but pan-tiles; no crop but stone
  • crop? Who could bear to drag out a life in such a spot? Who, I ask,
  • could endure it?’ and, having cross-examined solitude after the most
  • approved precedents, at considerable length, Mr. Pickwick thrust his
  • head out of the lattice and looked around him.
  • The rich, sweet smell of the hay-ricks rose to his chamber window; the
  • hundred perfumes of the little flower-garden beneath scented the air
  • around; the deep-green meadows shone in the morning dew that glistened
  • on every leaf as it trembled in the gentle air; and the birds sang as if
  • every sparkling drop were to them a fountain of inspiration. Mr.
  • Pickwick fell into an enchanting and delicious reverie.
  • ‘Hollo!’ was the sound that roused him.
  • He looked to the right, but he saw nobody; his eyes wandered to the
  • left, and pierced the prospect; he stared into the sky, but he wasn’t
  • wanted there; and then he did what a common mind would have done at
  • once--looked into the garden, and there saw Mr. Wardle.
  • ‘How are you?’ said the good-humoured individual, out of breath with his
  • own anticipations of pleasure.’Beautiful morning, ain’t it? Glad to see
  • you up so early. Make haste down, and come out. I’ll wait for you here.’
  • Mr. Pickwick needed no second invitation. Ten minutes sufficed for the
  • completion of his toilet, and at the expiration of that time he was by
  • the old gentleman’s side.
  • ‘Hollo!’ said Mr. Pickwick in his turn, seeing that his companion was
  • armed with a gun, and that another lay ready on the grass; ‘what’s going
  • forward?’
  • ‘Why, your friend and I,’ replied the host, ‘are going out rook-shooting
  • before breakfast. He’s a very good shot, ain’t he?’
  • ‘I’ve heard him say he’s a capital one,’ replied Mr. Pickwick, ‘but I
  • never saw him aim at anything.’
  • ‘Well,’ said the host, ‘I wish he’d come. Joe--Joe!’
  • The fat boy, who under the exciting influence of the morning did not
  • appear to be more than three parts and a fraction asleep, emerged from
  • the house.
  • ‘Go up, and call the gentleman, and tell him he’ll find me and Mr.
  • Pickwick in the rookery. Show the gentleman the way there; d’ye hear?’
  • The boy departed to execute his commission; and the host, carrying both
  • guns like a second Robinson Crusoe, led the way from the garden.
  • ‘This is the place,’ said the old gentleman, pausing after a few minutes
  • walking, in an avenue of trees. The information was unnecessary; for the
  • incessant cawing of the unconscious rooks sufficiently indicated their
  • whereabouts.
  • The old gentleman laid one gun on the ground, and loaded the other.
  • ‘Here they are,’ said Mr. Pickwick; and, as he spoke, the forms of Mr.
  • Tupman, Mr. Snodgrass, and Mr. Winkle appeared in the distance. The fat
  • boy, not being quite certain which gentleman he was directed to call,
  • had with peculiar sagacity, and to prevent the possibility of any
  • mistake, called them all.
  • ‘Come along,’ shouted the old gentleman, addressing Mr. Winkle; ‘a keen
  • hand like you ought to have been up long ago, even to such poor work as
  • this.’
  • Mr. Winkle responded with a forced smile, and took up the spare gun with
  • an expression of countenance which a metaphysical rook, impressed with a
  • foreboding of his approaching death by violence, may be supposed to
  • assume. It might have been keenness, but it looked remarkably like
  • misery.
  • The old gentleman nodded; and two ragged boys who had been marshalled to
  • the spot under the direction of the infant Lambert, forthwith commenced
  • climbing up two of the trees.
  • ‘What are these lads for?’ inquired Mr. Pickwick abruptly. He was rather
  • alarmed; for he was not quite certain but that the distress of the
  • agricultural interest, about which he had often heard a great deal,
  • might have compelled the small boys attached to the soil to earn a
  • precarious and hazardous subsistence by making marks of themselves for
  • inexperienced sportsmen.
  • ‘Only to start the game,’ replied Mr. Wardle, laughing.
  • ‘To what?’ inquired Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Why, in plain English, to frighten the rooks.’
  • ‘Oh, is that all?’
  • ‘You are satisfied?’
  • ‘Quite.’
  • ‘Very well. Shall I begin?’
  • ‘If you please,’ said Mr. Winkle, glad of any respite.
  • ‘Stand aside, then. Now for it.’
  • The boy shouted, and shook a branch with a nest on it. Half a dozen
  • young rooks in violent conversation, flew out to ask what the matter
  • was. The old gentleman fired by way of reply. Down fell one bird, and
  • off flew the others.
  • ‘Take him up, Joe,’ said the old gentleman.
  • There was a smile upon the youth’s face as he advanced. Indistinct
  • visions of rook-pie floated through his imagination. He laughed as he
  • retired with the bird--it was a plump one.
  • ‘Now, Mr. Winkle,’ said the host, reloading his own gun. ‘Fire away.’
  • Mr. Winkle advanced, and levelled his gun. Mr. Pickwick and his friends
  • cowered involuntarily to escape damage from the heavy fall of rooks,
  • which they felt quite certain would be occasioned by the devastating
  • barrel of their friend. There was a solemn pause--a shout--a flapping of
  • wings--a faint click.
  • ‘Hollo!’ said the old gentleman.
  • ‘Won’t it go?’ inquired Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Missed fire,’ said Mr. Winkle, who was very pale--probably from
  • disappointment.
  • ‘Odd,’ said the old gentleman, taking the gun. ‘Never knew one of them
  • miss fire before. Why, I don’t see anything of the cap.’
  • Bless my soul!’ said Mr. Winkle, ‘I declare I forgot the cap!’
  • The slight omission was rectified. Mr. Pickwick crouched again. Mr.
  • Winkle stepped forward with an air of determination and resolution; and
  • Mr. Tupman looked out from behind a tree. The boy shouted; four birds
  • flew out. Mr. Winkle fired. There was a scream as of an individual--not
  • a rook--in corporal anguish. Mr. Tupman had saved the lives of
  • innumerable unoffending birds by receiving a portion of the charge in
  • his left arm.
  • To describe the confusion that ensued would be impossible. To tell how
  • Mr. Pickwick in the first transports of emotion called Mr. Winkle
  • ‘Wretch!’ how Mr. Tupman lay prostrate on the ground; and how Mr. Winkle
  • knelt horror-stricken beside him; how Mr. Tupman called distractedly
  • upon some feminine Christian name, and then opened first one eye, and
  • then the other, and then fell back and shut them both--all this would be
  • as difficult to describe in detail, as it would be to depict the gradual
  • recovering of the unfortunate individual, the binding up of his arm with
  • pocket-handkerchiefs, and the conveying him back by slow degrees
  • supported by the arms of his anxious friends.
  • They drew near the house. The ladies were at the garden gate, waiting
  • for their arrival and their breakfast. The spinster aunt appeared; she
  • smiled, and beckoned them to walk quicker. ‘Twas evident she knew not of
  • the disaster. Poor thing! there are times when ignorance is bliss
  • indeed.
  • They approached nearer.
  • ‘Why, what is the matter with the little old gentleman?’ said Isabella
  • Wardle. The spinster aunt heeded not the remark; she thought it applied
  • to Mr. Pickwick. In her eyes Tracy Tupman was a youth; she viewed his
  • years through a diminishing glass.
  • ‘Don’t be frightened,’ called out the old host, fearful of alarming his
  • daughters. The little party had crowded so completely round Mr. Tupman,
  • that they could not yet clearly discern the nature of the accident.
  • ‘Don’t be frightened,’ said the host.
  • ‘What’s the matter?’ screamed the ladies.
  • ‘Mr. Tupman has met with a little accident; that’s all.’
  • The spinster aunt uttered a piercing scream, burst into an hysteric
  • laugh, and fell backwards in the arms of her nieces.
  • ‘Throw some cold water over her,’ said the old gentleman.
  • ‘No, no,’ murmured the spinster aunt; ‘I am better now. Bella, Emily--a
  • surgeon! Is he wounded?--Is he dead?--Is he--Ha, ha, ha!’ Here the
  • spinster aunt burst into fit number two, of hysteric laughter
  • interspersed with screams.
  • ‘Calm yourself,’ said Mr. Tupman, affected almost to tears by this
  • expression of sympathy with his sufferings. ‘Dear, dear madam, calm
  • yourself.’
  • ‘It is his voice!’ exclaimed the spinster aunt; and strong symptoms of
  • fit number three developed themselves forthwith.
  • ‘Do not agitate yourself, I entreat you, dearest madam,’ said Mr. Tupman
  • soothingly. ‘I am very little hurt, I assure you.’
  • ‘Then you are not dead!’ ejaculated the hysterical lady. ‘Oh, say you
  • are not dead!’
  • ‘Don’t be a fool, Rachael,’ interposed Mr. Wardle, rather more roughly
  • than was consistent with the poetic nature of the scene. ‘What the
  • devil’s the use of his saying he isn’t dead?’
  • ‘No, no, I am not,’ said Mr. Tupman. ‘I require no assistance but yours.
  • Let me lean on your arm.’ He added, in a whisper, ‘Oh, Miss Rachael!’
  • The agitated female advanced, and offered her arm. They turned into the
  • breakfast parlour. Mr. Tracy Tupman gently pressed her hand to his lips,
  • and sank upon the sofa.
  • ‘Are you faint?’ inquired the anxious Rachael.
  • ‘No,’ said Mr. Tupman. ‘It is nothing. I shall be better presently.’ He
  • closed his eyes.
  • ‘He sleeps,’ murmured the spinster aunt. (His organs of vision had been
  • closed nearly twenty seconds.) ‘Dear--dear--Mr. Tupman!’
  • Mr. Tupman jumped up--‘Oh, say those words again!’ he exclaimed.
  • The lady started. ‘Surely you did not hear them!’ she said bashfully.
  • ‘Oh, yes, I did!’ replied Mr. Tupman; ‘repeat them. If you would have me
  • recover, repeat them.’
  • Hush!’ said the lady. ‘My brother.’ Mr. Tracy Tupman resumed his former
  • position; and Mr. Wardle, accompanied by a surgeon, entered the room.
  • The arm was examined, the wound dressed, and pronounced to be a very
  • slight one; and the minds of the company having been thus satisfied,
  • they proceeded to satisfy their appetites with countenances to which an
  • expression of cheerfulness was again restored. Mr. Pickwick alone was
  • silent and reserved. Doubt and distrust were exhibited in his
  • countenance. His confidence in Mr. Winkle had been shaken--greatly
  • shaken--by the proceedings of the morning.
  • ‘Are you a cricketer?’ inquired Mr. Wardle of the marksman.
  • At any other time, Mr. Winkle would have replied in the affirmative. He
  • felt the delicacy of his situation, and modestly replied, ‘No.’
  • ‘Are you, sir?’ inquired Mr. Snodgrass.
  • ‘I was once upon a time,’ replied the host; ‘but I have given it up now.
  • I subscribe to the club here, but I don’t play.’
  • ‘The grand match is played to-day, I believe,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘It is,’ replied the host. ‘Of course you would like to see it.’
  • ‘I, sir,’ replied Mr. Pickwick, ‘am delighted to view any sports which
  • may be safely indulged in, and in which the impotent effects of
  • unskilful people do not endanger human life.’ Mr. Pickwick paused, and
  • looked steadily on Mr. Winkle, who quailed beneath his leader’s
  • searching glance. The great man withdrew his eyes after a few minutes,
  • and added: ‘Shall we be justified in leaving our wounded friend to the
  • care of the ladies?’
  • ‘You cannot leave me in better hands,’ said Mr. Tupman.
  • ‘Quite impossible,’ said Mr. Snodgrass.
  • It was therefore settled that Mr. Tupman should be left at home in
  • charge of the females; and that the remainder of the guests, under the
  • guidance of Mr. Wardle, should proceed to the spot where was to be held
  • that trial of skill, which had roused all Muggleton from its torpor, and
  • inoculated Dingley Dell with a fever of excitement.
  • As their walk, which was not above two miles long, lay through shady
  • lanes and sequestered footpaths, and as their conversation turned upon
  • the delightful scenery by which they were on every side surrounded, Mr.
  • Pickwick was almost inclined to regret the expedition they had used,
  • when he found himself in the main street of the town of Muggleton.
  • Everybody whose genius has a topographical bent knows perfectly well
  • that Muggleton is a corporate town, with a mayor, burgesses, and
  • freemen; and anybody who has consulted the addresses of the mayor to the
  • freemen, or the freemen to the mayor, or both to the corporation, or all
  • three to Parliament, will learn from thence what they ought to have
  • known before, that Muggleton is an ancient and loyal borough, mingling a
  • zealous advocacy of Christian principles with a devoted attachment to
  • commercial rights; in demonstration whereof, the mayor, corporation, and
  • other inhabitants, have presented at divers times, no fewer than one
  • thousand four hundred and twenty petitions against the continuance of
  • negro slavery abroad, and an equal number against any interference with
  • the factory system at home; sixty-eight in favour of the sale of livings
  • in the Church, and eighty-six for abolishing Sunday trading in the
  • street.
  • Mr. Pickwick stood in the principal street of this illustrious town, and
  • gazed with an air of curiosity, not unmixed with interest, on the
  • objects around him. There was an open square for the market-place; and
  • in the centre of it, a large inn with a sign-post in front, displaying
  • an object very common in art, but rarely met with in nature--to wit, a
  • blue lion, with three bow legs in the air, balancing himself on the
  • extreme point of the centre claw of his fourth foot. There were, within
  • sight, an auctioneer’s and fire-agency office, a corn-factor’s, a linen-
  • draper’s, a saddler’s, a distiller’s, a grocer’s, and a shoe-shop--the
  • last-mentioned warehouse being also appropriated to the diffusion of
  • hats, bonnets, wearing apparel, cotton umbrellas, and useful knowledge.
  • There was a red brick house with a small paved courtyard in front, which
  • anybody might have known belonged to the attorney; and there was,
  • moreover, another red brick house with Venetian blinds, and a large
  • brass door-plate with a very legible announcement that it belonged to
  • the surgeon. A few boys were making their way to the cricket-field; and
  • two or three shopkeepers who were standing at their doors looked as if
  • they should like to be making their way to the same spot, as indeed to
  • all appearance they might have done, without losing any great amount of
  • custom thereby. Mr. Pickwick having paused to make these observations,
  • to be noted down at a more convenient period, hastened to rejoin his
  • friends, who had turned out of the main street, and were already within
  • sight of the field of battle.
  • The wickets were pitched, and so were a couple of marquees for the rest
  • and refreshment of the contending parties. The game had not yet
  • commenced. Two or three Dingley Dellers, and All-Muggletonians, were
  • amusing themselves with a majestic air by throwing the ball carelessly
  • from hand to hand; and several other gentlemen dressed like them, in
  • straw hats, flannel jackets, and white trousers--a costume in which they
  • looked very much like amateur stone-masons--were sprinkled about the
  • tents, towards one of which Mr. Wardle conducted the party.
  • Several dozen of ‘How-are-you’s?’ hailed the old gentleman’s arrival;
  • and a general raising of the straw hats, and bending forward of the
  • flannel jackets, followed his introduction of his guests as gentlemen
  • from London, who were extremely anxious to witness the proceedings of
  • the day, with which, he had no doubt, they would be greatly delighted.
  • ‘You had better step into the marquee, I think, Sir,’ said one very
  • stout gentleman, whose body and legs looked like half a gigantic roll of
  • flannel, elevated on a couple of inflated pillow-cases.
  • ‘You’ll find it much pleasanter, Sir,’ urged another stout gentleman,
  • who strongly resembled the other half of the roll of flannel aforesaid.
  • ‘You’re very good,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘This way,’ said the first speaker; ‘they notch in here--it’s the best
  • place in the whole field;’ and the cricketer, panting on before,
  • preceded them to the tent.
  • ‘Capital game--smart sport--fine exercise--very,’ were the words which
  • fell upon Mr. Pickwick’s ear as he entered the tent; and the first
  • object that met his eyes was his green-coated friend of the Rochester
  • coach, holding forth, to the no small delight and edification of a
  • select circle of the chosen of All-Muggleton. His dress was slightly
  • improved, and he wore boots; but there was no mistaking him.
  • The stranger recognised his friends immediately; and, darting forward
  • and seizing Mr. Pickwick by the hand, dragged him to a seat with his
  • usual impetuosity, talking all the while as if the whole of the
  • arrangements were under his especial patronage and direction.
  • ‘This way--this way--capital fun--lots of beer--hogsheads; rounds of
  • beef--bullocks; mustard--cart-loads; glorious day--down with you--make
  • yourself at home--glad to see you--very.’
  • Mr. Pickwick sat down as he was bid, and Mr. Winkle and Mr. Snodgrass
  • also complied with the directions of their mysterious friend. Mr. Wardle
  • looked on in silent wonder.
  • ‘Mr. Wardle--a friend of mine,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Friend of yours!--My dear sir, how are you?--Friend of my friend’s--
  • give me your hand, sir’--and the stranger grasped Mr. Wardle’s hand with
  • all the fervour of a close intimacy of many years, and then stepped back
  • a pace or two as if to take a full survey of his face and figure, and
  • then shook hands with him again, if possible, more warmly than before.
  • ‘Well; and how came you here?’ said Mr. Pickwick, with a smile in which
  • benevolence struggled with surprise.
  • ‘Come,’ replied the stranger--‘stopping at Crown--Crown at Muggleton--
  • met a party--flannel jackets--white trousers--anchovy sandwiches--
  • devilled kidney--splendid fellows--glorious.’
  • Mr. Pickwick was sufficiently versed in the stranger’s system of
  • stenography to infer from this rapid and disjointed communication that
  • he had, somehow or other, contracted an acquaintance with the All-
  • Muggletons, which he had converted, by a process peculiar to himself,
  • into that extent of good-fellowship on which a general invitation may be
  • easily founded. His curiosity was therefore satisfied, and putting on
  • his spectacles he prepared himself to watch the play which was just
  • commencing.
  • All-Muggleton had the first innings; and the interest became intense
  • when Mr. Dumkins and Mr. Podder, two of the most renowned members of
  • that most distinguished club, walked, bat in hand, to their respective
  • wickets. Mr. Luffey, the highest ornament of Dingley Dell, was pitched
  • to bowl against the redoubtable Dumkins, and Mr. Struggles was selected
  • to do the same kind office for the hitherto unconquered Podder. Several
  • players were stationed, to ‘look out,’ in different parts of the field,
  • and each fixed himself into the proper attitude by placing one hand on
  • each knee, and stooping very much as if he were ‘making a back’ for some
  • beginner at leap-frog. All the regular players do this sort of thing;--
  • indeed it is generally supposed that it is quite impossible to look out
  • properly in any other position.
  • The umpires were stationed behind the wickets; the scorers were prepared
  • to notch the runs; a breathless silence ensued. Mr. Luffey retired a few
  • paces behind the wicket of the passive Podder, and applied the ball to
  • his right eye for several seconds. Dumkins confidently awaited its
  • coming with his eyes fixed on the motions of Luffey.
  • ‘Play!’ suddenly cried the bowler. The ball flew from his hand straight
  • and swift towards the centre stump of the wicket. The wary Dumkins was
  • on the alert: it fell upon the tip of the bat, and bounded far away over
  • the heads of the scouts, who had just stooped low enough to let it fly
  • over them.
  • ‘Run--run--another.--Now, then throw her up--up with her--stop there--
  • another--no--yes--no--throw her up, throw her up!’--Such were the shouts
  • which followed the stroke; and at the conclusion of which All-Muggleton
  • had scored two. Nor was Podder behindhand in earning laurels wherewith
  • to garnish himself and Muggleton. He blocked the doubtful balls, missed
  • the bad ones, took the good ones, and sent them flying to all parts of
  • the field. The scouts were hot and tired; the bowlers were changed and
  • bowled till their arms ached; but Dumkins and Podder remained
  • unconquered. Did an elderly gentleman essay to stop the progress of the
  • ball, it rolled between his legs or slipped between his fingers. Did a
  • slim gentleman try to catch it, it struck him on the nose, and bounded
  • pleasantly off with redoubled violence, while the slim gentleman’s eyes
  • filled with water, and his form writhed with anguish. Was it thrown
  • straight up to the wicket, Dumkins had reached it before the ball. In
  • short, when Dumkins was caught out, and Podder stumped out, All-
  • Muggleton had notched some fifty-four, while the score of the Dingley
  • Dellers was as blank as their faces. The advantage was too great to be
  • recovered. In vain did the eager Luffey, and the enthusiastic Struggles,
  • do all that skill and experience could suggest, to regain the ground
  • Dingley Dell had lost in the contest--it was of no avail; and in an
  • early period of the winning game Dingley Dell gave in, and allowed the
  • superior prowess of All-Muggleton.
  • The stranger, meanwhile, had been eating, drinking, and talking, without
  • cessation. At every good stroke he expressed his satisfaction and
  • approval of the player in a most condescending and patronising manner,
  • which could not fail to have been highly gratifying to the party
  • concerned; while at every bad attempt at a catch, and every failure to
  • stop the ball, he launched his personal displeasure at the head of the
  • devoted individual in such denunciations as--‘Ah, ah!--stupid’--‘Now,
  • butter-fingers’--‘Muff’--‘Humbug’--and so forth--ejaculations which
  • seemed to establish him in the opinion of all around, as a most
  • excellent and undeniable judge of the whole art and mystery of the noble
  • game of cricket.
  • ‘Capital game--well played--some strokes admirable,’ said the stranger,
  • as both sides crowded into the tent, at the conclusion of the game.
  • ‘You have played it, sir?’ inquired Mr. Wardle, who had been much amused
  • by his loquacity.
  • ‘Played it! Think I have--thousands of times--not here--West Indies--
  • exciting thing--hot work--very.’ ‘It must be rather a warm pursuit in
  • such a climate,’ observed Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Warm!--red hot--scorching--glowing. Played a match once--single wicket-
  • -friend the colonel--Sir Thomas Blazo--who should get the greatest
  • number of runs.--Won the toss--first innings--seven o’clock A.M.--six
  • natives to look out--went in; kept in--heat intense--natives all
  • fainted--taken away--fresh half-dozen ordered--fainted also--Blazo
  • bowling--supported by two natives--couldn’t bowl me out--fainted too--
  • cleared away the colonel--wouldn’t give in--faithful attendant--Quanko
  • Samba--last man left--sun so hot, bat in blisters, ball scorched brown--
  • five hundred and seventy runs--rather exhausted--Quanko mustered up last
  • remaining strength--bowled me out--had a bath, and went out to dinner.’
  • ‘And what became of what’s-his-name, Sir?’ inquired an old gentleman.
  • ‘Blazo?’
  • ‘No--the other gentleman.’
  • Quanko Samba?’
  • ‘Yes, sir.’
  • ‘Poor Quanko--never recovered it--bowled on, on my account--bowled off,
  • on his own--died, sir.’ Here the stranger buried his countenance in a
  • brown jug, but whether to hide his emotion or imbibe its contents, we
  • cannot distinctly affirm. We only know that he paused suddenly, drew a
  • long and deep breath, and looked anxiously on, as two of the principal
  • members of the Dingley Dell club approached Mr. Pickwick, and said--
  • ‘We are about to partake of a plain dinner at the Blue Lion, Sir; we
  • hope you and your friends will join us.’
  • Of course,’ said Mr. Wardle, ‘among our friends we include Mr.--;’ and
  • he looked towards the stranger.
  • ‘Jingle,’ said that versatile gentleman, taking the hint at once.
  • ‘Jingle--Alfred Jingle, Esq., of No Hall, Nowhere.’
  • ‘I shall be very happy, I am sure,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘So shall I,’ said Mr. Alfred Jingle, drawing one arm through Mr.
  • Pickwick’s, and another through Mr. Wardle’s, as he whispered
  • confidentially in the ear of the former gentleman:--
  • ‘Devilish good dinner--cold, but capital--peeped into the room this
  • morning--fowls and pies, and all that sort of thing--pleasant fellows
  • these--well behaved, too--very.’
  • There being no further preliminaries to arrange, the company straggled
  • into the town in little knots of twos and threes; and within a quarter
  • of an hour were all seated in the great room of the Blue Lion Inn,
  • Muggleton--Mr. Dumkins acting as chairman, and Mr. Luffey officiating as
  • vice.
  • There was a vast deal of talking and rattling of knives and forks, and
  • plates; a great running about of three ponderous-headed waiters, and a
  • rapid disappearance of the substantial viands on the table; to each and
  • every of which item of confusion, the facetious Mr. Jingle lent the aid
  • of half-a-dozen ordinary men at least. When everybody had eaten as much
  • as possible, the cloth was removed, bottles, glasses, and dessert were
  • placed on the table; and the waiters withdrew to ‘clear away,’ or in
  • other words, to appropriate to their own private use and emolument
  • whatever remnants of the eatables and drinkables they could contrive to
  • lay their hands on.
  • Amidst the general hum of mirth and conversation that ensued, there was
  • a little man with a puffy Say-nothing-to-me,-or-I’ll-contradict-you sort
  • of countenance, who remained very quiet; occasionally looking round him
  • when the conversation slackened, as if he contemplated putting in
  • something very weighty; and now and then bursting into a short cough of
  • inexpressible grandeur. At length, during a moment of comparative
  • silence, the little man called out in a very loud, solemn voice,--
  • ‘Mr. Luffey!’
  • Everybody was hushed into a profound stillness as the individual
  • addressed, replied--
  • ‘Sir!’
  • ‘I wish to address a few words to you, Sir, if you will entreat the
  • gentlemen to fill their glasses.’
  • Mr. Jingle uttered a patronising ‘Hear, hear,’ which was responded to by
  • the remainder of the company; and the glasses having been filled, the
  • vice-president assumed an air of wisdom in a state of profound
  • attention; and said--
  • ‘Mr. Staple.’
  • ‘Sir,’ said the little man, rising, ‘I wish to address what I have to
  • say to you and not to our worthy chairman, because our worthy chairman
  • is in some measure--I may say in a great degree--the subject of what I
  • have to say, or I may say to--to--’
  • ‘State,’ suggested Mr. Jingle.
  • ‘Yes, to state,’ said the little man, ‘I thank my honourable friend, if
  • he will allow me to call him so (four hears and one certainly from Mr.
  • Jingle), for the suggestion. Sir, I am a Deller--a Dingley Deller
  • (cheers). I cannot lay claim to the honour of forming an item in the
  • population of Muggleton; nor, Sir, I will frankly admit, do I covet that
  • honour: and I will tell you why, Sir (hear); to Muggleton I will readily
  • concede all these honours and distinctions to which it can fairly lay
  • claim--they are too numerous and too well known to require aid or
  • recapitulation from me. But, sir, while we remember that Muggleton has
  • given birth to a Dumkins and a Podder, let us never forget that Dingley
  • Dell can boast a Luffey and a Struggles. (Vociferous cheering.) Let me
  • not be considered as wishing to detract from the merits of the former
  • gentlemen. Sir, I envy them the luxury of their own feelings on this
  • occasion. (Cheers.) Every gentleman who hears me, is probably acquainted
  • with the reply made by an individual, who--to use an ordinary figure of
  • speech--“hung out” in a tub, to the emperor Alexander:--“if I were not
  • Diogenes,” said he, “I would be Alexander.” I can well imagine these
  • gentlemen to say, “If I were not Dumkins I would be Luffey; if I were
  • not Podder I would be Struggles.” (Enthusiasm.) But, gentlemen of
  • Muggleton, is it in cricket alone that your fellow-townsmen stand pre-
  • eminent? Have you never heard of Dumkins and determination? Have you
  • never been taught to associate Podder with property? (Great applause.)
  • Have you never, when struggling for your rights, your liberties, and
  • your privileges, been reduced, if only for an instant, to misgiving and
  • despair? And when you have been thus depressed, has not the name of
  • Dumkins laid afresh within your breast the fire which had just gone out;
  • and has not a word from that man lighted it again as brightly as if it
  • had never expired? (Great cheering.) Gentlemen, I beg to surround with a
  • rich halo of enthusiastic cheering the united names of “Dumkins and
  • Podder.”’
  • Here the little man ceased, and here the company commenced a raising of
  • voices, and thumping of tables, which lasted with little intermission
  • during the remainder of the evening. Other toasts were drunk. Mr. Luffey
  • and Mr. Struggles, Mr. Pickwick and Mr. Jingle, were, each in his turn,
  • the subject of unqualified eulogium; and each in due course returned
  • thanks for the honour.
  • Enthusiastic as we are in the noble cause to which we have devoted
  • ourselves, we should have felt a sensation of pride which we cannot
  • express, and a consciousness of having done something to merit
  • immortality of which we are now deprived, could we have laid the
  • faintest outline on these addresses before our ardent readers. Mr.
  • Snodgrass, as usual, took a great mass of notes, which would no doubt
  • have afforded most useful and valuable information, had not the burning
  • eloquence of the words or the feverish influence of the wine made that
  • gentleman’s hand so extremely unsteady, as to render his writing nearly
  • unintelligible, and his style wholly so. By dint of patient
  • investigation, we have been enabled to trace some characters bearing a
  • faint resemblance to the names of the speakers; and we can only discern
  • an entry of a song (supposed to have been sung by Mr. Jingle), in which
  • the words ‘bowl’ ‘sparkling’ ‘ruby’ ‘bright’ and ‘wine’ are frequently
  • repeated at short intervals. We fancy, too, that we can discern at the
  • very end of the notes, some indistinct reference to ‘broiled bones’; and
  • then the words ‘cold’ ‘without’ occur: but as any hypothesis we could
  • found upon them must necessarily rest upon mere conjecture, we are not
  • disposed to indulge in any of the speculations to which they may give
  • rise.
  • We will therefore return to Mr. Tupman; merely adding that within some
  • few minutes before twelve o’clock that night, the convocation of
  • worthies of Dingley Dell and Muggleton were heard to sing, with great
  • feeling and emphasis, the beautiful and pathetic national air of
  • ‘We won’t go home till morning, We won’t go home till morning, We won’t
  • go home till morning, Till daylight doth appear.’
  • CHAPTER VIII. STRONGLY ILLUSTRATIVE OF THE POSITION, THAT THE COURSE OF
  • TRUE LOVE IS NOT A RAILWAY
  • The quiet seclusion of Dingley Dell, the presence of so many of the
  • gentler sex, and the solicitude and anxiety they evinced in his behalf,
  • were all favourable to the growth and development of those softer
  • feelings which nature had implanted deep in the bosom of Mr. Tracy
  • Tupman, and which now appeared destined to centre in one lovely object.
  • The young ladies were pretty, their manners winning, their dispositions
  • unexceptionable; but there was a dignity in the air, a touch-me-not-
  • ishness in the walk, a majesty in the eye, of the spinster aunt, to
  • which, at their time of life, they could lay no claim, which
  • distinguished her from any female on whom Mr. Tupman had ever gazed.
  • That there was something kindred in their nature, something congenial in
  • their souls, something mysteriously sympathetic in their bosoms, was
  • evident. Her name was the first that rose to Mr. Tupman’s lips as he lay
  • wounded on the grass; and her hysteric laughter was the first sound that
  • fell upon his ear when he was supported to the house. But had her
  • agitation arisen from an amiable and feminine sensibility which would
  • have been equally irrepressible in any case; or had it been called forth
  • by a more ardent and passionate feeling, which he, of all men living,
  • could alone awaken? These were the doubts which racked his brain as he
  • lay extended on the sofa; these were the doubts which he determined
  • should be at once and for ever resolved.
  • It was evening. Isabella and Emily had strolled out with Mr. Trundle;
  • the deaf old lady had fallen asleep in her chair; the snoring of the fat
  • boy, penetrated in a low and monotonous sound from the distant kitchen;
  • the buxom servants were lounging at the side door, enjoying the
  • pleasantness of the hour, and the delights of a flirtation, on first
  • principles, with certain unwieldy animals attached to the farm; and
  • there sat the interesting pair, uncared for by all, caring for none, and
  • dreaming only of themselves; there they sat, in short, like a pair of
  • carefully-folded kid gloves--bound up in each other.
  • ‘I have forgotten my flowers,’ said the spinster aunt.
  • ‘Water them now,’ said Mr. Tupman, in accents of persuasion.
  • ‘You will take cold in the evening air,’ urged the spinster aunt
  • affectionately.
  • ‘No, no,’ said Mr. Tupman, rising; ‘it will do me good. Let me accompany
  • you.’
  • The lady paused to adjust the sling in which the left arm of the youth
  • was placed, and taking his right arm led him to the garden.
  • There was a bower at the farther end, with honeysuckle, jessamine, and
  • creeping plants--one of those sweet retreats which humane men erect for
  • the accommodation of spiders.
  • The spinster aunt took up a large watering-pot which lay in one corner,
  • and was about to leave the arbour. Mr. Tupman detained her, and drew her
  • to a seat beside him.
  • ‘Miss Wardle!’ said he.
  • The spinster aunt trembled, till some pebbles which had accidentally
  • found their way into the large watering-pot shook like an infant’s
  • rattle.
  • ‘Miss Wardle,’ said Mr. Tupman, ‘you are an angel.’
  • ‘Mr. Tupman!’ exclaimed Rachael, blushing as red as the watering-pot
  • itself.
  • ‘Nay,’ said the eloquent Pickwickian--‘I know it but too well.’
  • ‘All women are angels, they say,’ murmured the lady playfully.
  • ‘Then what can you be; or to what, without presumption, can I compare
  • you?’ replied Mr. Tupman. ‘Where was the woman ever seen who resembled
  • you? Where else could I hope to find so rare a combination of excellence
  • and beauty? Where else could I seek to--Oh!’ Here Mr. Tupman paused, and
  • pressed the hand which clasped the handle of the happy watering-pot.
  • The lady turned aside her head. ‘Men are such deceivers,’ she softly
  • whispered.
  • ‘They are, they are,’ ejaculated Mr. Tupman; ‘but not all men. There
  • lives at least one being who can never change--one being who would be
  • content to devote his whole existence to your happiness--who lives but
  • in your eyes--who breathes but in your smiles--who bears the heavy
  • burden of life itself only for you.’
  • ‘Could such an individual be found--’ said the lady.
  • ‘But he _can_ be found,’ said the ardent Mr. Tupman, interposing. ‘He
  • _is_ found. He is here, Miss Wardle.’ And ere the lady was aware of his
  • intention, Mr. Tupman had sunk upon his knees at her feet.
  • ‘Mr. Tupman, rise,’ said Rachael.
  • ‘Never!’ was the valorous reply. ‘Oh, Rachael!’ He seized her passive
  • hand, and the watering-pot fell to the ground as he pressed it to his
  • lips.--‘Oh, Rachael! say you love me.’
  • ‘Mr. Tupman,’ said the spinster aunt, with averted head, ‘I can hardly
  • speak the words; but--but--you are not wholly indifferent to me.’
  • Mr. Tupman no sooner heard this avowal, than he proceeded to do what his
  • enthusiastic emotions prompted, and what, for aught we know (for we are
  • but little acquainted with such matters), people so circumstanced always
  • do. He jumped up, and, throwing his arm round the neck of the spinster
  • aunt, imprinted upon her lips numerous kisses, which after a due show of
  • struggling and resistance, she received so passively, that there is no
  • telling how many more Mr. Tupman might have bestowed, if the lady had
  • not given a very unaffected start, and exclaimed in an affrighted tone--
  • ‘Mr. Tupman, we are observed!--we are discovered!’
  • Mr. Tupman looked round. There was the fat boy, perfectly motionless,
  • with his large circular eyes staring into the arbour, but without the
  • slightest expression on his face that the most expert physiognomist
  • could have referred to astonishment, curiosity, or any other known
  • passion that agitates the human breast. Mr. Tupman gazed on the fat boy,
  • and the fat boy stared at him; and the longer Mr. Tupman observed the
  • utter vacancy of the fat boy’s countenance, the more convinced he became
  • that he either did not know, or did not understand, anything that had
  • been going forward. Under this impression, he said with great firmness--
  • ‘What do you want here, Sir?’
  • ‘Supper’s ready, sir,’ was the prompt reply.
  • ‘Have you just come here, sir?’ inquired Mr. Tupman, with a piercing
  • look.
  • ‘Just,’ replied the fat boy.
  • Mr. Tupman looked at him very hard again; but there was not a wink in
  • his eye, or a curve in his face.
  • Mr. Tupman took the arm of the spinster aunt, and walked towards the
  • house; the fat boy followed behind.
  • ‘He knows nothing of what has happened,’ he whispered.
  • ‘Nothing,’ said the spinster aunt.
  • There was a sound behind them, as of an imperfectly suppressed chuckle.
  • Mr. Tupman turned sharply round. No; it could not have been the fat boy;
  • there was not a gleam of mirth, or anything but feeding in his whole
  • visage.
  • ‘He must have been fast asleep,’ whispered Mr. Tupman.
  • ‘I have not the least doubt of it,’ replied the spinster aunt.
  • They both laughed heartily.
  • Mr. Tupman was wrong. The fat boy, for once, had not been fast asleep.
  • He was awake--wide awake--to what had been going forward.
  • The supper passed off without any attempt at a general conversation. The
  • old lady had gone to bed; Isabella Wardle devoted herself exclusively to
  • Mr. Trundle; the spinster’s attentions were reserved for Mr. Tupman; and
  • Emily’s thoughts appeared to be engrossed by some distant object--
  • possibly they were with the absent Snodgrass.
  • Eleven--twelve--one o’clock had struck, and the gentlemen had not
  • arrived. Consternation sat on every face. Could they have been waylaid
  • and robbed? Should they send men and lanterns in every direction by
  • which they could be supposed likely to have travelled home? or should
  • they--Hark! there they were. What could have made them so late? A
  • strange voice, too! To whom could it belong? They rushed into the
  • kitchen, whither the truants had repaired, and at once obtained rather
  • more than a glimmering of the real state of the case.
  • Mr. Pickwick, with his hands in his pockets and his hat cocked
  • completely over his left eye, was leaning against the dresser, shaking
  • his head from side to side, and producing a constant succession of the
  • blandest and most benevolent smiles without being moved thereunto by any
  • discernible cause or pretence whatsoever; old Mr. Wardle, with a highly-
  • inflamed countenance, was grasping the hand of a strange gentleman
  • muttering protestations of eternal friendship; Mr. Winkle, supporting
  • himself by the eight-day clock, was feebly invoking destruction upon the
  • head of any member of the family who should suggest the propriety of his
  • retiring for the night; and Mr. Snodgrass had sunk into a chair, with an
  • expression of the most abject and hopeless misery that the human mind
  • can imagine, portrayed in every lineament of his expressive face.
  • ‘Is anything the matter?’ inquired the three ladies.
  • ‘Nothing the matter,’ replied Mr. Pickwick. ‘We--we’re--all right.--I
  • say, Wardle, we’re all right, ain’t we?’
  • ‘I should think so,’ replied the jolly host.--‘My dears, here’s my
  • friend Mr. Jingle--Mr. Pickwick’s friend, Mr. Jingle, come ‘pon--little
  • visit.’
  • ‘Is anything the matter with Mr. Snodgrass, Sir?’ inquired Emily, with
  • great anxiety.
  • ‘Nothing the matter, ma’am,’ replied the stranger. ‘Cricket dinner--
  • glorious party--capital songs--old port--claret--good--very good--wine,
  • ma’am--wine.’
  • ‘It wasn’t the wine,’ murmured Mr. Snodgrass, in a broken voice. ‘It was
  • the salmon.’ (Somehow or other, it never is the wine, in these cases.)
  • ‘Hadn’t they better go to bed, ma’am?’ inquired Emma. ‘Two of the boys
  • will carry the gentlemen upstairs.’
  • ‘I won’t go to bed,’ said Mr. Winkle firmly.
  • ‘No living boy shall carry me,’ said Mr. Pickwick stoutly; and he went
  • on smiling as before.
  • ‘Hurrah!’ gasped Mr. Winkle faintly.
  • ‘Hurrah!’ echoed Mr. Pickwick, taking off his hat and dashing it on the
  • floor, and insanely casting his spectacles into the middle of the
  • kitchen. At this humorous feat he laughed outright.
  • ‘Let’s--have--‘nother--bottle,’ cried Mr. Winkle, commencing in a very
  • loud key, and ending in a very faint one. His head dropped upon his
  • breast; and, muttering his invincible determination not to go to his
  • bed, and a sanguinary regret that he had not ‘done for old Tupman’ in
  • the morning, he fell fast asleep; in which condition he was borne to his
  • apartment by two young giants under the personal superintendence of the
  • fat boy, to whose protecting care Mr. Snodgrass shortly afterwards
  • confided his own person, Mr. Pickwick accepted the proffered arm of Mr.
  • Tupman and quietly disappeared, smiling more than ever; and Mr. Wardle,
  • after taking as affectionate a leave of the whole family as if he were
  • ordered for immediate execution, consigned to Mr. Trundle the honour of
  • conveying him upstairs, and retired, with a very futile attempt to look
  • impressively solemn and dignified.
  • ‘What a shocking scene!’ said the spinster aunt.
  • ‘Dis-gusting!’ ejaculated both the young ladies.
  • ‘Dreadful--dreadful!’ said Jingle, looking very grave: he was about a
  • bottle and a half ahead of any of his companions. ‘Horrid spectacle--
  • very!’
  • ‘What a nice man!’ whispered the spinster aunt to Mr. Tupman.
  • ‘Good-looking, too!’ whispered Emily Wardle.
  • ‘Oh, decidedly,’ observed the spinster aunt.
  • Mr. Tupman thought of the widow at Rochester, and his mind was troubled.
  • The succeeding half-hour’s conversation was not of a nature to calm his
  • perturbed spirit. The new visitor was very talkative, and the number of
  • his anecdotes was only to be exceeded by the extent of his politeness.
  • Mr. Tupman felt that as Jingle’s popularity increased, he (Tupman)
  • retired further into the shade. His laughter was forced--his merriment
  • feigned; and when at last he laid his aching temples between the sheets,
  • he thought, with horrid delight, on the satisfaction it would afford him
  • to have Jingle’s head at that moment between the feather bed and the
  • mattress.
  • The indefatigable stranger rose betimes next morning, and, although his
  • companions remained in bed overpowered with the dissipation of the
  • previous night, exerted himself most successfully to promote the
  • hilarity of the breakfast-table. So successful were his efforts, that
  • even the deaf old lady insisted on having one or two of his best jokes
  • retailed through the trumpet; and even she condescended to observe to
  • the spinster aunt, that ‘He’ (meaning Jingle) ‘was an impudent young
  • fellow:’ a sentiment in which all her relations then and there present
  • thoroughly coincided.
  • It was the old lady’s habit on the fine summer mornings to repair to the
  • arbour in which Mr. Tupman had already signalised himself, in form and
  • manner following: first, the fat boy fetched from a peg behind the old
  • lady’s bedroom door, a close black satin bonnet, a warm cotton shawl,
  • and a thick stick with a capacious handle; and the old lady, having put
  • on the bonnet and shawl at her leisure, would lean one hand on the stick
  • and the other on the fat boy’s shoulder, and walk leisurely to the
  • arbour, where the fat boy would leave her to enjoy the fresh air for the
  • space of half an hour; at the expiration of which time he would return
  • and reconduct her to the house.
  • The old lady was very precise and very particular; and as this ceremony
  • had been observed for three successive summers without the slightest
  • deviation from the accustomed form, she was not a little surprised on
  • this particular morning to see the fat boy, instead of leaving the
  • arbour, walk a few paces out of it, look carefully round him in every
  • direction, and return towards her with great stealth and an air of the
  • most profound mystery.
  • The old lady was timorous--most old ladies are--and her first impression
  • was that the bloated lad was about to do her some grievous bodily harm
  • with the view of possessing himself of her loose coin. She would have
  • cried for assistance, but age and infirmity had long ago deprived her of
  • the power of screaming; she, therefore, watched his motions with
  • feelings of intense horror which were in no degree diminished by his
  • coming close up to her, and shouting in her ear in an agitated, and as
  • it seemed to her, a threatening tone--
  • ‘Missus!’
  • Now it so happened that Mr. Jingle was walking in the garden close to
  • the arbour at that moment. He too heard the shouts of ‘Missus,’ and
  • stopped to hear more. There were three reasons for his doing so. In the
  • first place, he was idle and curious; secondly, he was by no means
  • scrupulous; thirdly, and lastly, he was concealed from view by some
  • flowering shrubs. So there he stood, and there he listened.
  • ‘Missus!’ shouted the fat boy.
  • ‘Well, Joe,’ said the trembling old lady. ‘I’m sure I have been a good
  • mistress to you, Joe. You have invariably been treated very kindly. You
  • have never had too much to do; and you have always had enough to eat.’
  • This last was an appeal to the fat boy’s most sensitive feelings. He
  • seemed touched, as he replied emphatically--
  • ‘I knows I has.’
  • ‘Then what can you want to do now?’ said the old lady, gaining courage.
  • ‘I wants to make your flesh creep,’ replied the boy.
  • This sounded like a very bloodthirsty mode of showing one’s gratitude;
  • and as the old lady did not precisely understand the process by which
  • such a result was to be attained, all her former horrors returned.
  • ‘What do you think I see in this very arbour last night?’ inquired the
  • boy.
  • ‘Bless us! What?’ exclaimed the old lady, alarmed at the solemn manner
  • of the corpulent youth.
  • ‘The strange gentleman--him as had his arm hurt--a-kissin’ and huggin’--
  • ‘
  • ‘Who, Joe? None of the servants, I hope.’
  • Worser than that,’ roared the fat boy, in the old lady’s ear.
  • ‘Not one of my grandda’aters?’
  • ‘Worser than that.’
  • ‘Worse than that, Joe!’ said the old lady, who had thought this the
  • extreme limit of human atrocity. ‘Who was it, Joe? I insist upon
  • knowing.’
  • The fat boy looked cautiously round, and having concluded his survey,
  • shouted in the old lady’s ear--
  • ‘Miss Rachael.’
  • ‘What!’ said the old lady, in a shrill tone. ‘Speak louder.’
  • ‘Miss Rachael,’ roared the fat boy.
  • ‘My da’ater!’
  • The train of nods which the fat boy gave by way of assent, communicated
  • a blanc-mange like motion to his fat cheeks.
  • ‘And she suffered him!’ exclaimed the old lady. A grin stole over the
  • fat boy’s features as he said--
  • ‘I see her a-kissin’ of him agin.’
  • If Mr. Jingle, from his place of concealment, could have beheld the
  • expression which the old lady’s face assumed at this communication, the
  • probability is that a sudden burst of laughter would have betrayed his
  • close vicinity to the summer-house. He listened attentively. Fragments
  • of angry sentences such as, ‘Without my permission!’--‘At her time of
  • life’--‘Miserable old ‘ooman like me’--‘Might have waited till I was
  • dead,’ and so forth, reached his ears; and then he heard the heels of
  • the fat boy’s boots crunching the gravel, as he retired and left the old
  • lady alone.
  • It was a remarkable coincidence perhaps, but it was nevertheless a fact,
  • that Mr. Jingle within five minutes of his arrival at Manor Farm on the
  • preceding night, had inwardly resolved to lay siege to the heart of the
  • spinster aunt, without delay. He had observation enough to see, that his
  • off-hand manner was by no means disagreeable to the fair object of his
  • attack; and he had more than a strong suspicion that she possessed that
  • most desirable of all requisites, a small independence. The imperative
  • necessity of ousting his rival by some means or other, flashed quickly
  • upon him, and he immediately resolved to adopt certain proceedings
  • tending to that end and object, without a moment’s delay. Fielding tells
  • us that man is fire, and woman tow, and the Prince of Darkness sets a
  • light to ‘em. Mr. Jingle knew that young men, to spinster aunts, are as
  • lighted gas to gunpowder, and he determined to essay the effect of an
  • explosion without loss of time.
  • Full of reflections upon this important decision, he crept from his
  • place of concealment, and, under cover of the shrubs before mentioned,
  • approached the house. Fortune seemed determined to favour his design.
  • Mr. Tupman and the rest of the gentlemen left the garden by the side
  • gate just as he obtained a view of it; and the young ladies, he knew,
  • had walked out alone, soon after breakfast. The coast was clear.
  • The breakfast-parlour door was partially open. He peeped in. The
  • spinster aunt was knitting. He coughed; she looked up and smiled.
  • Hesitation formed no part of Mr. Alfred Jingle’s character. He laid his
  • finger on his lips mysteriously, walked in, and closed the door.
  • ‘Miss Wardle,’ said Mr. Jingle, with affected earnestness, ‘forgive
  • intrusion--short acquaintance--no time for ceremony--all discovered.’
  • ‘Sir!’ said the spinster aunt, rather astonished by the unexpected
  • apparition and somewhat doubtful of Mr. Jingle’s sanity.
  • ‘Hush!’ said Mr. Jingle, in a stage-whisper--‘Large boy--dumpling face--
  • round eyes--rascal!’ Here he shook his head expressively, and the
  • spinster aunt trembled with agitation.
  • ‘I presume you allude to Joseph, Sir?’ said the lady, making an effort
  • to appear composed.
  • ‘Yes, ma’am--damn that Joe!--treacherous dog, Joe--told the old lady--
  • old lady furious--wild--raving--arbour--Tupman--kissing and hugging--all
  • that sort of thing--eh, ma’am--eh?’
  • ‘Mr. Jingle,’ said the spinster aunt, ‘if you come here, Sir, to insult
  • me--’
  • ‘Not at all--by no means,’ replied the unabashed Mr. Jingle--‘overheard
  • the tale--came to warn you of your danger--tender my services--prevent
  • the hubbub. Never mind--think it an insult--leave the room’--and he
  • turned, as if to carry the threat into execution.
  • ‘What _shall_ I do!’ said the poor spinster, bursting into tears. ‘My
  • brother will be furious.’
  • ‘Of course he will,’ said Mr. Jingle pausing--‘outrageous.’
  • Oh, Mr. Jingle, what _can_ I say!’ exclaimed the spinster aunt, in
  • another flood of despair.
  • ‘Say he dreamt it,’ replied Mr. Jingle coolly.
  • A ray of comfort darted across the mind of the spinster aunt at this
  • suggestion. Mr. Jingle perceived it, and followed up his advantage.
  • ‘Pooh, pooh!--nothing more easy--blackguard boy--lovely woman--fat boy
  • horsewhipped--you believed--end of the matter--all comfortable.’
  • Whether the probability of escaping from the consequences of this ill-
  • timed discovery was delightful to the spinster’s feelings, or whether
  • the hearing herself described as a ‘lovely woman’ softened the asperity
  • of her grief, we know not. She blushed slightly, and cast a grateful
  • look on Mr. Jingle.
  • That insinuating gentleman sighed deeply, fixed his eyes on the spinster
  • aunt’s face for a couple of minutes, started melodramatically, and
  • suddenly withdrew them.
  • ‘You seem unhappy, Mr. Jingle,’ said the lady, in a plaintive voice.
  • ‘May I show my gratitude for your kind interference, by inquiring into
  • the cause, with a view, if possible, to its removal?’
  • ‘Ha!’ exclaimed Mr. Jingle, with another start--‘removal! remove my
  • unhappiness, and your love bestowed upon a man who is insensible to the
  • blessing--who even now contemplates a design upon the affections of the
  • niece of the creature who--but no; he is my friend; I will not expose
  • his vices. Miss Wardle--farewell!’ At the conclusion of this address,
  • the most consecutive he was ever known to utter, Mr. Jingle applied to
  • his eyes the remnant of a handkerchief before noticed, and turned
  • towards the door.
  • ‘Stay, Mr. Jingle!’ said the spinster aunt emphatically. ‘You have made
  • an allusion to Mr. Tupman--explain it.’
  • ‘Never!’ exclaimed Jingle, with a professional (i.e., theatrical) air.
  • ‘Never!’ and, by way of showing that he had no desire to be questioned
  • further, he drew a chair close to that of the spinster aunt and sat
  • down.
  • ‘Mr. Jingle,’ said the aunt, ‘I entreat--I implore you, if there is any
  • dreadful mystery connected with Mr. Tupman, reveal it.’
  • ‘Can I,’ said Mr. Jingle, fixing his eyes on the aunt’s face--‘can I
  • see--lovely creature--sacrificed at the shrine--heartless avarice!’ He
  • appeared to be struggling with various conflicting emotions for a few
  • seconds, and then said in a low voice-- ‘Tupman only wants your money.’
  • ‘The wretch!’ exclaimed the spinster, with energetic indignation. (Mr.
  • Jingle’s doubts were resolved. She _had_ money.)
  • ‘More than that,’ said Jingle--‘loves another.’
  • ‘Another!’ ejaculated the spinster. ‘Who?’
  • Short girl--black eyes--niece Emily.’
  • There was a pause.
  • Now, if there was one individual in the whole world, of whom the
  • spinster aunt entertained a mortal and deep-rooted jealousy, it was this
  • identical niece. The colour rushed over her face and neck, and she
  • tossed her head in silence with an air of ineffable contempt. At last,
  • biting her thin lips, and bridling up, she said--
  • ‘It can’t be. I won’t believe it.’
  • ‘Watch ‘em,’ said Jingle.
  • ‘I will,’ said the aunt.
  • ‘Watch his looks.’
  • ‘I will.’
  • ‘His whispers.’
  • ‘I will.’
  • ‘He’ll sit next her at table.’
  • ‘Let him.’
  • ‘He’ll flatter her.’
  • ‘Let him.’
  • ‘He’ll pay her every possible attention.’
  • ‘Let him.’
  • ‘And he’ll cut you.’
  • ‘Cut _me_!’ screamed the spinster aunt. ‘_he_ cut _me_; will he!’ and
  • she trembled with rage and disappointment.
  • ‘You will convince yourself?’ said Jingle.
  • ‘I will.’
  • ‘You’ll show your spirit?’
  • ‘I will.’
  • You’ll not have him afterwards?’
  • ‘Never.’
  • ‘You’ll take somebody else?’
  • Yes.’
  • ‘You shall.’
  • Mr. Jingle fell on his knees, remained thereupon for five minutes
  • thereafter; and rose the accepted lover of the spinster aunt--
  • conditionally upon Mr. Tupman’s perjury being made clear and manifest.
  • The burden of proof lay with Mr. Alfred Jingle; and he produced his
  • evidence that very day at dinner. The spinster aunt could hardly believe
  • her eyes. Mr. Tracy Tupman was established at Emily’s side, ogling,
  • whispering, and smiling, in opposition to Mr. Snodgrass. Not a word, not
  • a look, not a glance, did he bestow upon his heart’s pride of the
  • evening before.
  • ‘Damn that boy!’ thought old Mr. Wardle to himself.--He had heard the
  • story from his mother. ‘Damn that boy! He must have been asleep. It’s
  • all imagination.’
  • ‘Traitor!’ thought the spinster aunt. ‘Dear Mr. Jingle was not deceiving
  • me. Ugh! how I hate the wretch!’
  • The following conversation may serve to explain to our readers this
  • apparently unaccountable alteration of deportment on the part of Mr.
  • Tracy Tupman.
  • The time was evening; the scene the garden. There were two figures
  • walking in a side path; one was rather short and stout; the other tall
  • and slim. They were Mr. Tupman and Mr. Jingle. The stout figure
  • commenced the dialogue.
  • ‘How did I do it?’ he inquired.
  • ‘Splendid--capital--couldn’t act better myself--you must repeat the part
  • to-morrow--every evening till further notice.’
  • ‘Does Rachael still wish it?’
  • ‘Of course--she don’t like it--but must be done--avert suspicion--afraid
  • of her brother--says there’s no help for it--only a few days more--when
  • old folks blinded--crown your happiness.’
  • ‘Any message?’
  • ‘Love--best love--kindest regards--unalterable affection. Can I say
  • anything for you?’
  • ‘My dear fellow,’ replied the unsuspicious Mr. Tupman, fervently
  • grasping his ‘friend’s’ hand--‘carry my best love--say how hard I find
  • it to dissemble--say anything that’s kind: but add how sensible I am of
  • the necessity of the suggestion she made to me, through you, this
  • morning. Say I applaud her wisdom and admire her discretion.’
  • I will. Anything more?’
  • ‘Nothing, only add how ardently I long for the time when I may call her
  • mine, and all dissimulation may be unnecessary.’
  • ‘Certainly, certainly. Anything more?’
  • ‘Oh, my friend!’ said poor Mr. Tupman, again grasping the hand of his
  • companion, ‘receive my warmest thanks for your disinterested kindness;
  • and forgive me if I have ever, even in thought, done you the injustice
  • of supposing that you could stand in my way. My dear friend, can I ever
  • repay you?’
  • ‘Don’t talk of it,’ replied Mr. Jingle. He stopped short, as if suddenly
  • recollecting something, and said--‘By the bye--can’t spare ten pounds,
  • can you?--very particular purpose--pay you in three days.’
  • ‘I dare say I can,’ replied Mr. Tupman, in the fulness of his heart.
  • ‘Three days, you say?’
  • ‘Only three days--all over then--no more difficulties.’ Mr. Tupman
  • counted the money into his companion’s hand, and he dropped it piece by
  • piece into his pocket, as they walked towards the house.
  • ‘Be careful,’ said Mr. Jingle--‘not a look.’
  • ‘Not a wink,’ said Mr. Tupman.
  • ‘Not a syllable.’
  • ‘Not a whisper.’
  • ‘All your attentions to the niece--rather rude, than otherwise, to the
  • aunt--only way of deceiving the old ones.’
  • ‘I’ll take care,’ said Mr. Tupman aloud.
  • ‘And _I’ll_ take care,’ said Mr. Jingle internally; and they entered the
  • house.
  • The scene of that afternoon was repeated that evening, and on the three
  • afternoons and evenings next ensuing. On the fourth, the host was in
  • high spirits, for he had satisfied himself that there was no ground for
  • the charge against Mr. Tupman. So was Mr. Tupman, for Mr. Jingle had
  • told him that his affair would soon be brought to a crisis. So was Mr.
  • Pickwick, for he was seldom otherwise. So was not Mr. Snodgrass, for he
  • had grown jealous of Mr. Tupman. So was the old lady, for she had been
  • winning at whist. So were Mr. Jingle and Miss Wardle, for reasons of
  • sufficient importance in this eventful history to be narrated in another
  • chapter.
  • CHAPTER IX. A DISCOVERY AND A CHASE
  • The supper was ready laid, the chairs were drawn round the table,
  • bottles, jugs, and glasses were arranged upon the sideboard, and
  • everything betokened the approach of the most convivial period in the
  • whole four-and-twenty hours.
  • ‘Where’s Rachael?’ said Mr. Wardle.
  • ‘Ay, and Jingle?’ added Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Dear me,’ said the host, ‘I wonder I haven’t missed him before. Why, I
  • don’t think I’ve heard his voice for two hours at least. Emily, my dear,
  • ring the bell.’
  • The bell was rung, and the fat boy appeared.
  • ‘Where’s Miss Rachael?’ He couldn’t say.
  • ‘Where’s Mr. Jingle, then?’ He didn’t know. Everybody looked surprised.
  • It was late--past eleven o’clock. Mr. Tupman laughed in his sleeve. They
  • were loitering somewhere, talking about him. Ha, ha! capital notion
  • that--funny.
  • ‘Never mind,’ said Wardle, after a short pause. ‘They’ll turn up
  • presently, I dare say. I never wait supper for anybody.’
  • ‘Excellent rule, that,’ said Mr. Pickwick--‘admirable.’
  • ‘Pray, sit down,’ said the host.
  • ‘Certainly’ said Mr. Pickwick; and down they sat.
  • There was a gigantic round of cold beef on the table, and Mr. Pickwick
  • was supplied with a plentiful portion of it. He had raised his fork to
  • his lips, and was on the very point of opening his mouth for the
  • reception of a piece of beef, when the hum of many voices suddenly arose
  • in the kitchen. He paused, and laid down his fork. Mr. Wardle paused
  • too, and insensibly released his hold of the carving-knife, which
  • remained inserted in the beef. He looked at Mr. Pickwick. Mr. Pickwick
  • looked at him.
  • Heavy footsteps were heard in the passage; the parlour door was suddenly
  • burst open; and the man who had cleaned Mr. Pickwick’s boots on his
  • first arrival, rushed into the room, followed by the fat boy and all the
  • domestics.
  • ‘What the devil’s the meaning of this?’ exclaimed the host.
  • ‘The kitchen chimney ain’t a-fire, is it, Emma?’ inquired the old lady.
  • ‘Lor, grandma! No,’ screamed both the young ladies.
  • ‘What’s the matter?’ roared the master of the house.
  • The man gasped for breath, and faintly ejaculated--
  • ‘They ha’ gone, mas’r!--gone right clean off, Sir!’ (At this juncture
  • Mr. Tupman was observed to lay down his knife and fork, and to turn very
  • pale.)
  • ‘Who’s gone?’ said Mr. Wardle fiercely.
  • ‘Mus’r Jingle and Miss Rachael, in a po’-chay, from Blue Lion,
  • Muggleton. I was there; but I couldn’t stop ‘em; so I run off to tell
  • ‘ee.’
  • ‘I paid his expenses!’ said Mr. Tupman, jumping up frantically. ‘He’s
  • got ten pounds of mine!--stop him!--he’s swindled me!--I won’t bear it!-
  • -I’ll have justice, Pickwick!--I won’t stand it!’ and with sundry
  • incoherent exclamations of the like nature, the unhappy gentleman spun
  • round and round the apartment, in a transport of frenzy.
  • ‘Lord preserve us!’ ejaculated Mr. Pickwick, eyeing the extraordinary
  • gestures of his friend with terrified surprise. ‘He’s gone mad! What
  • shall we do?’
  • Do!’ said the stout old host, who regarded only the last words of the
  • sentence. ‘Put the horse in the gig! I’ll get a chaise at the Lion, and
  • follow ‘em instantly. Where?’--he exclaimed, as the man ran out to
  • execute the commission--‘where’s that villain, Joe?’
  • ‘Here I am! but I hain’t a willin,’ replied a voice. It was the fat
  • boy’s.
  • ‘Let me get at him, Pickwick,’ cried Wardle, as he rushed at the ill-
  • starred youth. ‘He was bribed by that scoundrel, Jingle, to put me on a
  • wrong scent, by telling a cock-and-bull story of my sister and your
  • friend Tupman!’ (Here Mr. Tupman sank into a chair.) ‘Let me get at
  • him!’
  • ‘Don’t let him!’ screamed all the women, above whose exclamations the
  • blubbering of the fat boy was distinctly audible.
  • ‘I won’t be held!’ cried the old man. ‘Mr. Winkle, take your hands off.
  • Mr. Pickwick, let me go, sir!’
  • It was a beautiful sight, in that moment of turmoil and confusion, to
  • behold the placid and philosophical expression of Mr. Pickwick’s face,
  • albeit somewhat flushed with exertion, as he stood with his arms firmly
  • clasped round the extensive waist of their corpulent host, thus
  • restraining the impetuosity of his passion, while the fat boy was
  • scratched, and pulled, and pushed from the room by all the females
  • congregated therein. He had no sooner released his hold, than the man
  • entered to announce that the gig was ready.
  • ‘Don’t let him go alone!’ screamed the females. ‘He’ll kill somebody!’
  • ‘I’ll go with him,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘You’re a good fellow, Pickwick,’ said the host, grasping his hand.
  • ‘Emma, give Mr. Pickwick a shawl to tie round his neck--make haste. Look
  • after your grandmother, girls; she has fainted away. Now then, are you
  • ready?’
  • Mr. Pickwick’s mouth and chin having been hastily enveloped in a large
  • shawl, his hat having been put on his head, and his greatcoat thrown
  • over his arm, he replied in the affirmative.
  • They jumped into the gig. ‘Give her her head, Tom,’ cried the host; and
  • away they went, down the narrow lanes; jolting in and out of the cart-
  • ruts, and bumping up against the hedges on either side, as if they would
  • go to pieces every moment.
  • ‘How much are they ahead?’ shouted Wardle, as they drove up to the door
  • of the Blue Lion, round which a little crowd had collected, late as it
  • was.
  • ‘Not above three-quarters of an hour,’ was everybody’s reply.
  • ‘Chaise-and-four directly!--out with ‘em! Put up the gig afterwards.’
  • ‘Now, boys!’ cried the landlord--‘chaise-and-four out--make haste--look
  • alive there!’
  • Away ran the hostlers and the boys. The lanterns glimmered, as the men
  • ran to and fro; the horses’ hoofs clattered on the uneven paving of the
  • yard; the chaise rumbled as it was drawn out of the coach-house; and all
  • was noise and bustle.
  • ‘Now then!--is that chaise coming out to-night?’ cried Wardle.
  • ‘Coming down the yard now, Sir,’ replied the hostler.
  • Out came the chaise--in went the horses--on sprang the boys--in got the
  • travellers.
  • ‘Mind--the seven-mile stage in less than half an hour!’ shouted Wardle.
  • ‘Off with you!’
  • The boys applied whip and spur, the waiters shouted, the hostlers
  • cheered, and away they went, fast and furiously.
  • ‘Pretty situation,’ thought Mr. Pickwick, when he had had a moment’s
  • time for reflection. ‘Pretty situation for the general chairman of the
  • Pickwick Club. Damp chaise--strange horses--fifteen miles an hour--and
  • twelve o’clock at night!’
  • For the first three or four miles, not a word was spoken by either of
  • the gentlemen, each being too much immersed in his own reflections to
  • address any observations to his companion. When they had gone over that
  • much ground, however, and the horses getting thoroughly warmed began to
  • do their work in really good style, Mr. Pickwick became too much
  • exhilarated with the rapidity of the motion, to remain any longer
  • perfectly mute.
  • ‘We’re sure to catch them, I think,’ said he.
  • ‘Hope so,’ replied his companion.
  • ‘Fine night,’ said Mr. Pickwick, looking up at the moon, which was
  • shining brightly.
  • ‘So much the worse,’ returned Wardle; ‘for they’ll have had all the
  • advantage of the moonlight to get the start of us, and we shall lose it.
  • It will have gone down in another hour.’
  • ‘It will be rather unpleasant going at this rate in the dark, won’t it?’
  • inquired Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘I dare say it will,’ replied his friend dryly.
  • Mr. Pickwick’s temporary excitement began to sober down a little, as he
  • reflected upon the inconveniences and dangers of the expedition in which
  • he had so thoughtlessly embarked. He was roused by a loud shouting of
  • the post-boy on the leader.
  • ‘Yo-yo-yo-yo-yoe!’ went the first boy.
  • ‘Yo-yo-yo-yoe!’ went the second.
  • ‘Yo-yo-yo-yoe!’ chimed in old Wardle himself, most lustily, with his
  • head and half his body out of the coach window.
  • ‘Yo-yo-yo-yoe!’ shouted Mr. Pickwick, taking up the burden of the cry,
  • though he had not the slightest notion of its meaning or object. And
  • amidst the yo-yoing of the whole four, the chaise stopped.
  • ‘What’s the matter?’ inquired Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘There’s a gate here,’ replied old Wardle. ‘We shall hear something of
  • the fugitives.’
  • After a lapse of five minutes, consumed in incessant knocking and
  • shouting, an old man in his shirt and trousers emerged from the
  • turnpike-house, and opened the gate.
  • ‘How long is it since a post-chaise went through here?’ inquired Mr.
  • Wardle.
  • ‘How long?’
  • ‘Ah!’
  • ‘Why, I don’t rightly know. It worn’t a long time ago, nor it worn’t a
  • short time ago--just between the two, perhaps.’
  • ‘Has any chaise been by at all?’
  • ‘Oh, yes, there’s been a chay by.’
  • ‘How long ago, my friend,’ interposed Mr. Pickwick; ‘an hour?’
  • ‘Ah, I dare say it might be,’ replied the man.
  • ‘Or two hours?’ inquired the post--boy on the wheeler.
  • ‘Well, I shouldn’t wonder if it was,’ returned the old man doubtfully.
  • ‘Drive on, boys,’ cried the testy old gentleman; ‘don’t waste any more
  • time with that old idiot!’
  • ‘Idiot!’ exclaimed the old man with a grin, as he stood in the middle of
  • the road with the gate half-closed, watching the chaise which rapidly
  • diminished in the increasing distance. ‘No--not much o’ that either;
  • you’ve lost ten minutes here, and gone away as wise as you came, arter
  • all. If every man on the line as has a guinea give him, earns it half as
  • well, you won’t catch t’other chay this side Mich’lmas, old short-and-
  • fat.’ And with another prolonged grin, the old man closed the gate, re-
  • entered his house, and bolted the door after him.
  • Meanwhile the chaise proceeded, without any slackening of pace, towards
  • the conclusion of the stage. The moon, as Wardle had foretold, was
  • rapidly on the wane; large tiers of dark, heavy clouds, which had been
  • gradually overspreading the sky for some time past, now formed one black
  • mass overhead; and large drops of rain which pattered every now and then
  • against the windows of the chaise, seemed to warn the travellers of the
  • rapid approach of a stormy night. The wind, too, which was directly
  • against them, swept in furious gusts down the narrow road, and howled
  • dismally through the trees which skirted the pathway. Mr. Pickwick drew
  • his coat closer about him, coiled himself more snugly up into the corner
  • of the chaise, and fell into a sound sleep, from which he was only
  • awakened by the stopping of the vehicle, the sound of the hostler’s
  • bell, and a loud cry of ‘Horses on directly!’
  • But here another delay occurred. The boys were sleeping with such
  • mysterious soundness, that it took five minutes a-piece to wake them.
  • The hostler had somehow or other mislaid the key of the stable, and even
  • when that was found, two sleepy helpers put the wrong harness on the
  • wrong horses, and the whole process of harnessing had to be gone through
  • afresh. Had Mr. Pickwick been alone, these multiplied obstacles would
  • have completely put an end to the pursuit at once, but old Wardle was
  • not to be so easily daunted; and he laid about him with such hearty
  • good-will, cuffing this man, and pushing that; strapping a buckle here,
  • and taking in a link there, that the chaise was ready in a much shorter
  • time than could reasonably have been expected, under so many
  • difficulties.
  • They resumed their journey; and certainly the prospect before them was
  • by no means encouraging. The stage was fifteen miles long, the night was
  • dark, the wind high, and the rain pouring in torrents. It was impossible
  • to make any great way against such obstacles united; it was hard upon
  • one o’clock already; and nearly two hours were consumed in getting to
  • the end of the stage. Here, however, an object presented itself, which
  • rekindled their hopes, and reanimated their drooping spirits.
  • ‘When did this chaise come in?’ cried old Wardle, leaping out of his own
  • vehicle, and pointing to one covered with wet mud, which was standing in
  • the yard.
  • ‘Not a quarter of an hour ago, sir,’ replied the hostler, to whom the
  • question was addressed.
  • ‘Lady and gentleman?’ inquired Wardle, almost breathless with
  • impatience.
  • ‘Yes, sir.’
  • ‘Tall gentleman--dress-coat--long legs--thin body?’
  • ‘Yes, sir.’
  • ‘Elderly lady--thin face--rather skinny--eh?’
  • ‘Yes, sir.’
  • ‘By heavens, it’s the couple, Pickwick,’ exclaimed the old gentleman.
  • ‘Would have been here before,’ said the hostler, ‘but they broke a
  • trace.’
  • ‘’Tis them!’ said Wardle, ‘it is, by Jove! Chaise-and-four instantly! We
  • shall catch them yet before they reach the next stage. A guinea a-piece,
  • boys-be alive there--bustle about--there’s good fellows.’
  • And with such admonitions as these, the old gentleman ran up and down
  • the yard, and bustled to and fro, in a state of excitement which
  • communicated itself to Mr. Pickwick also; and under the influence of
  • which, that gentleman got himself into complicated entanglements with
  • harness, and mixed up with horses and wheels of chaises, in the most
  • surprising manner, firmly believing that by so doing he was materially
  • forwarding the preparations for their resuming their journey.
  • ‘Jump in--jump in!’ cried old Wardle, climbing into the chaise, pulling
  • up the steps, and slamming the door after him. ‘Come along! Make haste!’
  • And before Mr. Pickwick knew precisely what he was about, he felt
  • himself forced in at the other door, by one pull from the old gentleman
  • and one push from the hostler; and off they were again.
  • ‘Ah! we are moving now,’ said the old gentleman exultingly. They were
  • indeed, as was sufficiently testified to Mr. Pickwick, by his constant
  • collision either with the hard wood-work of the chaise, or the body of
  • his companion.
  • ‘Hold up!’ said the stout old Mr. Wardle, as Mr. Pickwick dived head
  • foremost into his capacious waistcoat.
  • ‘I never did feel such a jolting in my life,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Never mind,’ replied his companion, ‘it will soon be over. Steady,
  • steady.’
  • Mr. Pickwick planted himself into his own corner, as firmly as he could;
  • and on whirled the chaise faster than ever.
  • They had travelled in this way about three miles, when Mr. Wardle, who
  • had been looking out of the Window for two or three minutes, suddenly
  • drew in his face, covered with splashes, and exclaimed in breathless
  • eagerness--
  • ‘Here they are!’
  • Mr. Pickwick thrust his head out of his window. Yes: there was a chaise-
  • and-four, a short distance before them, dashing along at full gallop.
  • ‘Go on, go on,’ almost shrieked the old gentleman. ‘Two guineas a-piece,
  • boys--don’t let ‘em gain on us--keep it up--keep it up.’
  • The horses in the first chaise started on at their utmost speed; and
  • those in Mr. Wardle’s galloped furiously behind them.
  • ‘I see his head,’ exclaimed the choleric old man; ‘damme, I see his
  • head.’
  • ‘So do I’ said Mr. Pickwick; ‘that’s he.’
  • Mr. Pickwick was not mistaken. The countenance of Mr. Jingle, completely
  • coated with mud thrown up by the wheels, was plainly discernible at the
  • window of his chaise; and the motion of his arm, which was waving
  • violently towards the postillions, denoted that he was encouraging them
  • to increased exertion.
  • The interest was intense. Fields, trees, and hedges, seemed to rush past
  • them with the velocity of a whirlwind, so rapid was the pace at which
  • they tore along. They were close by the side of the first chaise.
  • Jingle’s voice could be plainly heard, even above the din of the wheels,
  • urging on the boys. Old Mr. Wardle foamed with rage and excitement. He
  • roared out scoundrels and villains by the dozen, clenched his fist and
  • shook it expressively at the object of his indignation; but Mr. Jingle
  • only answered with a contemptuous smile, and replied to his menaces by a
  • shout of triumph, as his horses, answering the increased application of
  • whip and spur, broke into a faster gallop, and left the pursuers behind.
  • Mr. Pickwick had just drawn in his head, and Mr. Wardle, exhausted with
  • shouting, had done the same, when a tremendous jolt threw them forward
  • against the front of the vehicle. There was a sudden bump--a loud crash-
  • -away rolled a wheel, and over went the chaise.
  • After a very few seconds of bewilderment and confusion, in which nothing
  • but the plunging of horses, and breaking of glass could be made out, Mr.
  • Pickwick felt himself violently pulled out from among the ruins of the
  • chaise; and as soon as he had gained his feet, extricated his head from
  • the skirts of his greatcoat, which materially impeded the usefulness of
  • his spectacles, the full disaster of the case met his view.
  • Old Mr. Wardle without a hat, and his clothes torn in several places,
  • stood by his side, and the fragments of the chaise lay scattered at
  • their feet. The post-boys, who had succeeded in cutting the traces, were
  • standing, disfigured with mud and disordered by hard riding, by the
  • horses’ heads. About a hundred yards in advance was the other chaise,
  • which had pulled up on hearing the crash. The postillions, each with a
  • broad grin convulsing his countenance, were viewing the adverse party
  • from their saddles, and Mr. Jingle was contemplating the wreck from the
  • coach window, with evident satisfaction. The day was just breaking, and
  • the whole scene was rendered perfectly visible by the grey light of the
  • morning.
  • ‘Hollo!’ shouted the shameless Jingle, ‘anybody damaged?--elderly
  • gentlemen--no light weights--dangerous work--very.’
  • ‘You’re a rascal,’ roared Wardle.
  • ‘Ha! ha!’ replied Jingle; and then he added, with a knowing wink, and a
  • jerk of the thumb towards the interior of the chaise--‘I say--she’s very
  • well--desires her compliments--begs you won’t trouble yourself--love to
  • _Tuppy_--won’t you get up behind?--drive on, boys.’
  • The postillions resumed their proper attitudes, and away rattled the
  • chaise, Mr. Jingle fluttering in derision a white handkerchief from the
  • coach window.
  • Nothing in the whole adventure, not even the upset, had disturbed the
  • calm and equable current of Mr. Pickwick’s temper. The villainy,
  • however, which could first borrow money of his faithful follower, and
  • then abbreviate his name to ‘Tuppy,’ was more than he could patiently
  • bear. He drew his breath hard, and coloured up to the very tips of his
  • spectacles, as he said, slowly and emphatically--
  • ‘If ever I meet that man again, I’ll--’
  • ‘Yes, yes,’ interrupted Wardle, ‘that’s all very well; but while we
  • stand talking here, they’ll get their licence, and be married in
  • London.’
  • Mr. Pickwick paused, bottled up his vengeance, and corked it down. ‘How
  • far is it to the next stage?’ inquired Mr. Wardle, of one of the boys.
  • ‘Six mile, ain’t it, Tom?’
  • ‘Rayther better.’
  • ‘Rayther better nor six mile, Sir.’
  • ‘Can’t be helped,’ said Wardle, ‘we must walk it, Pickwick.’
  • ‘No help for it,’ replied that truly great man.
  • So sending forward one of the boys on horseback, to procure a fresh
  • chaise and horses, and leaving the other behind to take care of the
  • broken one, Mr. Pickwick and Mr. Wardle set manfully forward on the
  • walk, first tying their shawls round their necks, and slouching down
  • their hats to escape as much as possible from the deluge of rain, which
  • after a slight cessation had again begun to pour heavily down.
  • CHAPTER X. CLEARING UP ALL DOUBTS (IF ANY EXISTED) OF THE
  • DISINTERESTEDNESS OF MR. A. JINGLE’S CHARACTER
  • There are in London several old inns, once the headquarters of
  • celebrated coaches in the days when coaches performed their journeys in
  • a graver and more solemn manner than they do in these times; but which
  • have now degenerated into little more than the abiding and booking-
  • places of country wagons. The reader would look in vain for any of these
  • ancient hostelries, among the Golden Crosses and Bull and Mouths, which
  • rear their stately fronts in the improved streets of London. If he would
  • light upon any of these old places, he must direct his steps to the
  • obscurer quarters of the town, and there in some secluded nooks he will
  • find several, still standing with a kind of gloomy sturdiness, amidst
  • the modern innovations which surround them.
  • In the Borough especially, there still remain some half-dozen old inns,
  • which have preserved their external features unchanged, and which have
  • escaped alike the rage for public improvement and the encroachments of
  • private speculation. Great, rambling queer old places they are, with
  • galleries, and passages, and staircases, wide enough and antiquated
  • enough to furnish materials for a hundred ghost stories, supposing we
  • should ever be reduced to the lamentable necessity of inventing any, and
  • that the world should exist long enough to exhaust the innumerable
  • veracious legends connected with old London Bridge, and its adjacent
  • neighbourhood on the Surrey side.
  • It was in the yard of one of these inns--of no less celebrated a one
  • than the White Hart--that a man was busily employed in brushing the dirt
  • off a pair of boots, early on the morning succeeding the events narrated
  • in the last chapter. He was habited in a coarse, striped waistcoat, with
  • black calico sleeves, and blue glass buttons; drab breeches and
  • leggings. A bright red handkerchief was wound in a very loose and
  • unstudied style round his neck, and an old white hat was carelessly
  • thrown on one side of his head. There were two rows of boots before him,
  • one cleaned and the other dirty, and at every addition he made to the
  • clean row, he paused from his work, and contemplated its results with
  • evident satisfaction.
  • The yard presented none of that bustle and activity which are the usual
  • characteristics of a large coach inn. Three or four lumbering wagons,
  • each with a pile of goods beneath its ample canopy, about the height of
  • the second-floor window of an ordinary house, were stowed away beneath a
  • lofty roof which extended over one end of the yard; and another, which
  • was probably to commence its journey that morning, was drawn out into
  • the open space. A double tier of bedroom galleries, with old clumsy
  • balustrades, ran round two sides of the straggling area, and a double
  • row of bells to correspond, sheltered from the weather by a little
  • sloping roof, hung over the door leading to the bar and coffee-room. Two
  • or three gigs and chaise-carts were wheeled up under different little
  • sheds and pent-houses; and the occasional heavy tread of a cart-horse,
  • or rattling of a chain at the farther end of the yard, announced to
  • anybody who cared about the matter, that the stable lay in that
  • direction. When we add that a few boys in smock-frocks were lying asleep
  • on heavy packages, wool-packs, and other articles that were scattered
  • about on heaps of straw, we have described as fully as need be the
  • general appearance of the yard of the White Hart Inn, High Street,
  • Borough, on the particular morning in question.
  • A loud ringing of one of the bells was followed by the appearance of a
  • smart chambermaid in the upper sleeping gallery, who, after tapping at
  • one of the doors, and receiving a request from within, called over the
  • balustrades--
  • ‘Sam!’
  • ‘Hollo,’ replied the man with the white hat.
  • ‘Number twenty-two wants his boots.’
  • ‘Ask number twenty-two, vether he’ll have ‘em now, or vait till he gets
  • ‘em,’ was the reply.
  • ‘Come, don’t be a fool, Sam,’ said the girl coaxingly, ‘the gentleman
  • wants his boots directly.’
  • ‘Well, you _are_ a nice young ‘ooman for a musical party, you are,’ said
  • the boot-cleaner. ‘Look at these here boots--eleven pair o’ boots; and
  • one shoe as belongs to number six, with the wooden leg. The eleven boots
  • is to be called at half-past eight and the shoe at nine. Who’s number
  • twenty-two, that’s to put all the others out? No, no; reg’lar rotation,
  • as Jack Ketch said, ven he tied the men up. Sorry to keep you a-waitin’,
  • Sir, but I’ll attend to you directly.’
  • Saying which, the man in the white hat set to work upon a top-boot with
  • increased assiduity.
  • There was another loud ring; and the bustling old landlady of the White
  • Hart made her appearance in the opposite gallery.
  • ‘Sam,’ cried the landlady, ‘where’s that lazy, idle--why, Sam--oh, there
  • you are; why don’t you answer?’
  • ‘Vouldn’t be gen-teel to answer, till you’d done talking,’ replied Sam
  • gruffly.
  • ‘Here, clean these shoes for number seventeen directly, and take ‘em to
  • private sitting-room, number five, first floor.’
  • The landlady flung a pair of lady’s shoes into the yard, and bustled
  • away.
  • ‘Number five,’ said Sam, as he picked up the shoes, and taking a piece
  • of chalk from his pocket, made a memorandum of their destination on the
  • soles--‘Lady’s shoes and private sittin’-room! I suppose she didn’t come
  • in the vagin.’
  • ‘She came in early this morning,’ cried the girl, who was still leaning
  • over the railing of the gallery, ‘with a gentleman in a hackney-coach,
  • and it’s him as wants his boots, and you’d better do ‘em, that’s all
  • about it.’
  • ‘Vy didn’t you say so before,’ said Sam, with great indignation,
  • singling out the boots in question from the heap before him. ‘For all I
  • know’d he was one o’ the regular threepennies. Private room! and a lady
  • too! If he’s anything of a gen’l’m’n, he’s vurth a shillin’ a day, let
  • alone the arrands.’
  • Stimulated by this inspiring reflection, Mr. Samuel brushed away with
  • such hearty good-will, that in a few minutes the boots and shoes, with a
  • polish which would have struck envy to the soul of the amiable Mr.
  • Warren (for they used Day & Martin at the White Hart), had arrived at
  • the door of number five.
  • ‘Come in,’ said a man’s voice, in reply to Sam’s rap at the door. Sam
  • made his best bow, and stepped into the presence of a lady and gentleman
  • seated at breakfast. Having officiously deposited the gentleman’s boots
  • right and left at his feet, and the lady’s shoes right and left at hers,
  • he backed towards the door.
  • ‘Boots,’ said the gentleman.
  • ‘Sir,’ said Sam, closing the door, and keeping his hand on the knob of
  • the lock.
  • ‘Do you know--what’s a-name--Doctors’ Commons?’
  • ‘Yes, Sir.’
  • ‘Where is it?’
  • ‘Paul’s Churchyard, Sir; low archway on the carriage side, bookseller’s
  • at one corner, hotel on the other, and two porters in the middle as
  • touts for licences.’
  • ‘Touts for licences!’ said the gentleman.
  • ‘Touts for licences,’ replied Sam. ‘Two coves in vhite aprons--touches
  • their hats ven you walk in--“Licence, Sir, licence?” Queer sort, them,
  • and their mas’rs, too, sir--Old Bailey Proctors--and no mistake.’
  • ‘What do they do?’ inquired the gentleman.
  • ‘Do! You, Sir! That ain’t the worst on it, neither. They puts things
  • into old gen’l’m’n’s heads as they never dreamed of. My father, Sir, wos
  • a coachman. A widower he wos, and fat enough for anything--uncommon fat,
  • to be sure. His missus dies, and leaves him four hundred pound. Down he
  • goes to the Commons, to see the lawyer and draw the blunt--very smart--
  • top boots on--nosegay in his button-hole--broad-brimmed tile--green
  • shawl--quite the gen’l’m’n. Goes through the archvay, thinking how he
  • should inwest the money--up comes the touter, touches his hat--“Licence,
  • Sir, licence?”--“What’s that?” says my father.--“Licence, Sir,” says
  • he.--“What licence?” says my father.--“Marriage licence,” says the
  • touter.--“Dash my veskit,” says my father, “I never thought o’ that.”--
  • “I think you wants one, Sir,” says the touter. My father pulls up, and
  • thinks a bit--“No,” says he, “damme, I’m too old, b’sides, I’m a many
  • sizes too large,” says he.--“Not a bit on it, Sir,” says the touter.--
  • “Think not?” says my father.--“I’m sure not,” says he; “we married a
  • gen’l’m’n twice your size, last Monday.”--“Did you, though?” said my
  • father.--“To be sure, we did,” says the touter, “you’re a babby to him--
  • this way, sir--this way!”--and sure enough my father walks arter him,
  • like a tame monkey behind a horgan, into a little back office, vere a
  • teller sat among dirty papers, and tin boxes, making believe he was
  • busy. “Pray take a seat, vile I makes out the affidavit, Sir,” says the
  • lawyer.--“Thank’ee, Sir,” says my father, and down he sat, and stared
  • with all his eyes, and his mouth vide open, at the names on the boxes.
  • “What’s your name, Sir,” says the lawyer.--“Tony Weller,” says my
  • father.--“Parish?” says the lawyer. “Belle Savage,” says my father; for
  • he stopped there wen he drove up, and he know’d nothing about parishes,
  • he didn’t.--“And what’s the lady’s name?” says the lawyer. My father was
  • struck all of a heap. “Blessed if I know,” says he.--“Not know!” says
  • the lawyer.--“No more nor you do,” says my father; “can’t I put that in
  • arterwards?”--“Impossible!” says the lawyer.--“Wery well,” says my
  • father, after he’d thought a moment, “put down Mrs. Clarke.”--“What
  • Clarke?” says the lawyer, dipping his pen in the ink.--“Susan Clarke,
  • Markis o’ Granby, Dorking,” says my father; “she’ll have me, if I ask. I
  • des-say--I never said nothing to her, but she’ll have me, I know.” The
  • licence was made out, and she _did_ have him, and what’s more she’s got
  • him now; and I never had any of the four hundred pound, worse luck. Beg
  • your pardon, sir,’ said Sam, when he had concluded, ‘but wen I gets on
  • this here grievance, I runs on like a new barrow with the wheel
  • greased.’ Having said which, and having paused for an instant to see
  • whether he was wanted for anything more, Sam left the room.
  • ‘Half-past nine--just the time--off at once;’ said the gentleman, whom
  • we need hardly introduce as Mr. Jingle.
  • ‘Time--for what?’ said the spinster aunt coquettishly.
  • ‘Licence, dearest of angels--give notice at the church--call you mine,
  • to-morrow’--said Mr. Jingle, and he squeezed the spinster aunt’s hand.
  • ‘The licence!’ said Rachael, blushing.
  • ‘The licence,’ repeated Mr. Jingle--
  • ‘In hurry, post-haste for a licence, In hurry, ding dong I come back.’
  • ‘How you run on,’ said Rachael.
  • ‘Run on--nothing to the hours, days, weeks, months, years, when we’re
  • united--run on--they’ll fly on--bolt--mizzle--steam-engine--thousand-
  • horse power--nothing to it.’
  • ‘Can’t--can’t we be married before to-morrow morning?’ inquired Rachael.
  • ‘Impossible--can’t be--notice at the church--leave the licence to-day--
  • ceremony come off to-morrow.’
  • I am so terrified, lest my brother should discover us!’ said Rachael.
  • ‘Discover--nonsense--too much shaken by the break-down--besides--extreme
  • caution--gave up the post-chaise--walked on--took a hackney-coach--came
  • to the Borough--last place in the world that he’d look in--ha! ha!--
  • capital notion that--very.’
  • ‘Don’t be long,’ said the spinster affectionately, as Mr. Jingle stuck
  • the pinched-up hat on his head.
  • ‘Long away from you?--Cruel charmer,’ and Mr. Jingle skipped playfully
  • up to the spinster aunt, imprinted a chaste kiss upon her lips, and
  • danced out of the room.
  • ‘Dear man!’ said the spinster, as the door closed after him.
  • ‘Rum old girl,’ said Mr. Jingle, as he walked down the passage.
  • It is painful to reflect upon the perfidy of our species; and we will
  • not, therefore, pursue the thread of Mr. Jingle’s meditations, as he
  • wended his way to Doctors’ Commons. It will be sufficient for our
  • purpose to relate, that escaping the snares of the dragons in white
  • aprons, who guard the entrance to that enchanted region, he reached the
  • vicar-general’s office in safety and having procured a highly flattering
  • address on parchment, from the Archbishop of Canterbury, to his ‘trusty
  • and well-beloved Alfred Jingle and Rachael Wardle, greeting,’ he
  • carefully deposited the mystic document in his pocket, and retraced his
  • steps in triumph to the Borough.
  • He was yet on his way to the White Hart, when two plump gentleman and
  • one thin one entered the yard, and looked round in search of some
  • authorised person of whom they could make a few inquiries. Mr. Samuel
  • Weller happened to be at that moment engaged in burnishing a pair of
  • painted tops, the personal property of a farmer who was refreshing
  • himself with a slight lunch of two or three pounds of cold beef and a
  • pot or two of porter, after the fatigues of the Borough market; and to
  • him the thin gentleman straightway advanced.
  • ‘My friend,’ said the thin gentleman.
  • ‘You’re one o’ the adwice gratis order,’ thought Sam, ‘or you wouldn’t
  • be so wery fond o’ me all at once.’ But he only said--‘Well, Sir.’
  • ‘My friend,’ said the thin gentleman, with a conciliatory hem--‘have you
  • got many people stopping here now? Pretty busy. Eh?’
  • Sam stole a look at the inquirer. He was a little high-dried man, with a
  • dark squeezed-up face, and small, restless, black eyes, that kept
  • winking and twinkling on each side of his little inquisitive nose, as if
  • they were playing a perpetual game of peep-bo with that feature. He was
  • dressed all in black, with boots as shiny as his eyes, a low white
  • neckcloth, and a clean shirt with a frill to it. A gold watch-chain, and
  • seals, depended from his fob. He carried his black kid gloves _in_ his
  • hands, and not ON them; and as he spoke, thrust his wrists beneath his
  • coat tails, with the air of a man who was in the habit of propounding
  • some regular posers.
  • ‘Pretty busy, eh?’ said the little man.
  • ‘Oh, wery well, Sir,’ replied Sam, ‘we shan’t be bankrupts, and we
  • shan’t make our fort’ns. We eats our biled mutton without capers, and
  • don’t care for horse-radish ven ve can get beef.’
  • ‘Ah,’ said the little man, ‘you’re a wag, ain’t you?’
  • ‘My eldest brother was troubled with that complaint,’ said Sam; ‘it may
  • be catching--I used to sleep with him.’
  • ‘This is a curious old house of yours,’ said the little man, looking
  • round him.
  • ‘If you’d sent word you was a-coming, we’d ha’ had it repaired;’ replied
  • the imperturbable Sam.
  • The little man seemed rather baffled by these several repulses, and a
  • short consultation took place between him and the two plump gentlemen.
  • At its conclusion, the little man took a pinch of snuff from an oblong
  • silver box, and was apparently on the point of renewing the
  • conversation, when one of the plump gentlemen, who in addition to a
  • benevolent countenance, possessed a pair of spectacles, and a pair of
  • black gaiters, interfered--
  • ‘The fact of the matter is,’ said the benevolent gentleman, ‘that my
  • friend here (pointing to the other plump gentleman) will give you half a
  • guinea, if you’ll answer one or two--’
  • ‘Now, my dear sir--my dear Sir,’ said the little man, ‘pray, allow me--
  • my dear Sir, the very first principle to be observed in these cases, is
  • this: if you place the matter in the hands of a professional man, you
  • must in no way interfere in the progress of the business; you must
  • repose implicit confidence in him. Really, Mr.--’ He turned to the other
  • plump gentleman, and said, ‘I forget your friend’s name.’
  • ‘Pickwick,’ said Mr. Wardle, for it was no other than that jolly
  • personage.
  • ‘Ah, Pickwick--really Mr. Pickwick, my dear Sir, excuse me--I shall be
  • happy to receive any private suggestions of yours, as AMICUS CURIAE, but
  • you must see the impropriety of your interfering with my conduct in this
  • case, with such an AD CAPTANDUM argument as the offer of half a guinea.
  • Really, my dear Sir, really;’ and the little man took an argumentative
  • pinch of snuff, and looked very profound.
  • ‘My only wish, Sir,’ said Mr. Pickwick, ‘was to bring this very
  • unpleasant matter to as speedy a close as possible.’
  • ‘Quite right--quite right,’ said the little man.
  • ‘With which view,’ continued Mr. Pickwick, ‘I made use of the argument
  • which my experience of men has taught me is the most likely to succeed
  • in any case.’
  • ‘Ay, ay,’ said the little man, ‘very good, very good, indeed; but you
  • should have suggested it to me. My dear sir, I’m quite certain you
  • cannot be ignorant of the extent of confidence which must be placed in
  • professional men. If any authority can be necessary on such a point, my
  • dear sir, let me refer you to the well-known case in Barnwell and--’
  • ‘Never mind George Barnwell,’ interrupted Sam, who had remained a
  • wondering listener during this short colloquy; ‘everybody knows what
  • sort of a case his was, tho’ it’s always been my opinion, mind you, that
  • the young ‘ooman deserved scragging a precious sight more than he did.
  • Hows’ever, that’s neither here nor there. You want me to accept of half
  • a guinea. Wery well, I’m agreeable: I can’t say no fairer than that, can
  • I, sir?’ (Mr. Pickwick smiled.) Then the next question is, what the
  • devil do you want with me, as the man said, wen he see the ghost?’
  • ‘We want to know--’ said Mr. Wardle.
  • ‘Now, my dear sir--my dear sir,’ interposed the busy little man.
  • Mr. Wardle shrugged his shoulders, and was silent.
  • ‘We want to know,’ said the little man solemnly; ‘and we ask the
  • question of you, in order that we may not awaken apprehensions inside--
  • we want to know who you’ve got in this house at present?’
  • ‘Who there is in the house!’ said Sam, in whose mind the inmates were
  • always represented by that particular article of their costume, which
  • came under his immediate superintendence. ‘There’s a vooden leg in
  • number six; there’s a pair of Hessians in thirteen; there’s two pair of
  • halves in the commercial; there’s these here painted tops in the
  • snuggery inside the bar; and five more tops in the coffee-room.’
  • ‘Nothing more?’ said the little man.
  • ‘Stop a bit,’ replied Sam, suddenly recollecting himself. ‘Yes; there’s
  • a pair of Vellingtons a good deal worn, and a pair o’ lady’s shoes, in
  • number five.’
  • ‘What sort of shoes?’ hastily inquired Wardle, who, together with Mr.
  • Pickwick, had been lost in bewilderment at the singular catalogue of
  • visitors.
  • ‘Country make,’ replied Sam.
  • ‘Any maker’s name?’
  • ‘Brown.’
  • ‘Where of?’
  • ‘Muggleton.
  • ‘It is them,’ exclaimed Wardle. ‘By heavens, we’ve found them.’
  • ‘Hush!’ said Sam. ‘The Vellingtons has gone to Doctors’ Commons.’
  • ‘No,’ said the little man.
  • ‘Yes, for a licence.’
  • ‘We’re in time,’ exclaimed Wardle. ‘Show us the room; not a moment is to
  • be lost.’
  • ‘Pray, my dear sir--pray,’ said the little man; ‘caution, caution.’ He
  • drew from his pocket a red silk purse, and looked very hard at Sam as he
  • drew out a sovereign.
  • Sam grinned expressively.
  • ‘Show us into the room at once, without announcing us,’ said the little
  • man, ‘and it’s yours.’
  • Sam threw the painted tops into a corner, and led the way through a dark
  • passage, and up a wide staircase. He paused at the end of a second
  • passage, and held out his hand.
  • ‘Here it is,’ whispered the attorney, as he deposited the money on the
  • hand of their guide.
  • The man stepped forward for a few paces, followed by the two friends and
  • their legal adviser. He stopped at a door.
  • ‘Is this the room?’ murmured the little gentleman.
  • Sam nodded assent.
  • Old Wardle opened the door; and the whole three walked into the room
  • just as Mr. Jingle, who had that moment returned, had produced the
  • licence to the spinster aunt.
  • The spinster uttered a loud shriek, and throwing herself into a chair,
  • covered her face with her hands. Mr. Jingle crumpled up the licence, and
  • thrust it into his coat pocket. The unwelcome visitors advanced into the
  • middle of the room.
  • ‘You--you are a nice rascal, arn’t you?’ exclaimed Wardle, breathless
  • with passion.
  • ‘My dear Sir, my dear sir,’ said the little man, laying his hat on the
  • table, ‘pray, consider--pray. Defamation of character: action for
  • damages. Calm yourself, my dear sir, pray--’
  • ‘How dare you drag my sister from my house?’ said the old man.
  • Ay--ay--very good,’ said the little gentleman, ‘you may ask that. How
  • dare you, sir?--eh, sir?’
  • ‘Who the devil are you?’ inquired Mr. Jingle, in so fierce a tone, that
  • the little gentleman involuntarily fell back a step or two.
  • ‘Who is he, you scoundrel,’ interposed Wardle. ‘He’s my lawyer, Mr.
  • Perker, of Gray’s Inn. Perker, I’ll have this fellow prosecuted--
  • indicted--I’ll--I’ll--I’ll ruin him. And you,’ continued Mr. Wardle,
  • turning abruptly round to his sister--‘you, Rachael, at a time of life
  • when you ought to know better, what do you mean by running away with a
  • vagabond, disgracing your family, and making yourself miserable? Get on
  • your bonnet and come back. Call a hackney-coach there, directly, and
  • bring this lady’s bill, d’ye hear--d’ye hear?’
  • Cert’nly, Sir,’ replied Sam, who had answered Wardle’s violent ringing
  • of the bell with a degree of celerity which must have appeared
  • marvellous to anybody who didn’t know that his eye had been applied to
  • the outside of the keyhole during the whole interview.
  • ‘Get on your bonnet,’ repeated Wardle.
  • ‘Do nothing of the kind,’ said Jingle. ‘Leave the room, Sir--no business
  • here--lady’s free to act as she pleases--more than one-and-twenty.’
  • ‘More than one-and-twenty!’ ejaculated Wardle contemptuously. ‘More than
  • one-and-forty!’
  • ‘I ain’t,’ said the spinster aunt, her indignation getting the better of
  • her determination to faint.
  • ‘You are,’ replied Wardle; ‘you’re fifty if you’re an hour.’
  • Here the spinster aunt uttered a loud shriek, and became senseless.
  • ‘A glass of water,’ said the humane Mr. Pickwick, summoning the
  • landlady.
  • ‘A glass of water!’ said the passionate Wardle. ‘Bring a bucket, and
  • throw it all over her; it’ll do her good, and she richly deserves it.’
  • ‘Ugh, you brute!’ ejaculated the kind-hearted landlady. ‘Poor dear.’ And
  • with sundry ejaculations of ‘Come now, there’s a dear--drink a little of
  • this--it’ll do you good--don’t give way so--there’s a love,’ etc. etc.,
  • the landlady, assisted by a chambermaid, proceeded to vinegar the
  • forehead, beat the hands, titillate the nose, and unlace the stays of
  • the spinster aunt, and to administer such other restoratives as are
  • usually applied by compassionate females to ladies who are endeavouring
  • to ferment themselves into hysterics.
  • ‘Coach is ready, Sir,’ said Sam, appearing at the door.
  • ‘Come along,’ cried Wardle. ‘I’ll carry her downstairs.’
  • At this proposition, the hysterics came on with redoubled violence.
  • The landlady was about to enter a very violent protest against this
  • proceeding, and had already given vent to an indignant inquiry whether
  • Mr. Wardle considered himself a lord of the creation, when Mr. Jingle
  • interposed--
  • ‘Boots,’ said he, ‘get me an officer.’
  • ‘Stay, stay,’ said little Mr. Perker. ‘Consider, Sir, consider.’
  • ‘I’ll not consider,’ replied Jingle. ‘She’s her own mistress--see who
  • dares to take her away--unless she wishes it.’
  • ‘I _won’t_ be taken away,’ murmured the spinster aunt. ‘I _don’t_ wish
  • it.’ (Here there was a frightful relapse.)
  • ‘My dear Sir,’ said the little man, in a low tone, taking Mr. Wardle and
  • Mr. Pickwick apart--‘my dear Sir, we’re in a very awkward situation.
  • It’s a distressing case--very; I never knew one more so; but really, my
  • dear sir, really we have no power to control this lady’s actions. I
  • warned you before we came, my dear sir, that there was nothing to look
  • to but a compromise.’
  • There was a short pause.
  • ‘What kind of compromise would you recommend?’ inquired Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Why, my dear Sir, our friend’s in an unpleasant position--very much so.
  • We must be content to suffer some pecuniary loss.’
  • ‘I’ll suffer any, rather than submit to this disgrace, and let her, fool
  • as she is, be made miserable for life,’ said Wardle.
  • ‘I rather think it can be done,’ said the bustling little man. ‘Mr.
  • Jingle, will you step with us into the next room for a moment?’
  • Mr. Jingle assented, and the quartette walked into an empty apartment.
  • ‘Now, sir,’ said the little man, as he carefully closed the door, ‘is
  • there no way of accommodating this matter--step this way, sir, for a
  • moment--into this window, Sir, where we can be alone--there, sir, there,
  • pray sit down, sir. Now, my dear Sir, between you and I, we know very
  • well, my dear Sir, that you have run off with this lady for the sake of
  • her money. Don’t frown, Sir, don’t frown; I say, between you and I, _we_
  • know it. We are both men of the world, and WE know very well that our
  • friends here, are not--eh?’
  • Mr. Jingle’s face gradually relaxed; and something distantly resembling
  • a wink quivered for an instant in his left eye.
  • ‘Very good, very good,’ said the little man, observing the impression he
  • had made. ‘Now, the fact is, that beyond a few hundreds, the lady has
  • little or nothing till the death of her mother--fine old lady, my dear
  • Sir.’
  • ‘_Old_,’ said Mr. Jingle briefly but emphatically.
  • ‘Why, yes,’ said the attorney, with a slight cough. ‘You are right, my
  • dear Sir, she is rather old. She comes of an old family though, my dear
  • Sir; old in every sense of the word. The founder of that family came
  • into Kent when Julius Caesar invaded Britain;--only one member of it,
  • since, who hasn’t lived to eighty-five, and he was beheaded by one of
  • the Henrys. The old lady is not seventy-three now, my dear Sir.’ The
  • little man paused, and took a pinch of snuff.
  • ‘Well,’ cried Mr. Jingle.
  • ‘Well, my dear sir--you don’t take snuff!--ah! so much the better--
  • expensive habit--well, my dear Sir, you’re a fine young man, man of the
  • world--able to push your fortune, if you had capital, eh?’
  • ‘Well,’ said Mr. Jingle again.
  • ‘Do you comprehend me?’
  • ‘Not quite.’
  • ‘Don’t you think--now, my dear Sir, I put it to you don’t you think--
  • that fifty pounds and liberty would be better than Miss Wardle and
  • expectation?’
  • ‘Won’t do--not half enough!’ said Mr. Jingle, rising.
  • ‘Nay, nay, my dear Sir,’ remonstrated the little attorney, seizing him
  • by the button. ‘Good round sum--a man like you could treble it in no
  • time--great deal to be done with fifty pounds, my dear Sir.’
  • ‘More to be done with a hundred and fifty,’ replied Mr. Jingle coolly.
  • ‘Well, my dear Sir, we won’t waste time in splitting straws,’ resumed
  • the little man, ‘say--say--seventy.’
  • Won’t do,’ said Mr. Jingle.
  • ‘Don’t go away, my dear sir--pray don’t hurry,’ said the little man.
  • ‘Eighty; come: I’ll write you a cheque at once.’
  • ‘Won’t do,’ said Mr. Jingle.
  • ‘Well, my dear Sir, well,’ said the little man, still detaining him;
  • ‘just tell me what _will_ do.’
  • ‘Expensive affair,’ said Mr. Jingle. ‘Money out of pocket--posting, nine
  • pounds; licence, three--that’s twelve--compensation, a hundred--hundred
  • and twelve--breach of honour--and loss of the lady--’
  • ‘Yes, my dear Sir, yes,’ said the little man, with a knowing look,
  • ‘never mind the last two items. That’s a hundred and twelve--say a
  • hundred--come.’
  • ‘And twenty,’ said Mr. Jingle.
  • ‘Come, come, I’ll write you a cheque,’ said the little man; and down he
  • sat at the table for that purpose.
  • ‘I’ll make it payable the day after to-morrow,’ said the little man,
  • with a look towards Mr. Wardle; ‘and we can get the lady away,
  • meanwhile.’ Mr. Wardle sullenly nodded assent.
  • ‘A hundred,’ said the little man.
  • ‘And twenty,’ said Mr. Jingle.
  • ‘My dear Sir,’ remonstrated the little man.
  • ‘Give it him,’ interposed Mr. Wardle, ‘and let him go.’
  • The cheque was written by the little gentleman, and pocketed by Mr.
  • Jingle.
  • ‘Now, leave this house instantly!’ said Wardle, starting up.
  • ‘My dear Sir,’ urged the little man.
  • ‘And mind,’ said Mr. Wardle, ‘that nothing should have induced me to
  • make this compromise--not even a regard for my family--if I had not
  • known that the moment you got any money in that pocket of yours, you’d
  • go to the devil faster, if possible, than you would without it--’
  • ‘My dear sir,’ urged the little man again.
  • ‘Be quiet, Perker,’ resumed Wardle. ‘Leave the room, Sir.’
  • ‘Off directly,’ said the unabashed Jingle. ‘Bye bye, Pickwick.’
  • If any dispassionate spectator could have beheld the countenance of the
  • illustrious man, whose name forms the leading feature of the title of
  • this work, during the latter part of this conversation, he would have
  • been almost induced to wonder that the indignant fire which flashed from
  • his eyes did not melt the glasses of his spectacles--so majestic was his
  • wrath. His nostrils dilated, and his fists clenched involuntarily, as he
  • heard himself addressed by the villain. But he restrained himself again-
  • -he did not pulverise him.
  • ‘Here,’ continued the hardened traitor, tossing the licence at Mr.
  • Pickwick’s feet; ‘get the name altered--take home the lady--do for
  • Tuppy.’
  • Mr. Pickwick was a philosopher, but philosophers are only men in armour,
  • after all. The shaft had reached him, penetrated through his
  • philosophical harness, to his very heart. In the frenzy of his rage, he
  • hurled the inkstand madly forward, and followed it up himself. But Mr.
  • Jingle had disappeared, and he found himself caught in the arms of Sam.
  • ‘Hollo,’ said that eccentric functionary, ‘furniter’s cheap where you
  • come from, Sir. Self-acting ink, that ‘ere; it’s wrote your mark upon
  • the wall, old gen’l’m’n. Hold still, Sir; wot’s the use o’ runnin’ arter
  • a man as has made his lucky, and got to t’other end of the Borough by
  • this time?’
  • Mr. Pickwick’s mind, like those of all truly great men, was open to
  • conviction. He was a quick and powerful reasoner; and a moment’s
  • reflection sufficed to remind him of the impotency of his rage. It
  • subsided as quickly as it had been roused. He panted for breath, and
  • looked benignantly round upon his friends.
  • Shall we tell the lamentations that ensued when Miss Wardle found
  • herself deserted by the faithless Jingle? Shall we extract Mr.
  • Pickwick’s masterly description of that heartrending scene? His note-
  • book, blotted with the tears of sympathising humanity, lies open before
  • us; one word, and it is in the printer’s hands. But, no! we will be
  • resolute! We will not wring the public bosom, with the delineation of
  • such suffering!
  • Slowly and sadly did the two friends and the deserted lady return next
  • day in the Muggleton heavy coach. Dimly and darkly had the sombre
  • shadows of a summer’s night fallen upon all around, when they again
  • reached Dingley Dell, and stood within the entrance to Manor Farm.
  • CHAPTER XI. INVOLVING ANOTHER JOURNEY, AND AN ANTIQUARIAN DISCOVERY;
  • RECORDING MR. PICKWICK’S DETERMINATION TO BE PRESENT AT AN ELECTION; AND
  • CONTAINING A MANUSCRIPT OF THE OLD CLERGYMAN’S
  • A night of quiet and repose in the profound silence of Dingley Dell, and
  • an hour’s breathing of its fresh and fragrant air on the ensuing
  • morning, completely recovered Mr. Pickwick from the effects of his late
  • fatigue of body and anxiety of mind. That illustrious man had been
  • separated from his friends and followers for two whole days; and it was
  • with a degree of pleasure and delight, which no common imagination can
  • adequately conceive, that he stepped forward to greet Mr. Winkle and Mr.
  • Snodgrass, as he encountered those gentlemen on his return from his
  • early walk. The pleasure was mutual; for who could ever gaze on Mr.
  • Pickwick’s beaming face without experiencing the sensation? But still a
  • cloud seemed to hang over his companions which that great man could not
  • but be sensible of, and was wholly at a loss to account for. There was a
  • mysterious air about them both, as unusual as it was alarming.
  • ‘And how,’ said Mr. Pickwick, when he had grasped his followers by the
  • hand, and exchanged warm salutations of welcome--‘how is Tupman?’
  • Mr. Winkle, to whom the question was more peculiarly addressed, made no
  • reply. He turned away his head, and appeared absorbed in melancholy
  • reflection.
  • ‘Snodgrass,’ said Mr. Pickwick earnestly, ‘how is our friend--he is not
  • ill?’
  • ‘No,’ replied Mr. Snodgrass; and a tear trembled on his sentimental
  • eyelid, like a rain-drop on a window-frame--‘no; he is not ill.’
  • Mr. Pickwick stopped, and gazed on each of his friends in turn.
  • ‘Winkle--Snodgrass,’ said Mr. Pickwick; ‘what does this mean? Where is
  • our friend? What has happened? Speak--I conjure, I entreat--nay, I
  • command you, speak.’
  • There was a solemnity--a dignity--in Mr. Pickwick’s manner, not to be
  • withstood.
  • ‘He is gone,’ said Mr. Snodgrass.
  • ‘Gone!’ exclaimed Mr. Pickwick. ‘Gone!’
  • ‘Gone,’ repeated Mr. Snodgrass.
  • ‘Where!’ ejaculated Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘We can only guess, from that communication,’ replied Mr. Snodgrass,
  • taking a letter from his pocket, and placing it in his friend’s hand.
  • ‘Yesterday morning, when a letter was received from Mr. Wardle, stating
  • that you would be home with his sister at night, the melancholy which
  • had hung over our friend during the whole of the previous day, was
  • observed to increase. He shortly afterwards disappeared: he was missing
  • during the whole day, and in the evening this letter was brought by the
  • hostler from the Crown, at Muggleton. It had been left in his charge in
  • the morning, with a strict injunction that it should not be delivered
  • until night.’
  • Mr. Pickwick opened the epistle. It was in his friend’s hand-writing,
  • and these were its contents:--
  • ‘MY DEAR PICKWICK,--_You_, my dear friend, are placed far beyond the
  • reach of many mortal frailties and weaknesses which ordinary people
  • cannot overcome. You do not know what it is, at one blow, to be deserted
  • by a lovely and fascinating creature, and to fall a victim to the
  • artifices of a villain, who had the grin of cunning beneath the mask of
  • friendship. I hope you never may.
  • ‘Any letter addressed to me at the Leather Bottle, Cobham, Kent, will be
  • forwarded--supposing I still exist. I hasten from the sight of that
  • world, which has become odious to me. Should I hasten from it
  • altogether, pity--forgive me. Life, my dear Pickwick, has become
  • insupportable to me. The spirit which burns within us, is a porter’s
  • knot, on which to rest the heavy load of worldly cares and troubles; and
  • when that spirit fails us, the burden is too heavy to be borne. We sink
  • beneath it. You may tell Rachael--Ah, that name!--
  • ‘TRACY TUPMAN.’
  • ‘We must leave this place directly,’ said Mr. Pickwick, as he refolded
  • the note. ‘It would not have been decent for us to remain here, under
  • any circumstances, after what has happened; and now we are bound to
  • follow in search of our friend.’ And so saying, he led the way to the
  • house.
  • His intention was rapidly communicated. The entreaties to remain were
  • pressing, but Mr. Pickwick was inflexible. Business, he said, required
  • his immediate attendance.
  • The old clergyman was present.
  • ‘You are not really going?’ said he, taking Mr. Pickwick aside.
  • Mr. Pickwick reiterated his former determination.
  • ‘Then here,’ said the old gentleman, ‘is a little manuscript, which I
  • had hoped to have the pleasure of reading to you myself. I found it on
  • the death of a friend of mine--a medical man, engaged in our county
  • lunatic asylum--among a variety of papers, which I had the option of
  • destroying or preserving, as I thought proper. I can hardly believe that
  • the manuscript is genuine, though it certainly is not in my friend’s
  • hand. However, whether it be the genuine production of a maniac, or
  • founded upon the ravings of some unhappy being (which I think more
  • probable), read it, and judge for yourself.’
  • Mr. Pickwick received the manuscript, and parted from the benevolent old
  • gentleman with many expressions of good-will and esteem.
  • It was a more difficult task to take leave of the inmates of Manor Farm,
  • from whom they had received so much hospitality and kindness. Mr.
  • Pickwick kissed the young ladies--we were going to say, as if they were
  • his own daughters, only, as he might possibly have infused a little more
  • warmth into the salutation, the comparison would not be quite
  • appropriate--hugged the old lady with filial cordiality; and patted the
  • rosy cheeks of the female servants in a most patriarchal manner, as he
  • slipped into the hands of each some more substantial expression of his
  • approval. The exchange of cordialities with their fine old host and Mr.
  • Trundle was even more hearty and prolonged; and it was not until Mr.
  • Snodgrass had been several times called for, and at last emerged from a
  • dark passage followed soon after by Emily (whose bright eyes looked
  • unusually dim), that the three friends were enabled to tear themselves
  • from their friendly entertainers. Many a backward look they gave at the
  • farm, as they walked slowly away; and many a kiss did Mr. Snodgrass waft
  • in the air, in acknowledgment of something very like a lady’s
  • handkerchief, which was waved from one of the upper windows, until a
  • turn of the lane hid the old house from their sight.
  • At Muggleton they procured a conveyance to Rochester. By the time they
  • reached the last-named place, the violence of their grief had
  • sufficiently abated to admit of their making a very excellent early
  • dinner; and having procured the necessary information relative to the
  • road, the three friends set forward again in the afternoon to walk to
  • Cobham.
  • A delightful walk it was; for it was a pleasant afternoon in June, and
  • their way lay through a deep and shady wood, cooled by the light wind
  • which gently rustled the thick foliage, and enlivened by the songs of
  • the birds that perched upon the boughs. The ivy and the moss crept in
  • thick clusters over the old trees, and the soft green turf overspread
  • the ground like a silken mat. They emerged upon an open park, with an
  • ancient hall, displaying the quaint and picturesque architecture of
  • Elizabeth’s time. Long vistas of stately oaks and elm trees appeared on
  • every side; large herds of deer were cropping the fresh grass; and
  • occasionally a startled hare scoured along the ground, with the speed of
  • the shadows thrown by the light clouds which swept across a sunny
  • landscape like a passing breath of summer.
  • ‘If this,’ said Mr. Pickwick, looking about him--‘if this were the place
  • to which all who are troubled with our friend’s complaint came, I fancy
  • their old attachment to this world would very soon return.’
  • ‘I think so too,’ said Mr. Winkle.
  • ‘And really,’ added Mr. Pickwick, after half an hour’s walking had
  • brought them to the village, ‘really, for a misanthrope’s choice, this
  • is one of the prettiest and most desirable places of residence I ever
  • met with.’
  • In this opinion also, both Mr. Winkle and Mr. Snodgrass expressed their
  • concurrence; and having been directed to the Leather Bottle, a clean and
  • commodious village ale-house, the three travellers entered, and at once
  • inquired for a gentleman of the name of Tupman.
  • ‘Show the gentlemen into the parlour, Tom,’ said the landlady.
  • A stout country lad opened a door at the end of the passage, and the
  • three friends entered a long, low-roofed room, furnished with a large
  • number of high-backed leather-cushioned chairs, of fantastic shapes, and
  • embellished with a great variety of old portraits and roughly-coloured
  • prints of some antiquity. At the upper end of the room was a table, with
  • a white cloth upon it, well covered with a roast fowl, bacon, ale, and
  • et ceteras; and at the table sat Mr. Tupman, looking as unlike a man who
  • had taken his leave of the world, as possible.
  • On the entrance of his friends, that gentleman laid down his knife and
  • fork, and with a mournful air advanced to meet them.
  • ‘I did not expect to see you here,’ he said, as he grasped Mr.
  • Pickwick’s hand. ‘It’s very kind.’
  • ‘Ah!’ said Mr. Pickwick, sitting down, and wiping from his forehead the
  • perspiration which the walk had engendered. ‘Finish your dinner, and
  • walk out with me. I wish to speak to you alone.’
  • Mr. Tupman did as he was desired; and Mr. Pickwick having refreshed
  • himself with a copious draught of ale, waited his friend’s leisure. The
  • dinner was quickly despatched, and they walked out together.
  • For half an hour, their forms might have been seen pacing the churchyard
  • to and fro, while Mr. Pickwick was engaged in combating his companion’s
  • resolution. Any repetition of his arguments would be useless; for what
  • language could convey to them that energy and force which their great
  • originator’s manner communicated? Whether Mr. Tupman was already tired
  • of retirement, or whether he was wholly unable to resist the eloquent
  • appeal which was made to him, matters not, he did _not _ resist it at
  • last.
  • ‘It mattered little to him,’ he said, ‘where he dragged out the
  • miserable remainder of his days; and since his friend laid so much
  • stress upon his humble companionship, he was willing to share his
  • adventures.’
  • Mr. Pickwick smiled; they shook hands, and walked back to rejoin their
  • companions.
  • It was at this moment that Mr. Pickwick made that immortal discovery,
  • which has been the pride and boast of his friends, and the envy of every
  • antiquarian in this or any other country. They had passed the door of
  • their inn, and walked a little way down the village, before they
  • recollected the precise spot in which it stood. As they turned back, Mr.
  • Pickwick’s eye fell upon a small broken stone, partially buried in the
  • ground, in front of a cottage door. He paused.
  • ‘This is very strange,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘What is strange?’ inquired Mr. Tupman, staring eagerly at every object
  • near him, but the right one. ‘God bless me, what’s the matter?’
  • This last was an ejaculation of irrepressible astonishment, occasioned
  • by seeing Mr. Pickwick, in his enthusiasm for discovery, fall on his
  • knees before the little stone, and commence wiping the dust off it with
  • his pocket-handkerchief.
  • ‘There is an inscription here,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Is it possible?’ said Mr. Tupman.
  • ‘I can discern,’ continued Mr. Pickwick, rubbing away with all his
  • might, and gazing intently through his spectacles--‘I can discern a
  • cross, and a 13, and then a T. This is important,’ continued Mr.
  • Pickwick, starting up. ‘This is some very old inscription, existing
  • perhaps long before the ancient alms-houses in this place. It must not
  • be lost.’
  • He tapped at the cottage door. A labouring man opened it.
  • ‘Do you know how this stone came here, my friend?’ inquired the
  • benevolent Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘No, I doan’t, Sir,’ replied the man civilly. ‘It was here long afore I
  • was born, or any on us.’
  • Mr. Pickwick glanced triumphantly at his companion.
  • ‘You--you--are not particularly attached to it, I dare say,’ said Mr.
  • Pickwick, trembling with anxiety. ‘You wouldn’t mind selling it, now?’
  • ‘Ah! but who’d buy it?’ inquired the man, with an expression of face
  • which he probably meant to be very cunning.
  • ‘I’ll give you ten shillings for it, at once,’ said Mr. Pickwick, ‘if
  • you would take it up for me.’
  • The astonishment of the village may be easily imagined, when (the little
  • stone having been raised with one wrench of a spade) Mr. Pickwick, by
  • dint of great personal exertion, bore it with his own hands to the inn,
  • and after having carefully washed it, deposited it on the table.
  • The exultation and joy of the Pickwickians knew no bounds, when their
  • patience and assiduity, their washing and scraping, were crowned with
  • success. The stone was uneven and broken, and the letters were
  • straggling and irregular, but the following fragment of an inscription
  • was clearly to be deciphered:--
  • [cross] B I L S T U M P S H I S. M. ARK
  • Mr. Pickwick’s eyes sparkled with delight, as he sat and gloated over
  • the treasure he had discovered. He had attained one of the greatest
  • objects of his ambition. In a county known to abound in the remains of
  • the early ages; in a village in which there still existed some memorials
  • of the olden time, he--he, the chairman of the Pickwick Club--had
  • discovered a strange and curious inscription of unquestionable
  • antiquity, which had wholly escaped the observation of the many learned
  • men who had preceded him. He could hardly trust the evidence of his
  • senses.
  • ‘This--this,’ said he, ‘determines me. We return to town to-morrow.’
  • ‘To-morrow!’ exclaimed his admiring followers.
  • ‘To-morrow,’ said Mr. Pickwick. ‘This treasure must be at once deposited
  • where it can be thoroughly investigated and properly understood. I have
  • another reason for this step. In a few days, an election is to take
  • place for the borough of Eatanswill, at which Mr. Perker, a gentleman
  • whom I lately met, is the agent of one of the candidates. We will
  • behold, and minutely examine, a scene so interesting to every
  • Englishman.’
  • ‘We will,’ was the animated cry of three voices.
  • Mr. Pickwick looked round him. The attachment and fervour of his
  • followers lighted up a glow of enthusiasm within him. He was their
  • leader, and he felt it.
  • ‘Let us celebrate this happy meeting with a convivial glass,’ said he.
  • This proposition, like the other, was received with unanimous applause.
  • Having himself deposited the important stone in a small deal box,
  • purchased from the landlady for the purpose, he placed himself in an
  • arm-chair, at the head of the table; and the evening was devoted to
  • festivity and conversation.
  • It was past eleven o’clock--a late hour for the little village of
  • Cobham--when Mr. Pickwick retired to the bedroom which had been prepared
  • for his reception. He threw open the lattice window, and setting his
  • light upon the table, fell into a train of meditation on the hurried
  • events of the two preceding days.
  • The hour and the place were both favourable to contemplation; Mr.
  • Pickwick was roused by the church clock striking twelve. The first
  • stroke of the hour sounded solemnly in his ear, but when the bell ceased
  • the stillness seemed insupportable--he almost felt as if he had lost a
  • companion. He was nervous and excited; and hastily undressing himself
  • and placing his light in the chimney, got into bed.
  • Every one has experienced that disagreeable state of mind, in which a
  • sensation of bodily weariness in vain contends against an inability to
  • sleep. It was Mr. Pickwick’s condition at this moment: he tossed first
  • on one side and then on the other; and perseveringly closed his eyes as
  • if to coax himself to slumber. It was of no use. Whether it was the
  • unwonted exertion he had undergone, or the heat, or the brandy-and-
  • water, or the strange bed--whatever it was, his thoughts kept reverting
  • very uncomfortably to the grim pictures downstairs, and the old stories
  • to which they had given rise in the course of the evening. After half an
  • hour’s tumbling about, he came to the unsatisfactory conclusion, that it
  • was of no use trying to sleep; so he got up and partially dressed
  • himself. Anything, he thought, was better than lying there fancying all
  • kinds of horrors. He looked out of the window--it was very dark. He
  • walked about the room--it was very lonely.
  • He had taken a few turns from the door to the window, and from the
  • window to the door, when the clergyman’s manuscript for the first time
  • entered his head. It was a good thought. If it failed to interest him,
  • it might send him to sleep. He took it from his coat pocket, and drawing
  • a small table towards his bedside, trimmed the light, put on his
  • spectacles, and composed himself to read. It was a strange handwriting,
  • and the paper was much soiled and blotted. The title gave him a sudden
  • start, too; and he could not avoid casting a wistful glance round the
  • room. Reflecting on the absurdity of giving way to such feelings,
  • however, he trimmed the light again, and read as follows:--
  • A MADMAN’S MANUSCRIPT
  • ‘Yes!--a madman’s! How that word would have struck to my heart, many
  • years ago! How it would have roused the terror that used to come upon me
  • sometimes, sending the blood hissing and tingling through my veins, till
  • the cold dew of fear stood in large drops upon my skin, and my knees
  • knocked together with fright! I like it now though. It’s a fine name.
  • Show me the monarch whose angry frown was ever feared like the glare of
  • a madman’s eye--whose cord and axe were ever half so sure as a madman’s
  • gripe. Ho! ho! It’s a grand thing to be mad! to be peeped at like a wild
  • lion through the iron bars--to gnash one’s teeth and howl, through the
  • long still night, to the merry ring of a heavy chain and to roll and
  • twine among the straw, transported with such brave music. Hurrah for the
  • madhouse! Oh, it’s a rare place!
  • ‘I remember days when I was afraid of being mad; when I used to start
  • from my sleep, and fall upon my knees, and pray to be spared from the
  • curse of my race; when I rushed from the sight of merriment or
  • happiness, to hide myself in some lonely place, and spend the weary
  • hours in watching the progress of the fever that was to consume my
  • brain. I knew that madness was mixed up with my very blood, and the
  • marrow of my bones! that one generation had passed away without the
  • pestilence appearing among them, and that I was the first in whom it
  • would revive. I knew it must be so: that so it always had been, and so
  • it ever would be: and when I cowered in some obscure corner of a crowded
  • room, and saw men whisper, and point, and turn their eyes towards me, I
  • knew they were telling each other of the doomed madman; and I slunk away
  • again to mope in solitude.
  • ‘I did this for years; long, long years they were. The nights here are
  • long sometimes--very long; but they are nothing to the restless nights,
  • and dreadful dreams I had at that time. It makes me cold to remember
  • them. Large dusky forms with sly and jeering faces crouched in the
  • corners of the room, and bent over my bed at night, tempting me to
  • madness. They told me in low whispers, that the floor of the old house
  • in which my father died, was stained with his own blood, shed by his own
  • hand in raging madness. I drove my fingers into my ears, but they
  • screamed into my head till the room rang with it, that in one generation
  • before him the madness slumbered, but that his grandfather had lived for
  • years with his hands fettered to the ground, to prevent his tearing
  • himself to pieces. I knew they told the truth--I knew it well. I had
  • found it out years before, though they had tried to keep it from me. Ha!
  • ha! I was too cunning for them, madman as they thought me.
  • ‘At last it came upon me, and I wondered how I could ever have feared
  • it. I could go into the world now, and laugh and shout with the best
  • among them. I knew I was mad, but they did not even suspect it. How I
  • used to hug myself with delight, when I thought of the fine trick I was
  • playing them after their old pointing and leering, when I was not mad,
  • but only dreading that I might one day become so! And how I used to
  • laugh for joy, when I was alone, and thought how well I kept my secret,
  • and how quickly my kind friends would have fallen from me, if they had
  • known the truth. I could have screamed with ecstasy when I dined alone
  • with some fine roaring fellow, to think how pale he would have turned,
  • and how fast he would have run, if he had known that the dear friend who
  • sat close to him, sharpening a bright, glittering knife, was a madman
  • with all the power, and half the will, to plunge it in his heart. Oh, it
  • was a merry life!
  • ‘Riches became mine, wealth poured in upon me, and I rioted in pleasures
  • enhanced a thousandfold to me by the consciousness of my well-kept
  • secret. I inherited an estate. The law--the eagle-eyed law itself--had
  • been deceived, and had handed over disputed thousands to a madman’s
  • hands. Where was the wit of the sharp-sighted men of sound mind? Where
  • the dexterity of the lawyers, eager to discover a flaw? The madman’s
  • cunning had overreached them all.
  • ‘I had money. How I was courted! I spent it profusely. How I was
  • praised! How those three proud, overbearing brothers humbled themselves
  • before me! The old, white-headed father, too--such deference--such
  • respect--such devoted friendship--he worshipped me! The old man had a
  • daughter, and the young men a sister; and all the five were poor. I was
  • rich; and when I married the girl, I saw a smile of triumph play upon
  • the faces of her needy relatives, as they thought of their well-planned
  • scheme, and their fine prize. It was for me to smile. To smile! To laugh
  • outright, and tear my hair, and roll upon the ground with shrieks of
  • merriment. They little thought they had married her to a madman.
  • ‘Stay. If they had known it, would they have saved her? A sister’s
  • happiness against her husband’s gold. The lightest feather I blow into
  • the air, against the gay chain that ornaments my body!
  • ‘In one thing I was deceived with all my cunning. If I had not been mad-
  • -for though we madmen are sharp-witted enough, we get bewildered
  • sometimes--I should have known that the girl would rather have been
  • placed, stiff and cold in a dull leaden coffin, than borne an envied
  • bride to my rich, glittering house. I should have known that her heart
  • was with the dark-eyed boy whose name I once heard her breathe in her
  • troubled sleep; and that she had been sacrificed to me, to relieve the
  • poverty of the old, white-headed man and the haughty brothers.
  • ‘I don’t remember forms or faces now, but I know the girl was beautiful.
  • I know she was; for in the bright moonlight nights, when I start up from
  • my sleep, and all is quiet about me, I see, standing still and
  • motionless in one corner of this cell, a slight and wasted figure with
  • long black hair, which, streaming down her back, stirs with no earthly
  • wind, and eyes that fix their gaze on me, and never wink or close. Hush!
  • the blood chills at my heart as I write it down--that form is _her’s_;
  • the face is very pale, and the eyes are glassy bright; but I know them
  • well. That figure never moves; it never frowns and mouths as others do,
  • that fill this place sometimes; but it is much more dreadful to me, even
  • than the spirits that tempted me many years ago--it comes fresh from the
  • grave; and is so very death-like.
  • ‘For nearly a year I saw that face grow paler; for nearly a year I saw
  • the tears steal down the mournful cheeks, and never knew the cause. I
  • found it out at last though. They could not keep it from me long. She
  • had never liked me; I had never thought she did: she despised my wealth,
  • and hated the splendour in which she lived; but I had not expected that.
  • She loved another. This I had never thought of. Strange feelings came
  • over me, and thoughts, forced upon me by some secret power, whirled
  • round and round my brain. I did not hate her, though I hated the boy she
  • still wept for. I pitied--yes, I pitied--the wretched life to which her
  • cold and selfish relations had doomed her. I knew that she could not
  • live long; but the thought that before her death she might give birth to
  • some ill-fated being, destined to hand down madness to its offspring,
  • determined me. I resolved to kill her.
  • ‘For many weeks I thought of poison, and then of drowning, and then of
  • fire. A fine sight, the grand house in flames, and the madman’s wife
  • smouldering away to cinders. Think of the jest of a large reward, too,
  • and of some sane man swinging in the wind for a deed he never did, and
  • all through a madman’s cunning! I thought often of this, but I gave it
  • up at last. Oh! the pleasure of stropping the razor day after day,
  • feeling the sharp edge, and thinking of the gash one stroke of its thin,
  • bright edge would make!
  • ‘At last the old spirits who had been with me so often before whispered
  • in my ear that the time was come, and thrust the open razor into my
  • hand. I grasped it firmly, rose softly from the bed, and leaned over my
  • sleeping wife. Her face was buried in her hands. I withdrew them softly,
  • and they fell listlessly on her bosom. She had been weeping; for the
  • traces of the tears were still wet upon her cheek. Her face was calm and
  • placid; and even as I looked upon it, a tranquil smile lighted up her
  • pale features. I laid my hand softly on her shoulder. She started--it
  • was only a passing dream. I leaned forward again. She screamed, and
  • woke.
  • ‘One motion of my hand, and she would never again have uttered cry or
  • sound. But I was startled, and drew back. Her eyes were fixed on mine. I
  • knew not how it was, but they cowed and frightened me; and I quailed
  • beneath them. She rose from the bed, still gazing fixedly and steadily
  • on me. I trembled; the razor was in my hand, but I could not move. She
  • made towards the door. As she neared it, she turned, and withdrew her
  • eyes from my face. The spell was broken. I bounded forward, and clutched
  • her by the arm. Uttering shriek upon shriek, she sank upon the ground.
  • ‘Now I could have killed her without a struggle; but the house was
  • alarmed. I heard the tread of footsteps on the stairs. I replaced the
  • razor in its usual drawer, unfastened the door, and called loudly for
  • assistance.
  • ‘They came, and raised her, and placed her on the bed. She lay bereft of
  • animation for hours; and when life, look, and speech returned, her
  • senses had deserted her, and she raved wildly and furiously.
  • ‘Doctors were called in--great men who rolled up to my door in easy
  • carriages, with fine horses and gaudy servants. They were at her bedside
  • for weeks. They had a great meeting and consulted together in low and
  • solemn voices in another room. One, the cleverest and most celebrated
  • among them, took me aside, and bidding me prepare for the worst, told
  • me--me, the madman!--that my wife was mad. He stood close beside me at
  • an open window, his eyes looking in my face, and his hand laid upon my
  • arm. With one effort, I could have hurled him into the street beneath.
  • It would have been rare sport to have done it; but my secret was at
  • stake, and I let him go. A few days after, they told me I must place her
  • under some restraint: I must provide a keeper for her. I! I went into
  • the open fields where none could hear me, and laughed till the air
  • resounded with my shouts!
  • ‘She died next day. The white-headed old man followed her to the grave,
  • and the proud brothers dropped a tear over the insensible corpse of her
  • whose sufferings they had regarded in her lifetime with muscles of iron.
  • All this was food for my secret mirth, and I laughed behind the white
  • handkerchief which I held up to my face, as we rode home, till the tears
  • came into my eyes.
  • ‘But though I had carried my object and killed her, I was restless and
  • disturbed, and I felt that before long my secret must be known. I could
  • not hide the wild mirth and joy which boiled within me, and made me when
  • I was alone, at home, jump up and beat my hands together, and dance
  • round and round, and roar aloud. When I went out, and saw the busy
  • crowds hurrying about the streets; or to the theatre, and heard the
  • sound of music, and beheld the people dancing, I felt such glee, that I
  • could have rushed among them, and torn them to pieces limb from limb,
  • and howled in transport. But I ground my teeth, and struck my feet upon
  • the floor, and drove my sharp nails into my hands. I kept it down; and
  • no one knew I was a madman yet.
  • ‘I remember--though it’s one of the last things I can remember: for now
  • I mix up realities with my dreams, and having so much to do, and being
  • always hurried here, have no time to separate the two, from some strange
  • confusion in which they get involved--I remember how I let it out at
  • last. Ha! ha! I think I see their frightened looks now, and feel the
  • ease with which I flung them from me, and dashed my clenched fist into
  • their white faces, and then flew like the wind, and left them screaming
  • and shouting far behind. The strength of a giant comes upon me when I
  • think of it. There--see how this iron bar bends beneath my furious
  • wrench. I could snap it like a twig, only there are long galleries here
  • with many doors--I don’t think I could find my way along them; and even
  • if I could, I know there are iron gates below which they keep locked and
  • barred. They know what a clever madman I have been, and they are proud
  • to have me here, to show.
  • ‘Let me see: yes, I had been out. It was late at night when I reached
  • home, and found the proudest of the three proud brothers waiting to see
  • me--urgent business he said: I recollect it well. I hated that man with
  • all a madman’s hate. Many and many a time had my fingers longed to tear
  • him. They told me he was there. I ran swiftly upstairs. He had a word to
  • say to me. I dismissed the servants. It was late, and we were alone
  • together--for the first time.
  • ‘I kept my eyes carefully from him at first, for I knew what he little
  • thought--and I gloried in the knowledge--that the light of madness
  • gleamed from them like fire. We sat in silence for a few minutes. He
  • spoke at last. My recent dissipation, and strange remarks, made so soon
  • after his sister’s death, were an insult to her memory. Coupling
  • together many circumstances which had at first escaped his observation,
  • he thought I had not treated her well. He wished to know whether he was
  • right in inferring that I meant to cast a reproach upon her memory, and
  • a disrespect upon her family. It was due to the uniform he wore, to
  • demand this explanation.
  • ‘This man had a commission in the army--a commission, purchased with my
  • money, and his sister’s misery! This was the man who had been foremost
  • in the plot to ensnare me, and grasp my wealth. This was the man who had
  • been the main instrument in forcing his sister to wed me; well knowing
  • that her heart was given to that puling boy. Due to his uniform! The
  • livery of his degradation! I turned my eyes upon him--I could not help
  • it--but I spoke not a word.
  • ‘I saw the sudden change that came upon him beneath my gaze. He was a
  • bold man, but the colour faded from his face, and he drew back his
  • chair. I dragged mine nearer to him; and I laughed--I was very merry
  • then--I saw him shudder. I felt the madness rising within me. He was
  • afraid of me.
  • ‘“You were very fond of your sister when she was alive,” I said.--
  • “Very.”
  • ‘He looked uneasily round him, and I saw his hand grasp the back of his
  • chair; but he said nothing.
  • ‘“You villain,” said I, “I found you out: I discovered your hellish
  • plots against me; I know her heart was fixed on some one else before you
  • compelled her to marry me. I know it--I know it.”
  • ‘He jumped suddenly from his chair, brandished it aloft, and bid me
  • stand back--for I took care to be getting closer to him all the time I
  • spoke.
  • ‘I screamed rather than talked, for I felt tumultuous passions eddying
  • through my veins, and the old spirits whispering and taunting me to tear
  • his heart out.
  • ‘“Damn you,” said I, starting up, and rushing upon him; “I killed her. I
  • am a madman. Down with you. Blood, blood! I will have it!”
  • ‘I turned aside with one blow the chair he hurled at me in his terror,
  • and closed with him; and with a heavy crash we rolled upon the floor
  • together.
  • ‘It was a fine struggle that; for he was a tall, strong man, fighting
  • for his life; and I, a powerful madman, thirsting to destroy him. I knew
  • no strength could equal mine, and I was right. Right again, though a
  • madman! His struggles grew fainter. I knelt upon his chest, and clasped
  • his brawny throat firmly with both hands. His face grew purple; his eyes
  • were starting from his head, and with protruded tongue, he seemed to
  • mock me. I squeezed the tighter.
  • ‘The door was suddenly burst open with a loud noise, and a crowd of
  • people rushed forward, crying aloud to each other to secure the madman.
  • ‘My secret was out; and my only struggle now was for liberty and
  • freedom. I gained my feet before a hand was on me, threw myself among my
  • assailants, and cleared my way with my strong arm, as if I bore a
  • hatchet in my hand, and hewed them down before me. I gained the door,
  • dropped over the banisters, and in an instant was in the street.
  • ‘Straight and swift I ran, and no one dared to stop me. I heard the
  • noise of the feet behind, and redoubled my speed. It grew fainter and
  • fainter in the distance, and at length died away altogether; but on I
  • bounded, through marsh and rivulet, over fence and wall, with a wild
  • shout which was taken up by the strange beings that flocked around me on
  • every side, and swelled the sound, till it pierced the air. I was borne
  • upon the arms of demons who swept along upon the wind, and bore down
  • bank and hedge before them, and spun me round and round with a rustle
  • and a speed that made my head swim, until at last they threw me from
  • them with a violent shock, and I fell heavily upon the earth. When I
  • woke I found myself here--here in this gray cell, where the sunlight
  • seldom comes, and the moon steals in, in rays which only serve to show
  • the dark shadows about me, and that silent figure in its old corner.
  • When I lie awake, I can sometimes hear strange shrieks and cries from
  • distant parts of this large place. What they are, I know not; but they
  • neither come from that pale form, nor does it regard them. For from the
  • first shades of dusk till the earliest light of morning, it still stands
  • motionless in the same place, listening to the music of my iron chain,
  • and watching my gambols on my straw bed.’
  • At the end of the manuscript was written, in another hand, this note:--
  • [The unhappy man whose ravings are recorded above, was a melancholy
  • instance of the baneful results of energies misdirected in early life,
  • and excesses prolonged until their consequences could never be repaired.
  • The thoughtless riot, dissipation, and debauchery of his younger days
  • produced fever and delirium. The first effects of the latter was the
  • strange delusion, founded upon a well-known medical theory, strongly
  • contended for by some, and as strongly contested by others, that an
  • hereditary madness existed in his family. This produced a settled gloom,
  • which in time developed a morbid insanity, and finally terminated in
  • raving madness. There is every reason to believe that the events he
  • detailed, though distorted in the description by his diseased
  • imagination, really happened. It is only matter of wonder to those who
  • were acquainted with the vices of his early career, that his passions,
  • when no longer controlled by reason, did not lead him to the commission
  • of still more frightful deeds.]
  • Mr. Pickwick’s candle was just expiring in the socket, as he concluded
  • the perusal of the old clergyman’s manuscript; and when the light went
  • suddenly out, without any previous flicker by way of warning, it
  • communicated a very considerable start to his excited frame. Hastily
  • throwing off such articles of clothing as he had put on when he rose
  • from his uneasy bed, and casting a fearful glance around, he once more
  • scrambled hastily between the sheets, and soon fell fast asleep.
  • The sun was shining brilliantly into his chamber, when he awoke, and the
  • morning was far advanced. The gloom which had oppressed him on the
  • previous night had disappeared with the dark shadows which shrouded the
  • landscape, and his thoughts and feelings were as light and gay as the
  • morning itself. After a hearty breakfast, the four gentlemen sallied
  • forth to walk to Gravesend, followed by a man bearing the stone in its
  • deal box. They reached the town about one o’clock (their luggage they
  • had directed to be forwarded to the city, from Rochester), and being
  • fortunate enough to secure places on the outside of a coach, arrived in
  • London in sound health and spirits, on that same afternoon.
  • The next three or four days were occupied with the preparations which
  • were necessary for their journey to the borough of Eatanswill. As any
  • references to that most important undertaking demands a separate
  • chapter, we may devote the few lines which remain at the close of this,
  • to narrate, with great brevity, the history of the antiquarian
  • discovery.
  • It appears from the Transactions of the Club, then, that Mr. Pickwick
  • lectured upon the discovery at a General Club Meeting, convened on the
  • night succeeding their return, and entered into a variety of ingenious
  • and erudite speculations on the meaning of the inscription. It also
  • appears that a skilful artist executed a faithful delineation of the
  • curiosity, which was engraven on stone, and presented to the Royal
  • Antiquarian Society, and other learned bodies: that heart-burnings and
  • jealousies without number were created by rival controversies which were
  • penned upon the subject; and that Mr. Pickwick himself wrote a pamphlet,
  • containing ninety-six pages of very small print, and twenty-seven
  • different readings of the inscription: that three old gentlemen cut off
  • their eldest sons with a shilling a-piece for presuming to doubt the
  • antiquity of the fragment; and that one enthusiastic individual cut
  • himself off prematurely, in despair at being unable to fathom its
  • meaning: that Mr. Pickwick was elected an honorary member of seventeen
  • native and foreign societies, for making the discovery: that none of the
  • seventeen could make anything of it; but that all the seventeen agreed
  • it was very extraordinary.
  • Mr. Blotton, indeed--and the name will be doomed to the undying contempt
  • of those who cultivate the mysterious and the sublime--Mr. Blotton, we
  • say, with the doubt and cavilling peculiar to vulgar minds, presumed to
  • state a view of the case, as degrading as ridiculous. Mr. Blotton, with
  • a mean desire to tarnish the lustre of the immortal name of Pickwick,
  • actually undertook a journey to Cobham in person, and on his return,
  • sarcastically observed in an oration at the club, that he had seen the
  • man from whom the stone was purchased; that the man presumed the stone
  • to be ancient, but solemnly denied the antiquity of the inscription--
  • inasmuch as he represented it to have been rudely carved by himself in
  • an idle mood, and to display letters intended to bear neither more or
  • less than the simple construction of--‘BILL STUMPS, HIS MARK’; and that
  • Mr. Stumps, being little in the habit of original composition, and more
  • accustomed to be guided by the sound of words than by the strict rules
  • of orthography, had omitted the concluding ‘L’ of his Christian name.
  • The Pickwick Club (as might have been expected from so enlightened an
  • institution) received this statement with the contempt it deserved,
  • expelled the presumptuous and ill-conditioned Blotton from the society,
  • and voted Mr. Pickwick a pair of gold spectacles, in token of their
  • confidence and approbation: in return for which, Mr. Pickwick caused a
  • portrait of himself to be painted, and hung up in the club room.
  • Mr. Blotton was ejected but not conquered. He also wrote a pamphlet,
  • addressed to the seventeen learned societies, native and foreign,
  • containing a repetition of the statement he had already made, and rather
  • more than half intimating his opinion that the seventeen learned
  • societies were so many ‘humbugs.’ Hereupon, the virtuous indignation of
  • the seventeen learned societies being roused, several fresh pamphlets
  • appeared; the foreign learned societies corresponded with the native
  • learned societies; the native learned societies translated the pamphlets
  • of the foreign learned societies into English; the foreign learned
  • societies translated the pamphlets of the native learned societies into
  • all sorts of languages; and thus commenced that celebrated scientific
  • discussion so well known to all men, as the Pickwick controversy.
  • But this base attempt to injure Mr. Pickwick recoiled upon the head of
  • its calumnious author. The seventeen learned societies unanimously voted
  • the presumptuous Blotton an ignorant meddler, and forthwith set to work
  • upon more treatises than ever. And to this day the stone remains, an
  • illegible monument of Mr. Pickwick’s greatness, and a lasting trophy to
  • the littleness of his enemies.
  • CHAPTER XII. DESCRIPTIVE OF A VERY IMPORTANT PROCEEDING ON THE PART OF
  • MR. PICKWICK; NO LESS AN EPOCH IN HIS LIFE, THAN IN THIS HISTORY
  • Mr. Pickwick’s apartments in Goswell Street, although on a limited
  • scale, were not only of a very neat and comfortable description, but
  • peculiarly adapted for the residence of a man of his genius and
  • observation. His sitting-room was the first-floor front, his bedroom the
  • second-floor front; and thus, whether he were sitting at his desk in his
  • parlour, or standing before the dressing-glass in his dormitory, he had
  • an equal opportunity of contemplating human nature in all the numerous
  • phases it exhibits, in that not more populous than popular thoroughfare.
  • His landlady, Mrs. Bardell--the relict and sole executrix of a deceased
  • custom-house officer--was a comely woman of bustling manners and
  • agreeable appearance, with a natural genius for cooking, improved by
  • study and long practice, into an exquisite talent. There were no
  • children, no servants, no fowls. The only other inmates of the house
  • were a large man and a small boy; the first a lodger, the second a
  • production of Mrs. Bardell’s. The large man was always home precisely at
  • ten o’clock at night, at which hour he regularly condensed himself into
  • the limits of a dwarfish French bedstead in the back parlour; and the
  • infantine sports and gymnastic exercises of Master Bardell were
  • exclusively confined to the neighbouring pavements and gutters.
  • Cleanliness and quiet reigned throughout the house; and in it Mr.
  • Pickwick’s will was law.
  • To any one acquainted with these points of the domestic economy of the
  • establishment, and conversant with the admirable regulation of Mr.
  • Pickwick’s mind, his appearance and behaviour on the morning previous to
  • that which had been fixed upon for the journey to Eatanswill would have
  • been most mysterious and unaccountable. He paced the room to and fro
  • with hurried steps, popped his head out of the window at intervals of
  • about three minutes each, constantly referred to his watch, and
  • exhibited many other manifestations of impatience very unusual with him.
  • It was evident that something of great importance was in contemplation,
  • but what that something was, not even Mrs. Bardell had been enabled to
  • discover.
  • ‘Mrs. Bardell,’ said Mr. Pickwick, at last, as that amiable female
  • approached the termination of a prolonged dusting of the apartment.
  • ‘Sir,’ said Mrs. Bardell.
  • ‘Your little boy is a very long time gone.’
  • ‘Why it’s a good long way to the Borough, sir,’ remonstrated Mrs.
  • Bardell.
  • ‘Ah,’ said Mr. Pickwick, ‘very true; so it is.’ Mr. Pickwick relapsed
  • into silence, and Mrs. Bardell resumed her dusting.
  • ‘Mrs. Bardell,’ said Mr. Pickwick, at the expiration of a few minutes.
  • ‘Sir,’ said Mrs. Bardell again.
  • ‘Do you think it a much greater expense to keep two people, than to keep
  • one?’
  • ‘La, Mr. Pickwick,’ said Mrs. Bardell, colouring up to the very border
  • of her cap, as she fancied she observed a species of matrimonial twinkle
  • in the eyes of her lodger; ‘La, Mr. Pickwick, what a question!’
  • ‘Well, but do you?’ inquired Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘That depends,’ said Mrs. Bardell, approaching the duster very near to
  • Mr. Pickwick’s elbow which was planted on the table. ‘That depends a
  • good deal upon the person, you know, Mr. Pickwick; and whether it’s a
  • saving and careful person, sir.’
  • ‘That’s very true,’ said Mr. Pickwick, ‘but the person I have in my eye
  • (here he looked very hard at Mrs. Bardell) I think possesses these
  • qualities; and has, moreover, a considerable knowledge of the world, and
  • a great deal of sharpness, Mrs. Bardell, which may be of material use to
  • me.’
  • ‘La, Mr. Pickwick,’ said Mrs. Bardell, the crimson rising to her cap-
  • border again.
  • ‘I do,’ said Mr. Pickwick, growing energetic, as was his wont in
  • speaking of a subject which interested him--‘I do, indeed; and to tell
  • you the truth, Mrs. Bardell, I have made up my mind.’
  • ‘Dear me, sir,’ exclaimed Mrs. Bardell.
  • ‘You’ll think it very strange now,’ said the amiable Mr. Pickwick, with
  • a good-humoured glance at his companion, ‘that I never consulted you
  • about this matter, and never even mentioned it, till I sent your little
  • boy out this morning--eh?’
  • Mrs. Bardell could only reply by a look. She had long worshipped Mr.
  • Pickwick at a distance, but here she was, all at once, raised to a
  • pinnacle to which her wildest and most extravagant hopes had never dared
  • to aspire. Mr. Pickwick was going to propose--a deliberate plan, too--
  • sent her little boy to the Borough, to get him out of the way--how
  • thoughtful--how considerate!
  • ‘Well,’ said Mr. Pickwick, ‘what do you think?’
  • ‘Oh, Mr. Pickwick,’ said Mrs. Bardell, trembling with agitation, ‘you’re
  • very kind, sir.’
  • ‘It’ll save you a good deal of trouble, won’t it?’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Oh, I never thought anything of the trouble, sir,’ replied Mrs.
  • Bardell; ‘and, of course, I should take more trouble to please you then,
  • than ever; but it is so kind of you, Mr. Pickwick, to have so much
  • consideration for my loneliness.’
  • ‘Ah, to be sure,’ said Mr. Pickwick; ‘I never thought of that. When I am
  • in town, you’ll always have somebody to sit with you. To be sure, so you
  • will.’
  • ‘I am sure I ought to be a very happy woman,’ said Mrs. Bardell.
  • ‘And your little boy--’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Bless his heart!’ interposed Mrs. Bardell, with a maternal sob.
  • ‘He, too, will have a companion,’ resumed Mr. Pickwick, ‘a lively one,
  • who’ll teach him, I’ll be bound, more tricks in a week than he would
  • ever learn in a year.’ And Mr. Pickwick smiled placidly.
  • ‘Oh, you dear--’ said Mrs. Bardell.
  • Mr. Pickwick started.
  • ‘Oh, you kind, good, playful dear,’ said Mrs. Bardell; and without more
  • ado, she rose from her chair, and flung her arms round Mr. Pickwick’s
  • neck, with a cataract of tears and a chorus of sobs.
  • ‘Bless my soul,’ cried the astonished Mr. Pickwick; ‘Mrs. Bardell, my
  • good woman--dear me, what a situation--pray consider.--Mrs. Bardell,
  • don’t--if anybody should come--’
  • ‘Oh, let them come,’ exclaimed Mrs. Bardell frantically; ‘I’ll never
  • leave you--dear, kind, good soul;’ and, with these words, Mrs. Bardell
  • clung the tighter.
  • ‘Mercy upon me,’ said Mr. Pickwick, struggling violently, ‘I hear
  • somebody coming up the stairs. Don’t, don’t, there’s a good creature,
  • don’t.’ But entreaty and remonstrance were alike unavailing; for Mrs.
  • Bardell had fainted in Mr. Pickwick’s arms; and before he could gain
  • time to deposit her on a chair, Master Bardell entered the room,
  • ushering in Mr. Tupman, Mr. Winkle, and Mr. Snodgrass.
  • Mr. Pickwick was struck motionless and speechless. He stood with his
  • lovely burden in his arms, gazing vacantly on the countenances of his
  • friends, without the slightest attempt at recognition or explanation.
  • They, in their turn, stared at him; and Master Bardell, in his turn,
  • stared at everybody.
  • The astonishment of the Pickwickians was so absorbing, and the
  • perplexity of Mr. Pickwick was so extreme, that they might have remained
  • in exactly the same relative situations until the suspended animation of
  • the lady was restored, had it not been for a most beautiful and touching
  • expression of filial affection on the part of her youthful son. Clad in
  • a tight suit of corduroy, spangled with brass buttons of a very
  • considerable size, he at first stood at the door astounded and
  • uncertain; but by degrees, the impression that his mother must have
  • suffered some personal damage pervaded his partially developed mind, and
  • considering Mr. Pickwick as the aggressor, he set up an appalling and
  • semi-earthly kind of howling, and butting forward with his head,
  • commenced assailing that immortal gentleman about the back and legs,
  • with such blows and pinches as the strength of his arm, and the violence
  • of his excitement, allowed.
  • ‘Take this little villain away,’ said the agonised Mr. Pickwick, ‘he’s
  • mad.’
  • ‘What is the matter?’ said the three tongue-tied Pickwickians.
  • ‘I don’t know,’ replied Mr. Pickwick pettishly. ‘Take away the boy.’
  • (Here Mr. Winkle carried the interesting boy, screaming and struggling,
  • to the farther end of the apartment.) ‘Now help me, lead this woman
  • downstairs.’
  • ‘Oh, I am better now,’ said Mrs. Bardell faintly.
  • ‘Let me lead you downstairs,’ said the ever-gallant Mr. Tupman.
  • ‘Thank you, sir--thank you;’ exclaimed Mrs. Bardell hysterically. And
  • downstairs she was led accordingly, accompanied by her affectionate son.
  • ‘I cannot conceive,’ said Mr. Pickwick when his friend returned--‘I
  • cannot conceive what has been the matter with that woman. I had merely
  • announced to her my intention of keeping a man-servant, when she fell
  • into the extraordinary paroxysm in which you found her. Very
  • extraordinary thing.’
  • ‘Very,’ said his three friends.
  • ‘Placed me in such an extremely awkward situation,’ continued Mr.
  • Pickwick.
  • ‘Very,’ was the reply of his followers, as they coughed slightly, and
  • looked dubiously at each other.
  • This behaviour was not lost upon Mr. Pickwick. He remarked their
  • incredulity. They evidently suspected him.
  • ‘There is a man in the passage now,’ said Mr. Tupman.
  • ‘It’s the man I spoke to you about,’ said Mr. Pickwick; ‘I sent for him
  • to the Borough this morning. Have the goodness to call him up,
  • Snodgrass.’
  • Mr. Snodgrass did as he was desired; and Mr. Samuel Weller forthwith
  • presented himself.
  • ‘Oh--you remember me, I suppose?’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘I should think so,’ replied Sam, with a patronising wink. ‘Queer start
  • that ‘ere, but he was one too many for you, warn’t he? Up to snuff and a
  • pinch or two over--eh?’
  • ‘Never mind that matter now,’ said Mr. Pickwick hastily; ‘I want to
  • speak to you about something else. Sit down.’
  • ‘Thank’ee, sir,’ said Sam. And down he sat without further bidding,
  • having previously deposited his old white hat on the landing outside the
  • door. ‘’Tain’t a wery good ‘un to look at,’ said Sam, ‘but it’s an
  • astonishin’ ‘un to wear; and afore the brim went, it was a wery handsome
  • tile. Hows’ever it’s lighter without it, that’s one thing, and every
  • hole lets in some air, that’s another--wentilation gossamer I calls it.’
  • On the delivery of this sentiment, Mr. Weller smiled agreeably upon the
  • assembled Pickwickians.
  • ‘Now with regard to the matter on which I, with the concurrence of these
  • gentlemen, sent for you,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘That’s the pint, sir,’ interposed Sam; ‘out vith it, as the father said
  • to his child, when he swallowed a farden.’
  • ‘We want to know, in the first place,’ said Mr. Pickwick, ‘whether you
  • have any reason to be discontented with your present situation.’
  • ‘Afore I answers that ‘ere question, gen’l’m’n,’ replied Mr. Weller, ‘I
  • should like to know, in the first place, whether you’re a-goin’ to
  • purwide me with a better?’
  • A sunbeam of placid benevolence played on Mr. Pickwick’s features as he
  • said, ‘I have half made up my mind to engage you myself.’
  • ‘Have you, though?’ said Sam.
  • Mr. Pickwick nodded in the affirmative.
  • ‘Wages?’ inquired Sam.
  • ‘Twelve pounds a year,’ replied Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Clothes?’
  • ‘Two suits.’
  • ‘Work?’
  • ‘To attend upon me; and travel about with me and these gentlemen here.’
  • ‘Take the bill down,’ said Sam emphatically. ‘I’m let to a single
  • gentleman, and the terms is agreed upon.’
  • ‘You accept the situation?’ inquired Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Cert’nly,’ replied Sam. ‘If the clothes fits me half as well as the
  • place, they’ll do.’
  • ‘You can get a character of course?’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Ask the landlady o’ the White Hart about that, Sir,’ replied Sam.
  • ‘Can you come this evening?’
  • ‘I’ll get into the clothes this minute, if they’re here,’ said Sam, with
  • great alacrity.
  • ‘Call at eight this evening,’ said Mr. Pickwick; ‘and if the inquiries
  • are satisfactory, they shall be provided.’
  • With the single exception of one amiable indiscretion, in which an
  • assistant housemaid had equally participated, the history of Mr.
  • Weller’s conduct was so very blameless, that Mr. Pickwick felt fully
  • justified in closing the engagement that very evening. With the
  • promptness and energy which characterised not only the public
  • proceedings, but all the private actions of this extraordinary man, he
  • at once led his new attendant to one of those convenient emporiums where
  • gentlemen’s new and second-hand clothes are provided, and the
  • troublesome and inconvenient formality of measurement dispensed with;
  • and before night had closed in, Mr. Weller was furnished with a grey
  • coat with the P. C. button, a black hat with a cockade to it, a pink
  • striped waistcoat, light breeches and gaiters, and a variety of other
  • necessaries, too numerous to recapitulate.
  • ‘Well,’ said that suddenly-transformed individual, as he took his seat
  • on the outside of the Eatanswill coach next morning; ‘I wonder whether
  • I’m meant to be a footman, or a groom, or a gamekeeper, or a seedsman. I
  • looks like a sort of compo of every one on ‘em. Never mind; there’s a
  • change of air, plenty to see, and little to do; and all this suits my
  • complaint uncommon; so long life to the Pickvicks, says I!’
  • CHAPTER XIII. SOME ACCOUNT OF EATANSWILL; OF THE STATE OF PARTIES
  • THEREIN; AND OF THE ELECTION OF A MEMBER TO SERVE IN PARLIAMENT FOR THAT
  • ANCIENT, LOYAL, AND PATRIOTIC BOROUGH
  • We will frankly acknowledge that, up to the period of our being first
  • immersed in the voluminous papers of the Pickwick Club, we had never
  • heard of Eatanswill; we will with equal candour admit that we have in
  • vain searched for proof of the actual existence of such a place at the
  • present day. Knowing the deep reliance to be placed on every note and
  • statement of Mr. Pickwick’s, and not presuming to set up our
  • recollection against the recorded declarations of that great man, we
  • have consulted every authority, bearing upon the subject, to which we
  • could possibly refer. We have traced every name in schedules A and B,
  • without meeting with that of Eatanswill; we have minutely examined every
  • corner of the pocket county maps issued for the benefit of society by
  • our distinguished publishers, and the same result has attended our
  • investigation. We are therefore led to believe that Mr. Pickwick, with
  • that anxious desire to abstain from giving offence to any, and with
  • those delicate feelings for which all who knew him well know he was so
  • eminently remarkable, purposely substituted a fictitious designation,
  • for the real name of the place in which his observations were made. We
  • are confirmed in this belief by a little circumstance, apparently slight
  • and trivial in itself, but when considered in this point of view, not
  • undeserving of notice. In Mr. Pickwick’s note-book, we can just trace an
  • entry of the fact, that the places of himself and followers were booked
  • by the Norwich coach; but this entry was afterwards lined through, as if
  • for the purpose of concealing even the direction in which the borough is
  • situated. We will not, therefore, hazard a guess upon the subject, but
  • will at once proceed with this history, content with the materials which
  • its characters have provided for us.
  • It appears, then, that the Eatanswill people, like the people of many
  • other small towns, considered themselves of the utmost and most mighty
  • importance, and that every man in Eatanswill, conscious of the weight
  • that attached to his example, felt himself bound to unite, heart and
  • soul, with one of the two great parties that divided the town--the Blues
  • and the Buffs. Now the Blues lost no opportunity of opposing the Buffs,
  • and the Buffs lost no opportunity of opposing the Blues; and the
  • consequence was, that whenever the Buffs and Blues met together at
  • public meeting, town-hall, fair, or market, disputes and high words
  • arose between them. With these dissensions it is almost superfluous to
  • say that everything in Eatanswill was made a party question. If the
  • Buffs proposed to new skylight the market-place, the Blues got up public
  • meetings, and denounced the proceeding; if the Blues proposed the
  • erection of an additional pump in the High Street, the Buffs rose as one
  • man and stood aghast at the enormity. There were Blue shops and Buff
  • shops, Blue inns and Buff inns--there was a Blue aisle and a Buff aisle
  • in the very church itself.
  • Of course it was essentially and indispensably necessary that each of
  • these powerful parties should have its chosen organ and representative:
  • and, accordingly, there were two newspapers in the town--the Eatanswill
  • _Gazette_ and the Eatanswill _Independent_; the former advocating Blue
  • principles, and the latter conducted on grounds decidedly Buff. Fine
  • newspapers they were. Such leading articles, and such spirited attacks!-
  • -’Our worthless contemporary, the _Gazette_’--‘That disgraceful and
  • dastardly journal, the _Independent_’--‘That false and scurrilous print,
  • the _Independent_’--‘That vile and slanderous calumniator, the
  • _Gazette_;’ these, and other spirit-stirring denunciations, were strewn
  • plentifully over the columns of each, in every number, and excited
  • feelings of the most intense delight and indignation in the bosoms of
  • the townspeople.
  • Mr. Pickwick, with his usual foresight and sagacity, had chosen a
  • peculiarly desirable moment for his visit to the borough. Never was such
  • a contest known. The Honourable Samuel Slumkey, of Slumkey Hall, was the
  • Blue candidate; and Horatio Fizkin, Esq., of Fizkin Lodge, near
  • Eatanswill, had been prevailed upon by his friends to stand forward on
  • the Buff interest. The _Gazette_ warned the electors of Eatanswill that
  • the eyes not only of England, but of the whole civilised world, were
  • upon them; and the _Independent_ imperatively demanded to know, whether
  • the constituency of Eatanswill were the grand fellows they had always
  • taken them for, or base and servile tools, undeserving alike of the name
  • of Englishmen and the blessings of freedom. Never had such a commotion
  • agitated the town before.
  • It was late in the evening when Mr. Pickwick and his companions,
  • assisted by Sam, dismounted from the roof of the Eatanswill coach. Large
  • blue silk flags were flying from the windows of the Town Arms Inn, and
  • bills were posted in every sash, intimating, in gigantic letters, that
  • the Honourable Samuel Slumkey’s committee sat there daily. A crowd of
  • idlers were assembled in the road, looking at a hoarse man in the
  • balcony, who was apparently talking himself very red in the face in Mr.
  • Slumkey’s behalf; but the force and point of whose arguments were
  • somewhat impaired by the perpetual beating of four large drums which Mr.
  • Fizkin’s committee had stationed at the street corner. There was a busy
  • little man beside him, though, who took off his hat at intervals and
  • motioned to the people to cheer, which they regularly did, most
  • enthusiastically; and as the red-faced gentleman went on talking till he
  • was redder in the face than ever, it seemed to answer his purpose quite
  • as well as if anybody had heard him.
  • The Pickwickians had no sooner dismounted than they were surrounded by a
  • branch mob of the honest and independent, who forthwith set up three
  • deafening cheers, which being responded to by the main body (for it’s
  • not at all necessary for a crowd to know what they are cheering about),
  • swelled into a tremendous roar of triumph, which stopped even the red-
  • faced man in the balcony.
  • ‘Hurrah!’ shouted the mob, in conclusion.
  • ‘One cheer more,’ screamed the little fugleman in the balcony, and out
  • shouted the mob again, as if lungs were cast-iron, with steel works.
  • ‘Slumkey for ever!’ roared the honest and independent.
  • ‘Slumkey for ever!’ echoed Mr. Pickwick, taking off his hat.
  • ‘No Fizkin!’ roared the crowd.
  • ‘Certainly not!’ shouted Mr. Pickwick. ‘Hurrah!’ And then there was
  • another roaring, like that of a whole menagerie when the elephant has
  • rung the bell for the cold meat.
  • ‘Who is Slumkey?’ whispered Mr. Tupman.
  • ‘I don’t know,’ replied Mr. Pickwick, in the same tone. ‘Hush. Don’t ask
  • any questions. It’s always best on these occasions to do what the mob
  • do.’
  • ‘But suppose there are two mobs?’ suggested Mr. Snodgrass.
  • ‘Shout with the largest,’ replied Mr. Pickwick.
  • Volumes could not have said more.
  • They entered the house, the crowd opening right and left to let them
  • pass, and cheering vociferously. The first object of consideration was
  • to secure quarters for the night.
  • ‘Can we have beds here?’ inquired Mr. Pickwick, summoning the waiter.
  • ‘Don’t know, Sir,’ replied the man; ‘afraid we’re full, sir--I’ll
  • inquire, Sir.’ Away he went for that purpose, and presently returned, to
  • ask whether the gentleman were ‘Blue.’
  • As neither Mr. Pickwick nor his companions took any vital interest in
  • the cause of either candidate, the question was rather a difficult one
  • to answer. In this dilemma Mr. Pickwick bethought himself of his new
  • friend, Mr. Perker.
  • ‘Do you know a gentleman of the name of Perker?’ inquired Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Certainly, Sir; Honourable Mr. Samuel Slumkey’s agent.’
  • ‘He is Blue, I think?’
  • ‘Oh, yes, Sir.’
  • ‘Then _we_ are Blue,’ said Mr. Pickwick; but observing that the man
  • looked rather doubtful at this accommodating announcement, he gave him
  • his card, and desired him to present it to Mr. Perker forthwith, if he
  • should happen to be in the house. The waiter retired; and reappearing
  • almost immediately with a request that Mr. Pickwick would follow him,
  • led the way to a large room on the first floor, where, seated at a long
  • table covered with books and papers, was Mr. Perker.
  • ‘Ah--ah, my dear Sir,’ said the little man, advancing to meet him; ‘very
  • happy to see you, my dear Sir, very. Pray sit down. So you have carried
  • your intention into effect. You have come down here to see an election--
  • eh?’
  • Mr. Pickwick replied in the affirmative.
  • ‘Spirited contest, my dear sir,’ said the little man.
  • ‘I’m delighted to hear it,’ said Mr. Pickwick, rubbing his hands. ‘I
  • like to see sturdy patriotism, on whatever side it is called forth--and
  • so it’s a spirited contest?’
  • ‘Oh, yes,’ said the little man, ‘very much so indeed. We have opened all
  • the public-houses in the place, and left our adversary nothing but the
  • beer-shops--masterly stroke of policy that, my dear Sir, eh?’ The little
  • man smiled complacently, and took a large pinch of snuff.
  • ‘And what are the probabilities as to the result of the contest?’
  • inquired Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Why, doubtful, my dear Sir; rather doubtful as yet,’ replied the little
  • man. ‘Fizkin’s people have got three-and-thirty voters in the lock-up
  • coach-house at the White Hart.’
  • ‘In the coach-house!’ said Mr. Pickwick, considerably astonished by this
  • second stroke of policy.
  • ‘They keep ‘em locked up there till they want ‘em,’ resumed the little
  • man. ‘The effect of that is, you see, to prevent our getting at them;
  • and even if we could, it would be of no use, for they keep them very
  • drunk on purpose. Smart fellow Fizkin’s agent--very smart fellow
  • indeed.’
  • Mr. Pickwick stared, but said nothing.
  • ‘We are pretty confident, though,’ said Mr. Perker, sinking his voice
  • almost to a whisper. ‘We had a little tea-party here, last night--five-
  • and-forty women, my dear sir--and gave every one of ‘em a green parasol
  • when she went away.’
  • ‘A parasol!’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Fact, my dear Sir, fact. Five-and-forty green parasols, at seven and
  • sixpence a-piece. All women like finery--extraordinary the effect of
  • those parasols. Secured all their husbands, and half their brothers--
  • beats stockings, and flannel, and all that sort of thing hollow. My
  • idea, my dear Sir, entirely. Hail, rain, or sunshine, you can’t walk
  • half a dozen yards up the street, without encountering half a dozen
  • green parasols.’
  • Here the little man indulged in a convulsion of mirth, which was only
  • checked by the entrance of a third party.
  • This was a tall, thin man, with a sandy-coloured head inclined to
  • baldness, and a face in which solemn importance was blended with a look
  • of unfathomable profundity. He was dressed in a long brown surtout, with
  • a black cloth waistcoat, and drab trousers. A double eyeglass dangled at
  • his waistcoat; and on his head he wore a very low-crowned hat with a
  • broad brim. The new-comer was introduced to Mr. Pickwick as Mr. Pott,
  • the editor of the Eatanswill _Gazette_. After a few preliminary remarks,
  • Mr. Pott turned round to Mr. Pickwick, and said with solemnity--
  • ‘This contest excites great interest in the metropolis, sir?’
  • ‘I believe it does,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘To which I have reason to know,’ said Pott, looking towards Mr. Perker
  • for corroboration--‘to which I have reason to know that my article of
  • last Saturday in some degree contributed.’
  • ‘Not the least doubt of it,’ said the little man.
  • ‘The press is a mighty engine, sir,’ said Pott.
  • Mr. Pickwick yielded his fullest assent to the proposition.
  • ‘But I trust, sir,’ said Pott, ‘that I have never abused the enormous
  • power I wield. I trust, sir, that I have never pointed the noble
  • instrument which is placed in my hands, against the sacred bosom of
  • private life, or the tender breast of individual reputation; I trust,
  • sir, that I have devoted my energies to--to endeavours--humble they may
  • be, humble I know they are--to instil those principles of--which--are--’
  • Here the editor of the Eatanswill _Gazette_, appearing to ramble, Mr.
  • Pickwick came to his relief, and said--
  • ‘Certainly.’
  • ‘And what, Sir,’ said Pott--‘what, Sir, let me ask you as an impartial
  • man, is the state of the public mind in London, with reference to my
  • contest with the _Independent_?’
  • ‘Greatly excited, no doubt,’ interposed Mr. Perker, with a look of
  • slyness which was very likely accidental.
  • ‘The contest,’ said Pott, ‘shall be prolonged so long as I have health
  • and strength, and that portion of talent with which I am gifted. From
  • that contest, Sir, although it may unsettle men’s minds and excite their
  • feelings, and render them incapable for the discharge of the everyday
  • duties of ordinary life; from that contest, sir, I will never shrink,
  • till I have set my heel upon the Eatanswill _Independent_. I wish the
  • people of London, and the people of this country to know, sir, that they
  • may rely upon me--that I will not desert them, that I am resolved to
  • stand by them, Sir, to the last.’
  • Your conduct is most noble, Sir,’ said Mr. Pickwick; and he grasped the
  • hand of the magnanimous Pott.
  • ‘You are, sir, I perceive, a man of sense and talent,’ said Mr. Pott,
  • almost breathless with the vehemence of his patriotic declaration. ‘I am
  • most happy, sir, to make the acquaintance of such a man.’
  • ‘And I,’ said Mr. Pickwick, ‘feel deeply honoured by this expression of
  • your opinion. Allow me, sir, to introduce you to my fellow-travellers,
  • the other corresponding members of the club I am proud to have founded.’
  • ‘I shall be delighted,’ said Mr. Pott.
  • Mr. Pickwick withdrew, and returning with his friends, presented them in
  • due form to the editor of the Eatanswill _Gazette_.
  • ‘Now, my dear Pott,’ said little Mr. Perker, ‘the question is, what are
  • we to do with our friends here?’
  • ‘We can stop in this house, I suppose,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Not a spare bed in the house, my dear sir--not a single bed.’
  • ‘Extremely awkward,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Very,’ said his fellow-voyagers.
  • ‘I have an idea upon this subject,’ said Mr. Pott, ‘which I think may be
  • very successfully adopted. They have two beds at the Peacock, and I can
  • boldly say, on behalf of Mrs. Pott, that she will be delighted to
  • accommodate Mr. Pickwick and any one of his friends, if the other two
  • gentlemen and their servant do not object to shifting, as they best can,
  • at the Peacock.’
  • After repeated pressings on the part of Mr. Pott, and repeated
  • protestations on that of Mr. Pickwick that he could not think of
  • incommoding or troubling his amiable wife, it was decided that it was
  • the only feasible arrangement that could be made. So it _was _made; and
  • after dinner together at the Town Arms, the friends separated, Mr.
  • Tupman and Mr. Snodgrass repairing to the Peacock, and Mr. Pickwick and
  • Mr. Winkle proceeding to the mansion of Mr. Pott; it having been
  • previously arranged that they should all reassemble at the Town Arms in
  • the morning, and accompany the Honourable Samuel Slumkey’s procession to
  • the place of nomination.
  • Mr. Pott’s domestic circle was limited to himself and his wife. All men
  • whom mighty genius has raised to a proud eminence in the world, have
  • usually some little weakness which appears the more conspicuous from the
  • contrast it presents to their general character. If Mr. Pott had a
  • weakness, it was, perhaps, that he was rather too submissive to the
  • somewhat contemptuous control and sway of his wife. We do not feel
  • justified in laying any particular stress upon the fact, because on the
  • present occasion all Mrs. Pott’s most winning ways were brought into
  • requisition to receive the two gentlemen.
  • ‘My dear,’ said Mr. Pott, ‘Mr. Pickwick--Mr. Pickwick of London.’
  • Mrs. Pott received Mr. Pickwick’s paternal grasp of the hand with
  • enchanting sweetness; and Mr. Winkle, who had not been announced at all,
  • sidled and bowed, unnoticed, in an obscure corner.
  • ‘P. my dear’--said Mrs. Pott.
  • ‘My life,’ said Mr. Pott.
  • ‘Pray introduce the other gentleman.’
  • ‘I beg a thousand pardons,’ said Mr. Pott. ‘Permit me, Mrs. Pott, Mr.--’
  • ‘Winkle,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Winkle,’ echoed Mr. Pott; and the ceremony of introduction was
  • complete.
  • ‘We owe you many apologies, ma’am,’ said Mr. Pickwick, ‘for disturbing
  • your domestic arrangements at so short a notice.’
  • ‘I beg you won’t mention it, sir,’ replied the feminine Pott, with
  • vivacity. ‘It is a high treat to me, I assure you, to see any new faces;
  • living as I do, from day to day, and week to week, in this dull place,
  • and seeing nobody.’
  • ‘Nobody, my dear!’ exclaimed Mr. Pott archly.
  • ‘Nobody but you,’ retorted Mrs. Pott, with asperity.
  • ‘You see, Mr. Pickwick,’ said the host in explanation of his wife’s
  • lament, ‘that we are in some measure cut off from many enjoyments and
  • pleasures of which we might otherwise partake. My public station, as
  • editor of the Eatanswill _Gazette_, the position which that paper holds
  • in the country, my constant immersion in the vortex of politics--’
  • ‘P. my dear--’ interposed Mrs. Pott.
  • ‘My life--’ said the editor.
  • ‘I wish, my dear, you would endeavour to find some topic of conversation
  • in which these gentlemen might take some rational interest.’
  • ‘But, my love,’ said Mr. Pott, with great humility, ‘Mr. Pickwick does
  • take an interest in it.’
  • ‘It’s well for him if he can,’ said Mrs. Pott emphatically; ‘I am
  • wearied out of my life with your politics, and quarrels with the
  • _Independent_, and nonsense. I am quite astonished, P., at your making
  • such an exhibition of your absurdity.’
  • ‘But, my dear--’ said Mr. Pott.
  • ‘Oh, nonsense, don’t talk to me,’ said Mrs. Pott. ‘Do you play ecarte,
  • Sir?’
  • ‘I shall be very happy to learn under your tuition,’ replied Mr. Winkle.
  • ‘Well, then, draw that little table into this window, and let me get out
  • of hearing of those prosy politics.’
  • ‘Jane,’ said Mr. Pott, to the servant who brought in candles, ‘go down
  • into the office, and bring me up the file of the _Gazette_ for eighteen
  • hundred and twenty-six. I’ll read you,’ added the editor, turning to Mr.
  • Pickwick--‘I’ll just read you a few of the leaders I wrote at that time
  • upon the Buff job of appointing a new tollman to the turnpike here; I
  • rather think they’ll amuse you.’
  • ‘I should like to hear them very much indeed,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • Up came the file, and down sat the editor, with Mr. Pickwick at his
  • side.
  • We have in vain pored over the leaves of Mr. Pickwick’s note-book, in
  • the hope of meeting with a general summary of these beautiful
  • compositions. We have every reason to believe that he was perfectly
  • enraptured with the vigour and freshness of the style; indeed Mr. Winkle
  • has recorded the fact that his eyes were closed, as if with excess of
  • pleasure, during the whole time of their perusal.
  • The announcement of supper put a stop both to the game of ecarte, and
  • the recapitulation of the beauties of the Eatanswill _Gazette_. Mrs.
  • Pott was in the highest spirits and the most agreeable humour. Mr.
  • Winkle had already made considerable progress in her good opinion, and
  • she did not hesitate to inform him, confidentially, that Mr. Pickwick
  • was ‘a delightful old dear.’ These terms convey a familiarity of
  • expression, in which few of those who were intimately acquainted with
  • that colossal-minded man, would have presumed to indulge. We have
  • preserved them, nevertheless, as affording at once a touching and a
  • convincing proof of the estimation in which he was held by every class
  • of society, and the case with which he made his way to their hearts and
  • feelings.
  • It was a late hour of the night--long after Mr. Tupman and Mr. Snodgrass
  • had fallen asleep in the inmost recesses of the Peacock--when the two
  • friends retired to rest. Slumber soon fell upon the senses of Mr.
  • Winkle, but his feelings had been excited, and his admiration roused;
  • and for many hours after sleep had rendered him insensible to earthly
  • objects, the face and figure of the agreeable Mrs. Pott presented
  • themselves again and again to his wandering imagination.
  • The noise and bustle which ushered in the morning were sufficient to
  • dispel from the mind of the most romantic visionary in existence, any
  • associations but those which were immediately connected with the
  • rapidly-approaching election. The beating of drums, the blowing of horns
  • and trumpets, the shouting of men, and tramping of horses, echoed and
  • re-echoed through the streets from the earliest dawn of day; and an
  • occasional fight between the light skirmishers of either party at once
  • enlivened the preparations, and agreeably diversified their character.
  • ‘Well, Sam,’ said Mr. Pickwick, as his valet appeared at his bedroom
  • door, just as he was concluding his toilet; ‘all alive to-day, I
  • suppose?’
  • ‘Reg’lar game, sir,’ replied Mr. Weller; ‘our people’s a-collecting down
  • at the Town Arms, and they’re a-hollering themselves hoarse already.’
  • ‘Ah,’ said Mr. Pickwick, ‘do they seem devoted to their party, Sam?’
  • ‘Never see such dewotion in my life, Sir.’
  • ‘Energetic, eh?’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Uncommon,’ replied Sam; ‘I never see men eat and drink so much afore. I
  • wonder they ain’t afeer’d o’ bustin’.’
  • ‘That’s the mistaken kindness of the gentry here,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Wery likely,’ replied Sam briefly.
  • ‘Fine, fresh, hearty fellows they seem,’ said Mr. Pickwick, glancing
  • from the window.
  • ‘Wery fresh,’ replied Sam; ‘me and the two waiters at the Peacock has
  • been a-pumpin’ over the independent woters as supped there last night.’
  • ‘Pumping over independent voters!’ exclaimed Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Yes,’ said his attendant, ‘every man slept vere he fell down; we
  • dragged ‘em out, one by one, this mornin’, and put ‘em under the pump,
  • and they’re in reg’lar fine order now. Shillin’ a head the committee
  • paid for that ‘ere job.’
  • ‘Can such things be!’ exclaimed the astonished Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Lord bless your heart, sir,’ said Sam, ‘why where was you half
  • baptised?--that’s nothin’, that ain’t.’
  • ‘Nothing?’said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Nothin’ at all, Sir,’ replied his attendant. ‘The night afore the last
  • day o’ the last election here, the opposite party bribed the barmaid at
  • the Town Arms, to hocus the brandy-and-water of fourteen unpolled
  • electors as was a-stoppin’ in the house.’
  • ‘What do you mean by “hocussing” brandy-and-water?’ inquired Mr.
  • Pickwick.
  • ‘Puttin’ laud’num in it,’ replied Sam. ‘Blessed if she didn’t send ‘em
  • all to sleep till twelve hours arter the election was over. They took
  • one man up to the booth, in a truck, fast asleep, by way of experiment,
  • but it was no go--they wouldn’t poll him; so they brought him back, and
  • put him to bed again.’
  • Strange practices, these,’ said Mr. Pickwick; half speaking to himself
  • and half addressing Sam.
  • ‘Not half so strange as a miraculous circumstance as happened to my own
  • father, at an election time, in this wery place, Sir,’ replied Sam.
  • ‘What was that?’ inquired Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Why, he drove a coach down here once,’ said Sam; ‘’lection time came
  • on, and he was engaged by vun party to bring down woters from London.
  • Night afore he was going to drive up, committee on t’ other side sends
  • for him quietly, and away he goes vith the messenger, who shows him in;-
  • -large room--lots of gen’l’m’n--heaps of papers, pens and ink, and all
  • that ‘ere. “Ah, Mr. Weller,” says the gen’l’m’n in the chair, “glad to
  • see you, sir; how are you?”--“Wery well, thank ‘ee, Sir,” says my
  • father; “I hope you’re pretty middlin,” says he.--“Pretty well,
  • thank’ee, Sir,” says the gen’l’m’n; “sit down, Mr. Weller--pray sit
  • down, sir.” So my father sits down, and he and the gen’l’m’n looks wery
  • hard at each other. “You don’t remember me?” said the gen’l’m’n.--“Can’t
  • say I do,” says my father.--“Oh, I know you,” says the gen’l’m’n:
  • “know’d you when you was a boy,” says he.--“Well, I don’t remember you,”
  • says my father.--“That’s wery odd,” says the gen’l’m’n.”--“Wery,” says
  • my father.--“You must have a bad mem’ry, Mr. Weller,” says the
  • gen’l’m’n.--“Well, it is a wery bad ‘un,” says my father.--“I thought
  • so,” says the gen’l’m’n. So then they pours him out a glass of wine, and
  • gammons him about his driving, and gets him into a reg’lar good humour,
  • and at last shoves a twenty-pound note into his hand. “It’s a wery bad
  • road between this and London,” says the gen’l’m’n.--“Here and there it
  • is a heavy road,” says my father.--” ‘Specially near the canal, I
  • think,” says the gen’l’m’n.--“Nasty bit that ‘ere,” says my father.--
  • “Well, Mr. Weller,” says the gen’l’m’n, “you’re a wery good whip, and
  • can do what you like with your horses, we know. We’re all wery fond o’
  • you, Mr. Weller, so in case you should have an accident when you’re
  • bringing these here woters down, and should tip ‘em over into the canal
  • vithout hurtin’ of ‘em, this is for yourself,” says he.--“Gen’l’m’n,
  • you’re wery kind,” says my father, “and I’ll drink your health in
  • another glass of wine,” says he; vich he did, and then buttons up the
  • money, and bows himself out. You wouldn’t believe, sir,’ continued Sam,
  • with a look of inexpressible impudence at his master, ‘that on the wery
  • day as he came down with them woters, his coach _was _upset on that ‘ere
  • wery spot, and ev’ry man on ‘em was turned into the canal.’
  • ‘And got out again?’ inquired Mr. Pickwick hastily.
  • ‘Why,’ replied Sam very slowly, ‘I rather think one old gen’l’m’n was
  • missin’; I know his hat was found, but I ain’t quite certain whether his
  • head was in it or not. But what I look at is the hex-traordinary and
  • wonderful coincidence, that arter what that gen’l’m’n said, my father’s
  • coach should be upset in that wery place, and on that wery day!’
  • ‘It is, no doubt, a very extraordinary circumstance indeed,’ said Mr.
  • Pickwick. ‘But brush my hat, Sam, for I hear Mr. Winkle calling me to
  • breakfast.’
  • With these words Mr. Pickwick descended to the parlour, where he found
  • breakfast laid, and the family already assembled. The meal was hastily
  • despatched; each of the gentlemen’s hats was decorated with an enormous
  • blue favour, made up by the fair hands of Mrs. Pott herself; and as Mr.
  • Winkle had undertaken to escort that lady to a house-top, in the
  • immediate vicinity of the hustings, Mr. Pickwick and Mr. Pott repaired
  • alone to the Town Arms, from the back window of which, one of Mr.
  • Slumkey’s committee was addressing six small boys and one girl, whom he
  • dignified, at every second sentence, with the imposing title of ‘Men of
  • Eatanswill,’ whereat the six small boys aforesaid cheered prodigiously.
  • The stable-yard exhibited unequivocal symptoms of the glory and strength
  • of the Eatanswill Blues. There was a regular army of blue flags, some
  • with one handle, and some with two, exhibiting appropriate devices, in
  • golden characters four feet high, and stout in proportion. There was a
  • grand band of trumpets, bassoons, and drums, marshalled four abreast,
  • and earning their money, if ever men did, especially the drum-beaters,
  • who were very muscular. There were bodies of constables with blue
  • staves, twenty committee-men with blue scarfs, and a mob of voters with
  • blue cockades. There were electors on horseback and electors afoot.
  • There was an open carriage-and-four, for the Honourable Samuel Slumkey;
  • and there were four carriage-and-pair, for his friends and supporters;
  • and the flags were rustling, and the band was playing, and the
  • constables were swearing, and the twenty committee-men were squabbling,
  • and the mob were shouting, and the horses were backing, and the post-
  • boys perspiring; and everybody, and everything, then and there
  • assembled, was for the special use, behoof, honour, and renown, of the
  • Honourable Samuel Slumkey, of Slumkey Hall, one of the candidates for
  • the representation of the borough of Eatanswill, in the Commons House of
  • Parliament of the United Kingdom.
  • Loud and long were the cheers, and mighty was the rustling of one of the
  • blue flags, with ‘Liberty of the Press’ inscribed thereon, when the
  • sandy head of Mr. Pott was discerned in one of the windows, by the mob
  • beneath; and tremendous was the enthusiasm when the Honourable Samuel
  • Slumkey himself, in top-boots, and a blue neckerchief, advanced and
  • seized the hand of the said Pott, and melodramatically testified by
  • gestures to the crowd, his ineffaceable obligations to the Eatanswill
  • _Gazette_.
  • ‘Is everything ready?’ said the Honourable Samuel Slumkey to Mr. Perker.
  • ‘Everything, my dear Sir,’ was the little man’s reply.
  • ‘Nothing has been omitted, I hope?’ said the Honourable Samuel Slumkey.
  • ‘Nothing has been left undone, my dear sir--nothing whatever. There are
  • twenty washed men at the street door for you to shake hands with; and
  • six children in arms that you’re to pat on the head, and inquire the age
  • of; be particular about the children, my dear sir--it has always a great
  • effect, that sort of thing.’
  • ‘I’ll take care,’ said the Honourable Samuel Slumkey.
  • ‘And, perhaps, my dear Sir,’ said the cautious little man, ‘perhaps if
  • you could--I don’t mean to say it’s indispensable--but if you could
  • manage to kiss one of ‘em, it would produce a very great impression on
  • the crowd.’
  • ‘Wouldn’t it have as good an effect if the proposer or seconder did
  • that?’ said the Honourable Samuel Slumkey.
  • ‘Why, I am afraid it wouldn’t,’ replied the agent; ‘if it were done by
  • yourself, my dear Sir, I think it would make you very popular.’
  • ‘Very well,’ said the Honourable Samuel Slumkey, with a resigned air,
  • ‘then it must be done. That’s all.’
  • ‘Arrange the procession,’ cried the twenty committee-men.
  • Amidst the cheers of the assembled throng, the band, and the constables,
  • and the committee-men, and the voters, and the horsemen, and the
  • carriages, took their places--each of the two-horse vehicles being
  • closely packed with as many gentlemen as could manage to stand upright
  • in it; and that assigned to Mr. Perker, containing Mr. Pickwick, Mr.
  • Tupman, Mr. Snodgrass, and about half a dozen of the committee besides.
  • There was a moment of awful suspense as the procession waited for the
  • Honourable Samuel Slumkey to step into his carriage. Suddenly the crowd
  • set up a great cheering.
  • ‘He has come out,’ said little Mr. Perker, greatly excited; the more so
  • as their position did not enable them to see what was going forward.
  • Another cheer, much louder.
  • ‘He has shaken hands with the men,’ cried the little agent.
  • Another cheer, far more vehement.
  • ‘He has patted the babies on the head,’ said Mr. Perker, trembling with
  • anxiety.
  • A roar of applause that rent the air.
  • ‘He has kissed one of ‘em!’ exclaimed the delighted little man.
  • A second roar.
  • ‘He has kissed another,’ gasped the excited manager.
  • A third roar.
  • ‘He’s kissing ‘em all!’ screamed the enthusiastic little gentleman, and
  • hailed by the deafening shouts of the multitude, the procession moved
  • on.
  • How or by what means it became mixed up with the other procession, and
  • how it was ever extricated from the confusion consequent thereupon, is
  • more than we can undertake to describe, inasmuch as Mr. Pickwick’s hat
  • was knocked over his eyes, nose, and mouth, by one poke of a Buff flag-
  • staff, very early in the proceedings. He describes himself as being
  • surrounded on every side, when he could catch a glimpse of the scene, by
  • angry and ferocious countenances, by a vast cloud of dust, and by a
  • dense crowd of combatants. He represents himself as being forced from
  • the carriage by some unseen power, and being personally engaged in a
  • pugilistic encounter; but with whom, or how, or why, he is wholly unable
  • to state. He then felt himself forced up some wooden steps by the
  • persons from behind; and on removing his hat, found himself surrounded
  • by his friends, in the very front of the left hand side of the hustings.
  • The right was reserved for the Buff party, and the centre for the mayor
  • and his officers; one of whom--the fat crier of Eatanswill--was ringing
  • an enormous bell, by way of commanding silence, while Mr. Horatio
  • Fizkin, and the Honourable Samuel Slumkey, with their hands upon their
  • hearts, were bowing with the utmost affability to the troubled sea of
  • heads that inundated the open space in front; and from whence arose a
  • storm of groans, and shouts, and yells, and hootings, that would have
  • done honour to an earthquake.
  • ‘There’s Winkle,’ said Mr. Tupman, pulling his friend by the sleeve.
  • ‘Where!’ said Mr. Pickwick, putting on his spectacles, which he had
  • fortunately kept in his pocket hitherto.
  • ‘There,’ said Mr. Tupman, ‘on the top of that house.’ And there, sure
  • enough, in the leaden gutter of a tiled roof, were Mr. Winkle and Mrs.
  • Pott, comfortably seated in a couple of chairs, waving their
  • handkerchiefs in token of recognition--a compliment which Mr. Pickwick
  • returned by kissing his hand to the lady.
  • The proceedings had not yet commenced; and as an inactive crowd is
  • generally disposed to be jocose, this very innocent action was
  • sufficient to awaken their facetiousness.
  • ‘Oh, you wicked old rascal,’ cried one voice, ‘looking arter the girls,
  • are you?’
  • ‘Oh, you wenerable sinner,’ cried another.
  • ‘Putting on his spectacles to look at a married ‘ooman!’ said a third.
  • ‘I see him a-winkin’ at her, with his wicked old eye,’ shouted a fourth.
  • ‘Look arter your wife, Pott,’ bellowed a fifth--and then there was a
  • roar of laughter.
  • As these taunts were accompanied with invidious comparisons between Mr.
  • Pickwick and an aged ram, and several witticisms of the like nature; and
  • as they moreover rather tended to convey reflections upon the honour of
  • an innocent lady, Mr. Pickwick’s indignation was excessive; but as
  • silence was proclaimed at the moment, he contented himself by scorching
  • the mob with a look of pity for their misguided minds, at which they
  • laughed more boisterously than ever.
  • ‘Silence!’ roared the mayor’s attendants.
  • ‘Whiffin, proclaim silence,’ said the mayor, with an air of pomp
  • befitting his lofty station. In obedience to this command the crier
  • performed another concerto on the bell, whereupon a gentleman in the
  • crowd called out ‘Muffins’; which occasioned another laugh.
  • ‘Gentlemen,’ said the mayor, at as loud a pitch as he could possibly
  • force his voice to--‘gentlemen. Brother electors of the borough of
  • Eatanswill. We are met here to-day for the purpose of choosing a
  • representative in the room of our late--’
  • Here the mayor was interrupted by a voice in the crowd.
  • ‘Suc-cess to the mayor!’ cried the voice, ‘and may he never desert the
  • nail and sarspan business, as he got his money by.’
  • This allusion to the professional pursuits of the orator was received
  • with a storm of delight, which, with a bell-accompaniment, rendered the
  • remainder of his speech inaudible, with the exception of the concluding
  • sentence, in which he thanked the meeting for the patient attention with
  • which they heard him throughout--an expression of gratitude which
  • elicited another burst of mirth, of about a quarter of an hour’s
  • duration.
  • Next, a tall, thin gentleman, in a very stiff white neckerchief, after
  • being repeatedly desired by the crowd to ‘send a boy home, to ask
  • whether he hadn’t left his voice under the pillow,’ begged to nominate a
  • fit and proper person to represent them in Parliament. And when he said
  • it was Horatio Fizkin, Esquire, of Fizkin Lodge, near Eatanswill, the
  • Fizkinites applauded, and the Slumkeyites groaned, so long, and so
  • loudly, that both he and the seconder might have sung comic songs in
  • lieu of speaking, without anybody’s being a bit the wiser.
  • The friends of Horatio Fizkin, Esquire, having had their innings, a
  • little choleric, pink-faced man stood forward to propose another fit and
  • proper person to represent the electors of Eatanswill in Parliament; and
  • very swimmingly the pink-faced gentleman would have got on, if he had
  • not been rather too choleric to entertain a sufficient perception of the
  • fun of the crowd. But after a very few sentences of figurative
  • eloquence, the pink-faced gentleman got from denouncing those who
  • interrupted him in the mob, to exchanging defiances with the gentlemen
  • on the hustings; whereupon arose an uproar which reduced him to the
  • necessity of expressing his feelings by serious pantomime, which he did,
  • and then left the stage to his seconder, who delivered a written speech
  • of half an hour’s length, and wouldn’t be stopped, because he had sent
  • it all to the Eatanswill _Gazette_, and the Eatanswill _Gazette_ had
  • already printed it, every word.
  • Then Horatio Fizkin, Esquire, of Fizkin Lodge, near Eatanswill,
  • presented himself for the purpose of addressing the electors; which he
  • no sooner did, than the band employed by the Honourable Samuel Slumkey,
  • commenced performing with a power to which their strength in the morning
  • was a trifle; in return for which, the Buff crowd belaboured the heads
  • and shoulders of the Blue crowd; on which the Blue crowd endeavoured to
  • dispossess themselves of their very unpleasant neighbours the Buff
  • crowd; and a scene of struggling, and pushing, and fighting, succeeded,
  • to which we can no more do justice than the mayor could, although he
  • issued imperative orders to twelve constables to seize the ringleaders,
  • who might amount in number to two hundred and fifty, or thereabouts. At
  • all these encounters, Horatio Fizkin, Esquire, of Fizkin Lodge, and his
  • friends, waxed fierce and furious; until at last Horatio Fizkin,
  • Esquire, of Fizkin Lodge, begged to ask his opponent, the Honourable
  • Samuel Slumkey, of Slumkey Hall, whether that band played by his
  • consent; which question the Honourable Samuel Slumkey declining to
  • answer, Horatio Fizkin, Esquire, of Fizkin Lodge, shook his fist in the
  • countenance of the Honourable Samuel Slumkey, of Slumkey Hall; upon
  • which the Honourable Samuel Slumkey, his blood being up, defied Horatio
  • Fizkin, Esquire, to mortal combat. At this violation of all known rules
  • and precedents of order, the mayor commanded another fantasia on the
  • bell, and declared that he would bring before himself, both Horatio
  • Fizkin, Esquire, of Fizkin Lodge, and the Honourable Samuel Slumkey, of
  • Slumkey Hall, and bind them over to keep the peace. Upon this terrific
  • denunciation, the supporters of the two candidates interfered, and after
  • the friends of each party had quarrelled in pairs, for three-quarters of
  • an hour, Horatio Fizkin, Esquire, touched his hat to the Honourable
  • Samuel Slumkey; the Honourable Samuel Slumkey touched his to Horatio
  • Fizkin, Esquire; the band was stopped; the crowd were partially quieted;
  • and Horatio Fizkin, Esquire, was permitted to proceed.
  • The speeches of the two candidates, though differing in every other
  • respect, afforded a beautiful tribute to the merit and high worth of the
  • electors of Eatanswill. Both expressed their opinion that a more
  • independent, a more enlightened, a more public-spirited, a more noble-
  • minded, a more disinterested set of men than those who had promised to
  • vote for him, never existed on earth; each darkly hinted his suspicions
  • that the electors in the opposite interest had certain swinish and
  • besotted infirmities which rendered them unfit for the exercise of the
  • important duties they were called upon to discharge. Fizkin expressed
  • his readiness to do anything he was wanted: Slumkey, his determination
  • to do nothing that was asked of him. Both said that the trade, the
  • manufactures, the commerce, the prosperity of Eatanswill, would ever be
  • dearer to their hearts than any earthly object; and each had it in his
  • power to state, with the utmost confidence, that he was the man who
  • would eventually be returned.
  • There was a show of hands; the mayor decided in favour of the Honourable
  • Samuel Slumkey, of Slumkey Hall. Horatio Fizkin, Esquire, of Fizkin
  • Lodge, demanded a poll, and a poll was fixed accordingly. Then a vote of
  • thanks was moved to the mayor for his able conduct in the chair; and the
  • mayor, devoutly wishing that he had had a chair to display his able
  • conduct in (for he had been standing during the whole proceedings),
  • returned thanks. The processions reformed, the carriages rolled slowly
  • through the crowd, and its members screeched and shouted after them as
  • their feelings or caprice dictated.
  • During the whole time of the polling, the town was in a perpetual fever
  • of excitement. Everything was conducted on the most liberal and
  • delightful scale. Excisable articles were remarkably cheap at all the
  • public-houses; and spring vans paraded the streets for the accommodation
  • of voters who were seized with any temporary dizziness in the head--an
  • epidemic which prevailed among the electors, during the contest, to a
  • most alarming extent, and under the influence of which they might
  • frequently be seen lying on the pavements in a state of utter
  • insensibility. A small body of electors remained unpolled on the very
  • last day. They were calculating and reflecting persons, who had not yet
  • been convinced by the arguments of either party, although they had
  • frequent conferences with each. One hour before the close of the poll,
  • Mr. Perker solicited the honour of a private interview with these
  • intelligent, these noble, these patriotic men. It was granted. His
  • arguments were brief but satisfactory. They went in a body to the poll;
  • and when they returned, the Honourable Samuel Slumkey, of Slumkey Hall,
  • was returned also.
  • CHAPTER XIV. COMPRISING A BRIEF DESCRIPTION OF THE COMPANY AT THE
  • PEACOCK ASSEMBLED; AND A TALE TOLD BY A BAGMAN
  • It is pleasant to turn from contemplating the strife and turmoil of
  • political existence, to the peaceful repose of private life. Although in
  • reality no great partisan of either side, Mr. Pickwick was sufficiently
  • fired with Mr. Pott’s enthusiasm, to apply his whole time and attention
  • to the proceedings, of which the last chapter affords a description
  • compiled from his own memoranda. Nor while he was thus occupied was Mr.
  • Winkle idle, his whole time being devoted to pleasant walks and short
  • country excursions with Mrs. Pott, who never failed, when such an
  • opportunity presented itself, to seek some relief from the tedious
  • monotony she so constantly complained of. The two gentlemen being thus
  • completely domesticated in the editor’s house, Mr. Tupman and Mr.
  • Snodgrass were in a great measure cast upon their own resources. Taking
  • but little interest in public affairs, they beguiled their time chiefly
  • with such amusements as the Peacock afforded, which were limited to a
  • bagatelle-board in the first floor, and a sequestered skittle-ground in
  • the back yard. In the science and nicety of both these recreations,
  • which are far more abstruse than ordinary men suppose, they were
  • gradually initiated by Mr. Weller, who possessed a perfect knowledge of
  • such pastimes. Thus, notwithstanding that they were in a great measure
  • deprived of the comfort and advantage of Mr. Pickwick’s society, they
  • were still enabled to beguile the time, and to prevent its hanging
  • heavily on their hands.
  • It was in the evening, however, that the Peacock presented attractions
  • which enabled the two friends to resist even the invitations of the
  • gifted, though prosy, Pott. It was in the evening that the ‘commercial
  • room’ was filled with a social circle, whose characters and manners it
  • was the delight of Mr. Tupman to observe; whose sayings and doings it
  • was the habit of Mr. Snodgrass to note down.
  • Most people know what sort of places commercial rooms usually are. That
  • of the Peacock differed in no material respect from the generality of
  • such apartments; that is to say, it was a large, bare-looking room, the
  • furniture of which had no doubt been better when it was newer, with a
  • spacious table in the centre, and a variety of smaller dittos in the
  • corners; an extensive assortment of variously shaped chairs, and an old
  • Turkey carpet, bearing about the same relative proportion to the size of
  • the room, as a lady’s pocket-handkerchief might to the floor of a watch-
  • box. The walls were garnished with one or two large maps; and several
  • weather-beaten rough greatcoats, with complicated capes, dangled from a
  • long row of pegs in one corner. The mantel-shelf was ornamented with a
  • wooden inkstand, containing one stump of a pen and half a wafer; a road-
  • book and directory; a county history minus the cover; and the mortal
  • remains of a trout in a glass coffin. The atmosphere was redolent of
  • tobacco-smoke, the fumes of which had communicated a rather dingy hue to
  • the whole room, and more especially to the dusty red curtains which
  • shaded the windows. On the sideboard a variety of miscellaneous articles
  • were huddled together, the most conspicuous of which were some very
  • cloudy fish-sauce cruets, a couple of driving-boxes, two or three whips,
  • and as many travelling shawls, a tray of knives and forks, and the
  • mustard.
  • Here it was that Mr. Tupman and Mr. Snodgrass were seated on the evening
  • after the conclusion of the election, with several other temporary
  • inmates of the house, smoking and drinking.
  • ‘Well, gents,’ said a stout, hale personage of about forty, with only
  • one eye--a very bright black eye, which twinkled with a roguish
  • expression of fun and good-humour, ‘our noble selves, gents. I always
  • propose that toast to the company, and drink Mary to myself. Eh, Mary!’
  • ‘Get along with you, you wretch,’ said the hand-maiden, obviously not
  • ill-pleased with the compliment, however.
  • ‘Don’t go away, Mary,’ said the black-eyed man.
  • ‘Let me alone, imperence,’ said the young lady.
  • ‘Never mind,’ said the one-eyed man, calling after the girl as she left
  • the room. ‘I’ll step out by and by, Mary. Keep your spirits up, dear.’
  • Here he went through the not very difficult process of winking upon the
  • company with his solitary eye, to the enthusiastic delight of an elderly
  • personage with a dirty face and a clay pipe.
  • ‘Rum creeters is women,’ said the dirty-faced man, after a pause.
  • ‘Ah! no mistake about that,’ said a very red-faced man, behind a cigar.
  • After this little bit of philosophy there was another pause.
  • ‘There’s rummer things than women in this world though, mind you,’ said
  • the man with the black eye, slowly filling a large Dutch pipe, with a
  • most capacious bowl.
  • ‘Are you married?’ inquired the dirty-faced man.
  • ‘Can’t say I am.’
  • ‘I thought not.’ Here the dirty-faced man fell into ecstasies of mirth
  • at his own retort, in which he was joined by a man of bland voice and
  • placid countenance, who always made it a point to agree with everybody.
  • ‘Women, after all, gentlemen,’ said the enthusiastic Mr. Snodgrass, ‘are
  • the great props and comforts of our existence.’
  • ‘So they are,’ said the placid gentleman.
  • ‘When they’re in a good humour,’ interposed the dirty-faced man.
  • ‘And that’s very true,’ said the placid one.
  • ‘I repudiate that qualification,’ said Mr. Snodgrass, whose thoughts
  • were fast reverting to Emily Wardle. ‘I repudiate it with disdain--with
  • indignation. Show me the man who says anything against women, as women,
  • and I boldly declare he is not a man.’ And Mr. Snodgrass took his cigar
  • from his mouth, and struck the table violently with his clenched fist.
  • ‘That’s good sound argument,’ said the placid man.
  • ‘Containing a position which I deny,’ interrupted he of the dirty
  • countenance.
  • ‘And there’s certainly a very great deal of truth in what you observe
  • too, Sir,’ said the placid gentleman.
  • ‘Your health, Sir,’ said the bagman with the lonely eye, bestowing an
  • approving nod on Mr. Snodgrass.
  • Mr. Snodgrass acknowledged the compliment.
  • ‘I always like to hear a good argument,’ continued the bagman, ‘a sharp
  • one, like this: it’s very improving; but this little argument about
  • women brought to my mind a story I have heard an old uncle of mine tell,
  • the recollection of which, just now, made me say there were rummer
  • things than women to be met with, sometimes.’
  • ‘I should like to hear that same story,’ said the red-faced man with the
  • cigar.
  • ‘Should you?’ was the only reply of the bagman, who continued to smoke
  • with great vehemence.
  • ‘So should I,’ said Mr. Tupman, speaking for the first time. He was
  • always anxious to increase his stock of experience.
  • ‘Should _you_? Well then, I’ll tell it. No, I won’t. I know you won’t
  • believe it,’ said the man with the roguish eye, making that organ look
  • more roguish than ever. ‘If you say it’s true, of course I shall,’ said
  • Mr. Tupman.
  • ‘Well, upon that understanding I’ll tell you,’ replied the traveller.
  • ‘Did you ever hear of the great commercial house of Bilson & Slum? But
  • it doesn’t matter though, whether you did or not, because they retired
  • from business long since. It’s eighty years ago, since the circumstance
  • happened to a traveller for that house, but he was a particular friend
  • of my uncle’s; and my uncle told the story to me. It’s a queer name; but
  • he used to call it
  • THE BAGMAN’S STORY
  • and he used to tell it, something in this way.
  • ‘One winter’s evening, about five o’clock, just as it began to grow
  • dusk, a man in a gig might have been seen urging his tired horse along
  • the road which leads across Marlborough Downs, in the direction of
  • Bristol. I say he might have been seen, and I have no doubt he would
  • have been, if anybody but a blind man had happened to pass that way; but
  • the weather was so bad, and the night so cold and wet, that nothing was
  • out but the water, and so the traveller jogged along in the middle of
  • the road, lonesome and dreary enough. If any bagman of that day could
  • have caught sight of the little neck-or-nothing sort of gig, with a
  • clay-coloured body and red wheels, and the vixenish, ill tempered, fast-
  • going bay mare, that looked like a cross between a butcher’s horse and a
  • twopenny post-office pony, he would have known at once, that this
  • traveller could have been no other than Tom Smart, of the great house of
  • Bilson and Slum, Cateaton Street, City. However, as there was no bagman
  • to look on, nobody knew anything at all about the matter; and so Tom
  • Smart and his clay-coloured gig with the red wheels, and the vixenish
  • mare with the fast pace, went on together, keeping the secret among
  • them, and nobody was a bit the wiser.
  • ‘There are many pleasanter places even in this dreary world, than
  • Marlborough Downs when it blows hard; and if you throw in beside, a
  • gloomy winter’s evening, a miry and sloppy road, and a pelting fall of
  • heavy rain, and try the effect, by way of experiment, in your own proper
  • person, you will experience the full force of this observation.
  • ‘The wind blew--not up the road or down it, though that’s bad enough,
  • but sheer across it, sending the rain slanting down like the lines they
  • used to rule in the copy-books at school, to make the boys slope well.
  • For a moment it would die away, and the traveller would begin to delude
  • himself into the belief that, exhausted with its previous fury, it had
  • quietly laid itself down to rest, when, whoo! he could hear it growling
  • and whistling in the distance, and on it would come rushing over the
  • hill-tops, and sweeping along the plain, gathering sound and strength as
  • it drew nearer, until it dashed with a heavy gust against horse and man,
  • driving the sharp rain into their ears, and its cold damp breath into
  • their very bones; and past them it would scour, far, far away, with a
  • stunning roar, as if in ridicule of their weakness, and triumphant in
  • the consciousness of its own strength and power.
  • ‘The bay mare splashed away, through the mud and water, with drooping
  • ears; now and then tossing her head as if to express her disgust at this
  • very ungentlemanly behaviour of the elements, but keeping a good pace
  • notwithstanding, until a gust of wind, more furious than any that had
  • yet assailed them, caused her to stop suddenly and plant her four feet
  • firmly against the ground, to prevent her being blown over. It’s a
  • special mercy that she did this, for if she _had _been blown over, the
  • vixenish mare was so light, and the gig was so light, and Tom Smart such
  • a light weight into the bargain, that they must infallibly have all gone
  • rolling over and over together, until they reached the confines of
  • earth, or until the wind fell; and in either case the probability is,
  • that neither the vixenish mare, nor the clay-coloured gig with the red
  • wheels, nor Tom Smart, would ever have been fit for service again.
  • ‘“Well, damn my straps and whiskers,” says Tom Smart (Tom sometimes had
  • an unpleasant knack of swearing)--“damn my straps and whiskers,” says
  • Tom, “if this ain’t pleasant, blow me!”
  • ‘You’ll very likely ask me why, as Tom Smart had been pretty well blown
  • already, he expressed this wish to be submitted to the same process
  • again. I can’t say--all I know is, that Tom Smart said so--or at least
  • he always told my uncle he said so, and it’s just the same thing.
  • “‘Blow me,” says Tom Smart; and the mare neighed as if she were
  • precisely of the same opinion.
  • “‘Cheer up, old girl,” said Tom, patting the bay mare on the neck with
  • the end of his whip. “It won’t do pushing on, such a night as this; the
  • first house we come to we’ll put up at, so the faster you go the sooner
  • it’s over. Soho, old girl--gently--gently.”
  • ‘Whether the vixenish mare was sufficiently well acquainted with the
  • tones of Tom’s voice to comprehend his meaning, or whether she found it
  • colder standing still than moving on, of course I can’t say. But I can
  • say that Tom had no sooner finished speaking, than she pricked up her
  • ears, and started forward at a speed which made the clay-coloured gig
  • rattle until you would have supposed every one of the red spokes were
  • going to fly out on the turf of Marlborough Downs; and even Tom, whip as
  • he was, couldn’t stop or check her pace, until she drew up of her own
  • accord, before a roadside inn on the right-hand side of the way, about
  • half a quarter of a mile from the end of the Downs.
  • ‘Tom cast a hasty glance at the upper part of the house as he threw the
  • reins to the hostler, and stuck the whip in the box. It was a strange
  • old place, built of a kind of shingle, inlaid, as it were, with cross-
  • beams, with gabled-topped windows projecting completely over the
  • pathway, and a low door with a dark porch, and a couple of steep steps
  • leading down into the house, instead of the modern fashion of half a
  • dozen shallow ones leading up to it. It was a comfortable-looking place
  • though, for there was a strong, cheerful light in the bar window, which
  • shed a bright ray across the road, and even lighted up the hedge on the
  • other side; and there was a red flickering light in the opposite window,
  • one moment but faintly discernible, and the next gleaming strongly
  • through the drawn curtains, which intimated that a rousing fire was
  • blazing within. Marking these little evidences with the eye of an
  • experienced traveller, Tom dismounted with as much agility as his half-
  • frozen limbs would permit, and entered the house.
  • ‘In less than five minutes’ time, Tom was ensconced in the room opposite
  • the bar--the very room where he had imagined the fire blazing--before a
  • substantial, matter-of-fact, roaring fire, composed of something short
  • of a bushel of coals, and wood enough to make half a dozen decent
  • gooseberry bushes, piled half-way up the chimney, and roaring and
  • crackling with a sound that of itself would have warmed the heart of any
  • reasonable man. This was comfortable, but this was not all; for a
  • smartly-dressed girl, with a bright eye and a neat ankle, was laying a
  • very clean white cloth on the table; and as Tom sat with his slippered
  • feet on the fender, and his back to the open door, he saw a charming
  • prospect of the bar reflected in the glass over the chimney-piece, with
  • delightful rows of green bottles and gold labels, together with jars of
  • pickles and preserves, and cheeses and boiled hams, and rounds of beef,
  • arranged on shelves in the most tempting and delicious array. Well, this
  • was comfortable too; but even this was not all--for in the bar, seated
  • at tea at the nicest possible little table, drawn close up before the
  • brightest possible little fire, was a buxom widow of somewhere about
  • eight-and-forty or thereabouts, with a face as comfortable as the bar,
  • who was evidently the landlady of the house, and the supreme ruler over
  • all these agreeable possessions. There was only one drawback to the
  • beauty of the whole picture, and that was a tall man--a very tall man--
  • in a brown coat and bright basket buttons, and black whiskers and wavy
  • black hair, who was seated at tea with the widow, and who it required no
  • great penetration to discover was in a fair way of persuading her to be
  • a widow no longer, but to confer upon him the privilege of sitting down
  • in that bar, for and during the whole remainder of the term of his
  • natural life.
  • ‘Tom Smart was by no means of an irritable or envious disposition, but
  • somehow or other the tall man with the brown coat and the bright basket
  • buttons did rouse what little gall he had in his composition, and did
  • make him feel extremely indignant, the more especially as he could now
  • and then observe, from his seat before the glass, certain little
  • affectionate familiarities passing between the tall man and the widow,
  • which sufficiently denoted that the tall man was as high in favour as he
  • was in size. Tom was fond of hot punch--I may venture to say he was
  • _very_ fond of hot punch--and after he had seen the vixenish mare well
  • fed and well littered down, and had eaten every bit of the nice little
  • hot dinner which the widow tossed up for him with her own hands, he just
  • ordered a tumbler of it by way of experiment. Now, if there was one
  • thing in the whole range of domestic art, which the widow could
  • manufacture better than another, it was this identical article; and the
  • first tumbler was adapted to Tom Smart’s taste with such peculiar
  • nicety, that he ordered a second with the least possible delay. Hot
  • punch is a pleasant thing, gentlemen--an extremely pleasant thing under
  • any circumstances--but in that snug old parlour, before the roaring
  • fire, with the wind blowing outside till every timber in the old house
  • creaked again, Tom Smart found it perfectly delightful. He ordered
  • another tumbler, and then another--I am not quite certain whether he
  • didn’t order another after that--but the more he drank of the hot punch,
  • the more he thought of the tall man.
  • ‘“Confound his impudence!” said Tom to himself, “what business has he in
  • that snug bar? Such an ugly villain too!” said Tom. “If the widow had
  • any taste, she might surely pick up some better fellow than that.” Here
  • Tom’s eye wandered from the glass on the chimney-piece to the glass on
  • the table; and as he felt himself becoming gradually sentimental, he
  • emptied the fourth tumbler of punch and ordered a fifth.
  • ‘Tom Smart, gentlemen, had always been very much attached to the public
  • line. It had been long his ambition to stand in a bar of his own, in a
  • green coat, knee-cords, and tops. He had a great notion of taking the
  • chair at convivial dinners, and he had often thought how well he could
  • preside in a room of his own in the talking way, and what a capital
  • example he could set to his customers in the drinking department. All
  • these things passed rapidly through Tom’s mind as he sat drinking the
  • hot punch by the roaring fire, and he felt very justly and properly
  • indignant that the tall man should be in a fair way of keeping such an
  • excellent house, while he, Tom Smart, was as far off from it as ever.
  • So, after deliberating over the two last tumblers, whether he hadn’t a
  • perfect right to pick a quarrel with the tall man for having contrived
  • to get into the good graces of the buxom widow, Tom Smart at last
  • arrived at the satisfactory conclusion that he was a very ill-used and
  • persecuted individual, and had better go to bed.
  • ‘Up a wide and ancient staircase the smart girl preceded Tom, shading
  • the chamber candle with her hand, to protect it from the currents of air
  • which in such a rambling old place might have found plenty of room to
  • disport themselves in, without blowing the candle out, but which did
  • blow it out nevertheless--thus affording Tom’s enemies an opportunity of
  • asserting that it was he, and not the wind, who extinguished the candle,
  • and that while he pretended to be blowing it alight again, he was in
  • fact kissing the girl. Be this as it may, another light was obtained,
  • and Tom was conducted through a maze of rooms, and a labyrinth of
  • passages, to the apartment which had been prepared for his reception,
  • where the girl bade him good-night and left him alone.
  • ‘It was a good large room with big closets, and a bed which might have
  • served for a whole boarding-school, to say nothing of a couple of oaken
  • presses that would have held the baggage of a small army; but what
  • struck Tom’s fancy most was a strange, grim-looking, high backed chair,
  • carved in the most fantastic manner, with a flowered damask cushion, and
  • the round knobs at the bottom of the legs carefully tied up in red
  • cloth, as if it had got the gout in its toes. Of any other queer chair,
  • Tom would only have thought it was a queer chair, and there would have
  • been an end of the matter; but there was something about this particular
  • chair, and yet he couldn’t tell what it was, so odd and so unlike any
  • other piece of furniture he had ever seen, that it seemed to fascinate
  • him. He sat down before the fire, and stared at the old chair for half
  • an hour.--Damn the chair, it was such a strange old thing, he couldn’t
  • take his eyes off it.
  • ‘“Well,” said Tom, slowly undressing himself, and staring at the old
  • chair all the while, which stood with a mysterious aspect by the
  • bedside, “I never saw such a rum concern as that in my days. Very odd,”
  • said Tom, who had got rather sage with the hot punch--“very odd.” Tom
  • shook his head with an air of profound wisdom, and looked at the chair
  • again. He couldn’t make anything of it though, so he got into bed,
  • covered himself up warm, and fell asleep.
  • ‘In about half an hour, Tom woke up with a start, from a confused dream
  • of tall men and tumblers of punch; and the first object that presented
  • itself to his waking imagination was the queer chair.
  • ‘“I won’t look at it any more,” said Tom to himself, and he squeezed his
  • eyelids together, and tried to persuade himself he was going to sleep
  • again. No use; nothing but queer chairs danced before his eyes, kicking
  • up their legs, jumping over each other’s backs, and playing all kinds of
  • antics.
  • “‘I may as well see one real chair, as two or three complete sets of
  • false ones,” said Tom, bringing out his head from under the bedclothes.
  • There it was, plainly discernible by the light of the fire, looking as
  • provoking as ever.
  • ‘Tom gazed at the chair; and, suddenly as he looked at it, a most
  • extraordinary change seemed to come over it. The carving of the back
  • gradually assumed the lineaments and expression of an old, shrivelled
  • human face; the damask cushion became an antique, flapped waistcoat; the
  • round knobs grew into a couple of feet, encased in red cloth slippers;
  • and the whole chair looked like a very ugly old man, of the previous
  • century, with his arms akimbo. Tom sat up in bed, and rubbed his eyes to
  • dispel the illusion. No. The chair was an ugly old gentleman; and what
  • was more, he was winking at Tom Smart.
  • ‘Tom was naturally a headlong, careless sort of dog, and he had had five
  • tumblers of hot punch into the bargain; so, although he was a little
  • startled at first, he began to grow rather indignant when he saw the old
  • gentleman winking and leering at him with such an impudent air. At
  • length he resolved that he wouldn’t stand it; and as the old face still
  • kept winking away as fast as ever, Tom said, in a very angry tone--
  • ‘“What the devil are you winking at me for?”
  • ‘“Because I like it, Tom Smart,” said the chair; or the old gentleman,
  • whichever you like to call him. He stopped winking though, when Tom
  • spoke, and began grinning like a superannuated monkey.
  • ‘“How do you know my name, old nut-cracker face?” inquired Tom Smart,
  • rather staggered; though he pretended to carry it off so well.
  • ‘“Come, come, Tom,” said the old gentleman, “that’s not the way to
  • address solid Spanish mahogany. Damme, you couldn’t treat me with less
  • respect if I was veneered.” When the old gentleman said this, he looked
  • so fierce that Tom began to grow frightened.
  • ‘“I didn’t mean to treat you with any disrespect, Sir,” said Tom, in a
  • much humbler tone than he had spoken in at first.
  • ‘“Well, well,” said the old fellow, “perhaps not--perhaps not. Tom--”
  • ‘“Sir--”
  • ‘“I know everything about you, Tom; everything. You’re very poor, Tom.”
  • ‘“I certainly am,” said Tom Smart. “But how came you to know that?”
  • ‘“Never mind that,” said the old gentleman; “you’re much too fond of
  • punch, Tom.”
  • ‘Tom Smart was just on the point of protesting that he hadn’t tasted a
  • drop since his last birthday, but when his eye encountered that of the
  • old gentleman he looked so knowing that Tom blushed, and was silent.
  • ‘“Tom,” said the old gentleman, “the widow’s a fine woman--remarkably
  • fine woman--eh, Tom?” Here the old fellow screwed up his eyes, cocked up
  • one of his wasted little legs, and looked altogether so unpleasantly
  • amorous, that Tom was quite disgusted with the levity of his behaviour--
  • at his time of life, too!
  • ‘“I am her guardian, Tom,” said the old gentleman.
  • ‘“Are you?” inquired Tom Smart.
  • ‘“I knew her mother, Tom,” said the old fellow: “and her grandmother.
  • She was very fond of me--made me this waistcoat, Tom.”
  • ‘“Did she?” said Tom Smart.
  • ‘“And these shoes,” said the old fellow, lifting up one of the red cloth
  • mufflers; “but don’t mention it, Tom. I shouldn’t like to have it known
  • that she was so much attached to me. It might occasion some
  • unpleasantness in the family.” When the old rascal said this, he looked
  • so extremely impertinent, that, as Tom Smart afterwards declared, he
  • could have sat upon him without remorse.
  • ‘“I have been a great favourite among the women in my time, Tom,” said
  • the profligate old debauchee; “hundreds of fine women have sat in my lap
  • for hours together. What do you think of that, you dog, eh!” The old
  • gentleman was proceeding to recount some other exploits of his youth,
  • when he was seized with such a violent fit of creaking that he was
  • unable to proceed.
  • ‘“Just serves you right, old boy,” thought Tom Smart; but he didn’t say
  • anything.
  • ‘“Ah!” said the old fellow, “I am a good deal troubled with this now. I
  • am getting old, Tom, and have lost nearly all my nails. I have had an
  • operation performed, too--a small piece let into my back--and I found it
  • a severe trial, Tom.”
  • ‘“I dare say you did, Sir,” said Tom Smart.
  • ‘“However,” said the old gentleman, “that’s not the point. Tom! I want
  • you to marry the widow.”
  • ‘“Me, Sir!” said Tom.
  • ‘“You,” said the old gentleman.
  • ‘“Bless your reverend locks,” said Tom (he had a few scattered horse-
  • hairs left)--“bless your reverend locks, she wouldn’t have me.” And Tom
  • sighed involuntarily, as he thought of the bar.
  • ‘“Wouldn’t she?” said the old gentleman firmly.
  • ‘“No, no,” said Tom; “there’s somebody else in the wind. A tall man--a
  • confoundedly tall man--with black whiskers.”
  • ‘“Tom,” said the old gentleman; “she will never have him.”
  • ‘“Won’t she?” said Tom. “If you stood in the bar, old gentleman, you’d
  • tell another story.”
  • ‘“Pooh, pooh,” said the old gentleman. “I know all about that.”
  • ‘“About what?” said Tom.
  • ‘“The kissing behind the door, and all that sort of thing, Tom,” said
  • the old gentleman. And here he gave another impudent look, which made
  • Tom very wroth, because as you all know, gentlemen, to hear an old
  • fellow, who ought to know better, talking about these things, is very
  • unpleasant--nothing more so.
  • ‘“I know all about that, Tom,” said the old gentleman. “I have seen it
  • done very often in my time, Tom, between more people than I should like
  • to mention to you; but it never came to anything after all.”
  • ‘“You must have seen some queer things,” said Tom, with an inquisitive
  • look.
  • ‘“You may say that, Tom,” replied the old fellow, with a very
  • complicated wink. “I am the last of my family, Tom,” said the old
  • gentleman, with a melancholy sigh.
  • ‘“Was it a large one?” inquired Tom Smart.
  • ‘“There were twelve of us, Tom,” said the old gentleman; “fine,
  • straight-backed, handsome fellows as you’d wish to see. None of your
  • modern abortions--all with arms, and with a degree of polish, though I
  • say it that should not, which it would have done your heart good to
  • behold.”
  • ‘“And what’s become of the others, Sir?” asked Tom Smart--
  • ‘The old gentleman applied his elbow to his eye as he replied, “Gone,
  • Tom, gone. We had hard service, Tom, and they hadn’t all my
  • constitution. They got rheumatic about the legs and arms, and went into
  • kitchens and other hospitals; and one of ‘em, with long service and hard
  • usage, positively lost his senses--he got so crazy that he was obliged
  • to be burnt. Shocking thing that, Tom.”
  • ‘“Dreadful!” said Tom Smart.
  • ‘The old fellow paused for a few minutes, apparently struggling with his
  • feelings of emotion, and then said--
  • ‘“However, Tom, I am wandering from the point. This tall man, Tom, is a
  • rascally adventurer. The moment he married the widow, he would sell off
  • all the furniture, and run away. What would be the consequence? She
  • would be deserted and reduced to ruin, and I should catch my death of
  • cold in some broker’s shop.”
  • ‘“Yes, but--”
  • ‘“Don’t interrupt me,” said the old gentleman. “Of you, Tom, I entertain
  • a very different opinion; for I well know that if you once settled
  • yourself in a public-house, you would never leave it, as long as there
  • was anything to drink within its walls.”
  • ‘“I am very much obliged to you for your good opinion, Sir,” said Tom
  • Smart.
  • ‘“Therefore,” resumed the old gentleman, in a dictatorial tone, “you
  • shall have her, and he shall not.”
  • ‘“What is to prevent it?” said Tom Smart eagerly.
  • ‘“This disclosure,” replied the old gentleman; “he is already married.”
  • ‘“How can I prove it?” said Tom, starting half out of bed.
  • ‘The old gentleman untucked his arm from his side, and having pointed to
  • one of the oaken presses, immediately replaced it, in its old position.
  • ‘“He little thinks,” said the old gentleman, “that in the right-hand
  • pocket of a pair of trousers in that press, he has left a letter,
  • entreating him to return to his disconsolate wife, with six--mark me,
  • Tom--six babes, and all of them small ones.”
  • ‘As the old gentleman solemnly uttered these words, his features grew
  • less and less distinct, and his figure more shadowy. A film came over
  • Tom Smart’s eyes. The old man seemed gradually blending into the chair,
  • the damask waistcoat to resolve into a cushion, the red slippers to
  • shrink into little red cloth bags. The light faded gently away, and Tom
  • Smart fell back on his pillow, and dropped asleep.
  • ‘Morning aroused Tom from the lethargic slumber, into which he had
  • fallen on the disappearance of the old man. He sat up in bed, and for
  • some minutes vainly endeavoured to recall the events of the preceding
  • night. Suddenly they rushed upon him. He looked at the chair; it was a
  • fantastic and grim-looking piece of furniture, certainly, but it must
  • have been a remarkably ingenious and lively imagination, that could have
  • discovered any resemblance between it and an old man.
  • ‘“How are you, old boy?” said Tom. He was bolder in the daylight--most
  • men are.
  • ‘The chair remained motionless, and spoke not a word.
  • ‘“Miserable morning,” said Tom. No. The chair would not be drawn into
  • conversation.
  • ‘“Which press did you point to?--you can tell me that,” said Tom. Devil
  • a word, gentlemen, the chair would say.
  • ‘“It’s not much trouble to open it, anyhow,” said Tom, getting out of
  • bed very deliberately. He walked up to one of the presses. The key was
  • in the lock; he turned it, and opened the door. There was a pair of
  • trousers there. He put his hand into the pocket, and drew forth the
  • identical letter the old gentleman had described!
  • ‘“Queer sort of thing, this,” said Tom Smart, looking first at the chair
  • and then at the press, and then at the letter, and then at the chair
  • again. “Very queer,” said Tom. But, as there was nothing in either, to
  • lessen the queerness, he thought he might as well dress himself, and
  • settle the tall man’s business at once--just to put him out of his
  • misery.
  • ‘Tom surveyed the rooms he passed through, on his way downstairs, with
  • the scrutinising eye of a landlord; thinking it not impossible, that
  • before long, they and their contents would be his property. The tall man
  • was standing in the snug little bar, with his hands behind him, quite at
  • home. He grinned vacantly at Tom. A casual observer might have supposed
  • he did it, only to show his white teeth; but Tom Smart thought that a
  • consciousness of triumph was passing through the place where the tall
  • man’s mind would have been, if he had had any. Tom laughed in his face;
  • and summoned the landlady.
  • ‘“Good-morning ma’am,” said Tom Smart, closing the door of the little
  • parlour as the widow entered.
  • ‘“Good-morning, Sir,” said the widow. “What will you take for breakfast,
  • sir?”
  • ‘Tom was thinking how he should open the case, so he made no answer.
  • ‘“There’s a very nice ham,” said the widow, “and a beautiful cold larded
  • fowl. Shall I send ‘em in, Sir?”
  • ‘These words roused Tom from his reflections. His admiration of the
  • widow increased as she spoke. Thoughtful creature! Comfortable provider!
  • ‘“Who is that gentleman in the bar, ma’am?” inquired Tom.
  • ‘“His name is Jinkins, Sir,” said the widow, slightly blushing.
  • ‘“He’s a tall man,” said Tom.
  • ‘“He is a very fine man, Sir,” replied the widow, “and a very nice
  • gentleman.”
  • ‘“Ah!” said Tom.
  • ‘“Is there anything more you want, Sir?” inquired the widow, rather
  • puzzled by Tom’s manner.
  • ‘“Why, yes,” said Tom. “My dear ma’am, will you have the kindness to sit
  • down for one moment?”
  • ‘The widow looked much amazed, but she sat down, and Tom sat down too,
  • close beside her. I don’t know how it happened, gentlemen--indeed my
  • uncle used to tell me that Tom Smart said he didn’t know how it happened
  • either--but somehow or other the palm of Tom’s hand fell upon the back
  • of the widow’s hand, and remained there while he spoke.
  • ‘“My dear ma’am,” said Tom Smart--he had always a great notion of
  • committing the amiable--“my dear ma’am, you deserve a very excellent
  • husband--you do indeed.”
  • ‘“Lor, Sir!” said the widow--as well she might; Tom’s mode of commencing
  • the conversation being rather unusual, not to say startling; the fact of
  • his never having set eyes upon her before the previous night being taken
  • into consideration. “Lor, Sir!”
  • ‘“I scorn to flatter, my dear ma’am,” said Tom Smart. “You deserve a
  • very admirable husband, and whoever he is, he’ll be a very lucky man.”
  • As Tom said this, his eye involuntarily wandered from the widow’s face
  • to the comfort around him.
  • ‘The widow looked more puzzled than ever, and made an effort to rise.
  • Tom gently pressed her hand, as if to detain her, and she kept her seat.
  • Widows, gentlemen, are not usually timorous, as my uncle used to say.
  • ‘“I am sure I am very much obliged to you, Sir, for your good opinion,”
  • said the buxom landlady, half laughing; “and if ever I marry again--”
  • ’”_If_,” said Tom Smart, looking very shrewdly out of the right-hand
  • corner of his left eye. “_If_--”
  • “Well,” said the widow, laughing outright this time, “_when _I do, I
  • hope I shall have as good a husband as you describe.”
  • ‘“Jinkins, to wit,” said Tom.
  • ‘“Lor, sir!” exclaimed the widow.
  • ‘“Oh, don’t tell me,” said Tom, “I know him.”
  • ‘“I am sure nobody who knows him, knows anything bad of him,” said the
  • widow, bridling up at the mysterious air with which Tom had spoken.
  • ‘“Hem!” said Tom Smart.
  • ‘The widow began to think it was high time to cry, so she took out her
  • handkerchief, and inquired whether Tom wished to insult her, whether he
  • thought it like a gentleman to take away the character of another
  • gentleman behind his back, why, if he had got anything to say, he didn’t
  • say it to the man, like a man, instead of terrifying a poor weak woman
  • in that way; and so forth.
  • ‘“I’ll say it to him fast enough,” said Tom, “only I want you to hear it
  • first.”
  • ‘“What is it?” inquired the widow, looking intently in Tom’s
  • countenance.
  • ‘“I’ll astonish you,” said Tom, putting his hand in his pocket.
  • ‘“If it is, that he wants money,” said the widow, “I know that already,
  • and you needn’t trouble yourself.” ‘“Pooh, nonsense, that’s nothing,”
  • said Tom Smart, “I want money. ‘Tain’t that.”
  • ‘“Oh, dear, what can it be?” exclaimed the poor widow.
  • ‘“Don’t be frightened,” said Tom Smart. He slowly drew forth the letter,
  • and unfolded it. “You won’t scream?” said Tom doubtfully.
  • ‘“No, no,” replied the widow; “let me see it.”
  • ‘“You won’t go fainting away, or any of that nonsense?” said Tom.
  • ‘“No, no,” returned the widow hastily.
  • ‘“And don’t run out, and blow him up,” said Tom; “because I’ll do all
  • that for you. You had better not exert yourself.”
  • ‘“Well, well,” said the widow, “let me see it.”
  • ‘“I will,” replied Tom Smart; and, with these words, he placed the
  • letter in the widow’s hand.
  • ‘Gentlemen, I have heard my uncle say, that Tom Smart said the widow’s
  • lamentations when she heard the disclosure would have pierced a heart of
  • stone. Tom was certainly very tender-hearted, but they pierced his, to
  • the very core. The widow rocked herself to and fro, and wrung her hands.
  • ‘“Oh, the deception and villainy of the man!” said the widow.
  • ‘“Frightful, my dear ma’am; but compose yourself,” said Tom Smart.
  • ‘“Oh, I can’t compose myself,” shrieked the widow. “I shall never find
  • anyone else I can love so much!”
  • ‘“Oh, yes you will, my dear soul,” said Tom Smart, letting fall a shower
  • of the largest-sized tears, in pity for the widow’s misfortunes. Tom
  • Smart, in the energy of his compassion, had put his arm round the
  • widow’s waist; and the widow, in a passion of grief, had clasped Tom’s
  • hand. She looked up in Tom’s face, and smiled through her tears. Tom
  • looked down in hers, and smiled through his.
  • ‘I never could find out, gentlemen, whether Tom did or did not kiss the
  • widow at that particular moment. He used to tell my uncle he didn’t, but
  • I have my doubts about it. Between ourselves, gentlemen, I rather think
  • he did.
  • ‘At all events, Tom kicked the very tall man out at the front door half
  • an hour later, and married the widow a month after. And he used to drive
  • about the country, with the clay-coloured gig with the red wheels, and
  • the vixenish mare with the fast pace, till he gave up business many
  • years afterwards, and went to France with his wife; and then the old
  • house was pulled down.’
  • ‘Will you allow me to ask you,’ said the inquisitive old gentleman,
  • ‘what became of the chair?’
  • ‘Why,’ replied the one-eyed bagman, ‘it was observed to creak very much
  • on the day of the wedding; but Tom Smart couldn’t say for certain
  • whether it was with pleasure or bodily infirmity. He rather thought it
  • was the latter, though, for it never spoke afterwards.’
  • ‘Everybody believed the story, didn’t they?’ said the dirty-faced man,
  • refilling his pipe.
  • ‘Except Tom’s enemies,’ replied the bagman. ‘Some of ‘em said Tom
  • invented it altogether; and others said he was drunk and fancied it, and
  • got hold of the wrong trousers by mistake before he went to bed. But
  • nobody ever minded what _they _said.’
  • ‘Tom Smart said it was all true?’
  • ‘Every word.’
  • ‘And your uncle?’
  • ‘Every letter.’
  • ‘They must have been very nice men, both of ‘em,’ said the dirty-faced
  • man.
  • ‘Yes, they were,’ replied the bagman; ‘very nice men indeed!’
  • CHAPTER XV. IN WHICH IS GIVEN A FAITHFUL PORTRAITURE OF TWO
  • DISTINGUISHED PERSONS; AND AN ACCURATE DESCRIPTION OF A PUBLIC BREAKFAST
  • IN THEIR HOUSE AND GROUNDS: WHICH PUBLIC BREAKFAST LEADS TO THE
  • RECOGNITION OF AN OLD ACQUAINTANCE, AND THE COMMENCEMENT OF ANOTHER
  • CHAPTER
  • Mr. Pickwick’s conscience had been somewhat reproaching him for his
  • recent neglect of his friends at the Peacock; and he was just on the
  • point of walking forth in quest of them, on the third morning after the
  • election had terminated, when his faithful valet put into his hand a
  • card, on which was engraved the following inscription:--
  • Mrs. Leo Hunter THE DEN. EATANSWILL.
  • ‘Person’s a-waitin’,’ said Sam, epigrammatically.
  • ‘Does the person want me, Sam?’ inquired Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘He wants you partickler; and no one else ‘ll do, as the devil’s private
  • secretary said ven he fetched avay Doctor Faustus,’ replied Mr. Weller.
  • ‘_He_. Is it a gentleman?’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘A wery good imitation o’ one, if it ain’t,’ replied Mr. Weller.
  • ‘But this is a lady’s card,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Given me by a gen’l’m’n, howsoever,’ replied Sam, ‘and he’s a-waitin’
  • in the drawing-room--said he’d rather wait all day, than not see you.’
  • Mr. Pickwick, on hearing this determination, descended to the drawing-
  • room, where sat a grave man, who started up on his entrance, and said,
  • with an air of profound respect:--
  • ‘Mr. Pickwick, I presume?’
  • ‘The same.’
  • ‘Allow me, Sir, the honour of grasping your hand. Permit me, Sir, to
  • shake it,’ said the grave man.
  • ‘Certainly,’ said Mr. Pickwick. The stranger shook the extended hand,
  • and then continued--
  • ‘We have heard of your fame, sir. The noise of your antiquarian
  • discussion has reached the ears of Mrs. Leo Hunter--my wife, sir; I am
  • Mr. Leo Hunter’--the stranger paused, as if he expected that Mr.
  • Pickwick would be overcome by the disclosure; but seeing that he
  • remained perfectly calm, proceeded--
  • ‘My wife, sir--Mrs. Leo Hunter--is proud to number among her
  • acquaintance all those who have rendered themselves celebrated by their
  • works and talents. Permit me, sir, to place in a conspicuous part of the
  • list the name of Mr. Pickwick, and his brother-members of the club that
  • derives its name from him.’
  • ‘I shall be extremely happy to make the acquaintance of such a lady,
  • sir,’ replied Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘You _shall _make it, sir,’ said the grave man. ‘To-morrow morning, sir,
  • we give a public breakfast--a _fete champetre_--to a great number of
  • those who have rendered themselves celebrated by their works and
  • talents. Permit Mrs. Leo Hunter, Sir, to have the gratification of
  • seeing you at the Den.’
  • ‘With great pleasure,’ replied Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Mrs. Leo Hunter has many of these breakfasts, Sir,’ resumed the new
  • acquaintance--‘“feasts of reason,” sir, “and flows of soul,” as somebody
  • who wrote a sonnet to Mrs. Leo Hunter on her breakfasts, feelingly and
  • originally observed.’
  • ‘Was _he_ celebrated for his works and talents?’ inquired Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘He was Sir,’ replied the grave man, ‘all Mrs. Leo Hunter’s
  • acquaintances are; it is her ambition, sir, to have no other
  • acquaintance.’
  • ‘It is a very noble ambition,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘When I inform Mrs. Leo Hunter, that that remark fell from your lips,
  • sir, she will indeed be proud,’ said the grave man. ‘You have a
  • gentleman in your train, who has produced some beautiful little poems, I
  • think, sir.’
  • ‘My friend Mr. Snodgrass has a great taste for poetry,’ replied Mr.
  • Pickwick.
  • ‘So has Mrs. Leo Hunter, Sir. She dotes on poetry, sir. She adores it; I
  • may say that her whole soul and mind are wound up, and entwined with it.
  • She has produced some delightful pieces, herself, sir. You may have met
  • with her “Ode to an Expiring Frog,” sir.’
  • ‘I don’t think I have,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘You astonish me, Sir,’ said Mr. Leo Hunter. ‘It created an immense
  • sensation. It was signed with an “L” and eight stars, and appeared
  • originally in a lady’s magazine. It commenced--
  • ‘“Can I view thee panting, lying On thy stomach, without sighing; Can I
  • unmoved see thee dying On a log Expiring frog!”’
  • ‘Beautiful!’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Fine,’ said Mr. Leo Hunter; ‘so simple.’
  • ‘Very,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘The next verse is still more touching. Shall I repeat it?’
  • ‘If you please,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘It runs thus,’ said the grave man, still more gravely.
  • ‘“Say, have fiends in shape of boys, With wild halloo, and brutal noise,
  • Hunted thee from marshy joys, With a dog, Expiring frog!”’
  • ‘Finely expressed,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘All point, Sir,’ said Mr. Leo Hunter; ‘but you shall hear Mrs. Leo
  • Hunter repeat it. She can do justice to it, Sir. She will repeat it, in
  • character, Sir, to-morrow morning.’
  • ‘In character!’
  • ‘As Minerva. But I forgot--it’s a fancy-dress _dejeune_.’
  • ‘Dear me,’ said Mr. Pickwick, glancing at his own figure--‘I can’t
  • possibly--’
  • ‘Can’t, sir; can’t!’ exclaimed Mr. Leo Hunter. ‘Solomon Lucas, the Jew
  • in the High Street, has thousands of fancy-dresses. Consider, Sir, how
  • many appropriate characters are open for your selection. Plato, Zeno,
  • Epicurus, Pythagoras--all founders of clubs.’
  • ‘I know that,’ said Mr. Pickwick; ‘but as I cannot put myself in
  • competition with those great men, I cannot presume to wear their
  • dresses.’
  • The grave man considered deeply, for a few seconds, and then said--
  • ‘On reflection, Sir, I don’t know whether it would not afford Mrs. Leo
  • Hunter greater pleasure, if her guests saw a gentleman of your celebrity
  • in his own costume, rather than in an assumed one. I may venture to
  • promise an exception in your case, sir--yes, I am quite certain that, on
  • behalf of Mrs. Leo Hunter, I may venture to do so.’
  • ‘In that case,’ said Mr. Pickwick, ‘I shall have great pleasure in
  • coming.’
  • ‘But I waste your time, Sir,’ said the grave man, as if suddenly
  • recollecting himself. ‘I know its value, sir. I will not detain you. I
  • may tell Mrs. Leo Hunter, then, that she may confidently expect you and
  • your distinguished friends? Good-morning, Sir, I am proud to have beheld
  • so eminent a personage--not a step sir; not a word.’ And without giving
  • Mr. Pickwick time to offer remonstrance or denial, Mr. Leo Hunter
  • stalked gravely away.
  • Mr. Pickwick took up his hat, and repaired to the Peacock, but Mr.
  • Winkle had conveyed the intelligence of the fancy-ball there, before
  • him.
  • ‘Mrs. Pott’s going,’ were the first words with which he saluted his
  • leader.
  • ‘Is she?’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘As Apollo,’ replied Winkle. ‘Only Pott objects to the tunic.’
  • ‘He is right. He is quite right,’ said Mr. Pickwick emphatically.
  • ‘Yes; so she’s going to wear a white satin gown with gold spangles.’
  • ‘They’ll hardly know what she’s meant for; will they?’ inquired Mr.
  • Snodgrass.
  • ‘Of course they will,’ replied Mr. Winkle indignantly. ‘They’ll see her
  • lyre, won’t they?’
  • ‘True; I forgot that,’ said Mr. Snodgrass.
  • ‘I shall go as a bandit,’ interposed Mr. Tupman.
  • ‘What!’ said Mr. Pickwick, with a sudden start.
  • ‘As a bandit,’ repeated Mr. Tupman, mildly.
  • ‘You don’t mean to say,’ said Mr. Pickwick, gazing with solemn sternness
  • at his friend--‘you don’t mean to say, Mr. Tupman, that it is your
  • intention to put yourself into a green velvet jacket, with a two-inch
  • tail?’
  • ‘Such _is_ my intention, Sir,’ replied Mr. Tupman warmly. ‘And why not,
  • sir?’
  • ‘Because, Sir,’ said Mr. Pickwick, considerably excited--‘because you
  • are too old, Sir.’
  • ‘Too old!’ exclaimed Mr. Tupman.
  • ‘And if any further ground of objection be wanting,’ continued Mr.
  • Pickwick, ‘you are too fat, sir.’
  • ‘Sir,’ said Mr. Tupman, his face suffused with a crimson glow, ‘this is
  • an insult.’
  • ‘Sir,’ replied Mr. Pickwick, in the same tone, ‘it is not half the
  • insult to you, that your appearance in my presence in a green velvet
  • jacket, with a two-inch tail, would be to me.’
  • ‘Sir,’ said Mr. Tupman, ‘you’re a fellow.’
  • ‘Sir,’ said Mr. Pickwick, ‘you’re another!’
  • Mr. Tupman advanced a step or two, and glared at Mr. Pickwick. Mr.
  • Pickwick returned the glare, concentrated into a focus by means of his
  • spectacles, and breathed a bold defiance. Mr. Snodgrass and Mr. Winkle
  • looked on, petrified at beholding such a scene between two such men.
  • ‘Sir,’ said Mr. Tupman, after a short pause, speaking in a low, deep
  • voice, ‘you have called me old.’
  • ‘I have,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘And fat.’
  • ‘I reiterate the charge.’
  • ‘And a fellow.’
  • ‘So you are!’
  • There was a fearful pause.
  • ‘My attachment to your person, sir,’ said Mr. Tupman, speaking in a
  • voice tremulous with emotion, and tucking up his wristbands meanwhile,
  • ‘is great--very great--but upon that person, I must take summary
  • vengeance.’
  • ‘Come on, Sir!’ replied Mr. Pickwick. Stimulated by the exciting nature
  • of the dialogue, the heroic man actually threw himself into a paralytic
  • attitude, confidently supposed by the two bystanders to have been
  • intended as a posture of defence.
  • ‘What!’ exclaimed Mr. Snodgrass, suddenly recovering the power of
  • speech, of which intense astonishment had previously bereft him, and
  • rushing between the two, at the imminent hazard of receiving an
  • application on the temple from each--‘what! Mr. Pickwick, with the eyes
  • of the world upon you! Mr. Tupman! who, in common with us all, derives a
  • lustre from his undying name! For shame, gentlemen; for shame.’
  • The unwonted lines which momentary passion had ruled in Mr. Pickwick’s
  • clear and open brow, gradually melted away, as his young friend spoke,
  • like the marks of a black-lead pencil beneath the softening influence of
  • india-rubber. His countenance had resumed its usual benign expression,
  • ere he concluded.
  • ‘I have been hasty,’ said Mr. Pickwick, ‘very hasty. Tupman; your hand.’
  • The dark shadow passed from Mr. Tupman’s face, as he warmly grasped the
  • hand of his friend.
  • ‘I have been hasty, too,’ said he.
  • ‘No, no,’ interrupted Mr. Pickwick, ‘the fault was mine. You will wear
  • the green velvet jacket?’
  • ‘No, no,’ replied Mr. Tupman.
  • ‘To oblige me, you will,’ resumed Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Well, well, I will,’ said Mr. Tupman.
  • It was accordingly settled that Mr. Tupman, Mr. Winkle, and Mr.
  • Snodgrass, should all wear fancy-dresses. Thus Mr. Pickwick was led by
  • the very warmth of his own good feelings to give his consent to a
  • proceeding from which his better judgment would have recoiled--a more
  • striking illustration of his amiable character could hardly have been
  • conceived, even if the events recorded in these pages had been wholly
  • imaginary.
  • Mr. Leo Hunter had not exaggerated the resources of Mr. Solomon Lucas.
  • His wardrobe was extensive--very extensive--not strictly classical
  • perhaps, not quite new, nor did it contain any one garment made
  • precisely after the fashion of any age or time, but everything was more
  • or less spangled; and what can be prettier than spangles! It may be
  • objected that they are not adapted to the daylight, but everybody knows
  • that they would glitter if there were lamps; and nothing can be clearer
  • than that if people give fancy-balls in the day-time, and the dresses do
  • not show quite as well as they would by night, the fault lies solely
  • with the people who give the fancy-balls, and is in no wise chargeable
  • on the spangles. Such was the convincing reasoning of Mr. Solomon Lucas;
  • and influenced by such arguments did Mr. Tupman, Mr. Winkle, and Mr.
  • Snodgrass engage to array themselves in costumes which his taste and
  • experience induced him to recommend as admirably suited to the occasion.
  • A carriage was hired from the Town Arms, for the accommodation of the
  • Pickwickians, and a chariot was ordered from the same repository, for
  • the purpose of conveying Mr. and Mrs. Pott to Mrs. Leo Hunter’s grounds,
  • which Mr. Pott, as a delicate acknowledgment of having received an
  • invitation, had already confidently predicted in the Eatanswill
  • _Gazette_ ‘would present a scene of varied and delicious enchantment--a
  • bewildering coruscation of beauty and talent--a lavish and prodigal
  • display of hospitality--above all, a degree of splendour softened by the
  • most exquisite taste; and adornment refined with perfect harmony and the
  • chastest good keeping--compared with which, the fabled gorgeousness of
  • Eastern fairyland itself would appear to be clothed in as many dark and
  • murky colours, as must be the mind of the splenetic and unmanly being
  • who could presume to taint with the venom of his envy, the preparations
  • made by the virtuous and highly distinguished lady at whose shrine this
  • humble tribute of admiration was offered.’ This last was a piece of
  • biting sarcasm against the _Independent_, who, in consequence of not
  • having been invited at all, had been, through four numbers, affecting to
  • sneer at the whole affair, in his very largest type, with all the
  • adjectives in capital letters.
  • The morning came: it was a pleasant sight to behold Mr. Tupman in full
  • brigand’s costume, with a very tight jacket, sitting like a pincushion
  • over his back and shoulders, the upper portion of his legs incased in
  • the velvet shorts, and the lower part thereof swathed in the complicated
  • bandages to which all brigands are peculiarly attached. It was pleasing
  • to see his open and ingenuous countenance, well mustachioed and corked,
  • looking out from an open shirt collar; and to contemplate the sugar-loaf
  • hat, decorated with ribbons of all colours, which he was compelled to
  • carry on his knee, inasmuch as no known conveyance with a top to it,
  • would admit of any man’s carrying it between his head and the roof.
  • Equally humorous and agreeable was the appearance of Mr. Snodgrass in
  • blue satin trunks and cloak, white silk tights and shoes, and Grecian
  • helmet, which everybody knows (and if they do not, Mr. Solomon Lucas
  • did) to have been the regular, authentic, everyday costume of a
  • troubadour, from the earliest ages down to the time of their final
  • disappearance from the face of the earth. All this was pleasant, but
  • this was as nothing compared with the shouting of the populace when the
  • carriage drew up, behind Mr. Pott’s chariot, which chariot itself drew
  • up at Mr. Pott’s door, which door itself opened, and displayed the great
  • Pott accoutred as a Russian officer of justice, with a tremendous knout
  • in his hand--tastefully typical of the stern and mighty power of the
  • Eatanswill _Gazette_, and the fearful lashings it bestowed on public
  • offenders.
  • ‘Bravo!’ shouted Mr. Tupman and Mr. Snodgrass from the passage, when
  • they beheld the walking allegory.
  • ‘Bravo!’ Mr. Pickwick was heard to exclaim, from the passage.
  • ‘Hoo-roar Pott!’ shouted the populace. Amid these salutations, Mr. Pott,
  • smiling with that kind of bland dignity which sufficiently testified
  • that he felt his power, and knew how to exert it, got into the chariot.
  • Then there emerged from the house, Mrs. Pott, who would have looked very
  • like Apollo if she hadn’t had a gown on, conducted by Mr. Winkle, who,
  • in his light-red coat could not possibly have been mistaken for anything
  • but a sportsman, if he had not borne an equal resemblance to a general
  • postman. Last of all came Mr. Pickwick, whom the boys applauded as loud
  • as anybody, probably under the impression that his tights and gaiters
  • were some remnants of the dark ages; and then the two vehicles proceeded
  • towards Mrs. Leo Hunter’s; Mr. Weller (who was to assist in waiting)
  • being stationed on the box of that in which his master was seated.
  • Every one of the men, women, boys, girls, and babies, who were assembled
  • to see the visitors in their fancy-dresses, screamed with delight and
  • ecstasy, when Mr. Pickwick, with the brigand on one arm, and the
  • troubadour on the other, walked solemnly up the entrance. Never were
  • such shouts heard as those which greeted Mr. Tupman’s efforts to fix the
  • sugar-loaf hat on his head, by way of entering the garden in style.
  • The preparations were on the most delightful scale; fully realising the
  • prophetic Pott’s anticipations about the gorgeousness of Eastern
  • fairyland, and at once affording a sufficient contradiction to the
  • malignant statements of the reptile _Independent_. The grounds were more
  • than an acre and a quarter in extent, and they were filled with people!
  • Never was such a blaze of beauty, and fashion, and literature. There was
  • the young lady who ‘did’ the poetry in the Eatanswill _Gazette_, in the
  • garb of a sultana, leaning upon the arm of the young gentleman who ‘did’
  • the review department, and who was appropriately habited in a field-
  • marshal’s uniform--the boots excepted. There were hosts of these
  • geniuses, and any reasonable person would have thought it honour enough
  • to meet them. But more than these, there were half a dozen lions from
  • London--authors, real authors, who had written whole books, and printed
  • them afterwards--and here you might see ‘em, walking about, like
  • ordinary men, smiling, and talking--aye, and talking pretty considerable
  • nonsense too, no doubt with the benign intention of rendering themselves
  • intelligible to the common people about them. Moreover, there was a band
  • of music in pasteboard caps; four something-ean singers in the costume
  • of their country, and a dozen hired waiters in the costume of _their
  • _country--and very dirty costume too. And above all, there was Mrs. Leo
  • Hunter in the character of Minerva, receiving the company, and
  • overflowing with pride and gratification at the notion of having called
  • such distinguished individuals together.
  • ‘Mr. Pickwick, ma’am,’ said a servant, as that gentleman approached the
  • presiding goddess, with his hat in his hand, and the brigand and
  • troubadour on either arm.
  • ‘What! Where!’ exclaimed Mrs. Leo Hunter, starting up, in an affected
  • rapture of surprise.
  • ‘Here,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Is it possible that I have really the gratification of beholding Mr.
  • Pickwick himself!’ ejaculated Mrs. Leo Hunter.
  • ‘No other, ma’am,’ replied Mr. Pickwick, bowing very low. ‘Permit me to
  • introduce my friends--Mr. Tupman--Mr. Winkle--Mr. Snodgrass--to the
  • authoress of “The Expiring Frog.”’
  • Very few people but those who have tried it, know what a difficult
  • process it is to bow in green velvet smalls, and a tight jacket, and
  • high-crowned hat; or in blue satin trunks and white silks, or knee-cords
  • and top-boots that were never made for the wearer, and have been fixed
  • upon him without the remotest reference to the comparative dimensions of
  • himself and the suit. Never were such distortions as Mr. Tupman’s frame
  • underwent in his efforts to appear easy and graceful--never was such
  • ingenious posturing, as his fancy-dressed friends exhibited.
  • ‘Mr. Pickwick,’ said Mrs. Leo Hunter, ‘I must make you promise not to
  • stir from my side the whole day. There are hundreds of people here, that
  • I must positively introduce you to.’
  • ‘You are very kind, ma’am,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘In the first place, here are my little girls; I had almost forgotten
  • them,’ said Minerva, carelessly pointing towards a couple of full-grown
  • young ladies, of whom one might be about twenty, and the other a year or
  • two older, and who were dressed in very juvenile costumes--whether to
  • make them look young, or their mamma younger, Mr. Pickwick does not
  • distinctly inform us.
  • ‘They are very beautiful,’ said Mr. Pickwick, as the juveniles turned
  • away, after being presented.
  • ‘They are very like their mamma, Sir,’ said Mr. Pott, majestically.
  • ‘Oh, you naughty man,’ exclaimed Mrs. Leo Hunter, playfully tapping the
  • editor’s arm with her fan (Minerva with a fan!).
  • ‘Why now, my dear Mrs. Hunter,’ said Mr. Pott, who was trumpeter in
  • ordinary at the Den, ‘you know that when your picture was in the
  • exhibition of the Royal Academy, last year, everybody inquired whether
  • it was intended for you, or your youngest daughter; for you were so much
  • alike that there was no telling the difference between you.’
  • ‘Well, and if they did, why need you repeat it, before strangers?’ said
  • Mrs. Leo Hunter, bestowing another tap on the slumbering lion of the
  • Eatanswill _Gazette_.
  • ‘Count, count,’ screamed Mrs. Leo Hunter to a well-whiskered individual
  • in a foreign uniform, who was passing by.
  • ‘Ah! you want me?’ said the count, turning back.
  • ‘I want to introduce two very clever people to each other,’ said Mrs.
  • Leo Hunter. ‘Mr. Pickwick, I have great pleasure in introducing you to
  • Count Smorltork.’ She added in a hurried whisper to Mr. Pickwick--‘The
  • famous foreigner--gathering materials for his great work on England--
  • hem!--Count Smorltork, Mr. Pickwick.’
  • Mr. Pickwick saluted the count with all the reverence due to so great a
  • man, and the count drew forth a set of tablets.
  • ‘What you say, Mrs. Hunt?’ inquired the count, smiling graciously on the
  • gratified Mrs. Leo Hunter, ‘Pig Vig or Big Vig--what you call--lawyer--
  • eh? I see--that is it. Big Vig’--and the count was proceeding to enter
  • Mr. Pickwick in his tablets, as a gentleman of the long robe, who
  • derived his name from the profession to which he belonged, when Mrs. Leo
  • Hunter interposed.
  • ‘No, no, count,’ said the lady, ‘Pick-wick.’
  • ‘Ah, ah, I see,’ replied the count. ‘Peek--christian name; Weeks--
  • surname; good, ver good. Peek Weeks. How you do, Weeks?’
  • ‘Quite well, I thank you,’ replied Mr. Pickwick, with all his usual
  • affability. ‘Have you been long in England?’
  • ‘Long--ver long time--fortnight--more.’
  • ‘Do you stay here long?’
  • ‘One week.’
  • ‘You will have enough to do,’ said Mr. Pickwick smiling, ‘to gather all
  • the materials you want in that time.’
  • ‘Eh, they are gathered,’ said the count.
  • ‘Indeed!’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘They are here,’ added the count, tapping his forehead significantly.
  • ‘Large book at home--full of notes--music, picture, science, potry,
  • poltic; all tings.’
  • ‘The word politics, sir,’ said Mr. Pickwick, ‘comprises in itself, a
  • difficult study of no inconsiderable magnitude.’
  • ‘Ah!’ said the count, drawing out the tablets again, ‘ver good--fine
  • words to begin a chapter. Chapter forty-seven. Poltics. The word poltic
  • surprises by himself--’ And down went Mr. Pickwick’s remark, in Count
  • Smorltork’s tablets, with such variations and additions as the count’s
  • exuberant fancy suggested, or his imperfect knowledge of the language
  • occasioned.
  • ‘Count,’ said Mrs. Leo Hunter.
  • ‘Mrs. Hunt,’ replied the count.
  • ‘This is Mr. Snodgrass, a friend of Mr. Pickwick’s, and a poet.’
  • ‘Stop,’ exclaimed the count, bringing out the tablets once more. ‘Head,
  • potry--chapter, literary friends--name, Snowgrass; ver good. Introduced
  • to Snowgrass--great poet, friend of Peek Weeks--by Mrs. Hunt, which
  • wrote other sweet poem--what is that name?--Fog--Perspiring Fog--ver
  • good--ver good indeed.’ And the count put up his tablets, and with
  • sundry bows and acknowledgments walked away, thoroughly satisfied that
  • he had made the most important and valuable additions to his stock of
  • information.
  • ‘Wonderful man, Count Smorltork,’ said Mrs. Leo Hunter.
  • ‘Sound philosopher,’ said Mr. Pott.
  • ‘Clear-headed, strong-minded person,’ added Mr. Snodgrass.
  • A chorus of bystanders took up the shout of Count Smorltork’s praise,
  • shook their heads sagely, and unanimously cried, ‘Very!’
  • As the enthusiasm in Count Smorltork’s favour ran very high, his praises
  • might have been sung until the end of the festivities, if the four
  • something-ean singers had not ranged themselves in front of a small
  • apple-tree, to look picturesque, and commenced singing their national
  • songs, which appeared by no means difficult of execution, inasmuch as
  • the grand secret seemed to be, that three of the something-ean singers
  • should grunt, while the fourth howled. This interesting performance
  • having concluded amidst the loud plaudits of the whole company, a boy
  • forthwith proceeded to entangle himself with the rails of a chair, and
  • to jump over it, and crawl under it, and fall down with it, and do
  • everything but sit upon it, and then to make a cravat of his legs, and
  • tie them round his neck, and then to illustrate the ease with which a
  • human being can be made to look like a magnified toad--all which feats
  • yielded high delight and satisfaction to the assembled spectators. After
  • which, the voice of Mrs. Pott was heard to chirp faintly forth,
  • something which courtesy interpreted into a song, which was all very
  • classical, and strictly in character, because Apollo was himself a
  • composer, and composers can very seldom sing their own music or anybody
  • else’s, either. This was succeeded by Mrs. Leo Hunter’s recitation of
  • her far-famed ‘Ode to an Expiring Frog,’ which was encored once, and
  • would have been encored twice, if the major part of the guests, who
  • thought it was high time to get something to eat, had not said that it
  • was perfectly shameful to take advantage of Mrs. Hunter’s good nature.
  • So although Mrs. Leo Hunter professed her perfect willingness to recite
  • the ode again, her kind and considerate friends wouldn’t hear of it on
  • any account; and the refreshment room being thrown open, all the people
  • who had ever been there before, scrambled in with all possible despatch-
  • -Mrs. Leo Hunter’s usual course of proceedings being, to issue cards for
  • a hundred, and breakfast for fifty, or in other words to feed only the
  • very particular lions, and let the smaller animals take care of
  • themselves.
  • ‘Where is Mr. Pott?’ said Mrs. Leo Hunter, as she placed the aforesaid
  • lions around her.
  • ‘Here I am,’ said the editor, from the remotest end of the room; far
  • beyond all hope of food, unless something was done for him by the
  • hostess.
  • ‘Won’t you come up here?’
  • ‘Oh, pray don’t mind him,’ said Mrs. Pott, in the most obliging voice--
  • ‘you give yourself a great deal of unnecessary trouble, Mrs. Hunter.
  • You’ll do very well there, won’t you--dear?’
  • ‘Certainly--love,’ replied the unhappy Pott, with a grim smile. Alas for
  • the knout! The nervous arm that wielded it, with such a gigantic force
  • on public characters, was paralysed beneath the glance of the imperious
  • Mrs. Pott.
  • Mrs. Leo Hunter looked round her in triumph. Count Smorltork was busily
  • engaged in taking notes of the contents of the dishes; Mr. Tupman was
  • doing the honours of the lobster salad to several lionesses, with a
  • degree of grace which no brigand ever exhibited before; Mr. Snodgrass
  • having cut out the young gentleman who cut up the books for the
  • Eatanswill _Gazette_, was engaged in an impassioned argument with the
  • young lady who did the poetry; and Mr. Pickwick was making himself
  • universally agreeable. Nothing seemed wanting to render the select
  • circle complete, when Mr. Leo Hunter--whose department on these
  • occasions, was to stand about in doorways, and talk to the less
  • important people--suddenly called out--
  • ‘My dear; here’s Mr. Charles Fitz-Marshall.’
  • ‘Oh dear,’ said Mrs. Leo Hunter, ‘how anxiously I have been expecting
  • him. Pray make room, to let Mr. Fitz-Marshall pass. Tell Mr. Fitz-
  • Marshall, my dear, to come up to me directly, to be scolded for coming
  • so late.’
  • ‘Coming, my dear ma’am,’ cried a voice, ‘as quick as I can--crowds of
  • people--full room--hard work--very.’
  • Mr. Pickwick’s knife and fork fell from his hand. He stared across the
  • table at Mr. Tupman, who had dropped his knife and fork, and was looking
  • as if he were about to sink into the ground without further notice.
  • ‘Ah!’ cried the voice, as its owner pushed his way among the last five-
  • and-twenty Turks, officers, cavaliers, and Charles the Seconds, that
  • remained between him and the table, ‘regular mangle--Baker’s patent--not
  • a crease in my coat, after all this squeezing--might have “got up my
  • linen” as I came along--ha! ha! not a bad idea, that--queer thing to
  • have it mangled when it’s upon one, though--trying process--very.’
  • With these broken words, a young man dressed as a naval officer made his
  • way up to the table, and presented to the astonished Pickwickians the
  • identical form and features of Mr. Alfred Jingle.
  • The offender had barely time to take Mrs. Leo Hunter’s proffered hand,
  • when his eyes encountered the indignant orbs of Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Hollo!’ said Jingle. ‘Quite forgot--no directions to postillion--give
  • ‘em at once--back in a minute.’
  • ‘The servant, or Mr. Hunter will do it in a moment, Mr. Fitz-Marshall,’
  • said Mrs. Leo Hunter.
  • ‘No, no--I’ll do it--shan’t be long--back in no time,’ replied Jingle.
  • With these words he disappeared among the crowd.
  • ‘Will you allow me to ask you, ma’am,’ said the excited Mr. Pickwick,
  • rising from his seat, ‘who that young man is, and where he resides?’
  • ‘He is a gentleman of fortune, Mr. Pickwick,’ said Mrs. Leo Hunter, ‘to
  • whom I very much want to introduce you. The count will be delighted with
  • him.’
  • ‘Yes, yes,’ said Mr. Pickwick hastily. ‘His residence--’
  • ‘Is at present at the Angel at Bury.’
  • ‘At Bury?’
  • ‘At Bury St. Edmunds, not many miles from here. But dear me, Mr.
  • Pickwick, you are not going to leave us; surely Mr. Pickwick you cannot
  • think of going so soon?’
  • But long before Mrs. Leo Hunter had finished speaking, Mr. Pickwick had
  • plunged through the throng, and reached the garden, whither he was
  • shortly afterwards joined by Mr. Tupman, who had followed his friend
  • closely.
  • ‘It’s of no use,’ said Mr. Tupman. ‘He has gone.’
  • ‘I know it,’ said Mr. Pickwick, ‘and I will follow him.’
  • ‘Follow him! Where?’ inquired Mr. Tupman.
  • ‘To the Angel at Bury,’ replied Mr. Pickwick, speaking very quickly.
  • ‘How do we know whom he is deceiving there? He deceived a worthy man
  • once, and we were the innocent cause. He shall not do it again, if I can
  • help it; I’ll expose him! Sam! Where’s my servant?’
  • ‘Here you are, Sir,’ said Mr. Weller, emerging from a sequestered spot,
  • where he had been engaged in discussing a bottle of Madeira, which he
  • had abstracted from the breakfast-table an hour or two before. ‘Here’s
  • your servant, Sir. Proud o’ the title, as the living skellinton said,
  • ven they show’d him.’
  • ‘Follow me instantly,’ said Mr. Pickwick. ‘Tupman, if I stay at Bury,
  • you can join me there, when I write. Till then, good-bye!’
  • Remonstrances were useless. Mr. Pickwick was roused, and his mind was
  • made up. Mr. Tupman returned to his companions; and in another hour had
  • drowned all present recollection of Mr. Alfred Jingle, or Mr. Charles
  • Fitz-Marshall, in an exhilarating quadrille and a bottle of champagne.
  • By that time, Mr. Pickwick and Sam Weller, perched on the outside of a
  • stage-coach, were every succeeding minute placing a less and less
  • distance between themselves and the good old town of Bury St. Edmunds.
  • CHAPTER XVI. TOO FULL OF ADVENTURE TO BE BRIEFLY DESCRIBED
  • There is no month in the whole year in which nature wears a more
  • beautiful appearance than in the month of August. Spring has many
  • beauties, and May is a fresh and blooming month, but the charms of this
  • time of year are enhanced by their contrast with the winter season.
  • August has no such advantage. It comes when we remember nothing but
  • clear skies, green fields, and sweet-smelling flowers--when the
  • recollection of snow, and ice, and bleak winds, has faded from our minds
  • as completely as they have disappeared from the earth--and yet what a
  • pleasant time it is! Orchards and cornfields ring with the hum of
  • labour; trees bend beneath the thick clusters of rich fruit which bow
  • their branches to the ground; and the corn, piled in graceful sheaves,
  • or waving in every light breath that sweeps above it, as if it wooed the
  • sickle, tinges the landscape with a golden hue. A mellow softness
  • appears to hang over the whole earth; the influence of the season seems
  • to extend itself to the very wagon, whose slow motion across the well-
  • reaped field is perceptible only to the eye, but strikes with no harsh
  • sound upon the ear.
  • As the coach rolls swiftly past the fields and orchards which skirt the
  • road, groups of women and children, piling the fruit in sieves, or
  • gathering the scattered ears of corn, pause for an instant from their
  • labour, and shading the sun-burned face with a still browner hand, gaze
  • upon the passengers with curious eyes, while some stout urchin, too
  • small to work, but too mischievous to be left at home, scrambles over
  • the side of the basket in which he has been deposited for security, and
  • kicks and screams with delight. The reaper stops in his work, and stands
  • with folded arms, looking at the vehicle as it whirls past; and the
  • rough cart-horses bestow a sleepy glance upon the smart coach team,
  • which says as plainly as a horse’s glance can, ‘It’s all very fine to
  • look at, but slow going, over a heavy field, is better than warm work
  • like that, upon a dusty road, after all.’ You cast a look behind you, as
  • you turn a corner of the road. The women and children have resumed their
  • labour; the reaper once more stoops to his work; the cart-horses have
  • moved on; and all are again in motion.
  • The influence of a scene like this, was not lost upon the well-regulated
  • mind of Mr. Pickwick. Intent upon the resolution he had formed, of
  • exposing the real character of the nefarious Jingle, in any quarter in
  • which he might be pursuing his fraudulent designs, he sat at first
  • taciturn and contemplative, brooding over the means by which his purpose
  • could be best attained. By degrees his attention grew more and more
  • attracted by the objects around him; and at last he derived as much
  • enjoyment from the ride, as if it had been undertaken for the
  • pleasantest reason in the world.
  • ‘Delightful prospect, Sam,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Beats the chimbley-pots, Sir,’ replied Mr. Weller, touching his hat.
  • ‘I suppose you have hardly seen anything but chimney-pots and bricks and
  • mortar all your life, Sam,’ said Mr. Pickwick, smiling.
  • ‘I worn’t always a boots, sir,’ said Mr. Weller, with a shake of the
  • head. ‘I wos a vaginer’s boy, once.’
  • ‘When was that?’ inquired Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘When I wos first pitched neck and crop into the world, to play at leap-
  • frog with its troubles,’ replied Sam. ‘I wos a carrier’s boy at
  • startin’; then a vaginer’s, then a helper, then a boots. Now I’m a
  • gen’l’m’n’s servant. I shall be a gen’l’m’n myself one of these days,
  • perhaps, with a pipe in my mouth, and a summer-house in the back-garden.
  • Who knows? I shouldn’t be surprised for one.’
  • ‘You are quite a philosopher, Sam,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘It runs in the family, I b’lieve, sir,’ replied Mr. Weller. ‘My
  • father’s wery much in that line now. If my mother-in-law blows him up,
  • he whistles. She flies in a passion, and breaks his pipe; he steps out,
  • and gets another. Then she screams wery loud, and falls into ‘sterics;
  • and he smokes wery comfortably till she comes to agin. That’s
  • philosophy, Sir, ain’t it?’
  • ‘A very good substitute for it, at all events,’ replied Mr. Pickwick,
  • laughing. ‘It must have been of great service to you, in the course of
  • your rambling life, Sam.’
  • ‘Service, sir,’ exclaimed Sam. ‘You may say that. Arter I run away from
  • the carrier, and afore I took up with the vaginer, I had unfurnished
  • lodgin’s for a fortnight.’
  • ‘Unfurnished lodgings?’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Yes--the dry arches of Waterloo Bridge. Fine sleeping-place--vithin ten
  • minutes’ walk of all the public offices--only if there is any objection
  • to it, it is that the sitivation’s rayther too airy. I see some queer
  • sights there.’
  • Ah, I suppose you did,’ said Mr. Pickwick, with an air of considerable
  • interest.
  • ‘Sights, sir,’ resumed Mr. Weller, ‘as ‘ud penetrate your benevolent
  • heart, and come out on the other side. You don’t see the reg’lar
  • wagrants there; trust ‘em, they knows better than that. Young beggars,
  • male and female, as hasn’t made a rise in their profession, takes up
  • their quarters there sometimes; but it’s generally the worn-out,
  • starving, houseless creeturs as roll themselves in the dark corners o’
  • them lonesome places--poor creeturs as ain’t up to the twopenny rope.’
  • ‘And pray, Sam, what is the twopenny rope?’ inquired Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘The twopenny rope, sir,’ replied Mr. Weller, ‘is just a cheap lodgin’
  • house, where the beds is twopence a night.’
  • ‘What do they call a bed a rope for?’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Bless your innocence, sir, that ain’t it,’ replied Sam. ‘Ven the lady
  • and gen’l’m’n as keeps the hot-el first begun business, they used to
  • make the beds on the floor; but this wouldn’t do at no price, ‘cos
  • instead o’ taking a moderate twopenn’orth o’ sleep, the lodgers used to
  • lie there half the day. So now they has two ropes, ‘bout six foot apart,
  • and three from the floor, which goes right down the room; and the beds
  • are made of slips of coarse sacking, stretched across ‘em.’
  • ‘Well,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Well,’ said Mr. Weller, ‘the adwantage o’ the plan’s hobvious. At six
  • o’clock every mornin’ they let’s go the ropes at one end, and down falls
  • the lodgers. Consequence is, that being thoroughly waked, they get up
  • wery quietly, and walk away!’
  • ‘Beg your pardon, sir,’ said Sam, suddenly breaking off in his
  • loquacious discourse. ‘Is this Bury St. Edmunds?’
  • ‘It is,’ replied Mr. Pickwick.
  • The coach rattled through the well-paved streets of a handsome little
  • town, of thriving and cleanly appearance, and stopped before a large inn
  • situated in a wide open street, nearly facing the old abbey.
  • ‘And this,’ said Mr. Pickwick, looking up. ‘Is the Angel! We alight
  • here, Sam. But some caution is necessary. Order a private room, and do
  • not mention my name. You understand.’
  • ‘Right as a trivet, sir,’ replied Mr. Weller, with a wink of
  • intelligence; and having dragged Mr. Pickwick’s portmanteau from the
  • hind boot, into which it had been hastily thrown when they joined the
  • coach at Eatanswill, Mr. Weller disappeared on his errand. A private
  • room was speedily engaged; and into it Mr. Pickwick was ushered without
  • delay.
  • ‘Now, Sam,’ said Mr. Pickwick, ‘the first thing to be done is to--’
  • Order dinner, Sir,’ interposed Mr. Weller. ‘It’s wery late, sir.’
  • ‘Ah, so it is,’ said Mr. Pickwick, looking at his watch. ‘You are right,
  • Sam.’
  • ‘And if I might adwise, Sir,’ added Mr. Weller, ‘I’d just have a good
  • night’s rest arterwards, and not begin inquiring arter this here deep
  • ‘un till the mornin’. There’s nothin’ so refreshen’ as sleep, sir, as
  • the servant girl said afore she drank the egg-cupful of laudanum.’
  • ‘I think you are right, Sam,’ said Mr. Pickwick. ‘But I must first
  • ascertain that he is in the house, and not likely to go away.’
  • ‘Leave that to me, Sir,’ said Sam. ‘Let me order you a snug little
  • dinner, and make my inquiries below while it’s a-getting ready; I could
  • worm ev’ry secret out O’ the boots’s heart, in five minutes, Sir.’
  • Do so,’ said Mr. Pickwick; and Mr. Weller at once retired.
  • In half an hour, Mr. Pickwick was seated at a very satisfactory dinner;
  • and in three-quarters Mr. Weller returned with the intelligence that Mr.
  • Charles Fitz-Marshall had ordered his private room to be retained for
  • him, until further notice. He was going to spend the evening at some
  • private house in the neighbourhood, had ordered the boots to sit up
  • until his return, and had taken his servant with him.
  • ‘Now, sir,’ argued Mr. Weller, when he had concluded his report, ‘if I
  • can get a talk with this here servant in the mornin’, he’ll tell me all
  • his master’s concerns.’
  • ‘How do you know that?’ interposed Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Bless your heart, sir, servants always do,’ replied Mr. Weller.
  • ‘Oh, ah, I forgot that,’ said Mr. Pickwick. ‘Well.’
  • ‘Then you can arrange what’s best to be done, sir, and we can act
  • accordingly.’
  • As it appeared that this was the best arrangement that could be made, it
  • was finally agreed upon. Mr. Weller, by his master’s permission, retired
  • to spend the evening in his own way; and was shortly afterwards elected,
  • by the unanimous voice of the assembled company, into the taproom chair,
  • in which honourable post he acquitted himself so much to the
  • satisfaction of the gentlemen-frequenters, that their roars of laughter
  • and approbation penetrated to Mr. Pickwick’s bedroom, and shortened the
  • term of his natural rest by at least three hours.
  • Early on the ensuing morning, Mr. Weller was dispelling all the feverish
  • remains of the previous evening’s conviviality, through the
  • instrumentality of a halfpenny shower-bath (having induced a young
  • gentleman attached to the stable department, by the offer of that coin,
  • to pump over his head and face, until he was perfectly restored), when
  • he was attracted by the appearance of a young fellow in mulberry-
  • coloured livery, who was sitting on a bench in the yard, reading what
  • appeared to be a hymn-book, with an air of deep abstraction, but who
  • occasionally stole a glance at the individual under the pump, as if he
  • took some interest in his proceedings, nevertheless.
  • ‘You’re a rum ‘un to look at, you are!’ thought Mr. Weller, the first
  • time his eyes encountered the glance of the stranger in the mulberry
  • suit, who had a large, sallow, ugly face, very sunken eyes, and a
  • gigantic head, from which depended a quantity of lank black hair.
  • ‘You’re a rum ‘un!’ thought Mr. Weller; and thinking this, he went on
  • washing himself, and thought no more about him.
  • Still the man kept glancing from his hymn-book to Sam, and from Sam to
  • his hymn-book, as if he wanted to open a conversation. So at last, Sam,
  • by way of giving him an opportunity, said with a familiar nod--
  • ‘How are you, governor?’
  • ‘I am happy to say, I am pretty well, Sir,’ said the man, speaking with
  • great deliberation, and closing the book. ‘I hope you are the same,
  • Sir?’
  • ‘Why, if I felt less like a walking brandy-bottle I shouldn’t be quite
  • so staggery this mornin’,’ replied Sam. ‘Are you stoppin’ in this house,
  • old ‘un?’
  • The mulberry man replied in the affirmative.
  • ‘How was it you worn’t one of us, last night?’ inquired Sam, scrubbing
  • his face with the towel. ‘You seem one of the jolly sort--looks as
  • conwivial as a live trout in a lime basket,’ added Mr. Weller, in an
  • undertone.
  • ‘I was out last night with my master,’ replied the stranger.
  • ‘What’s his name?’ inquired Mr. Weller, colouring up very red with
  • sudden excitement, and the friction of the towel combined.
  • ‘Fitz-Marshall,’ said the mulberry man.
  • ‘Give us your hand,’ said Mr. Weller, advancing; ‘I should like to know
  • you. I like your appearance, old fellow.’
  • ‘Well, that is very strange,’ said the mulberry man, with great
  • simplicity of manner. ‘I like yours so much, that I wanted to speak to
  • you, from the very first moment I saw you under the pump.’
  • Did you though?’
  • ‘Upon my word. Now, isn’t that curious?’
  • ‘Wery sing’ler,’ said Sam, inwardly congratulating himself upon the
  • softness of the stranger. ‘What’s your name, my patriarch?’
  • ‘Job.’
  • ‘And a wery good name it is; only one I know that ain’t got a nickname
  • to it. What’s the other name?’
  • ‘Trotter,’ said the stranger. ‘What is yours?’
  • Sam bore in mind his master’s caution, and replied--
  • ‘My name’s Walker; my master’s name’s Wilkins. Will you take a drop o’
  • somethin’ this mornin’, Mr. Trotter?’
  • Mr. Trotter acquiesced in this agreeable proposal; and having deposited
  • his book in his coat pocket, accompanied Mr. Weller to the tap, where
  • they were soon occupied in discussing an exhilarating compound, formed
  • by mixing together, in a pewter vessel, certain quantities of British
  • Hollands and the fragrant essence of the clove.
  • ‘And what sort of a place have you got?’ inquired Sam, as he filled his
  • companion’s glass, for the second time.
  • ‘Bad,’ said Job, smacking his lips, ‘very bad.’
  • ‘You don’t mean that?’ said Sam.
  • ‘I do, indeed. Worse than that, my master’s going to be married.’
  • ‘No.’
  • ‘Yes; and worse than that, too, he’s going to run away with an immense
  • rich heiress, from boarding-school.’
  • ‘What a dragon!’ said Sam, refilling his companion’s glass. ‘It’s some
  • boarding-school in this town, I suppose, ain’t it?’ Now, although this
  • question was put in the most careless tone imaginable, Mr. Job Trotter
  • plainly showed by gestures that he perceived his new friend’s anxiety to
  • draw forth an answer to it. He emptied his glass, looked mysteriously at
  • his companion, winked both of his small eyes, one after the other, and
  • finally made a motion with his arm, as if he were working an imaginary
  • pump-handle; thereby intimating that he (Mr. Trotter) considered himself
  • as undergoing the process of being pumped by Mr. Samuel Weller.
  • ‘No, no,’ said Mr. Trotter, in conclusion, ‘that’s not to be told to
  • everybody. That is a secret--a great secret, Mr. Walker.’ As the
  • mulberry man said this, he turned his glass upside down, by way of
  • reminding his companion that he had nothing left wherewith to slake his
  • thirst. Sam observed the hint; and feeling the delicate manner in which
  • it was conveyed, ordered the pewter vessel to be refilled, whereat the
  • small eyes of the mulberry man glistened.
  • ‘And so it’s a secret?’ said Sam.
  • ‘I should rather suspect it was,’ said the mulberry man, sipping his
  • liquor, with a complacent face.
  • ‘I suppose your mas’r’s wery rich?’ said Sam.
  • Mr. Trotter smiled, and holding his glass in his left hand, gave four
  • distinct slaps on the pockets of his mulberry indescribables with his
  • right, as if to intimate that his master might have done the same
  • without alarming anybody much by the chinking of coin.
  • ‘Ah,’ said Sam, ‘that’s the game, is it?’
  • The mulberry man nodded significantly.
  • ‘Well, and don’t you think, old feller,’ remonstrated Mr. Weller, ‘that
  • if you let your master take in this here young lady, you’re a precious
  • rascal?’
  • ‘I know that,’ said Job Trotter, turning upon his companion a
  • countenance of deep contrition, and groaning slightly, ‘I know that, and
  • that’s what it is that preys upon my mind. But what am I to do?’
  • ‘Do!’ said Sam; ‘di-wulge to the missis, and give up your master.’
  • ‘Who’d believe me?’ replied Job Trotter. ‘The young lady’s considered
  • the very picture of innocence and discretion. She’d deny it, and so
  • would my master. Who’d believe me? I should lose my place, and get
  • indicted for a conspiracy, or some such thing; that’s all I should take
  • by my motion.’
  • ‘There’s somethin’ in that,’ said Sam, ruminating; ‘there’s somethin’ in
  • that.’
  • ‘If I knew any respectable gentleman who would take the matter up,’
  • continued Mr. Trotter. ‘I might have some hope of preventing the
  • elopement; but there’s the same difficulty, Mr. Walker, just the same. I
  • know no gentleman in this strange place; and ten to one if I did,
  • whether he would believe my story.’
  • ‘Come this way,’ said Sam, suddenly jumping up, and grasping the
  • mulberry man by the arm. ‘My mas’r’s the man you want, I see.’ And after
  • a slight resistance on the part of Job Trotter, Sam led his newly-found
  • friend to the apartment of Mr. Pickwick, to whom he presented him,
  • together with a brief summary of the dialogue we have just repeated.
  • ‘I am very sorry to betray my master, sir,’ said Job Trotter, applying
  • to his eyes a pink checked pocket-handkerchief about six inches square.
  • ‘The feeling does you a great deal of honour,’ replied Mr. Pickwick;
  • ‘but it is your duty, nevertheless.’
  • ‘I know it is my duty, Sir,’ replied Job, with great emotion. ‘We should
  • all try to discharge our duty, Sir, and I humbly endeavour to discharge
  • mine, Sir; but it is a hard trial to betray a master, Sir, whose clothes
  • you wear, and whose bread you eat, even though he is a scoundrel, Sir.’
  • ‘You are a very good fellow,’ said Mr. Pickwick, much affected; ‘an
  • honest fellow.’
  • ‘Come, come,’ interposed Sam, who had witnessed Mr. Trotter’s tears with
  • considerable impatience, ‘blow this ‘ere water-cart bis’ness. It won’t
  • do no good, this won’t.’
  • ‘Sam,’ said Mr. Pickwick reproachfully. ‘I am sorry to find that you
  • have so little respect for this young man’s feelings.’
  • ‘His feelin’s is all wery well, Sir,’ replied Mr. Weller; ‘and as
  • they’re so wery fine, and it’s a pity he should lose ‘em, I think he’d
  • better keep ‘em in his own buzzum, than let ‘em ewaporate in hot water,
  • ‘specially as they do no good. Tears never yet wound up a clock, or
  • worked a steam ingin’. The next time you go out to a smoking party,
  • young fellow, fill your pipe with that ‘ere reflection; and for the
  • present just put that bit of pink gingham into your pocket. ‘Tain’t so
  • handsome that you need keep waving it about, as if you was a tight-rope
  • dancer.’
  • ‘My man is in the right,’ said Mr. Pickwick, accosting Job, ‘although
  • his mode of expressing his opinion is somewhat homely, and occasionally
  • incomprehensible.’
  • ‘He is, sir, very right,’ said Mr. Trotter, ‘and I will give way no
  • longer.’
  • Very well,’ said Mr. Pickwick. ‘Now, where is this boarding-school?’
  • ‘It is a large, old, red brick house, just outside the town, Sir,’
  • replied Job Trotter.
  • ‘And when,’ said Mr. Pickwick--‘when is this villainous design to be
  • carried into execution--when is this elopement to take place?’
  • ‘To-night, Sir,’ replied Job.
  • ‘To-night!’ exclaimed Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘This very night, sir,’ replied Job Trotter. ‘That is what alarms me so
  • much.’
  • ‘Instant measures must be taken,’ said Mr. Pickwick. ‘I will see the
  • lady who keeps the establishment immediately.’
  • ‘I beg your pardon, Sir,’ said Job, ‘but that course of proceeding will
  • never do.’
  • ‘Why not?’ inquired Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘My master, sir, is a very artful man.’
  • ‘I know he is,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘And he has so wound himself round the old lady’s heart, Sir,’ resumed
  • Job, ‘that she would believe nothing to his prejudice, if you went down
  • on your bare knees, and swore it; especially as you have no proof but
  • the word of a servant, who, for anything she knows (and my master would
  • be sure to say so), was discharged for some fault, and does this in
  • revenge.’
  • ‘What had better be done, then?’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Nothing but taking him in the very act of eloping, will convince the
  • old lady, sir,’ replied Job.
  • ‘All them old cats _will _run their heads agin milestones,’ observed Mr.
  • Weller, in a parenthesis.
  • ‘But this taking him in the very act of elopement, would be a very
  • difficult thing to accomplish, I fear,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘I don’t know, sir,’ said Mr. Trotter, after a few moments’ reflection.
  • ‘I think it might be very easily done.’
  • ‘How?’ was Mr. Pickwick’s inquiry.
  • ‘Why,’ replied Mr. Trotter, ‘my master and I, being in the confidence of
  • the two servants, will be secreted in the kitchen at ten o’clock. When
  • the family have retired to rest, we shall come out of the kitchen, and
  • the young lady out of her bedroom. A post-chaise will be waiting, and
  • away we go.’
  • ‘Well?’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Well, sir, I have been thinking that if you were in waiting in the
  • garden behind, alone--’
  • ‘Alone,’ said Mr. Pickwick. ‘Why alone?’
  • ‘I thought it very natural,’ replied Job, ‘that the old lady wouldn’t
  • like such an unpleasant discovery to be made before more persons than
  • can possibly be helped. The young lady, too, sir--consider her
  • feelings.’
  • ‘You are very right,’ said Mr. Pickwick. ‘The consideration evinces your
  • delicacy of feeling. Go on; you are very right.’
  • ‘Well, sir, I have been thinking that if you were waiting in the back
  • garden alone, and I was to let you in, at the door which opens into it,
  • from the end of the passage, at exactly half-past eleven o’clock, you
  • would be just in the very moment of time to assist me in frustrating the
  • designs of this bad man, by whom I have been unfortunately ensnared.’
  • Here Mr. Trotter sighed deeply.
  • ‘Don’t distress yourself on that account,’ said Mr. Pickwick; ‘if he had
  • one grain of the delicacy of feeling which distinguishes you, humble as
  • your station is, I should have some hopes of him.’
  • Job Trotter bowed low; and in spite of Mr. Weller’s previous
  • remonstrance, the tears again rose to his eyes.
  • ‘I never see such a feller,’ said Sam, ‘Blessed if I don’t think he’s
  • got a main in his head as is always turned on.’
  • ‘Sam,’ said Mr. Pickwick, with great severity, ‘hold your tongue.’
  • ‘Wery well, sir,’ replied Mr. Weller.
  • ‘I don’t like this plan,’ said Mr. Pickwick, after deep meditation. ‘Why
  • cannot I communicate with the young lady’s friends?’
  • ‘Because they live one hundred miles from here, sir,’ responded Job
  • Trotter.
  • ‘That’s a clincher,’ said Mr. Weller, aside.
  • ‘Then this garden,’ resumed Mr. Pickwick. ‘How am I to get into it?’
  • ‘The wall is very low, sir, and your servant will give you a leg up.’
  • My servant will give me a leg up,’ repeated Mr. Pickwick mechanically.
  • ‘You will be sure to be near this door that you speak of?’
  • ‘You cannot mistake it, Sir; it’s the only one that opens into the
  • garden. Tap at it when you hear the clock strike, and I will open it
  • instantly.’
  • ‘I don’t like the plan,’ said Mr. Pickwick; ‘but as I see no other, and
  • as the happiness of this young lady’s whole life is at stake, I adopt
  • it. I shall be sure to be there.’
  • Thus, for the second time, did Mr. Pickwick’s innate good-feeling
  • involve him in an enterprise from which he would most willingly have
  • stood aloof.
  • ‘What is the name of the house?’ inquired Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Westgate House, Sir. You turn a little to the right when you get to the
  • end of the town; it stands by itself, some little distance off the high
  • road, with the name on a brass plate on the gate.’
  • ‘I know it,’ said Mr. Pickwick. ‘I observed it once before, when I was
  • in this town. You may depend upon me.’
  • Mr. Trotter made another bow, and turned to depart, when Mr. Pickwick
  • thrust a guinea into his hand.
  • ‘You’re a fine fellow,’ said Mr. Pickwick, ‘and I admire your goodness
  • of heart. No thanks. Remember--eleven o’clock.’
  • ‘There is no fear of my forgetting it, sir,’ replied Job Trotter. With
  • these words he left the room, followed by Sam.
  • ‘I say,’ said the latter, ‘not a bad notion that ‘ere crying. I’d cry
  • like a rain-water spout in a shower on such good terms. How do you do
  • it?’
  • ‘It comes from the heart, Mr. Walker,’ replied Job solemnly. ‘Good-
  • morning, sir.’
  • ‘You’re a soft customer, you are; we’ve got it all out o’ you, anyhow,’
  • thought Mr. Weller, as Job walked away.
  • We cannot state the precise nature of the thoughts which passed through
  • Mr. Trotter’s mind, because we don’t know what they were.
  • The day wore on, evening came, and at a little before ten o’clock Sam
  • Weller reported that Mr. Jingle and Job had gone out together, that
  • their luggage was packed up, and that they had ordered a chaise. The
  • plot was evidently in execution, as Mr. Trotter had foretold.
  • Half-past ten o’clock arrived, and it was time for Mr. Pickwick to issue
  • forth on his delicate errand. Resisting Sam’s tender of his greatcoat,
  • in order that he might have no encumbrance in scaling the wall, he set
  • forth, followed by his attendant.
  • There was a bright moon, but it was behind the clouds. It was a fine dry
  • night, but it was most uncommonly dark. Paths, hedges, fields, houses,
  • and trees, were enveloped in one deep shade. The atmosphere was hot and
  • sultry, the summer lightning quivered faintly on the verge of the
  • horizon, and was the only sight that varied the dull gloom in which
  • everything was wrapped--sound there was none, except the distant barking
  • of some restless house-dog.
  • They found the house, read the brass plate, walked round the wall, and
  • stopped at that portion of it which divided them from the bottom of the
  • garden.
  • ‘You will return to the inn, Sam, when you have assisted me over,’ said
  • Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Wery well, Sir.’
  • ‘And you will sit up, till I return.’
  • ‘Cert’nly, Sir.’
  • ‘Take hold of my leg; and, when I say “Over,” raise me gently.’
  • ‘All right, sir.’
  • Having settled these preliminaries, Mr. Pickwick grasped the top of the
  • wall, and gave the word ‘Over,’ which was literally obeyed. Whether his
  • body partook in some degree of the elasticity of his mind, or whether
  • Mr. Weller’s notions of a gentle push were of a somewhat rougher
  • description than Mr. Pickwick’s, the immediate effect of his assistance
  • was to jerk that immortal gentleman completely over the wall on to the
  • bed beneath, where, after crushing three gooseberry-bushes and a rose-
  • tree, he finally alighted at full length.
  • ‘You ha’n’t hurt yourself, I hope, Sir?’ said Sam, in a loud whisper, as
  • soon as he had recovered from the surprise consequent upon the
  • mysterious disappearance of his master.
  • ‘I have not hurt _myself_, Sam, certainly,’ replied Mr. Pickwick, from
  • the other side of the wall, ‘but I rather think that _you _have hurt
  • me.’
  • ‘I hope not, Sir,’ said Sam.
  • ‘Never mind,’ said Mr. Pickwick, rising, ‘it’s nothing but a few
  • scratches. Go away, or we shall be overheard.’
  • ‘Good-bye, Sir.’
  • ‘Good-bye.’
  • With stealthy steps Sam Weller departed, leaving Mr. Pickwick alone in
  • the garden.
  • Lights occasionally appeared in the different windows of the house, or
  • glanced from the staircases, as if the inmates were retiring to rest.
  • Not caring to go too near the door, until the appointed time, Mr.
  • Pickwick crouched into an angle of the wall, and awaited its arrival.
  • It was a situation which might well have depressed the spirits of many a
  • man. Mr. Pickwick, however, felt neither depression nor misgiving. He
  • knew that his purpose was in the main a good one, and he placed implicit
  • reliance on the high-minded Job. It was dull, certainly; not to say
  • dreary; but a contemplative man can always employ himself in meditation.
  • Mr. Pickwick had meditated himself into a doze, when he was roused by
  • the chimes of the neighbouring church ringing out the hour--half-past
  • eleven.
  • ‘That’s the time,’ thought Mr. Pickwick, getting cautiously on his feet.
  • He looked up at the house. The lights had disappeared, and the shutters
  • were closed--all in bed, no doubt. He walked on tiptoe to the door, and
  • gave a gentle tap. Two or three minutes passing without any reply, he
  • gave another tap rather louder, and then another rather louder than
  • that.
  • At length the sound of feet was audible upon the stairs, and then the
  • light of a candle shone through the keyhole of the door. There was a
  • good deal of unchaining and unbolting, and the door was slowly opened.
  • Now the door opened outwards; and as the door opened wider and wider,
  • Mr. Pickwick receded behind it, more and more. What was his astonishment
  • when he just peeped out, by way of caution, to see that the person who
  • had opened it was--not Job Trotter, but a servant-girl with a candle in
  • her hand! Mr. Pickwick drew in his head again, with the swiftness
  • displayed by that admirable melodramatic performer, Punch, when he lies
  • in wait for the flat-headed comedian with the tin box of music.
  • ‘It must have been the cat, Sarah,’ said the girl, addressing herself to
  • some one in the house. ‘Puss, puss, puss,--tit, tit, tit.’
  • But no animal being decoyed by these blandishments, the girl slowly
  • closed the door, and re-fastened it; leaving Mr. Pickwick drawn up
  • straight against the wall.
  • ‘This is very curious,’ thought Mr. Pickwick. ‘They are sitting up
  • beyond their usual hour, I suppose. Extremely unfortunate, that they
  • should have chosen this night, of all others, for such a purpose--
  • exceedingly.’ And with these thoughts, Mr. Pickwick cautiously retired
  • to the angle of the wall in which he had been before ensconced; waiting
  • until such time as he might deem it safe to repeat the signal.
  • He had not been here five minutes, when a vivid flash of lightning was
  • followed by a loud peal of thunder that crashed and rolled away in the
  • distance with a terrific noise--then came another flash of lightning,
  • brighter than the other, and a second peal of thunder louder than the
  • first; and then down came the rain, with a force and fury that swept
  • everything before it.
  • Mr. Pickwick was perfectly aware that a tree is a very dangerous
  • neighbour in a thunderstorm. He had a tree on his right, a tree on his
  • left, a third before him, and a fourth behind. If he remained where he
  • was, he might fall the victim of an accident; if he showed himself in
  • the centre of the garden, he might be consigned to a constable. Once or
  • twice he tried to scale the wall, but having no other legs this time,
  • than those with which Nature had furnished him, the only effect of his
  • struggles was to inflict a variety of very unpleasant gratings on his
  • knees and shins, and to throw him into a state of the most profuse
  • perspiration.
  • ‘What a dreadful situation,’ said Mr. Pickwick, pausing to wipe his brow
  • after this exercise. He looked up at the house--all was dark. They must
  • be gone to bed now. He would try the signal again.
  • He walked on tiptoe across the moist gravel, and tapped at the door. He
  • held his breath, and listened at the key-hole. No reply: very odd.
  • Another knock. He listened again. There was a low whispering inside, and
  • then a voice cried--
  • ‘Who’s there?’
  • ‘That’s not Job,’ thought Mr. Pickwick, hastily drawing himself straight
  • up against the wall again. ‘It’s a woman.’
  • He had scarcely had time to form this conclusion, when a window above
  • stairs was thrown up, and three or four female voices repeated the
  • query--‘Who’s there?’
  • Mr. Pickwick dared not move hand or foot. It was clear that the whole
  • establishment was roused. He made up his mind to remain where he was,
  • until the alarm had subsided; and then by a supernatural effort, to get
  • over the wall, or perish in the attempt.
  • Like all Mr. Pickwick’s determinations, this was the best that could be
  • made under the circumstances; but, unfortunately, it was founded upon
  • the assumption that they would not venture to open the door again. What
  • was his discomfiture, when he heard the chain and bolts withdrawn, and
  • saw the door slowly opening, wider and wider! He retreated into the
  • corner, step by step; but do what he would, the interposition of his own
  • person, prevented its being opened to its utmost width.
  • ‘Who’s there?’ screamed a numerous chorus of treble voices from the
  • staircase inside, consisting of the spinster lady of the establishment,
  • three teachers, five female servants, and thirty boarders, all half-
  • dressed and in a forest of curl-papers.
  • Of course Mr. Pickwick didn’t say who was there: and then the burden of
  • the chorus changed into--‘Lor! I am so frightened.’
  • ‘Cook,’ said the lady abbess, who took care to be on the top stair, the
  • very last of the group--‘cook, why don’t you go a little way into the
  • garden?’
  • Please, ma’am, I don’t like,’ responded the cook.
  • ‘Lor, what a stupid thing that cook is!’ said the thirty boarders.
  • ‘Cook,’ said the lady abbess, with great dignity; ‘don’t answer me, if
  • you please. I insist upon your looking into the garden immediately.’
  • Here the cook began to cry, and the housemaid said it was ‘a shame!’ for
  • which partisanship she received a month’s warning on the spot.
  • ‘Do you hear, cook?’ said the lady abbess, stamping her foot
  • impatiently.
  • ‘Don’t you hear your missis, cook?’ said the three teachers.
  • ‘What an impudent thing that cook is!’ said the thirty boarders.
  • The unfortunate cook, thus strongly urged, advanced a step or two, and
  • holding her candle just where it prevented her from seeing at all,
  • declared there was nothing there, and it must have been the wind. The
  • door was just going to be closed in consequence, when an inquisitive
  • boarder, who had been peeping between the hinges, set up a fearful
  • screaming, which called back the cook and housemaid, and all the more
  • adventurous, in no time.
  • ‘What is the matter with Miss Smithers?’ said the lady abbess, as the
  • aforesaid Miss Smithers proceeded to go into hysterics of four young
  • lady power.
  • ‘Lor, Miss Smithers, dear,’ said the other nine-and-twenty boarders.
  • ‘Oh, the man--the man--behind the door!’ screamed Miss Smithers.
  • The lady abbess no sooner heard this appalling cry, than she retreated
  • to her own bedroom, double-locked the door, and fainted away
  • comfortably. The boarders, and the teachers, and the servants, fell back
  • upon the stairs, and upon each other; and never was such a screaming,
  • and fainting, and struggling beheld. In the midst of the tumult, Mr.
  • Pickwick emerged from his concealment, and presented himself amongst
  • them.
  • ‘Ladies--dear ladies,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Oh. he says we’re dear,’ cried the oldest and ugliest teacher. ‘Oh, the
  • wretch!’
  • ‘Ladies,’ roared Mr. Pickwick, rendered desperate by the danger of his
  • situation. ‘Hear me. I am no robber. I want the lady of the house.’
  • ‘Oh, what a ferocious monster!’ screamed another teacher. ‘He wants Miss
  • Tomkins.’
  • Here there was a general scream.
  • ‘Ring the alarm bell, somebody!’ cried a dozen voices.
  • ‘Don’t--don’t,’ shouted Mr. Pickwick. ‘Look at me. Do I look like a
  • robber! My dear ladies--you may bind me hand and leg, or lock me up in a
  • closet, if you like. Only hear what I have got to say--only hear me.’
  • ‘How did you come in our garden?’ faltered the housemaid.
  • ‘Call the lady of the house, and I’ll tell her everything,’ said Mr.
  • Pickwick, exerting his lungs to the utmost pitch. ‘Call her--only be
  • quiet, and call her, and you shall hear everything.’
  • It might have been Mr. Pickwick’s appearance, or it might have been his
  • manner, or it might have been the temptation--irresistible to a female
  • mind--of hearing something at present enveloped in mystery, that reduced
  • the more reasonable portion of the establishment (some four individuals)
  • to a state of comparative quiet. By them it was proposed, as a test of
  • Mr. Pickwick’s sincerity, that he should immediately submit to personal
  • restraint; and that gentleman having consented to hold a conference with
  • Miss Tomkins, from the interior of a closet in which the day boarders
  • hung their bonnets and sandwich-bags, he at once stepped into it, of his
  • own accord, and was securely locked in. This revived the others; and
  • Miss Tomkins having been brought to, and brought down, the conference
  • began.
  • ‘What did you do in my garden, man?’ said Miss Tomkins, in a faint
  • voice.
  • ‘I came to warn you that one of your young ladies was going to elope to-
  • night,’ replied Mr. Pickwick, from the interior of the closet.
  • ‘Elope!’ exclaimed Miss Tomkins, the three teachers, the thirty
  • boarders, and the five servants. ‘Who with?’
  • Your friend, Mr. Charles Fitz-Marshall.’
  • ‘_My_ friend! I don’t know any such person.’
  • ‘Well, Mr. Jingle, then.’
  • ‘I never heard the name in my life.’
  • ‘Then, I have been deceived, and deluded,’ said Mr. Pickwick. ‘I have
  • been the victim of a conspiracy--a foul and base conspiracy. Send to the
  • Angel, my dear ma’am, if you don’t believe me. Send to the Angel for Mr.
  • Pickwick’s manservant, I implore you, ma’am.’
  • ‘He must be respectable--he keeps a manservant,’ said Miss Tomkins to
  • the writing and ciphering governess.
  • ‘It’s my opinion, Miss Tomkins,’ said the writing and ciphering
  • governess, ‘that his manservant keeps him, I think he’s a madman, Miss
  • Tomkins, and the other’s his keeper.’
  • ‘I think you are very right, Miss Gwynn,’ responded Miss Tomkins. ‘Let
  • two of the servants repair to the Angel, and let the others remain here,
  • to protect us.’
  • So two of the servants were despatched to the Angel in search of Mr.
  • Samuel Weller; and the remaining three stopped behind to protect Miss
  • Tomkins, and the three teachers, and the thirty boarders. And Mr.
  • Pickwick sat down in the closet, beneath a grove of sandwich-bags, and
  • awaited the return of the messengers, with all the philosophy and
  • fortitude he could summon to his aid.
  • An hour and a half elapsed before they came back, and when they did
  • come, Mr. Pickwick recognised, in addition to the voice of Mr. Samuel
  • Weller, two other voices, the tones of which struck familiarly on his
  • ear; but whose they were, he could not for the life of him call to mind.
  • A very brief conversation ensued. The door was unlocked. Mr. Pickwick
  • stepped out of the closet, and found himself in the presence of the
  • whole establishment of Westgate House, Mr Samuel Weller, and--old
  • Wardle, and his destined son-in-law, Mr. Trundle!
  • ‘My dear friend,’ said Mr. Pickwick, running forward and grasping
  • Wardle’s hand, ‘my dear friend, pray, for Heaven’s sake, explain to this
  • lady the unfortunate and dreadful situation in which I am placed. You
  • must have heard it from my servant; say, at all events, my dear fellow,
  • that I am neither a robber nor a madman.’
  • ‘I have said so, my dear friend. I have said so already,’ replied Mr.
  • Wardle, shaking the right hand of his friend, while Mr. Trundle shook
  • the left.
  • ‘And whoever says, or has said, he is,’ interposed Mr. Weller, stepping
  • forward, ‘says that which is not the truth, but so far from it, on the
  • contrary, quite the rewerse. And if there’s any number o’ men on these
  • here premises as has said so, I shall be wery happy to give ‘em all a
  • wery convincing proof o’ their being mistaken, in this here wery room,
  • if these wery respectable ladies ‘ll have the goodness to retire, and
  • order ‘em up, one at a time.’ Having delivered this defiance with great
  • volubility, Mr. Weller struck his open palm emphatically with his
  • clenched fist, and winked pleasantly on Miss Tomkins, the intensity of
  • whose horror at his supposing it within the bounds of possibility that
  • there could be any men on the premises of Westgate House Establishment
  • for Young Ladies, it is impossible to describe.
  • Mr. Pickwick’s explanation having already been partially made, was soon
  • concluded. But neither in the course of his walk home with his friends,
  • nor afterwards when seated before a blazing fire at the supper he so
  • much needed, could a single observation be drawn from him. He seemed
  • bewildered and amazed. Once, and only once, he turned round to Mr.
  • Wardle, and said--
  • ‘How did you come here?’
  • ‘Trundle and I came down here, for some good shooting on the first,’
  • replied Wardle. ‘We arrived to-night, and were astonished to hear from
  • your servant that you were here too. But I am glad you are,’ said the
  • old fellow, slapping him on the back--‘I am glad you are. We shall have
  • a jovial party on the first, and we’ll give Winkle another chance--eh,
  • old boy?’
  • Mr. Pickwick made no reply, he did not even ask after his friends at
  • Dingley Dell, and shortly afterwards retired for the night, desiring Sam
  • to fetch his candle when he rung.
  • The bell did ring in due course, and Mr. Weller presented himself.
  • ‘Sam,’ said Mr. Pickwick, looking out from under the bed-clothes.
  • ‘Sir,’ said Mr. Weller.
  • Mr. Pickwick paused, and Mr. Weller snuffed the candle.
  • ‘Sam,’ said Mr. Pickwick again, as if with a desperate effort.
  • ‘Sir,’ said Mr. Weller, once more.
  • ‘Where is that Trotter?’
  • ‘Job, sir?’
  • ‘Yes.
  • ‘Gone, sir.’
  • ‘With his master, I suppose?’
  • ‘Friend or master, or whatever he is, he’s gone with him,’ replied Mr.
  • Weller. ‘There’s a pair on ‘em, sir.’
  • ‘Jingle suspected my design, and set that fellow on you, with this
  • story, I suppose?’ said Mr. Pickwick, half choking.
  • ‘Just that, sir,’ replied Mr. Weller.
  • ‘It was all false, of course?’
  • ‘All, sir,’ replied Mr. Weller. ‘Reg’lar do, sir; artful dodge.’
  • ‘I don’t think he’ll escape us quite so easily the next time, Sam!’ said
  • Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘I don’t think he will, Sir.’
  • ‘Whenever I meet that Jingle again, wherever it is,’ said Mr. Pickwick,
  • raising himself in bed, and indenting his pillow with a tremendous blow,
  • ‘I’ll inflict personal chastisement on him, in addition to the exposure
  • he so richly merits. I will, or my name is not Pickwick.’
  • ‘And venever I catches hold o’ that there melan-cholly chap with the
  • black hair,’ said Sam, ‘if I don’t bring some real water into his eyes,
  • for once in a way, my name ain’t Weller. Good-night, Sir!’
  • CHAPTER XVII. SHOWING THAT AN ATTACK OF RHEUMATISM, IN SOME CASES, ACTS
  • AS A QUICKENER TO INVENTIVE GENIUS
  • The constitution of Mr. Pickwick, though able to sustain a very
  • considerable amount of exertion and fatigue, was not proof against such
  • a combination of attacks as he had undergone on the memorable night,
  • recorded in the last chapter. The process of being washed in the night
  • air, and rough-dried in a closet, is as dangerous as it is peculiar. Mr.
  • Pickwick was laid up with an attack of rheumatism.
  • But although the bodily powers of the great man were thus impaired, his
  • mental energies retained their pristine vigour. His spirits were
  • elastic; his good-humour was restored. Even the vexation consequent upon
  • his recent adventure had vanished from his mind; and he could join in
  • the hearty laughter, which any allusion to it excited in Mr. Wardle,
  • without anger and without embarrassment. Nay, more. During the two days
  • Mr. Pickwick was confined to bed, Sam was his constant attendant. On the
  • first, he endeavoured to amuse his master by anecdote and conversation;
  • on the second, Mr. Pickwick demanded his writing-desk, and pen and ink,
  • and was deeply engaged during the whole day. On the third, being able to
  • sit up in his bedchamber, he despatched his valet with a message to Mr.
  • Wardle and Mr. Trundle, intimating that if they would take their wine
  • there, that evening, they would greatly oblige him. The invitation was
  • most willingly accepted; and when they were seated over their wine, Mr.
  • Pickwick, with sundry blushes, produced the following little tale, as
  • having been ‘edited’ by himself, during his recent indisposition, from
  • his notes of Mr. Weller’s unsophisticated recital.
  • THE PARISH CLERK A TALE OF TRUE LOVE
  • ‘Once upon a time, in a very small country town, at a considerable
  • distance from London, there lived a little man named Nathaniel Pipkin,
  • who was the parish clerk of the little town, and lived in a little house
  • in the little High Street, within ten minutes’ walk from the little
  • church; and who was to be found every day, from nine till four, teaching
  • a little learning to the little boys. Nathaniel Pipkin was a harmless,
  • inoffensive, good-natured being, with a turned-up nose, and rather
  • turned-in legs, a cast in his eye, and a halt in his gait; and he
  • divided his time between the church and his school, verily believing
  • that there existed not, on the face of the earth, so clever a man as the
  • curate, so imposing an apartment as the vestry-room, or so well-ordered
  • a seminary as his own. Once, and only once, in his life, Nathaniel
  • Pipkin had seen a bishop--a real bishop, with his arms in lawn sleeves,
  • and his head in a wig. He had seen him walk, and heard him talk, at a
  • confirmation, on which momentous occasion Nathaniel Pipkin was so
  • overcome with reverence and awe, when the aforesaid bishop laid his hand
  • on his head, that he fainted right clean away, and was borne out of
  • church in the arms of the beadle.
  • ‘This was a great event, a tremendous era, in Nathaniel Pipkin’s life,
  • and it was the only one that had ever occurred to ruffle the smooth
  • current of his quiet existence, when happening one fine afternoon, in a
  • fit of mental abstraction, to raise his eyes from the slate on which he
  • was devising some tremendous problem in compound addition for an
  • offending urchin to solve, they suddenly rested on the blooming
  • countenance of Maria Lobbs, the only daughter of old Lobbs, the great
  • saddler over the way. Now, the eyes of Mr. Pipkin had rested on the
  • pretty face of Maria Lobbs many a time and oft before, at church and
  • elsewhere; but the eyes of Maria Lobbs had never looked so bright, the
  • cheeks of Maria Lobbs had never looked so ruddy, as upon this particular
  • occasion. No wonder then, that Nathaniel Pipkin was unable to take his
  • eyes from the countenance of Miss Lobbs; no wonder that Miss Lobbs,
  • finding herself stared at by a young man, withdrew her head from the
  • window out of which she had been peeping, and shut the casement and
  • pulled down the blind; no wonder that Nathaniel Pipkin, immediately
  • thereafter, fell upon the young urchin who had previously offended, and
  • cuffed and knocked him about to his heart’s content. All this was very
  • natural, and there’s nothing at all to wonder at about it.
  • ‘It _is_ matter of wonder, though, that anyone of Mr. Nathaniel Pipkin’s
  • retiring disposition, nervous temperament, and most particularly
  • diminutive income, should from this day forth, have dared to aspire to
  • the hand and heart of the only daughter of the fiery old Lobbs--of old
  • Lobbs, the great saddler, who could have bought up the whole village at
  • one stroke of his pen, and never felt the outlay--old Lobbs, who was
  • well known to have heaps of money, invested in the bank at the nearest
  • market town--who was reported to have countless and inexhaustible
  • treasures hoarded up in the little iron safe with the big keyhole, over
  • the chimney-piece in the back parlour--and who, it was well known, on
  • festive occasions garnished his board with a real silver teapot, cream-
  • ewer, and sugar-basin, which he was wont, in the pride of his heart, to
  • boast should be his daughter’s property when she found a man to her
  • mind. I repeat it, to be matter of profound astonishment and intense
  • wonder, that Nathaniel Pipkin should have had the temerity to cast his
  • eyes in this direction. But love is blind; and Nathaniel had a cast in
  • his eye; and perhaps these two circumstances, taken together, prevented
  • his seeing the matter in its proper light.
  • ‘Now, if old Lobbs had entertained the most remote or distant idea of
  • the state of the affections of Nathaniel Pipkin, he would just have
  • razed the school-room to the ground, or exterminated its master from the
  • surface of the earth, or committed some other outrage and atrocity of an
  • equally ferocious and violent description; for he was a terrible old
  • fellow, was Lobbs, when his pride was injured, or his blood was up.
  • Swear! Such trains of oaths would come rolling and pealing over the way,
  • sometimes, when he was denouncing the idleness of the bony apprentice
  • with the thin legs, that Nathaniel Pipkin would shake in his shoes with
  • horror, and the hair of the pupils’ heads would stand on end with
  • fright.
  • ‘Well! Day after day, when school was over, and the pupils gone, did
  • Nathaniel Pipkin sit himself down at the front window, and, while he
  • feigned to be reading a book, throw sidelong glances over the way in
  • search of the bright eyes of Maria Lobbs; and he hadn’t sat there many
  • days, before the bright eyes appeared at an upper window, apparently
  • deeply engaged in reading too. This was delightful, and gladdening to
  • the heart of Nathaniel Pipkin. It was something to sit there for hours
  • together, and look upon that pretty face when the eyes were cast down;
  • but when Maria Lobbs began to raise her eyes from her book, and dart
  • their rays in the direction of Nathaniel Pipkin, his delight and
  • admiration were perfectly boundless. At last, one day when he knew old
  • Lobbs was out, Nathaniel Pipkin had the temerity to kiss his hand to
  • Maria Lobbs; and Maria Lobbs, instead of shutting the window, and
  • pulling down the blind, kissed _hers _to him, and smiled. Upon which
  • Nathaniel Pipkin determined, that, come what might, he would develop the
  • state of his feelings, without further delay.
  • ‘A prettier foot, a gayer heart, a more dimpled face, or a smarter form,
  • never bounded so lightly over the earth they graced, as did those of
  • Maria Lobbs, the old saddler’s daughter. There was a roguish twinkle in
  • her sparkling eyes, that would have made its way to far less susceptible
  • bosoms than that of Nathaniel Pipkin; and there was such a joyous sound
  • in her merry laugh, that the sternest misanthrope must have smiled to
  • hear it. Even old Lobbs himself, in the very height of his ferocity,
  • couldn’t resist the coaxing of his pretty daughter; and when she, and
  • her cousin Kate--an arch, impudent-looking, bewitching little person--
  • made a dead set upon the old man together, as, to say the truth, they
  • very often did, he could have refused them nothing, even had they asked
  • for a portion of the countless and inexhaustible treasures, which were
  • hidden from the light, in the iron safe.
  • ‘Nathaniel Pipkin’s heart beat high within him, when he saw this
  • enticing little couple some hundred yards before him one summer’s
  • evening, in the very field in which he had many a time strolled about
  • till night-time, and pondered on the beauty of Maria Lobbs. But though
  • he had often thought then, how briskly he would walk up to Maria Lobbs
  • and tell her of his passion if he could only meet her, he felt, now that
  • she was unexpectedly before him, all the blood in his body mounting to
  • his face, manifestly to the great detriment of his legs, which, deprived
  • of their usual portion, trembled beneath him. When they stopped to
  • gather a hedge flower, or listen to a bird, Nathaniel Pipkin stopped
  • too, and pretended to be absorbed in meditation, as indeed he really
  • was; for he was thinking what on earth he should ever do, when they
  • turned back, as they inevitably must in time, and meet him face to face.
  • But though he was afraid to make up to them, he couldn’t bear to lose
  • sight of them; so when they walked faster he walked faster, when they
  • lingered he lingered, and when they stopped he stopped; and so they
  • might have gone on, until the darkness prevented them, if Kate had not
  • looked slyly back, and encouragingly beckoned Nathaniel to advance.
  • There was something in Kate’s manner that was not to be resisted, and so
  • Nathaniel Pipkin complied with the invitation; and after a great deal of
  • blushing on his part, and immoderate laughter on that of the wicked
  • little cousin, Nathaniel Pipkin went down on his knees on the dewy
  • grass, and declared his resolution to remain there for ever, unless he
  • were permitted to rise the accepted lover of Maria Lobbs. Upon this, the
  • merry laughter of Miss Lobbs rang through the calm evening air--without
  • seeming to disturb it, though; it had such a pleasant sound--and the
  • wicked little cousin laughed more immoderately than before, and
  • Nathaniel Pipkin blushed deeper than ever. At length, Maria Lobbs being
  • more strenuously urged by the love-worn little man, turned away her
  • head, and whispered her cousin to say, or at all events Kate did say,
  • that she felt much honoured by Mr. Pipkin’s addresses; that her hand and
  • heart were at her father’s disposal; but that nobody could be insensible
  • to Mr. Pipkin’s merits. As all this was said with much gravity, and as
  • Nathaniel Pipkin walked home with Maria Lobbs, and struggled for a kiss
  • at parting, he went to bed a happy man, and dreamed all night long, of
  • softening old Lobbs, opening the strong box, and marrying Maria.
  • The next day, Nathaniel Pipkin saw old Lobbs go out upon his old gray
  • pony, and after a great many signs at the window from the wicked little
  • cousin, the object and meaning of which he could by no means understand,
  • the bony apprentice with the thin legs came over to say that his master
  • wasn’t coming home all night, and that the ladies expected Mr. Pipkin to
  • tea, at six o’clock precisely. How the lessons were got through that
  • day, neither Nathaniel Pipkin nor his pupils knew any more than you do;
  • but they were got through somehow, and, after the boys had gone,
  • Nathaniel Pipkin took till full six o’clock to dress himself to his
  • satisfaction. Not that it took long to select the garments he should
  • wear, inasmuch as he had no choice about the matter; but the putting of
  • them on to the best advantage, and the touching of them up previously,
  • was a task of no inconsiderable difficulty or importance.
  • ‘There was a very snug little party, consisting of Maria Lobbs and her
  • cousin Kate, and three or four romping, good-humoured, rosy-cheeked
  • girls. Nathaniel Pipkin had ocular demonstration of the fact, that the
  • rumours of old Lobbs’s treasures were not exaggerated. There were the
  • real solid silver teapot, cream-ewer, and sugar-basin, on the table, and
  • real silver spoons to stir the tea with, and real china cups to drink it
  • out of, and plates of the same, to hold the cakes and toast in. The only
  • eye-sore in the whole place was another cousin of Maria Lobbs’s, and a
  • brother of Kate, whom Maria Lobbs called “Henry,” and who seemed to keep
  • Maria Lobbs all to himself, up in one corner of the table. It’s a
  • delightful thing to see affection in families, but it may be carried
  • rather too far, and Nathaniel Pipkin could not help thinking that Maria
  • Lobbs must be very particularly fond of her relations, if she paid as
  • much attention to all of them as to this individual cousin. After tea,
  • too, when the wicked little cousin proposed a game at blind man’s buff,
  • it somehow or other happened that Nathaniel Pipkin was nearly always
  • blind, and whenever he laid his hand upon the male cousin, he was sure
  • to find that Maria Lobbs was not far off. And though the wicked little
  • cousin and the other girls pinched him, and pulled his hair, and pushed
  • chairs in his way, and all sorts of things, Maria Lobbs never seemed to
  • come near him at all; and once--once--Nathaniel Pipkin could have sworn
  • he heard the sound of a kiss, followed by a faint remonstrance from
  • Maria Lobbs, and a half-suppressed laugh from her female friends. All
  • this was odd--very odd--and there is no saying what Nathaniel Pipkin
  • might or might not have done, in consequence, if his thoughts had not
  • been suddenly directed into a new channel.
  • ‘The circumstance which directed his thoughts into a new channel was a
  • loud knocking at the street door, and the person who made this loud
  • knocking at the street door was no other than old Lobbs himself, who had
  • unexpectedly returned, and was hammering away, like a coffin-maker; for
  • he wanted his supper. The alarming intelligence was no sooner
  • communicated by the bony apprentice with the thin legs, than the girls
  • tripped upstairs to Maria Lobbs’s bedroom, and the male cousin and
  • Nathaniel Pipkin were thrust into a couple of closets in the sitting-
  • room, for want of any better places of concealment; and when Maria Lobbs
  • and the wicked little cousin had stowed them away, and put the room to
  • rights, they opened the street door to old Lobbs, who had never left off
  • knocking since he first began.
  • ‘Now it did unfortunately happen that old Lobbs being very hungry was
  • monstrous cross. Nathaniel Pipkin could hear him growling away like an
  • old mastiff with a sore throat; and whenever the unfortunate apprentice
  • with the thin legs came into the room, so surely did old Lobbs commence
  • swearing at him in a most Saracenic and ferocious manner, though
  • apparently with no other end or object than that of easing his bosom by
  • the discharge of a few superfluous oaths. At length some supper, which
  • had been warming up, was placed on the table, and then old Lobbs fell
  • to, in regular style; and having made clear work of it in no time,
  • kissed his daughter, and demanded his pipe.
  • ‘Nature had placed Nathaniel Pipkin’s knees in very close juxtaposition,
  • but when he heard old Lobbs demand his pipe, they knocked together, as
  • if they were going to reduce each other to powder; for, depending from a
  • couple of hooks, in the very closet in which he stood, was a large,
  • brown-stemmed, silver-bowled pipe, which pipe he himself had seen in the
  • mouth of old Lobbs, regularly every afternoon and evening, for the last
  • five years. The two girls went downstairs for the pipe, and upstairs for
  • the pipe, and everywhere but where they knew the pipe was, and old Lobbs
  • stormed away meanwhile, in the most wonderful manner. At last he thought
  • of the closet, and walked up to it. It was of no use a little man like
  • Nathaniel Pipkin pulling the door inwards, when a great strong fellow
  • like old Lobbs was pulling it outwards. Old Lobbs gave it one tug, and
  • open it flew, disclosing Nathaniel Pipkin standing bolt upright inside,
  • and shaking with apprehension from head to foot. Bless us! what an
  • appalling look old Lobbs gave him, as he dragged him out by the collar,
  • and held him at arm’s length.
  • ‘“Why, what the devil do you want here?” said old Lobbs, in a fearful
  • voice.
  • ‘Nathaniel Pipkin could make no reply, so old Lobbs shook him backwards
  • and forwards, for two or three minutes, by way of arranging his ideas
  • for him.
  • ‘“What do you want here?” roared Lobbs; “I suppose you have come after
  • my daughter, now!”
  • ‘Old Lobbs merely said this as a sneer: for he did not believe that
  • mortal presumption could have carried Nathaniel Pipkin so far. What was
  • his indignation, when that poor man replied--
  • ‘“Yes, I did, Mr. Lobbs, I did come after your daughter. I love her, Mr.
  • Lobbs.”
  • ‘“Why, you snivelling, wry-faced, puny villain,” gasped old Lobbs,
  • paralysed by the atrocious confession; “what do you mean by that? Say
  • this to my face! Damme, I’ll throttle you!”
  • ‘It is by no means improbable that old Lobbs would have carried his
  • threat into execution, in the excess of his rage, if his arm had not
  • been stayed by a very unexpected apparition: to wit, the male cousin,
  • who, stepping out of his closet, and walking up to old Lobbs, said--
  • ‘“I cannot allow this harmless person, Sir, who has been asked here, in
  • some girlish frolic, to take upon himself, in a very noble manner, the
  • fault (if fault it is) which I am guilty of, and am ready to avow. I
  • love your daughter, sir; and I came here for the purpose of meeting
  • her.”
  • ‘Old Lobbs opened his eyes very wide at this, but not wider than
  • Nathaniel Pipkin.
  • ‘“You did?” said Lobbs, at last finding breath to speak.
  • ‘“I did.”
  • ‘“And I forbade you this house, long ago.”
  • ‘“You did, or I should not have been here, clandestinely, to-night.”
  • ‘I am sorry to record it of old Lobbs, but I think he would have struck
  • the cousin, if his pretty daughter, with her bright eyes swimming in
  • tears, had not clung to his arm.
  • ‘“Don’t stop him, Maria,” said the young man; “if he has the will to
  • strike me, let him. I would not hurt a hair of his gray head, for the
  • riches of the world.”
  • ‘The old man cast down his eyes at this reproof, and they met those of
  • his daughter. I have hinted once or twice before, that they were very
  • bright eyes, and, though they were tearful now, their influence was by
  • no means lessened. Old Lobbs turned his head away, as if to avoid being
  • persuaded by them, when, as fortune would have it, he encountered the
  • face of the wicked little cousin, who, half afraid for her brother, and
  • half laughing at Nathaniel Pipkin, presented as bewitching an expression
  • of countenance, with a touch of slyness in it, too, as any man, old or
  • young, need look upon. She drew her arm coaxingly through the old man’s,
  • and whispered something in his ear; and do what he would, old Lobbs
  • couldn’t help breaking out into a smile, while a tear stole down his
  • cheek at the same time.
  • ‘Five minutes after this, the girls were brought down from the bedroom
  • with a great deal of giggling and modesty; and while the young people
  • were making themselves perfectly happy, old Lobbs got down the pipe, and
  • smoked it; and it was a remarkable circumstance about that particular
  • pipe of tobacco, that it was the most soothing and delightful one he
  • ever smoked.
  • ‘Nathaniel Pipkin thought it best to keep his own counsel, and by so
  • doing gradually rose into high favour with old Lobbs, who taught him to
  • smoke in time; and they used to sit out in the garden on the fine
  • evenings, for many years afterwards, smoking and drinking in great
  • state. He soon recovered the effects of his attachment, for we find his
  • name in the parish register, as a witness to the marriage of Maria Lobbs
  • to her cousin; and it also appears, by reference to other documents,
  • that on the night of the wedding he was incarcerated in the village
  • cage, for having, in a state of extreme intoxication, committed sundry
  • excesses in the streets, in all of which he was aided and abetted by the
  • bony apprentice with the thin legs.’
  • CHAPTER XVIII. BRIEFLY ILLUSTRATIVE OF TWO POINTS; FIRST, THE POWER OF
  • HYSTERICS, AND, SECONDLY, THE FORCE OF CIRCUMSTANCES
  • For two days after the _dejeune _at Mrs. Hunter’s, the Pickwickians
  • remained at Eatanswill, anxiously awaiting the arrival of some
  • intelligence from their revered leader. Mr. Tupman and Mr. Snodgrass
  • were once again left to their own means of amusement; for Mr. Winkle, in
  • compliance with a most pressing invitation, continued to reside at Mr.
  • Pott’s house, and to devote his time to the companionship of his amiable
  • lady. Nor was the occasional society of Mr. Pott himself wanting to
  • complete their felicity. Deeply immersed in the intensity of his
  • speculations for the public weal and the destruction of the
  • _Independent_, it was not the habit of that great man to descend from
  • his mental pinnacle to the humble level of ordinary minds. On this
  • occasion, however, and as if expressly in compliment to any follower of
  • Mr. Pickwick’s, he unbent, relaxed, stepped down from his pedestal, and
  • walked upon the ground, benignly adapting his remarks to the
  • comprehension of the herd, and seeming in outward form, if not in
  • spirit, to be one of them.
  • Such having been the demeanour of this celebrated public character
  • towards Mr. Winkle, it will be readily imagined that considerable
  • surprise was depicted on the countenance of the latter gentleman, when,
  • as he was sitting alone in the breakfast-room, the door was hastily
  • thrown open, and as hastily closed, on the entrance of Mr. Pott, who,
  • stalking majestically towards him, and thrusting aside his proffered
  • hand, ground his teeth, as if to put a sharper edge on what he was about
  • to utter, and exclaimed, in a saw-like voice--
  • ‘Serpent!’
  • ‘Sir!’ exclaimed Mr. Winkle, starting from his chair.
  • ‘Serpent, Sir,’ repeated Mr. Pott, raising his voice, and then suddenly
  • depressing it: ‘I said, serpent, sir--make the most of it.’
  • When you have parted with a man at two o’clock in the morning, on terms
  • of the utmost good-fellowship, and he meets you again, at half-past
  • nine, and greets you as a serpent, it is not unreasonable to conclude
  • that something of an unpleasant nature has occurred meanwhile. So Mr.
  • Winkle thought. He returned Mr. Pott’s gaze of stone, and in compliance
  • with that gentleman’s request, proceeded to make the most he could of
  • the ‘serpent.’ The most, however, was nothing at all; so, after a
  • profound silence of some minutes’ duration, he said,--
  • ‘Serpent, Sir! Serpent, Mr. Pott! What can you mean, Sir?--this is
  • pleasantry.’
  • ‘Pleasantry, sir!’ exclaimed Pott, with a motion of the hand, indicative
  • of a strong desire to hurl the Britannia metal teapot at the head of the
  • visitor. ‘Pleasantry, sir!--But--no, I will be calm; I will be calm,
  • Sir;’ in proof of his calmness, Mr. Pott flung himself into a chair, and
  • foamed at the mouth.
  • ‘My dear sir,’ interposed Mr. Winkle.
  • ‘_DEAR _Sir!’ replied Pott. ‘How dare you address me, as dear Sir, Sir?
  • How dare you look me in the face and do it, sir?’
  • ‘Well, Sir, if you come to that,’ responded Mr. Winkle, ‘how dare you
  • look me in the face, and call me a serpent, sir?’
  • ‘Because you are one,’ replied Mr. Pott.
  • ‘Prove it, Sir,’ said Mr. Winkle warmly. ‘Prove it.’
  • A malignant scowl passed over the profound face of the editor, as he
  • drew from his pocket the _Independent_ of that morning; and laying his
  • finger on a particular paragraph, threw the journal across the table to
  • Mr. Winkle.
  • That gentleman took it up, and read as follows:--
  • ‘Our obscure and filthy contemporary, in some disgusting observations on
  • the recent election for this borough, has presumed to violate the
  • hallowed sanctity of private life, and to refer in a manner not to be
  • misunderstood, to the personal affairs of our late candidate--aye, and
  • notwithstanding his base defeat, we will add, our future member, Mr.
  • Fizkin. What does our dastardly contemporary mean? What would the
  • ruffian say, if we, setting at naught, like him, the decencies of social
  • intercourse, were to raise the curtain which happily conceals _His_
  • private life from general ridicule, not to say from general execration?
  • What, if we were even to point out, and comment on, facts and
  • circumstances, which are publicly notorious, and beheld by every one but
  • our mole-eyed contemporary--what if we were to print the following
  • effusion, which we received while we were writing the commencement of
  • this article, from a talented fellow-townsman and correspondent?
  • ‘“LINES TO A BRASS POT
  • ‘“Oh Pott! if you’d known How false she’d have grown, When you heard the
  • marriage bells tinkle; You’d have done then, I vow, What you cannot help
  • now,
  • ‘What,’ said Mr. Pott solemnly--‘what rhymes to “tinkle,” villain?’
  • ‘What rhymes to tinkle?’ said Mrs. Pott, whose entrance at the moment
  • forestalled the reply. ‘What rhymes to tinkle? Why, Winkle, I should
  • conceive.’ Saying this, Mrs. Pott smiled sweetly on the disturbed
  • Pickwickian, and extended her hand towards him. The agitated young man
  • would have accepted it, in his confusion, had not Pott indignantly
  • interposed.
  • ‘Back, ma’am--back!’ said the editor. ‘Take his hand before my very
  • face!’
  • ‘Mr. P.!’ said his astonished lady.
  • ‘Wretched woman, look here,’ exclaimed the husband. ‘Look here, ma’am--
  • “Lines to a Brass Pot.” “Brass Pot”; that’s me, ma’am. “False _she’d_
  • have grown”; that’s you, ma’am--you.’ With this ebullition of rage,
  • which was not unaccompanied with something like a tremble, at the
  • expression of his wife’s face, Mr. Pott dashed the current number of the
  • Eatanswill _Independent_ at her feet.
  • ‘Upon my word, Sir,’ said the astonished Mrs. Pott, stooping to pick up
  • the paper. ‘Upon my word, Sir!’
  • Mr. Pott winced beneath the contemptuous gaze of his wife. He had made a
  • desperate struggle to screw up his courage, but it was fast coming
  • unscrewed again.
  • There appears nothing very tremendous in this little sentence, ‘Upon my
  • word, sir,’ when it comes to be read; but the tone of voice in which it
  • was delivered, and the look that accompanied it, both seeming to bear
  • reference to some revenge to be thereafter visited upon the head of
  • Pott, produced their effect upon him. The most unskilful observer could
  • have detected in his troubled countenance, a readiness to resign his
  • Wellington boots to any efficient substitute who would have consented to
  • stand in them at that moment.
  • Mrs. Pott read the paragraph, uttered a loud shriek, and threw herself
  • at full length on the hearth-rug, screaming, and tapping it with the
  • heels of her shoes, in a manner which could leave no doubt of the
  • propriety of her feelings on the occasion.
  • ‘My dear,’ said the terrified Pott, ‘I didn’t say I believed it;--I--’
  • but the unfortunate man’s voice was drowned in the screaming of his
  • partner.
  • ‘Mrs. Pott, let me entreat you, my dear ma’am, to compose yourself,’
  • said Mr. Winkle; but the shrieks and tappings were louder, and more
  • frequent than ever.
  • ‘My dear,’ said Mr. Pott, ‘I’m very sorry. If you won’t consider your
  • own health, consider me, my dear. We shall have a crowd round the
  • house.’ But the more strenuously Mr. Pott entreated, the more vehemently
  • the screams poured forth.
  • Very fortunately, however, attached to Mrs. Pott’s person was a
  • bodyguard of one, a young lady whose ostensible employment was to
  • preside over her toilet, but who rendered herself useful in a variety of
  • ways, and in none more so than in the particular department of
  • constantly aiding and abetting her mistress in every wish and
  • inclination opposed to the desires of the unhappy Pott. The screams
  • reached this young lady’s ears in due course, and brought her into the
  • room with a speed which threatened to derange, materially, the very
  • exquisite arrangement of her cap and ringlets.
  • ‘Oh, my dear, dear mistress!’ exclaimed the bodyguard, kneeling
  • frantically by the side of the prostrate Mrs. Pott. ‘Oh, my dear
  • mistress, what is the matter?’
  • ‘Your master--your brutal master,’ murmured the patient.
  • Pott was evidently giving way.
  • ‘It’s a shame,’ said the bodyguard reproachfully. ‘I know he’ll be the
  • death on you, ma’am. Poor dear thing!’
  • He gave way more. The opposite party followed up the attack.
  • ‘Oh, don’t leave me--don’t leave me, Goodwin,’ murmured Mrs. Pott,
  • clutching at the wrist of the said Goodwin with an hysteric jerk.
  • ‘You’re the only person that’s kind to me, Goodwin.’
  • At this affecting appeal, Goodwin got up a little domestic tragedy of
  • her own, and shed tears copiously.
  • ‘Never, ma’am--never,’ said Goodwin. ‘Oh, sir, you should be careful--
  • you should indeed; you don’t know what harm you may do missis; you’ll be
  • sorry for it one day, I know--I’ve always said so.’
  • The unlucky Pott looked timidly on, but said nothing.
  • ‘Goodwin,’ said Mrs. Pott, in a soft voice.
  • ‘Ma’am,’ said Goodwin.
  • ‘If you only knew how I have loved that man--’
  • Don’t distress yourself by recollecting it, ma’am,’ said the bodyguard.
  • Pott looked very frightened. It was time to finish him.
  • ‘And now,’ sobbed Mrs. Pott, ‘now, after all, to be treated in this way;
  • to be reproached and insulted in the presence of a third party, and that
  • party almost a stranger. But I will not submit to it! Goodwin,’
  • continued Mrs. Pott, raising herself in the arms of her attendant, ‘my
  • brother, the lieutenant, shall interfere. I’ll be separated, Goodwin!’
  • ‘It would certainly serve him right, ma’am,’ said Goodwin.
  • Whatever thoughts the threat of a separation might have awakened in Mr.
  • Pott’s mind, he forbore to give utterance to them, and contented himself
  • by saying, with great humility:--
  • ‘My dear, will you hear me?’
  • A fresh train of sobs was the only reply, as Mrs. Pott grew more
  • hysterical, requested to be informed why she was ever born, and required
  • sundry other pieces of information of a similar description.
  • ‘My dear,’ remonstrated Mr. Pott, ‘do not give way to these sensitive
  • feelings. I never believed that the paragraph had any foundation, my
  • dear--impossible. I was only angry, my dear--I may say outrageous--with
  • the _Independent_ people for daring to insert it; that’s all.’ Mr. Pott
  • cast an imploring look at the innocent cause of the mischief, as if to
  • entreat him to say nothing about the serpent.
  • ‘And what steps, sir, do you mean to take to obtain redress?’ inquired
  • Mr. Winkle, gaining courage as he saw Pott losing it.
  • ‘Oh, Goodwin,’ observed Mrs. Pott, ‘does he mean to horsewhip the editor
  • of the _Independent_--does he, Goodwin?’
  • ‘Hush, hush, ma’am; pray keep yourself quiet,’ replied the bodyguard. ‘I
  • dare say he will, if you wish it, ma’am.’
  • ‘Certainly,’ said Pott, as his wife evinced decided symptoms of going
  • off again. ‘Of course I shall.’
  • ‘When, Goodwin--when?’ said Mrs. Pott, still undecided about the going
  • off.
  • ‘Immediately, of course,’ said Mr. Pott; ‘before the day is out.’
  • ‘Oh, Goodwin,’ resumed Mrs. Pott, ‘it’s the only way of meeting the
  • slander, and setting me right with the world.’
  • ‘Certainly, ma’am,’ replied Goodwin. ‘No man as is a man, ma’am, could
  • refuse to do it.’
  • So, as the hysterics were still hovering about, Mr. Pott said once more
  • that he would do it; but Mrs. Pott was so overcome at the bare idea of
  • having ever been suspected, that she was half a dozen times on the very
  • verge of a relapse, and most unquestionably would have gone off, had it
  • not been for the indefatigable efforts of the assiduous Goodwin, and
  • repeated entreaties for pardon from the conquered Pott; and finally,
  • when that unhappy individual had been frightened and snubbed down to his
  • proper level, Mrs. Pott recovered, and they went to breakfast.
  • ‘You will not allow this base newspaper slander to shorten your stay
  • here, Mr. Winkle?’ said Mrs. Pott, smiling through the traces of her
  • tears.
  • ‘I hope not,’ said Mr. Pott, actuated, as he spoke, by a wish that his
  • visitor would choke himself with the morsel of dry toast which he was
  • raising to his lips at the moment, and so terminate his stay
  • effectually.
  • ‘I hope not.’
  • ‘You are very good,’ said Mr. Winkle; ‘but a letter has been received
  • from Mr. Pickwick--so I learn by a note from Mr. Tupman, which was
  • brought up to my bedroom door, this morning--in which he requests us to
  • join him at Bury to-day; and we are to leave by the coach at noon.’
  • ‘But you will come back?’ said Mrs. Pott.
  • ‘Oh, certainly,’ replied Mr. Winkle.
  • ‘You are quite sure?’ said Mrs. Pott, stealing a tender look at her
  • visitor.
  • ‘Quite,’ responded Mr. Winkle.
  • The breakfast passed off in silence, for each of the party was brooding
  • over his, or her, own personal grievances. Mrs. Pott was regretting the
  • loss of a beau; Mr. Pott his rash pledge to horsewhip the _Independent_;
  • Mr. Winkle his having innocently placed himself in so awkward a
  • situation. Noon approached, and after many adieux and promises to
  • return, he tore himself away.
  • ‘If he ever comes back, I’ll poison him,’ thought Mr. Pott, as he turned
  • into the little back office where he prepared his thunderbolts.
  • ‘If I ever do come back, and mix myself up with these people again,’
  • thought Mr. Winkle, as he wended his way to the Peacock, ‘I shall
  • deserve to be horsewhipped myself--that’s all.’
  • His friends were ready, the coach was nearly so, and in half an hour
  • they were proceeding on their journey, along the road over which Mr.
  • Pickwick and Sam had so recently travelled, and of which, as we have
  • already said something, we do not feel called upon to extract Mr.
  • Snodgrass’s poetical and beautiful description.
  • Mr. Weller was standing at the door of the Angel, ready to receive them,
  • and by that gentleman they were ushered to the apartment of Mr.
  • Pickwick, where, to the no small surprise of Mr. Winkle and Mr.
  • Snodgrass, and the no small embarrassment of Mr. Tupman, they found old
  • Wardle and Trundle.
  • ‘How are you?’ said the old man, grasping Mr. Tupman’s hand. ‘Don’t hang
  • back, or look sentimental about it; it can’t be helped, old fellow. For
  • her sake, I wish you’d had her; for your own, I’m very glad you have
  • not. A young fellow like you will do better one of these days, eh?’ With
  • this conclusion, Wardle slapped Mr. Tupman on the back, and laughed
  • heartily.
  • ‘Well, and how are you, my fine fellows?’ said the old gentleman,
  • shaking hands with Mr. Winkle and Mr. Snodgrass at the same time. ‘I
  • have just been telling Pickwick that we must have you all down at
  • Christmas. We’re going to have a wedding--a real wedding this time.’
  • ‘A wedding!’ exclaimed Mr. Snodgrass, turning very pale.
  • ‘Yes, a wedding. But don’t be frightened,’ said the good-humoured old
  • man; ‘it’s only Trundle there, and Bella.’
  • ‘Oh, is that all?’ said Mr. Snodgrass, relieved from a painful doubt
  • which had fallen heavily on his breast. ‘Give you joy, Sir. How is Joe?’
  • ‘Very well,’ replied the old gentleman. ‘Sleepy as ever.’
  • ‘And your mother, and the clergyman, and all of ‘em?’
  • ‘Quite well.’
  • ‘Where,’ said Mr. Tupman, with an effort--‘where is--_she_, Sir?’ and he
  • turned away his head, and covered his eyes with his hand.
  • ‘_She_!’ said the old gentleman, with a knowing shake of the head. ‘Do
  • you mean my single relative--eh?’
  • Mr. Tupman, by a nod, intimated that his question applied to the
  • disappointed Rachael.
  • ‘Oh, she’s gone away,’ said the old gentleman. ‘She’s living at a
  • relation’s, far enough off. She couldn’t bear to see the girls, so I let
  • her go. But come! Here’s the dinner. You must be hungry after your ride.
  • I am, without any ride at all; so let us fall to.’
  • Ample justice was done to the meal; and when they were seated round the
  • table, after it had been disposed of, Mr. Pickwick, to the intense
  • horror and indignation of his followers, related the adventure he had
  • undergone, and the success which had attended the base artifices of the
  • diabolical Jingle.
  • ‘And the attack of rheumatism which I caught in that garden,’ said Mr.
  • Pickwick, in conclusion, ‘renders me lame at this moment.’
  • ‘I, too, have had something of an adventure,’ said Mr. Winkle, with a
  • smile; and, at the request of Mr. Pickwick, he detailed the malicious
  • libel of the Eatanswill _Independent_, and the consequent excitement of
  • their friend, the editor.
  • Mr. Pickwick’s brow darkened during the recital. His friends observed
  • it, and, when Mr. Winkle had concluded, maintained a profound silence.
  • Mr. Pickwick struck the table emphatically with his clenched fist, and
  • spoke as follows:--
  • ‘Is it not a wonderful circumstance,’ said Mr. Pickwick, ‘that we seem
  • destined to enter no man’s house without involving him in some degree of
  • trouble? Does it not, I ask, bespeak the indiscretion, or, worse than
  • that, the blackness of heart--that I should say so!--of my followers,
  • that, beneath whatever roof they locate, they disturb the peace of mind
  • and happiness of some confiding female? Is it not, I say--’
  • Mr. Pickwick would in all probability have gone on for some time, had
  • not the entrance of Sam, with a letter, caused him to break off in his
  • eloquent discourse. He passed his handkerchief across his forehead, took
  • off his spectacles, wiped them, and put them on again; and his voice had
  • recovered its wonted softness of tone when he said--
  • ‘What have you there, Sam?’
  • ‘Called at the post-office just now, and found this here letter, as has
  • laid there for two days,’ replied Mr. Weller. ‘It’s sealed vith a vafer,
  • and directed in round hand.’
  • ‘I don’t know this hand,’ said Mr. Pickwick, opening the letter. ‘Mercy
  • on us! what’s this? It must be a jest; it--it--can’t be true.’
  • ‘What’s the matter?’ was the general inquiry.
  • ‘Nobody dead, is there?’ said Wardle, alarmed at the horror in Mr.
  • Pickwick’s countenance.
  • Mr. Pickwick made no reply, but, pushing the letter across the table,
  • and desiring Mr. Tupman to read it aloud, fell back in his chair with a
  • look of vacant astonishment quite alarming to behold.
  • Mr. Tupman, with a trembling voice, read the letter, of which the
  • following is a copy:--
  • Freeman’s Court, Cornhill, August 28th, 1827.
  • Bardell against Pickwick.
  • Sir,
  • Having been instructed by Mrs. Martha Bardell to commence an action
  • against you for a breach of promise of marriage, for which the plaintiff
  • lays her damages at fifteen hundred pounds, we beg to inform you that a
  • writ has been issued against you in this suit in the Court of Common
  • Pleas; and request to know, by return of post, the name of your attorney
  • in London, who will accept service thereof.
  • We are, Sir, Your obedient servants, Dodson & Fogg.
  • Mr. Samuel Pickwick.
  • There was something so impressive in the mute astonishment with which
  • each man regarded his neighbour, and every man regarded Mr. Pickwick,
  • that all seemed afraid to speak. The silence was at length broken by Mr.
  • Tupman.
  • ‘Dodson and Fogg,’ he repeated mechanically.
  • ‘Bardell and Pickwick,’ said Mr. Snodgrass, musing.
  • ‘Peace of mind and happiness of confiding females,’ murmured Mr. Winkle,
  • with an air of abstraction.
  • ‘It’s a conspiracy,’ said Mr. Pickwick, at length recovering the power
  • of speech; ‘a base conspiracy between these two grasping attorneys,
  • Dodson and Fogg. Mrs. Bardell would never do it;--she hasn’t the heart
  • to do it;--she hasn’t the case to do it. Ridiculous--ridiculous.’
  • Of her heart,’ said Wardle, with a smile, ‘you should certainly be the
  • best judge. I don’t wish to discourage you, but I should certainly say
  • that, of her case, Dodson and Fogg are far better judges than any of us
  • can be.’
  • ‘It’s a vile attempt to extort money,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘I hope it is,’ said Wardle, with a short, dry cough.
  • ‘Who ever heard me address her in any way but that in which a lodger
  • would address his landlady?’ continued Mr. Pickwick, with great
  • vehemence. ‘Who ever saw me with her? Not even my friends here--’
  • ‘Except on one occasion,’ said Mr. Tupman.
  • Mr. Pickwick changed colour.
  • ‘Ah,’ said Mr. Wardle. ‘Well, that’s important. There was nothing
  • suspicious then, I suppose?’
  • Mr. Tupman glanced timidly at his leader. ‘Why,’ said he, ‘there was
  • nothing suspicious; but--I don’t know how it happened, mind--she
  • certainly was reclining in his arms.’
  • ‘Gracious powers!’ ejaculated Mr. Pickwick, as the recollection of the
  • scene in question struck forcibly upon him; ‘what a dreadful instance of
  • the force of circumstances! So she was--so she was.’
  • ‘And our friend was soothing her anguish,’ said Mr. Winkle, rather
  • maliciously.
  • ‘So I was,’ said Mr. Pickwick. ‘I don’t deny it. So I was.’
  • ‘Hollo!’ said Wardle; ‘for a case in which there’s nothing suspicious,
  • this looks rather queer--eh, Pickwick? Ah, sly dog--sly dog!’ and he
  • laughed till the glasses on the sideboard rang again.
  • ‘What a dreadful conjunction of appearances!’ exclaimed Mr. Pickwick,
  • resting his chin upon his hands. ‘Winkle--Tupman--I beg your pardon for
  • the observations I made just now. We are all the victims of
  • circumstances, and I the greatest.’ With this apology Mr. Pickwick
  • buried his head in his hands, and ruminated; while Wardle measured out a
  • regular circle of nods and winks, addressed to the other members of the
  • company.
  • ‘I’ll have it explained, though,’ said Mr. Pickwick, raising his head
  • and hammering the table. ‘I’ll see this Dodson and Fogg! I’ll go to
  • London to-morrow.’
  • ‘Not to-morrow,’ said Wardle; ‘you’re too lame.’
  • ‘Well, then, next day.’
  • ‘Next day is the first of September, and you’re pledged to ride out with
  • us, as far as Sir Geoffrey Manning’s grounds at all events, and to meet
  • us at lunch, if you don’t take the field.’
  • ‘Well, then, the day after,’ said Mr. Pickwick; ‘Thursday.--Sam!’
  • ‘Sir,’ replied Mr. Weller.
  • ‘Take two places outside to London, on Thursday morning, for yourself
  • and me.’
  • ‘Wery well, Sir.’
  • Mr. Weller left the room, and departed slowly on his errand, with his
  • hands in his pocket and his eyes fixed on the ground.
  • ‘Rum feller, the hemperor,’ said Mr. Weller, as he walked slowly up the
  • street. ‘Think o’ his makin’ up to that ‘ere Mrs. Bardell--vith a little
  • boy, too! Always the vay vith these here old ‘uns howsoever, as is such
  • steady goers to look at. I didn’t think he’d ha’ done it, though--I
  • didn’t think he’d ha’ done it!’ Moralising in this strain, Mr. Samuel
  • Weller bent his steps towards the booking-office.
  • CHAPTER XIX. A PLEASANT DAY WITH AN UNPLEASANT TERMINATION
  • The birds, who, happily for their own peace of mind and personal
  • comfort, were in blissful ignorance of the preparations which had been
  • making to astonish them, on the first of September, hailed it, no doubt,
  • as one of the pleasantest mornings they had seen that season. Many a
  • young partridge who strutted complacently among the stubble, with all
  • the finicking coxcombry of youth, and many an older one who watched his
  • levity out of his little round eye, with the contemptuous air of a bird
  • of wisdom and experience, alike unconscious of their approaching doom,
  • basked in the fresh morning air with lively and blithesome feelings, and
  • a few hours afterwards were laid low upon the earth. But we grow
  • affecting: let us proceed.
  • In plain commonplace matter-of-fact, then, it was a fine morning--so
  • fine that you would scarcely have believed that the few months of an
  • English summer had yet flown by. Hedges, fields, and trees, hill and
  • moorland, presented to the eye their ever-varying shades of deep rich
  • green; scarce a leaf had fallen, scarce a sprinkle of yellow mingled
  • with the hues of summer, warned you that autumn had begun. The sky was
  • cloudless; the sun shone out bright and warm; the songs of birds, the
  • hum of myriads of summer insects, filled the air; and the cottage
  • gardens, crowded with flowers of every rich and beautiful tint,
  • sparkled, in the heavy dew, like beds of glittering jewels. Everything
  • bore the stamp of summer, and none of its beautiful colour had yet faded
  • from the die.
  • Such was the morning, when an open carriage, in which were three
  • Pickwickians (Mr. Snodgrass having preferred to remain at home), Mr.
  • Wardle, and Mr. Trundle, with Sam Weller on the box beside the driver,
  • pulled up by a gate at the roadside, before which stood a tall, raw-
  • boned gamekeeper, and a half-booted, leather-legginged boy, each bearing
  • a bag of capacious dimensions, and accompanied by a brace of pointers.
  • ‘I say,’ whispered Mr. Winkle to Wardle, as the man let down the steps,
  • ‘they don’t suppose we’re going to kill game enough to fill those bags,
  • do they?’
  • ‘Fill them!’ exclaimed old Wardle. ‘Bless you, yes! You shall fill one,
  • and I the other; and when we’ve done with them, the pockets of our
  • shooting-jackets will hold as much more.’
  • Mr. Winkle dismounted without saying anything in reply to this
  • observation; but he thought within himself, that if the party remained
  • in the open air, till he had filled one of the bags, they stood a
  • considerable chance of catching colds in their heads.
  • ‘Hi, Juno, lass-hi, old girl; down, Daph, down,’ said Wardle, caressing
  • the dogs. ‘Sir Geoffrey still in Scotland, of course, Martin?’
  • The tall gamekeeper replied in the affirmative, and looked with some
  • surprise from Mr. Winkle, who was holding his gun as if he wished his
  • coat pocket to save him the trouble of pulling the trigger, to Mr.
  • Tupman, who was holding his as if he was afraid of it--as there is no
  • earthly reason to doubt he really was.
  • ‘My friends are not much in the way of this sort of thing yet, Martin,’
  • said Wardle, noticing the look. ‘Live and learn, you know. They’ll be
  • good shots one of these days. I beg my friend Winkle’s pardon, though;
  • he has had some practice.’
  • Mr. Winkle smiled feebly over his blue neckerchief in acknowledgment of
  • the compliment, and got himself so mysteriously entangled with his gun,
  • in his modest confusion, that if the piece had been loaded, he must
  • inevitably have shot himself dead upon the spot.
  • ‘You mustn’t handle your piece in that ‘ere way, when you come to have
  • the charge in it, Sir,’ said the tall gamekeeper gruffly; ‘or I’m damned
  • if you won’t make cold meat of some on us.’
  • Mr. Winkle, thus admonished, abruptly altered his position, and in so
  • doing, contrived to bring the barrel into pretty smart contact with Mr.
  • Weller’s head.
  • ‘Hollo!’ said Sam, picking up his hat, which had been knocked off, and
  • rubbing his temple. ‘Hollo, sir! if you comes it this vay, you’ll fill
  • one o’ them bags, and something to spare, at one fire.’
  • Here the leather-legginged boy laughed very heartily, and then tried to
  • look as if it was somebody else, whereat Mr. Winkle frowned
  • majestically.
  • ‘Where did you tell the boy to meet us with the snack, Martin?’ inquired
  • Wardle.
  • ‘Side of One-tree Hill, at twelve o’clock, Sir.’
  • ‘That’s not Sir Geoffrey’s land, is it?’
  • ‘No, Sir; but it’s close by it. It’s Captain Boldwig’s land; but
  • there’ll be nobody to interrupt us, and there’s a fine bit of turf
  • there.’
  • ‘Very well,’ said old Wardle. ‘Now the sooner we’re off the better. Will
  • you join us at twelve, then, Pickwick?’
  • Mr. Pickwick was particularly desirous to view the sport, the more
  • especially as he was rather anxious in respect of Mr. Winkle’s life and
  • limbs. On so inviting a morning, too, it was very tantalising to turn
  • back, and leave his friends to enjoy themselves. It was, therefore, with
  • a very rueful air that he replied--
  • ‘Why, I suppose I must.’
  • ‘Ain’t the gentleman a shot, Sir?’ inquired the long gamekeeper.
  • ‘No,’ replied Wardle; ‘and he’s lame besides.’
  • ‘I should very much like to go,’ said Mr. Pickwick--‘very much.’
  • There was a short pause of commiseration.
  • ‘There’s a barrow t’other side the hedge,’ said the boy. ‘If the
  • gentleman’s servant would wheel along the paths, he could keep nigh us,
  • and we could lift it over the stiles, and that.’
  • ‘The wery thing,’ said Mr. Weller, who was a party interested, inasmuch
  • as he ardently longed to see the sport. ‘The wery thing. Well said,
  • Smallcheek; I’ll have it out in a minute.’
  • But here a difficulty arose. The long gamekeeper resolutely protested
  • against the introduction into a shooting party, of a gentleman in a
  • barrow, as a gross violation of all established rules and precedents.
  • It was a great objection, but not an insurmountable one. The gamekeeper
  • having been coaxed and feed, and having, moreover, eased his mind by
  • ‘punching’ the head of the inventive youth who had first suggested the
  • use of the machine, Mr. Pickwick was placed in it, and off the party
  • set; Wardle and the long gamekeeper leading the way, and Mr. Pickwick in
  • the barrow, propelled by Sam, bringing up the rear.
  • ‘Stop, Sam,’ said Mr. Pickwick, when they had got half across the first
  • field.
  • ‘What’s the matter now?’ said Wardle.
  • ‘I won’t suffer this barrow to be moved another step,’ said Mr.
  • Pickwick, resolutely, ‘unless Winkle carries that gun of his in a
  • different manner.’
  • ‘How _am_ I to carry it?’ said the wretched Winkle.
  • ‘Carry it with the muzzle to the ground,’ replied Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘It’s so unsportsmanlike,’ reasoned Winkle.
  • ‘I don’t care whether it’s unsportsmanlike or not,’ replied Mr.
  • Pickwick; ‘I am not going to be shot in a wheel-barrow, for the sake of
  • appearances, to please anybody.’
  • ‘I know the gentleman’ll put that ‘ere charge into somebody afore he’s
  • done,’ growled the long man.
  • ‘Well, well--I don’t mind,’ said poor Winkle, turning his gun-stock
  • uppermost--‘there.’
  • ‘Anythin’ for a quiet life,’ said Mr. Weller; and on they went again.
  • ‘Stop!’ said Mr. Pickwick, after they had gone a few yards farther.
  • ‘What now?’ said Wardle.
  • ‘That gun of Tupman’s is not safe: I know it isn’t,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Eh? What! not safe?’ said Mr. Tupman, in a tone of great alarm.
  • ‘Not as you are carrying it,’ said Mr. Pickwick. ‘I am very sorry to
  • make any further objection, but I cannot consent to go on, unless you
  • carry it as Winkle does his.’
  • ‘I think you had better, sir,’ said the long gamekeeper, ‘or you’re
  • quite as likely to lodge the charge in yourself as in anything else.’
  • Mr. Tupman, with the most obliging haste, placed his piece in the
  • position required, and the party moved on again; the two amateurs
  • marching with reversed arms, like a couple of privates at a royal
  • funeral.
  • The dogs suddenly came to a dead stop, and the party advancing
  • stealthily a single pace, stopped too.
  • ‘What’s the matter with the dogs’ legs?’ whispered Mr. Winkle. ‘How
  • queer they’re standing.’
  • ‘Hush, can’t you?’ replied Wardle softly. ‘Don’t you see, they’re making
  • a point?’
  • ‘Making a point!’ said Mr. Winkle, staring about him, as if he expected
  • to discover some particular beauty in the landscape, which the sagacious
  • animals were calling special attention to. ‘Making a point! What are
  • they pointing at?’
  • ‘Keep your eyes open,’ said Wardle, not heeding the question in the
  • excitement of the moment. ‘Now then.’
  • There was a sharp whirring noise, that made Mr. Winkle start back as if
  • he had been shot himself. Bang, bang, went a couple of guns--the smoke
  • swept quickly away over the field, and curled into the air.
  • ‘Where are they!’ said Mr. Winkle, in a state of the highest excitement,
  • turning round and round in all directions. ‘Where are they? Tell me when
  • to fire. Where are they--where are they?’
  • ‘Where are they!’ said Wardle, taking up a brace of birds which the dogs
  • had deposited at his feet. ‘Why, here they are.’
  • ‘No, no; I mean the others,’ said the bewildered Winkle.
  • ‘Far enough off, by this time,’ replied Wardle, coolly reloading his
  • gun.
  • ‘We shall very likely be up with another covey in five minutes,’ said
  • the long gamekeeper. ‘If the gentleman begins to fire now, perhaps he’ll
  • just get the shot out of the barrel by the time they rise.’
  • ‘Ha! ha! ha!’ roared Mr. Weller.
  • ‘Sam,’ said Mr. Pickwick, compassionating his follower’s confusion and
  • embarrassment.
  • ‘Sir.’
  • ‘Don’t laugh.’
  • ‘Certainly not, Sir.’ So, by way of indemnification, Mr. Weller
  • contorted his features from behind the wheel-barrow, for the exclusive
  • amusement of the boy with the leggings, who thereupon burst into a
  • boisterous laugh, and was summarily cuffed by the long gamekeeper, who
  • wanted a pretext for turning round, to hide his own merriment.
  • ‘Bravo, old fellow!’ said Wardle to Mr. Tupman; ‘you fired that time, at
  • all events.’
  • ‘Oh, yes,’ replied Mr. Tupman, with conscious pride. ‘I let it off.’
  • ‘Well done. You’ll hit something next time, if you look sharp. Very
  • easy, ain’t it?’
  • ‘Yes, it’s very easy,’ said Mr. Tupman. ‘How it hurts one’s shoulder,
  • though. It nearly knocked me backwards. I had no idea these small
  • firearms kicked so.’
  • ‘Ah,’ said the old gentleman, smiling, ‘you’ll get used to it in time.
  • Now then--all ready--all right with the barrow there?’
  • ‘All right, Sir,’ replied Mr. Weller.
  • ‘Come along, then.’
  • ‘Hold hard, Sir,’ said Sam, raising the barrow.
  • ‘Aye, aye,’ replied Mr. Pickwick; and on they went, as briskly as need
  • be.
  • ‘Keep that barrow back now,’ cried Wardle, when it had been hoisted over
  • a stile into another field, and Mr. Pickwick had been deposited in it
  • once more.
  • ‘All right, sir,’ replied Mr. Weller, pausing.
  • ‘Now, Winkle,’ said the old gentleman, ‘follow me softly, and don’t be
  • too late this time.’
  • ‘Never fear,’ said Mr. Winkle. ‘Are they pointing?’
  • ‘No, no; not now. Quietly now, quietly.’ On they crept, and very quietly
  • they would have advanced, if Mr. Winkle, in the performance of some very
  • intricate evolutions with his gun, had not accidentally fired, at the
  • most critical moment, over the boy’s head, exactly in the very spot
  • where the tall man’s brain would have been, had he been there instead.
  • ‘Why, what on earth did you do that for?’ said old Wardle, as the birds
  • flew unharmed away.
  • ‘I never saw such a gun in my life,’ replied poor Mr. Winkle, looking at
  • the lock, as if that would do any good. ‘It goes off of its own accord.
  • It _will _do it.’
  • ‘Will do it!’ echoed Wardle, with something of irritation in his manner.
  • ‘I wish it would kill something of its own accord.’
  • ‘It’ll do that afore long, Sir,’ observed the tall man, in a low,
  • prophetic voice.
  • ‘What do you mean by that observation, Sir?’ inquired Mr. Winkle,
  • angrily.
  • ‘Never mind, Sir, never mind,’ replied the long gamekeeper; ‘I’ve no
  • family myself, sir; and this here boy’s mother will get something
  • handsome from Sir Geoffrey, if he’s killed on his land. Load again, Sir,
  • load again.’
  • ‘Take away his gun,’ cried Mr. Pickwick from the barrow, horror-stricken
  • at the long man’s dark insinuations. ‘Take away his gun, do you hear,
  • somebody?’
  • Nobody, however, volunteered to obey the command; and Mr. Winkle, after
  • darting a rebellious glance at Mr. Pickwick, reloaded his gun, and
  • proceeded onwards with the rest.
  • We are bound, on the authority of Mr. Pickwick, to state, that Mr.
  • Tupman’s mode of proceeding evinced far more of prudence and
  • deliberation, than that adopted by Mr. Winkle. Still, this by no means
  • detracts from the great authority of the latter gentleman, on all
  • matters connected with the field; because, as Mr. Pickwick beautifully
  • observes, it has somehow or other happened, from time immemorial, that
  • many of the best and ablest philosophers, who have been perfect lights
  • of science in matters of theory, have been wholly unable to reduce them
  • to practice.
  • Mr. Tupman’s process, like many of our most sublime discoveries, was
  • extremely simple. With the quickness and penetration of a man of genius,
  • he had at once observed that the two great points to be attained were--
  • first, to discharge his piece without injury to himself, and, secondly,
  • to do so, without danger to the bystanders--obviously, the best thing to
  • do, after surmounting the difficulty of firing at all, was to shut his
  • eyes firmly, and fire into the air.
  • On one occasion, after performing this feat, Mr. Tupman, on opening his
  • eyes, beheld a plump partridge in the act of falling, wounded, to the
  • ground. He was on the point of congratulating Mr. Wardle on his
  • invariable success, when that gentleman advanced towards him, and
  • grasped him warmly by the hand.
  • ‘Tupman,’ said the old gentleman, ‘you singled out that particular
  • bird?’
  • ‘No,’ said Mr. Tupman--‘no.’
  • ‘You did,’ said Wardle. ‘I saw you do it--I observed you pick him out--I
  • noticed you, as you raised your piece to take aim; and I will say this,
  • that the best shot in existence could not have done it more beautifully.
  • You are an older hand at this than I thought you, Tupman; you have been
  • out before.’
  • It was in vain for Mr. Tupman to protest, with a smile of self-denial,
  • that he never had. The very smile was taken as evidence to the contrary;
  • and from that time forth his reputation was established. It is not the
  • only reputation that has been acquired as easily, nor are such fortunate
  • circumstances confined to partridge-shooting.
  • Meanwhile, Mr. Winkle flashed, and blazed, and smoked away, without
  • producing any material results worthy of being noted down; sometimes
  • expending his charge in mid-air, and at others sending it skimming along
  • so near the surface of the ground as to place the lives of the two dogs
  • on a rather uncertain and precarious tenure. As a display of fancy-
  • shooting, it was extremely varied and curious; as an exhibition of
  • firing with any precise object, it was, upon the whole, perhaps a
  • failure. It is an established axiom, that ‘every bullet has its billet.’
  • If it apply in an equal degree to shot, those of Mr. Winkle were
  • unfortunate foundlings, deprived of their natural rights, cast loose
  • upon the world, and billeted nowhere.
  • ‘Well,’ said Wardle, walking up to the side of the barrow, and wiping
  • the streams of perspiration from his jolly red face; ‘smoking day, isn’t
  • it?’
  • ‘It is, indeed,’ replied Mr. Pickwick. The sun is tremendously hot, even
  • to me. I don’t know how you must feel it.’
  • ‘Why,’ said the old gentleman, ‘pretty hot. It’s past twelve, though.
  • You see that green hill there?’
  • ‘Certainly.’
  • ‘That’s the place where we are to lunch; and, by Jove, there’s the boy
  • with the basket, punctual as clockwork!’
  • ‘So he is,’ said Mr. Pickwick, brightening up. ‘Good boy, that. I’ll
  • give him a shilling, presently. Now, then, Sam, wheel away.’
  • ‘Hold on, sir,’ said Mr. Weller, invigorated with the prospect of
  • refreshments. ‘Out of the vay, young leathers. If you walley my precious
  • life don’t upset me, as the gen’l’m’n said to the driver when they was
  • a-carryin’ him to Tyburn.’ And quickening his pace to a sharp run, Mr.
  • Weller wheeled his master nimbly to the green hill, shot him dexterously
  • out by the very side of the basket, and proceeded to unpack it with the
  • utmost despatch.
  • ‘Weal pie,’ said Mr. Weller, soliloquising, as he arranged the eatables
  • on the grass. ‘Wery good thing is weal pie, when you know the lady as
  • made it, and is quite sure it ain’t kittens; and arter all though,
  • where’s the odds, when they’re so like weal that the wery piemen
  • themselves don’t know the difference?’
  • ‘Don’t they, Sam?’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Not they, sir,’ replied Mr. Weller, touching his hat. ‘I lodged in the
  • same house vith a pieman once, sir, and a wery nice man he was--reg’lar
  • clever chap, too--make pies out o’ anything, he could. “What a number o’
  • cats you keep, Mr. Brooks,” says I, when I’d got intimate with him.
  • “Ah,” says he, “I do--a good many,” says he, “You must be wery fond o’
  • cats,” says I. “Other people is,” says he, a-winkin’ at me; “they ain’t
  • in season till the winter though,” says he. “Not in season!” says I.
  • “No,” says he, “fruits is in, cats is out.” “Why, what do you mean?”
  • says I. “Mean!” says he. “That I’ll never be a party to the combination
  • o’ the butchers, to keep up the price o’ meat,” says he. “Mr. Weller,”
  • says he, a-squeezing my hand wery hard, and vispering in my ear--“don’t
  • mention this here agin--but it’s the seasonin’ as does it. They’re all
  • made o’ them noble animals,” says he, a-pointin’ to a wery nice little
  • tabby kitten, “and I seasons ‘em for beefsteak, weal or kidney, ‘cording
  • to the demand. And more than that,” says he, “I can make a weal a beef-
  • steak, or a beef-steak a kidney, or any one on ‘em a mutton, at a
  • minute’s notice, just as the market changes, and appetites wary!”’
  • ‘He must have been a very ingenious young man, that, Sam,’ said Mr.
  • Pickwick, with a slight shudder.
  • ‘Just was, sir,’ replied Mr. Weller, continuing his occupation of
  • emptying the basket, ‘and the pies was beautiful. Tongue--, well that’s
  • a wery good thing when it ain’t a woman’s. Bread--knuckle o’ ham,
  • reg’lar picter--cold beef in slices, wery good. What’s in them stone
  • jars, young touch-and-go?’
  • ‘Beer in this one,’ replied the boy, taking from his shoulder a couple
  • of large stone bottles, fastened together by a leathern strap--‘cold
  • punch in t’other.’
  • ‘And a wery good notion of a lunch it is, take it altogether,’ said Mr.
  • Weller, surveying his arrangement of the repast with great satisfaction.
  • ‘Now, gen’l’m’n, “fall on,” as the English said to the French when they
  • fixed bagginets.’
  • It needed no second invitation to induce the party to yield full justice
  • to the meal; and as little pressing did it require to induce Mr. Weller,
  • the long gamekeeper, and the two boys, to station themselves on the
  • grass, at a little distance, and do good execution upon a decent
  • proportion of the viands. An old oak afforded a pleasant shelter to the
  • group, and a rich prospect of arable and meadow land, intersected with
  • luxuriant hedges, and richly ornamented with wood, lay spread out before
  • them.
  • ‘This is delightful--thoroughly delightful!’ said Mr. Pickwick; the skin
  • of whose expressive countenance was rapidly peeling off, with exposure
  • to the sun.
  • ‘So it is--so it is, old fellow,’ replied Wardle. ‘Come; a glass of
  • punch!’
  • ‘With great pleasure,’ said Mr. Pickwick; the satisfaction of whose
  • countenance, after drinking it, bore testimony to the sincerity of the
  • reply.
  • ‘Good,’ said Mr. Pickwick, smacking his lips. ‘Very good. I’ll take
  • another. Cool; very cool. Come, gentlemen,’ continued Mr. Pickwick,
  • still retaining his hold upon the jar, ‘a toast. Our friends at Dingley
  • Dell.’
  • The toast was drunk with loud acclamations.
  • ‘I’ll tell you what I shall do, to get up my shooting again,’ said Mr.
  • Winkle, who was eating bread and ham with a pocket-knife. ‘I’ll put a
  • stuffed partridge on the top of a post, and practise at it, beginning at
  • a short distance, and lengthening it by degrees. I understand it’s
  • capital practice.’
  • ‘I know a gen’l’man, Sir,’ said Mr. Weller, ‘as did that, and begun at
  • two yards; but he never tried it on agin; for he blowed the bird right
  • clean away at the first fire, and nobody ever seed a feather on him
  • arterwards.’
  • ‘Sam,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Sir,’ replied Mr. Weller.
  • ‘Have the goodness to reserve your anecdotes till they are called for.’
  • ‘Cert’nly, sir.’
  • Here Mr. Weller winked the eye which was not concealed by the beer-can
  • he was raising to his lips, with such exquisite facetiousness, that the
  • two boys went into spontaneous convulsions, and even the long man
  • condescended to smile.
  • ‘Well, that certainly is most capital cold punch,’ said Mr. Pickwick,
  • looking earnestly at the stone bottle; ‘and the day is extremely warm,
  • and--Tupman, my dear friend, a glass of punch?’
  • ‘With the greatest delight,’ replied Mr. Tupman; and having drank that
  • glass, Mr. Pickwick took another, just to see whether there was any
  • orange peel in the punch, because orange peel always disagreed with him;
  • and finding that there was not, Mr. Pickwick took another glass to the
  • health of their absent friend, and then felt himself imperatively called
  • upon to propose another in honour of the punch-compounder, unknown.
  • This constant succession of glasses produced considerable effect upon
  • Mr. Pickwick; his countenance beamed with the most sunny smiles,
  • laughter played around his lips, and good-humoured merriment twinkled in
  • his eye. Yielding by degrees to the influence of the exciting liquid,
  • rendered more so by the heat, Mr. Pickwick expressed a strong desire to
  • recollect a song which he had heard in his infancy, and the attempt
  • proving abortive, sought to stimulate his memory with more glasses of
  • punch, which appeared to have quite a contrary effect; for, from
  • forgetting the words of the song, he began to forget how to articulate
  • any words at all; and finally, after rising to his legs to address the
  • company in an eloquent speech, he fell into the barrow, and fast asleep,
  • simultaneously.
  • The basket having been repacked, and it being found perfectly impossible
  • to awaken Mr. Pickwick from his torpor, some discussion took place
  • whether it would be better for Mr. Weller to wheel his master back
  • again, or to leave him where he was, until they should all be ready to
  • return. The latter course was at length decided on; and as the further
  • expedition was not to exceed an hour’s duration, and as Mr. Weller
  • begged very hard to be one of the party, it was determined to leave Mr.
  • Pickwick asleep in the barrow, and to call for him on their return. So
  • away they went, leaving Mr. Pickwick snoring most comfortably in the
  • shade.
  • That Mr. Pickwick would have continued to snore in the shade until his
  • friends came back, or, in default thereof, until the shades of evening
  • had fallen on the landscape, there appears no reasonable cause to doubt;
  • always supposing that he had been suffered to remain there in peace. But
  • he was _not _suffered to remain there in peace. And this was what
  • prevented him.
  • Captain Boldwig was a little fierce man in a stiff black neckerchief and
  • blue surtout, who, when he did condescend to walk about his property,
  • did it in company with a thick rattan stick with a brass ferrule, and a
  • gardener and sub-gardener with meek faces, to whom (the gardeners, not
  • the stick) Captain Boldwig gave his orders with all due grandeur and
  • ferocity; for Captain Boldwig’s wife’s sister had married a marquis, and
  • the captain’s house was a villa, and his land ‘grounds,’ and it was all
  • very high, and mighty, and great.
  • Mr. Pickwick had not been asleep half an hour when little Captain
  • Boldwig, followed by the two gardeners, came striding along as fast as
  • his size and importance would let him; and when he came near the oak
  • tree, Captain Boldwig paused and drew a long breath, and looked at the
  • prospect as if he thought the prospect ought to be highly gratified at
  • having him to take notice of it; and then he struck the ground
  • emphatically with his stick, and summoned the head-gardener.
  • ‘Hunt,’ said Captain Boldwig.
  • ‘Yes, Sir,’ said the gardener.
  • ‘Roll this place to-morrow morning--do you hear, Hunt?’
  • ‘Yes, Sir.’
  • ‘And take care that you keep this place in good order--do you hear,
  • Hunt?’
  • ‘Yes, Sir.’
  • ‘And remind me to have a board done about trespassers, and spring guns,
  • and all that sort of thing, to keep the common people out. Do you hear,
  • Hunt; do you hear?’
  • ‘I’ll not forget it, Sir.’
  • ‘I beg your pardon, Sir,’ said the other man, advancing, with his hand
  • to his hat.
  • ‘Well, Wilkins, what’s the matter with you?’ said Captain Boldwig.
  • ‘I beg your pardon, sir--but I think there have been trespassers here
  • to-day.’
  • ‘Ha!’ said the captain, scowling around him.
  • ‘Yes, sir--they have been dining here, I think, sir.’
  • ‘Why, damn their audacity, so they have,’ said Captain Boldwig, as the
  • crumbs and fragments that were strewn upon the grass met his eye. ‘They
  • have actually been devouring their food here. I wish I had the vagabonds
  • here!’ said the captain, clenching the thick stick.
  • ‘I wish I had the vagabonds here,’ said the captain wrathfully.
  • ‘Beg your pardon, sir,’ said Wilkins, ‘but--’
  • ‘But what? Eh?’ roared the captain; and following the timid glance of
  • Wilkins, his eyes encountered the wheel-barrow and Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Who are you, you rascal?’ said the captain, administering several pokes
  • to Mr. Pickwick’s body with the thick stick. ‘What’s your name?’
  • ‘Cold punch,’ murmured Mr. Pickwick, as he sank to sleep again.
  • ‘What?’ demanded Captain Boldwig.
  • No reply.
  • ‘What did he say his name was?’ asked the captain.
  • ‘Punch, I think, sir,’ replied Wilkins.
  • ‘That’s his impudence--that’s his confounded impudence,’ said Captain
  • Boldwig. ‘He’s only feigning to be asleep now,’ said the captain, in a
  • high passion. ‘He’s drunk; he’s a drunken plebeian. Wheel him away,
  • Wilkins, wheel him away directly.’
  • Where shall I wheel him to, sir?’ inquired Wilkins, with great timidity.
  • ‘Wheel him to the devil,’ replied Captain Boldwig.
  • ‘Very well, sir,’ said Wilkins.
  • ‘Stay,’ said the captain.
  • Wilkins stopped accordingly.
  • ‘Wheel him,’ said the captain--‘wheel him to the pound; and let us see
  • whether he calls himself Punch when he comes to himself. He shall not
  • bully me--he shall not bully me. Wheel him away.’
  • Away Mr. Pickwick was wheeled in compliance with this imperious mandate;
  • and the great Captain Boldwig, swelling with indignation, proceeded on
  • his walk.
  • Inexpressible was the astonishment of the little party when they
  • returned, to find that Mr. Pickwick had disappeared, and taken the
  • wheel-barrow with him. It was the most mysterious and unaccountable
  • thing that was ever heard of. For a lame man to have got upon his legs
  • without any previous notice, and walked off, would have been most
  • extraordinary; but when it came to his wheeling a heavy barrow before
  • him, by way of amusement, it grew positively miraculous. They searched
  • every nook and corner round, together and separately; they shouted,
  • whistled, laughed, called--and all with the same result. Mr. Pickwick
  • was not to be found. After some hours of fruitless search, they arrived
  • at the unwelcome conclusion that they must go home without him.
  • Meanwhile Mr. Pickwick had been wheeled to the Pound, and safely
  • deposited therein, fast asleep in the wheel-barrow, to the immeasurable
  • delight and satisfaction not only of all the boys in the village, but
  • three-fourths of the whole population, who had gathered round, in
  • expectation of his waking. If their most intense gratification had been
  • awakened by seeing him wheeled in, how many hundredfold was their joy
  • increased when, after a few indistinct cries of ‘Sam!’ he sat up in the
  • barrow, and gazed with indescribable astonishment on the faces before
  • him.
  • A general shout was of course the signal of his having woke up; and his
  • involuntary inquiry of ‘What’s the matter?’ occasioned another, louder
  • than the first, if possible.
  • ‘Here’s a game!’ roared the populace.
  • ‘Where am I?’ exclaimed Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘In the pound,’ replied the mob.
  • ‘How came I here? What was I doing? Where was I brought from?’
  • Boldwig! Captain Boldwig!’ was the only reply.
  • ‘Let me out,’ cried Mr. Pickwick. ‘Where’s my servant? Where are my
  • friends?’
  • ‘You ain’t got no friends. Hurrah!’ Then there came a turnip, then a
  • potato, and then an egg; with a few other little tokens of the playful
  • disposition of the many-headed.
  • How long this scene might have lasted, or how much Mr. Pickwick might
  • have suffered, no one can tell, had not a carriage, which was driving
  • swiftly by, suddenly pulled up, from whence there descended old Wardle
  • and Sam Weller, the former of whom, in far less time than it takes to
  • write it, if not to read it, had made his way to Mr. Pickwick’s side,
  • and placed him in the vehicle, just as the latter had concluded the
  • third and last round of a single combat with the town-beadle.
  • ‘Run to the justice’s!’ cried a dozen voices.
  • ‘Ah, run avay,’ said Mr. Weller, jumping up on the box. ‘Give my
  • compliments--Mr. Veller’s compliments--to the justice, and tell him I’ve
  • spiled his beadle, and that, if he’ll swear in a new ‘un, I’ll come back
  • again to-morrow and spile him. Drive on, old feller.’
  • ‘I’ll give directions for the commencement of an action for false
  • imprisonment against this Captain Boldwig, directly I get to London,’
  • said Mr. Pickwick, as soon as the carriage turned out of the town.
  • ‘We were trespassing, it seems,’ said Wardle.
  • ‘I don’t care,’ said Mr. Pickwick, ‘I’ll bring the action.’
  • ‘No, you won’t,’ said Wardle.
  • ‘I will, by--’ But as there was a humorous expression in Wardle’s face,
  • Mr. Pickwick checked himself, and said, ‘Why not?’
  • ‘Because,’ said old Wardle, half-bursting with laughter, ‘because they
  • might turn on some of us, and say we had taken too much cold punch.’
  • Do what he would, a smile would come into Mr. Pickwick’s face; the smile
  • extended into a laugh; the laugh into a roar; the roar became general.
  • So, to keep up their good-humour, they stopped at the first roadside
  • tavern they came to, and ordered a glass of brandy-and-water all round,
  • with a magnum of extra strength for Mr. Samuel Weller.
  • CHAPTER XX. SHOWING HOW DODSON AND FOGG WERE MEN OF BUSINESS, AND THEIR
  • CLERKS MEN OF PLEASURE; AND HOW AN AFFECTING INTERVIEW TOOK PLACE
  • BETWEEN MR. WELLER AND HIS LONG-LOST PARENT; SHOWING ALSO WHAT CHOICE
  • SPIRITS ASSEMBLED AT THE MAGPIE AND STUMP, AND WHAT A CAPITAL CHAPTER
  • THE NEXT ONE WILL BE
  • In the ground-floor front of a dingy house, at the very farthest end of
  • Freeman’s Court, Cornhill, sat the four clerks of Messrs. Dodson & Fogg,
  • two of his Majesty’s attorneys of the courts of King’s Bench and Common
  • Pleas at Westminster, and solicitors of the High Court of Chancery--the
  • aforesaid clerks catching as favourable glimpses of heaven’s light and
  • heaven’s sun, in the course of their daily labours, as a man might hope
  • to do, were he placed at the bottom of a reasonably deep well; and
  • without the opportunity of perceiving the stars in the day-time, which
  • the latter secluded situation affords.
  • The clerks’ office of Messrs. Dodson & Fogg was a dark, mouldy, earthy-
  • smelling room, with a high wainscotted partition to screen the clerks
  • from the vulgar gaze, a couple of old wooden chairs, a very loud-ticking
  • clock, an almanac, an umbrella-stand, a row of hat-pegs, and a few
  • shelves, on which were deposited several ticketed bundles of dirty
  • papers, some old deal boxes with paper labels, and sundry decayed stone
  • ink bottles of various shapes and sizes. There was a glass door leading
  • into the passage which formed the entrance to the court, and on the
  • outer side of this glass door, Mr. Pickwick, closely followed by Sam
  • Weller, presented himself on the Friday morning succeeding the
  • occurrence of which a faithful narration is given in the last chapter.
  • ‘Come in, can’t you!’ cried a voice from behind the partition, in reply
  • to Mr. Pickwick’s gentle tap at the door. And Mr. Pickwick and Sam
  • entered accordingly.
  • ‘Mr. Dodson or Mr. Fogg at home, sir?’ inquired Mr. Pickwick, gently,
  • advancing, hat in hand, towards the partition.
  • ‘Mr. Dodson ain’t at home, and Mr. Fogg’s particularly engaged,’ replied
  • the voice; and at the same time the head to which the voice belonged,
  • with a pen behind its ear, looked over the partition, and at Mr.
  • Pickwick.
  • It was a ragged head, the sandy hair of which, scrupulously parted on
  • one side, and flattened down with pomatum, was twisted into little semi-
  • circular tails round a flat face ornamented with a pair of small eyes,
  • and garnished with a very dirty shirt collar, and a rusty black stock.
  • ‘Mr. Dodson ain’t at home, and Mr. Fogg’s particularly engaged,’ said
  • the man to whom the head belonged.
  • ‘When will Mr. Dodson be back, sir?’ inquired Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Can’t say.’
  • ‘Will it be long before Mr. Fogg is disengaged, Sir?’
  • ‘Don’t know.’
  • Here the man proceeded to mend his pen with great deliberation, while
  • another clerk, who was mixing a Seidlitz powder, under cover of the lid
  • of his desk, laughed approvingly.
  • ‘I think I’ll wait,’ said Mr. Pickwick. There was no reply; so Mr.
  • Pickwick sat down unbidden, and listened to the loud ticking of the
  • clock and the murmured conversation of the clerks.
  • ‘That was a game, wasn’t it?’ said one of the gentlemen, in a brown coat
  • and brass buttons, inky drabs, and bluchers, at the conclusion of some
  • inaudible relation of his previous evening’s adventures.
  • ‘Devilish good--devilish good,’ said the Seidlitz-powder man.
  • ‘Tom Cummins was in the chair,’ said the man with the brown coat. ‘It
  • was half-past four when I got to Somers Town, and then I was so uncommon
  • lushy, that I couldn’t find the place where the latch-key went in, and
  • was obliged to knock up the old ‘ooman. I say, I wonder what old Fogg
  • ‘ud say, if he knew it. I should get the sack, I s’pose--eh?’
  • At this humorous notion, all the clerks laughed in concert.
  • ‘There was such a game with Fogg here, this mornin’,’ said the man in
  • the brown coat, ‘while Jack was upstairs sorting the papers, and you two
  • were gone to the stamp-office. Fogg was down here, opening the letters
  • when that chap as we issued the writ against at Camberwell, you know,
  • came in--what’s his name again?’
  • ‘Ramsey,’ said the clerk who had spoken to Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Ah, Ramsey--a precious seedy-looking customer. “Well, sir,” says old
  • Fogg, looking at him very fierce--you know his way--“well, Sir, have you
  • come to settle?” “Yes, I have, sir,” said Ramsey, putting his hand in
  • his pocket, and bringing out the money, “the debt’s two pound ten, and
  • the costs three pound five, and here it is, Sir;” and he sighed like
  • bricks, as he lugged out the money, done up in a bit of blotting-paper.
  • Old Fogg looked first at the money, and then at him, and then he coughed
  • in his rum way, so that I knew something was coming. “You don’t know
  • there’s a declaration filed, which increases the costs materially, I
  • suppose,” said Fogg. “You don’t say that, sir,” said Ramsey, starting
  • back; “the time was only out last night, Sir.” “I do say it, though,”
  • said Fogg, “my clerk’s just gone to file it. Hasn’t Mr. Jackson gone to
  • file that declaration in Bullman and Ramsey, Mr. Wicks?” Of course I
  • said yes, and then Fogg coughed again, and looked at Ramsey. “My God!”
  • said Ramsey; “and here have I nearly driven myself mad, scraping this
  • money together, and all to no purpose.” “None at all,” said Fogg coolly;
  • “so you had better go back and scrape some more together, and bring it
  • here in time.” “I can’t get it, by God!” said Ramsey, striking the desk
  • with his fist. “Don’t bully me, sir,” said Fogg, getting into a passion
  • on purpose. “I am not bullying you, sir,” said Ramsey. “You are,” said
  • Fogg; “get out, sir; get out of this office, Sir, and come back, Sir,
  • when you know how to behave yourself.” Well, Ramsey tried to speak, but
  • Fogg wouldn’t let him, so he put the money in his pocket, and sneaked
  • out. The door was scarcely shut, when old Fogg turned round to me, with
  • a sweet smile on his face, and drew the declaration out of his coat
  • pocket. “Here, Wicks,” says Fogg, “take a cab, and go down to the Temple
  • as quick as you can, and file that. The costs are quite safe, for he’s a
  • steady man with a large family, at a salary of five-and-twenty shillings
  • a week, and if he gives us a warrant of attorney, as he must in the end,
  • I know his employers will see it paid; so we may as well get all we can
  • get out of him, Mr. Wicks; it’s a Christian act to do it, Mr. Wicks, for
  • with his large family and small income, he’ll be all the better for a
  • good lesson against getting into debt--won’t he, Mr. Wicks, won’t he?”--
  • and he smiled so good-naturedly as he went away, that it was delightful
  • to see him. He is a capital man of business,’ said Wicks, in a tone of
  • the deepest admiration, ‘capital, isn’t he?’
  • The other three cordially subscribed to this opinion, and the anecdote
  • afforded the most unlimited satisfaction.
  • ‘Nice men these here, Sir,’ whispered Mr. Weller to his master; ‘wery
  • nice notion of fun they has, Sir.’
  • Mr. Pickwick nodded assent, and coughed to attract the attention of the
  • young gentlemen behind the partition, who, having now relaxed their
  • minds by a little conversation among themselves, condescended to take
  • some notice of the stranger.
  • ‘I wonder whether Fogg’s disengaged now?’ said Jackson.
  • ‘I’ll see,’ said Wicks, dismounting leisurely from his stool. ‘What name
  • shall I tell Mr. Fogg?’
  • ‘Pickwick,’ replied the illustrious subject of these memoirs.
  • Mr. Jackson departed upstairs on his errand, and immediately returned
  • with a message that Mr. Fogg would see Mr. Pickwick in five minutes; and
  • having delivered it, returned again to his desk.
  • ‘What did he say his name was?’ whispered Wicks.
  • ‘Pickwick,’ replied Jackson; ‘it’s the defendant in Bardell and
  • Pickwick.’
  • A sudden scraping of feet, mingled with the sound of suppressed
  • laughter, was heard from behind the partition.
  • ‘They’re a-twiggin’ of you, Sir,’ whispered Mr. Weller.
  • ‘Twigging of me, Sam!’ replied Mr. Pickwick; ‘what do you mean by
  • twigging me?’
  • Mr. Weller replied by pointing with his thumb over his shoulder, and Mr.
  • Pickwick, on looking up, became sensible of the pleasing fact, that all
  • the four clerks, with countenances expressive of the utmost amusement,
  • and with their heads thrust over the wooden screen, were minutely
  • inspecting the figure and general appearance of the supposed trifler
  • with female hearts, and disturber of female happiness. On his looking
  • up, the row of heads suddenly disappeared, and the sound of pens
  • travelling at a furious rate over paper, immediately succeeded.
  • A sudden ring at the bell which hung in the office, summoned Mr. Jackson
  • to the apartment of Fogg, from whence he came back to say that he (Fogg)
  • was ready to see Mr. Pickwick if he would step upstairs.
  • Upstairs Mr. Pickwick did step accordingly, leaving Sam Weller below.
  • The room door of the one-pair back, bore inscribed in legible characters
  • the imposing words, ‘Mr. Fogg’; and, having tapped thereat, and been
  • desired to come in, Jackson ushered Mr. Pickwick into the presence.
  • ‘Is Mr. Dodson in?’ inquired Mr. Fogg.
  • ‘Just come in, Sir,’ replied Jackson.
  • ‘Ask him to step here.’
  • ‘Yes, sir.’ Exit Jackson.
  • ‘Take a seat, sir,’ said Fogg; ‘there is the paper, sir; my partner will
  • be here directly, and we can converse about this matter, sir.’
  • Mr. Pickwick took a seat and the paper, but, instead of reading the
  • latter, peeped over the top of it, and took a survey of the man of
  • business, who was an elderly, pimply-faced, vegetable-diet sort of man,
  • in a black coat, dark mixture trousers, and small black gaiters; a kind
  • of being who seemed to be an essential part of the desk at which he was
  • writing, and to have as much thought or feeling.
  • After a few minutes’ silence, Mr. Dodson, a plump, portly, stern-looking
  • man, with a loud voice, appeared; and the conversation commenced.
  • ‘This is Mr. Pickwick,’ said Fogg.
  • ‘Ah! You are the defendant, Sir, in Bardell and Pickwick?’ said Dodson.
  • ‘I am, sir,’ replied Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Well, sir,’ said Dodson, ‘and what do you propose?’
  • ‘Ah!’ said Fogg, thrusting his hands into his trousers’ pockets, and
  • throwing himself back in his chair, ‘what do you propose, Mr Pickwick?’
  • ‘Hush, Fogg,’ said Dodson, ‘let me hear what Mr. Pickwick has to say.’
  • ‘I came, gentlemen,’ said Mr. Pickwick, gazing placidly on the two
  • partners, ‘I came here, gentlemen, to express the surprise with which I
  • received your letter of the other day, and to inquire what grounds of
  • action you can have against me.’
  • ‘Grounds of--’ Fogg had ejaculated this much, when he was stopped by
  • Dodson.
  • ‘Mr. Fogg,’ said Dodson, ‘I am going to speak.’
  • I beg your pardon, Mr. Dodson,’ said Fogg.
  • ‘For the grounds of action, sir,’ continued Dodson, with moral elevation
  • in his air, ‘you will consult your own conscience and your own feelings.
  • We, Sir, we, are guided entirely by the statement of our client. That
  • statement, Sir, may be true, or it may be false; it may be credible, or
  • it may be incredible; but, if it be true, and if it be credible, I do
  • not hesitate to say, Sir, that our grounds of action, Sir, are strong,
  • and not to be shaken. You may be an unfortunate man, Sir, or you may be
  • a designing one; but if I were called upon, as a juryman upon my oath,
  • Sir, to express an opinion of your conduct, Sir, I do not hesitate to
  • assert that I should have but one opinion about it.’ Here Dodson drew
  • himself up, with an air of offended virtue, and looked at Fogg, who
  • thrust his hands farther in his pockets, and nodding his head sagely,
  • said, in a tone of the fullest concurrence, ‘Most certainly.’
  • ‘Well, Sir,’ said Mr. Pickwick, with considerable pain depicted in his
  • countenance, ‘you will permit me to assure you that I am a most
  • unfortunate man, so far as this case is concerned.’
  • ‘I hope you are, Sir,’ replied Dodson; ‘I trust you may be, Sir. If you
  • are really innocent of what is laid to your charge, you are more
  • unfortunate than I had believed any man could possibly be. What do you
  • say, Mr. Fogg?’
  • ‘I say precisely what you say,’ replied Fogg, with a smile of
  • incredulity.
  • ‘The writ, Sir, which commences the action,’ continued Dodson, ‘was
  • issued regularly. Mr. Fogg, where is the _Praecipe _book?’
  • ‘Here it is,’ said Fogg, handing over a square book, with a parchment
  • cover.
  • ‘Here is the entry,’ resumed Dodson. ‘“Middlesex, Capias MARTHA BARDELL,
  • WIDOW, v. SAMUEL PICKWICK. Damages £1500. Dodson & Fogg for the
  • plaintiff, Aug. 28, 1827.” All regular, Sir; perfectly.’ Dodson coughed
  • and looked at Fogg, who said ‘Perfectly,’ also. And then they both
  • looked at Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘I am to understand, then,’ said Mr. Pickwick, ‘that it really is your
  • intention to proceed with this action?’
  • ‘Understand, sir!--that you certainly may,’ replied Dodson, with
  • something as near a smile as his importance would allow.
  • ‘And that the damages are actually laid at fifteen hundred pounds?’ said
  • Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘To which understanding you may add my assurance, that if we could have
  • prevailed upon our client, they would have been laid at treble the
  • amount, sir,’ replied Dodson.
  • ‘I believe Mrs. Bardell specially said, however,’ observed Fogg,
  • glancing at Dodson, ‘that she would not compromise for a farthing less.’
  • ‘Unquestionably,’ replied Dodson sternly. For the action was only just
  • begun; and it wouldn’t have done to let Mr. Pickwick compromise it then,
  • even if he had been so disposed.
  • ‘As you offer no terms, sir,’ said Dodson, displaying a slip of
  • parchment in his right hand, and affectionately pressing a paper copy of
  • it, on Mr. Pickwick with his left, ‘I had better serve you with a copy
  • of this writ, sir. Here is the original, sir.’
  • ‘Very well, gentlemen, very well,’ said Mr. Pickwick, rising in person
  • and wrath at the same time; ‘you shall hear from my solicitor,
  • gentlemen.’
  • ‘We shall be very happy to do so,’ said Fogg, rubbing his hands.
  • ‘Very,’ said Dodson, opening the door.
  • ‘And before I go, gentlemen,’ said the excited Mr. Pickwick, turning
  • round on the landing, ‘permit me to say, that of all the disgraceful and
  • rascally proceedings--’
  • ‘Stay, sir, stay,’ interposed Dodson, with great politeness. ‘Mr.
  • Jackson! Mr. Wicks!’
  • ‘Sir,’ said the two clerks, appearing at the bottom of the stairs.
  • ‘I merely want you to hear what this gentleman says,’ replied Dodson.
  • ‘Pray, go on, sir--disgraceful and rascally proceedings, I think you
  • said?’
  • ‘I did,’ said Mr. Pickwick, thoroughly roused. ‘I said, Sir, that of all
  • the disgraceful and rascally proceedings that ever were attempted, this
  • is the most so. I repeat it, sir.’
  • ‘You hear that, Mr. Wicks,’ said Dodson.
  • ‘You won’t forget these expressions, Mr. Jackson?’ said Fogg.
  • ‘Perhaps you would like to call us swindlers, sir,’ said Dodson. ‘Pray
  • do, Sir, if you feel disposed; now pray do, Sir.’
  • ‘I do,’ said Mr. Pickwick. ‘You _are _swindlers.’
  • ‘Very good,’ said Dodson. ‘You can hear down there, I hope, Mr. Wicks?’
  • ‘Oh, yes, Sir,’ said Wicks.
  • ‘You had better come up a step or two higher, if you can’t,’ added Mr.
  • Fogg. ‘Go on, Sir; do go on. You had better call us thieves, Sir; or
  • perhaps You would like to assault one of _us_. Pray do it, Sir, if you
  • would; we will not make the smallest resistance. Pray do it, Sir.’
  • As Fogg put himself very temptingly within the reach of Mr. Pickwick’s
  • clenched fist, there is little doubt that that gentleman would have
  • complied with his earnest entreaty, but for the interposition of Sam,
  • who, hearing the dispute, emerged from the office, mounted the stairs,
  • and seized his master by the arm.
  • ‘You just come away,’ said Mr. Weller. ‘Battledore and shuttlecock’s a
  • wery good game, vhen you ain’t the shuttlecock and two lawyers the
  • battledores, in which case it gets too excitin’ to be pleasant. Come
  • avay, Sir. If you want to ease your mind by blowing up somebody, come
  • out into the court and blow up me; but it’s rayther too expensive work
  • to be carried on here.’
  • And without the slightest ceremony, Mr. Weller hauled his master down
  • the stairs, and down the court, and having safely deposited him in
  • Cornhill, fell behind, prepared to follow whithersoever he should lead.
  • Mr. Pickwick walked on abstractedly, crossed opposite the Mansion House,
  • and bent his steps up Cheapside. Sam began to wonder where they were
  • going, when his master turned round, and said--
  • ‘Sam, I will go immediately to Mr. Perker’s.’
  • ‘That’s just exactly the wery place vere you ought to have gone last
  • night, Sir,’ replied Mr. Weller.
  • ‘I think it is, Sam,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘I _know _it is,’ said Mr. Weller.
  • ‘Well, well, Sam,’ replied Mr. Pickwick, ‘we will go there at once; but
  • first, as I have been rather ruffled, I should like a glass of brandy-
  • and-water warm, Sam. Where can I have it, Sam?’
  • Mr. Weller’s knowledge of London was extensive and peculiar. He replied,
  • without the slightest consideration--
  • ‘Second court on the right hand side--last house but vun on the same
  • side the vay--take the box as stands in the first fireplace, ‘cos there
  • ain’t no leg in the middle o’ the table, which all the others has, and
  • it’s wery inconvenient.’
  • Mr. Pickwick observed his valet’s directions implicitly, and bidding Sam
  • follow him, entered the tavern he had pointed out, where the hot brandy-
  • and-water was speedily placed before him; while Mr. Weller, seated at a
  • respectful distance, though at the same table with his master, was
  • accommodated with a pint of porter.
  • The room was one of a very homely description, and was apparently under
  • the especial patronage of stage-coachmen; for several gentleman, who had
  • all the appearance of belonging to that learned profession, were
  • drinking and smoking in the different boxes. Among the number was one
  • stout, red-faced, elderly man, in particular, seated in an opposite box,
  • who attracted Mr. Pickwick’s attention. The stout man was smoking with
  • great vehemence, but between every half-dozen puffs, he took his pipe
  • from his mouth, and looked first at Mr. Weller and then at Mr. Pickwick.
  • Then, he would bury in a quart pot, as much of his countenance as the
  • dimensions of the quart pot admitted of its receiving, and take another
  • look at Sam and Mr. Pickwick. Then he would take another half-dozen
  • puffs with an air of profound meditation and look at them again. At last
  • the stout man, putting up his legs on the seat, and leaning his back
  • against the wall, began to puff at his pipe without leaving off at all,
  • and to stare through the smoke at the new-comers, as if he had made up
  • his mind to see the most he could of them.
  • At first the evolutions of the stout man had escaped Mr. Weller’s
  • observation, but by degrees, as he saw Mr. Pickwick’s eyes every now and
  • then turning towards him, he began to gaze in the same direction, at the
  • same time shading his eyes with his hand, as if he partially recognised
  • the object before him, and wished to make quite sure of its identity.
  • His doubts were speedily dispelled, however; for the stout man having
  • blown a thick cloud from his pipe, a hoarse voice, like some strange
  • effort of ventriloquism, emerged from beneath the capacious shawls which
  • muffled his throat and chest, and slowly uttered these sounds--‘Wy,
  • Sammy!’
  • ‘Who’s that, Sam?’ inquired Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Why, I wouldn’t ha’ believed it, Sir,’ replied Mr. Weller, with
  • astonished eyes. ‘It’s the old ‘un.’
  • ‘Old one,’ said Mr. Pickwick. ‘What old one?’
  • ‘My father, sir,’ replied Mr. Weller. ‘How are you, my ancient?’ And
  • with this beautiful ebullition of filial affection, Mr. Weller made room
  • on the seat beside him, for the stout man, who advanced pipe in mouth
  • and pot in hand, to greet him.
  • ‘Wy, Sammy,’ said the father, ‘I ha’n’t seen you, for two year and
  • better.’
  • ‘Nor more you have, old codger,’ replied the son. ‘How’s mother-in-law?’
  • ‘Wy, I’ll tell you what, Sammy,’ said Mr. Weller, senior, with much
  • solemnity in his manner; ‘there never was a nicer woman as a widder,
  • than that ‘ere second wentur o’ mine--a sweet creetur she was, Sammy;
  • all I can say on her now, is, that as she was such an uncommon pleasant
  • widder, it’s a great pity she ever changed her condition. She don’t act
  • as a vife, Sammy.’
  • Don’t she, though?’ inquired Mr. Weller, junior.
  • The elder Mr. Weller shook his head, as he replied with a sigh, ‘I’ve
  • done it once too often, Sammy; I’ve done it once too often. Take example
  • by your father, my boy, and be wery careful o’ widders all your life,
  • ‘specially if they’ve kept a public-house, Sammy.’ Having delivered this
  • parental advice with great pathos, Mr. Weller, senior, refilled his pipe
  • from a tin box he carried in his pocket; and, lighting his fresh pipe
  • from the ashes of the old One, commenced smoking at a great rate.
  • ‘Beg your pardon, sir,’ he said, renewing the subject, and addressing
  • Mr. Pickwick, after a considerable pause, ‘nothin’ personal, I hope,
  • sir; I hope you ha’n’t got a widder, sir.’
  • ‘Not I,’ replied Mr. Pickwick, laughing; and while Mr. Pickwick laughed,
  • Sam Weller informed his parent in a whisper, of the relation in which he
  • stood towards that gentleman.
  • ‘Beg your pardon, sir,’ said Mr. Weller, senior, taking off his hat, ‘I
  • hope you’ve no fault to find with Sammy, Sir?’
  • ‘None whatever,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Wery glad to hear it, sir,’ replied the old man; ‘I took a good deal o’
  • pains with his eddication, sir; let him run in the streets when he was
  • wery young, and shift for hisself. It’s the only way to make a boy
  • sharp, sir.’
  • ‘Rather a dangerous process, I should imagine,’ said Mr. Pickwick, with
  • a smile.
  • ‘And not a wery sure one, neither,’ added Mr. Weller; ‘I got reg’larly
  • done the other day.’
  • ‘No!’ said his father.
  • ‘I did,’ said the son; and he proceeded to relate, in as few words as
  • possible, how he had fallen a ready dupe to the stratagems of Job
  • Trotter.
  • Mr. Weller, senior, listened to the tale with the most profound
  • attention, and, at its termination, said--
  • ‘Worn’t one o’ these chaps slim and tall, with long hair, and the gift
  • o’ the gab wery gallopin’?’
  • Mr. Pickwick did not quite understand the last item of description, but,
  • comprehending the first, said ‘Yes,’ at a venture.
  • ‘T’ other’s a black-haired chap in mulberry livery, with a wery large
  • head?’
  • ‘Yes, yes, he is,’ said Mr. Pickwick and Sam, with great earnestness.
  • ‘Then I know where they are, and that’s all about it,’ said Mr. Weller;
  • ‘they’re at Ipswich, safe enough, them two.’
  • ‘No!’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Fact,’ said Mr. Weller, ‘and I’ll tell you how I know it. I work an
  • Ipswich coach now and then for a friend o’ mine. I worked down the wery
  • day arter the night as you caught the rheumatic, and at the Black Boy at
  • Chelmsford--the wery place they’d come to--I took ‘em up, right through
  • to Ipswich, where the man-servant--him in the mulberries--told me they
  • was a-goin’ to put up for a long time.’
  • ‘I’ll follow him,’ said Mr. Pickwick; ‘we may as well see Ipswich as any
  • other place. I’ll follow him.’
  • ‘You’re quite certain it was them, governor?’ inquired Mr. Weller,
  • junior.
  • ‘Quite, Sammy, quite,’ replied his father, ‘for their appearance is wery
  • sing’ler; besides that ‘ere, I wondered to see the gen’l’m’n so
  • formiliar with his servant; and, more than that, as they sat in the
  • front, right behind the box, I heerd ‘em laughing and saying how they’d
  • done old Fireworks.’
  • ‘Old who?’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Old Fireworks, Sir; by which, I’ve no doubt, they meant you, Sir.’
  • There is nothing positively vile or atrocious in the appellation of ‘old
  • Fireworks,’ but still it is by no means a respectful or flattering
  • designation. The recollection of all the wrongs he had sustained at
  • Jingle’s hands, had crowded on Mr. Pickwick’s mind, the moment Mr.
  • Weller began to speak; it wanted but a feather to turn the scale, and
  • ‘old Fireworks’ did it.
  • ‘I’ll follow him,’ said Mr. Pickwick, with an emphatic blow on the
  • table.
  • ‘I shall work down to Ipswich the day arter to-morrow, Sir,’ said Mr.
  • Weller the elder, ‘from the Bull in Whitechapel; and if you really mean
  • to go, you’d better go with me.’
  • ‘So we had,’ said Mr. Pickwick; ‘very true; I can write to Bury, and
  • tell them to meet me at Ipswich. We will go with you. But don’t hurry
  • away, Mr. Weller; won’t you take anything?’
  • ‘You’re wery good, Sir,’ replied Mr. W., stopping short;--‘perhaps a
  • small glass of brandy to drink your health, and success to Sammy, Sir,
  • wouldn’t be amiss.’
  • ‘Certainly not,’ replied Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘A glass of brandy here!’ The brandy was brought; and Mr. Weller, after
  • pulling his hair to Mr. Pickwick, and nodding to Sam, jerked it down his
  • capacious throat as if it had been a small thimbleful.
  • ‘Well done, father,’ said Sam, ‘take care, old fellow, or you’ll have a
  • touch of your old complaint, the gout.’
  • ‘I’ve found a sov’rin’ cure for that, Sammy,’ said Mr. Weller, setting
  • down the glass.
  • ‘A sovereign cure for the gout,’ said Mr. Pickwick, hastily producing
  • his note-book--‘what is it?’
  • ‘The gout, Sir,’ replied Mr. Weller, ‘the gout is a complaint as arises
  • from too much ease and comfort. If ever you’re attacked with the gout,
  • sir, jist you marry a widder as has got a good loud woice, with a decent
  • notion of usin’ it, and you’ll never have the gout agin. It’s a capital
  • prescription, sir. I takes it reg’lar, and I can warrant it to drive
  • away any illness as is caused by too much jollity.’ Having imparted this
  • valuable secret, Mr. Weller drained his glass once more, produced a
  • laboured wink, sighed deeply, and slowly retired.
  • ‘Well, what do you think of what your father says, Sam?’ inquired Mr.
  • Pickwick, with a smile.
  • ‘Think, Sir!’ replied Mr. Weller; ‘why, I think he’s the wictim o’
  • connubiality, as Blue Beard’s domestic chaplain said, vith a tear of
  • pity, ven he buried him.’
  • There was no replying to this very apposite conclusion, and, therefore,
  • Mr. Pickwick, after settling the reckoning, resumed his walk to Gray’s
  • Inn. By the time he reached its secluded groves, however, eight o’clock
  • had struck, and the unbroken stream of gentlemen in muddy high-lows,
  • soiled white hats, and rusty apparel, who were pouring towards the
  • different avenues of egress, warned him that the majority of the offices
  • had closed for that day.
  • After climbing two pairs of steep and dirty stairs, he found his
  • anticipations were realised. Mr. Perker’s ‘outer door’ was closed; and
  • the dead silence which followed Mr. Weller’s repeated kicks thereat,
  • announced that the officials had retired from business for the night.
  • ‘This is pleasant, Sam,’ said Mr. Pickwick; ‘I shouldn’t lose an hour in
  • seeing him; I shall not be able to get one wink of sleep to-night, I
  • know, unless I have the satisfaction of reflecting that I have confided
  • this matter to a professional man.’
  • ‘Here’s an old ‘ooman comin’ upstairs, sir,’ replied Mr. Weller; ‘p’raps
  • she knows where we can find somebody. Hollo, old lady, vere’s Mr.
  • Perker’s people?’
  • ‘Mr. Perker’s people,’ said a thin, miserable-looking old woman,
  • stopping to recover breath after the ascent of the staircase--‘Mr.
  • Perker’s people’s gone, and I’m a-goin’ to do the office out.’
  • Are you Mr. Perker’s servant?’ inquired Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘I am Mr. Perker’s laundress,’ replied the woman.
  • ‘Ah,’ said Mr. Pickwick, half aside to Sam, ‘it’s a curious
  • circumstance, Sam, that they call the old women in these inns,
  • laundresses. I wonder what’s that for?’
  • ‘’Cos they has a mortal awersion to washing anythin’, I suppose, Sir,’
  • replied Mr. Weller.
  • ‘I shouldn’t wonder,’ said Mr. Pickwick, looking at the old woman, whose
  • appearance, as well as the condition of the office, which she had by
  • this time opened, indicated a rooted antipathy to the application of
  • soap and water; ‘do you know where I can find Mr. Perker, my good
  • woman?’
  • ‘No, I don’t,’ replied the old woman gruffly; ‘he’s out o’ town now.’
  • ‘That’s unfortunate,’ said Mr. Pickwick; ‘where’s his clerk? Do you
  • know?’
  • ‘Yes, I know where he is, but he won’t thank me for telling you,’
  • replied the laundress.
  • ‘I have very particular business with him,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Won’t it do in the morning?’ said the woman.
  • ‘Not so well,’ replied Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Well,’ said the old woman, ‘if it was anything very particular, I was
  • to say where he was, so I suppose there’s no harm in telling. If you
  • just go to the Magpie and Stump, and ask at the bar for Mr. Lowten,
  • they’ll show you in to him, and he’s Mr. Perker’s clerk.’
  • With this direction, and having been furthermore informed that the
  • hostelry in question was situated in a court, happy in the double
  • advantage of being in the vicinity of Clare Market, and closely
  • approximating to the back of New Inn, Mr. Pickwick and Sam descended the
  • rickety staircase in safety, and issued forth in quest of the Magpie and
  • Stump.
  • This favoured tavern, sacred to the evening orgies of Mr. Lowten and his
  • companions, was what ordinary people would designate a public-house.
  • That the landlord was a man of money-making turn was sufficiently
  • testified by the fact of a small bulkhead beneath the tap-room window,
  • in size and shape not unlike a sedan-chair, being underlet to a mender
  • of shoes: and that he was a being of a philanthropic mind was evident
  • from the protection he afforded to a pieman, who vended his delicacies
  • without fear of interruption, on the very door-step. In the lower
  • windows, which were decorated with curtains of a saffron hue, dangled
  • two or three printed cards, bearing reference to Devonshire cider and
  • Dantzic spruce, while a large blackboard, announcing in white letters to
  • an enlightened public, that there were 500,000 barrels of double stout
  • in the cellars of the establishment, left the mind in a state of not
  • unpleasing doubt and uncertainty as to the precise direction in the
  • bowels of the earth, in which this mighty cavern might be supposed to
  • extend. When we add that the weather-beaten signboard bore the half-
  • obliterated semblance of a magpie intently eyeing a crooked streak of
  • brown paint, which the neighbours had been taught from infancy to
  • consider as the ‘stump,’ we have said all that need be said of the
  • exterior of the edifice.
  • On Mr. Pickwick’s presenting himself at the bar, an elderly female
  • emerged from behind the screen therein, and presented herself before
  • him.
  • ‘Is Mr. Lowten here, ma’am?’ inquired Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Yes, he is, Sir,’ replied the landlady. ‘Here, Charley, show the
  • gentleman in to Mr. Lowten.’
  • ‘The gen’l’m’n can’t go in just now,’ said a shambling pot-boy, with a
  • red head, ‘cos’ Mr. Lowten’s a-singin’ a comic song, and he’ll put him
  • out. He’ll be done directly, Sir.’
  • The red-headed pot-boy had scarcely finished speaking, when a most
  • unanimous hammering of tables, and jingling of glasses, announced that
  • the song had that instant terminated; and Mr. Pickwick, after desiring
  • Sam to solace himself in the tap, suffered himself to be conducted into
  • the presence of Mr. Lowten.
  • At the announcement of ‘A gentleman to speak to you, Sir,’ a puffy-faced
  • young man, who filled the chair at the head of the table, looked with
  • some surprise in the direction from whence the voice proceeded; and the
  • surprise seemed to be by no means diminished, when his eyes rested on an
  • individual whom he had never seen before.
  • ‘I beg your pardon, Sir,’ said Mr. Pickwick, ‘and I am very sorry to
  • disturb the other gentlemen, too, but I come on very particular
  • business; and if you will suffer me to detain you at this end of the
  • room for five minutes, I shall be very much obliged to you.’
  • The puffy-faced young man rose, and drawing a chair close to Mr.
  • Pickwick in an obscure corner of the room, listened attentively to his
  • tale of woe.
  • ‘Ah,’ he said, when Mr. Pickwick had concluded, ‘Dodson and Fogg--sharp
  • practice theirs--capital men of business, Dodson and Fogg, sir.’
  • Mr. Pickwick admitted the sharp practice of Dodson and Fogg, and Lowten
  • resumed.
  • ‘Perker ain’t in town, and he won’t be, neither, before the end of next
  • week; but if you want the action defended, and will leave the copy with
  • me, I can do all that’s needful till he comes back.’
  • ‘That’s exactly what I came here for,’ said Mr. Pickwick, handing over
  • the document. ‘If anything particular occurs, you can write to me at the
  • post-office, Ipswich.’
  • ‘That’s all right,’ replied Mr. Perker’s clerk; and then seeing Mr.
  • Pickwick’s eye wandering curiously towards the table, he added, ‘will
  • you join us, for half an hour or so? We are capital company here to-
  • night. There’s Samkin and Green’s managing-clerk, and Smithers and
  • Price’s chancery, and Pimkin and Thomas’s out o’ doors--sings a capital
  • song, he does--and Jack Bamber, and ever so many more. You’re come out
  • of the country, I suppose. Would you like to join us?’
  • Mr. Pickwick could not resist so tempting an opportunity of studying
  • human nature. He suffered himself to be led to the table, where, after
  • having been introduced to the company in due form, he was accommodated
  • with a seat near the chairman and called for a glass of his favourite
  • beverage.
  • A profound silence, quite contrary to Mr. Pickwick’s expectation,
  • succeeded.
  • ‘You don’t find this sort of thing disagreeable, I hope, sir?’ said his
  • right hand neighbour, a gentleman in a checked shirt and Mosaic studs,
  • with a cigar in his mouth.
  • ‘Not in the least,’ replied Mr. Pickwick; ‘I like it very much, although
  • I am no smoker myself.’
  • ‘I should be very sorry to say I wasn’t,’ interposed another gentleman
  • on the opposite side of the table. ‘It’s board and lodgings to me, is
  • smoke.’
  • Mr. Pickwick glanced at the speaker, and thought that if it were washing
  • too, it would be all the better.
  • Here there was another pause. Mr. Pickwick was a stranger, and his
  • coming had evidently cast a damp upon the party.
  • ‘Mr. Grundy’s going to oblige the company with a song,’ said the
  • chairman.
  • ‘No, he ain’t,’ said Mr. Grundy.
  • ‘Why not?’ said the chairman.
  • ‘Because he can’t,’ said Mr. Grundy.
  • ‘You had better say he won’t,’ replied the chairman.
  • ‘Well, then, he won’t,’ retorted Mr. Grundy. Mr. Grundy’s positive
  • refusal to gratify the company occasioned another silence.
  • ‘Won’t anybody enliven us?’ said the chairman, despondingly.
  • ‘Why don’t you enliven us yourself, Mr. Chairman?’ said a young man with
  • a whisker, a squint, and an open shirt collar (dirty), from the bottom
  • of the table.
  • ‘Hear! hear!’ said the smoking gentleman, in the Mosaic jewellery.
  • ‘Because I only know one song, and I have sung it already, and it’s a
  • fine of “glasses round” to sing the same song twice in a night,’ replied
  • the chairman.
  • This was an unanswerable reply, and silence prevailed again.
  • ‘I have been to-night, gentlemen,’ said Mr. Pickwick, hoping to start a
  • subject which all the company could take a part in discussing, ‘I have
  • been to-night, in a place which you all know very well, doubtless, but
  • which I have not been in for some years, and know very little of; I mean
  • Gray’s Inn, gentlemen. Curious little nooks in a great place, like
  • London, these old inns are.’
  • ‘By Jove!’ said the chairman, whispering across the table to Mr.
  • Pickwick, ‘you have hit upon something that one of us, at least, would
  • talk upon for ever. You’ll draw old Jack Bamber out; he was never heard
  • to talk about anything else but the inns, and he has lived alone in them
  • till he’s half crazy.’
  • The individual to whom Lowten alluded, was a little, yellow, high-
  • shouldered man, whose countenance, from his habit of stooping forward
  • when silent, Mr. Pickwick had not observed before. He wondered, though,
  • when the old man raised his shrivelled face, and bent his gray eye upon
  • him, with a keen inquiring look, that such remarkable features could
  • have escaped his attention for a moment. There was a fixed grim smile
  • perpetually on his countenance; he leaned his chin on a long, skinny
  • hand, with nails of extraordinary length; and as he inclined his head to
  • one side, and looked keenly out from beneath his ragged gray eyebrows,
  • there was a strange, wild slyness in his leer, quite repulsive to
  • behold.
  • This was the figure that now started forward, and burst into an animated
  • torrent of words. As this chapter has been a long one, however, and as
  • the old man was a remarkable personage, it will be more respectful to
  • him, and more convenient to us, to let him speak for himself in a fresh
  • one.
  • CHAPTER XXI. IN WHICH THE OLD MAN LAUNCHES FORTH INTO HIS FAVOURITE
  • THEME, AND RELATES A STORY ABOUT A QUEER CLIENT
  • ‘Aha!’ said the old man, a brief description of whose manner and
  • appearance concluded the last chapter, ‘aha! who was talking about the
  • inns?’
  • ‘I was, Sir,’ replied Mr. Pickwick--‘I was observing what singular old
  • places they are.’
  • ‘_You_!’ said the old man contemptuously. ‘What do _you _know of the
  • time when young men shut themselves up in those lonely rooms, and read
  • and read, hour after hour, and night after night, till their reason
  • wandered beneath their midnight studies; till their mental powers were
  • exhausted; till morning’s light brought no freshness or health to them;
  • and they sank beneath the unnatural devotion of their youthful energies
  • to their dry old books? Coming down to a later time, and a very
  • different day, what do _you_ know of the gradual sinking beneath
  • consumption, or the quick wasting of fever--the grand results of “life”
  • and dissipation--which men have undergone in these same rooms? How many
  • vain pleaders for mercy, do you think, have turned away heart-sick from
  • the lawyer’s office, to find a resting-place in the Thames, or a refuge
  • in the jail? They are no ordinary houses, those. There is not a panel in
  • the old wainscotting, but what, if it were endowed with the powers of
  • speech and memory, could start from the wall, and tell its tale of
  • horror--the romance of life, Sir, the romance of life! Common-place as
  • they may seem now, I tell you they are strange old places, and I would
  • rather hear many a legend with a terrific-sounding name, than the true
  • history of one old set of chambers.’
  • There was something so odd in the old man’s sudden energy, and the
  • subject which had called it forth, that Mr. Pickwick was prepared with
  • no observation in reply; and the old man checking his impetuosity, and
  • resuming the leer, which had disappeared during his previous excitement,
  • said--
  • ‘Look at them in another light--their most common-place and least
  • romantic. What fine places of slow torture they are! Think of the needy
  • man who has spent his all, beggared himself, and pinched his friends, to
  • enter the profession, which is destined never to yield him a morsel of
  • bread. The waiting--the hope--the disappointment--the fear--the misery--
  • the poverty--the blight on his hopes, and end to his career--the suicide
  • perhaps, or the shabby, slipshod drunkard. Am I not right about them?’
  • And the old man rubbed his hands, and leered as if in delight at having
  • found another point of view in which to place his favourite subject.
  • Mr. Pickwick eyed the old man with great curiosity, and the remainder of
  • the company smiled, and looked on in silence.
  • ‘Talk of your German universities,’ said the little old man. ‘Pooh,
  • pooh! there’s romance enough at home without going half a mile for it;
  • only people never think of it.’
  • ‘I never thought of the romance of this particular subject before,
  • certainly,’ said Mr. Pickwick, laughing.
  • ‘To be sure you didn’t,’ said the little old man; ‘of course not. As a
  • friend of mine used to say to me, “What is there in chambers in
  • particular?” “Queer old places,” said I. “Not at all,” said he.
  • “Lonely,” said I. “Not a bit of it,” said he. He died one morning of
  • apoplexy, as he was going to open his outer door. Fell with his head in
  • his own letter-box, and there he lay for eighteen months. Everybody
  • thought he’d gone out of town.’
  • ‘And how was he found out at last?’ inquired Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘The benchers determined to have his door broken open, as he hadn’t paid
  • any rent for two years. So they did. Forced the lock; and a very dusty
  • skeleton in a blue coat, black knee-shorts, and silks, fell forward in
  • the arms of the porter who opened the door. Queer, that. Rather,
  • perhaps; rather, eh?’ The little old man put his head more on one side,
  • and rubbed his hands with unspeakable glee.
  • ‘I know another case,’ said the little old man, when his chuckles had in
  • some degree subsided. ‘It occurred in Clifford’s Inn. Tenant of a top
  • set--bad character--shut himself up in his bedroom closet, and took a
  • dose of arsenic. The steward thought he had run away: opened the door,
  • and put a bill up. Another man came, took the chambers, furnished them,
  • and went to live there. Somehow or other he couldn’t sleep--always
  • restless and uncomfortable. “Odd,” says he. “I’ll make the other room my
  • bedchamber, and this my sitting-room.” He made the change, and slept
  • very well at night, but suddenly found that, somehow, he couldn’t read
  • in the evening: he got nervous and uncomfortable, and used to be always
  • snuffing his candles and staring about him. “I can’t make this out,”
  • said he, when he came home from the play one night, and was drinking a
  • glass of cold grog, with his back to the wall, in order that he mightn’t
  • be able to fancy there was any one behind him--“I can’t make it out,”
  • said he; and just then his eyes rested on the little closet that had
  • been always locked up, and a shudder ran through his whole frame from
  • top to toe. “I have felt this strange feeling before,” said he, “I
  • cannot help thinking there’s something wrong about that closet.” He made
  • a strong effort, plucked up his courage, shivered the lock with a blow
  • or two of the poker, opened the door, and there, sure enough, standing
  • bolt upright in the corner, was the last tenant, with a little bottle
  • clasped firmly in his hand, and his face--well!’ As the little old man
  • concluded, he looked round on the attentive faces of his wondering
  • auditory with a smile of grim delight.
  • ‘What strange things these are you tell us of, Sir,’ said Mr. Pickwick,
  • minutely scanning the old man’s countenance, by the aid of his glasses.
  • ‘Strange!’ said the little old man. ‘Nonsense; you think them strange,
  • because you know nothing about it. They are funny, but not uncommon.’
  • ‘Funny!’ exclaimed Mr. Pickwick involuntarily.
  • ‘Yes, funny, are they not?’ replied the little old man, with a
  • diabolical leer; and then, without pausing for an answer, he continued--
  • ‘I knew another man--let me see--forty years ago now--who took an old,
  • damp, rotten set of chambers, in one of the most ancient inns, that had
  • been shut up and empty for years and years before. There were lots of
  • old women’s stories about the place, and it certainly was very far from
  • being a cheerful one; but he was poor, and the rooms were cheap, and
  • that would have been quite a sufficient reason for him, if they had been
  • ten times worse than they really were. He was obliged to take some
  • mouldering fixtures that were on the place, and, among the rest, was a
  • great lumbering wooden press for papers, with large glass doors, and a
  • green curtain inside; a pretty useless thing for him, for he had no
  • papers to put in it; and as to his clothes, he carried them about with
  • him, and that wasn’t very hard work, either. Well, he had moved in all
  • his furniture--it wasn’t quite a truck-full--and had sprinkled it about
  • the room, so as to make the four chairs look as much like a dozen as
  • possible, and was sitting down before the fire at night, drinking the
  • first glass of two gallons of whisky he had ordered on credit, wondering
  • whether it would ever be paid for, and if so, in how many years’ time,
  • when his eyes encountered the glass doors of the wooden press. “Ah,”
  • says he, “if I hadn’t been obliged to take that ugly article at the old
  • broker’s valuation, I might have got something comfortable for the
  • money. I’ll tell you what it is, old fellow,” he said, speaking aloud to
  • the press, having nothing else to speak to, “if it wouldn’t cost more to
  • break up your old carcass, than it would ever be worth afterward, I’d
  • have a fire out of you in less than no time.” He had hardly spoken the
  • words, when a sound resembling a faint groan, appeared to issue from the
  • interior of the case. It startled him at first, but thinking, on a
  • moment’s reflection, that it must be some young fellow in the next
  • chamber, who had been dining out, he put his feet on the fender, and
  • raised the poker to stir the fire. At that moment, the sound was
  • repeated; and one of the glass doors slowly opening, disclosed a pale
  • and emaciated figure in soiled and worn apparel, standing erect in the
  • press. The figure was tall and thin, and the countenance expressive of
  • care and anxiety; but there was something in the hue of the skin, and
  • gaunt and unearthly appearance of the whole form, which no being of this
  • world was ever seen to wear. “Who are you?” said the new tenant, turning
  • very pale; poising the poker in his hand, however, and taking a very
  • decent aim at the countenance of the figure. “Who are you?” “Don’t throw
  • that poker at me,” replied the form; “if you hurled it with ever so sure
  • an aim, it would pass through me, without resistance, and expend its
  • force on the wood behind. I am a spirit.” “And pray, what do you want
  • here?” faltered the tenant. “In this room,” replied the apparition, “my
  • worldly ruin was worked, and I and my children beggared. In this press,
  • the papers in a long, long suit, which accumulated for years, were
  • deposited. In this room, when I had died of grief, and long-deferred
  • hope, two wily harpies divided the wealth for which I had contested
  • during a wretched existence, and of which, at last, not one farthing was
  • left for my unhappy descendants. I terrified them from the spot, and
  • since that day have prowled by night--the only period at which I can
  • revisit the earth--about the scenes of my long-protracted misery. This
  • apartment is mine: leave it to me.” “If you insist upon making your
  • appearance here,” said the tenant, who had had time to collect his
  • presence of mind during this prosy statement of the ghost’s, “I shall
  • give up possession with the greatest pleasure; but I should like to ask
  • you one question, if you will allow me.” “Say on,” said the apparition
  • sternly. “Well,” said the tenant, “I don’t apply the observation
  • personally to you, because it is equally applicable to most of the
  • ghosts I ever heard of; but it does appear to me somewhat inconsistent,
  • that when you have an opportunity of visiting the fairest spots of
  • earth--for I suppose space is nothing to you--you should always return
  • exactly to the very places where you have been most miserable.” “Egad,
  • that’s very true; I never thought of that before,” said the ghost. “You
  • see, Sir,” pursued the tenant, “this is a very uncomfortable room. From
  • the appearance of that press, I should be disposed to say that it is not
  • wholly free from bugs; and I really think you might find much more
  • comfortable quarters: to say nothing of the climate of London, which is
  • extremely disagreeable.” “You are very right, Sir,” said the ghost
  • politely, “it never struck me till now; I’ll try change of air
  • directly”--and, in fact, he began to vanish as he spoke; his legs,
  • indeed, had quite disappeared. “And if, Sir,” said the tenant, calling
  • after him, “if you _would _have the goodness to suggest to the other
  • ladies and gentlemen who are now engaged in haunting old empty houses,
  • that they might be much more comfortable elsewhere, you will confer a
  • very great benefit on society.” “I will,” replied the ghost; “we must be
  • dull fellows--very dull fellows, indeed; I can’t imagine how we can have
  • been so stupid.” With these words, the spirit disappeared; and what is
  • rather remarkable,’ added the old man, with a shrewd look round the
  • table, ‘he never came back again.’
  • ‘That ain’t bad, if it’s true,’ said the man in the Mosaic studs,
  • lighting a fresh cigar.
  • ‘_If_!’ exclaimed the old man, with a look of excessive contempt. ‘I
  • suppose,’ he added, turning to Lowten, ‘he’ll say next, that my story
  • about the queer client we had, when I was in an attorney’s office, is
  • not true either--I shouldn’t wonder.’
  • ‘I shan’t venture to say anything at all about it, seeing that I never
  • heard the story,’ observed the owner of the Mosaic decorations.
  • ‘I wish you would repeat it, Sir,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Ah, do,’ said Lowten, ‘nobody has heard it but me, and I have nearly
  • forgotten it.’
  • The old man looked round the table, and leered more horribly than ever,
  • as if in triumph, at the attention which was depicted in every face.
  • Then rubbing his chin with his hand, and looking up to the ceiling as if
  • to recall the circumstances to his memory, he began as follows:--
  • THE OLD MAN’S TALE ABOUT THE QUEER CLIENT
  • ‘It matters little,’ said the old man, ‘where, or how, I picked up this
  • brief history. If I were to relate it in the order in which it reached
  • me, I should commence in the middle, and when I had arrived at the
  • conclusion, go back for a beginning. It is enough for me to say that
  • some of its circumstances passed before my own eyes; for the remainder I
  • know them to have happened, and there are some persons yet living, who
  • will remember them but too well.
  • ‘In the Borough High Street, near St. George’s Church, and on the same
  • side of the way, stands, as most people know, the smallest of our
  • debtors’ prisons, the Marshalsea. Although in later times it has been a
  • very different place from the sink of filth and dirt it once was, even
  • its improved condition holds out but little temptation to the
  • extravagant, or consolation to the improvident. The condemned felon has
  • as good a yard for air and exercise in Newgate, as the insolvent debtor
  • in the Marshalsea Prison. [Better. But this is past, in a better age,
  • and the prison exists no longer.]
  • ‘It may be my fancy, or it may be that I cannot separate the place from
  • the old recollections associated with it, but this part of London I
  • cannot bear. The street is broad, the shops are spacious, the noise of
  • passing vehicles, the footsteps of a perpetual stream of people--all the
  • busy sounds of traffic, resound in it from morn to midnight; but the
  • streets around are mean and close; poverty and debauchery lie festering
  • in the crowded alleys; want and misfortune are pent up in the narrow
  • prison; an air of gloom and dreariness seems, in my eyes at least, to
  • hang about the scene, and to impart to it a squalid and sickly hue.
  • ‘Many eyes, that have long since been closed in the grave, have looked
  • round upon that scene lightly enough, when entering the gate of the old
  • Marshalsea Prison for the first time; for despair seldom comes with the
  • first severe shock of misfortune. A man has confidence in untried
  • friends, he remembers the many offers of service so freely made by his
  • boon companions when he wanted them not; he has hope--the hope of happy
  • inexperience--and however he may bend beneath the first shock, it
  • springs up in his bosom, and flourishes there for a brief space, until
  • it droops beneath the blight of disappointment and neglect. How soon
  • have those same eyes, deeply sunken in the head, glared from faces
  • wasted with famine, and sallow from confinement, in days when it was no
  • figure of speech to say that debtors rotted in prison, with no hope of
  • release, and no prospect of liberty! The atrocity in its full extent no
  • longer exists, but there is enough of it left to give rise to
  • occurrences that make the heart bleed.
  • ‘Twenty years ago, that pavement was worn with the footsteps of a mother
  • and child, who, day by day, so surely as the morning came, presented
  • themselves at the prison gate; often after a night of restless misery
  • and anxious thoughts, were they there, a full hour too soon, and then
  • the young mother turning meekly away, would lead the child to the old
  • bridge, and raising him in her arms to show him the glistening water,
  • tinted with the light of the morning’s sun, and stirring with all the
  • bustling preparations for business and pleasure that the river presented
  • at that early hour, endeavour to interest his thoughts in the objects
  • before him. But she would quickly set him down, and hiding her face in
  • her shawl, give vent to the tears that blinded her; for no expression of
  • interest or amusement lighted up his thin and sickly face. His
  • recollections were few enough, but they were all of one kind--all
  • connected with the poverty and misery of his parents. Hour after hour
  • had he sat on his mother’s knee, and with childish sympathy watched the
  • tears that stole down her face, and then crept quietly away into some
  • dark corner, and sobbed himself to sleep. The hard realities of the
  • world, with many of its worst privations--hunger and thirst, and cold
  • and want--had all come home to him, from the first dawnings of reason;
  • and though the form of childhood was there, its light heart, its merry
  • laugh, and sparkling eyes were wanting.
  • ‘The father and mother looked on upon this, and upon each other, with
  • thoughts of agony they dared not breathe in words. The healthy, strong-
  • made man, who could have borne almost any fatigue of active exertion,
  • was wasting beneath the close confinement and unhealthy atmosphere of a
  • crowded prison. The slight and delicate woman was sinking beneath the
  • combined effects of bodily and mental illness. The child’s young heart
  • was breaking.
  • ‘Winter came, and with it weeks of cold and heavy rain. The poor girl
  • had removed to a wretched apartment close to the spot of her husband’s
  • imprisonment; and though the change had been rendered necessary by their
  • increasing poverty, she was happier now, for she was nearer him. For two
  • months, she and her little companion watched the opening of the gate as
  • usual. One day she failed to come, for the first time. Another morning
  • arrived, and she came alone. The child was dead.
  • ‘They little know, who coldly talk of the poor man’s bereavements, as a
  • happy release from pain to the departed, and a merciful relief from
  • expense to the survivor--they little know, I say, what the agony of
  • those bereavements is. A silent look of affection and regard when all
  • other eyes are turned coldly away--the consciousness that we possess the
  • sympathy and affection of one being when all others have deserted us--is
  • a hold, a stay, a comfort, in the deepest affliction, which no wealth
  • could purchase, or power bestow. The child had sat at his parents’ feet
  • for hours together, with his little hands patiently folded in each
  • other, and his thin wan face raised towards them. They had seen him pine
  • away, from day to day; and though his brief existence had been a joyless
  • one, and he was now removed to that peace and rest which, child as he
  • was, he had never known in this world, they were his parents, and his
  • loss sank deep into their souls.
  • ‘It was plain to those who looked upon the mother’s altered face, that
  • death must soon close the scene of her adversity and trial. Her
  • husband’s fellow-prisoners shrank from obtruding on his grief and
  • misery, and left to himself alone, the small room he had previously
  • occupied in common with two companions. She shared it with him; and
  • lingering on without pain, but without hope, her life ebbed slowly away.
  • ‘She had fainted one evening in her husband’s arms, and he had borne her
  • to the open window, to revive her with the air, when the light of the
  • moon falling full upon her face, showed him a change upon her features,
  • which made him stagger beneath her weight, like a helpless infant.
  • ‘“Set me down, George,” she said faintly. He did so, and seating himself
  • beside her, covered his face with his hands, and burst into tears.
  • ‘“It is very hard to leave you, George,” she said; “but it is God’s
  • will, and you must bear it for my sake. Oh! how I thank Him for having
  • taken our boy! He is happy, and in heaven now. What would he have done
  • here, without his mother!”
  • ‘“You shall not die, Mary, you shall not die;” said the husband,
  • starting up. He paced hurriedly to and fro, striking his head with his
  • clenched fists; then reseating himself beside her, and supporting her in
  • his arms, added more calmly, “Rouse yourself, my dear girl. Pray, pray
  • do. You will revive yet.”
  • ‘“Never again, George; never again,” said the dying woman. “Let them lay
  • me by my poor boy now, but promise me, that if ever you leave this
  • dreadful place, and should grow rich, you will have us removed to some
  • quiet country churchyard, a long, long way off--very far from here--
  • where we can rest in peace. Dear George, promise me you will.”
  • ‘“I do, I do,” said the man, throwing himself passionately on his knees
  • before her. “Speak to me, Mary, another word; one look--but one!”
  • ‘He ceased to speak: for the arm that clasped his neck grew stiff and
  • heavy. A deep sigh escaped from the wasted form before him; the lips
  • moved, and a smile played upon the face; but the lips were pallid, and
  • the smile faded into a rigid and ghastly stare. He was alone in the
  • world.
  • ‘That night, in the silence and desolation of his miserable room, the
  • wretched man knelt down by the dead body of his wife, and called on God
  • to witness a terrible oath, that from that hour, he devoted himself to
  • revenge her death and that of his child; that thenceforth to the last
  • moment of his life, his whole energies should be directed to this one
  • object; that his revenge should be protracted and terrible; that his
  • hatred should be undying and inextinguishable; and should hunt its
  • object through the world.
  • ‘The deepest despair, and passion scarcely human, had made such fierce
  • ravages on his face and form, in that one night, that his companions in
  • misfortune shrank affrighted from him as he passed by. His eyes were
  • bloodshot and heavy, his face a deadly white, and his body bent as if
  • with age. He had bitten his under lip nearly through in the violence of
  • his mental suffering, and the blood which had flowed from the wound had
  • trickled down his chin, and stained his shirt and neckerchief. No tear,
  • or sound of complaint escaped him; but the unsettled look, and
  • disordered haste with which he paced up and down the yard, denoted the
  • fever which was burning within.
  • ‘It was necessary that his wife’s body should be removed from the
  • prison, without delay. He received the communication with perfect
  • calmness, and acquiesced in its propriety. Nearly all the inmates of the
  • prison had assembled to witness its removal; they fell back on either
  • side when the widower appeared; he walked hurriedly forward, and
  • stationed himself, alone, in a little railed area close to the lodge
  • gate, from whence the crowd, with an instinctive feeling of delicacy,
  • had retired. The rude coffin was borne slowly forward on men’s
  • shoulders. A dead silence pervaded the throng, broken only by the
  • audible lamentations of the women, and the shuffling steps of the
  • bearers on the stone pavement. They reached the spot where the bereaved
  • husband stood: and stopped. He laid his hand upon the coffin, and
  • mechanically adjusting the pall with which it was covered, motioned them
  • onward. The turnkeys in the prison lobby took off their hats as it
  • passed through, and in another moment the heavy gate closed behind it.
  • He looked vacantly upon the crowd, and fell heavily to the ground.
  • ‘Although for many weeks after this, he was watched, night and day, in
  • the wildest ravings of fever, neither the consciousness of his loss, nor
  • the recollection of the vow he had made, ever left him for a moment.
  • Scenes changed before his eyes, place succeeded place, and event
  • followed event, in all the hurry of delirium; but they were all
  • connected in some way with the great object of his mind. He was sailing
  • over a boundless expanse of sea, with a blood-red sky above, and the
  • angry waters, lashed into fury beneath, boiling and eddying up, on every
  • side. There was another vessel before them, toiling and labouring in the
  • howling storm; her canvas fluttering in ribbons from the mast, and her
  • deck thronged with figures who were lashed to the sides, over which huge
  • waves every instant burst, sweeping away some devoted creatures into the
  • foaming sea. Onward they bore, amidst the roaring mass of water, with a
  • speed and force which nothing could resist; and striking the stem of the
  • foremost vessel, crushed her beneath their keel. From the huge whirlpool
  • which the sinking wreck occasioned, arose a shriek so loud and shrill--
  • the death-cry of a hundred drowning creatures, blended into one fierce
  • yell--that it rung far above the war-cry of the elements, and echoed,
  • and re-echoed till it seemed to pierce air, sky, and ocean. But what was
  • that--that old gray head that rose above the water’s surface, and with
  • looks of agony, and screams for aid, buffeted with the waves! One look,
  • and he had sprung from the vessel’s side, and with vigorous strokes was
  • swimming towards it. He reached it; he was close upon it. They were _his
  • _features. The old man saw him coming, and vainly strove to elude his
  • grasp. But he clasped him tight, and dragged him beneath the water.
  • Down, down with him, fifty fathoms down; his struggles grew fainter and
  • fainter, until they wholly ceased. He was dead; he had killed him, and
  • had kept his oath.
  • ‘He was traversing the scorching sands of a mighty desert, barefoot and
  • alone. The sand choked and blinded him; its fine thin grains entered the
  • very pores of his skin, and irritated him almost to madness. Gigantic
  • masses of the same material, carried forward by the wind, and shone
  • through by the burning sun, stalked in the distance like pillars of
  • living fire. The bones of men, who had perished in the dreary waste, lay
  • scattered at his feet; a fearful light fell on everything around; so far
  • as the eye could reach, nothing but objects of dread and horror
  • presented themselves. Vainly striving to utter a cry of terror, with his
  • tongue cleaving to his mouth, he rushed madly forward. Armed with
  • supernatural strength, he waded through the sand, until, exhausted with
  • fatigue and thirst, he fell senseless on the earth. What fragrant
  • coolness revived him; what gushing sound was that? Water! It was indeed
  • a well; and the clear fresh stream was running at his feet. He drank
  • deeply of it, and throwing his aching limbs upon the bank, sank into a
  • delicious trance. The sound of approaching footsteps roused him. An old
  • gray-headed man tottered forward to slake his burning thirst. It was
  • _he_ again! He wound his arms round the old man’s body, and held him
  • back. He struggled, and shrieked for water--for but one drop of water to
  • save his life! But he held the old man firmly, and watched his agonies
  • with greedy eyes; and when his lifeless head fell forward on his bosom,
  • he rolled the corpse from him with his feet.
  • ‘When the fever left him, and consciousness returned, he awoke to find
  • himself rich and free, to hear that the parent who would have let him
  • die in jail--_would_! who _had _let those who were far dearer to him
  • than his own existence die of want, and sickness of heart that medicine
  • cannot cure--had been found dead in his bed of down. He had had all the
  • heart to leave his son a beggar, but proud even of his health and
  • strength, had put off the act till it was too late, and now might gnash
  • his teeth in the other world, at the thought of the wealth his
  • remissness had left him. He awoke to this, and he awoke to more. To
  • recollect the purpose for which he lived, and to remember that his enemy
  • was his wife’s own father--the man who had cast him into prison, and
  • who, when his daughter and her child sued at his feet for mercy, had
  • spurned them from his door. Oh, how he cursed the weakness that
  • prevented him from being up, and active, in his scheme of vengeance!
  • ‘He caused himself to be carried from the scene of his loss and misery,
  • and conveyed to a quiet residence on the sea-coast; not in the hope of
  • recovering his peace of mind or happiness, for both were fled for ever;
  • but to restore his prostrate energies, and meditate on his darling
  • object. And here, some evil spirit cast in his way the opportunity for
  • his first, most horrible revenge.
  • ‘It was summer-time; and wrapped in his gloomy thoughts, he would issue
  • from his solitary lodgings early in the evening, and wandering along a
  • narrow path beneath the cliffs, to a wild and lonely spot that had
  • struck his fancy in his ramblings, seat himself on some fallen fragment
  • of the rock, and burying his face in his hands, remain there for hours--
  • sometimes until night had completely closed in, and the long shadows of
  • the frowning cliffs above his head cast a thick, black darkness on every
  • object near him.
  • ‘He was seated here, one calm evening, in his old position, now and then
  • raising his head to watch the flight of a sea-gull, or carry his eye
  • along the glorious crimson path, which, commencing in the middle of the
  • ocean, seemed to lead to its very verge where the sun was setting, when
  • the profound stillness of the spot was broken by a loud cry for help; he
  • listened, doubtful of his having heard aright, when the cry was repeated
  • with even greater vehemence than before, and, starting to his feet, he
  • hastened in the direction whence it proceeded.
  • ‘The tale told itself at once: some scattered garments lay on the beach;
  • a human head was just visible above the waves at a little distance from
  • the shore; and an old man, wringing his hands in agony, was running to
  • and fro, shrieking for assistance. The invalid, whose strength was now
  • sufficiently restored, threw off his coat, and rushed towards the sea,
  • with the intention of plunging in, and dragging the drowning man ashore.
  • ‘“Hasten here, Sir, in God’s name; help, help, sir, for the love of
  • Heaven. He is my son, Sir, my only son!” said the old man frantically,
  • as he advanced to meet him. “My only son, Sir, and he is dying before
  • his father’s eyes!”
  • ‘At the first word the old man uttered, the stranger checked himself in
  • his career, and, folding his arms, stood perfectly motionless.
  • ‘“Great God!” exclaimed the old man, recoiling, “Heyling!”
  • ‘The stranger smiled, and was silent.
  • ‘“Heyling!” said the old man wildly; “my boy, Heyling, my dear boy,
  • look, look!” Gasping for breath, the miserable father pointed to the
  • spot where the young man was struggling for life.
  • ‘“Hark!” said the old man. “He cries once more. He is alive yet.
  • Heyling, save him, save him!”
  • ‘The stranger smiled again, and remained immovable as a statue.
  • ‘“I have wronged you,” shrieked the old man, falling on his knees, and
  • clasping his hands together. “Be revenged; take my all, my life; cast me
  • into the water at your feet, and, if human nature can repress a
  • struggle, I will die, without stirring hand or foot. Do it, Heyling, do
  • it, but save my boy; he is so young, Heyling, so young to die!”
  • ‘“Listen,” said the stranger, grasping the old man fiercely by the
  • wrist; “I will have life for life, and here is _one_. _My_ child died,
  • before his father’s eyes, a far more agonising and painful death than
  • that young slanderer of his sister’s worth is meeting while I speak. You
  • laughed--laughed in your daughter’s face, where death had already set
  • his hand--at our sufferings, then. What think you of them now! See
  • there, see there!”
  • ‘As the stranger spoke, he pointed to the sea. A faint cry died away
  • upon its surface; the last powerful struggle of the dying man agitated
  • the rippling waves for a few seconds; and the spot where he had gone
  • down into his early grave, was undistinguishable from the surrounding
  • water.
  • ‘Three years had elapsed, when a gentleman alighted from a private
  • carriage at the door of a London attorney, then well known as a man of
  • no great nicety in his professional dealings, and requested a private
  • interview on business of importance. Although evidently not past the
  • prime of life, his face was pale, haggard, and dejected; and it did not
  • require the acute perception of the man of business, to discern at a
  • glance, that disease or suffering had done more to work a change in his
  • appearance, than the mere hand of time could have accomplished in twice
  • the period of his whole life.
  • ‘“I wish you to undertake some legal business for me,” said the
  • stranger.
  • ‘The attorney bowed obsequiously, and glanced at a large packet which
  • the gentleman carried in his hand. His visitor observed the look, and
  • proceeded.
  • ‘“It is no common business,” said he; “nor have these papers reached my
  • hands without long trouble and great expense.”
  • ‘The attorney cast a still more anxious look at the packet; and his
  • visitor, untying the string that bound it, disclosed a quantity of
  • promissory notes, with copies of deeds, and other documents.
  • ‘“Upon these papers,” said the client, “the man whose name they bear,
  • has raised, as you will see, large sums of money, for years past. There
  • was a tacit understanding between him and the men into whose hands they
  • originally went--and from whom I have by degrees purchased the whole,
  • for treble and quadruple their nominal value--that these loans should be
  • from time to time renewed, until a given period had elapsed. Such an
  • understanding is nowhere expressed. He has sustained many losses of
  • late; and these obligations accumulating upon him at once, would crush
  • him to the earth.”
  • ‘“The whole amount is many thousands of pounds,” said the attorney,
  • looking over the papers.
  • ‘“It is,” said the client.
  • ‘“What are we to do?” inquired the man of business.
  • ‘“Do!” replied the client, with sudden vehemence. “Put every engine of
  • the law in force, every trick that ingenuity can devise and rascality
  • execute; fair means and foul; the open oppression of the law, aided by
  • all the craft of its most ingenious practitioners. I would have him die
  • a harassing and lingering death. Ruin him, seize and sell his lands and
  • goods, drive him from house and home, and drag him forth a beggar in his
  • old age, to die in a common jail.”
  • ‘“But the costs, my dear Sir, the costs of all this,” reasoned the
  • attorney, when he had recovered from his momentary surprise. “If the
  • defendant be a man of straw, who is to pay the costs, Sir?”
  • ‘“Name any sum,” said the stranger, his hand trembling so violently with
  • excitement, that he could scarcely hold the pen he seized as he spoke--
  • “any sum, and it is yours. Don’t be afraid to name it, man. I shall not
  • think it dear, if you gain my object.”
  • ‘The attorney named a large sum, at hazard, as the advance he should
  • require to secure himself against the possibility of loss; but more with
  • the view of ascertaining how far his client was really disposed to go,
  • than with any idea that he would comply with the demand. The stranger
  • wrote a cheque upon his banker, for the whole amount, and left him.
  • ‘The draft was duly honoured, and the attorney, finding that his strange
  • client might be safely relied upon, commenced his work in earnest. For
  • more than two years afterwards, Mr. Heyling would sit whole days
  • together, in the office, poring over the papers as they accumulated, and
  • reading again and again, his eyes gleaming with joy, the letters of
  • remonstrance, the prayers for a little delay, the representations of the
  • certain ruin in which the opposite party must be involved, which poured
  • in, as suit after suit, and process after process, was commenced. To all
  • applications for a brief indulgence, there was but one reply--the money
  • must be paid. Land, house, furniture, each in its turn, was taken under
  • some one of the numerous executions which were issued; and the old man
  • himself would have been immured in prison had he not escaped the
  • vigilance of the officers, and fled.
  • ‘The implacable animosity of Heyling, so far from being satiated by the
  • success of his persecution, increased a hundredfold with the ruin he
  • inflicted. On being informed of the old man’s flight, his fury was
  • unbounded. He gnashed his teeth with rage, tore the hair from his head,
  • and assailed with horrid imprecations the men who had been intrusted
  • with the writ. He was only restored to comparative calmness by repeated
  • assurances of the certainty of discovering the fugitive. Agents were
  • sent in quest of him, in all directions; every stratagem that could be
  • invented was resorted to, for the purpose of discovering his place of
  • retreat; but it was all in vain. Half a year had passed over, and he was
  • still undiscovered.
  • ‘At length late one night, Heyling, of whom nothing had been seen for
  • many weeks before, appeared at his attorney’s private residence, and
  • sent up word that a gentleman wished to see him instantly. Before the
  • attorney, who had recognised his voice from above stairs, could order
  • the servant to admit him, he had rushed up the staircase, and entered
  • the drawing-room pale and breathless. Having closed the door, to prevent
  • being overheard, he sank into a chair, and said, in a low voice--
  • ‘“Hush! I have found him at last.”
  • ‘“No!” said the attorney. “Well done, my dear sir, well done.”
  • ‘“He lies concealed in a wretched lodging in Camden Town,” said Heyling.
  • “Perhaps it is as well we _did _lose sight of him, for he has been
  • living alone there, in the most abject misery, all the time, and he is
  • poor--very poor.”
  • ‘“Very good,” said the attorney. “You will have the caption made to-
  • morrow, of course?”
  • ‘“Yes,” replied Heyling. “Stay! No! The next day. You are surprised at
  • my wishing to postpone it,” he added, with a ghastly smile; “but I had
  • forgotten. The next day is an anniversary in his life: let it be done
  • then.”
  • ‘“Very good,” said the attorney. “Will you write down instructions for
  • the officer?”
  • ‘“No; let him meet me here, at eight in the evening, and I will
  • accompany him myself.”
  • ‘They met on the appointed night, and, hiring a hackney-coach, directed
  • the driver to stop at that corner of the old Pancras Road, at which
  • stands the parish workhouse. By the time they alighted there, it was
  • quite dark; and, proceeding by the dead wall in front of the Veterinary
  • Hospital, they entered a small by-street, which is, or was at that time,
  • called Little College Street, and which, whatever it may be now, was in
  • those days a desolate place enough, surrounded by little else than
  • fields and ditches.
  • ‘Having drawn the travelling-cap he had on half over his face, and
  • muffled himself in his cloak, Heyling stopped before the meanest-looking
  • house in the street, and knocked gently at the door. It was at once
  • opened by a woman, who dropped a curtsey of recognition, and Heyling,
  • whispering the officer to remain below, crept gently upstairs, and,
  • opening the door of the front room, entered at once.
  • ‘The object of his search and his unrelenting animosity, now a decrepit
  • old man, was seated at a bare deal table, on which stood a miserable
  • candle. He started on the entrance of the stranger, and rose feebly to
  • his feet.
  • ‘“What now, what now?” said the old man. “What fresh misery is this?
  • What do you want here?”
  • ‘“A word with _you_,” replied Heyling. As he spoke, he seated himself at
  • the other end of the table, and, throwing off his cloak and cap,
  • disclosed his features.
  • ‘The old man seemed instantly deprived of speech. He fell backward in
  • his chair, and, clasping his hands together, gazed on the apparition
  • with a mingled look of abhorrence and fear.
  • ‘“This day six years,” said Heyling, “I claimed the life you owed me for
  • my child’s. Beside the lifeless form of your daughter, old man, I swore
  • to live a life of revenge. I have never swerved from my purpose for a
  • moment’s space; but if I had, one thought of her uncomplaining,
  • suffering look, as she drooped away, or of the starving face of our
  • innocent child, would have nerved me to my task. My first act of
  • requital you well remember: this is my last.”
  • ‘The old man shivered, and his hands dropped powerless by his side.
  • ‘“I leave England to-morrow,” said Heyling, after a moment’s pause. “To-
  • night I consign you to the living death to which you devoted her--a
  • hopeless prison--”
  • ‘He raised his eyes to the old man’s countenance, and paused. He lifted
  • the light to his face, set it gently down, and left the apartment.
  • ‘“You had better see to the old man,” he said to the woman, as he opened
  • the door, and motioned the officer to follow him into the street. “I
  • think he is ill.” The woman closed the door, ran hastily upstairs, and
  • found him lifeless.
  • ‘Beneath a plain gravestone, in one of the most peaceful and secluded
  • churchyards in Kent, where wild flowers mingle with the grass, and the
  • soft landscape around forms the fairest spot in the garden of England,
  • lie the bones of the young mother and her gentle child. But the ashes of
  • the father do not mingle with theirs; nor, from that night forward, did
  • the attorney ever gain the remotest clue to the subsequent history of
  • his queer client.’
  • As the old man concluded his tale, he advanced to a peg in one corner,
  • and taking down his hat and coat, put them on with great deliberation;
  • and, without saying another word, walked slowly away. As the gentleman
  • with the Mosaic studs had fallen asleep, and the major part of the
  • company were deeply occupied in the humorous process of dropping melted
  • tallow-grease into his brandy-and-water, Mr. Pickwick departed
  • unnoticed, and having settled his own score, and that of Mr. Weller,
  • issued forth, in company with that gentleman, from beneath the portal of
  • the Magpie and Stump.
  • CHAPTER XXII. MR. PICKWICK JOURNEYS TO IPSWICH AND MEETS WITH A ROMANTIC
  • ADVENTURE WITH A MIDDLE-AGED LADY IN YELLOW CURL-PAPERS
  • That ‘ere your governor’s luggage, Sammy?’ inquired Mr. Weller of his
  • affectionate son, as he entered the yard of the Bull Inn, Whitechapel,
  • with a travelling-bag and a small portmanteau.
  • ‘You might ha’ made a worser guess than that, old feller,’ replied Mr.
  • Weller the younger, setting down his burden in the yard, and sitting
  • himself down upon it afterwards. ‘The governor hisself’ll be down here
  • presently.’
  • ‘He’s a-cabbin’ it, I suppose?’ said the father.
  • ‘Yes, he’s a havin’ two mile o’ danger at eight-pence,’ responded the
  • son. ‘How’s mother-in-law this mornin’?’
  • ‘Queer, Sammy, queer,’ replied the elder Mr. Weller, with impressive
  • gravity. ‘She’s been gettin’ rayther in the Methodistical order lately,
  • Sammy; and she is uncommon pious, to be sure. She’s too good a creetur
  • for me, Sammy. I feel I don’t deserve her.’
  • ‘Ah,’ said Mr. Samuel. ‘that’s wery self-denyin’ o’ you.’
  • ‘Wery,’ replied his parent, with a sigh. ‘She’s got hold o’ some
  • inwention for grown-up people being born again, Sammy--the new birth, I
  • think they calls it. I should wery much like to see that system in
  • haction, Sammy. I should wery much like to see your mother-in-law born
  • again. Wouldn’t I put her out to nurse!’
  • ‘What do you think them women does t’other day,’ continued Mr. Weller,
  • after a short pause, during which he had significantly struck the side
  • of his nose with his forefinger some half-dozen times. ‘What do you
  • think they does, t’other day, Sammy?’
  • ‘Don’t know,’ replied Sam, ‘what?’
  • ‘Goes and gets up a grand tea drinkin’ for a feller they calls their
  • shepherd,’ said Mr. Weller. ‘I was a-standing starin’ in at the pictur
  • shop down at our place, when I sees a little bill about it; “tickets
  • half-a-crown. All applications to be made to the committee. Secretary,
  • Mrs. Weller”; and when I got home there was the committee a-sittin’ in
  • our back parlour. Fourteen women; I wish you could ha’ heard ‘em, Sammy.
  • There they was, a-passin’ resolutions, and wotin’ supplies, and all
  • sorts o’ games. Well, what with your mother-in-law a-worrying me to go,
  • and what with my looking for’ard to seein’ some queer starts if I did, I
  • put my name down for a ticket; at six o’clock on the Friday evenin’ I
  • dresses myself out wery smart, and off I goes with the old ‘ooman, and
  • up we walks into a fust-floor where there was tea-things for thirty, and
  • a whole lot o’ women as begins whisperin’ to one another, and lookin’ at
  • me, as if they’d never seen a rayther stout gen’l’m’n of eight-and-fifty
  • afore. By and by, there comes a great bustle downstairs, and a lanky
  • chap with a red nose and a white neckcloth rushes up, and sings out,
  • “Here’s the shepherd a-coming to wisit his faithful flock;” and in comes
  • a fat chap in black, vith a great white face, a-smilin’ avay like
  • clockwork. Such goin’s on, Sammy! “The kiss of peace,” says the
  • shepherd; and then he kissed the women all round, and ven he’d done, the
  • man vith the red nose began. I was just a-thinkin’ whether I hadn’t
  • better begin too--‘specially as there was a wery nice lady a-sittin’
  • next me--ven in comes the tea, and your mother-in-law, as had been
  • makin’ the kettle bile downstairs. At it they went, tooth and nail. Such
  • a precious loud hymn, Sammy, while the tea was a brewing; such a grace,
  • such eatin’ and drinkin’! I wish you could ha’ seen the shepherd walkin’
  • into the ham and muffins. I never see such a chap to eat and drink--
  • never. The red-nosed man warn’t by no means the sort of person you’d
  • like to grub by contract, but he was nothin’ to the shepherd. Well;
  • arter the tea was over, they sang another hymn, and then the shepherd
  • began to preach: and wery well he did it, considerin’ how heavy them
  • muffins must have lied on his chest. Presently he pulls up, all of a
  • sudden, and hollers out, “Where is the sinner; where is the mis’rable
  • sinner?” Upon which, all the women looked at me, and began to groan as
  • if they was a-dying. I thought it was rather sing’ler, but howsoever, I
  • says nothing. Presently he pulls up again, and lookin’ wery hard at me,
  • says, “Where is the sinner; where is the mis’rable sinner?” and all the
  • women groans again, ten times louder than afore. I got rather savage at
  • this, so I takes a step or two for’ard and says, “My friend,” says I,
  • “did you apply that ‘ere obserwation to me?” ‘Stead of beggin’ my pardon
  • as any gen’l’m’n would ha’ done, he got more abusive than ever:--called
  • me a wessel, Sammy--a wessel of wrath--and all sorts o’ names. So my
  • blood being reg’larly up, I first gave him two or three for himself, and
  • then two or three more to hand over to the man with the red nose, and
  • walked off. I wish you could ha’ heard how the women screamed, Sammy,
  • ven they picked up the shepherd from underneath the table--Hollo! here’s
  • the governor, the size of life.’
  • As Mr. Weller spoke, Mr. Pickwick dismounted from a cab, and entered the
  • yard.
  • ‘Fine mornin’, Sir,’ said Mr. Weller, senior.
  • ‘Beautiful indeed,’ replied Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Beautiful indeed,’ echoes a red-haired man with an inquisitive nose and
  • green spectacles, who had unpacked himself from a cab at the same moment
  • as Mr. Pickwick. ‘Going to Ipswich, Sir?’
  • ‘I am,’ replied Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Extraordinary coincidence. So am I.’
  • Mr. Pickwick bowed.
  • ‘Going outside?’ said the red-haired man.
  • Mr. Pickwick bowed again.
  • ‘Bless my soul, how remarkable--I am going outside, too,’ said the red-
  • haired man; ‘we are positively going together.’ And the red-haired man,
  • who was an important-looking, sharp-nosed, mysterious-spoken personage,
  • with a bird-like habit of giving his head a jerk every time he said
  • anything, smiled as if he had made one of the strangest discoveries that
  • ever fell to the lot of human wisdom.
  • ‘I am happy in the prospect of your company, Sir,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Ah,’ said the new-comer, ‘it’s a good thing for both of us, isn’t it?
  • Company, you see--company--is--is--it’s a very different thing from
  • solitude--ain’t it?’
  • ‘There’s no denying that ‘ere,’ said Mr. Weller, joining in the
  • conversation, with an affable smile. ‘That’s what I call a self-evident
  • proposition, as the dog’s-meat man said, when the housemaid told him he
  • warn’t a gentleman.’
  • ‘Ah,’ said the red-haired man, surveying Mr. Weller from head to foot
  • with a supercilious look. ‘Friend of yours, sir?’
  • ‘Not exactly a friend,’ replied Mr. Pickwick, in a low tone. ‘The fact
  • is, he is my servant, but I allow him to take a good many liberties;
  • for, between ourselves, I flatter myself he is an original, and I am
  • rather proud of him.’
  • ‘Ah,’ said the red-haired man, ‘that, you see, is a matter of taste. I
  • am not fond of anything original; I don’t like it; don’t see the
  • necessity for it. What’s your name, sir?’
  • ‘Here is my card, sir,’ replied Mr. Pickwick, much amused by the
  • abruptness of the question, and the singular manner of the stranger.
  • ‘Ah,’ said the red-haired man, placing the card in his pocket-book,
  • ‘Pickwick; very good. I like to know a man’s name, it saves so much
  • trouble. That’s my card, sir. Magnus, you will perceive, sir--Magnus is
  • my name. It’s rather a good name, I think, sir.’
  • ‘A very good name, indeed,’ said Mr. Pickwick, wholly unable to repress
  • a smile.
  • ‘Yes, I think it is,’ resumed Mr. Magnus. ‘There’s a good name before
  • it, too, you will observe. Permit me, sir--if you hold the card a little
  • slanting, this way, you catch the light upon the up-stroke. There--Peter
  • Magnus--sounds well, I think, sir.’
  • ‘Very,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Curious circumstance about those initials, sir,’ said Mr. Magnus. ‘You
  • will observe--P.M.--post meridian. In hasty notes to intimate
  • acquaintance, I sometimes sign myself “Afternoon.” It amuses my friends
  • very much, Mr. Pickwick.’
  • ‘It is calculated to afford them the highest gratification, I should
  • conceive,’ said Mr. Pickwick, rather envying the ease with which Mr.
  • Magnus’s friends were entertained.
  • ‘Now, gen’l’m’n,’ said the hostler, ‘coach is ready, if you please.’
  • ‘Is all my luggage in?’ inquired Mr. Magnus.
  • ‘All right, sir.’
  • ‘Is the red bag in?’
  • ‘All right, Sir.’
  • ‘And the striped bag?’
  • ‘Fore boot, Sir.’
  • ‘And the brown-paper parcel?’
  • ‘Under the seat, Sir.’
  • ‘And the leather hat-box?’
  • ‘They’re all in, Sir.’
  • ‘Now, will you get up?’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Excuse me,’ replied Magnus, standing on the wheel. ‘Excuse me, Mr.
  • Pickwick. I cannot consent to get up, in this state of uncertainty. I am
  • quite satisfied from that man’s manner, that the leather hat-box is not
  • in.’
  • The solemn protestations of the hostler being wholly unavailing, the
  • leather hat-box was obliged to be raked up from the lowest depth of the
  • boot, to satisfy him that it had been safely packed; and after he had
  • been assured on this head, he felt a solemn presentiment, first, that
  • the red bag was mislaid, and next that the striped bag had been stolen,
  • and then that the brown-paper parcel ‘had come untied.’ At length when
  • he had received ocular demonstration of the groundless nature of each
  • and every of these suspicions, he consented to climb up to the roof of
  • the coach, observing that now he had taken everything off his mind, he
  • felt quite comfortable and happy.
  • ‘You’re given to nervousness, ain’t you, Sir?’ inquired Mr. Weller,
  • senior, eyeing the stranger askance, as he mounted to his place.
  • ‘Yes; I always am rather about these little matters,’ said the stranger,
  • ‘but I am all right now--quite right.’
  • ‘Well, that’s a blessin’, said Mr. Weller. ‘Sammy, help your master up
  • to the box; t’other leg, Sir, that’s it; give us your hand, Sir. Up with
  • you. You was a lighter weight when you was a boy, sir.’
  • True enough, that, Mr. Weller,’ said the breathless Mr. Pickwick good-
  • humouredly, as he took his seat on the box beside him.
  • ‘Jump up in front, Sammy,’ said Mr. Weller. ‘Now Villam, run ‘em out.
  • Take care o’ the archvay, gen’l’m’n. “Heads,” as the pieman says.
  • That’ll do, Villam. Let ‘em alone.’ And away went the coach up
  • Whitechapel, to the admiration of the whole population of that pretty
  • densely populated quarter.
  • ‘Not a wery nice neighbourhood, this, Sir,’ said Sam, with a touch of
  • the hat, which always preceded his entering into conversation with his
  • master.
  • ‘It is not indeed, Sam,’ replied Mr. Pickwick, surveying the crowded and
  • filthy street through which they were passing.
  • ‘It’s a wery remarkable circumstance, Sir,’ said Sam, ‘that poverty and
  • oysters always seem to go together.’
  • ‘I don’t understand you, Sam,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘What I mean, sir,’ said Sam, ‘is, that the poorer a place is, the
  • greater call there seems to be for oysters. Look here, sir; here’s a
  • oyster-stall to every half-dozen houses. The street’s lined vith ‘em.
  • Blessed if I don’t think that ven a man’s wery poor, he rushes out of
  • his lodgings, and eats oysters in reg’lar desperation.’
  • ‘To be sure he does,’ said Mr. Weller, senior; ‘and it’s just the same
  • vith pickled salmon!’
  • ‘Those are two very remarkable facts, which never occurred to me
  • before,’ said Mr. Pickwick. ‘The very first place we stop at, I’ll make
  • a note of them.’
  • By this time they had reached the turnpike at Mile End; a profound
  • silence prevailed until they had got two or three miles farther on, when
  • Mr. Weller, senior, turning suddenly to Mr. Pickwick, said--
  • ‘Wery queer life is a pike-keeper’s, sir.’
  • ‘A what?’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘A pike-keeper.’
  • ‘What do you mean by a pike-keeper?’ inquired Mr. Peter Magnus.
  • ‘The old ‘un means a turnpike-keeper, gen’l’m’n,’ observed Mr. Samuel
  • Weller, in explanation.
  • ‘Oh,’ said Mr. Pickwick, ‘I see. Yes; very curious life. Very
  • uncomfortable.’
  • ‘They’re all on ‘em men as has met vith some disappointment in life,’
  • said Mr. Weller, senior.
  • ‘Ay, ay,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Yes. Consequence of vich, they retires from the world, and shuts
  • themselves up in pikes; partly with the view of being solitary, and
  • partly to rewenge themselves on mankind by takin’ tolls.’
  • ‘Dear me,’ said Mr. Pickwick, ‘I never knew that before.’
  • ‘Fact, Sir,’ said Mr. Weller; ‘if they was gen’l’m’n, you’d call ‘em
  • misanthropes, but as it is, they only takes to pike-keepin’.’
  • With such conversation, possessing the inestimable charm of blending
  • amusement with instruction, did Mr. Weller beguile the tediousness of
  • the journey, during the greater part of the day. Topics of conversation
  • were never wanting, for even when any pause occurred in Mr. Weller’s
  • loquacity, it was abundantly supplied by the desire evinced by Mr.
  • Magnus to make himself acquainted with the whole of the personal history
  • of his fellow-travellers, and his loudly-expressed anxiety at every
  • stage, respecting the safety and well-being of the two bags, the leather
  • hat-box, and the brown-paper parcel.
  • In the main street of Ipswich, on the left-hand side of the way, a short
  • distance after you have passed through the open space fronting the Town
  • Hall, stands an inn known far and wide by the appellation of the Great
  • White Horse, rendered the more conspicuous by a stone statue of some
  • rampacious animal with flowing mane and tail, distantly resembling an
  • insane cart-horse, which is elevated above the principal door. The Great
  • White Horse is famous in the neighbourhood, in the same degree as a
  • prize ox, or a county-paper-chronicled turnip, or unwieldy pig--for its
  • enormous size. Never was such labyrinths of uncarpeted passages, such
  • clusters of mouldy, ill-lighted rooms, such huge numbers of small dens
  • for eating or sleeping in, beneath any one roof, as are collected
  • together between the four walls of the Great White Horse at Ipswich.
  • It was at the door of this overgrown tavern that the London coach
  • stopped, at the same hour every evening; and it was from this same
  • London coach that Mr. Pickwick, Sam Weller, and Mr. Peter Magnus
  • dismounted, on the particular evening to which this chapter of our
  • history bears reference.
  • ‘Do you stop here, sir?’ inquired Mr. Peter Magnus, when the striped
  • bag, and the red bag, and the brown-paper parcel, and the leather hat-
  • box, had all been deposited in the passage. ‘Do you stop here, sir?’
  • ‘I do,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Dear me,’ said Mr. Magnus, ‘I never knew anything like these
  • extraordinary coincidences. Why, I stop here too. I hope we dine
  • together?’
  • ‘With pleasure,’ replied Mr. Pickwick. ‘I am not quite certain whether I
  • have any friends here or not, though. Is there any gentleman of the name
  • of Tupman here, waiter?’
  • A corpulent man, with a fortnight’s napkin under his arm, and coeval
  • stockings on his legs, slowly desisted from his occupation of staring
  • down the street, on this question being put to him by Mr. Pickwick; and,
  • after minutely inspecting that gentleman’s appearance, from the crown of
  • his hat to the lowest button of his gaiters, replied emphatically--
  • ‘No!’
  • ‘Nor any gentleman of the name of Snodgrass?’ inquired Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘No!’
  • ‘Nor Winkle?’
  • ‘No!’
  • ‘My friends have not arrived to-day, Sir,’ said Mr. Pickwick. ‘We will
  • dine alone, then. Show us a private room, waiter.’
  • On this request being preferred, the corpulent man condescended to order
  • the boots to bring in the gentlemen’s luggage; and preceding them down a
  • long, dark passage, ushered them into a large, badly-furnished
  • apartment, with a dirty grate, in which a small fire was making a
  • wretched attempt to be cheerful, but was fast sinking beneath the
  • dispiriting influence of the place. After the lapse of an hour, a bit of
  • fish and a steak was served up to the travellers, and when the dinner
  • was cleared away, Mr. Pickwick and Mr. Peter Magnus drew their chairs up
  • to the fire, and having ordered a bottle of the worst possible port
  • wine, at the highest possible price, for the good of the house, drank
  • brandy-and-water for their own.
  • Mr. Peter Magnus was naturally of a very communicative disposition, and
  • the brandy-and-water operated with wonderful effect in warming into life
  • the deepest hidden secrets of his bosom. After sundry accounts of
  • himself, his family, his connections, his friends, his jokes, his
  • business, and his brothers (most talkative men have a great deal to say
  • about their brothers), Mr. Peter Magnus took a view of Mr. Pickwick
  • through his coloured spectacles for several minutes, and then said, with
  • an air of modesty--
  • ‘And what do you think--what _do_ you think, Mr. Pickwick--I have come
  • down here for?’
  • ‘Upon my word,’ said Mr. Pickwick, ‘it is wholly impossible for me to
  • guess; on business, perhaps.’
  • ‘Partly right, Sir,’ replied Mr. Peter Magnus, ‘but partly wrong at the
  • same time; try again, Mr. Pickwick.’
  • ‘Really,’ said Mr. Pickwick, ‘I must throw myself on your mercy, to tell
  • me or not, as you may think best; for I should never guess, if I were to
  • try all night.’
  • ‘Why, then, he-he-he!’ said Mr. Peter Magnus, with a bashful titter,
  • ‘what should you think, Mr. Pickwick, if I had come down here to make a
  • proposal, Sir, eh? He, he, he!’
  • ‘Think! That you are very likely to succeed,’ replied Mr. Pickwick, with
  • one of his beaming smiles.
  • ‘Ah!’ said Mr. Magnus. ‘But do you really think so, Mr. Pickwick? Do
  • you, though?’
  • ‘Certainly,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘No; but you’re joking, though.’
  • ‘I am not, indeed.’
  • ‘Why, then,’ said Mr. Magnus, ‘to let you into a little secret, I think
  • so too. I don’t mind telling you, Mr. Pickwick, although I’m dreadful
  • jealous by nature--horrid--that the lady is in this house.’ Here Mr.
  • Magnus took off his spectacles, on purpose to wink, and then put them on
  • again.
  • ‘That’s what you were running out of the room for, before dinner, then,
  • so often,’ said Mr. Pickwick archly.
  • ‘Hush! Yes, you’re right, that was it; not such a fool as to see her,
  • though.’
  • ‘No!’
  • ‘No; wouldn’t do, you know, after having just come off a journey. Wait
  • till to-morrow, sir; double the chance then. Mr. Pickwick, Sir, there is
  • a suit of clothes in that bag, and a hat in that box, which, I expect,
  • in the effect they will produce, will be invaluable to me, sir.’
  • ‘Indeed!’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Yes; you must have observed my anxiety about them to-day. I do not
  • believe that such another suit of clothes, and such a hat, could be
  • bought for money, Mr. Pickwick.’
  • Mr. Pickwick congratulated the fortunate owner of the irresistible
  • garments on their acquisition; and Mr. Peter Magnus remained a few
  • moments apparently absorbed in contemplation.
  • ‘She’s a fine creature,’ said Mr. Magnus.
  • ‘Is she?’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Very,’ said Mr. Magnus. ‘Very. She lives about twenty miles from here,
  • Mr. Pickwick. I heard she would be here to-night and all to-morrow
  • forenoon, and came down to seize the opportunity. I think an inn is a
  • good sort of a place to propose to a single woman in, Mr. Pickwick. She
  • is more likely to feel the loneliness of her situation in travelling,
  • perhaps, than she would be at home. What do you think, Mr. Pickwick?’
  • ‘I think it is very probable,’ replied that gentleman.
  • ‘I beg your pardon, Mr. Pickwick,’ said Mr. Peter Magnus, ‘but I am
  • naturally rather curious; what may you have come down here for?’
  • ‘On a far less pleasant errand, Sir,’ replied Mr. Pickwick, the colour
  • mounting to his face at the recollection. ‘I have come down here, Sir,
  • to expose the treachery and falsehood of an individual, upon whose truth
  • and honour I placed implicit reliance.’
  • ‘Dear me,’ said Mr. Peter Magnus, ‘that’s very unpleasant. It is a lady,
  • I presume? Eh? ah! Sly, Mr. Pickwick, sly. Well, Mr. Pickwick, sir, I
  • wouldn’t probe your feelings for the world. Painful subjects, these,
  • sir, very painful. Don’t mind me, Mr. Pickwick, if you wish to give vent
  • to your feelings. I know what it is to be jilted, Sir; I have endured
  • that sort of thing three or four times.’
  • ‘I am much obliged to you, for your condolence on what you presume to be
  • my melancholy case,’ said Mr. Pickwick, winding up his watch, and laying
  • it on the table, ‘but--’
  • ‘No, no,’ said Mr. Peter Magnus, ‘not a word more; it’s a painful
  • subject. I see, I see. What’s the time, Mr. Pickwick?’
  • Past twelve.’
  • ‘Dear me, it’s time to go to bed. It will never do, sitting here. I
  • shall be pale to-morrow, Mr. Pickwick.’
  • At the bare notion of such a calamity, Mr. Peter Magnus rang the bell
  • for the chambermaid; and the striped bag, the red bag, the leathern hat-
  • box, and the brown-paper parcel, having been conveyed to his bedroom, he
  • retired in company with a japanned candlestick, to one side of the
  • house, while Mr. Pickwick, and another japanned candlestick, were
  • conducted through a multitude of tortuous windings, to another.
  • ‘This is your room, sir,’ said the chambermaid.
  • ‘Very well,’ replied Mr. Pickwick, looking round him. It was a tolerably
  • large double-bedded room, with a fire; upon the whole, a more
  • comfortable-looking apartment than Mr. Pickwick’s short experience of
  • the accommodations of the Great White Horse had led him to expect.
  • ‘Nobody sleeps in the other bed, of course,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Oh, no, Sir.’
  • ‘Very good. Tell my servant to bring me up some hot water at half-past
  • eight in the morning, and that I shall not want him any more to-night.’
  • ‘Yes, Sir,’ and bidding Mr. Pickwick good-night, the chambermaid
  • retired, and left him alone.
  • Mr. Pickwick sat himself down in a chair before the fire, and fell into
  • a train of rambling meditations. First he thought of his friends, and
  • wondered when they would join him; then his mind reverted to Mrs. Martha
  • Bardell; and from that lady it wandered, by a natural process, to the
  • dingy counting-house of Dodson & Fogg. From Dodson & Fogg’s it flew off
  • at a tangent, to the very centre of the history of the queer client; and
  • then it came back to the Great White Horse at Ipswich, with sufficient
  • clearness to convince Mr. Pickwick that he was falling asleep. So he
  • roused himself, and began to undress, when he recollected he had left
  • his watch on the table downstairs.
  • Now this watch was a special favourite with Mr. Pickwick, having been
  • carried about, beneath the shadow of his waistcoat, for a greater number
  • of years than we feel called upon to state at present. The possibility
  • of going to sleep, unless it were ticking gently beneath his pillow, or
  • in the watch-pocket over his head, had never entered Mr. Pickwick’s
  • brain. So as it was pretty late now, and he was unwilling to ring his
  • bell at that hour of the night, he slipped on his coat, of which he had
  • just divested himself, and taking the japanned candlestick in his hand,
  • walked quietly downstairs.
  • The more stairs Mr. Pickwick went down, the more stairs there seemed to
  • be to descend, and again and again, when Mr. Pickwick got into some
  • narrow passage, and began to congratulate himself on having gained the
  • ground-floor, did another flight of stairs appear before his astonished
  • eyes. At last he reached a stone hall, which he remembered to have seen
  • when he entered the house. Passage after passage did he explore; room
  • after room did he peep into; at length, as he was on the point of giving
  • up the search in despair, he opened the door of the identical room in
  • which he had spent the evening, and beheld his missing property on the
  • table.
  • Mr. Pickwick seized the watch in triumph, and proceeded to retrace his
  • steps to his bedchamber. If his progress downward had been attended with
  • difficulties and uncertainty, his journey back was infinitely more
  • perplexing. Rows of doors, garnished with boots of every shape, make,
  • and size, branched off in every possible direction. A dozen times did he
  • softly turn the handle of some bedroom door which resembled his own,
  • when a gruff cry from within of ‘Who the devil’s that?’ or ‘What do you
  • want here?’ caused him to steal away, on tiptoe, with a perfectly
  • marvellous celerity. He was reduced to the verge of despair, when an
  • open door attracted his attention. He peeped in. Right at last! There
  • were the two beds, whose situation he perfectly remembered, and the fire
  • still burning. His candle, not a long one when he first received it, had
  • flickered away in the drafts of air through which he had passed and sank
  • into the socket as he closed the door after him. ‘No matter,’ said Mr.
  • Pickwick, ‘I can undress myself just as well by the light of the fire.’
  • The bedsteads stood one on each side of the door; and on the inner side
  • of each was a little path, terminating in a rush-bottomed chair, just
  • wide enough to admit of a person’s getting into or out of bed, on that
  • side, if he or she thought proper. Having carefully drawn the curtains
  • of his bed on the outside, Mr. Pickwick sat down on the rush-bottomed
  • chair, and leisurely divested himself of his shoes and gaiters. He then
  • took off and folded up his coat, waistcoat, and neckcloth, and slowly
  • drawing on his tasselled nightcap, secured it firmly on his head, by
  • tying beneath his chin the strings which he always had attached to that
  • article of dress. It was at this moment that the absurdity of his recent
  • bewilderment struck upon his mind. Throwing himself back in the rush-
  • bottomed chair, Mr. Pickwick laughed to himself so heartily, that it
  • would have been quite delightful to any man of well-constituted mind to
  • have watched the smiles that expanded his amiable features as they shone
  • forth from beneath the nightcap.
  • ‘It is the best idea,’ said Mr. Pickwick to himself, smiling till he
  • almost cracked the nightcap strings--‘it is the best idea, my losing
  • myself in this place, and wandering about these staircases, that I ever
  • heard of. Droll, droll, very droll.’ Here Mr. Pickwick smiled again, a
  • broader smile than before, and was about to continue the process of
  • undressing, in the best possible humour, when he was suddenly stopped by
  • a most unexpected interruption: to wit, the entrance into the room of
  • some person with a candle, who, after locking the door, advanced to the
  • dressing-table, and set down the light upon it.
  • The smile that played on Mr. Pickwick’s features was instantaneously
  • lost in a look of the most unbounded and wonder-stricken surprise. The
  • person, whoever it was, had come in so suddenly and with so little
  • noise, that Mr. Pickwick had had no time to call out, or oppose their
  • entrance. Who could it be? A robber? Some evil-minded person who had
  • seen him come upstairs with a handsome watch in his hand, perhaps. What
  • was he to do?
  • The only way in which Mr. Pickwick could catch a glimpse of his
  • mysterious visitor with the least danger of being seen himself, was by
  • creeping on to the bed, and peeping out from between the curtains on the
  • opposite side. To this manoeuvre he accordingly resorted. Keeping the
  • curtains carefully closed with his hand, so that nothing more of him
  • could be seen than his face and nightcap, and putting on his spectacles,
  • he mustered up courage and looked out.
  • Mr. Pickwick almost fainted with horror and dismay. Standing before the
  • dressing-glass was a middle-aged lady, in yellow curl-papers, busily
  • engaged in brushing what ladies call their ‘back-hair.’ However the
  • unconscious middle-aged lady came into that room, it was quite clear
  • that she contemplated remaining there for the night; for she had brought
  • a rushlight and shade with her, which, with praiseworthy precaution
  • against fire, she had stationed in a basin on the floor, where it was
  • glimmering away, like a gigantic lighthouse in a particularly small
  • piece of water.
  • ‘Bless my soul!’ thought Mr. Pickwick, ‘what a dreadful thing!’
  • ‘Hem!’ said the lady; and in went Mr. Pickwick’s head with automaton-
  • like rapidity.
  • ‘I never met with anything so awful as this,’ thought poor Mr. Pickwick,
  • the cold perspiration starting in drops upon his nightcap. ‘Never. This
  • is fearful.’
  • It was quite impossible to resist the urgent desire to see what was
  • going forward. So out went Mr. Pickwick’s head again. The prospect was
  • worse than before. The middle-aged lady had finished arranging her hair;
  • had carefully enveloped it in a muslin nightcap with a small plaited
  • border; and was gazing pensively on the fire.
  • ‘This matter is growing alarming,’ reasoned Mr. Pickwick with himself.
  • ‘I can’t allow things to go on in this way. By the self-possession of
  • that lady, it is clear to me that I must have come into the wrong room.
  • If I call out she’ll alarm the house; but if I remain here the
  • consequences will be still more frightful.’
  • Mr. Pickwick, it is quite unnecessary to say, was one of the most modest
  • and delicate-minded of mortals. The very idea of exhibiting his nightcap
  • to a lady overpowered him, but he had tied those confounded strings in a
  • knot, and, do what he would, he couldn’t get it off. The disclosure must
  • be made. There was only one other way of doing it. He shrunk behind the
  • curtains, and called out very loudly--
  • ‘Ha-hum!’
  • That the lady started at this unexpected sound was evident, by her
  • falling up against the rushlight shade; that she persuaded herself it
  • must have been the effect of imagination was equally clear, for when Mr.
  • Pickwick, under the impression that she had fainted away stone-dead with
  • fright, ventured to peep out again, she was gazing pensively on the fire
  • as before.
  • ‘Most extraordinary female this,’ thought Mr. Pickwick, popping in
  • again. ‘Ha-hum!’
  • These last sounds, so like those in which, as legends inform us, the
  • ferocious giant Blunderbore was in the habit of expressing his opinion
  • that it was time to lay the cloth, were too distinctly audible to be
  • again mistaken for the workings of fancy.
  • ‘Gracious Heaven!’ said the middle-aged lady, ‘what’s that?’
  • ‘It’s--it’s--only a gentleman, ma’am,’ said Mr. Pickwick, from behind
  • the curtains.
  • ‘A gentleman!’ said the lady, with a terrific scream.
  • ‘It’s all over!’ thought Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘A strange man!’ shrieked the lady. Another instant and the house would
  • be alarmed. Her garments rustled as she rushed towards the door.
  • ‘Ma’am,’ said Mr. Pickwick, thrusting out his head in the extremity of
  • his desperation, ‘ma’am!’
  • Now, although Mr. Pickwick was not actuated by any definite object in
  • putting out his head, it was instantaneously productive of a good
  • effect. The lady, as we have already stated, was near the door. She must
  • pass it, to reach the staircase, and she would most undoubtedly have
  • done so by this time, had not the sudden apparition of Mr. Pickwick’s
  • nightcap driven her back into the remotest corner of the apartment,
  • where she stood staring wildly at Mr. Pickwick, while Mr. Pickwick in
  • his turn stared wildly at her.
  • ‘Wretch,’ said the lady, covering her eyes with her hands, ‘what do you
  • want here?’
  • ‘Nothing, ma’am; nothing whatever, ma’am,’ said Mr. Pickwick earnestly.
  • ‘Nothing!’ said the lady, looking up.
  • ‘Nothing, ma’am, upon my honour,’ said Mr. Pickwick, nodding his head so
  • energetically, that the tassel of his nightcap danced again. ‘I am
  • almost ready to sink, ma’am, beneath the confusion of addressing a lady
  • in my nightcap (here the lady hastily snatched off hers), but I can’t
  • get it off, ma’am (here Mr. Pickwick gave it a tremendous tug, in proof
  • of the statement). It is evident to me, ma’am, now, that I have mistaken
  • this bedroom for my own. I had not been here five minutes, ma’am, when
  • you suddenly entered it.’
  • ‘If this improbable story be really true, Sir,’ said the lady, sobbing
  • violently, ‘you will leave it instantly.’
  • ‘I will, ma’am, with the greatest pleasure,’ replied Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Instantly, sir,’ said the lady.
  • ‘Certainly, ma’am,’ interposed Mr. Pickwick, very quickly. ‘Certainly,
  • ma’am. I--I--am very sorry, ma’am,’ said Mr. Pickwick, making his
  • appearance at the bottom of the bed, ‘to have been the innocent occasion
  • of this alarm and emotion; deeply sorry, ma’am.’
  • The lady pointed to the door. One excellent quality of Mr. Pickwick’s
  • character was beautifully displayed at this moment, under the most
  • trying circumstances. Although he had hastily put on his hat over his
  • nightcap, after the manner of the old patrol; although he carried his
  • shoes and gaiters in his hand, and his coat and waistcoat over his arm;
  • nothing could subdue his native politeness.
  • ‘I am exceedingly sorry, ma’am,’ said Mr. Pickwick, bowing very low.
  • ‘If you are, Sir, you will at once leave the room,’ said the lady.
  • ‘Immediately, ma’am; this instant, ma’am,’ said Mr. Pickwick, opening
  • the door, and dropping both his shoes with a crash in so doing.
  • ‘I trust, ma’am,’ resumed Mr. Pickwick, gathering up his shoes, and
  • turning round to bow again--‘I trust, ma’am, that my unblemished
  • character, and the devoted respect I entertain for your sex, will plead
  • as some slight excuse for this--’ But before Mr. Pickwick could conclude
  • the sentence, the lady had thrust him into the passage, and locked and
  • bolted the door behind him.
  • Whatever grounds of self-congratulation Mr. Pickwick might have for
  • having escaped so quietly from his late awkward situation, his present
  • position was by no means enviable. He was alone, in an open passage, in
  • a strange house in the middle of the night, half dressed; it was not to
  • be supposed that he could find his way in perfect darkness to a room
  • which he had been wholly unable to discover with a light, and if he made
  • the slightest noise in his fruitless attempts to do so, he stood every
  • chance of being shot at, and perhaps killed, by some wakeful traveller.
  • He had no resource but to remain where he was until daylight appeared.
  • So after groping his way a few paces down the passage, and, to his
  • infinite alarm, stumbling over several pairs of boots in so doing, Mr.
  • Pickwick crouched into a little recess in the wall, to wait for morning,
  • as philosophically as he might.
  • He was not destined, however, to undergo this additional trial of
  • patience; for he had not been long ensconced in his present concealment
  • when, to his unspeakable horror, a man, bearing a light, appeared at the
  • end of the passage. His horror was suddenly converted into joy, however,
  • when he recognised the form of his faithful attendant. It was indeed Mr.
  • Samuel Weller, who after sitting up thus late, in conversation with the
  • boots, who was sitting up for the mail, was now about to retire to rest.
  • ‘Sam,’ said Mr. Pickwick, suddenly appearing before him, ‘where’s my
  • bedroom?’
  • Mr. Weller stared at his master with the most emphatic surprise; and it
  • was not until the question had been repeated three several times, that
  • he turned round, and led the way to the long-sought apartment.
  • ‘Sam,’ said Mr. Pickwick, as he got into bed, ‘I have made one of the
  • most extraordinary mistakes to-night, that ever were heard of.’
  • ‘Wery likely, Sir,’ replied Mr. Weller drily.
  • ‘But of this I am determined, Sam,’ said Mr. Pickwick; ‘that if I were
  • to stop in this house for six months, I would never trust myself about
  • it, alone, again.’
  • ‘That’s the wery prudentest resolution as you could come to, Sir,’
  • replied Mr. Weller. ‘You rayther want somebody to look arter you, Sir,
  • when your judgment goes out a wisitin’.’
  • ‘What do you mean by that, Sam?’ said Mr. Pickwick. He raised himself in
  • bed, and extended his hand, as if he were about to say something more;
  • but suddenly checking himself, turned round, and bade his valet ‘Good-
  • night.’
  • ‘Good-night, Sir,’ replied Mr. Weller. He paused when he got outside the
  • door--shook his head--walked on--stopped--snuffed the candle--shook his
  • head again--and finally proceeded slowly to his chamber, apparently
  • buried in the profoundest meditation.
  • CHAPTER XXIII. IN WHICH MR. SAMUEL WELLER BEGINS TO DEVOTE HIS ENERGIES
  • TO THE RETURN MATCH BETWEEN HIMSELF AND MR. TROTTER
  • In a small room in the vicinity of the stableyard, betimes in the
  • morning, which was ushered in by Mr. Pickwick’s adventure with the
  • middle--aged lady in the yellow curl-papers, sat Mr. Weller, senior,
  • preparing himself for his journey to London. He was sitting in an
  • excellent attitude for having his portrait taken; and here it is.
  • It is very possible that at some earlier period of his career, Mr.
  • Weller’s profile might have presented a bold and determined outline. His
  • face, however, had expanded under the influence of good living, and a
  • disposition remarkable for resignation; and its bold, fleshy curves had
  • so far extended beyond the limits originally assigned them, that unless
  • you took a full view of his countenance in front, it was difficult to
  • distinguish more than the extreme tip of a very rubicund nose. His chin,
  • from the same cause, had acquired the grave and imposing form which is
  • generally described by prefixing the word ‘double’ to that expressive
  • feature; and his complexion exhibited that peculiarly mottled
  • combination of colours which is only to be seen in gentlemen of his
  • profession, and in underdone roast beef. Round his neck he wore a
  • crimson travelling-shawl, which merged into his chin by such
  • imperceptible gradations, that it was difficult to distinguish the folds
  • of the one, from the folds of the other. Over this, he mounted a long
  • waistcoat of a broad pink-striped pattern, and over that again, a wide-
  • skirted green coat, ornamented with large brass buttons, whereof the two
  • which garnished the waist, were so far apart, that no man had ever
  • beheld them both at the same time. His hair, which was short, sleek, and
  • black, was just visible beneath the capacious brim of a low-crowned
  • brown hat. His legs were encased in knee-cord breeches, and painted top-
  • boots; and a copper watch-chain, terminating in one seal, and a key of
  • the same material, dangled loosely from his capacious waistband.
  • We have said that Mr. Weller was engaged in preparing for his journey to
  • London--he was taking sustenance, in fact. On the table before him,
  • stood a pot of ale, a cold round of beef, and a very respectable-looking
  • loaf, to each of which he distributed his favours in turn, with the most
  • rigid impartiality. He had just cut a mighty slice from the latter, when
  • the footsteps of somebody entering the room, caused him to raise his
  • head; and he beheld his son.
  • ‘Mornin’, Sammy!’ said the father.
  • The son walked up to the pot of ale, and nodding significantly to his
  • parent, took a long draught by way of reply.
  • ‘Wery good power o’ suction, Sammy,’ said Mr. Weller the elder, looking
  • into the pot, when his first-born had set it down half empty. ‘You’d ha’
  • made an uncommon fine oyster, Sammy, if you’d been born in that station
  • o’ life.’
  • ‘Yes, I des-say, I should ha’ managed to pick up a respectable livin’,’
  • replied Sam applying himself to the cold beef, with considerable vigour.
  • ‘I’m wery sorry, Sammy,’ said the elder Mr. Weller, shaking up the ale,
  • by describing small circles with the pot, preparatory to drinking. ‘I’m
  • wery sorry, Sammy, to hear from your lips, as you let yourself be
  • gammoned by that ‘ere mulberry man. I always thought, up to three days
  • ago, that the names of Veller and gammon could never come into contract,
  • Sammy, never.’
  • ‘Always exceptin’ the case of a widder, of course,’ said Sam.
  • ‘Widders, Sammy,’ replied Mr. Weller, slightly changing colour. ‘Widders
  • are ‘ceptions to ev’ry rule. I have heerd how many ordinary women one
  • widder’s equal to in pint o’ comin’ over you. I think it’s five-and-
  • twenty, but I don’t rightly know vether it ain’t more.’
  • ‘Well; that’s pretty well,’ said Sam.
  • ‘Besides,’ continued Mr. Weller, not noticing the interruption, ‘that’s
  • a wery different thing. You know what the counsel said, Sammy, as
  • defended the gen’l’m’n as beat his wife with the poker, venever he got
  • jolly. “And arter all, my Lord,” says he, “it’s a amiable weakness.” So
  • I says respectin’ widders, Sammy, and so you’ll say, ven you gets as old
  • as me.’
  • ‘I ought to ha’ know’d better, I know,’ said Sam.
  • ‘Ought to ha’ know’d better!’ repeated Mr. Weller, striking the table
  • with his fist. ‘Ought to ha’ know’d better! why, I know a young ‘un as
  • hasn’t had half nor quarter your eddication--as hasn’t slept about the
  • markets, no, not six months--who’d ha’ scorned to be let in, in such a
  • vay; scorned it, Sammy.’ In the excitement of feeling produced by this
  • agonising reflection, Mr. Weller rang the bell, and ordered an
  • additional pint of ale.
  • ‘Well, it’s no use talking about it now,’ said Sam. ‘It’s over, and
  • can’t be helped, and that’s one consolation, as they always says in
  • Turkey, ven they cuts the wrong man’s head off. It’s my innings now,
  • gov’nor, and as soon as I catches hold o’ this ‘ere Trotter, I’ll have a
  • good ‘un.’
  • ‘I hope you will, Sammy. I hope you will,’ returned Mr. Weller. ‘Here’s
  • your health, Sammy, and may you speedily vipe off the disgrace as you’ve
  • inflicted on the family name.’ In honour of this toast Mr. Weller
  • imbibed at a draught, at least two-thirds of a newly-arrived pint, and
  • handed it over to his son, to dispose of the remainder, which he
  • instantaneously did.
  • ‘And now, Sammy,’ said Mr. Weller, consulting a large double-faced
  • silver watch that hung at the end of the copper chain. ‘Now it’s time I
  • was up at the office to get my vay-bill and see the coach loaded; for
  • coaches, Sammy, is like guns--they requires to be loaded with wery great
  • care, afore they go off.’
  • At this parental and professional joke, Mr. Weller, junior, smiled a
  • filial smile. His revered parent continued in a solemn tone--
  • ‘I’m a-goin’ to leave you, Samivel, my boy, and there’s no telling ven I
  • shall see you again. Your mother-in-law may ha’ been too much for me, or
  • a thousand things may have happened by the time you next hears any news
  • o’ the celebrated Mr. Veller o’ the Bell Savage. The family name depends
  • wery much upon you, Samivel, and I hope you’ll do wot’s right by it.
  • Upon all little pints o’ breedin’, I know I may trust you as vell as if
  • it was my own self. So I’ve only this here one little bit of adwice to
  • give you. If ever you gets to up’ards o’ fifty, and feels disposed to go
  • a-marryin’ anybody--no matter who--jist you shut yourself up in your own
  • room, if you’ve got one, and pison yourself off hand. Hangin’s wulgar,
  • so don’t you have nothin’ to say to that. Pison yourself, Samivel, my
  • boy, pison yourself, and you’ll be glad on it arterwards.’ With these
  • affecting words, Mr. Weller looked steadfastly on his son, and turning
  • slowly upon his heel, disappeared from his sight.
  • In the contemplative mood which these words had awakened, Mr. Samuel
  • Weller walked forth from the Great White Horse when his father had left
  • him; and bending his steps towards St. Clement’s Church, endeavoured to
  • dissipate his melancholy, by strolling among its ancient precincts. He
  • had loitered about, for some time, when he found himself in a retired
  • spot--a kind of courtyard of venerable appearance--which he discovered
  • had no other outlet than the turning by which he had entered. He was
  • about retracing his steps, when he was suddenly transfixed to the spot
  • by a sudden appearance; and the mode and manner of this appearance, we
  • now proceed to relate.
  • Mr. Samuel Weller had been staring up at the old brick houses now and
  • then, in his deep abstraction, bestowing a wink upon some healthy-
  • looking servant girl as she drew up a blind, or threw open a bedroom
  • window, when the green gate of a garden at the bottom of the yard
  • opened, and a man having emerged therefrom, closed the green gate very
  • carefully after him, and walked briskly towards the very spot where Mr.
  • Weller was standing.
  • Now, taking this, as an isolated fact, unaccompanied by any attendant
  • circumstances, there was nothing very extraordinary in it; because in
  • many parts of the world men do come out of gardens, close green gates
  • after them, and even walk briskly away, without attracting any
  • particular share of public observation. It is clear, therefore, that
  • there must have been something in the man, or in his manner, or both, to
  • attract Mr. Weller’s particular notice. Whether there was, or not, we
  • must leave the reader to determine, when we have faithfully recorded the
  • behaviour of the individual in question.
  • When the man had shut the green gate after him, he walked, as we have
  • said twice already, with a brisk pace up the courtyard; but he no sooner
  • caught sight of Mr. Weller than he faltered, and stopped, as if
  • uncertain, for the moment, what course to adopt. As the green gate was
  • closed behind him, and there was no other outlet but the one in front,
  • however, he was not long in perceiving that he must pass Mr. Samuel
  • Weller to get away. He therefore resumed his brisk pace, and advanced,
  • staring straight before him. The most extraordinary thing about the man
  • was, that he was contorting his face into the most fearful and
  • astonishing grimaces that ever were beheld. Nature’s handiwork never was
  • disguised with such extraordinary artificial carving, as the man had
  • overlaid his countenance with in one moment.
  • ‘Well!’ said Mr. Weller to himself, as the man approached. ‘This is wery
  • odd. I could ha’ swore it was him.’
  • Up came the man, and his face became more frightfully distorted than
  • ever, as he drew nearer.
  • ‘I could take my oath to that ‘ere black hair and mulberry suit,’ said
  • Mr. Weller; ‘only I never see such a face as that afore.’
  • As Mr. Weller said this, the man’s features assumed an unearthly twinge,
  • perfectly hideous. He was obliged to pass very near Sam, however, and
  • the scrutinising glance of that gentleman enabled him to detect, under
  • all these appalling twists of feature, something too like the small eyes
  • of Mr. Job Trotter to be easily mistaken.
  • ‘Hollo, you Sir!’ shouted Sam fiercely.
  • The stranger stopped.
  • ‘Hollo!’ repeated Sam, still more gruffly.
  • The man with the horrible face looked, with the greatest surprise, up
  • the court, and down the court, and in at the windows of the houses--
  • everywhere but at Sam Weller--and took another step forward, when he was
  • brought to again by another shout.
  • ‘Hollo, you sir!’ said Sam, for the third time.
  • There was no pretending to mistake where the voice came from now, so the
  • stranger, having no other resource, at last looked Sam Weller full in
  • the face.
  • ‘It won’t do, Job Trotter,’ said Sam. ‘Come! None o’ that ‘ere nonsense.
  • You ain’t so wery ‘andsome that you can afford to throw avay many o’
  • your good looks. Bring them ‘ere eyes o’ yourn back into their proper
  • places, or I’ll knock ‘em out of your head. D’ye hear?’
  • As Mr. Weller appeared fully disposed to act up to the spirit of this
  • address, Mr. Trotter gradually allowed his face to resume its natural
  • expression; and then giving a start of joy, exclaimed, ‘What do I see?
  • Mr. Walker!’
  • ‘Ah,’ replied Sam. ‘You’re wery glad to see me, ain’t you?’
  • ‘Glad!’ exclaimed Job Trotter; ‘Oh, Mr. Walker, if you had but known how
  • I have looked forward to this meeting! It is too much, Mr. Walker; I
  • cannot bear it, indeed I cannot.’ And with these words, Mr. Trotter
  • burst into a regular inundation of tears, and, flinging his arms around
  • those of Mr. Weller, embraced him closely, in an ecstasy of joy.
  • ‘Get off!’ cried Sam, indignant at this process, and vainly endeavouring
  • to extricate himself from the grasp of his enthusiastic acquaintance.
  • ‘Get off, I tell you. What are you crying over me for, you portable
  • engine?’
  • ‘Because I am so glad to see you,’ replied Job Trotter, gradually
  • releasing Mr. Weller, as the first symptoms of his pugnacity
  • disappeared. ‘Oh, Mr. Walker, this is too much.’
  • ‘Too much!’ echoed Sam, ‘I think it is too much--rayther! Now, what have
  • you got to say to me, eh?’
  • Mr. Trotter made no reply; for the little pink pocket-handkerchief was
  • in full force.
  • ‘What have you got to say to me, afore I knock your head off?’ repeated
  • Mr. Weller, in a threatening manner.
  • ‘Eh!’ said Mr. Trotter, with a look of virtuous surprise.
  • ‘What have you got to say to me?’
  • ‘I, Mr. Walker!’
  • ‘Don’t call me Valker; my name’s Veller; you know that vell enough. What
  • have you got to say to me?’
  • ‘Bless you, Mr. Walker--Weller, I mean--a great many things, if you will
  • come away somewhere, where we can talk comfortably. If you knew how I
  • have looked for you, Mr. Weller--’
  • ‘Wery hard, indeed, I s’pose?’ said Sam drily.
  • ‘Very, very, Sir,’ replied Mr. Trotter, without moving a muscle of his
  • face. ‘But shake hands, Mr. Weller.’
  • Sam eyed his companion for a few seconds, and then, as if actuated by a
  • sudden impulse, complied with his request.
  • ‘How,’ said Job Trotter, as they walked away, ‘how is your dear, good
  • master? Oh, he is a worthy gentleman, Mr. Weller! I hope he didn’t catch
  • cold, that dreadful night, Sir.’
  • There was a momentary look of deep slyness in Job Trotter’s eye, as he
  • said this, which ran a thrill through Mr. Weller’s clenched fist, as he
  • burned with a desire to make a demonstration on his ribs. Sam
  • constrained himself, however, and replied that his master was extremely
  • well.
  • ‘Oh, I am so glad,’ replied Mr. Trotter; ‘is he here?’
  • ‘Is yourn?’ asked Sam, by way of reply.
  • ‘Oh, yes, he is here, and I grieve to say, Mr. Weller, he is going on
  • worse than ever.’
  • ‘Ah, ah!’ said Sam.
  • ‘Oh, shocking--terrible!’
  • ‘At a boarding-school?’ said Sam.
  • ‘No, not at a boarding-school,’ replied Job Trotter, with the same sly
  • look which Sam had noticed before; ‘not at a boarding-school.’
  • ‘At the house with the green gate?’ said Sam, eyeing his companion
  • closely.
  • ‘No, no--oh, not there,’ replied Job, with a quickness very unusual to
  • him, ‘not there.’
  • ‘What was you a-doin’ there?’ asked Sam, with a sharp glance. ‘Got
  • inside the gate by accident, perhaps?’
  • ‘Why, Mr. Weller,’ replied Job, ‘I don’t mind telling you my little
  • secrets, because, you know, we took such a fancy for each other when we
  • first met. You recollect how pleasant we were that morning?’
  • ‘Oh, yes,’ said Sam, impatiently. ‘I remember. Well?’
  • ‘Well,’ replied Job, speaking with great precision, and in the low tone
  • of a man who communicates an important secret; ‘in that house with the
  • green gate, Mr. Weller, they keep a good many servants.’
  • ‘So I should think, from the look on it,’ interposed Sam.
  • ‘Yes,’ continued Mr. Trotter, ‘and one of them is a cook, who has saved
  • up a little money, Mr. Weller, and is desirous, if she can establish
  • herself in life, to open a little shop in the chandlery way, you see.’
  • Yes.’
  • ‘Yes, Mr. Weller. Well, Sir, I met her at a chapel that I go to; a very
  • neat little chapel in this town, Mr. Weller, where they sing the number
  • four collection of hymns, which I generally carry about with me, in a
  • little book, which you may perhaps have seen in my hand--and I got a
  • little intimate with her, Mr. Weller, and from that, an acquaintance
  • sprung up between us, and I may venture to say, Mr. Weller, that I am to
  • be the chandler.’
  • ‘Ah, and a wery amiable chandler you’ll make,’ replied Sam, eyeing Job
  • with a side look of intense dislike.
  • ‘The great advantage of this, Mr. Weller,’ continued Job, his eyes
  • filling with tears as he spoke, ‘will be, that I shall be able to leave
  • my present disgraceful service with that bad man, and to devote myself
  • to a better and more virtuous life; more like the way in which I was
  • brought up, Mr. Weller.’
  • ‘You must ha’ been wery nicely brought up,’ said Sam.
  • ‘Oh, very, Mr. Weller, very,’ replied Job. At the recollection of the
  • purity of his youthful days, Mr. Trotter pulled forth the pink
  • handkerchief, and wept copiously.
  • ‘You must ha’ been an uncommon nice boy, to go to school vith,’ said
  • Sam.
  • ‘I was, sir,’ replied Job, heaving a deep sigh; ‘I was the idol of the
  • place.’
  • ‘Ah,’ said Sam, ‘I don’t wonder at it. What a comfort you must ha’ been
  • to your blessed mother.’
  • At these words, Mr. Job Trotter inserted an end of the pink handkerchief
  • into the corner of each eye, one after the other, and began to weep
  • copiously.
  • ‘Wot’s the matter with the man,’ said Sam, indignantly. ‘Chelsea water-
  • works is nothin’ to you. What are you melting vith now? The
  • consciousness o’ willainy?’
  • ‘I cannot keep my feelings down, Mr. Weller,’ said Job, after a short
  • pause. ‘To think that my master should have suspected the conversation I
  • had with yours, and so dragged me away in a post-chaise, and after
  • persuading the sweet young lady to say she knew nothing of him, and
  • bribing the school-mistress to do the same, deserted her for a better
  • speculation! Oh! Mr. Weller, it makes me shudder.’
  • ‘Oh, that was the vay, was it?’ said Mr. Weller.
  • ‘To be sure it was,’ replied Job.
  • ‘Vell,’ said Sam, as they had now arrived near the hotel, ‘I vant to
  • have a little bit o’ talk with you, Job; so if you’re not partickler
  • engaged, I should like to see you at the Great White Horse to-night,
  • somewheres about eight o’clock.’
  • ‘I shall be sure to come,’ said Job.
  • ‘Yes, you’d better,’ replied Sam, with a very meaning look, ‘or else I
  • shall perhaps be askin’ arter you, at the other side of the green gate,
  • and then I might cut you out, you know.’
  • ‘I shall be sure to be with you, sir,’ said Mr. Trotter; and wringing
  • Sam’s hand with the utmost fervour, he walked away.
  • ‘Take care, Job Trotter, take care,’ said Sam, looking after him, ‘or I
  • shall be one too many for you this time. I shall, indeed.’ Having
  • uttered this soliloquy, and looked after Job till he was to be seen no
  • more, Mr. Weller made the best of his way to his master’s bedroom.
  • ‘It’s all in training, Sir,’ said Sam.
  • ‘What’s in training, Sam?’ inquired Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘I’ve found ‘em out, Sir,’ said Sam.
  • ‘Found out who?’
  • ‘That ‘ere queer customer, and the melan-cholly chap with the black
  • hair.’
  • ‘Impossible, Sam!’ said Mr. Pickwick, with the greatest energy. ‘Where
  • are they, Sam: where are they?’
  • ‘Hush, hush!’ replied Mr. Weller; and as he assisted Mr. Pickwick to
  • dress, he detailed the plan of action on which he proposed to enter.
  • ‘But when is this to be done, Sam?’ inquired Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘All in good time, Sir,’ replied Sam.
  • Whether it was done in good time, or not, will be seen hereafter.
  • CHAPTER XXIV. WHEREIN MR. PETER MAGNUS GROWS JEALOUS, AND THE MIDDLE-
  • AGED LADY APPREHENSIVE, WHICH BRINGS THE PICKWICKIANS WITHIN THE GRASP
  • OF THE LAW
  • When Mr. Pickwick descended to the room in which he and Mr. Peter Magnus
  • had spent the preceding evening, he found that gentleman with the major
  • part of the contents of the two bags, the leathern hat-box, and the
  • brown-paper parcel, displaying to all possible advantage on his person,
  • while he himself was pacing up and down the room in a state of the
  • utmost excitement and agitation.
  • ‘Good-morning, Sir,’ said Mr. Peter Magnus. ‘What do you think of this,
  • Sir?’
  • ‘Very effective indeed,’ replied Mr. Pickwick, surveying the garments of
  • Mr. Peter Magnus with a good-natured smile.
  • ‘Yes, I think it’ll do,’ said Mr. Magnus. ‘Mr. Pickwick, Sir, I have
  • sent up my card.’
  • ‘Have you?’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘And the waiter brought back word, that she would see me at eleven--at
  • eleven, Sir; it only wants a quarter now.’
  • ‘Very near the time,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Yes, it is rather near,’ replied Mr. Magnus, ‘rather too near to be
  • pleasant--eh! Mr. Pickwick, sir?’
  • ‘Confidence is a great thing in these cases,’ observed Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘I believe it is, Sir,’ said Mr. Peter Magnus. ‘I am very confident,
  • Sir. Really, Mr. Pickwick, I do not see why a man should feel any fear
  • in such a case as this, sir. What is it, Sir? There’s nothing to be
  • ashamed of; it’s a matter of mutual accommodation, nothing more. Husband
  • on one side, wife on the other. That’s my view of the matter, Mr.
  • Pickwick.’
  • ‘It is a very philosophical one,’ replied Mr. Pickwick. ‘But breakfast
  • is waiting, Mr. Magnus. Come.’
  • Down they sat to breakfast, but it was evident, notwithstanding the
  • boasting of Mr. Peter Magnus, that he laboured under a very considerable
  • degree of nervousness, of which loss of appetite, a propensity to upset
  • the tea-things, a spectral attempt at drollery, and an irresistible
  • inclination to look at the clock, every other second, were among the
  • principal symptoms.
  • ‘He-he-he,’ tittered Mr. Magnus, affecting cheerfulness, and gasping
  • with agitation. ‘It only wants two minutes, Mr. Pickwick. Am I pale,
  • Sir?’
  • ‘Not very,’ replied Mr. Pickwick.
  • There was a brief pause.
  • ‘I beg your pardon, Mr. Pickwick; but have you ever done this sort of
  • thing in your time?’ said Mr. Magnus.
  • ‘You mean proposing?’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Yes.’
  • ‘Never,’ said Mr. Pickwick, with great energy, ‘never.’
  • ‘You have no idea, then, how it’s best to begin?’ said Mr. Magnus.
  • ‘Why,’ said Mr. Pickwick, ‘I may have formed some ideas upon the
  • subject, but, as I have never submitted them to the test of experience,
  • I should be sorry if you were induced to regulate your proceedings by
  • them.’
  • ‘I should feel very much obliged to you, for any advice, Sir,’ said Mr.
  • Magnus, taking another look at the clock, the hand of which was verging
  • on the five minutes past.
  • ‘Well, sir,’ said Mr. Pickwick, with the profound solemnity with which
  • that great man could, when he pleased, render his remarks so deeply
  • impressive. ‘I should commence, sir, with a tribute to the lady’s beauty
  • and excellent qualities; from them, Sir, I should diverge to my own
  • unworthiness.’
  • ‘Very good,’ said Mr. Magnus.
  • ‘Unworthiness for _her _only, mind, sir,’ resumed Mr. Pickwick; ‘for to
  • show that I was not wholly unworthy, sir, I should take a brief review
  • of my past life, and present condition. I should argue, by analogy, that
  • to anybody else, I must be a very desirable object. I should then
  • expatiate on the warmth of my love, and the depth of my devotion.
  • Perhaps I might then be tempted to seize her hand.’
  • ‘Yes, I see,’ said Mr. Magnus; ‘that would be a very great point.’
  • ‘I should then, Sir,’ continued Mr. Pickwick, growing warmer as the
  • subject presented itself in more glowing colours before him--‘I should
  • then, Sir, come to the plain and simple question, “Will you have me?” I
  • think I am justified in assuming that upon this, she would turn away her
  • head.’
  • ‘You think that may be taken for granted?’ said Mr. Magnus; ‘because, if
  • she did not do that at the right place, it would be embarrassing.’
  • ‘I think she would,’ said Mr. Pickwick. ‘Upon this, sir, I should
  • squeeze her hand, and I think--I think, Mr. Magnus--that after I had
  • done that, supposing there was no refusal, I should gently draw away the
  • handkerchief, which my slight knowledge of human nature leads me to
  • suppose the lady would be applying to her eyes at the moment, and steal
  • a respectful kiss. I think I should kiss her, Mr. Magnus; and at this
  • particular point, I am decidedly of opinion that if the lady were going
  • to take me at all, she would murmur into my ears a bashful acceptance.’
  • Mr. Magnus started; gazed on Mr. Pickwick’s intelligent face, for a
  • short time in silence; and then (the dial pointing to the ten minutes
  • past) shook him warmly by the hand, and rushed desperately from the
  • room.
  • Mr. Pickwick had taken a few strides to and fro; and the small hand of
  • the clock following the latter part of his example, had arrived at the
  • figure which indicates the half-hour, when the door suddenly opened. He
  • turned round to meet Mr. Peter Magnus, and encountered, in his stead,
  • the joyous face of Mr. Tupman, the serene countenance of Mr. Winkle, and
  • the intellectual lineaments of Mr. Snodgrass.
  • As Mr. Pickwick greeted them, Mr. Peter Magnus tripped into the room.
  • ‘My friends, the gentleman I was speaking of--Mr. Magnus,’ said Mr.
  • Pickwick.
  • ‘Your servant, gentlemen,’ said Mr. Magnus, evidently in a high state of
  • excitement; ‘Mr. Pickwick, allow me to speak to you one moment, sir.’
  • As he said this, Mr. Magnus harnessed his forefinger to Mr. Pickwick’s
  • buttonhole, and, drawing him to a window recess, said--
  • ‘Congratulate me, Mr. Pickwick; I followed your advice to the very
  • letter.’
  • ‘And it was all correct, was it?’ inquired Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘It was, Sir. Could not possibly have been better,’ replied Mr. Magnus.
  • ‘Mr. Pickwick, she is mine.’
  • ‘I congratulate you, with all my heart,’ replied Mr. Pickwick, warmly
  • shaking his new friend by the hand.
  • ‘You must see her. Sir,’ said Mr. Magnus; ‘this way, if you please.
  • Excuse us for one instant, gentlemen.’ Hurrying on in this way, Mr.
  • Peter Magnus drew Mr. Pickwick from the room. He paused at the next door
  • in the passage, and tapped gently thereat.
  • ‘Come in,’ said a female voice. And in they went.
  • ‘Miss Witherfield,’ said Mr. Magnus, ‘allow me to introduce my very
  • particular friend, Mr. Pickwick. Mr. Pickwick, I beg to make you known
  • to Miss Witherfield.’
  • The lady was at the upper end of the room. As Mr. Pickwick bowed, he
  • took his spectacles from his waistcoat pocket, and put them on; a
  • process which he had no sooner gone through, than, uttering an
  • exclamation of surprise, Mr. Pickwick retreated several paces, and the
  • lady, with a half-suppressed scream, hid her face in her hands, and
  • dropped into a chair; whereupon Mr. Peter Magnus was stricken motionless
  • on the spot, and gazed from one to the other, with a countenance
  • expressive of the extremities of horror and surprise.
  • This certainly was, to all appearance, very unaccountable behaviour; but
  • the fact is, that Mr. Pickwick no sooner put on his spectacles, than he
  • at once recognised in the future Mrs. Magnus the lady into whose room he
  • had so unwarrantably intruded on the previous night; and the spectacles
  • had no sooner crossed Mr. Pickwick’s nose, than the lady at once
  • identified the countenance which she had seen surrounded by all the
  • horrors of a nightcap. So the lady screamed, and Mr. Pickwick started.
  • ‘Mr. Pickwick!’ exclaimed Mr. Magnus, lost in astonishment, ‘what is the
  • meaning of this, Sir? What is the meaning of it, Sir?’ added Mr. Magnus,
  • in a threatening, and a louder tone.
  • ‘Sir,’ said Mr. Pickwick, somewhat indignant at the very sudden manner
  • in which Mr. Peter Magnus had conjugated himself into the imperative
  • mood, ‘I decline answering that question.’
  • ‘You decline it, Sir?’ said Mr. Magnus.
  • ‘I do, Sir,’ replied Mr. Pickwick; ‘I object to say anything which may
  • compromise that lady, or awaken unpleasant recollections in her breast,
  • without her consent and permission.’
  • ‘Miss Witherfield,’ said Mr. Peter Magnus, ‘do you know this person?’
  • ‘Know him!’ repeated the middle-aged lady, hesitating.
  • ‘Yes, know him, ma’am; I said know him,’ replied Mr. Magnus, with
  • ferocity.
  • ‘I have seen him,’ replied the middle-aged lady.
  • ‘Where?’ inquired Mr. Magnus, ‘where?’
  • ‘That,’ said the middle-aged lady, rising from her seat, and averting
  • her head--‘that I would not reveal for worlds.’
  • ‘I understand you, ma’am,’ said Mr. Pickwick, ‘and respect your
  • delicacy; it shall never be revealed by _me_ depend upon it.’
  • ‘Upon my word, ma’am,’ said Mr. Magnus, ‘considering the situation in
  • which I am placed with regard to yourself, you carry this matter off
  • with tolerable coolness--tolerable coolness, ma’am.’
  • ‘Cruel Mr. Magnus!’ said the middle-aged lady; here she wept very
  • copiously indeed.
  • ‘Address your observations to me, sir,’ interposed Mr. Pickwick; ‘I
  • alone am to blame, if anybody be.’
  • ‘Oh! you alone are to blame, are you, sir?’ said Mr. Magnus; ‘I--I--see
  • through this, sir. You repent of your determination now, do you?’
  • ‘My determination!’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Your determination, Sir. Oh! don’t stare at me, Sir,’ said Mr. Magnus;
  • ‘I recollect your words last night, Sir. You came down here, sir, to
  • expose the treachery and falsehood of an individual on whose truth and
  • honour you had placed implicit reliance--eh?’ Here Mr. Peter Magnus
  • indulged in a prolonged sneer; and taking off his green spectacles--
  • which he probably found superfluous in his fit of jealousy--rolled his
  • little eyes about, in a manner frightful to behold.
  • ‘Eh?’ said Mr. Magnus; and then he repeated the sneer with increased
  • effect. ‘But you shall answer it, Sir.’
  • ‘Answer what?’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Never mind, sir,’ replied Mr. Magnus, striding up and down the room.
  • ‘Never mind.’
  • There must be something very comprehensive in this phrase of ‘Never
  • mind,’ for we do not recollect to have ever witnessed a quarrel in the
  • street, at a theatre, public room, or elsewhere, in which it has not
  • been the standard reply to all belligerent inquiries. ‘Do you call
  • yourself a gentleman, sir?’--‘Never mind, sir.’
  • Did I offer to say anything to the young woman, sir?’--‘Never mind,
  • sir.’
  • Do you want your head knocked up against that wall, sir?’--‘Never mind,
  • sir.’ It is observable, too, that there would appear to be some hidden
  • taunt in this universal ‘Never mind,’ which rouses more indignation in
  • the bosom of the individual addressed, than the most lavish abuse could
  • possibly awaken.
  • We do not mean to assert that the application of this brevity to
  • himself, struck exactly that indignation to Mr. Pickwick’s soul, which
  • it would infallibly have roused in a vulgar breast. We merely record the
  • fact that Mr. Pickwick opened the room door, and abruptly called out,
  • ‘Tupman, come here!’
  • Mr. Tupman immediately presented himself, with a look of very
  • considerable surprise.
  • ‘Tupman,’ said Mr. Pickwick, ‘a secret of some delicacy, in which that
  • lady is concerned, is the cause of a difference which has just arisen
  • between this gentleman and myself. When I assure him, in your presence,
  • that it has no relation to himself, and is not in any way connected with
  • his affairs, I need hardly beg you to take notice that if he continue to
  • dispute it, he expresses a doubt of my veracity, which I shall consider
  • extremely insulting.’ As Mr. Pickwick said this, he looked encyclopedias
  • at Mr. Peter Magnus.
  • Mr. Pickwick’s upright and honourable bearing, coupled with that force
  • and energy of speech which so eminently distinguished him, would have
  • carried conviction to any reasonable mind; but, unfortunately, at that
  • particular moment, the mind of Mr. Peter Magnus was in anything but
  • reasonable order. Consequently, instead of receiving Mr. Pickwick’s
  • explanation as he ought to have done, he forthwith proceeded to work
  • himself into a red-hot, scorching, consuming passion, and to talk about
  • what was due to his own feelings, and all that sort of thing; adding
  • force to his declamation by striding to and fro, and pulling his hair--
  • amusements which he would vary occasionally, by shaking his fist in Mr.
  • Pickwick’s philanthropic countenance.
  • Mr. Pickwick, in his turn, conscious of his own innocence and rectitude,
  • and irritated by having unfortunately involved the middle-aged lady in
  • such an unpleasant affair, was not so quietly disposed as was his wont.
  • The consequence was, that words ran high, and voices higher; and at
  • length Mr. Magnus told Mr. Pickwick he should hear from him; to which
  • Mr. Pickwick replied, with laudable politeness, that the sooner he heard
  • from him the better; whereupon the middle-aged lady rushed in terror
  • from the room, out of which Mr. Tupman dragged Mr. Pickwick, leaving Mr.
  • Peter Magnus to himself and meditation.
  • If the middle-aged lady had mingled much with the busy world, or had
  • profited at all by the manners and customs of those who make the laws
  • and set the fashions, she would have known that this sort of ferocity is
  • the most harmless thing in nature; but as she had lived for the most
  • part in the country, and never read the parliamentary debates, she was
  • little versed in these particular refinements of civilised life.
  • Accordingly, when she had gained her bedchamber, bolted herself in, and
  • began to meditate on the scene she had just witnessed, the most terrific
  • pictures of slaughter and destruction presented themselves to her
  • imagination; among which, a full-length portrait of Mr. Peter Magnus
  • borne home by four men, with the embellishment of a whole barrelful of
  • bullets in his left side, was among the very least. The more the middle-
  • aged lady meditated, the more terrified she became; and at length she
  • determined to repair to the house of the principal magistrate of the
  • town, and request him to secure the persons of Mr. Pickwick and Mr.
  • Tupman without delay.
  • To this decision the middle-aged lady was impelled by a variety of
  • considerations, the chief of which was the incontestable proof it would
  • afford of her devotion to Mr. Peter Magnus, and her anxiety for his
  • safety. She was too well acquainted with his jealous temperament to
  • venture the slightest allusion to the real cause of her agitation on
  • beholding Mr. Pickwick; and she trusted to her own influence and power
  • of persuasion with the little man, to quell his boisterous jealousy,
  • supposing that Mr. Pickwick were removed, and no fresh quarrel could
  • arise. Filled with these reflections, the middle-aged lady arrayed
  • herself in her bonnet and shawl, and repaired to the mayor’s dwelling
  • straightway.
  • Now George Nupkins, Esquire, the principal magistrate aforesaid, was as
  • grand a personage as the fastest walker would find out, between sunrise
  • and sunset, on the twenty-first of June, which being, according to the
  • almanacs, the longest day in the whole year, would naturally afford him
  • the longest period for his search. On this particular morning, Mr.
  • Nupkins was in a state of the utmost excitement and irritation, for
  • there had been a rebellion in the town; all the day-scholars at the
  • largest day-school had conspired to break the windows of an obnoxious
  • apple-seller, and had hooted the beadle and pelted the constabulary--an
  • elderly gentleman in top-boots, who had been called out to repress the
  • tumult, and who had been a peace-officer, man and boy, for half a
  • century at least. And Mr. Nupkins was sitting in his easy-chair,
  • frowning with majesty, and boiling with rage, when a lady was announced
  • on pressing, private, and particular business. Mr. Nupkins looked calmly
  • terrible, and commanded that the lady should be shown in; which command,
  • like all the mandates of emperors, and magistrates, and other great
  • potentates of the earth, was forthwith obeyed; and Miss Witherfield,
  • interestingly agitated, was ushered in accordingly.
  • ‘Muzzle!’ said the magistrate.
  • Muzzle was an undersized footman, with a long body and short legs.
  • ‘Muzzle!’
  • Yes, your Worship.’
  • ‘Place a chair, and leave the room.’
  • ‘Yes, your Worship.’
  • ‘Now, ma’am, will you state your business?’ said the magistrate.
  • ‘It is of a very painful kind, Sir,’ said Miss Witherfield.
  • ‘Very likely, ma’am,’ said the magistrate. ‘Compose your feelings,
  • ma’am.’ Here Mr. Nupkins looked benignant. ‘And then tell me what legal
  • business brings you here, ma’am.’ Here the magistrate triumphed over the
  • man; and he looked stern again.
  • ‘It is very distressing to me, Sir, to give this information,’ said Miss
  • Witherfield, ‘but I fear a duel is going to be fought here.’
  • ‘Here, ma’am?’ said the magistrate. ‘Where, ma’am?’
  • ‘In Ipswich.’
  • In Ipswich, ma’am! A duel in Ipswich!’ said the magistrate, perfectly
  • aghast at the notion. ‘Impossible, ma’am; nothing of the kind can be
  • contemplated in this town, I am persuaded. Bless my soul, ma’am, are you
  • aware of the activity of our local magistracy? Do you happen to have
  • heard, ma’am, that I rushed into a prize-ring on the fourth of May last,
  • attended by only sixty special constables; and, at the hazard of falling
  • a sacrifice to the angry passions of an infuriated multitude, prohibited
  • a pugilistic contest between the Middlesex Dumpling and the Suffolk
  • Bantam? A duel in Ipswich, ma’am? I don’t think--I do not think,’ said
  • the magistrate, reasoning with himself, ‘that any two men can have had
  • the hardihood to plan such a breach of the peace, in this town.’
  • ‘My information is, unfortunately, but too correct,’ said the middle-
  • aged lady; ‘I was present at the quarrel.’
  • ‘It’s a most extraordinary thing,’ said the astounded magistrate.
  • ‘Muzzle!’
  • ‘Yes, your Worship.’
  • ‘Send Mr. Jinks here, directly! Instantly.’
  • ‘Yes, your Worship.’
  • Muzzle retired; and a pale, sharp-nosed, half-fed, shabbily-clad clerk,
  • of middle age, entered the room.
  • ‘Mr. Jinks,’ said the magistrate. ‘Mr. Jinks.’
  • ‘Sir,’ said Mr. Jinks.
  • ‘This lady, Mr. Jinks, has come here, to give information of an intended
  • duel in this town.’
  • Mr. Jinks, not knowing exactly what to do, smiled a dependent’s smile.
  • ‘What are you laughing at, Mr. Jinks?’ said the magistrate.
  • Mr. Jinks looked serious instantly.
  • ‘Mr. Jinks,’ said the magistrate, ‘you’re a fool.’
  • Mr. Jinks looked humbly at the great man, and bit the top of his pen.
  • ‘You may see something very comical in this information, Sir--but I can
  • tell you this, Mr. Jinks, that you have very little to laugh at,’ said
  • the magistrate.
  • The hungry-looking Jinks sighed, as if he were quite aware of the fact
  • of his having very little indeed to be merry about; and, being ordered
  • to take the lady’s information, shambled to a seat, and proceeded to
  • write it down.
  • ‘This man, Pickwick, is the principal, I understand?’ said the
  • magistrate, when the statement was finished.
  • ‘He is,’ said the middle-aged lady.
  • ‘And the other rioter--what’s his name, Mr. Jinks?’
  • ‘Tupman, Sir.’
  • Tupman is the second?’
  • ‘Yes.’
  • ‘The other principal, you say, has absconded, ma’am?’
  • ‘Yes,’ replied Miss Witherfield, with a short cough.
  • ‘Very well,’ said the magistrate. ‘These are two cut-throats from
  • London, who have come down here to destroy his Majesty’s population,
  • thinking that at this distance from the capital, the arm of the law is
  • weak and paralysed. They shall be made an example of. Draw up the
  • warrants, Mr. Jinks. Muzzle!’
  • ‘Yes, your Worship.’
  • ‘Is Grummer downstairs?’
  • ‘Yes, your Worship.’
  • ‘Send him up.’
  • The obsequious Muzzle retired, and presently returned, introducing the
  • elderly gentleman in the top-boots, who was chiefly remarkable for a
  • bottle-nose, a hoarse voice, a snuff-coloured surtout, and a wandering
  • eye.
  • ‘Grummer,’ said the magistrate.
  • ‘Your Wash-up.’
  • ‘Is the town quiet now?’
  • ‘Pretty well, your Wash-up,’ replied Grummer. ‘Pop’lar feeling has in a
  • measure subsided, consekens o’ the boys having dispersed to cricket.’
  • ‘Nothing but vigorous measures will do in these times, Grummer,’ said
  • the magistrate, in a determined manner. ‘If the authority of the king’s
  • officers is set at naught, we must have the riot act read. If the civil
  • power cannot protect these windows, Grummer, the military must protect
  • the civil power, and the windows too. I believe that is a maxim of the
  • constitution, Mr. Jinks?’
  • Certainly, sir,’ said Jinks.
  • ‘Very good,’ said the magistrate, signing the warrants. ‘Grummer, you
  • will bring these persons before me, this afternoon. You will find them
  • at the Great White Horse. You recollect the case of the Middlesex
  • Dumpling and the Suffolk Bantam, Grummer?’
  • Mr. Grummer intimated, by a retrospective shake of the head, that he
  • should never forget it--as indeed it was not likely he would, so long as
  • it continued to be cited daily.
  • ‘This is even more unconstitutional,’ said the magistrate; ‘this is even
  • a greater breach of the peace, and a grosser infringement of his
  • Majesty’s prerogative. I believe duelling is one of his Majesty’s most
  • undoubted prerogatives, Mr. Jinks?’
  • ‘Expressly stipulated in Magna Charta, sir,’ said Mr. Jinks.
  • ‘One of the brightest jewels in the British crown, wrung from his
  • Majesty by the barons, I believe, Mr. Jinks?’ said the magistrate.
  • ‘Just so, Sir,’ replied Mr. Jinks.
  • ‘Very well,’ said the magistrate, drawing himself up proudly, ‘it shall
  • not be violated in this portion of his dominions. Grummer, procure
  • assistance, and execute these warrants with as little delay as possible.
  • Muzzle!’
  • ‘Yes, your Worship.’
  • ‘Show the lady out.’
  • Miss Witherfield retired, deeply impressed with the magistrate’s
  • learning and research; Mr. Nupkins retired to lunch; Mr. Jinks retired
  • within himself--that being the only retirement he had, except the sofa-
  • bedstead in the small parlour which was occupied by his landlady’s
  • family in the daytime--and Mr. Grummer retired, to wipe out, by his mode
  • of discharging his present commission, the insult which had been
  • fastened upon himself, and the other representative of his Majesty--the
  • beadle--in the course of the morning.
  • While these resolute and determined preparations for the conservation of
  • the king’s peace were pending, Mr. Pickwick and his friends, wholly
  • unconscious of the mighty events in progress, had sat quietly down to
  • dinner; and very talkative and companionable they all were. Mr. Pickwick
  • was in the very act of relating his adventure of the preceding night, to
  • the great amusement of his followers, Mr. Tupman especially, when the
  • door opened, and a somewhat forbidding countenance peeped into the room.
  • The eyes in the forbidding countenance looked very earnestly at Mr.
  • Pickwick, for several seconds, and were to all appearance satisfied with
  • their investigation; for the body to which the forbidding countenance
  • belonged, slowly brought itself into the apartment, and presented the
  • form of an elderly individual in top-boots--not to keep the reader any
  • longer in suspense, in short, the eyes were the wandering eyes of Mr.
  • Grummer, and the body was the body of the same gentleman.
  • Mr. Grummer’s mode of proceeding was professional, but peculiar. His
  • first act was to bolt the door on the inside; his second, to polish his
  • head and countenance very carefully with a cotton handkerchief; his
  • third, to place his hat, with the cotton handkerchief in it, on the
  • nearest chair; and his fourth, to produce from the breast-pocket of his
  • coat a short truncheon, surmounted by a brazen crown, with which he
  • beckoned to Mr. Pickwick with a grave and ghost-like air.
  • Mr. Snodgrass was the first to break the astonished silence. He looked
  • steadily at Mr. Grummer for a brief space, and then said emphatically,
  • ‘This is a private room, Sir. A private room.’
  • Mr. Grummer shook his head, and replied, ‘No room’s private to his
  • Majesty when the street door’s once passed. That’s law. Some people
  • maintains that an Englishman’s house is his castle. That’s gammon.’
  • The Pickwickians gazed on each other with wondering eyes.
  • ‘Which is Mr. Tupman?’ inquired Mr. Grummer. He had an intuitive
  • perception of Mr. Pickwick; he knew him at once.
  • ‘My name’s Tupman,’ said that gentleman.
  • ‘My name’s Law,’ said Mr. Grummer.
  • ‘What?’ said Mr. Tupman.
  • ‘Law,’ replied Mr. Grummer--‘Law, civil power, and exekative; them’s my
  • titles; here’s my authority. Blank Tupman, blank Pickwick--against the
  • peace of our sufferin’ lord the king--stattit in the case made and
  • purwided--and all regular. I apprehend you Pickwick! Tupman--the
  • aforesaid.’
  • ‘What do you mean by this insolence?’ said Mr. Tupman, starting up;
  • ‘leave the room!’
  • ‘Hollo,’ said Mr. Grummer, retreating very expeditiously to the door,
  • and opening it an inch or two, ‘Dubbley.’
  • ‘Well,’ said a deep voice from the passage.
  • ‘Come for’ard, Dubbley.’
  • At the word of command, a dirty-faced man, something over six feet high,
  • and stout in proportion, squeezed himself through the half-open door
  • (making his face very red in the process), and entered the room.
  • ‘Is the other specials outside, Dubbley?’ inquired Mr. Grummer.
  • Mr. Dubbley, who was a man of few words, nodded assent.
  • ‘Order in the diwision under your charge, Dubbley,’ said Mr. Grummer.
  • Mr. Dubbley did as he was desired; and half a dozen men, each with a
  • short truncheon and a brass crown, flocked into the room. Mr. Grummer
  • pocketed his staff, and looked at Mr. Dubbley; Mr. Dubbley pocketed his
  • staff and looked at the division; the division pocketed their staves and
  • looked at Messrs. Tupman and Pickwick.
  • Mr. Pickwick and his followers rose as one man.
  • ‘What is the meaning of this atrocious intrusion upon my privacy?’ said
  • Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Who dares apprehend me?’ said Mr. Tupman.
  • ‘What do you want here, scoundrels?’ said Mr. Snodgrass.
  • Mr. Winkle said nothing, but he fixed his eyes on Grummer, and bestowed
  • a look upon him, which, if he had had any feeling, must have pierced his
  • brain. As it was, however, it had no visible effect on him whatever.
  • When the executive perceived that Mr. Pickwick and his friends were
  • disposed to resist the authority of the law, they very significantly
  • turned up their coat sleeves, as if knocking them down in the first
  • instance, and taking them up afterwards, were a mere professional act
  • which had only to be thought of to be done, as a matter of course. This
  • demonstration was not lost upon Mr. Pickwick. He conferred a few moments
  • with Mr. Tupman apart, and then signified his readiness to proceed to
  • the mayor’s residence, merely begging the parties then and there
  • assembled, to take notice, that it was his firm intention to resent this
  • monstrous invasion of his privileges as an Englishman, the instant he
  • was at liberty; whereat the parties then and there assembled laughed
  • very heartily, with the single exception of Mr. Grummer, who seemed to
  • consider that any slight cast upon the divine right of magistrates was a
  • species of blasphemy not to be tolerated.
  • But when Mr. Pickwick had signified his readiness to bow to the laws of
  • his country, and just when the waiters, and hostlers, and chambermaids,
  • and post-boys, who had anticipated a delightful commotion from his
  • threatened obstinacy, began to turn away, disappointed and disgusted, a
  • difficulty arose which had not been foreseen. With every sentiment of
  • veneration for the constituted authorities, Mr. Pickwick resolutely
  • protested against making his appearance in the public streets,
  • surrounded and guarded by the officers of justice, like a common
  • criminal. Mr. Grummer, in the then disturbed state of public feeling
  • (for it was half-holiday, and the boys had not yet gone home), as
  • resolutely protested against walking on the opposite side of the way,
  • and taking Mr. Pickwick’s parole that he would go straight to the
  • magistrate’s; and both Mr. Pickwick and Mr. Tupman as strenuously
  • objected to the expense of a post-coach, which was the only respectable
  • conveyance that could be obtained. The dispute ran high, and the dilemma
  • lasted long; and just as the executive were on the point of overcoming
  • Mr. Pickwick’s objection to walking to the magistrate’s, by the trite
  • expedient of carrying him thither, it was recollected that there stood
  • in the inn yard, an old sedan-chair, which, having been originally built
  • for a gouty gentleman with funded property, would hold Mr. Pickwick and
  • Mr. Tupman, at least as conveniently as a modern post-chaise. The chair
  • was hired, and brought into the hall; Mr. Pickwick and Mr. Tupman
  • squeezed themselves inside, and pulled down the blinds; a couple of
  • chairmen were speedily found; and the procession started in grand order.
  • The specials surrounded the body of the vehicle; Mr. Grummer and Mr.
  • Dubbley marched triumphantly in front; Mr. Snodgrass and Mr. Winkle
  • walked arm-in-arm behind; and the unsoaped of Ipswich brought up the
  • rear.
  • The shopkeepers of the town, although they had a very indistinct notion
  • of the nature of the offence, could not but be much edified and
  • gratified by this spectacle. Here was the strong arm of the law, coming
  • down with twenty gold-beater force, upon two offenders from the
  • metropolis itself; the mighty engine was directed by their own
  • magistrate, and worked by their own officers; and both the criminals, by
  • their united efforts, were securely shut up, in the narrow compass of
  • one sedan-chair. Many were the expressions of approval and admiration
  • which greeted Mr. Grummer, as he headed the cavalcade, staff in hand;
  • loud and long were the shouts raised by the unsoaped; and amidst these
  • united testimonials of public approbation, the procession moved slowly
  • and majestically along.
  • Mr. Weller, habited in his morning jacket, with the black calico
  • sleeves, was returning in a rather desponding state from an unsuccessful
  • survey of the mysterious house with the green gate, when, raising his
  • eyes, he beheld a crowd pouring down the street, surrounding an object
  • which had very much the appearance of a sedan-chair. Willing to divert
  • his thoughts from the failure of his enterprise, he stepped aside to see
  • the crowd pass; and finding that they were cheering away, very much to
  • their own satisfaction, forthwith began (by way of raising his spirits)
  • to cheer too, with all his might and main.
  • Mr. Grummer passed, and Mr. Dubbley passed, and the sedan passed, and
  • the bodyguard of specials passed, and Sam was still responding to the
  • enthusiastic cheers of the mob, and waving his hat about as if he were
  • in the very last extreme of the wildest joy (though, of course, he had
  • not the faintest idea of the matter in hand), when he was suddenly
  • stopped by the unexpected appearance of Mr. Winkle and Mr. Snodgrass.
  • ‘What’s the row, gen’l’m’n? ’cried Sam. ‘Who have they got in this here
  • watch-box in mournin’?’
  • Both gentlemen replied together, but their words were lost in the
  • tumult.
  • ‘Who is it?’ cried Sam again.
  • Once more was a joint reply returned; and, though the words were
  • inaudible, Sam saw by the motion of the two pairs of lips that they had
  • uttered the magic word ‘Pickwick.’
  • This was enough. In another minute Mr. Weller had made his way through
  • the crowd, stopped the chairmen, and confronted the portly Grummer.
  • ‘Hollo, old gen’l’m’n!’ said Sam. ‘Who have you got in this here
  • conweyance?’
  • ‘Stand back,’ said Mr. Grummer, whose dignity, like the dignity of a
  • great many other men, had been wondrously augmented by a little
  • popularity.
  • ‘Knock him down, if he don’t,’ said Mr. Dubbley.
  • ‘I’m wery much obliged to you, old gen’l’m’n,’ replied Sam, ‘for
  • consulting my conwenience, and I’m still more obliged to the other
  • gen’l’m’n, who looks as if he’d just escaped from a giant’s carrywan,
  • for his wery ‘andsome suggestion; but I should prefer your givin’ me a
  • answer to my question, if it’s all the same to you.--How are you, Sir?’
  • This last observation was addressed with a patronising air to Mr.
  • Pickwick, who was peeping through the front window.
  • Mr. Grummer, perfectly speechless with indignation, dragged the
  • truncheon with the brass crown from its particular pocket, and
  • flourished it before Sam’s eyes.
  • ‘Ah,’ said Sam, ‘it’s wery pretty, ‘specially the crown, which is
  • uncommon like the real one.’
  • ‘Stand back!’ said the outraged Mr. Grummer. By way of adding force to
  • the command, he thrust the brass emblem of royalty into Sam’s neckcloth
  • with one hand, and seized Sam’s collar with the other--a compliment
  • which Mr. Weller returned by knocking him down out of hand, having
  • previously with the utmost consideration, knocked down a chairman for
  • him to lie upon.
  • Whether Mr. Winkle was seized with a temporary attack of that species of
  • insanity which originates in a sense of injury, or animated by this
  • display of Mr. Weller’s valour, is uncertain; but certain it is, that he
  • no sooner saw Mr. Grummer fall than he made a terrific onslaught on a
  • small boy who stood next him; whereupon Mr. Snodgrass, in a truly
  • Christian spirit, and in order that he might take no one unawares,
  • announced in a very loud tone that he was going to begin, and proceeded
  • to take off his coat with the utmost deliberation. He was immediately
  • surrounded and secured; and it is but common justice both to him and Mr.
  • Winkle to say, that they did not make the slightest attempt to rescue
  • either themselves or Mr. Weller; who, after a most vigorous resistance,
  • was overpowered by numbers and taken prisoner. The procession then
  • reformed; the chairmen resumed their stations; and the march was re-
  • commenced.
  • Mr. Pickwick’s indignation during the whole of this proceeding was
  • beyond all bounds. He could just see Sam upsetting the specials, and
  • flying about in every direction; and that was all he could see, for the
  • sedan doors wouldn’t open, and the blinds wouldn’t pull up. At length,
  • with the assistance of Mr. Tupman, he managed to push open the roof; and
  • mounting on the seat, and steadying himself as well as he could, by
  • placing his hand on that gentleman’s shoulder, Mr. Pickwick proceeded to
  • address the multitude; to dwell upon the unjustifiable manner in which
  • he had been treated; and to call upon them to take notice that his
  • servant had been first assaulted. In this order they reached the
  • magistrate’s house; the chairmen trotting, the prisoners following, Mr.
  • Pickwick oratorising, and the crowd shouting.
  • CHAPTER XXV. SHOWING, AMONG A VARIETY OF PLEASANT MATTERS, HOW MAJESTIC
  • AND IMPARTIAL MR. NUPKINS WAS; AND HOW MR. WELLER RETURNED MR. JOB
  • TROTTER’S SHUTTLECOCK AS HEAVILY AS IT CAME--WITH ANOTHER MATTER, WHICH
  • WILL BE FOUND IN ITS PLACE
  • Violent was Mr. Weller’s indignation as he was borne along; numerous
  • were the allusions to the personal appearance and demeanour of Mr.
  • Grummer and his companion; and valorous were the defiances to any six of
  • the gentlemen present, in which he vented his dissatisfaction. Mr.
  • Snodgrass and Mr. Winkle listened with gloomy respect to the torrent of
  • eloquence which their leader poured forth from the sedan-chair, and the
  • rapid course of which not all Mr. Tupman’s earnest entreaties to have
  • the lid of the vehicle closed, were able to check for an instant. But
  • Mr. Weller’s anger quickly gave way to curiosity when the procession
  • turned down the identical courtyard in which he had met with the runaway
  • Job Trotter; and curiosity was exchanged for a feeling of the most
  • gleeful astonishment, when the all-important Mr. Grummer, commanding the
  • sedan-bearers to halt, advanced with dignified and portentous steps to
  • the very green gate from which Job Trotter had emerged, and gave a
  • mighty pull at the bell-handle which hung at the side thereof. The ring
  • was answered by a very smart and pretty-faced servant-girl, who, after
  • holding up her hands in astonishment at the rebellious appearance of the
  • prisoners, and the impassioned language of Mr. Pickwick, summoned Mr.
  • Muzzle. Mr. Muzzle opened one half of the carriage gate, to admit the
  • sedan, the captured ones, and the specials; and immediately slammed it
  • in the faces of the mob, who, indignant at being excluded, and anxious
  • to see what followed, relieved their feelings by kicking at the gate and
  • ringing the bell, for an hour or two afterwards. In this amusement they
  • all took part by turns, except three or four fortunate individuals, who,
  • having discovered a grating in the gate, which commanded a view of
  • nothing, stared through it with the indefatigable perseverance with
  • which people will flatten their noses against the front windows of a
  • chemist’s shop, when a drunken man, who has been run over by a dog-cart
  • in the street, is undergoing a surgical inspection in the back-parlour.
  • At the foot of a flight of steps, leading to the house door, which was
  • guarded on either side by an American aloe in a green tub, the sedan-
  • chair stopped. Mr. Pickwick and his friends were conducted into the
  • hall, whence, having been previously announced by Muzzle, and ordered in
  • by Mr. Nupkins, they were ushered into the worshipful presence of that
  • public-spirited officer.
  • The scene was an impressive one, well calculated to strike terror to the
  • hearts of culprits, and to impress them with an adequate idea of the
  • stern majesty of the law. In front of a big book-case, in a big chair,
  • behind a big table, and before a big volume, sat Mr. Nupkins, looking a
  • full size larger than any one of them, big as they were. The table was
  • adorned with piles of papers; and above the farther end of it, appeared
  • the head and shoulders of Mr. Jinks, who was busily engaged in looking
  • as busy as possible. The party having all entered, Muzzle carefully
  • closed the door, and placed himself behind his master’s chair to await
  • his orders. Mr. Nupkins threw himself back with thrilling solemnity, and
  • scrutinised the faces of his unwilling visitors.
  • ‘Now, Grummer, who is that person?’ said Mr. Nupkins, pointing to Mr.
  • Pickwick, who, as the spokesman of his friends, stood hat in hand,
  • bowing with the utmost politeness and respect.
  • ‘This here’s Pickvick, your Wash-up,’ said Grummer.
  • ‘Come, none o’ that ‘ere, old Strike-a-light,’ interposed Mr. Weller,
  • elbowing himself into the front rank. ‘Beg your pardon, sir, but this
  • here officer o’ yourn in the gambooge tops, ‘ull never earn a decent
  • livin’ as a master o’ the ceremonies any vere. This here, sir’ continued
  • Mr. Weller, thrusting Grummer aside, and addressing the magistrate with
  • pleasant familiarity, ‘this here is S. Pickvick, Esquire; this here’s
  • Mr. Tupman; that ‘ere’s Mr. Snodgrass; and farder on, next him on the
  • t’other side, Mr. Winkle--all wery nice gen’l’m’n, Sir, as you’ll be
  • wery happy to have the acquaintance on; so the sooner you commits these
  • here officers o’ yourn to the tread-mill for a month or two, the sooner
  • we shall begin to be on a pleasant understanding. Business first,
  • pleasure arterwards, as King Richard the Third said when he stabbed the
  • t’other king in the Tower, afore he smothered the babbies.’
  • At the conclusion of this address, Mr. Weller brushed his hat with his
  • right elbow, and nodded benignly to Jinks, who had heard him throughout
  • with unspeakable awe.
  • ‘Who is this man, Grummer?’ said the magistrate.
  • ‘Wery desp’rate ch’racter, your Wash-up,’ replied Grummer. ‘He attempted
  • to rescue the prisoners, and assaulted the officers; so we took him into
  • custody, and brought him here.’
  • ‘You did quite right,’ replied the magistrate. ‘He is evidently a
  • desperate ruffian.’
  • ‘He is my servant, Sir,’ said Mr. Pickwick angrily.
  • ‘Oh! he is your servant, is he?’ said Mr. Nupkins. ‘A conspiracy to
  • defeat the ends of justice, and murder its officers. Pickwick’s servant.
  • Put that down, Mr. Jinks.’
  • Mr. Jinks did so.
  • ‘What’s your name, fellow?’ thundered Mr. Nupkins.
  • ‘Veller,’ replied Sam.
  • ‘A very good name for the Newgate Calendar,’ said Mr. Nupkins.
  • This was a joke; so Jinks, Grummer, Dubbley, all the specials, and
  • Muzzle, went into fits of laughter of five minutes’ duration.
  • ‘Put down his name, Mr. Jinks,’ said the magistrate.
  • ‘Two L’s, old feller,’ said Sam.
  • Here an unfortunate special laughed again, whereupon the magistrate
  • threatened to commit him instantly. It is a dangerous thing to laugh at
  • the wrong man, in these cases.
  • ‘Where do you live?’ said the magistrate.
  • ‘Vere ever I can,’ replied Sam.
  • ‘Put down that, Mr. Jinks,’ said the magistrate, who was fast rising
  • into a rage.
  • ‘Score it under,’ said Sam.
  • ‘He is a vagabond, Mr. Jinks,’ said the magistrate. ‘He is a vagabond on
  • his own statement,--is he not, Mr. Jinks?’
  • ‘Certainly, Sir.’
  • ‘Then I’ll commit him--I’ll commit him as such,’ said Mr. Nupkins.
  • ‘This is a wery impartial country for justice, ‘said Sam.’ There ain’t a
  • magistrate goin’ as don’t commit himself twice as he commits other
  • people.’
  • At this sally another special laughed, and then tried to look so
  • supernaturally solemn, that the magistrate detected him immediately.
  • ‘Grummer,’ said Mr. Nupkins, reddening with passion, ‘how dare you
  • select such an inefficient and disreputable person for a special
  • constable, as that man? How dare you do it, Sir?’
  • ‘I am very sorry, your Wash-up,’ stammered Grummer.
  • ‘Very sorry!’ said the furious magistrate. ‘You shall repent of this
  • neglect of duty, Mr. Grummer; you shall be made an example of. Take that
  • fellow’s staff away. He’s drunk. You’re drunk, fellow.’
  • ‘I am not drunk, your Worship,’ said the man.
  • ‘You _are _drunk,’ returned the magistrate. ‘How dare you say you are
  • not drunk, Sir, when I say you are? Doesn’t he smell of spirits,
  • Grummer?’
  • ‘Horrid, your Wash-up,’ replied Grummer, who had a vague impression that
  • there was a smell of rum somewhere.
  • ‘I knew he did,’ said Mr. Nupkins. ‘I saw he was drunk when he first
  • came into the room, by his excited eye. Did you observe his excited eye,
  • Mr. Jinks?’
  • ‘Certainly, Sir.’
  • ‘I haven’t touched a drop of spirits this morning,’ said the man, who
  • was as sober a fellow as need be.
  • ‘How dare you tell me a falsehood?’ said Mr. Nupkins. ‘Isn’t he drunk at
  • this moment, Mr. Jinks?’
  • ‘Certainly, Sir,’ replied Jinks.
  • ‘Mr. Jinks,’ said the magistrate, ‘I shall commit that man for contempt.
  • Make out his committal, Mr. Jinks.’
  • And committed the special would have been, only Jinks, who was the
  • magistrate’s adviser (having had a legal education of three years in a
  • country attorney’s office), whispered the magistrate that he thought it
  • wouldn’t do; so the magistrate made a speech, and said, that in
  • consideration of the special’s family, he would merely reprimand and
  • discharge him. Accordingly, the special was abused, vehemently, for a
  • quarter of an hour, and sent about his business; and Grummer, Dubbley,
  • Muzzle, and all the other specials, murmured their admiration of the
  • magnanimity of Mr. Nupkins.
  • ‘Now, Mr. Jinks,’ said the magistrate, ‘swear Grummer.’
  • Grummer was sworn directly; but as Grummer wandered, and Mr. Nupkins’s
  • dinner was nearly ready, Mr. Nupkins cut the matter short, by putting
  • leading questions to Grummer, which Grummer answered as nearly in the
  • affirmative as he could. So the examination went off, all very smooth
  • and comfortable, and two assaults were proved against Mr. Weller, and a
  • threat against Mr. Winkle, and a push against Mr. Snodgrass. When all
  • this was done to the magistrate’s satisfaction, the magistrate and Mr.
  • Jinks consulted in whispers.
  • The consultation having lasted about ten minutes, Mr. Jinks retired to
  • his end of the table; and the magistrate, with a preparatory cough, drew
  • himself up in his chair, and was proceeding to commence his address,
  • when Mr. Pickwick interposed.
  • ‘I beg your pardon, sir, for interrupting you,’ said Mr. Pickwick; ‘but
  • before you proceed to express, and act upon, any opinion you may have
  • formed on the statements which have been made here, I must claim my
  • right to be heard so far as I am personally concerned.’
  • ‘Hold your tongue, Sir,’ said the magistrate peremptorily.
  • ‘I must submit to you, Sir--’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Hold your tongue, sir,’ interposed the magistrate, ‘or I shall order an
  • officer to remove you.’
  • ‘You may order your officers to do whatever you please, Sir,’ said Mr.
  • Pickwick; ‘and I have no doubt, from the specimen I have had of the
  • subordination preserved amongst them, that whatever you order, they will
  • execute, Sir; but I shall take the liberty, Sir, of claiming my right to
  • be heard, until I am removed by force.’
  • ‘Pickvick and principle!’ exclaimed Mr. Weller, in a very audible voice.
  • ‘Sam, be quiet,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Dumb as a drum vith a hole in it, Sir,’ replied Sam.
  • Mr. Nupkins looked at Mr. Pickwick with a gaze of intense astonishment,
  • at his displaying such unwonted temerity; and was apparently about to
  • return a very angry reply, when Mr. Jinks pulled him by the sleeve, and
  • whispered something in his ear. To this, the magistrate returned a half-
  • audible answer, and then the whispering was renewed. Jinks was evidently
  • remonstrating.
  • At length the magistrate, gulping down, with a very bad grace, his
  • disinclination to hear anything more, turned to Mr. Pickwick, and said
  • sharply, ‘What do you want to say?’
  • ‘First,’ said Mr. Pickwick, sending a look through his spectacles, under
  • which even Nupkins quailed, ‘first, I wish to know what I and my friend
  • have been brought here for?’
  • ‘Must I tell him?’ whispered the magistrate to Jinks.
  • ‘I think you had better, sir,’ whispered Jinks to the magistrate.
  • ‘An information has been sworn before me,’ said the magistrate, ‘that it
  • is apprehended you are going to fight a duel, and that the other man,
  • Tupman, is your aider and abettor in it. Therefore--eh, Mr. Jinks?’
  • ‘Certainly, sir.’
  • ‘Therefore, I call upon you both, to--I think that’s the course, Mr.
  • Jinks?’
  • ‘Certainly, Sir.’
  • ‘To--to--what, Mr. Jinks?’ said the magistrate pettishly.
  • ‘To find bail, sir.’
  • ‘Yes. Therefore, I call upon you both--as I was about to say when I was
  • interrupted by my clerk--to find bail.’
  • Good bail,’ whispered Mr. Jinks.
  • ‘I shall require good bail,’ said the magistrate.
  • ‘Town’s-people,’ whispered Jinks.
  • ‘They must be townspeople,’ said the magistrate.
  • ‘Fifty pounds each,’ whispered Jinks, ‘and householders, of course.’
  • ‘I shall require two sureties of fifty pounds each,’ said the magistrate
  • aloud, with great dignity, ‘and they must be householders, of course.’
  • ‘But bless my heart, Sir,’ said Mr. Pickwick, who, together with Mr.
  • Tupman, was all amazement and indignation; ‘we are perfect strangers in
  • this town. I have as little knowledge of any householders here, as I
  • have intention of fighting a duel with anybody.’
  • ‘I dare say,’ replied the magistrate, ‘I dare say--don’t you, Mr.
  • Jinks?’
  • ‘Certainly, Sir.’
  • ‘Have you anything more to say?’ inquired the magistrate.
  • Mr. Pickwick had a great deal more to say, which he would no doubt have
  • said, very little to his own advantage, or the magistrate’s
  • satisfaction, if he had not, the moment he ceased speaking, been pulled
  • by the sleeve by Mr. Weller, with whom he was immediately engaged in so
  • earnest a conversation, that he suffered the magistrate’s inquiry to
  • pass wholly unnoticed. Mr. Nupkins was not the man to ask a question of
  • the kind twice over; and so, with another preparatory cough, he
  • proceeded, amidst the reverential and admiring silence of the
  • constables, to pronounce his decision.
  • He should fine Weller two pounds for the first assault, and three pounds
  • for the second. He should fine Winkle two pounds, and Snodgrass one
  • pound, besides requiring them to enter into their own recognisances to
  • keep the peace towards all his Majesty’s subjects, and especially
  • towards his liege servant, Daniel Grummer. Pickwick and Tupman he had
  • already held to bail.
  • Immediately on the magistrate ceasing to speak, Mr. Pickwick, with a
  • smile mantling on his again good-humoured countenance, stepped forward,
  • and said--
  • ‘I beg the magistrate’s pardon, but may I request a few minutes’ private
  • conversation with him, on a matter of deep importance to himself?’
  • ‘What?’ said the magistrate. Mr. Pickwick repeated his request.
  • ‘This is a most extraordinary request,’ said the magistrate. ‘A private
  • interview?’
  • ‘A private interview,’ replied Mr. Pickwick firmly; ‘only, as a part of
  • the information which I wish to communicate is derived from my servant,
  • I should wish him to be present.’
  • The magistrate looked at Mr. Jinks; Mr. Jinks looked at the magistrate;
  • the officers looked at each other in amazement. Mr. Nupkins turned
  • suddenly pale. Could the man Weller, in a moment of remorse, have
  • divulged some secret conspiracy for his assassination? It was a dreadful
  • thought. He was a public man; and he turned paler, as he thought of
  • Julius Caesar and Mr. Perceval.
  • The magistrate looked at Mr. Pickwick again, and beckoned Mr. Jinks.
  • ‘What do you think of this request, Mr. Jinks?’ murmured Mr. Nupkins.
  • Mr. Jinks, who didn’t exactly know what to think of it, and was afraid
  • he might offend, smiled feebly, after a dubious fashion, and, screwing
  • up the corners of his mouth, shook his head slowly from side to side.
  • ‘Mr. Jinks,’ said the magistrate gravely, ‘you are an ass.’
  • At this little expression of opinion, Mr. Jinks smiled again--rather
  • more feebly than before--and edged himself, by degrees, back into his
  • own corner.
  • Mr. Nupkins debated the matter within himself for a few seconds, and
  • then, rising from his chair, and requesting Mr. Pickwick and Sam to
  • follow him, led the way into a small room which opened into the justice-
  • parlour. Desiring Mr. Pickwick to walk to the upper end of the little
  • apartment, and holding his hand upon the half-closed door, that he might
  • be able to effect an immediate escape, in case there was the least
  • tendency to a display of hostilities, Mr. Nupkins expressed his
  • readiness to hear the communication, whatever it might be.
  • ‘I will come to the point at once, sir,’ said Mr. Pickwick; ‘it affects
  • yourself and your credit materially. I have every reason to believe,
  • Sir, that you are harbouring in your house a gross impostor!’
  • ‘Two,’ interrupted Sam. ‘Mulberry agin all natur, for tears and
  • willainny!’
  • ‘Sam,’ said Mr. Pickwick, ‘if I am to render myself intelligible to this
  • gentleman, I must beg you to control your feelings.’
  • ‘Wery sorry, Sir,’ replied Mr. Weller; ‘but when I think o’ that ‘ere
  • Job, I can’t help opening the walve a inch or two.’
  • ‘In one word, Sir,’ said Mr. Pickwick, ‘is my servant right in
  • suspecting that a certain Captain Fitz-Marshall is in the habit of
  • visiting here? Because,’ added Mr. Pickwick, as he saw that Mr. Nupkins
  • was about to offer a very indignant interruption, ‘because if he be, I
  • know that person to be a--’
  • ‘Hush, hush,’ said Mr. Nupkins, closing the door. ‘Know him to be what,
  • Sir?’
  • ‘An unprincipled adventurer--a dishonourable character--a man who preys
  • upon society, and makes easily-deceived people his dupes, Sir; his
  • absurd, his foolish, his wretched dupes, Sir,’ said the excited Mr.
  • Pickwick.
  • ‘Dear me,’ said Mr. Nupkins, turning very red, and altering his whole
  • manner directly. ‘Dear me, Mr.--’
  • ‘Pickvick,’ said Sam.
  • ‘Pickwick,’ said the magistrate, ‘dear me, Mr. Pickwick--pray take a
  • seat--you cannot mean this? Captain Fitz-Marshall!’
  • ‘Don’t call him a cap’en,’ said Sam, ‘nor Fitz-Marshall neither; he
  • ain’t neither one nor t’other. He’s a strolling actor, he is, and his
  • name’s Jingle; and if ever there was a wolf in a mulberry suit, that
  • ‘ere Job Trotter’s him.’
  • ‘It is very true, Sir,’ said Mr. Pickwick, replying to the magistrate’s
  • look of amazement; ‘my only business in this town, is to expose the
  • person of whom we now speak.’
  • Mr. Pickwick proceeded to pour into the horror-stricken ear of Mr.
  • Nupkins, an abridged account of all Mr. Jingle’s atrocities. He related
  • how he had first met him; how he had eloped with Miss Wardle; how he had
  • cheerfully resigned the lady for a pecuniary consideration; how he had
  • entrapped himself into a lady’s boarding-school at midnight; and how he
  • (Mr. Pickwick) now felt it his duty to expose his assumption of his
  • present name and rank.
  • As the narrative proceeded, all the warm blood in the body of Mr.
  • Nupkins tingled up into the very tips of his ears. He had picked up the
  • captain at a neighbouring race-course. Charmed with his long list of
  • aristocratic acquaintance, his extensive travel, and his fashionable
  • demeanour, Mrs. Nupkins and Miss Nupkins had exhibited Captain Fitz-
  • Marshall, and quoted Captain Fitz-Marshall, and hurled Captain Fitz-
  • Marshall at the devoted heads of their select circle of acquaintance,
  • until their bosom friends, Mrs. Porkenham and the Misses Porkenhams, and
  • Mr. Sidney Porkenham, were ready to burst with jealousy and despair. And
  • now, to hear, after all, that he was a needy adventurer, a strolling
  • player, and if not a swindler, something so very like it, that it was
  • hard to tell the difference! Heavens! what would the Porkenhams say!
  • What would be the triumph of Mr. Sidney Porkenham when he found that his
  • addresses had been slighted for such a rival! How should he, Nupkins,
  • meet the eye of old Porkenham at the next quarter-sessions! And what a
  • handle would it be for the opposition magisterial party if the story got
  • abroad!
  • ‘But after all,’ said Mr. Nupkins, brightening for a moment, after a
  • long pause; ‘after all, this is a mere statement. Captain Fitz-Marshall
  • is a man of very engaging manners, and, I dare say, has many enemies.
  • What proof have you of the truth of these representations?’
  • ‘Confront me with him,’ said Mr. Pickwick, ‘that is all I ask, and all I
  • require. Confront him with me and my friends here; you will want no
  • further proof.’
  • ‘Why,’ said Mr. Nupkins, ‘that might be very easily done, for he will be
  • here to-night, and then there would be no occasion to make the matter
  • public, just--just--for the young man’s own sake, you know. I--I--should
  • like to consult Mrs. Nupkins on the propriety of the step, in the first
  • instance, though. At all events, Mr. Pickwick, we must despatch this
  • legal business before we can do anything else. Pray step back into the
  • next room.’
  • Into the next room they went.
  • ‘Grummer,’ said the magistrate, in an awful voice.
  • ‘Your Wash-up,’ replied Grummer, with the smile of a favourite.
  • ‘Come, come, Sir,’ said the magistrate sternly, ‘don’t let me see any of
  • this levity here. It is very unbecoming, and I can assure you that you
  • have very little to smile at. Was the account you gave me just now
  • strictly true? Now be careful, sir!’
  • Your Wash-up,’ stammered Grummer, ‘I-’
  • ‘Oh, you are confused, are you?’ said the magistrate. ‘Mr. Jinks, you
  • observe this confusion?’
  • ‘Certainly, Sir,’ replied Jinks.
  • ‘Now,’ said the magistrate, ‘repeat your statement, Grummer, and again I
  • warn you to be careful. Mr. Jinks, take his words down.’
  • The unfortunate Grummer proceeded to re-state his complaint, but, what
  • between Mr. Jinks’s taking down his words, and the magistrate’s taking
  • them up, his natural tendency to rambling, and his extreme confusion, he
  • managed to get involved, in something under three minutes, in such a
  • mass of entanglement and contradiction, that Mr. Nupkins at once
  • declared he didn’t believe him. So the fines were remitted, and Mr.
  • Jinks found a couple of bail in no time. And all these solemn
  • proceedings having been satisfactorily concluded, Mr. Grummer was
  • ignominiously ordered out--an awful instance of the instability of human
  • greatness, and the uncertain tenure of great men’s favour.
  • Mrs. Nupkins was a majestic female in a pink gauze turban and a light
  • brown wig. Miss Nupkins possessed all her mamma’s haughtiness without
  • the turban, and all her ill-nature without the wig; and whenever the
  • exercise of these two amiable qualities involved mother and daughter in
  • some unpleasant dilemma, as they not infrequently did, they both
  • concurred in laying the blame on the shoulders of Mr. Nupkins.
  • Accordingly, when Mr. Nupkins sought Mrs. Nupkins, and detailed the
  • communication which had been made by Mr. Pickwick, Mrs. Nupkins suddenly
  • recollected that she had always expected something of the kind; that she
  • had always said it would be so; that her advice was never taken; that
  • she really did not know what Mr. Nupkins supposed she was; and so forth.
  • ‘The idea!’ said Miss Nupkins, forcing a tear of very scanty proportions
  • into the corner of each eye; ‘the idea of my being made such a fool of!’
  • ‘Ah! you may thank your papa, my dear,’ said Mrs. Nupkins; ‘how I have
  • implored and begged that man to inquire into the captain’s family
  • connections; how I have urged and entreated him to take some decisive
  • step! I am quite certain nobody would believe it--quite.’
  • ‘But, my dear,’ said Mr. Nupkins.
  • ‘Don’t talk to me, you aggravating thing, don’t!’ said Mrs. Nupkins.
  • ‘My love,’ said Mr. Nupkins, ‘you professed yourself very fond of
  • Captain Fitz-Marshall. You have constantly asked him here, my dear, and
  • you have lost no opportunity of introducing him elsewhere.’
  • ‘Didn’t I say so, Henrietta?’ cried Mrs. Nupkins, appealing to her
  • daughter with the air of a much-injured female. ‘Didn’t I say that your
  • papa would turn round and lay all this at my door? Didn’t I say so?’
  • Here Mrs. Nupkins sobbed.
  • ‘Oh, pa!’ remonstrated Miss Nupkins. And here she sobbed too.
  • ‘Isn’t it too much, when he has brought all this disgrace and ridicule
  • upon us, to taunt me with being the cause of it?’ exclaimed Mrs.
  • Nupkins.
  • ‘How can we ever show ourselves in society!’ said Miss Nupkins.
  • ‘How can we face the Porkenhams?’ cried Mrs. Nupkins.
  • ‘Or the Griggs!’ cried Miss Nupkins.
  • ‘Or the Slummintowkens!’ cried Mrs. Nupkins. ‘But what does your papa
  • care! What is it to _him_!’ At this dreadful reflection, Mrs. Nupkins
  • wept mental anguish, and Miss Nupkins followed on the same side.
  • Mrs. Nupkins’s tears continued to gush forth, with great velocity, until
  • she had gained a little time to think the matter over; when she decided,
  • in her own mind, that the best thing to do would be to ask Mr. Pickwick
  • and his friends to remain until the captain’s arrival, and then to give
  • Mr. Pickwick the opportunity he sought. If it appeared that he had
  • spoken truly, the captain could be turned out of the house without
  • noising the matter abroad, and they could easily account to the
  • Porkenhams for his disappearance, by saying that he had been appointed,
  • through the Court influence of his family, to the governor-generalship
  • of Sierra Leone, of Saugur Point, or any other of those salubrious
  • climates which enchant Europeans so much, that when they once get there,
  • they can hardly ever prevail upon themselves to come back again.
  • When Mrs. Nupkins dried up her tears, Miss Nupkins dried up hers, and
  • Mr. Nupkins was very glad to settle the matter as Mrs. Nupkins had
  • proposed. So Mr. Pickwick and his friends, having washed off all marks
  • of their late encounter, were introduced to the ladies, and soon
  • afterwards to their dinner; and Mr. Weller, whom the magistrate, with
  • his peculiar sagacity, had discovered in half an hour to be one of the
  • finest fellows alive, was consigned to the care and guardianship of Mr.
  • Muzzle, who was specially enjoined to take him below, and make much of
  • him.
  • ‘How de do, sir?’ said Mr. Muzzle, as he conducted Mr. Weller down the
  • kitchen stairs.
  • ‘Why, no considerable change has taken place in the state of my system,
  • since I see you cocked up behind your governor’s chair in the parlour, a
  • little vile ago,’ replied Sam.
  • ‘You will excuse my not taking more notice of you then,’ said Mr.
  • Muzzle. ‘You see, master hadn’t introduced us, then. Lord, how fond he
  • is of you, Mr. Weller, to be sure!’
  • ‘Ah!’ said Sam, ‘what a pleasant chap he is!’
  • ‘Ain’t he?’ replied Mr. Muzzle.
  • ‘So much humour,’ said Sam.
  • ‘And such a man to speak,’ said Mr. Muzzle. ‘How his ideas flow, don’t
  • they?’
  • ‘Wonderful,’ replied Sam; ‘they comes a-pouring out, knocking each
  • other’s heads so fast, that they seems to stun one another; you hardly
  • know what he’s arter, do you?’
  • That’s the great merit of his style of speaking,’ rejoined Mr. Muzzle.
  • ‘Take care of the last step, Mr. Weller. Would you like to wash your
  • hands, sir, before we join the ladies? Here’s a sink, with the water
  • laid on, Sir, and a clean jack towel behind the door.’
  • ‘Ah! perhaps I may as well have a rinse,’ replied Mr. Weller, applying
  • plenty of yellow soap to the towel, and rubbing away till his face shone
  • again. ‘How many ladies are there?’
  • ‘Only two in our kitchen,’ said Mr. Muzzle; ‘cook and ‘ouse-maid. We
  • keep a boy to do the dirty work, and a gal besides, but they dine in the
  • wash’us.’
  • ‘Oh, they dines in the wash’us, do they?’ said Mr. Weller.
  • ‘Yes,’ replied Mr. Muzzle, ‘we tried ‘em at our table when they first
  • come, but we couldn’t keep ‘em. The gal’s manners is dreadful vulgar;
  • and the boy breathes so very hard while he’s eating, that we found it
  • impossible to sit at table with him.’
  • ‘Young grampus!’ said Mr. Weller.
  • ‘Oh, dreadful,’ rejoined Mr. Muzzle; ‘but that is the worst of country
  • service, Mr. Weller; the juniors is always so very savage. This way,
  • sir, if you please, this way.’
  • Preceding Mr. Weller, with the utmost politeness, Mr. Muzzle conducted
  • him into the kitchen.
  • ‘Mary,’ said Mr. Muzzle to the pretty servant-girl, ‘this is Mr. Weller;
  • a gentleman as master has sent down, to be made as comfortable as
  • possible.’
  • ‘And your master’s a knowin’ hand, and has just sent me to the right
  • place,’ said Mr. Weller, with a glance of admiration at Mary. ‘If I wos
  • master o’ this here house, I should alvays find the materials for
  • comfort vere Mary wos.’
  • Lor, Mr. Weller!’ said Mary blushing.
  • ‘Well, I never!’ ejaculated the cook.
  • ‘Bless me, cook, I forgot you,’ said Mr. Muzzle. ‘Mr. Weller, let me
  • introduce you.’
  • ‘How are you, ma’am?’ said Mr. Weller. ‘Wery glad to see you, indeed,
  • and hope our acquaintance may be a long ‘un, as the gen’l’m’n said to
  • the fi’ pun’ note.’
  • When this ceremony of introduction had been gone through, the cook and
  • Mary retired into the back kitchen to titter, for ten minutes; then
  • returning, all giggles and blushes, they sat down to dinner.
  • Mr. Weller’s easy manners and conversational powers had such
  • irresistible influence with his new friends, that before the dinner was
  • half over, they were on a footing of perfect intimacy, and in possession
  • of a full account of the delinquency of Job Trotter.
  • ‘I never could a-bear that Job,’ said Mary.
  • ‘No more you never ought to, my dear,’ replied Mr. Weller.
  • ‘Why not?’ inquired Mary.
  • ‘’Cos ugliness and svindlin’ never ought to be formiliar with elegance
  • and wirtew,’ replied Mr. Weller. ‘Ought they, Mr. Muzzle?’
  • ‘Not by no means,’ replied that gentleman.
  • Here Mary laughed, and said the cook had made her; and the cook laughed,
  • and said she hadn’t.
  • ‘I ha’n’t got a glass,’ said Mary.
  • ‘Drink with me, my dear,’ said Mr. Weller. ‘Put your lips to this here
  • tumbler, and then I can kiss you by deputy.’
  • ‘For shame, Mr. Weller!’ said Mary.
  • ‘What’s a shame, my dear?’
  • ‘Talkin’ in that way.’
  • ‘Nonsense; it ain’t no harm. It’s natur; ain’t it, cook?’
  • ‘Don’t ask me, imperence,’ replied the cook, in a high state of delight;
  • and hereupon the cook and Mary laughed again, till what between the
  • beer, and the cold meat, and the laughter combined, the latter young
  • lady was brought to the verge of choking--an alarming crisis from which
  • she was only recovered by sundry pats on the back, and other necessary
  • attentions, most delicately administered by Mr. Samuel Weller.
  • In the midst of all this jollity and conviviality, a loud ring was heard
  • at the garden gate, to which the young gentleman who took his meals in
  • the wash-house, immediately responded. Mr. Weller was in the height of
  • his attentions to the pretty house-maid; Mr. Muzzle was busy doing the
  • honours of the table; and the cook had just paused to laugh, in the very
  • act of raising a huge morsel to her lips; when the kitchen door opened,
  • and in walked Mr. Job Trotter.
  • We have said in walked Mr. Job Trotter, but the statement is not
  • distinguished by our usual scrupulous adherence to fact. The door opened
  • and Mr. Trotter appeared. He would have walked in, and was in the very
  • act of doing so, indeed, when catching sight of Mr. Weller, he
  • involuntarily shrank back a pace or two, and stood gazing on the
  • unexpected scene before him, perfectly motionless with amazement and
  • terror.
  • ‘Here he is!’ said Sam, rising with great glee. ‘Why we were that wery
  • moment a-speaking o’ you. How are you? Where have you been? Come in.’
  • Laying his hand on the mulberry collar of the unresisting Job, Mr.
  • Weller dragged him into the kitchen; and, locking the door, handed the
  • key to Mr. Muzzle, who very coolly buttoned it up in a side pocket.
  • ‘Well, here’s a game!’ cried Sam. ‘Only think o’ my master havin’ the
  • pleasure o’ meeting yourn upstairs, and me havin’ the joy o’ meetin’ you
  • down here. How are you gettin’ on, and how is the chandlery bis’ness
  • likely to do? Well, I am so glad to see you. How happy you look. It’s
  • quite a treat to see you; ain’t it, Mr. Muzzle?’
  • ‘Quite,’ said Mr. Muzzle.
  • ‘So cheerful he is!’ said Sam.
  • ‘In such good spirits!’ said Muzzle.
  • ‘And so glad to see us--that makes it so much more comfortable,’ said
  • Sam. ‘Sit down; sit down.’
  • Mr. Trotter suffered himself to be forced into a chair by the fireside.
  • He cast his small eyes, first on Mr. Weller, and then on Mr. Muzzle, but
  • said nothing.
  • ‘Well, now,’ said Sam, ‘afore these here ladies, I should jest like to
  • ask you, as a sort of curiosity, whether you don’t consider yourself as
  • nice and well-behaved a young gen’l’m’n, as ever used a pink check
  • pocket-handkerchief, and the number four collection?’
  • ‘And as was ever a-going to be married to a cook,’ said that lady
  • indignantly. ‘The willin!’
  • ‘And leave off his evil ways, and set up in the chandlery line
  • arterwards,’ said the housemaid.
  • ‘Now, I’ll tell you what it is, young man,’ said Mr. Muzzle solemnly,
  • enraged at the last two allusions, ‘this here lady (pointing to the
  • cook) keeps company with me; and when you presume, Sir, to talk of
  • keeping chandlers’ shops with her, you injure me in one of the most
  • delicatest points in which one man can injure another. Do you understand
  • that, Sir?’
  • Here Mr. Muzzle, who had a great notion of his eloquence, in which he
  • imitated his master, paused for a reply.
  • But Mr. Trotter made no reply. So Mr. Muzzle proceeded in a solemn
  • manner--
  • ‘It’s very probable, sir, that you won’t be wanted upstairs for several
  • minutes, Sir, because _my_ master is at this moment particularly engaged
  • in settling the hash of _your _master, Sir; and therefore you’ll have
  • leisure, Sir, for a little private talk with me, Sir. Do you understand
  • that, Sir?’
  • Mr. Muzzle again paused for a reply; and again Mr. Trotter disappointed
  • him.
  • ‘Well, then,’ said Mr. Muzzle, ‘I’m very sorry to have to explain myself
  • before ladies, but the urgency of the case will be my excuse. The back
  • kitchen’s empty, Sir. If you will step in there, Sir, Mr. Weller will
  • see fair, and we can have mutual satisfaction till the bell rings.
  • Follow me, Sir!’
  • As Mr. Muzzle uttered these words, he took a step or two towards the
  • door; and, by way of saving time, began to pull off his coat as he
  • walked along.
  • Now, the cook no sooner heard the concluding words of this desperate
  • challenge, and saw Mr. Muzzle about to put it into execution, than she
  • uttered a loud and piercing shriek; and rushing on Mr. Job Trotter, who
  • rose from his chair on the instant, tore and buffeted his large flat
  • face, with an energy peculiar to excited females, and twining her hands
  • in his long black hair, tore therefrom about enough to make five or six
  • dozen of the very largest-sized mourning-rings. Having accomplished this
  • feat with all the ardour which her devoted love for Mr. Muzzle inspired,
  • she staggered back; and being a lady of very excitable and delicate
  • feelings, she instantly fell under the dresser, and fainted away.
  • At this moment, the bell rang.
  • ‘That’s for you, Job Trotter,’ said Sam; and before Mr. Trotter could
  • offer remonstrance or reply--even before he had time to stanch the
  • wounds inflicted by the insensible lady--Sam seized one arm and Mr.
  • Muzzle the other, and one pulling before, and the other pushing behind,
  • they conveyed him upstairs, and into the parlour.
  • It was an impressive tableau. Alfred Jingle, Esquire, alias Captain
  • Fitz-Marshall, was standing near the door with his hat in his hand, and
  • a smile on his face, wholly unmoved by his very unpleasant situation.
  • Confronting him, stood Mr. Pickwick, who had evidently been inculcating
  • some high moral lesson; for his left hand was beneath his coat tail, and
  • his right extended in air, as was his wont when delivering himself of an
  • impressive address. At a little distance, stood Mr. Tupman with
  • indignant countenance, carefully held back by his two younger friends;
  • at the farther end of the room were Mr. Nupkins, Mrs. Nupkins, and Miss
  • Nupkins, gloomily grand and savagely vexed.
  • ‘What prevents me,’ said Mr. Nupkins, with magisterial dignity, as Job
  • was brought in--‘what prevents me from detaining these men as rogues and
  • impostors? It is a foolish mercy. What prevents me?’
  • ‘Pride, old fellow, pride,’ replied Jingle, quite at his ease. ‘Wouldn’t
  • do--no go--caught a captain, eh?--ha! ha! very good--husband for
  • daughter--biter bit--make it public--not for worlds--look stupid--very!’
  • ‘Wretch,’ said Mr. Nupkins, ‘we scorn your base insinuations.’
  • ‘I always hated him,’ added Henrietta.
  • ‘Oh, of course,’ said Jingle. ‘Tall young man--old lover--Sidney
  • Porkenham--rich--fine fellow--not so rich as captain, though, eh?--turn
  • him away--off with him--anything for captain--nothing like captain
  • anywhere--all the girls--raving mad--eh, Job, eh?’
  • Here Mr. Jingle laughed very heartily; and Job, rubbing his hands with
  • delight, uttered the first sound he had given vent to since he entered
  • the house--a low, noiseless chuckle, which seemed to intimate that he
  • enjoyed his laugh too much, to let any of it escape in sound.
  • ‘Mr. Nupkins,’ said the elder lady,’ this is not a fit conversation for
  • the servants to overhear. Let these wretches be removed.’
  • ‘Certainly, my dear,’ Said Mr. Nupkins. ‘Muzzle!’
  • ‘Your Worship.’
  • ‘Open the front door.’
  • ‘Yes, your Worship.’
  • ‘Leave the house!’ said Mr. Nupkins, waving his hand emphatically.
  • Jingle smiled, and moved towards the door.
  • ‘Stay!’ said Mr. Pickwick. Jingle stopped.
  • ‘I might,’ said Mr. Pickwick, ‘have taken a much greater revenge for the
  • treatment I have experienced at your hands, and that of your
  • hypocritical friend there.’
  • Job Trotter bowed with great politeness, and laid his hand upon his
  • heart.
  • ‘I say,’ said Mr. Pickwick, growing gradually angry, ‘that I might have
  • taken a greater revenge, but I content myself with exposing you, which I
  • consider a duty I owe to society. This is a leniency, Sir, which I hope
  • you will remember.’
  • When Mr. Pickwick arrived at this point, Job Trotter, with facetious
  • gravity, applied his hand to his ear, as if desirous not to lose a
  • syllable he uttered.
  • ‘And I have only to add, sir,’ said Mr. Pickwick, now thoroughly angry,
  • ‘that I consider you a rascal, and a--a--ruffian--and--and worse than
  • any man I ever saw, or heard of, except that pious and sanctified
  • vagabond in the mulberry livery.’
  • ‘Ha! ha!’ said Jingle, ‘good fellow, Pickwick--fine heart--stout old
  • boy--but must _not _be passionate--bad thing, very--bye, bye--see you
  • again some day--keep up your spirits--now, Job--trot!’
  • With these words, Mr. Jingle stuck on his hat in his old fashion, and
  • strode out of the room. Job Trotter paused, looked round, smiled and
  • then with a bow of mock solemnity to Mr. Pickwick, and a wink to Mr.
  • Weller, the audacious slyness of which baffles all description, followed
  • the footsteps of his hopeful master.
  • ‘Sam,’ said Mr. Pickwick, as Mr. Weller was following.
  • ‘Sir.’
  • Stay here.’
  • Mr. Weller seemed uncertain.
  • ‘Stay here,’ repeated Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Mayn’t I polish that ‘ere Job off, in the front garden?’ said Mr.
  • Weller.
  • ‘Certainly not,’ replied Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Mayn’t I kick him out o’ the gate, Sir?’ said Mr. Weller.
  • ‘Not on any account,’ replied his master.
  • For the first time since his engagement, Mr. Weller looked, for a
  • moment, discontented and unhappy. But his countenance immediately
  • cleared up; for the wily Mr. Muzzle, by concealing himself behind the
  • street door, and rushing violently out, at the right instant, contrived
  • with great dexterity to overturn both Mr. Jingle and his attendant, down
  • the flight of steps, into the American aloe tubs that stood beneath.
  • ‘Having discharged my duty, Sir,’ said Mr. Pickwick to Mr. Nupkins, ‘I
  • will, with my friends, bid you farewell. While we thank you for such
  • hospitality as we have received, permit me to assure you, in our joint
  • names, that we should not have accepted it, or have consented to
  • extricate ourselves in this way, from our previous dilemma, had we not
  • been impelled by a strong sense of duty. We return to London to-morrow.
  • Your secret is safe with us.’
  • Having thus entered his protest against their treatment of the morning,
  • Mr. Pickwick bowed low to the ladies, and notwithstanding the
  • solicitations of the family, left the room with his friends.
  • ‘Get your hat, Sam,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘It’s below stairs, Sir,’ said Sam, and he ran down after it.
  • Now, there was nobody in the kitchen, but the pretty housemaid; and as
  • Sam’s hat was mislaid, he had to look for it, and the pretty housemaid
  • lighted him. They had to look all over the place for the hat. The pretty
  • housemaid, in her anxiety to find it, went down on her knees, and turned
  • over all the things that were heaped together in a little corner by the
  • door. It was an awkward corner. You couldn’t get at it without shutting
  • the door first.
  • ‘Here it is,’ said the pretty housemaid. ‘This is it, ain’t it?’
  • ‘Let me look,’ said Sam.
  • The pretty housemaid had stood the candle on the floor; and, as it gave
  • a very dim light, Sam was obliged to go down on _his _knees before he
  • could see whether it really was his own hat or not. It was a remarkably
  • small corner, and so--it was nobody’s fault but the man’s who built the
  • house--Sam and the pretty housemaid were necessarily very close
  • together.
  • ‘Yes, this is it,’ said Sam. ‘Good-bye!’
  • ‘Good-bye!’ said the pretty housemaid.
  • ‘Good-bye!’ said Sam; and as he said it, he dropped the hat that had
  • cost so much trouble in looking for.
  • ‘How awkward you are,’ said the pretty housemaid. ‘You’ll lose it again,
  • if you don’t take care.’
  • So just to prevent his losing it again, she put it on for him.
  • Whether it was that the pretty housemaid’s face looked prettier still,
  • when it was raised towards Sam’s, or whether it was the accidental
  • consequence of their being so near to each other, is matter of
  • uncertainty to this day; but Sam kissed her.
  • ‘You don’t mean to say you did that on purpose,’ said the pretty
  • housemaid, blushing.
  • ‘No, I didn’t then,’ said Sam; ‘but I will now.’
  • So he kissed her again.
  • ‘Sam!’ said Mr. Pickwick, calling over the banisters.
  • ‘Coming, Sir,’ replied Sam, running upstairs.
  • ‘How long you have been!’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘There was something behind the door, Sir, which perwented our getting
  • it open, for ever so long, Sir,’ replied Sam.
  • And this was the first passage of Mr. Weller’s first love.
  • CHAPTER XXVI. WHICH CONTAINS A BRIEF ACCOUNT OF THE PROGRESS OF THE
  • ACTION OF BARDELL AGAINST PICKWICK
  • Having accomplished the main end and object of his journey, by the
  • exposure of Jingle, Mr. Pickwick resolved on immediately returning to
  • London, with the view of becoming acquainted with the proceedings which
  • had been taken against him, in the meantime, by Messrs. Dodson and Fogg.
  • Acting upon this resolution with all the energy and decision of his
  • character, he mounted to the back seat of the first coach which left
  • Ipswich on the morning after the memorable occurrences detailed at
  • length in the two preceding chapters; and accompanied by his three
  • friends, and Mr. Samuel Weller, arrived in the metropolis, in perfect
  • health and safety, the same evening.
  • Here the friends, for a short time, separated. Messrs. Tupman, Winkle,
  • and Snodgrass repaired to their several homes to make such preparations
  • as might be requisite for their forthcoming visit to Dingley Dell; and
  • Mr. Pickwick and Sam took up their present abode in very good, old-
  • fashioned, and comfortable quarters, to wit, the George and Vulture
  • Tavern and Hotel, George Yard, Lombard Street.
  • Mr. Pickwick had dined, finished his second pint of particular port,
  • pulled his silk handkerchief over his head, put his feet on the fender,
  • and thrown himself back in an easy-chair, when the entrance of Mr.
  • Weller with his carpet-bag, aroused him from his tranquil meditation.
  • ‘Sam,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Sir,’ said Mr. Weller.
  • ‘I have just been thinking, Sam,’ said Mr. Pickwick, ‘that having left a
  • good many things at Mrs. Bardell’s, in Goswell Street, I ought to
  • arrange for taking them away, before I leave town again.’
  • ‘Wery good, sir,’ replied Mr. Weller.
  • ‘I could send them to Mr. Tupman’s, for the present, Sam,’ continued Mr.
  • Pickwick, ‘but before we take them away, it is necessary that they
  • should be looked up, and put together. I wish you would step up to
  • Goswell Street, Sam, and arrange about it.’
  • ‘At once, Sir?’ inquired Mr. Weller.
  • ‘At once,’ replied Mr. Pickwick. ‘And stay, Sam,’ added Mr. Pickwick,
  • pulling out his purse, ‘there is some rent to pay. The quarter is not
  • due till Christmas, but you may pay it, and have done with it. A month’s
  • notice terminates my tenancy. Here it is, written out. Give it, and tell
  • Mrs. Bardell she may put a bill up, as soon as she likes.’
  • ‘Wery good, sir,’ replied Mr. Weller; ‘anythin’ more, sir?’
  • ‘Nothing more, Sam.’
  • Mr. Weller stepped slowly to the door, as if he expected something more;
  • slowly opened it, slowly stepped out, and had slowly closed it within a
  • couple of inches, when Mr. Pickwick called out--
  • ‘Sam.’
  • ‘Yes, sir,’ said Mr. Weller, stepping quickly back, and closing the door
  • behind him.
  • ‘I have no objection, Sam, to your endeavouring to ascertain how Mrs.
  • Bardell herself seems disposed towards me, and whether it is really
  • probable that this vile and groundless action is to be carried to
  • extremity. I say I do not object to you doing this, if you wish it,
  • Sam,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • Sam gave a short nod of intelligence, and left the room. Mr. Pickwick
  • drew the silk handkerchief once more over his head, And composed himself
  • for a nap. Mr. Weller promptly walked forth, to execute his commission.
  • It was nearly nine o’clock when he reached Goswell Street. A couple of
  • candles were burning in the little front parlour, and a couple of caps
  • were reflected on the window-blind. Mrs. Bardell had got company.
  • Mr. Weller knocked at the door, and after a pretty long interval--
  • occupied by the party without, in whistling a tune, and by the party
  • within, in persuading a refractory flat candle to allow itself to be
  • lighted--a pair of small boots pattered over the floor-cloth, and Master
  • Bardell presented himself.
  • ‘Well, young townskip,’ said Sam, ‘how’s mother?’
  • ‘She’s pretty well,’ replied Master Bardell, ‘so am I.’
  • ‘Well, that’s a mercy,’ said Sam; ‘tell her I want to speak to her, will
  • you, my hinfant fernomenon?’
  • Master Bardell, thus adjured, placed the refractory flat candle on the
  • bottom stair, and vanished into the front parlour with his message.
  • The two caps, reflected on the window-blind, were the respective head-
  • dresses of a couple of Mrs. Bardell’s most particular acquaintance, who
  • had just stepped in, to have a quiet cup of tea, and a little warm
  • supper of a couple of sets of pettitoes and some toasted cheese. The
  • cheese was simmering and browning away, most delightfully, in a little
  • Dutch oven before the fire; the pettitoes were getting on deliciously in
  • a little tin saucepan on the hob; and Mrs. Bardell and her two friends
  • were getting on very well, also, in a little quiet conversation about
  • and concerning all their particular friends and acquaintance; when
  • Master Bardell came back from answering the door, and delivered the
  • message intrusted to him by Mr. Samuel Weller.
  • ‘Mr. Pickwick’s servant!’ said Mrs. Bardell, turning pale.
  • ‘Bless my soul!’ said Mrs. Cluppins.
  • ‘Well, I raly would not ha’ believed it, unless I had ha’ happened to
  • ha’ been here!’ said Mrs. Sanders.
  • Mrs. Cluppins was a little, brisk, busy-looking woman; Mrs. Sanders was
  • a big, fat, heavy-faced personage; and the two were the company.
  • Mrs. Bardell felt it proper to be agitated; and as none of the three
  • exactly knew whether under existing circumstances, any communication,
  • otherwise than through Dodson & Fogg, ought to be held with Mr.
  • Pickwick’s servant, they were all rather taken by surprise. In this
  • state of indecision, obviously the first thing to be done, was to thump
  • the boy for finding Mr. Weller at the door. So his mother thumped him,
  • and he cried melodiously.
  • ‘Hold your noise--do--you naughty creetur!’ said Mrs. Bardell.
  • ‘Yes; don’t worrit your poor mother,’ said Mrs. Sanders.
  • ‘She’s quite enough to worrit her, as it is, without you, Tommy,’ said
  • Mrs. Cluppins, with sympathising resignation.
  • ‘Ah! worse luck, poor lamb!’ said Mrs. Sanders.
  • At all which moral reflections, Master Bardell howled the louder.
  • ‘Now, what shall I do?’ said Mrs. Bardell to Mrs. Cluppins.
  • ‘I think you ought to see him,’ replied Mrs. Cluppins. ‘But on no
  • account without a witness.’
  • ‘I think two witnesses would be more lawful,’ said Mrs. Sanders, who,
  • like the other friend, was bursting with curiosity.
  • ‘Perhaps he’d better come in here,’ said Mrs. Bardell.
  • ‘To be sure,’ replied Mrs. Cluppins, eagerly catching at the idea; ‘walk
  • in, young man; and shut the street door first, please.’
  • Mr. Weller immediately took the hint; and presenting himself in the
  • parlour, explained his business to Mrs. Bardell thus--
  • ‘Wery sorry to ‘casion any personal inconwenience, ma’am, as the
  • housebreaker said to the old lady when he put her on the fire; but as me
  • and my governor ‘s only jest come to town, and is jest going away agin,
  • it can’t be helped, you see.’
  • ‘Of course, the young man can’t help the faults of his master,’ said
  • Mrs. Cluppins, much struck by Mr. Weller’s appearance and conversation.
  • ‘Certainly not,’ chimed in Mrs. Sanders, who, from certain wistful
  • glances at the little tin saucepan, seemed to be engaged in a mental
  • calculation of the probable extent of the pettitoes, in the event of
  • Sam’s being asked to stop to supper.
  • ‘So all I’ve come about, is jest this here,’ said Sam, disregarding the
  • interruption; ‘first, to give my governor’s notice--there it is.
  • Secondly, to pay the rent--here it is. Thirdly, to say as all his things
  • is to be put together, and give to anybody as we sends for ‘em.
  • Fourthly, that you may let the place as soon as you like--and that’s
  • all.’
  • ‘Whatever has happened,’ said Mrs. Bardell, ‘I always have said, and
  • always will say, that in every respect but one, Mr. Pickwick has always
  • behaved himself like a perfect gentleman. His money always as good as
  • the bank--always.’
  • As Mrs. Bardell said this, she applied her handkerchief to her eyes, and
  • went out of the room to get the receipt.
  • Sam well knew that he had only to remain quiet, and the women were sure
  • to talk; so he looked alternately at the tin saucepan, the toasted
  • cheese, the wall, and the ceiling, in profound silence.
  • ‘Poor dear!’ said Mrs. Cluppins.
  • ‘Ah, poor thing!’ replied Mrs. Sanders.
  • Sam said nothing. He saw they were coming to the subject.
  • ‘I raly cannot contain myself,’ said Mrs. Cluppins, ‘when I think of
  • such perjury. I don’t wish to say anything to make you uncomfortable,
  • young man, but your master’s an old brute, and I wish I had him here to
  • tell him so.’
  • I wish you had,’ said Sam.
  • ‘To see how dreadful she takes on, going moping about, and taking no
  • pleasure in nothing, except when her friends comes in, out of charity,
  • to sit with her, and make her comfortable,’ resumed Mrs. Cluppins,
  • glancing at the tin saucepan and the Dutch oven, ‘it’s shocking!’
  • ‘Barbareous,’ said Mrs. Sanders.
  • ‘And your master, young man! A gentleman with money, as could never feel
  • the expense of a wife, no more than nothing,’ continued Mrs. Cluppins,
  • with great volubility; ‘why there ain’t the faintest shade of an excuse
  • for his behaviour! Why don’t he marry her?’
  • ‘Ah,’ said Sam, ‘to be sure; that’s the question.’
  • ‘Question, indeed,’ retorted Mrs. Cluppins, ‘she’d question him, if
  • she’d my spirit. Hows’ever, there is law for us women, mis’rable
  • creeturs as they’d make us, if they could; and that your master will
  • find out, young man, to his cost, afore he’s six months older.’
  • At this consolatory reflection, Mrs. Cluppins bridled up, and smiled at
  • Mrs. Sanders, who smiled back again.
  • ‘The action’s going on, and no mistake,’ thought Sam, as Mrs. Bardell
  • re-entered with the receipt.
  • ‘Here’s the receipt, Mr. Weller,’ said Mrs. Bardell, ‘and here’s the
  • change, and I hope you’ll take a little drop of something to keep the
  • cold out, if it’s only for old acquaintance’ sake, Mr. Weller.’
  • Sam saw the advantage he should gain, and at once acquiesced; whereupon
  • Mrs. Bardell produced, from a small closet, a black bottle and a wine-
  • glass; and so great was her abstraction, in her deep mental affliction,
  • that, after filling Mr. Weller’s glass, she brought out three more wine-
  • glasses, and filled them too.
  • ‘Lauk, Mrs. Bardell,’ said Mrs. Cluppins, ‘see what you’ve been and
  • done!’
  • ‘Well, that is a good one!’ ejaculated Mrs. Sanders.
  • ‘Ah, my poor head!’ said Mrs. Bardell, with a faint smile.
  • Sam understood all this, of course, so he said at once, that he never
  • could drink before supper, unless a lady drank with him. A great deal of
  • laughter ensued, and Mrs. Sanders volunteered to humour him, so she took
  • a slight sip out of her glass. Then Sam said it must go all round, so
  • they all took a slight sip. Then little Mrs. Cluppins proposed as a
  • toast, ‘Success to Bardell agin Pickwick’; and then the ladies emptied
  • their glasses in honour of the sentiment, and got very talkative
  • directly.
  • ‘I suppose you’ve heard what’s going forward, Mr. Weller?’ said Mrs.
  • Bardell.
  • ‘I’ve heerd somethin’ on it,’ replied Sam.
  • ‘It’s a terrible thing to be dragged before the public, in that way, Mr.
  • Weller,’ said Mrs. Bardell; ‘but I see now, that it’s the only thing I
  • ought to do, and my lawyers, Mr. Dodson and Fogg, tell me that, with the
  • evidence as we shall call, we must succeed. I don’t know what I should
  • do, Mr. Weller, if I didn’t.’
  • The mere idea of Mrs. Bardell’s failing in her action, affected Mrs.
  • Sanders so deeply, that she was under the necessity of refilling and re-
  • emptying her glass immediately; feeling, as she said afterwards, that if
  • she hadn’t had the presence of mind to do so, she must have dropped.
  • ‘Ven is it expected to come on?’ inquired Sam.
  • ‘Either in February or March,’ replied Mrs. Bardell.
  • ‘What a number of witnesses there’ll be, won’t there?’ said Mrs.
  • Cluppins.
  • ‘Ah! won’t there!’ replied Mrs. Sanders.
  • ‘And won’t Mr. Dodson and Fogg be wild if the plaintiff shouldn’t get
  • it?’ added Mrs. Cluppins, ‘when they do it all on speculation!’
  • ‘Ah! won’t they!’ said Mrs. Sanders.
  • ‘But the plaintiff must get it,’ resumed Mrs. Cluppins.
  • ‘I hope so,’ said Mrs. Bardell.
  • ‘Oh, there can’t be any doubt about it,’ rejoined Mrs. Sanders.
  • ‘Vell,’ said Sam, rising and setting down his glass, ‘all I can say is,
  • that I vish you _may _get it.’
  • ‘Thank’ee, Mr. Weller,’ said Mrs. Bardell fervently.
  • ‘And of them Dodson and Foggs, as does these sort o’ things on spec,’
  • continued Mr. Weller, ‘as vell as for the other kind and gen’rous people
  • o’ the same purfession, as sets people by the ears, free gratis for
  • nothin’, and sets their clerks to work to find out little disputes among
  • their neighbours and acquaintances as vants settlin’ by means of
  • lawsuits--all I can say o’ them is, that I vish they had the reward I’d
  • give ‘em.’
  • ‘Ah, I wish they had the reward that every kind and generous heart would
  • be inclined to bestow upon them!’ said the gratified Mrs. Bardell.
  • ‘Amen to that,’ replied Sam, ‘and a fat and happy liven’ they’d get out
  • of it! Wish you good-night, ladies.’
  • To the great relief of Mrs. Sanders, Sam was allowed to depart without
  • any reference, on the part of the hostess, to the pettitoes and toasted
  • cheese; to which the ladies, with such juvenile assistance as Master
  • Bardell could afford, soon afterwards rendered the amplest justice--
  • indeed they wholly vanished before their strenuous exertions.
  • Mr. Weller wended his way back to the George and Vulture, and faithfully
  • recounted to his master, such indications of the sharp practice of
  • Dodson & Fogg, as he had contrived to pick up in his visit to Mrs.
  • Bardell’s. An interview with Mr. Perker, next day, more than confirmed
  • Mr. Weller’s statement; and Mr. Pickwick was fain to prepare for his
  • Christmas visit to Dingley Dell, with the pleasant anticipation that
  • some two or three months afterwards, an action brought against him for
  • damages sustained by reason of a breach of promise of marriage, would be
  • publicly tried in the Court of Common Pleas; the plaintiff having all
  • the advantages derivable, not only from the force of circumstances, but
  • from the sharp practice of Dodson & Fogg to boot.
  • CHAPTER XXVII. SAMUEL WELLER MAKES A PILGRIMAGE TO DORKING, AND BEHOLDS
  • HIS MOTHER-IN-LAW
  • There still remaining an interval of two days before the time agreed
  • upon for the departure of the Pickwickians to Dingley Dell, Mr. Weller
  • sat himself down in a back room at the George and Vulture, after eating
  • an early dinner, to muse on the best way of disposing of his time. It
  • was a remarkably fine day; and he had not turned the matter over in his
  • mind ten minutes, when he was suddenly stricken filial and affectionate;
  • and it occurred to him so strongly that he ought to go down and see his
  • father, and pay his duty to his mother-in-law, that he was lost in
  • astonishment at his own remissness in never thinking of this moral
  • obligation before. Anxious to atone for his past neglect without another
  • hour’s delay, he straightway walked upstairs to Mr. Pickwick, and
  • requested leave of absence for this laudable purpose.
  • ‘Certainly, Sam, certainly,’ said Mr. Pickwick, his eyes glistening with
  • delight at this manifestation of filial feeling on the part of his
  • attendant; ‘certainly, Sam.’
  • Mr. Weller made a grateful bow.
  • ‘I am very glad to see that you have so high a sense of your duties as a
  • son, Sam,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘I always had, sir,’ replied Mr. Weller.
  • ‘That’s a very gratifying reflection, Sam,’ said Mr. Pickwick
  • approvingly.
  • ‘Wery, Sir,’ replied Mr. Weller; ‘if ever I wanted anythin’ o’ my
  • father, I always asked for it in a wery ‘spectful and obligin’ manner.
  • If he didn’t give it me, I took it, for fear I should be led to do
  • anythin’ wrong, through not havin’ it. I saved him a world o’ trouble
  • this vay, Sir.’
  • ‘That’s not precisely what I meant, Sam,’ said Mr. Pickwick, shaking his
  • head, with a slight smile.
  • ‘All good feelin’, sir--the wery best intentions, as the gen’l’m’n said
  • ven he run away from his wife ‘cos she seemed unhappy with him,’ replied
  • Mr. Weller.
  • ‘You may go, Sam,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Thank’ee, Sir,’ replied Mr. Weller; and having made his best bow, and
  • put on his best clothes, Sam planted himself on the top of the Arundel
  • coach, and journeyed on to Dorking.
  • The Marquis of Granby, in Mrs. Weller’s time, was quite a model of a
  • roadside public-house of the better class--just large enough to be
  • convenient, and small enough to be snug. On the opposite side of the
  • road was a large sign-board on a high post, representing the head and
  • shoulders of a gentleman with an apoplectic countenance, in a red coat
  • with deep blue facings, and a touch of the same blue over his three-
  • cornered hat, for a sky. Over that again were a pair of flags; beneath
  • the last button of his coat were a couple of cannon; and the whole
  • formed an expressive and undoubted likeness of the Marquis of Granby of
  • glorious memory. The bar window displayed a choice collection of
  • geranium plants, and a well-dusted row of spirit phials. The open
  • shutters bore a variety of golden inscriptions, eulogistic of good beds
  • and neat wines; and the choice group of countrymen and hostlers lounging
  • about the stable door and horse-trough, afforded presumptive proof of
  • the excellent quality of the ale and spirits which were sold within. Sam
  • Weller paused, when he dismounted from the coach, to note all these
  • little indications of a thriving business, with the eye of an
  • experienced traveller; and having done so, stepped in at once, highly
  • satisfied with everything he had observed.
  • ‘Now, then!’ said a shrill female voice the instant Sam thrust his head
  • in at the door, ‘what do you want, young man?’
  • Sam looked round in the direction whence the voice proceeded. It came
  • from a rather stout lady of comfortable appearance, who was seated
  • beside the fireplace in the bar, blowing the fire to make the kettle
  • boil for tea. She was not alone; for on the other side of the fireplace,
  • sitting bolt upright in a high-backed chair, was a man in threadbare
  • black clothes, with a back almost as long and stiff as that of the chair
  • itself, who caught Sam’s most particular and especial attention at once.
  • He was a prim-faced, red-nosed man, with a long, thin countenance, and a
  • semi-rattlesnake sort of eye--rather sharp, but decidedly bad. He wore
  • very short trousers, and black cotton stockings, which, like the rest of
  • his apparel, were particularly rusty. His looks were starched, but his
  • white neckerchief was not, and its long limp ends straggled over his
  • closely-buttoned waistcoat in a very uncouth and unpicturesque fashion.
  • A pair of old, worn, beaver gloves, a broad-brimmed hat, and a faded
  • green umbrella, with plenty of whalebone sticking through the bottom, as
  • if to counterbalance the want of a handle at the top, lay on a chair
  • beside him; and, being disposed in a very tidy and careful manner,
  • seemed to imply that the red-nosed man, whoever he was, had no intention
  • of going away in a hurry.
  • To do the red-nosed man justice, he would have been very far from wise
  • if he had entertained any such intention; for, to judge from all
  • appearances, he must have been possessed of a most desirable circle of
  • acquaintance, if he could have reasonably expected to be more
  • comfortable anywhere else. The fire was blazing brightly under the
  • influence of the bellows, and the kettle was singing gaily under the
  • influence of both. A small tray of tea-things was arranged on the table;
  • a plate of hot buttered toast was gently simmering before the fire; and
  • the red-nosed man himself was busily engaged in converting a large slice
  • of bread into the same agreeable edible, through the instrumentality of
  • a long brass toasting-fork. Beside him stood a glass of reeking hot
  • pine-apple rum-and-water, with a slice of lemon in it; and every time
  • the red-nosed man stopped to bring the round of toast to his eye, with
  • the view of ascertaining how it got on, he imbibed a drop or two of the
  • hot pine-apple rum-and-water, and smiled upon the rather stout lady, as
  • she blew the fire.
  • Sam was so lost in the contemplation of this comfortable scene, that he
  • suffered the first inquiry of the rather stout lady to pass unheeded. It
  • was not until it had been twice repeated, each time in a shriller tone,
  • that he became conscious of the impropriety of his behaviour.
  • ‘Governor in?’ inquired Sam, in reply to the question.
  • ‘No, he isn’t,’ replied Mrs. Weller; for the rather stout lady was no
  • other than the quondam relict and sole executrix of the dead-and-gone
  • Mr. Clarke; ‘no, he isn’t, and I don’t expect him, either.’
  • ‘I suppose he’s drivin’ up to-day?’ said Sam.
  • ‘He may be, or he may not,’ replied Mrs. Weller, buttering the round of
  • toast which the red-nosed man had just finished. ‘I don’t know, and,
  • what’s more, I don’t care.--Ask a blessin’, Mr. Stiggins.’
  • The red-nosed man did as he was desired, and instantly commenced on the
  • toast with fierce voracity.
  • The appearance of the red-nosed man had induced Sam, at first sight, to
  • more than half suspect that he was the deputy-shepherd of whom his
  • estimable parent had spoken. The moment he saw him eat, all doubt on the
  • subject was removed, and he perceived at once that if he purposed to
  • take up his temporary quarters where he was, he must make his footing
  • good without delay. He therefore commenced proceedings by putting his
  • arm over the half-door of the bar, coolly unbolting it, and leisurely
  • walking in.
  • ‘Mother-in-law,’ said Sam, ‘how are you?’
  • ‘Why, I do believe he is a Weller!’ said Mrs. W., raising her eyes to
  • Sam’s face, with no very gratified expression of countenance.
  • ‘I rayther think he is,’ said the imperturbable Sam; ‘and I hope this
  • here reverend gen’l’m’n ‘ll excuse me saying that I wish I was _the
  • _Weller as owns you, mother-in-law.’
  • This was a double-barrelled compliment. It implied that Mrs. Weller was
  • a most agreeable female, and also that Mr. Stiggins had a clerical
  • appearance. It made a visible impression at once; and Sam followed up
  • his advantage by kissing his mother-in-law.
  • ‘Get along with you!’ said Mrs. Weller, pushing him away.
  • ‘For shame, young man!’ said the gentleman with the red nose.
  • ‘No offence, sir, no offence,’ replied Sam; ‘you’re wery right, though;
  • it ain’t the right sort o’ thing, ven mothers-in-law is young and good-
  • looking, is it, Sir?’
  • ‘It’s all vanity,’ said Mr. Stiggins.
  • ‘Ah, so it is,’ said Mrs. Weller, setting her cap to rights.
  • Sam thought it was, too, but he held his peace.
  • The deputy-shepherd seemed by no means best pleased with Sam’s arrival;
  • and when the first effervescence of the compliment had subsided, even
  • Mrs. Weller looked as if she could have spared him without the smallest
  • inconvenience. However, there he was; and as he couldn’t be decently
  • turned out, they all three sat down to tea.
  • ‘And how’s father?’ said Sam.
  • At this inquiry, Mrs. Weller raised her hands, and turned up her eyes,
  • as if the subject were too painful to be alluded to.
  • Mr. Stiggins groaned.
  • ‘What’s the matter with that ‘ere gen’l’m’n?’ inquired Sam.
  • ‘He’s shocked at the way your father goes on in,’ replied Mrs. Weller.
  • ‘Oh, he is, is he?’ said Sam.
  • ‘And with too good reason,’ added Mrs. Weller gravely.
  • Mr. Stiggins took up a fresh piece of toast, and groaned heavily.
  • ‘He is a dreadful reprobate,’ said Mrs. Weller.
  • ‘A man of wrath!’ exclaimed Mr. Stiggins. He took a large semi-circular
  • bite out of the toast, and groaned again.
  • Sam felt very strongly disposed to give the reverend Mr. Stiggins
  • something to groan for, but he repressed his inclination, and merely
  • asked, ‘What’s the old ‘un up to now?’
  • ‘Up to, indeed!’ said Mrs. Weller, ‘Oh, he has a hard heart. Night after
  • night does this excellent man--don’t frown, Mr. Stiggins; I _will _say
  • you _are _an excellent man--come and sit here, for hours together, and
  • it has not the least effect upon him.’
  • Well, that is odd,’ said Sam; ‘it ‘ud have a wery considerable effect
  • upon me, if I wos in his place; I know that.’
  • ‘The fact is, my young friend,’ said Mr. Stiggins solemnly, ‘he has an
  • obderrate bosom. Oh, my young friend, who else could have resisted the
  • pleading of sixteen of our fairest sisters, and withstood their
  • exhortations to subscribe to our noble society for providing the infant
  • negroes in the West Indies with flannel waistcoats and moral pocket-
  • handkerchiefs?’
  • ‘What’s a moral pocket-ankercher?’ said Sam; ‘I never see one o’ them
  • articles o’ furniter.’
  • ‘Those which combine amusement With instruction, my young friend,’
  • replied Mr. Stiggins, ‘blending select tales with wood-cuts.’
  • ‘Oh, I know,’ said Sam; ‘them as hangs up in the linen-drapers’ shops,
  • with beggars’ petitions and all that ‘ere upon ‘em?’
  • Mr. Stiggins began a third round of toast, and nodded assent.
  • ‘And he wouldn’t be persuaded by the ladies, wouldn’t he?’ said Sam.
  • ‘Sat and smoked his pipe, and said the infant negroes were--what did he
  • say the infant negroes were?’ said Mrs. Weller.
  • ‘Little humbugs,’ replied Mr. Stiggins, deeply affected.
  • ‘Said the infant negroes were little humbugs,’ repeated Mrs. Weller. And
  • they both groaned at the atrocious conduct of the elder Mr. Weller.
  • A great many more iniquities of a similar nature might have been
  • disclosed, only the toast being all eaten, the tea having got very weak,
  • and Sam holding out no indications of meaning to go, Mr. Stiggins
  • suddenly recollected that he had a most pressing appointment with the
  • shepherd, and took himself off accordingly.
  • The tea-things had been scarcely put away, and the hearth swept up, when
  • the London coach deposited Mr. Weller, senior, at the door; his legs
  • deposited him in the bar; and his eyes showed him his son.
  • ‘What, Sammy!’ exclaimed the father.
  • ‘What, old Nobs!’ ejaculated the son. And they shook hands heartily.
  • ‘Wery glad to see you, Sammy,’ said the elder Mr. Weller, ‘though how
  • you’ve managed to get over your mother-in-law, is a mystery to me. I
  • only vish you’d write me out the receipt, that’s all.’
  • ‘Hush!’ said Sam, ‘she’s at home, old feller.’
  • She ain’t vithin hearin’,’ replied Mr. Weller; ‘she always goes and
  • blows up, downstairs, for a couple of hours arter tea; so we’ll just
  • give ourselves a damp, Sammy.’
  • Saying this, Mr. Weller mixed two glasses of spirits-and-water, and
  • produced a couple of pipes. The father and son sitting down opposite
  • each other; Sam on one side of the fire, in the high-backed chair, and
  • Mr. Weller, senior, on the other, in an easy ditto, they proceeded to
  • enjoy themselves with all due gravity.
  • ‘Anybody been here, Sammy?’ asked Mr. Weller, senior, dryly, after a
  • long silence.
  • Sam nodded an expressive assent.
  • ‘Red-nosed chap?’ inquired Mr. Weller.
  • Sam nodded again.
  • ‘Amiable man that ‘ere, Sammy,’ said Mr. Weller, smoking violently.
  • ‘Seems so,’ observed Sam.
  • ‘Good hand at accounts,’ said Mr. Weller. ‘Is he?’ said Sam.
  • ‘Borrows eighteenpence on Monday, and comes on Tuesday for a shillin’ to
  • make it up half-a-crown; calls again on Vensday for another half-crown
  • to make it five shillin’s; and goes on, doubling, till he gets it up to
  • a five pund note in no time, like them sums in the ‘rithmetic book ‘bout
  • the nails in the horse’s shoes, Sammy.’
  • Sam intimated by a nod that he recollected the problem alluded to by his
  • parent.
  • ‘So you vouldn’t subscribe to the flannel veskits?’ said Sam, after
  • another interval of smoking.
  • ‘Cert’nly not,’ replied Mr. Weller; ‘what’s the good o’ flannel veskits
  • to the young niggers abroad? But I’ll tell you what it is, Sammy,’ said
  • Mr. Weller, lowering his voice, and bending across the fireplace; ‘I’d
  • come down wery handsome towards strait veskits for some people at home.’
  • As Mr. Weller said this, he slowly recovered his former position, and
  • winked at his first-born, in a profound manner.
  • ‘It cert’nly seems a queer start to send out pocket-’ankerchers to
  • people as don’t know the use on ‘em,’ observed Sam.
  • ‘They’re alvays a-doin’ some gammon of that sort, Sammy,’ replied his
  • father. ‘T’other Sunday I wos walkin’ up the road, wen who should I see,
  • a-standin’ at a chapel door, with a blue soup-plate in her hand, but
  • your mother-in-law! I werily believe there was change for a couple o’
  • suv’rins in it, then, Sammy, all in ha’pence; and as the people come
  • out, they rattled the pennies in it, till you’d ha’ thought that no
  • mortal plate as ever was baked, could ha’ stood the wear and tear. What
  • d’ye think it was all for?’
  • ‘For another tea-drinkin’, perhaps,’ said Sam.
  • ‘Not a bit on it,’ replied the father; ‘for the shepherd’s water-rate,
  • Sammy.’
  • ‘The shepherd’s water-rate!’ said Sam.
  • ‘Ay,’ replied Mr. Weller, ‘there was three quarters owin’, and the
  • shepherd hadn’t paid a farden, not he--perhaps it might be on account
  • that the water warn’t o’ much use to him, for it’s wery little o’ that
  • tap he drinks, Sammy, wery; he knows a trick worth a good half-dozen of
  • that, he does. Hows’ever, it warn’t paid, and so they cuts the water
  • off. Down goes the shepherd to chapel, gives out as he’s a persecuted
  • saint, and says he hopes the heart of the turncock as cut the water off,
  • ‘ll be softened, and turned in the right vay, but he rayther thinks he’s
  • booked for somethin’ uncomfortable. Upon this, the women calls a
  • meetin’, sings a hymn, wotes your mother-in-law into the chair,
  • wolunteers a collection next Sunday, and hands it all over to the
  • shepherd. And if he ain’t got enough out on ‘em, Sammy, to make him free
  • of the water company for life,’ said Mr. Weller, in conclusion, ‘I’m one
  • Dutchman, and you’re another, and that’s all about it.’
  • Mr. Weller smoked for some minutes in silence, and then resumed--
  • ‘The worst o’ these here shepherds is, my boy, that they reg’larly turns
  • the heads of all the young ladies, about here. Lord bless their little
  • hearts, they thinks it’s all right, and don’t know no better; but
  • they’re the wictims o’ gammon, Samivel, they’re the wictims o’ gammon.’
  • ‘I s’pose they are,’ said Sam.
  • ‘Nothin’ else,’ said Mr. Weller, shaking his head gravely; ‘and wot
  • aggrawates me, Samivel, is to see ‘em a-wastin’ all their time and
  • labour in making clothes for copper-coloured people as don’t want ‘em,
  • and taking no notice of flesh-coloured Christians as do. If I’d my vay,
  • Samivel, I’d just stick some o’ these here lazy shepherds behind a heavy
  • wheelbarrow, and run ‘em up and down a fourteen-inch-wide plank all day.
  • That ‘ud shake the nonsense out of ‘em, if anythin’ vould.’
  • Mr. Weller, having delivered this gentle recipe with strong emphasis,
  • eked out by a variety of nods and contortions of the eye, emptied his
  • glass at a draught, and knocked the ashes out of his pipe, with native
  • dignity.
  • He was engaged in this operation, when a shrill voice was heard in the
  • passage.
  • ‘Here’s your dear relation, Sammy,’ said Mr. Weller; and Mrs. W. hurried
  • into the room.
  • ‘Oh, you’ve come back, have you!’ said Mrs. Weller.
  • ‘Yes, my dear,’ replied Mr. Weller, filling a fresh pipe.
  • ‘Has Mr. Stiggins been back?’ said Mrs. Weller.
  • ‘No, my dear, he hasn’t,’ replied Mr. Weller, lighting the pipe by the
  • ingenious process of holding to the bowl thereof, between the tongs, a
  • red-hot coal from the adjacent fire; and what’s more, my dear, I shall
  • manage to surwive it, if he don’t come back at all.’
  • ‘Ugh, you wretch!’ said Mrs. Weller.
  • ‘Thank’ee, my love,’ said Mr. Weller.
  • ‘Come, come, father,’ said Sam, ‘none o’ these little lovin’s afore
  • strangers. Here’s the reverend gen’l’m’n a-comin’ in now.’
  • At this announcement, Mrs. Weller hastily wiped off the tears which she
  • had just begun to force on; and Mr. W. drew his chair sullenly into the
  • chimney-corner.
  • Mr. Stiggins was easily prevailed on to take another glass of the hot
  • pine-apple rum-and-water, and a second, and a third, and then to refresh
  • himself with a slight supper, previous to beginning again. He sat on the
  • same side as Mr. Weller, senior; and every time he could contrive to do
  • so, unseen by his wife, that gentleman indicated to his son the hidden
  • emotions of his bosom, by shaking his fist over the deputy-shepherd’s
  • head; a process which afforded his son the most unmingled delight and
  • satisfaction, the more especially as Mr. Stiggins went on, quietly
  • drinking the hot pine-apple rum-and-water, wholly unconscious of what
  • was going forward.
  • The major part of the conversation was confined to Mrs. Weller and the
  • reverend Mr. Stiggins; and the topics principally descanted on, were the
  • virtues of the shepherd, the worthiness of his flock, and the high
  • crimes and misdemeanours of everybody beside--dissertations which the
  • elder Mr. Weller occasionally interrupted by half-suppressed references
  • to a gentleman of the name of Walker, and other running commentaries of
  • the same kind.
  • At length Mr. Stiggins, with several most indubitable symptoms of having
  • quite as much pine-apple rum-and-water about him as he could comfortably
  • accommodate, took his hat, and his leave; and Sam was, immediately
  • afterwards, shown to bed by his father. The respectable old gentleman
  • wrung his hand fervently, and seemed disposed to address some
  • observation to his son; but on Mrs. Weller advancing towards him, he
  • appeared to relinquish that intention, and abruptly bade him good-night.
  • Sam was up betimes next day, and having partaken of a hasty breakfast,
  • prepared to return to London. He had scarcely set foot without the
  • house, when his father stood before him.
  • ‘Goin’, Sammy?’ inquired Mr. Weller.
  • ‘Off at once,’ replied Sam.
  • ‘I vish you could muffle that ‘ere Stiggins, and take him vith you,’
  • said Mr. Weller.
  • ‘I am ashamed on you!’ said Sam reproachfully; ‘what do you let him show
  • his red nose in the Markis o’ Granby at all, for?’
  • Mr. Weller the elder fixed on his son an earnest look, and replied,
  • ‘’Cause I’m a married man, Samivel, ‘cause I’m a married man. Ven you’re
  • a married man, Samivel, you’ll understand a good many things as you
  • don’t understand now; but vether it’s worth while goin’ through so much,
  • to learn so little, as the charity-boy said ven he got to the end of the
  • alphabet, is a matter o’ taste. I rayther think it isn’t.’
  • Well,’ said Sam, ‘good-bye.’
  • ‘Tar, tar, Sammy,’ replied his father.
  • ‘I’ve only got to say this here,’ said Sam, stopping short, ‘that if I
  • was the properiator o’ the Markis o’ Granby, and that ‘ere Stiggins came
  • and made toast in my bar, I’d--’
  • ‘What?’ interposed Mr. Weller, with great anxiety. ‘What?’
  • ‘Pison his rum-and-water,’ said Sam.
  • ‘No!’ said Mr. Weller, shaking his son eagerly by the hand, ‘would you
  • raly, Sammy-would you, though?’
  • ‘I would,’ said Sam. ‘I wouldn’t be too hard upon him at first. I’d drop
  • him in the water-butt, and put the lid on; and if I found he was
  • insensible to kindness, I’d try the other persvasion.’
  • The elder Mr. Weller bestowed a look of deep, unspeakable admiration on
  • his son, and, having once more grasped his hand, walked slowly away,
  • revolving in his mind the numerous reflections to which his advice had
  • given rise.
  • Sam looked after him, until he turned a corner of the road; and then set
  • forward on his walk to London. He meditated at first, on the probable
  • consequences of his own advice, and the likelihood of his father’s
  • adopting it. He dismissed the subject from his mind, however, with the
  • consolatory reflection that time alone would show; and this is the
  • reflection we would impress upon the reader.
  • CHAPTER XXVIII. A GOOD-HUMOURED CHRISTMAS CHAPTER, CONTAINING AN ACCOUNT
  • OF A WEDDING, AND SOME OTHER SPORTS BESIDE: WHICH ALTHOUGH IN THEIR WAY,
  • EVEN AS GOOD CUSTOMS AS MARRIAGE ITSELF, ARE NOT QUITE SO RELIGIOUSLY
  • KEPT UP, IN THESE DEGENERATE TIMES
  • As brisk as bees, if not altogether as light as fairies, did the four
  • Pickwickians assemble on the morning of the twenty-second day of
  • December, in the year of grace in which these, their faithfully-recorded
  • adventures, were undertaken and accomplished. Christmas was close at
  • hand, in all his bluff and hearty honesty; it was the season of
  • hospitality, merriment, and open-heartedness; the old year was
  • preparing, like an ancient philosopher, to call his friends around him,
  • and amidst the sound of feasting and revelry to pass gently and calmly
  • away. Gay and merry was the time; and right gay and merry were at least
  • four of the numerous hearts that were gladdened by its coming.
  • And numerous indeed are the hearts to which Christmas brings a brief
  • season of happiness and enjoyment. How many families, whose members have
  • been dispersed and scattered far and wide, in the restless struggles of
  • life, are then reunited, and meet once again in that happy state of
  • companionship and mutual goodwill, which is a source of such pure and
  • unalloyed delight; and one so incompatible with the cares and sorrows of
  • the world, that the religious belief of the most civilised nations, and
  • the rude traditions of the roughest savages, alike number it among the
  • first joys of a future condition of existence, provided for the blessed
  • and happy! How many old recollections, and how many dormant sympathies,
  • does Christmas time awaken!
  • We write these words now, many miles distant from the spot at which,
  • year after year, we met on that day, a merry and joyous circle. Many of
  • the hearts that throbbed so gaily then, have ceased to beat; many of the
  • looks that shone so brightly then, have ceased to glow; the hands we
  • grasped, have grown cold; the eyes we sought, have hid their lustre in
  • the grave; and yet the old house, the room, the merry voices and smiling
  • faces, the jest, the laugh, the most minute and trivial circumstances
  • connected with those happy meetings, crowd upon our mind at each
  • recurrence of the season, as if the last assemblage had been but
  • yesterday! Happy, happy Christmas, that can win us back to the delusions
  • of our childish days; that can recall to the old man the pleasures of
  • his youth; that can transport the sailor and the traveller, thousands of
  • miles away, back to his own fireside and his quiet home!
  • But we are so taken up and occupied with the good qualities of this
  • saint Christmas, that we are keeping Mr. Pickwick and his friends
  • waiting in the cold on the outside of the Muggleton coach, which they
  • have just attained, well wrapped up in great-coats, shawls, and
  • comforters. The portmanteaus and carpet-bags have been stowed away, and
  • Mr. Weller and the guard are endeavouring to insinuate into the fore-
  • boot a huge cod-fish several sizes too large for it--which is snugly
  • packed up, in a long brown basket, with a layer of straw over the top,
  • and which has been left to the last, in order that he may repose in
  • safety on the half-dozen barrels of real native oysters, all the
  • property of Mr. Pickwick, which have been arranged in regular order at
  • the bottom of the receptacle. The interest displayed in Mr. Pickwick’s
  • countenance is most intense, as Mr. Weller and the guard try to squeeze
  • the cod-fish into the boot, first head first, and then tail first, and
  • then top upward, and then bottom upward, and then side-ways, and then
  • long-ways, all of which artifices the implacable cod-fish sturdily
  • resists, until the guard accidentally hits him in the very middle of the
  • basket, whereupon he suddenly disappears into the boot, and with him,
  • the head and shoulders of the guard himself, who, not calculating upon
  • so sudden a cessation of the passive resistance of the cod-fish,
  • experiences a very unexpected shock, to the unsmotherable delight of all
  • the porters and bystanders. Upon this, Mr. Pickwick smiles with great
  • good-humour, and drawing a shilling from his waistcoat pocket, begs the
  • guard, as he picks himself out of the boot, to drink his health in a
  • glass of hot brandy-and-water; at which the guard smiles too, and
  • Messrs. Snodgrass, Winkle, and Tupman, all smile in company. The guard
  • and Mr. Weller disappear for five minutes, most probably to get the hot
  • brandy-and-water, for they smell very strongly of it, when they return,
  • the coachman mounts to the box, Mr. Weller jumps up behind, the
  • Pickwickians pull their coats round their legs and their shawls over
  • their noses, the helpers pull the horse-cloths off, the coachman shouts
  • out a cheery ‘All right,’ and away they go.
  • They have rumbled through the streets, and jolted over the stones, and
  • at length reach the wide and open country. The wheels skim over the hard
  • and frosty ground; and the horses, bursting into a canter at a smart
  • crack of the whip, step along the road as if the load behind them--
  • coach, passengers, cod-fish, oyster-barrels, and all--were but a feather
  • at their heels. They have descended a gentle slope, and enter upon a
  • level, as compact and dry as a solid block of marble, two miles long.
  • Another crack of the whip, and on they speed, at a smart gallop, the
  • horses tossing their heads and rattling the harness, as if in
  • exhilaration at the rapidity of the motion; while the coachman, holding
  • whip and reins in one hand, takes off his hat with the other, and
  • resting it on his knees, pulls out his handkerchief, and wipes his
  • forehead, partly because he has a habit of doing it, and partly because
  • it’s as well to show the passengers how cool he is, and what an easy
  • thing it is to drive four-in-hand, when you have had as much practice as
  • he has. Having done this very leisurely (otherwise the effect would be
  • materially impaired), he replaces his handkerchief, pulls on his hat,
  • adjusts his gloves, squares his elbows, cracks the whip again, and on
  • they speed, more merrily than before.
  • A few small houses, scattered on either side of the road, betoken the
  • entrance to some town or village. The lively notes of the guard’s key-
  • bugle vibrate in the clear cold air, and wake up the old gentleman
  • inside, who, carefully letting down the window-sash half-way, and
  • standing sentry over the air, takes a short peep out, and then carefully
  • pulling it up again, informs the other inside that they’re going to
  • change directly; on which the other inside wakes himself up, and
  • determines to postpone his next nap until after the stoppage. Again the
  • bugle sounds lustily forth, and rouses the cottager’s wife and children,
  • who peep out at the house door, and watch the coach till it turns the
  • corner, when they once more crouch round the blazing fire, and throw on
  • another log of wood against father comes home; while father himself, a
  • full mile off, has just exchanged a friendly nod with the coachman, and
  • turned round to take a good long stare at the vehicle as it whirls away.
  • And now the bugle plays a lively air as the coach rattles through the
  • ill-paved streets of a country town; and the coachman, undoing the
  • buckle which keeps his ribands together, prepares to throw them off the
  • moment he stops. Mr. Pickwick emerges from his coat collar, and looks
  • about him with great curiosity; perceiving which, the coachman informs
  • Mr. Pickwick of the name of the town, and tells him it was market-day
  • yesterday, both of which pieces of information Mr. Pickwick retails to
  • his fellow-passengers; whereupon they emerge from their coat collars
  • too, and look about them also. Mr. Winkle, who sits at the extreme edge,
  • with one leg dangling in the air, is nearly precipitated into the
  • street, as the coach twists round the sharp corner by the cheesemonger’s
  • shop, and turns into the market-place; and before Mr. Snodgrass, who
  • sits next to him, has recovered from his alarm, they pull up at the inn
  • yard where the fresh horses, with cloths on, are already waiting. The
  • coachman throws down the reins and gets down himself, and the other
  • outside passengers drop down also; except those who have no great
  • confidence in their ability to get up again; and they remain where they
  • are, and stamp their feet against the coach to warm them--looking, with
  • longing eyes and red noses, at the bright fire in the inn bar, and the
  • sprigs of holly with red berries which ornament the window.
  • But the guard has delivered at the corn-dealer’s shop, the brown paper
  • packet he took out of the little pouch which hangs over his shoulder by
  • a leathern strap; and has seen the horses carefully put to; and has
  • thrown on the pavement the saddle which was brought from London on the
  • coach roof; and has assisted in the conference between the coachman and
  • the hostler about the gray mare that hurt her off fore-leg last Tuesday;
  • and he and Mr. Weller are all right behind, and the coachman is all
  • right in front, and the old gentleman inside, who has kept the window
  • down full two inches all this time, has pulled it up again, and the
  • cloths are off, and they are all ready for starting, except the ‘two
  • stout gentlemen,’ whom the coachman inquires after with some impatience.
  • Hereupon the coachman, and the guard, and Sam Weller, and Mr. Winkle,
  • and Mr. Snodgrass, and all the hostlers, and every one of the idlers,
  • who are more in number than all the others put together, shout for the
  • missing gentlemen as loud as they can bawl. A distant response is heard
  • from the yard, and Mr. Pickwick and Mr. Tupman come running down it,
  • quite out of breath, for they have been having a glass of ale a-piece,
  • and Mr. Pickwick’s fingers are so cold that he has been full five
  • minutes before he could find the sixpence to pay for it. The coachman
  • shouts an admonitory ‘Now then, gen’l’m’n,’ the guard re-echoes it; the
  • old gentleman inside thinks it a very extraordinary thing that people
  • _will _get down when they know there isn’t time for it; Mr. Pickwick
  • struggles up on one side, Mr. Tupman on the other; Mr. Winkle cries ‘All
  • right’; and off they start. Shawls are pulled up, coat collars are
  • readjusted, the pavement ceases, the houses disappear; and they are once
  • again dashing along the open road, with the fresh clear air blowing in
  • their faces, and gladdening their very hearts within them.
  • Such was the progress of Mr. Pickwick and his friends by the Muggleton
  • Telegraph, on their way to Dingley Dell; and at three o’clock that
  • afternoon they all stood high and dry, safe and sound, hale and hearty,
  • upon the steps of the Blue Lion, having taken on the road quite enough
  • of ale and brandy, to enable them to bid defiance to the frost that was
  • binding up the earth in its iron fetters, and weaving its beautiful
  • network upon the trees and hedges. Mr. Pickwick was busily engaged in
  • counting the barrels of oysters and superintending the disinterment of
  • the cod-fish, when he felt himself gently pulled by the skirts of the
  • coat. Looking round, he discovered that the individual who resorted to
  • this mode of catching his attention was no other than Mr. Wardle’s
  • favourite page, better known to the readers of this unvarnished history,
  • by the distinguishing appellation of the fat boy.
  • ‘Aha!’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Aha!’ said the fat boy.
  • As he said it, he glanced from the cod-fish to the oyster-barrels, and
  • chuckled joyously. He was fatter than ever.
  • ‘Well, you look rosy enough, my young friend,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘I’ve been asleep, right in front of the taproom fire,’ replied the fat
  • boy, who had heated himself to the colour of a new chimney-pot, in the
  • course of an hour’s nap. ‘Master sent me over with the chay-cart, to
  • carry your luggage up to the house. He’d ha’ sent some saddle-horses,
  • but he thought you’d rather walk, being a cold day.’
  • ‘Yes, yes,’ said Mr. Pickwick hastily, for he remembered how they had
  • travelled over nearly the same ground on a previous occasion. ‘Yes, we
  • would rather walk. Here, Sam!’
  • ‘Sir,’ said Mr. Weller.
  • ‘Help Mr. Wardle’s servant to put the packages into the cart, and then
  • ride on with him. We will walk forward at once.’
  • Having given this direction, and settled with the coachman, Mr. Pickwick
  • and his three friends struck into the footpath across the fields, and
  • walked briskly away, leaving Mr. Weller and the fat boy confronted
  • together for the first time. Sam looked at the fat boy with great
  • astonishment, but without saying a word; and began to stow the luggage
  • rapidly away in the cart, while the fat boy stood quietly by, and seemed
  • to think it a very interesting sort of thing to see Mr. Weller working
  • by himself.
  • ‘There,’ said Sam, throwing in the last carpet-bag, ‘there they are!’
  • ‘Yes,’ said the fat boy, in a very satisfied tone, ‘there they are.’
  • ‘Vell, young twenty stun,’ said Sam, ‘you’re a nice specimen of a prize
  • boy, you are!’
  • Thank’ee,’ said the fat boy.
  • ‘You ain’t got nothin’ on your mind as makes you fret yourself, have
  • you?’ inquired Sam.
  • ‘Not as I knows on,’ replied the fat boy.
  • ‘I should rayther ha’ thought, to look at you, that you was a-labourin’
  • under an unrequited attachment to some young ‘ooman,’ said Sam.
  • The fat boy shook his head.
  • ‘Vell,’ said Sam, ‘I am glad to hear it. Do you ever drink anythin’?’
  • ‘I likes eating better,’ replied the boy.
  • ‘Ah,’ said Sam, ‘I should ha’ s’posed that; but what I mean is, should
  • you like a drop of anythin’ as’d warm you? but I s’pose you never was
  • cold, with all them elastic fixtures, was you?’
  • ‘Sometimes,’ replied the boy; ‘and I likes a drop of something, when
  • it’s good.’
  • ‘Oh, you do, do you?’ said Sam, ‘come this way, then!’
  • The Blue Lion tap was soon gained, and the fat boy swallowed a glass of
  • liquor without so much as winking--a feat which considerably advanced
  • him in Mr. Weller’s good opinion. Mr. Weller having transacted a similar
  • piece of business on his own account, they got into the cart.
  • ‘Can you drive?’ said the fat boy.
  • ‘I should rayther think so,’ replied Sam.
  • ‘There, then,’ said the fat boy, putting the reins in his hand, and
  • pointing up a lane, ‘it’s as straight as you can go; you can’t miss it.’
  • With these words, the fat boy laid himself affectionately down by the
  • side of the cod-fish, and, placing an oyster-barrel under his head for a
  • pillow, fell asleep instantaneously.
  • ‘Well,’ said Sam, ‘of all the cool boys ever I set my eyes on, this here
  • young gen’l’m’n is the coolest. Come, wake up, young dropsy!’
  • But as young dropsy evinced no symptoms of returning animation, Sam
  • Weller sat himself down in front of the cart, and starting the old horse
  • with a jerk of the rein, jogged steadily on, towards the Manor Farm.
  • Meanwhile, Mr. Pickwick and his friends having walked their blood into
  • active circulation, proceeded cheerfully on. The paths were hard; the
  • grass was crisp and frosty; the air had a fine, dry, bracing coldness;
  • and the rapid approach of the gray twilight (slate-coloured is a better
  • term in frosty weather) made them look forward with pleasant
  • anticipation to the comforts which awaited them at their hospitable
  • entertainer’s. It was the sort of afternoon that might induce a couple
  • of elderly gentlemen, in a lonely field, to take off their greatcoats
  • and play at leap-frog in pure lightness of heart and gaiety; and we
  • firmly believe that had Mr. Tupman at that moment proffered ‘a back,’
  • Mr. Pickwick would have accepted his offer with the utmost avidity.
  • However, Mr. Tupman did not volunteer any such accommodation, and the
  • friends walked on, conversing merrily. As they turned into a lane they
  • had to cross, the sound of many voices burst upon their ears; and before
  • they had even had time to form a guess to whom they belonged, they
  • walked into the very centre of the party who were expecting their
  • arrival--a fact which was first notified to the Pickwickians, by the
  • loud ‘Hurrah,’ which burst from old Wardle’s lips, when they appeared in
  • sight.
  • First, there was Wardle himself, looking, if that were possible, more
  • jolly than ever; then there were Bella and her faithful Trundle; and,
  • lastly, there were Emily and some eight or ten young ladies, who had all
  • come down to the wedding, which was to take place next day, and who were
  • in as happy and important a state as young ladies usually are, on such
  • momentous occasions; and they were, one and all, startling the fields
  • and lanes, far and wide, with their frolic and laughter.
  • The ceremony of introduction, under such circumstances, was very soon
  • performed, or we should rather say that the introduction was soon over,
  • without any ceremony at all. In two minutes thereafter, Mr. Pickwick was
  • joking with the young ladies who wouldn’t come over the stile while he
  • looked--or who, having pretty feet and unexceptionable ankles, preferred
  • standing on the top rail for five minutes or so, declaring that they
  • were too frightened to move--with as much ease and absence of reserve or
  • constraint, as if he had known them for life. It is worthy of remark,
  • too, that Mr. Snodgrass offered Emily far more assistance than the
  • absolute terrors of the stile (although it was full three feet high, and
  • had only a couple of stepping-stones) would seem to require; while one
  • black-eyed young lady in a very nice little pair of boots with fur round
  • the top, was observed to scream very loudly, when Mr. Winkle offered to
  • help her over.
  • All this was very snug and pleasant. And when the difficulties of the
  • stile were at last surmounted, and they once more entered on the open
  • field, old Wardle informed Mr. Pickwick how they had all been down in a
  • body to inspect the furniture and fittings-up of the house, which the
  • young couple were to tenant, after the Christmas holidays; at which
  • communication Bella and Trundle both coloured up, as red as the fat boy
  • after the taproom fire; and the young lady with the black eyes and the
  • fur round the boots, whispered something in Emily’s ear, and then
  • glanced archly at Mr. Snodgrass; to which Emily responded that she was a
  • foolish girl, but turned very red, notwithstanding; and Mr. Snodgrass,
  • who was as modest as all great geniuses usually are, felt the crimson
  • rising to the crown of his head, and devoutly wished, in the inmost
  • recesses of his own heart, that the young lady aforesaid, with her black
  • eyes, and her archness, and her boots with the fur round the top, were
  • all comfortably deposited in the adjacent county.
  • But if they were social and happy outside the house, what was the warmth
  • and cordiality of their reception when they reached the farm! The very
  • servants grinned with pleasure at sight of Mr. Pickwick; and Emma
  • bestowed a half-demure, half-impudent, and all-pretty look of
  • recognition, on Mr. Tupman, which was enough to make the statue of
  • Bonaparte in the passage, unfold his arms, and clasp her within them.
  • The old lady was seated with customary state in the front parlour, but
  • she was rather cross, and, by consequence, most particularly deaf. She
  • never went out herself, and like a great many other old ladies of the
  • same stamp, she was apt to consider it an act of domestic treason, if
  • anybody else took the liberty of doing what she couldn’t. So, bless her
  • old soul, she sat as upright as she could, in her great chair, and
  • looked as fierce as might be--and that was benevolent after all.
  • ‘Mother,’ said Wardle, ‘Mr. Pickwick. You recollect him?’
  • ‘Never mind,’ replied the old lady, with great dignity. ‘Don’t trouble
  • Mr. Pickwick about an old creetur like me. Nobody cares about me now,
  • and it’s very nat’ral they shouldn’t.’ Here the old lady tossed her
  • head, and smoothed down her lavender-coloured silk dress with trembling
  • hands.
  • ‘Come, come, ma’am,’ said Mr. Pickwick, ‘I can’t let you cut an old
  • friend in this way. I have come down expressly to have a long talk, and
  • another rubber with you; and we’ll show these boys and girls how to
  • dance a minuet, before they’re eight-and-forty hours older.’
  • The old lady was rapidly giving way, but she did not like to do it all
  • at once; so she only said, ‘Ah! I can’t hear him!’
  • ‘Nonsense, mother,’ said Wardle. ‘Come, come, don’t be cross, there’s a
  • good soul. Recollect Bella; come, you must keep her spirits up, poor
  • girl.’
  • The good old lady heard this, for her lip quivered as her son said it.
  • But age has its little infirmities of temper, and she was not quite
  • brought round yet. So, she smoothed down the lavender-coloured dress
  • again, and turning to Mr. Pickwick said, ‘Ah, Mr. Pickwick, young people
  • was very different, when I was a girl.’
  • ‘No doubt of that, ma’am,’ said Mr. Pickwick, ‘and that’s the reason why
  • I would make much of the few that have any traces of the old stock’--and
  • saying this, Mr. Pickwick gently pulled Bella towards him, and bestowing
  • a kiss upon her forehead, bade her sit down on the little stool at her
  • grandmother’s feet. Whether the expression of her countenance, as it was
  • raised towards the old lady’s face, called up a thought of old times, or
  • whether the old lady was touched by Mr. Pickwick’s affectionate good-
  • nature, or whatever was the cause, she was fairly melted; so she threw
  • herself on her granddaughter’s neck, and all the little ill-humour
  • evaporated in a gush of silent tears.
  • A happy party they were, that night. Sedate and solemn were the score of
  • rubbers in which Mr. Pickwick and the old lady played together;
  • uproarious was the mirth of the round table. Long after the ladies had
  • retired, did the hot elder wine, well qualified with brandy and spice,
  • go round, and round, and round again; and sound was the sleep and
  • pleasant were the dreams that followed. It is a remarkable fact that
  • those of Mr. Snodgrass bore constant reference to Emily Wardle; and that
  • the principal figure in Mr. Winkle’s visions was a young lady with black
  • eyes, and arch smile, and a pair of remarkably nice boots with fur round
  • the tops.
  • Mr. Pickwick was awakened early in the morning, by a hum of voices and a
  • pattering of feet, sufficient to rouse even the fat boy from his heavy
  • slumbers. He sat up in bed and listened. The female servants and female
  • visitors were running constantly to and fro; and there were such
  • multitudinous demands for hot water, such repeated outcries for needles
  • and thread, and so many half-suppressed entreaties of ‘Oh, do come and
  • tie me, there’s a dear!’ that Mr. Pickwick in his innocence began to
  • imagine that something dreadful must have occurred--when he grew more
  • awake, and remembered the wedding. The occasion being an important one,
  • he dressed himself with peculiar care, and descended to the breakfast-
  • room.
  • There were all the female servants in a bran new uniform of pink muslin
  • gowns with white bows in their caps, running about the house in a state
  • of excitement and agitation which it would be impossible to describe.
  • The old lady was dressed out in a brocaded gown, which had not seen the
  • light for twenty years, saving and excepting such truant rays as had
  • stolen through the chinks in the box in which it had been laid by,
  • during the whole time. Mr. Trundle was in high feather and spirits, but
  • a little nervous withal. The hearty old landlord was trying to look very
  • cheerful and unconcerned, but failing signally in the attempt. All the
  • girls were in tears and white muslin, except a select two or three, who
  • were being honoured with a private view of the bride and bridesmaids,
  • upstairs. All the Pickwickians were in most blooming array; and there
  • was a terrific roaring on the grass in front of the house, occasioned by
  • all the men, boys, and hobbledehoys attached to the farm, each of whom
  • had got a white bow in his button-hole, and all of whom were cheering
  • with might and main; being incited thereto, and stimulated therein by
  • the precept and example of Mr. Samuel Weller, who had managed to become
  • mighty popular already, and was as much at home as if he had been born
  • on the land.
  • A wedding is a licensed subject to joke upon, but there really is no
  • great joke in the matter after all;--we speak merely of the ceremony,
  • and beg it to be distinctly understood that we indulge in no hidden
  • sarcasm upon a married life. Mixed up with the pleasure and joy of the
  • occasion, are the many regrets at quitting home, the tears of parting
  • between parent and child, the consciousness of leaving the dearest and
  • kindest friends of the happiest portion of human life, to encounter its
  • cares and troubles with others still untried and little known--natural
  • feelings which we would not render this chapter mournful by describing,
  • and which we should be still more unwilling to be supposed to ridicule.
  • Let us briefly say, then, that the ceremony was performed by the old
  • clergyman, in the parish church of Dingley Dell, and that Mr. Pickwick’s
  • name is attached to the register, still preserved in the vestry thereof;
  • that the young lady with the black eyes signed her name in a very
  • unsteady and tremulous manner; that Emily’s signature, as the other
  • bridesmaid, is nearly illegible; that it all went off in very admirable
  • style; that the young ladies generally thought it far less shocking than
  • they had expected; and that although the owner of the black eyes and the
  • arch smile informed Mr. Wardle that she was sure she could never submit
  • to anything so dreadful, we have the very best reasons for thinking she
  • was mistaken. To all this, we may add, that Mr. Pickwick was the first
  • who saluted the bride, and that in so doing he threw over her neck a
  • rich gold watch and chain, which no mortal eyes but the jeweller’s had
  • ever beheld before. Then, the old church bell rang as gaily as it could,
  • and they all returned to breakfast.
  • ‘Vere does the mince-pies go, young opium-eater?’ said Mr. Weller to the
  • fat boy, as he assisted in laying out such articles of consumption as
  • had not been duly arranged on the previous night.
  • The fat boy pointed to the destination of the pies.
  • ‘Wery good,’ said Sam, ‘stick a bit o’ Christmas in ‘em. T’other dish
  • opposite. There; now we look compact and comfortable, as the father said
  • ven he cut his little boy’s head off, to cure him o’ squintin’.’
  • As Mr. Weller made the comparison, he fell back a step or two, to give
  • full effect to it, and surveyed the preparations with the utmost
  • satisfaction.
  • ‘Wardle,’ said Mr. Pickwick, almost as soon as they were all seated, ‘a
  • glass of wine in honour of this happy occasion!’
  • ‘I shall be delighted, my boy,’ said Wardle. ‘Joe--damn that boy, he’s
  • gone to sleep.’
  • No, I ain’t, sir,’ replied the fat boy, starting up from a remote
  • corner, where, like the patron saint of fat boys--the immortal Horner--
  • he had been devouring a Christmas pie, though not with the coolness and
  • deliberation which characterised that young gentleman’s proceedings.
  • ‘Fill Mr. Pickwick’s glass.’
  • ‘Yes, sir.’
  • The fat boy filled Mr. Pickwick’s glass, and then retired behind his
  • master’s chair, from whence he watched the play of the knives and forks,
  • and the progress of the choice morsels from the dishes to the mouths of
  • the company, with a kind of dark and gloomy joy that was most
  • impressive.
  • ‘God bless you, old fellow!’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Same to you, my boy,’ replied Wardle; and they pledged each other,
  • heartily.
  • ‘Mrs. Wardle,’ said Mr. Pickwick, ‘we old folks must have a glass of
  • wine together, in honour of this joyful event.’
  • The old lady was in a state of great grandeur just then, for she was
  • sitting at the top of the table in the brocaded gown, with her newly-
  • married granddaughter on one side, and Mr. Pickwick on the other, to do
  • the carving. Mr. Pickwick had not spoken in a very loud tone, but she
  • understood him at once, and drank off a full glass of wine to his long
  • life and happiness; after which the worthy old soul launched forth into
  • a minute and particular account of her own wedding, with a dissertation
  • on the fashion of wearing high-heeled shoes, and some particulars
  • concerning the life and adventures of the beautiful Lady Tollimglower,
  • deceased; at all of which the old lady herself laughed very heartily
  • indeed, and so did the young ladies too, for they were wondering among
  • themselves what on earth grandma was talking about. When they laughed,
  • the old lady laughed ten times more heartily, and said that these always
  • had been considered capital stories, which caused them all to laugh
  • again, and put the old lady into the very best of humours. Then the cake
  • was cut, and passed through the ring; the young ladies saved pieces to
  • put under their pillows to dream of their future husbands on; and a
  • great deal of blushing and merriment was thereby occasioned.
  • ‘Mr. Miller,’ said Mr. Pickwick to his old acquaintance, the hard-headed
  • gentleman, ‘a glass of wine?’
  • ‘With great satisfaction, Mr. Pickwick,’ replied the hard-headed
  • gentleman solemnly.
  • ‘You’ll take me in?’ said the benevolent old clergyman.
  • ‘And me,’ interposed his wife.
  • ‘And me, and me,’ said a couple of poor relations at the bottom of the
  • table, who had eaten and drunk very heartily, and laughed at everything.
  • Mr. Pickwick expressed his heartfelt delight at every additional
  • suggestion; and his eyes beamed with hilarity and cheerfulness.
  • ‘Ladies and gentlemen,’ said Mr. Pickwick, suddenly rising.
  • ‘Hear, hear! Hear, hear! Hear, hear!’ cried Mr. Weller, in the
  • excitement of his feelings.
  • ‘Call in all the servants,’ cried old Wardle, interposing to prevent the
  • public rebuke which Mr. Weller would otherwise most indubitably have
  • received from his master. ‘Give them a glass of wine each to drink the
  • toast in. Now, Pickwick.’
  • Amidst the silence of the company, the whispering of the women-servants,
  • and the awkward embarrassment of the men, Mr. Pickwick proceeded--
  • ‘Ladies and gentlemen--no, I won’t say ladies and gentlemen, I’ll call
  • you my friends, my dear friends, if the ladies will allow me to take so
  • great a liberty--’
  • Here Mr. Pickwick was interrupted by immense applause from the ladies,
  • echoed by the gentlemen, during which the owner of the eyes was
  • distinctly heard to state that she could kiss that dear Mr. Pickwick.
  • Whereupon Mr. Winkle gallantly inquired if it couldn’t be done by
  • deputy: to which the young lady with the black eyes replied ‘Go away,’
  • and accompanied the request with a look which said as plainly as a look
  • could do, ‘if you can.’
  • ‘My dear friends,’ resumed Mr. Pickwick, ‘I am going to propose the
  • health of the bride and bridegroom--God bless ‘em (cheers and tears). My
  • young friend, Trundle, I believe to be a very excellent and manly
  • fellow; and his wife I know to be a very amiable and lovely girl, well
  • qualified to transfer to another sphere of action the happiness which
  • for twenty years she has diffused around her, in her father’s house.
  • (Here, the fat boy burst forth into stentorian blubberings, and was led
  • forth by the coat collar, by Mr. Weller.) I wish,’ added Mr. Pickwick--
  • ‘I wish I was young enough to be her sister’s husband (cheers), but,
  • failing that, I am happy to be old enough to be her father; for, being
  • so, I shall not be suspected of any latent designs when I say, that I
  • admire, esteem, and love them both (cheers and sobs). The bride’s
  • father, our good friend there, is a noble person, and I am proud to know
  • him (great uproar). He is a kind, excellent, independent-spirited, fine-
  • hearted, hospitable, liberal man (enthusiastic shouts from the poor
  • relations, at all the adjectives; and especially at the two last). That
  • his daughter may enjoy all the happiness, even he can desire; and that
  • he may derive from the contemplation of her felicity all the
  • gratification of heart and peace of mind which he so well deserves, is,
  • I am persuaded, our united wish. So, let us drink their healths, and
  • wish them prolonged life, and every blessing!’
  • Mr. Pickwick concluded amidst a whirlwind of applause; and once more
  • were the lungs of the supernumeraries, under Mr. Weller’s command,
  • brought into active and efficient operation. Mr. Wardle proposed Mr.
  • Pickwick; Mr. Pickwick proposed the old lady. Mr. Snodgrass proposed Mr.
  • Wardle; Mr. Wardle proposed Mr. Snodgrass. One of the poor relations
  • proposed Mr. Tupman, and the other poor relation proposed Mr. Winkle;
  • all was happiness and festivity, until the mysterious disappearance of
  • both the poor relations beneath the table, warned the party that it was
  • time to adjourn.
  • At dinner they met again, after a five-and-twenty mile walk, undertaken
  • by the males at Wardle’s recommendation, to get rid of the effects of
  • the wine at breakfast. The poor relations had kept in bed all day, with
  • the view of attaining the same happy consummation, but, as they had been
  • unsuccessful, they stopped there. Mr. Weller kept the domestics in a
  • state of perpetual hilarity; and the fat boy divided his time into small
  • alternate allotments of eating and sleeping.
  • The dinner was as hearty an affair as the breakfast, and was quite as
  • noisy, without the tears. Then came the dessert and some more toasts.
  • Then came the tea and coffee; and then, the ball.
  • The best sitting-room at Manor Farm was a good, long, dark-panelled room
  • with a high chimney-piece, and a capacious chimney, up which you could
  • have driven one of the new patent cabs, wheels and all. At the upper end
  • of the room, seated in a shady bower of holly and evergreens were the
  • two best fiddlers, and the only harp, in all Muggleton. In all sorts of
  • recesses, and on all kinds of brackets, stood massive old silver
  • candlesticks with four branches each. The carpet was up, the candles
  • burned bright, the fire blazed and crackled on the hearth, and merry
  • voices and light-hearted laughter rang through the room. If any of the
  • old English yeomen had turned into fairies when they died, it was just
  • the place in which they would have held their revels.
  • If anything could have added to the interest of this agreeable scene, it
  • would have been the remarkable fact of Mr. Pickwick’s appearing without
  • his gaiters, for the first time within the memory of his oldest friends.
  • ‘You mean to dance?’ said Wardle.
  • ‘Of course I do,’ replied Mr. Pickwick. ‘Don’t you see I am dressed for
  • the purpose?’ Mr. Pickwick called attention to his speckled silk
  • stockings, and smartly tied pumps.
  • ‘_You _in silk stockings!’ exclaimed Mr. Tupman jocosely.
  • ‘And why not, sir--why not?’ said Mr. Pickwick, turning warmly upon him.
  • ‘Oh, of course there is no reason why you shouldn’t wear them,’
  • responded Mr. Tupman.
  • ‘I imagine not, sir--I imagine not,’ said Mr. Pickwick, in a very
  • peremptory tone.
  • Mr. Tupman had contemplated a laugh, but he found it was a serious
  • matter; so he looked grave, and said they were a pretty pattern.
  • ‘I hope they are,’ said Mr. Pickwick, fixing his eyes upon his friend.
  • ‘You see nothing extraordinary in the stockings, _as_ stockings, I
  • trust, Sir?’
  • ‘Certainly not. Oh, certainly not,’ replied Mr. Tupman. He walked away;
  • and Mr. Pickwick’s countenance resumed its customary benign expression.
  • ‘We are all ready, I believe,’ said Mr. Pickwick, who was stationed with
  • the old lady at the top of the dance, and had already made four false
  • starts, in his excessive anxiety to commence.
  • ‘Then begin at once,’ said Wardle. ‘Now!’
  • Up struck the two fiddles and the one harp, and off went Mr. Pickwick
  • into hands across, when there was a general clapping of hands, and a cry
  • of ‘Stop, stop!’
  • ‘What’s the matter?’ said Mr. Pickwick, who was only brought to, by the
  • fiddles and harp desisting, and could have been stopped by no other
  • earthly power, if the house had been on fire.
  • ‘Where’s Arabella Allen?’ cried a dozen voices.
  • ‘And Winkle?’ added Mr. Tupman.
  • ‘Here we are!’ exclaimed that gentleman, emerging with his pretty
  • companion from the corner; as he did so, it would have been hard to tell
  • which was the redder in the face, he or the young lady with the black
  • eyes.
  • ‘What an extraordinary thing it is, Winkle,’ said Mr. Pickwick, rather
  • pettishly, ‘that you couldn’t have taken your place before.’
  • ‘Not at all extraordinary,’ said Mr. Winkle.
  • ‘Well,’ said Mr. Pickwick, with a very expressive smile, as his eyes
  • rested on Arabella, ‘well, I don’t know that it _was _extraordinary,
  • either, after all.’
  • However, there was no time to think more about the matter, for the
  • fiddles and harp began in real earnest. Away went Mr. Pickwick--hands
  • across--down the middle to the very end of the room, and half-way up the
  • chimney, back again to the door--poussette everywhere--loud stamp on the
  • ground--ready for the next couple--off again--all the figure over once
  • more--another stamp to beat out the time--next couple, and the next, and
  • the next again--never was such going; at last, after they had reached
  • the bottom of the dance, and full fourteen couple after the old lady had
  • retired in an exhausted state, and the clergyman’s wife had been
  • substituted in her stead, did that gentleman, when there was no demand
  • whatever on his exertions, keep perpetually dancing in his place, to
  • keep time to the music, smiling on his partner all the while with a
  • blandness of demeanour which baffles all description.
  • Long before Mr. Pickwick was weary of dancing, the newly-married couple
  • had retired from the scene. There was a glorious supper downstairs,
  • notwithstanding, and a good long sitting after it; and when Mr. Pickwick
  • awoke, late the next morning, he had a confused recollection of having,
  • severally and confidentially, invited somewhere about five-and-forty
  • people to dine with him at the George and Vulture, the very first time
  • they came to London; which Mr. Pickwick rightly considered a pretty
  • certain indication of his having taken something besides exercise, on
  • the previous night.
  • ‘And so your family has games in the kitchen to-night, my dear, has
  • they?’ inquired Sam of Emma.
  • ‘Yes, Mr. Weller,’ replied Emma; ‘we always have on Christmas Eve.
  • Master wouldn’t neglect to keep it up on any account.’
  • ‘Your master’s a wery pretty notion of keeping anythin’ up, my dear,’
  • said Mr. Weller; ‘I never see such a sensible sort of man as he is, or
  • such a reg’lar gen’l’m’n.’
  • Oh, that he is!’ said the fat boy, joining in the conversation; ‘don’t
  • he breed nice pork!’ The fat youth gave a semi-cannibalic leer at Mr.
  • Weller, as he thought of the roast legs and gravy.
  • ‘Oh, you’ve woke up, at last, have you?’ said Sam.
  • The fat boy nodded.
  • ‘I’ll tell you what it is, young boa-constructer,’ said Mr. Weller
  • impressively; ‘if you don’t sleep a little less, and exercise a little
  • more, wen you comes to be a man you’ll lay yourself open to the same
  • sort of personal inconwenience as was inflicted on the old gen’l’m’n as
  • wore the pigtail.’
  • ‘What did they do to him?’ inquired the fat boy, in a faltering voice.
  • ‘I’m a-going to tell you,’ replied Mr. Weller; ‘he was one o’ the
  • largest patterns as was ever turned out--reg’lar fat man, as hadn’t
  • caught a glimpse of his own shoes for five-and-forty year.’
  • ‘Lor!’ exclaimed Emma.
  • ‘No, that he hadn’t, my dear,’ said Mr. Weller; ‘and if you’d put an
  • exact model of his own legs on the dinin’-table afore him, he wouldn’t
  • ha’ known ‘em. Well, he always walks to his office with a wery handsome
  • gold watch-chain hanging out, about a foot and a quarter, and a gold
  • watch in his fob pocket as was worth--I’m afraid to say how much, but as
  • much as a watch can be--a large, heavy, round manufacter, as stout for a
  • watch, as he was for a man, and with a big face in proportion. “You’d
  • better not carry that ‘ere watch,” says the old gen’l’m’n’s friends,
  • “you’ll be robbed on it,” says they. “Shall I?” says he. “Yes, you
  • will,” says they. “Well,” says he, “I should like to see the thief as
  • could get this here watch out, for I’m blessed if I ever can, it’s such
  • a tight fit,” says he, “and wenever I vants to know what’s o’clock, I’m
  • obliged to stare into the bakers’ shops,” he says. Well, then he laughs
  • as hearty as if he was a-goin’ to pieces, and out he walks agin with his
  • powdered head and pigtail, and rolls down the Strand with the chain
  • hangin’ out furder than ever, and the great round watch almost bustin’
  • through his gray kersey smalls. There warn’t a pickpocket in all London
  • as didn’t take a pull at that chain, but the chain ‘ud never break, and
  • the watch ‘ud never come out, so they soon got tired of dragging such a
  • heavy old gen’l’m’n along the pavement, and he’d go home and laugh till
  • the pigtail wibrated like the penderlum of a Dutch clock. At last, one
  • day the old gen’l’m’n was a-rollin’ along, and he sees a pickpocket as
  • he know’d by sight, a-coming up, arm in arm with a little boy with a
  • wery large head. “Here’s a game,” says the old gen’l’m’n to himself,
  • “they’re a-goin’ to have another try, but it won’t do!” So he begins a-
  • chucklin’ wery hearty, wen, all of a sudden, the little boy leaves hold
  • of the pickpocket’s arm, and rushes head foremost straight into the old
  • gen’l’m’n’s stomach, and for a moment doubles him right up with the
  • pain. “Murder!” says the old gen’l’m’n. “All right, Sir,” says the
  • pickpocket, a-wisperin’ in his ear. And wen he come straight agin, the
  • watch and chain was gone, and what’s worse than that, the old
  • gen’l’m’n’s digestion was all wrong ever afterwards, to the wery last
  • day of his life; so just you look about you, young feller, and take care
  • you don’t get too fat.’
  • As Mr. Weller concluded this moral tale, with which the fat boy appeared
  • much affected, they all three repaired to the large kitchen, in which
  • the family were by this time assembled, according to annual custom on
  • Christmas Eve, observed by old Wardle’s forefathers from time
  • immemorial.
  • From the centre of the ceiling of this kitchen, old Wardle had just
  • suspended, with his own hands, a huge branch of mistletoe, and this same
  • branch of mistletoe instantaneously gave rise to a scene of general and
  • most delightful struggling and confusion; in the midst of which, Mr.
  • Pickwick, with a gallantry that would have done honour to a descendant
  • of Lady Tollimglower herself, took the old lady by the hand, led her
  • beneath the mystic branch, and saluted her in all courtesy and decorum.
  • The old lady submitted to this piece of practical politeness with all
  • the dignity which befitted so important and serious a solemnity, but the
  • younger ladies, not being so thoroughly imbued with a superstitious
  • veneration for the custom, or imagining that the value of a salute is
  • very much enhanced if it cost a little trouble to obtain it, screamed
  • and struggled, and ran into corners, and threatened and remonstrated,
  • and did everything but leave the room, until some of the less
  • adventurous gentlemen were on the point of desisting, when they all at
  • once found it useless to resist any longer, and submitted to be kissed
  • with a good grace. Mr. Winkle kissed the young lady with the black eyes,
  • and Mr. Snodgrass kissed Emily; and Mr. Weller, not being particular
  • about the form of being under the mistletoe, kissed Emma and the other
  • female servants, just as he caught them. As to the poor relations, they
  • kissed everybody, not even excepting the plainer portions of the young
  • lady visitors, who, in their excessive confusion, ran right under the
  • mistletoe, as soon as it was hung up, without knowing it! Wardle stood
  • with his back to the fire, surveying the whole scene, with the utmost
  • satisfaction; and the fat boy took the opportunity of appropriating to
  • his own use, and summarily devouring, a particularly fine mince-pie,
  • that had been carefully put by, for somebody else.
  • Now, the screaming had subsided, and faces were in a glow, and curls in
  • a tangle, and Mr. Pickwick, after kissing the old lady as before
  • mentioned, was standing under the mistletoe, looking with a very pleased
  • countenance on all that was passing around him, when the young lady with
  • the black eyes, after a little whispering with the other young ladies,
  • made a sudden dart forward, and, putting her arm round Mr. Pickwick’s
  • neck, saluted him affectionately on the left cheek; and before Mr.
  • Pickwick distinctly knew what was the matter, he was surrounded by the
  • whole body, and kissed by every one of them.
  • It was a pleasant thing to see Mr. Pickwick in the centre of the group,
  • now pulled this way, and then that, and first kissed on the chin, and
  • then on the nose, and then on the spectacles, and to hear the peals of
  • laughter which were raised on every side; but it was a still more
  • pleasant thing to see Mr. Pickwick, blinded shortly afterwards with a
  • silk handkerchief, falling up against the wall, and scrambling into
  • corners, and going through all the mysteries of blind-man’s buff, with
  • the utmost relish for the game, until at last he caught one of the poor
  • relations, and then had to evade the blind-man himself, which he did
  • with a nimbleness and agility that elicited the admiration and applause
  • of all beholders. The poor relations caught the people who they thought
  • would like it, and, when the game flagged, got caught themselves. When
  • they all tired of blind-man’s buff, there was a great game at snap-
  • dragon, and when fingers enough were burned with that, and all the
  • raisins were gone, they sat down by the huge fire of blazing logs to a
  • substantial supper, and a mighty bowl of wassail, something smaller than
  • an ordinary wash-house copper, in which the hot apples were hissing and
  • bubbling with a rich look, and a jolly sound, that were perfectly
  • irresistible.
  • ‘This,’ said Mr. Pickwick, looking round him, ‘this is, indeed,
  • comfort.’ ‘Our invariable custom,’ replied Mr. Wardle. ‘Everybody sits
  • down with us on Christmas Eve, as you see them now--servants and all;
  • and here we wait, until the clock strikes twelve, to usher Christmas in,
  • and beguile the time with forfeits and old stories. Trundle, my boy,
  • rake up the fire.’
  • Up flew the bright sparks in myriads as the logs were stirred. The deep
  • red blaze sent forth a rich glow, that penetrated into the farthest
  • corner of the room, and cast its cheerful tint on every face.
  • ‘Come,’ said Wardle, ‘a song--a Christmas song! I’ll give you one, in
  • default of a better.’
  • ‘Bravo!’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Fill up,’ cried Wardle. ‘It will be two hours, good, before you see the
  • bottom of the bowl through the deep rich colour of the wassail; fill up
  • all round, and now for the song.’
  • Thus saying, the merry old gentleman, in a good, round, sturdy voice,
  • commenced without more ado--
  • A CHRISTMAS CAROL
  • ‘I care not for Spring; on his fickle wing Let the blossoms and buds be
  • borne; He woos them amain with his treacherous rain, And he scatters
  • them ere the morn. An inconstant elf, he knows not himself, Nor his own
  • changing mind an hour, He’ll smile in your face, and, with wry grimace,
  • He’ll wither your youngest flower.
  • ‘Let the Summer sun to his bright home run, He shall never be sought by
  • me; When he’s dimmed by a cloud I can laugh aloud And care not how sulky
  • he be! For his darling child is the madness wild That sports in fierce
  • fever’s train; And when love is too strong, it don’t last long, As many
  • have found to their pain.
  • ‘A mild harvest night, by the tranquil light Of the modest and gentle
  • moon, Has a far sweeter sheen for me, I ween, Than the broad and
  • unblushing noon. But every leaf awakens my grief, As it lieth beneath
  • the tree; So let Autumn air be never so fair, It by no means agrees with
  • me.
  • ‘But my song I troll out, for _Christmas _Stout, The hearty, the true,
  • and the bold; A bumper I drain, and with might and main Give three
  • cheers for this Christmas old! We’ll usher him in with a merry din That
  • shall gladden his joyous heart, And we’ll keep him up, while there’s
  • bite or sup, And in fellowship good, we’ll part. ‘In his fine honest
  • pride, he scorns to hide One jot of his hard-weather scars; They’re no
  • disgrace, for there’s much the same trace On the cheeks of our bravest
  • tars. Then again I sing till the roof doth ring And it echoes from wall
  • to wall--To the stout old wight, fair welcome to-night, As the King of
  • the Seasons all!’
  • This song was tumultuously applauded--for friends and dependents make a
  • capital audience--and the poor relations, especially, were in perfect
  • ecstasies of rapture. Again was the fire replenished, and again went the
  • wassail round.
  • ‘How it snows!’ said one of the men, in a low tone.
  • ‘Snows, does it?’ said Wardle.
  • ‘Rough, cold night, Sir,’ replied the man; ‘and there’s a wind got up,
  • that drifts it across the fields, in a thick white cloud.’
  • ‘What does Jem say?’ inquired the old lady. ‘There ain’t anything the
  • matter, is there?’
  • ‘No, no, mother,’ replied Wardle; ‘he says there’s a snowdrift, and a
  • wind that’s piercing cold. I should know that, by the way it rumbles in
  • the chimney.’
  • ‘Ah!’ said the old lady, ‘there was just such a wind, and just such a
  • fall of snow, a good many years back, I recollect--just five years
  • before your poor father died. It was a Christmas Eve, too; and I
  • remember that on that very night he told us the story about the goblins
  • that carried away old Gabriel Grub.’
  • ‘The story about what?’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Oh, nothing, nothing,’ replied Wardle. ‘About an old sexton, that the
  • good people down here suppose to have been carried away by goblins.’
  • ‘Suppose!’ ejaculated the old lady. ‘Is there anybody hardy enough to
  • disbelieve it? Suppose! Haven’t you heard ever since you were a child,
  • that he _was _carried away by the goblins, and don’t you know he was?’
  • ‘Very well, mother, he was, if you like,’ said Wardle laughing. ‘He
  • _was_ carried away by goblins, Pickwick; and there’s an end of the
  • matter.’
  • ‘No, no,’ said Mr. Pickwick, ‘not an end of it, I assure you; for I must
  • hear how, and why, and all about it.’
  • Wardle smiled, as every head was bent forward to hear, and filling out
  • the wassail with no stinted hand, nodded a health to Mr. Pickwick, and
  • began as follows--
  • But bless our editorial heart, what a long chapter we have been betrayed
  • into! We had quite forgotten all such petty restrictions as chapters, we
  • solemnly declare. So here goes, to give the goblin a fair start in a new
  • one. A clear stage and no favour for the goblins, ladies and gentlemen,
  • if you please.
  • CHAPTER XXIX. THE STORY OF THE GOBLINS WHO STOLE A SEXTON
  • ‘In an old abbey town, down in this part of the country, a long, long
  • while ago--so long, that the story must be a true one, because our
  • great-grandfathers implicitly believed it--there officiated as sexton
  • and grave-digger in the churchyard, one Gabriel Grub. It by no means
  • follows that because a man is a sexton, and constantly surrounded by the
  • emblems of mortality, therefore he should be a morose and melancholy
  • man; your undertakers are the merriest fellows in the world; and I once
  • had the honour of being on intimate terms with a mute, who in private
  • life, and off duty, was as comical and jocose a little fellow as ever
  • chirped out a devil-may-care song, without a hitch in his memory, or
  • drained off a good stiff glass without stopping for breath. But
  • notwithstanding these precedents to the contrary, Gabriel Grub was an
  • ill-conditioned, cross-grained, surly fellow--a morose and lonely man,
  • who consorted with nobody but himself, and an old wicker bottle which
  • fitted into his large deep waistcoat pocket--and who eyed each merry
  • face, as it passed him by, with such a deep scowl of malice and ill-
  • humour, as it was difficult to meet without feeling something the worse
  • for.
  • ‘A little before twilight, one Christmas Eve, Gabriel shouldered his
  • spade, lighted his lantern, and betook himself towards the old
  • churchyard; for he had got a grave to finish by next morning, and,
  • feeling very low, he thought it might raise his spirits, perhaps, if he
  • went on with his work at once. As he went his way, up the ancient
  • street, he saw the cheerful light of the blazing fires gleam through the
  • old casements, and heard the loud laugh and the cheerful shouts of those
  • who were assembled around them; he marked the bustling preparations for
  • next day’s cheer, and smelled the numerous savoury odours consequent
  • thereupon, as they steamed up from the kitchen windows in clouds. All
  • this was gall and wormwood to the heart of Gabriel Grub; and when groups
  • of children bounded out of the houses, tripped across the road, and were
  • met, before they could knock at the opposite door, by half a dozen
  • curly-headed little rascals who crowded round them as they flocked
  • upstairs to spend the evening in their Christmas games, Gabriel smiled
  • grimly, and clutched the handle of his spade with a firmer grasp, as he
  • thought of measles, scarlet fever, thrush, whooping-cough, and a good
  • many other sources of consolation besides.
  • ‘In this happy frame of mind, Gabriel strode along, returning a short,
  • sullen growl to the good-humoured greetings of such of his neighbours as
  • now and then passed him, until he turned into the dark lane which led to
  • the churchyard. Now, Gabriel had been looking forward to reaching the
  • dark lane, because it was, generally speaking, a nice, gloomy, mournful
  • place, into which the townspeople did not much care to go, except in
  • broad daylight, and when the sun was shining; consequently, he was not a
  • little indignant to hear a young urchin roaring out some jolly song
  • about a merry Christmas, in this very sanctuary which had been called
  • Coffin Lane ever since the days of the old abbey, and the time of the
  • shaven-headed monks. As Gabriel walked on, and the voice drew nearer, he
  • found it proceeded from a small boy, who was hurrying along, to join one
  • of the little parties in the old street, and who, partly to keep himself
  • company, and partly to prepare himself for the occasion, was shouting
  • out the song at the highest pitch of his lungs. So Gabriel waited until
  • the boy came up, and then dodged him into a corner, and rapped him over
  • the head with his lantern five or six times, just to teach him to
  • modulate his voice. And as the boy hurried away with his hand to his
  • head, singing quite a different sort of tune, Gabriel Grub chuckled very
  • heartily to himself, and entered the churchyard, locking the gate behind
  • him.
  • ‘He took off his coat, set down his lantern, and getting into the
  • unfinished grave, worked at it for an hour or so with right good-will.
  • But the earth was hardened with the frost, and it was no very easy
  • matter to break it up, and shovel it out; and although there was a moon,
  • it was a very young one, and shed little light upon the grave, which was
  • in the shadow of the church. At any other time, these obstacles would
  • have made Gabriel Grub very moody and miserable, but he was so well
  • pleased with having stopped the small boy’s singing, that he took little
  • heed of the scanty progress he had made, and looked down into the grave,
  • when he had finished work for the night, with grim satisfaction,
  • murmuring as he gathered up his things--
  • Brave lodgings for one, brave lodgings for one, A few feet of cold
  • earth, when life is done; A stone at the head, a stone at the feet, A
  • rich, juicy meal for the worms to eat; Rank grass overhead, and damp
  • clay around, Brave lodgings for one, these, in holy ground!
  • ‘“Ho! ho!” laughed Gabriel Grub, as he sat himself down on a flat
  • tombstone which was a favourite resting-place of his, and drew forth his
  • wicker bottle. “A coffin at Christmas! A Christmas box! Ho! ho! ho!”
  • ‘“Ho! ho! ho!” repeated a voice which sounded close behind him.
  • ‘Gabriel paused, in some alarm, in the act of raising the wicker bottle
  • to his lips, and looked round. The bottom of the oldest grave about him
  • was not more still and quiet than the churchyard in the pale moonlight.
  • The cold hoar frost glistened on the tombstones, and sparkled like rows
  • of gems, among the stone carvings of the old church. The snow lay hard
  • and crisp upon the ground; and spread over the thickly-strewn mounds of
  • earth, so white and smooth a cover that it seemed as if corpses lay
  • there, hidden only by their winding sheets. Not the faintest rustle
  • broke the profound tranquillity of the solemn scene. Sound itself
  • appeared to be frozen up, all was so cold and still.
  • ‘“It was the echoes,” said Gabriel Grub, raising the bottle to his lips
  • again.
  • ‘“It was _not_,” said a deep voice.
  • ‘Gabriel started up, and stood rooted to the spot with astonishment and
  • terror; for his eyes rested on a form that made his blood run cold.
  • ‘Seated on an upright tombstone, close to him, was a strange, unearthly
  • figure, whom Gabriel felt at once, was no being of this world. His long,
  • fantastic legs which might have reached the ground, were cocked up, and
  • crossed after a quaint, fantastic fashion; his sinewy arms were bare;
  • and his hands rested on his knees. On his short, round body, he wore a
  • close covering, ornamented with small slashes; a short cloak dangled at
  • his back; the collar was cut into curious peaks, which served the goblin
  • in lieu of ruff or neckerchief; and his shoes curled up at his toes into
  • long points. On his head, he wore a broad-brimmed sugar-loaf hat,
  • garnished with a single feather. The hat was covered with the white
  • frost; and the goblin looked as if he had sat on the same tombstone very
  • comfortably, for two or three hundred years. He was sitting perfectly
  • still; his tongue was put out, as if in derision; and he was grinning at
  • Gabriel Grub with such a grin as only a goblin could call up.
  • ‘“It was _not _the echoes,” said the goblin.
  • ‘Gabriel Grub was paralysed, and could make no reply.
  • ‘“What do you do here on Christmas Eve?” said the goblin sternly.
  • ‘“I came to dig a grave, Sir,” stammered Gabriel Grub.
  • ‘“What man wanders among graves and churchyards on such a night as
  • this?” cried the goblin.
  • ‘“Gabriel Grub! Gabriel Grub!” screamed a wild chorus of voices that
  • seemed to fill the churchyard. Gabriel looked fearfully round--nothing
  • was to be seen.
  • ‘“What have you got in that bottle?” said the goblin.
  • ‘“Hollands, sir,” replied the sexton, trembling more than ever; for he
  • had bought it of the smugglers, and he thought that perhaps his
  • questioner might be in the excise department of the goblins.
  • ‘“Who drinks Hollands alone, and in a churchyard, on such a night as
  • this?” said the goblin.
  • ‘“Gabriel Grub! Gabriel Grub!” exclaimed the wild voices again.
  • ‘The goblin leered maliciously at the terrified sexton, and then raising
  • his voice, exclaimed--
  • ‘“And who, then, is our fair and lawful prize?”
  • ‘To this inquiry the invisible chorus replied, in a strain that sounded
  • like the voices of many choristers singing to the mighty swell of the
  • old church organ--a strain that seemed borne to the sexton’s ears upon a
  • wild wind, and to die away as it passed onward; but the burden of the
  • reply was still the same, “Gabriel Grub! Gabriel Grub!”
  • ‘The goblin grinned a broader grin than before, as he said, “Well,
  • Gabriel, what do you say to this?”
  • ‘The sexton gasped for breath.
  • ‘“What do you think of this, Gabriel?” said the goblin, kicking up his
  • feet in the air on either side of the tombstone, and looking at the
  • turned-up points with as much complacency as if he had been
  • contemplating the most fashionable pair of Wellingtons in all Bond
  • Street.
  • ‘“It’s--it’s--very curious, Sir,” replied the sexton, half dead with
  • fright; “very curious, and very pretty, but I think I’ll go back and
  • finish my work, Sir, if you please.”
  • ‘“Work!” said the goblin, “what work?”
  • ‘“The grave, Sir; making the grave,” stammered the sexton.
  • ‘“Oh, the grave, eh?” said the goblin; “who makes graves at a time when
  • all other men are merry, and takes a pleasure in it?”
  • ‘Again the mysterious voices replied, “Gabriel Grub! Gabriel Grub!”
  • ‘“I am afraid my friends want you, Gabriel,” said the goblin, thrusting
  • his tongue farther into his cheek than ever--and a most astonishing
  • tongue it was--“I’m afraid my friends want you, Gabriel,” said the
  • goblin.
  • ‘“Under favour, Sir,” replied the horror-stricken sexton, “I don’t think
  • they can, Sir; they don’t know me, Sir; I don’t think the gentlemen have
  • ever seen me, Sir.”
  • ‘“Oh, yes, they have,” replied the goblin; “we know the man with the
  • sulky face and grim scowl, that came down the street to-night, throwing
  • his evil looks at the children, and grasping his burying-spade the
  • tighter. We know the man who struck the boy in the envious malice of his
  • heart, because the boy could be merry, and he could not. We know him, we
  • know him.”
  • ‘Here, the goblin gave a loud, shrill laugh, which the echoes returned
  • twentyfold; and throwing his legs up in the air, stood upon his head, or
  • rather upon the very point of his sugar-loaf hat, on the narrow edge of
  • the tombstone, whence he threw a Somerset with extraordinary agility,
  • right to the sexton’s feet, at which he planted himself in the attitude
  • in which tailors generally sit upon the shop-board.
  • ‘“I--I--am afraid I must leave you, Sir,” said the sexton, making an
  • effort to move.
  • ‘“Leave us!” said the goblin, “Gabriel Grub going to leave us. Ho! ho!
  • ho!”
  • ‘As the goblin laughed, the sexton observed, for one instant, a
  • brilliant illumination within the windows of the church, as if the whole
  • building were lighted up; it disappeared, the organ pealed forth a
  • lively air, and whole troops of goblins, the very counterpart of the
  • first one, poured into the churchyard, and began playing at leap-frog
  • with the tombstones, never stopping for an instant to take breath, but
  • “overing” the highest among them, one after the other, with the most
  • marvellous dexterity. The first goblin was a most astonishing leaper,
  • and none of the others could come near him; even in the extremity of his
  • terror the sexton could not help observing, that while his friends were
  • content to leap over the common-sized gravestones, the first one took
  • the family vaults, iron railings and all, with as much ease as if they
  • had been so many street-posts.
  • ‘At last the game reached to a most exciting pitch; the organ played
  • quicker and quicker, and the goblins leaped faster and faster, coiling
  • themselves up, rolling head over heels upon the ground, and bounding
  • over the tombstones like footballs. The sexton’s brain whirled round
  • with the rapidity of the motion he beheld, and his legs reeled beneath
  • him, as the spirits flew before his eyes; when the goblin king, suddenly
  • darting towards him, laid his hand upon his collar, and sank with him
  • through the earth.
  • ‘When Gabriel Grub had had time to fetch his breath, which the rapidity
  • of his descent had for the moment taken away, he found himself in what
  • appeared to be a large cavern, surrounded on all sides by crowds of
  • goblins, ugly and grim; in the centre of the room, on an elevated seat,
  • was stationed his friend of the churchyard; and close behind him stood
  • Gabriel Grub himself, without power of motion.
  • ‘“Cold to-night,” said the king of the goblins, “very cold. A glass of
  • something warm here!”
  • ‘At this command, half a dozen officious goblins, with a perpetual smile
  • upon their faces, whom Gabriel Grub imagined to be courtiers, on that
  • account, hastily disappeared, and presently returned with a goblet of
  • liquid fire, which they presented to the king.
  • ‘“Ah!” cried the goblin, whose cheeks and throat were transparent, as he
  • tossed down the flame, “this warms one, indeed! Bring a bumper of the
  • same, for Mr. Grub.”
  • ‘It was in vain for the unfortunate sexton to protest that he was not in
  • the habit of taking anything warm at night; one of the goblins held him
  • while another poured the blazing liquid down his throat; the whole
  • assembly screeched with laughter, as he coughed and choked, and wiped
  • away the tears which gushed plentifully from his eyes, after swallowing
  • the burning draught.
  • ‘“And now,” said the king, fantastically poking the taper corner of his
  • sugar-loaf hat into the sexton’s eye, and thereby occasioning him the
  • most exquisite pain; “and now, show the man of misery and gloom, a few
  • of the pictures from our own great storehouse!”
  • ‘As the goblin said this, a thick cloud which obscured the remoter end
  • of the cavern rolled gradually away, and disclosed, apparently at a
  • great distance, a small and scantily furnished, but neat and clean
  • apartment. A crowd of little children were gathered round a bright fire,
  • clinging to their mother’s gown, and gambolling around her chair. The
  • mother occasionally rose, and drew aside the window-curtain, as if to
  • look for some expected object; a frugal meal was ready spread upon the
  • table; and an elbow chair was placed near the fire. A knock was heard at
  • the door; the mother opened it, and the children crowded round her, and
  • clapped their hands for joy, as their father entered. He was wet and
  • weary, and shook the snow from his garments, as the children crowded
  • round him, and seizing his cloak, hat, stick, and gloves, with busy
  • zeal, ran with them from the room. Then, as he sat down to his meal
  • before the fire, the children climbed about his knee, and the mother sat
  • by his side, and all seemed happiness and comfort.
  • ‘But a change came upon the view, almost imperceptibly. The scene was
  • altered to a small bedroom, where the fairest and youngest child lay
  • dying; the roses had fled from his cheek, and the light from his eye;
  • and even as the sexton looked upon him with an interest he had never
  • felt or known before, he died. His young brothers and sisters crowded
  • round his little bed, and seized his tiny hand, so cold and heavy; but
  • they shrank back from its touch, and looked with awe on his infant face;
  • for calm and tranquil as it was, and sleeping in rest and peace as the
  • beautiful child seemed to be, they saw that he was dead, and they knew
  • that he was an angel looking down upon, and blessing them, from a bright
  • and happy Heaven.
  • ‘Again the light cloud passed across the picture, and again the subject
  • changed. The father and mother were old and helpless now, and the number
  • of those about them was diminished more than half; but content and
  • cheerfulness sat on every face, and beamed in every eye, as they crowded
  • round the fireside, and told and listened to old stories of earlier and
  • bygone days. Slowly and peacefully, the father sank into the grave, and,
  • soon after, the sharer of all his cares and troubles followed him to a
  • place of rest. The few who yet survived them, kneeled by their tomb, and
  • watered the green turf which covered it with their tears; then rose, and
  • turned away, sadly and mournfully, but not with bitter cries, or
  • despairing lamentations, for they knew that they should one day meet
  • again; and once more they mixed with the busy world, and their content
  • and cheerfulness were restored. The cloud settled upon the picture, and
  • concealed it from the sexton’s view.
  • ‘“What do you think of _that_?” said the goblin, turning his large face
  • towards Gabriel Grub.
  • ‘Gabriel murmured out something about its being very pretty, and looked
  • somewhat ashamed, as the goblin bent his fiery eyes upon him.
  • ‘“You a miserable man!” said the goblin, in a tone of excessive
  • contempt. “You!” He appeared disposed to add more, but indignation
  • choked his utterance, so he lifted up one of his very pliable legs, and,
  • flourishing it above his head a little, to insure his aim, administered
  • a good sound kick to Gabriel Grub; immediately after which, all the
  • goblins in waiting crowded round the wretched sexton, and kicked him
  • without mercy, according to the established and invariable custom of
  • courtiers upon earth, who kick whom royalty kicks, and hug whom royalty
  • hugs.
  • ‘“Show him some more!” said the king of the goblins.
  • ‘At these words, the cloud was dispelled, and a rich and beautiful
  • landscape was disclosed to view--there is just such another, to this
  • day, within half a mile of the old abbey town. The sun shone from out
  • the clear blue sky, the water sparkled beneath his rays, and the trees
  • looked greener, and the flowers more gay, beneath its cheering
  • influence. The water rippled on with a pleasant sound, the trees rustled
  • in the light wind that murmured among their leaves, the birds sang upon
  • the boughs, and the lark carolled on high her welcome to the morning.
  • Yes, it was morning; the bright, balmy morning of summer; the minutest
  • leaf, the smallest blade of grass, was instinct with life. The ant crept
  • forth to her daily toil, the butterfly fluttered and basked in the warm
  • rays of the sun; myriads of insects spread their transparent wings, and
  • revelled in their brief but happy existence. Man walked forth, elated
  • with the scene; and all was brightness and splendour.
  • ’”_You _a miserable man!” said the king of the goblins, in a more
  • contemptuous tone than before. And again the king of the goblins gave
  • his leg a flourish; again it descended on the shoulders of the sexton;
  • and again the attendant goblins imitated the example of their chief.
  • ‘Many a time the cloud went and came, and many a lesson it taught to
  • Gabriel Grub, who, although his shoulders smarted with pain from the
  • frequent applications of the goblins’ feet thereunto, looked on with an
  • interest that nothing could diminish. He saw that men who worked hard,
  • and earned their scanty bread with lives of labour, were cheerful and
  • happy; and that to the most ignorant, the sweet face of Nature was a
  • never-failing source of cheerfulness and joy. He saw those who had been
  • delicately nurtured, and tenderly brought up, cheerful under privations,
  • and superior to suffering, that would have crushed many of a rougher
  • grain, because they bore within their own bosoms the materials of
  • happiness, contentment, and peace. He saw that women, the tenderest and
  • most fragile of all God’s creatures, were the oftenest superior to
  • sorrow, adversity, and distress; and he saw that it was because they
  • bore, in their own hearts, an inexhaustible well-spring of affection and
  • devotion. Above all, he saw that men like himself, who snarled at the
  • mirth and cheerfulness of others, were the foulest weeds on the fair
  • surface of the earth; and setting all the good of the world against the
  • evil, he came to the conclusion that it was a very decent and
  • respectable sort of world after all. No sooner had he formed it, than
  • the cloud which had closed over the last picture, seemed to settle on
  • his senses, and lull him to repose. One by one, the goblins faded from
  • his sight; and, as the last one disappeared, he sank to sleep.
  • ‘The day had broken when Gabriel Grub awoke, and found himself lying at
  • full length on the flat gravestone in the churchyard, with the wicker
  • bottle lying empty by his side, and his coat, spade, and lantern, all
  • well whitened by the last night’s frost, scattered on the ground. The
  • stone on which he had first seen the goblin seated, stood bolt upright
  • before him, and the grave at which he had worked, the night before, was
  • not far off. At first, he began to doubt the reality of his adventures,
  • but the acute pain in his shoulders when he attempted to rise, assured
  • him that the kicking of the goblins was certainly not ideal. He was
  • staggered again, by observing no traces of footsteps in the snow on
  • which the goblins had played at leap-frog with the gravestones, but he
  • speedily accounted for this circumstance when he remembered that, being
  • spirits, they would leave no visible impression behind them. So, Gabriel
  • Grub got on his feet as well as he could, for the pain in his back; and,
  • brushing the frost off his coat, put it on, and turned his face towards
  • the town.
  • ‘But he was an altered man, and he could not bear the thought of
  • returning to a place where his repentance would be scoffed at, and his
  • reformation disbelieved. He hesitated for a few moments; and then turned
  • away to wander where he might, and seek his bread elsewhere.
  • ‘The lantern, the spade, and the wicker bottle were found, that day, in
  • the churchyard. There were a great many speculations about the sexton’s
  • fate, at first, but it was speedily determined that he had been carried
  • away by the goblins; and there were not wanting some very credible
  • witnesses who had distinctly seen him whisked through the air on the
  • back of a chestnut horse blind of one eye, with the hind-quarters of a
  • lion, and the tail of a bear. At length all this was devoutly believed;
  • and the new sexton used to exhibit to the curious, for a trifling
  • emolument, a good-sized piece of the church weathercock which had been
  • accidentally kicked off by the aforesaid horse in his aerial flight, and
  • picked up by himself in the churchyard, a year or two afterwards.
  • ‘Unfortunately, these stories were somewhat disturbed by the unlooked-
  • for reappearance of Gabriel Grub himself, some ten years afterwards, a
  • ragged, contented, rheumatic old man. He told his story to the
  • clergyman, and also to the mayor; and in course of time it began to be
  • received as a matter of history, in which form it has continued down to
  • this very day. The believers in the weathercock tale, having misplaced
  • their confidence once, were not easily prevailed upon to part with it
  • again, so they looked as wise as they could, shrugged their shoulders,
  • touched their foreheads, and murmured something about Gabriel Grub
  • having drunk all the Hollands, and then fallen asleep on the flat
  • tombstone; and they affected to explain what he supposed he had
  • witnessed in the goblin’s cavern, by saying that he had seen the world,
  • and grown wiser. But this opinion, which was by no means a popular one
  • at any time, gradually died off; and be the matter how it may, as
  • Gabriel Grub was afflicted with rheumatism to the end of his days, this
  • story has at least one moral, if it teach no better one--and that is,
  • that if a man turn sulky and drink by himself at Christmas time, he may
  • make up his mind to be not a bit the better for it: let the spirits be
  • never so good, or let them be even as many degrees beyond proof, as
  • those which Gabriel Grub saw in the goblin’s cavern.’
  • CHAPTER XXX. HOW THE PICKWICKIANS MADE AND CULTIVATED THE ACQUAINTANCE
  • OF A COUPLE OF NICE YOUNG MEN BELONGING TO ONE OF THE LIBERAL
  • PROFESSIONS; HOW THEY DISPORTED THEMSELVES ON THE ICE; AND HOW THEIR
  • VISIT CAME TO A CONCLUSION
  • Well, Sam,’ said Mr. Pickwick, as that favoured servitor entered his
  • bed-chamber, with his warm water, on the morning of Christmas Day,
  • ‘still frosty?’
  • ‘Water in the wash-hand basin’s a mask o’ ice, Sir,’ responded Sam.
  • ‘Severe weather, Sam,’ observed Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Fine time for them as is well wropped up, as the Polar bear said to
  • himself, ven he was practising his skating,’ replied Mr. Weller.
  • ‘I shall be down in a quarter of an hour, Sam,’ said Mr. Pickwick,
  • untying his nightcap.
  • ‘Wery good, sir,’ replied Sam. ‘There’s a couple o’ sawbones
  • downstairs.’
  • ‘A couple of what!’ exclaimed Mr. Pickwick, sitting up in bed.
  • ‘A couple o’ sawbones,’ said Sam.
  • ‘What’s a sawbones?’ inquired Mr. Pickwick, not quite certain whether it
  • was a live animal, or something to eat.
  • ‘What! Don’t you know what a sawbones is, sir?’ inquired Mr. Weller. ‘I
  • thought everybody know’d as a sawbones was a surgeon.’
  • ‘Oh, a surgeon, eh?’ said Mr. Pickwick, with a smile.
  • ‘Just that, sir,’ replied Sam. ‘These here ones as is below, though,
  • ain’t reg’lar thoroughbred sawbones; they’re only in trainin’.’
  • In other words they’re medical students, I suppose?’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • Sam Weller nodded assent.
  • ‘I am glad of it,’ said Mr. Pickwick, casting his nightcap energetically
  • on the counterpane. ‘They are fine fellows--very fine fellows; with
  • judgments matured by observation and reflection; and tastes refined by
  • reading and study. I am very glad of it.’
  • ‘They’re a-smokin’ cigars by the kitchen fire,’ said Sam.
  • ‘Ah!’ observed Mr. Pickwick, rubbing his hands, ‘overflowing with kindly
  • feelings and animal spirits. Just what I like to see.’
  • And one on ‘em,’ said Sam, not noticing his master’s interruption, ‘one
  • on ‘em’s got his legs on the table, and is a-drinking brandy neat, vile
  • the t’other one--him in the barnacles--has got a barrel o’ oysters
  • atween his knees, which he’s a-openin’ like steam, and as fast as he
  • eats ‘em, he takes a aim vith the shells at young dropsy, who’s a
  • sittin’ down fast asleep, in the chimbley corner.’
  • ‘Eccentricities of genius, Sam,’ said Mr. Pickwick. ‘You may retire.’
  • Sam did retire accordingly. Mr. Pickwick at the expiration of the
  • quarter of an hour, went down to breakfast.
  • ‘Here he is at last!’ said old Mr. Wardle. ‘Pickwick, this is Miss
  • Allen’s brother, Mr. Benjamin Allen. Ben we call him, and so may you, if
  • you like. This gentleman is his very particular friend, Mr.--’
  • ‘Mr. Bob Sawyer,’ interposed Mr. Benjamin Allen; whereupon Mr. Bob
  • Sawyer and Mr. Benjamin Allen laughed in concert.
  • Mr. Pickwick bowed to Bob Sawyer, and Bob Sawyer bowed to Mr. Pickwick.
  • Bob and his very particular friend then applied themselves most
  • assiduously to the eatables before them; and Mr. Pickwick had an
  • opportunity of glancing at them both.
  • Mr. Benjamin Allen was a coarse, stout, thick-set young man, with black
  • hair cut rather short, and a white face cut rather long. He was
  • embellished with spectacles, and wore a white neckerchief. Below his
  • single-breasted black surtout, which was buttoned up to his chin,
  • appeared the usual number of pepper-and-salt coloured legs, terminating
  • in a pair of imperfectly polished boots. Although his coat was short in
  • the sleeves, it disclosed no vestige of a linen wristband; and although
  • there was quite enough of his face to admit of the encroachment of a
  • shirt collar, it was not graced by the smallest approach to that
  • appendage. He presented, altogether, rather a mildewy appearance, and
  • emitted a fragrant odour of full-flavoured Cubas.
  • Mr. Bob Sawyer, who was habited in a coarse, blue coat, which, without
  • being either a greatcoat or a surtout, partook of the nature and
  • qualities of both, had about him that sort of slovenly smartness, and
  • swaggering gait, which is peculiar to young gentlemen who smoke in the
  • streets by day, shout and scream in the same by night, call waiters by
  • their Christian names, and do various other acts and deeds of an equally
  • facetious description. He wore a pair of plaid trousers, and a large,
  • rough, double-breasted waistcoat; out of doors, he carried a thick stick
  • with a big top. He eschewed gloves, and looked, upon the whole,
  • something like a dissipated Robinson Crusoe.
  • Such were the two worthies to whom Mr. Pickwick was introduced, as he
  • took his seat at the breakfast-table on Christmas morning.
  • ‘Splendid morning, gentlemen,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • Mr. Bob Sawyer slightly nodded his assent to the proposition, and asked
  • Mr. Benjamin Allen for the mustard.
  • ‘Have you come far this morning, gentlemen?’ inquired Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Blue Lion at Muggleton,’ briefly responded Mr. Allen.
  • ‘You should have joined us last night,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘So we should,’ replied Bob Sawyer, ‘but the brandy was too good to
  • leave in a hurry; wasn’t it, Ben?’
  • ‘Certainly,’ said Mr. Benjamin Allen; ‘and the cigars were not bad, or
  • the pork-chops either; were they, Bob?’
  • ‘Decidedly not,’ said Bob. The particular friends resumed their attack
  • upon the breakfast, more freely than before, as if the recollection of
  • last night’s supper had imparted a new relish to the meal.
  • ‘Peg away, Bob,’ said Mr. Allen, to his companion, encouragingly.
  • ‘So I do,’ replied Bob Sawyer. And so, to do him justice, he did.
  • ‘Nothing like dissecting, to give one an appetite,’ said Mr. Bob Sawyer,
  • looking round the table.
  • Mr. Pickwick slightly shuddered.
  • ‘By the bye, Bob,’ said Mr. Allen, ‘have you finished that leg yet?’
  • ‘Nearly,’ replied Sawyer, helping himself to half a fowl as he spoke.
  • ‘It’s a very muscular one for a child’s.’
  • Is it?’ inquired Mr. Allen carelessly.
  • ‘Very,’ said Bob Sawyer, with his mouth full.
  • ‘I’ve put my name down for an arm at our place,’ said Mr. Allen. ‘We’re
  • clubbing for a subject, and the list is nearly full, only we can’t get
  • hold of any fellow that wants a head. I wish you’d take it.’
  • ‘No,’ replied ‘Bob Sawyer; ‘can’t afford expensive luxuries.’
  • ‘Nonsense!’ said Allen.
  • ‘Can’t, indeed,’ rejoined Bob Sawyer, ‘I wouldn’t mind a brain, but I
  • couldn’t stand a whole head.’
  • Hush, hush, gentlemen, pray,’ said Mr. Pickwick, ‘I hear the ladies.’
  • As Mr. Pickwick spoke, the ladies, gallantly escorted by Messrs.
  • Snodgrass, Winkle, and Tupman, returned from an early walk.
  • ‘Why, Ben!’ said Arabella, in a tone which expressed more surprise than
  • pleasure at the sight of her brother.
  • ‘Come to take you home to-morrow,’ replied Benjamin.
  • Mr. Winkle turned pale.
  • ‘Don’t you see Bob Sawyer, Arabella?’ inquired Mr. Benjamin Allen,
  • somewhat reproachfully. Arabella gracefully held out her hand, in
  • acknowledgment of Bob Sawyer’s presence. A thrill of hatred struck to
  • Mr. Winkle’s heart, as Bob Sawyer inflicted on the proffered hand a
  • perceptible squeeze.
  • ‘Ben, dear!’ said Arabella, blushing; ‘have--have--you been introduced
  • to Mr. Winkle?’
  • ‘I have not been, but I shall be very happy to be, Arabella,’ replied
  • her brother gravely. Here Mr. Allen bowed grimly to Mr. Winkle, while
  • Mr. Winkle and Mr. Bob Sawyer glanced mutual distrust out of the corners
  • of their eyes.
  • The arrival of the two new visitors, and the consequent check upon Mr.
  • Winkle and the young lady with the fur round her boots, would in all
  • probability have proved a very unpleasant interruption to the hilarity
  • of the party, had not the cheerfulness of Mr. Pickwick, and the good
  • humour of the host, been exerted to the very utmost for the common weal.
  • Mr. Winkle gradually insinuated himself into the good graces of Mr.
  • Benjamin Allen, and even joined in a friendly conversation with Mr. Bob
  • Sawyer; who, enlivened with the brandy, and the breakfast, and the
  • talking, gradually ripened into a state of extreme facetiousness, and
  • related with much glee an agreeable anecdote, about the removal of a
  • tumour on some gentleman’s head, which he illustrated by means of an
  • oyster-knife and a half-quartern loaf, to the great edification of the
  • assembled company. Then the whole train went to church, where Mr.
  • Benjamin Allen fell fast asleep; while Mr. Bob Sawyer abstracted his
  • thoughts from worldly matters, by the ingenious process of carving his
  • name on the seat of the pew, in corpulent letters of four inches long.
  • ‘Now,’ said Wardle, after a substantial lunch, with the agreeable items
  • of strong beer and cherry-brandy, had been done ample justice to, ‘what
  • say you to an hour on the ice? We shall have plenty of time.’
  • ‘Capital!’ said Mr. Benjamin Allen.
  • ‘Prime!’ ejaculated Mr. Bob Sawyer.
  • ‘You skate, of course, Winkle?’ said Wardle.
  • ‘Ye-yes; oh, yes,’ replied Mr. Winkle. ‘I--I--am _rather _out of
  • practice.’
  • ‘Oh, _do_ skate, Mr. Winkle,’ said Arabella. ‘I like to see it so much.’
  • ‘Oh, it is _so_ graceful,’ said another young lady.
  • A third young lady said it was elegant, and a fourth expressed her
  • opinion that it was ‘swan-like.’
  • ‘I should be very happy, I’m sure,’ said Mr. Winkle, reddening; ‘but I
  • have no skates.’
  • This objection was at once overruled. Trundle had a couple of pair, and
  • the fat boy announced that there were half a dozen more downstairs;
  • whereat Mr. Winkle expressed exquisite delight, and looked exquisitely
  • uncomfortable.
  • Old Wardle led the way to a pretty large sheet of ice; and the fat boy
  • and Mr. Weller, having shovelled and swept away the snow which had
  • fallen on it during the night, Mr. Bob Sawyer adjusted his skates with a
  • dexterity which to Mr. Winkle was perfectly marvellous, and described
  • circles with his left leg, and cut figures of eight, and inscribed upon
  • the ice, without once stopping for breath, a great many other pleasant
  • and astonishing devices, to the excessive satisfaction of Mr. Pickwick,
  • Mr. Tupman, and the ladies; which reached a pitch of positive
  • enthusiasm, when old Wardle and Benjamin Allen, assisted by the
  • aforesaid Bob Sawyer, performed some mystic evolutions, which they
  • called a reel.
  • All this time, Mr. Winkle, with his face and hands blue with the cold,
  • had been forcing a gimlet into the sole of his feet, and putting his
  • skates on, with the points behind, and getting the straps into a very
  • complicated and entangled state, with the assistance of Mr. Snodgrass,
  • who knew rather less about skates than a Hindoo. At length, however,
  • with the assistance of Mr. Weller, the unfortunate skates were firmly
  • screwed and buckled on, and Mr. Winkle was raised to his feet.
  • ‘Now, then, Sir,’ said Sam, in an encouraging tone; ‘off vith you, and
  • show ‘em how to do it.’
  • ‘Stop, Sam, stop!’ said Mr. Winkle, trembling violently, and clutching
  • hold of Sam’s arms with the grasp of a drowning man. ‘How slippery it
  • is, Sam!’
  • ‘Not an uncommon thing upon ice, Sir,’ replied Mr. Weller. ‘Hold up,
  • Sir!’
  • This last observation of Mr. Weller’s bore reference to a demonstration
  • Mr. Winkle made at the instant, of a frantic desire to throw his feet in
  • the air, and dash the back of his head on the ice.
  • ‘These--these--are very awkward skates; ain’t they, Sam?’ inquired Mr.
  • Winkle, staggering.
  • ‘I’m afeerd there’s a orkard gen’l’m’n in ‘em, Sir,’ replied Sam.
  • ‘Now, Winkle,’ cried Mr. Pickwick, quite unconscious that there was
  • anything the matter. ‘Come; the ladies are all anxiety.’
  • ‘Yes, yes,’ replied Mr. Winkle, with a ghastly smile. ‘I’m coming.’
  • ‘Just a-goin’ to begin,’ said Sam, endeavouring to disengage himself.
  • ‘Now, Sir, start off!’
  • ‘Stop an instant, Sam,’ gasped Mr. Winkle, clinging most affectionately
  • to Mr. Weller. ‘I find I’ve got a couple of coats at home that I don’t
  • want, Sam. You may have them, Sam.’
  • ‘Thank’ee, Sir,’ replied Mr. Weller.
  • ‘Never mind touching your hat, Sam,’ said Mr. Winkle hastily. ‘You
  • needn’t take your hand away to do that. I meant to have given you five
  • shillings this morning for a Christmas box, Sam. I’ll give it you this
  • afternoon, Sam.’
  • ‘You’re wery good, sir,’ replied Mr. Weller.
  • ‘Just hold me at first, Sam; will you?’ said Mr. Winkle. ‘There--that’s
  • right. I shall soon get in the way of it, Sam. Not too fast, Sam; not
  • too fast.’
  • Mr. Winkle, stooping forward, with his body half doubled up, was being
  • assisted over the ice by Mr. Weller, in a very singular and un-swan-like
  • manner, when Mr. Pickwick most innocently shouted from the opposite
  • bank--
  • ‘Sam!’
  • ‘Sir?’
  • ‘Here. I want you.’
  • ‘Let go, Sir,’ said Sam. ‘Don’t you hear the governor a-callin’? Let go,
  • sir.’
  • With a violent effort, Mr. Weller disengaged himself from the grasp of
  • the agonised Pickwickian, and, in so doing, administered a considerable
  • impetus to the unhappy Mr. Winkle. With an accuracy which no degree of
  • dexterity or practice could have insured, that unfortunate gentleman
  • bore swiftly down into the centre of the reel, at the very moment when
  • Mr. Bob Sawyer was performing a flourish of unparalleled beauty. Mr.
  • Winkle struck wildly against him, and with a loud crash they both fell
  • heavily down. Mr. Pickwick ran to the spot. Bob Sawyer had risen to his
  • feet, but Mr. Winkle was far too wise to do anything of the kind, in
  • skates. He was seated on the ice, making spasmodic efforts to smile; but
  • anguish was depicted on every lineament of his countenance.
  • ‘Are you hurt?’ inquired Mr. Benjamin Allen, with great anxiety.
  • ‘Not much,’ said Mr. Winkle, rubbing his back very hard.
  • ‘I wish you’d let me bleed you,’ said Mr. Benjamin, with great
  • eagerness.
  • ‘No, thank you,’ replied Mr. Winkle hurriedly.
  • ‘I really think you had better,’ said Allen.
  • ‘Thank you,’ replied Mr. Winkle; ‘I’d rather not.’
  • ‘What do _you _think, Mr. Pickwick?’ inquired Bob Sawyer.
  • Mr. Pickwick was excited and indignant. He beckoned to Mr. Weller, and
  • said in a stern voice, ‘Take his skates off.’
  • ‘No; but really I had scarcely begun,’ remonstrated Mr. Winkle.
  • ‘Take his skates off,’ repeated Mr. Pickwick firmly.
  • The command was not to be resisted. Mr. Winkle allowed Sam to obey it,
  • in silence.
  • ‘Lift him up,’ said Mr. Pickwick. Sam assisted him to rise.
  • Mr. Pickwick retired a few paces apart from the bystanders; and,
  • beckoning his friend to approach, fixed a searching look upon him, and
  • uttered in a low, but distinct and emphatic tone, these remarkable
  • words--
  • ‘You’re a humbug, sir.’
  • A what?’ said Mr. Winkle, starting.
  • ‘A humbug, Sir. I will speak plainer, if you wish it. An impostor, sir.’
  • With those words, Mr. Pickwick turned slowly on his heel, and rejoined
  • his friends.
  • While Mr. Pickwick was delivering himself of the sentiment just
  • recorded, Mr. Weller and the fat boy, having by their joint endeavours
  • cut out a slide, were exercising themselves thereupon, in a very
  • masterly and brilliant manner. Sam Weller, in particular, was displaying
  • that beautiful feat of fancy-sliding which is currently denominated
  • ‘knocking at the cobbler’s door,’ and which is achieved by skimming over
  • the ice on one foot, and occasionally giving a postman’s knock upon it
  • with the other. It was a good long slide, and there was something in the
  • motion which Mr. Pickwick, who was very cold with standing still, could
  • not help envying.
  • ‘It looks a nice warm exercise that, doesn’t it?’ he inquired of Wardle,
  • when that gentleman was thoroughly out of breath, by reason of the
  • indefatigable manner in which he had converted his legs into a pair of
  • compasses, and drawn complicated problems on the ice.
  • ‘Ah, it does, indeed,’ replied Wardle. ‘Do you slide?’
  • ‘I used to do so, on the gutters, when I was a boy,’ replied Mr.
  • Pickwick.
  • ‘Try it now,’ said Wardle.
  • ‘Oh, do, please, Mr. Pickwick!’ cried all the ladies.
  • ‘I should be very happy to afford you any amusement,’ replied Mr.
  • Pickwick, ‘but I haven’t done such a thing these thirty years.’
  • ‘Pooh! pooh! Nonsense!’ said Wardle, dragging off his skates with the
  • impetuosity which characterised all his proceedings. ‘Here; I’ll keep
  • you company; come along!’ And away went the good-tempered old fellow
  • down the slide, with a rapidity which came very close upon Mr. Weller,
  • and beat the fat boy all to nothing.
  • Mr. Pickwick paused, considered, pulled off his gloves and put them in
  • his hat; took two or three short runs, baulked himself as often, and at
  • last took another run, and went slowly and gravely down the slide, with
  • his feet about a yard and a quarter apart, amidst the gratified shouts
  • of all the spectators.
  • ‘Keep the pot a-bilin’, Sir!’ said Sam; and down went Wardle again, and
  • then Mr. Pickwick, and then Sam, and then Mr. Winkle, and then Mr. Bob
  • Sawyer, and then the fat boy, and then Mr. Snodgrass, following closely
  • upon each other’s heels, and running after each other with as much
  • eagerness as if their future prospects in life depended on their
  • expedition.
  • It was the most intensely interesting thing, to observe the manner in
  • which Mr. Pickwick performed his share in the ceremony; to watch the
  • torture of anxiety with which he viewed the person behind, gaining upon
  • him at the imminent hazard of tripping him up; to see him gradually
  • expend the painful force he had put on at first, and turn slowly round
  • on the slide, with his face towards the point from which he had started;
  • to contemplate the playful smile which mantled on his face when he had
  • accomplished the distance, and the eagerness with which he turned round
  • when he had done so, and ran after his predecessor, his black gaiters
  • tripping pleasantly through the snow, and his eyes beaming cheerfulness
  • and gladness through his spectacles. And when he was knocked down (which
  • happened upon the average every third round), it was the most
  • invigorating sight that can possibly be imagined, to behold him gather
  • up his hat, gloves, and handkerchief, with a glowing countenance, and
  • resume his station in the rank, with an ardour and enthusiasm that
  • nothing Could abate.
  • The sport was at its height, the sliding was at the quickest, the
  • laughter was at the loudest, when a sharp smart crack was heard. There
  • was a quick rush towards the bank, a wild scream from the ladies, and a
  • shout from Mr. Tupman. A large mass of ice disappeared; the water
  • bubbled up over it; Mr. Pickwick’s hat, gloves, and handkerchief were
  • floating on the surface; and this was all of Mr. Pickwick that anybody
  • could see.
  • Dismay and anguish were depicted on every countenance; the males turned
  • pale, and the females fainted; Mr. Snodgrass and Mr. Winkle grasped each
  • other by the hand, and gazed at the spot where their leader had gone
  • down, with frenzied eagerness; while Mr. Tupman, by way of rendering the
  • promptest assistance, and at the same time conveying to any persons who
  • might be within hearing, the clearest possible notion of the
  • catastrophe, ran off across the country at his utmost speed, screaming
  • ‘Fire!’ with all his might.
  • It was at this moment, when old Wardle and Sam Weller were approaching
  • the hole with cautious steps, and Mr. Benjamin Allen was holding a
  • hurried consultation with Mr. Bob Sawyer on the advisability of bleeding
  • the company generally, as an improving little bit of professional
  • practice--it was at this very moment, that a face, head, and shoulders,
  • emerged from beneath the water, and disclosed the features and
  • spectacles of Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Keep yourself up for an instant--for only one instant!’ bawled Mr.
  • Snodgrass.
  • ‘Yes, do; let me implore you--for my sake!’ roared Mr. Winkle, deeply
  • affected. The adjuration was rather unnecessary; the probability being,
  • that if Mr. Pickwick had declined to keep himself up for anybody else’s
  • sake, it would have occurred to him that he might as well do so, for his
  • own.
  • ‘Do you feel the bottom there, old fellow?’ said Wardle.
  • ‘Yes, certainly,’ replied Mr. Pickwick, wringing the water from his head
  • and face, and gasping for breath. ‘I fell upon my back. I couldn’t get
  • on my feet at first.’
  • The clay upon so much of Mr. Pickwick’s coat as was yet visible, bore
  • testimony to the accuracy of this statement; and as the fears of the
  • spectators were still further relieved by the fat boy’s suddenly
  • recollecting that the water was nowhere more than five feet deep,
  • prodigies of valour were performed to get him out. After a vast quantity
  • of splashing, and cracking, and struggling, Mr. Pickwick was at length
  • fairly extricated from his unpleasant position, and once more stood on
  • dry land.
  • ‘Oh, he’ll catch his death of cold,’ said Emily.
  • ‘Dear old thing!’ said Arabella. ‘Let me wrap this shawl round you, Mr.
  • Pickwick.’
  • ‘Ah, that’s the best thing you can do,’ said Wardle; ‘and when you’ve
  • got it on, run home as fast as your legs can carry you, and jump into
  • bed directly.’
  • A dozen shawls were offered on the instant. Three or four of the
  • thickest having been selected, Mr. Pickwick was wrapped up, and started
  • off, under the guidance of Mr. Weller; presenting the singular
  • phenomenon of an elderly gentleman, dripping wet, and without a hat,
  • with his arms bound down to his sides, skimming over the ground, without
  • any clearly-defined purpose, at the rate of six good English miles an
  • hour.
  • But Mr. Pickwick cared not for appearances in such an extreme case, and
  • urged on by Sam Weller, he kept at the very top of his speed until he
  • reached the door of Manor Farm, where Mr. Tupman had arrived some five
  • minutes before, and had frightened the old lady into palpitations of the
  • heart by impressing her with the unalterable conviction that the kitchen
  • chimney was on fire--a calamity which always presented itself in glowing
  • colours to the old lady’s mind, when anybody about her evinced the
  • smallest agitation.
  • Mr. Pickwick paused not an instant until he was snug in bed. Sam Weller
  • lighted a blazing fire in the room, and took up his dinner; a bowl of
  • punch was carried up afterwards, and a grand carouse held in honour of
  • his safety. Old Wardle would not hear of his rising, so they made the
  • bed the chair, and Mr. Pickwick presided. A second and a third bowl were
  • ordered in; and when Mr. Pickwick awoke next morning, there was not a
  • symptom of rheumatism about him; which proves, as Mr. Bob Sawyer very
  • justly observed, that there is nothing like hot punch in such cases; and
  • that if ever hot punch did fail to act as a preventive, it was merely
  • because the patient fell into the vulgar error of not taking enough of
  • it.
  • The jovial party broke up next morning. Breakings-up are capital things
  • in our school-days, but in after life they are painful enough. Death,
  • self-interest, and fortune’s changes, are every day breaking up many a
  • happy group, and scattering them far and wide; and the boys and girls
  • never come back again. We do not mean to say that it was exactly the
  • case in this particular instance; all we wish to inform the reader is,
  • that the different members of the party dispersed to their several
  • homes; that Mr. Pickwick and his friends once more took their seats on
  • the top of the Muggleton coach; and that Arabella Allen repaired to her
  • place of destination, wherever it might have been--we dare say Mr.
  • Winkle knew, but we confess we don’t--under the care and guardianship of
  • her brother Benjamin, and his most intimate and particular friend, Mr.
  • Bob Sawyer.
  • Before they separated, however, that gentleman and Mr. Benjamin Allen
  • drew Mr. Pickwick aside with an air of some mystery; and Mr. Bob Sawyer,
  • thrusting his forefinger between two of Mr. Pickwick’s ribs, and thereby
  • displaying his native drollery, and his knowledge of the anatomy of the
  • human frame, at one and the same time, inquired--
  • ‘I say, old boy, where do you hang out?’ Mr. Pickwick replied that he
  • was at present suspended at the George and Vulture.
  • ‘I wish you’d come and see me,’ said Bob Sawyer.
  • ‘Nothing would give me greater pleasure,’ replied Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘There’s my lodgings,’ said Mr. Bob Sawyer, producing a card. ‘Lant
  • Street, Borough; it’s near Guy’s, and handy for me, you know. Little
  • distance after you’ve passed St. George’s Church--turns out of the High
  • Street on the right hand side the way.’
  • ‘I shall find it,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Come on Thursday fortnight, and bring the other chaps with you,’ said
  • Mr. Bob Sawyer; ‘I’m going to have a few medical fellows that night.’
  • Mr. Pickwick expressed the pleasure it would afford him to meet the
  • medical fellows; and after Mr. Bob Sawyer had informed him that he meant
  • to be very cosy, and that his friend Ben was to be one of the party,
  • they shook hands and separated.
  • We feel that in this place we lay ourself open to the inquiry whether
  • Mr. Winkle was whispering, during this brief conversation, to Arabella
  • Allen; and if so, what he said; and furthermore, whether Mr. Snodgrass
  • was conversing apart with Emily Wardle; and if so, what _he_ said. To
  • this, we reply, that whatever they might have said to the ladies, they
  • said nothing at all to Mr. Pickwick or Mr. Tupman for eight-and-twenty
  • miles, and that they sighed very often, refused ale and brandy, and
  • looked gloomy. If our observant lady readers can deduce any satisfactory
  • inferences from these facts, we beg them by all means to do so.
  • CHAPTER XXXI. WHICH IS ALL ABOUT THE LAW, AND SUNDRY GREAT AUTHORITIES
  • LEARNED THEREIN
  • Scattered about, in various holes and corners of the Temple, are certain
  • dark and dirty chambers, in and out of which, all the morning in
  • vacation, and half the evening too in term time, there may be seen
  • constantly hurrying with bundles of papers under their arms, and
  • protruding from their pockets, an almost uninterrupted succession of
  • lawyers’ clerks. There are several grades of lawyers’ clerks. There is
  • the articled clerk, who has paid a premium, and is an attorney in
  • perspective, who runs a tailor’s bill, receives invitations to parties,
  • knows a family in Gower Street, and another in Tavistock Square; who
  • goes out of town every long vacation to see his father, who keeps live
  • horses innumerable; and who is, in short, the very aristocrat of clerks.
  • There is the salaried clerk--out of door, or in door, as the case may
  • be--who devotes the major part of his thirty shillings a week to his
  • Personal pleasure and adornments, repairs half-price to the Adelphi
  • Theatre at least three times a week, dissipates majestically at the
  • cider cellars afterwards, and is a dirty caricature of the fashion which
  • expired six months ago. There is the middle-aged copying clerk, with a
  • large family, who is always shabby, and often drunk. And there are the
  • office lads in their first surtouts, who feel a befitting contempt for
  • boys at day-schools, club as they go home at night, for saveloys and
  • porter, and think there’s nothing like ‘life.’ There are varieties of
  • the genus, too numerous to recapitulate, but however numerous they may
  • be, they are all to be seen, at certain regulated business hours,
  • hurrying to and from the places we have just mentioned.
  • These sequestered nooks are the public offices of the legal profession,
  • where writs are issued, judgments signed, declarations filed, and
  • numerous other ingenious machines put in motion for the torture and
  • torment of His Majesty’s liege subjects, and the comfort and emolument
  • of the practitioners of the law. They are, for the most part, low-
  • roofed, mouldy rooms, where innumerable rolls of parchment, which have
  • been perspiring in secret for the last century, send forth an agreeable
  • odour, which is mingled by day with the scent of the dry-rot, and by
  • night with the various exhalations which arise from damp cloaks,
  • festering umbrellas, and the coarsest tallow candles.
  • About half-past seven o’clock in the evening, some ten days or a
  • fortnight after Mr. Pickwick and his friends returned to London, there
  • hurried into one of these offices, an individual in a brown coat and
  • brass buttons, whose long hair was scrupulously twisted round the rim of
  • his napless hat, and whose soiled drab trousers were so tightly strapped
  • over his Blucher boots, that his knees threatened every moment to start
  • from their concealment. He produced from his coat pockets a long and
  • narrow strip of parchment, on which the presiding functionary impressed
  • an illegible black stamp. He then drew forth four scraps of paper, of
  • similar dimensions, each containing a printed copy of the strip of
  • parchment with blanks for a name; and having filled up the blanks, put
  • all the five documents in his pocket, and hurried away.
  • The man in the brown coat, with the cabalistic documents in his pocket,
  • was no other than our old acquaintance Mr. Jackson, of the house of
  • Dodson & Fogg, Freeman’s Court, Cornhill. Instead of returning to the
  • office whence he came, however, he bent his steps direct to Sun Court,
  • and walking straight into the George and Vulture, demanded to know
  • whether one Mr. Pickwick was within.
  • ‘Call Mr. Pickwick’s servant, Tom,’ said the barmaid of the George and
  • Vulture.
  • ‘Don’t trouble yourself,’ said Mr. Jackson. ‘I’ve come on business. If
  • you’ll show me Mr. Pickwick’s room I’ll step up myself.’
  • ‘What name, Sir?’ said the waiter.
  • ‘Jackson,’ replied the clerk.
  • The waiter stepped upstairs to announce Mr. Jackson; but Mr. Jackson
  • saved him the trouble by following close at his heels, and walking into
  • the apartment before he could articulate a syllable.
  • Mr. Pickwick had, that day, invited his three friends to dinner; they
  • were all seated round the fire, drinking their wine, when Mr. Jackson
  • presented himself, as above described.
  • ‘How de do, sir?’ said Mr. Jackson, nodding to Mr. Pickwick.
  • That gentleman bowed, and looked somewhat surprised, for the physiognomy
  • of Mr. Jackson dwelt not in his recollection.
  • ‘I have called from Dodson and Fogg’s,’ said Mr. Jackson, in an
  • explanatory tone.
  • Mr. Pickwick roused at the name. ‘I refer you to my attorney, Sir; Mr.
  • Perker, of Gray’s Inn,’ said he. ‘Waiter, show this gentleman out.’
  • ‘Beg your pardon, Mr. Pickwick,’ said Jackson, deliberately depositing
  • his hat on the floor, and drawing from his pocket the strip of
  • parchment. ‘But personal service, by clerk or agent, in these cases, you
  • know, Mr. Pickwick--nothing like caution, sir, in all legal forms--eh?’
  • Here Mr. Jackson cast his eye on the parchment; and, resting his hands
  • on the table, and looking round with a winning and persuasive smile,
  • said, ‘Now, come; don’t let’s have no words about such a little matter
  • as this. Which of you gentlemen’s name’s Snodgrass?’
  • At this inquiry, Mr. Snodgrass gave such a very undisguised and palpable
  • start, that no further reply was needed.
  • ‘Ah! I thought so,’ said Mr. Jackson, more affably than before. ‘I’ve a
  • little something to trouble you with, Sir.’
  • ‘Me!’ exclaimed Mr. Snodgrass.
  • ‘It’s only a subpoena in Bardell and Pickwick on behalf of the
  • plaintiff,’ replied Jackson, singling out one of the slips of paper, and
  • producing a shilling from his waistcoat pocket. ‘It’ll come on, in the
  • settens after Term: fourteenth of Febooary, we expect; we’ve marked it a
  • special jury cause, and it’s only ten down the paper. That’s yours, Mr.
  • Snodgrass.’ As Jackson said this, he presented the parchment before the
  • eyes of Mr. Snodgrass, and slipped the paper and the shilling into his
  • hand.
  • Mr. Tupman had witnessed this process in silent astonishment, when
  • Jackson, turning sharply upon him, said--
  • ‘I think I ain’t mistaken when I say your name’s Tupman, am I?’
  • Mr. Tupman looked at Mr. Pickwick; but, perceiving no encouragement in
  • that gentleman’s widely-opened eyes to deny his name, said--
  • ‘Yes, my name is Tupman, Sir.’
  • ‘And that other gentleman’s Mr. Winkle, I think?’ said Jackson. Mr.
  • Winkle faltered out a reply in the affirmative; and both gentlemen were
  • forthwith invested with a slip of paper, and a shilling each, by the
  • dexterous Mr. Jackson.
  • ‘Now,’ said Jackson, ‘I’m afraid you’ll think me rather troublesome, but
  • I want somebody else, if it ain’t inconvenient. I have Samuel Weller’s
  • name here, Mr. Pickwick.’
  • ‘Send my servant here, waiter,’ said Mr. Pickwick. The waiter retired,
  • considerably astonished, and Mr. Pickwick motioned Jackson to a seat.
  • There was a painful pause, which was at length broken by the innocent
  • defendant.
  • ‘I suppose, Sir,’ said Mr. Pickwick, his indignation rising while he
  • spoke--‘I suppose, Sir, that it is the intention of your employers to
  • seek to criminate me upon the testimony of my own friends?’
  • Mr. Jackson struck his forefinger several times against the left side of
  • his nose, to intimate that he was not there to disclose the secrets of
  • the prison house, and playfully rejoined--
  • ‘Not knowin’, can’t say.’
  • ‘For what other reason, Sir,’ pursued Mr. Pickwick, ‘are these subpoenas
  • served upon them, if not for this?’
  • ‘Very good plant, Mr. Pickwick,’ replied Jackson, slowly shaking his
  • head. ‘But it won’t do. No harm in trying, but there’s little to be got
  • out of me.’
  • Here Mr. Jackson smiled once more upon the company, and, applying his
  • left thumb to the tip of his nose, worked a visionary coffee-mill with
  • his right hand, thereby performing a very graceful piece of pantomime
  • (then much in vogue, but now, unhappily, almost obsolete) which was
  • familiarly denominated ‘taking a grinder.’
  • ‘No, no, Mr. Pickwick,’ said Jackson, in conclusion; ‘Perker’s people
  • must guess what we’ve served these subpoenas for. If they can’t, they
  • must wait till the action comes on, and then they’ll find out.’
  • Mr. Pickwick bestowed a look of excessive disgust on his unwelcome
  • visitor, and would probably have hurled some tremendous anathema at the
  • heads of Messrs. Dodson & Fogg, had not Sam’s entrance at the instant
  • interrupted him.
  • ‘Samuel Weller?’ said Mr. Jackson, inquiringly.
  • ‘Vun o’ the truest things as you’ve said for many a long year,’ replied
  • Sam, in a most composed manner.
  • ‘Here’s a subpoena for you, Mr. Weller,’ said Jackson.
  • ‘What’s that in English?’ inquired Sam.
  • ‘Here’s the original,’ said Jackson, declining the required explanation.
  • ‘Which?’ said Sam.
  • ‘This,’ replied Jackson, shaking the parchment.
  • ‘Oh, that’s the ‘rig’nal, is it?’ said Sam. ‘Well, I’m wery glad I’ve
  • seen the ‘rig’nal, ‘cos it’s a gratifyin’ sort o’ thing, and eases vun’s
  • mind so much.’
  • ‘And here’s the shilling,’ said Jackson. ‘It’s from Dodson and Fogg’s.’
  • ‘And it’s uncommon handsome o’ Dodson and Fogg, as knows so little of
  • me, to come down vith a present,’ said Sam. ‘I feel it as a wery high
  • compliment, sir; it’s a wery honorable thing to them, as they knows how
  • to reward merit werever they meets it. Besides which, it’s affectin’ to
  • one’s feelin’s.’
  • As Mr. Weller said this, he inflicted a little friction on his right
  • eyelid, with the sleeve of his coat, after the most approved manner of
  • actors when they are in domestic pathetics.
  • Mr. Jackson seemed rather puzzled by Sam’s proceedings; but, as he had
  • served the subpoenas, and had nothing more to say, he made a feint of
  • putting on the one glove which he usually carried in his hand, for the
  • sake of appearances; and returned to the office to report progress.
  • Mr. Pickwick slept little that night; his memory had received a very
  • disagreeable refresher on the subject of Mrs. Bardell’s action. He
  • breakfasted betimes next morning, and, desiring Sam to accompany him,
  • set forth towards Gray’s Inn Square.
  • ‘Sam!’ said Mr. Pickwick, looking round, when they got to the end of
  • Cheapside.
  • ‘Sir?’ said Sam, stepping up to his master.
  • ‘Which way?’
  • Up Newgate Street.’
  • Mr. Pickwick did not turn round immediately, but looked vacantly in
  • Sam’s face for a few seconds, and heaved a deep sigh.
  • ‘What’s the matter, sir?’ inquired Sam.
  • ‘This action, Sam,’ said Mr. Pickwick, ‘is expected to come on, on the
  • fourteenth of next month.’
  • Remarkable coincidence that ‘ere, sir,’ replied Sam.
  • ‘Why remarkable, Sam?’ inquired Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Walentine’s day, sir,’ responded Sam; ‘reg’lar good day for a breach o’
  • promise trial.’
  • Mr. Weller’s smile awakened no gleam of mirth in his master’s
  • countenance. Mr. Pickwick turned abruptly round, and led the way in
  • silence.
  • They had walked some distance, Mr. Pickwick trotting on before, plunged
  • in profound meditation, and Sam following behind, with a countenance
  • expressive of the most enviable and easy defiance of everything and
  • everybody, when the latter, who was always especially anxious to impart
  • to his master any exclusive information he possessed, quickened his pace
  • until he was close at Mr. Pickwick’s heels; and, pointing up at a house
  • they were passing, said--
  • ‘Wery nice pork-shop that ‘ere, sir.’
  • ‘Yes, it seems so,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Celebrated sassage factory,’ said Sam.
  • ‘Is it?’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Is it!’ reiterated Sam, with some indignation; ‘I should rayther think
  • it was. Why, sir, bless your innocent eyebrows, that’s where the
  • mysterious disappearance of a ‘spectable tradesman took place four years
  • ago.’
  • ‘You don’t mean to say he was burked, Sam?’ said Mr. Pickwick, looking
  • hastily round.
  • ‘No, I don’t indeed, sir,’ replied Mr. Weller, ‘I wish I did; far worse
  • than that. He was the master o’ that ‘ere shop, sir, and the inwentor o’
  • the patent-never-leavin’-off sassage steam-ingin, as ‘ud swaller up a
  • pavin’ stone if you put it too near, and grind it into sassages as easy
  • as if it was a tender young babby. Wery proud o’ that machine he was, as
  • it was nat’ral he should be, and he’d stand down in the celler a-lookin’
  • at it wen it was in full play, till he got quite melancholy with joy. A
  • wery happy man he’d ha’ been, Sir, in the procession o’ that ‘ere ingin
  • and two more lovely hinfants besides, if it hadn’t been for his wife,
  • who was a most owdacious wixin. She was always a-follerin’ him about,
  • and dinnin’ in his ears, till at last he couldn’t stand it no longer.
  • “I’ll tell you what it is, my dear,” he says one day; “if you persewere
  • in this here sort of amusement,” he says, “I’m blessed if I don’t go
  • away to ‘Merriker; and that’s all about it.” “You’re a idle willin,”
  • says she, “and I wish the ‘Merrikins joy of their bargain.” Arter which
  • she keeps on abusin’ of him for half an hour, and then runs into the
  • little parlour behind the shop, sets to a-screamin’, says he’ll be the
  • death on her, and falls in a fit, which lasts for three good hours--one
  • o’ them fits wich is all screamin’ and kickin’. Well, next mornin’, the
  • husband was missin’. He hadn’t taken nothin’ from the till--hadn’t even
  • put on his greatcoat--so it was quite clear he warn’t gone to ‘Merriker.
  • Didn’t come back next day; didn’t come back next week; missis had bills
  • printed, sayin’ that, if he’d come back, he should be forgiven
  • everythin’ (which was very liberal, seein’ that he hadn’t done nothin’
  • at all); the canals was dragged, and for two months arterwards, wenever
  • a body turned up, it was carried, as a reg’lar thing, straight off to
  • the sassage shop. Hows’ever, none on ‘em answered; so they gave out that
  • he’d run away, and she kep’ on the bis’ness. One Saturday night, a
  • little, thin, old gen’l’m’n comes into the shop in a great passion and
  • says, “Are you the missis o’ this here shop?” “Yes, I am,” says she.
  • “Well, ma’am,” says he, “then I’ve just looked in to say that me and my
  • family ain’t a-goin’ to be choked for nothin’; and more than that,
  • ma’am,” he says, “you’ll allow me to observe that as you don’t use the
  • primest parts of the meat in the manafacter o’ sassages, I’d think you’d
  • find beef come nearly as cheap as buttons.” “As buttons, Sir!” says she.
  • “Buttons, ma’am,” says the little, old gentleman, unfolding a bit of
  • paper, and showin’ twenty or thirty halves o’ buttons. “Nice seasonin’
  • for sassages, is trousers’ buttons, ma’am.” “They’re my husband’s
  • buttons!” says the widder beginnin’ to faint, “What!” screams the little
  • old gen’l’m’n, turnin’ wery pale. “I see it all,” says the widder; “in a
  • fit of temporary insanity he rashly converted hisself into sassages!”
  • And so he had, Sir,’ said Mr. Weller, looking steadily into Mr.
  • Pickwick’s horror-stricken countenance, ‘or else he’d been draw’d into
  • the ingin; but however that might ha’ been, the little, old gen’l’m’n,
  • who had been remarkably partial to sassages all his life, rushed out o’
  • the shop in a wild state, and was never heerd on arterwards!’
  • The relation of this affecting incident of private life brought master
  • and man to Mr. Perker’s chambers. Lowten, holding the door half open,
  • was in conversation with a rustily-clad, miserable-looking man, in boots
  • without toes and gloves without fingers. There were traces of privation
  • and suffering--almost of despair--in his lank and care-worn countenance;
  • he felt his poverty, for he shrank to the dark side of the staircase as
  • Mr. Pickwick approached.
  • ‘It’s very unfortunate,’ said the stranger, with a sigh.
  • ‘Very,’ said Lowten, scribbling his name on the doorpost with his pen,
  • and rubbing it out again with the feather. ‘Will you leave a message for
  • him?’
  • ‘When do you think he’ll be back?’ inquired the stranger.
  • ‘Quite uncertain,’ replied Lowten, winking at Mr. Pickwick, as the
  • stranger cast his eyes towards the ground.
  • ‘You don’t think it would be of any use my waiting for him?’ said the
  • stranger, looking wistfully into the office.
  • ‘Oh, no, I’m sure it wouldn’t,’ replied the clerk, moving a little more
  • into the centre of the doorway. ‘He’s certain not to be back this week,
  • and it’s a chance whether he will be next; for when Perker once gets out
  • of town, he’s never in a hurry to come back again.’
  • ‘Out of town!’ said Mr. Pickwick; ‘dear me, how unfortunate!’
  • ‘Don’t go away, Mr. Pickwick,’ said Lowten, ‘I’ve got a letter for you.’
  • The stranger, seeming to hesitate, once more looked towards the ground,
  • and the clerk winked slyly at Mr. Pickwick, as if to intimate that some
  • exquisite piece of humour was going forward, though what it was Mr.
  • Pickwick could not for the life of him divine.
  • ‘Step in, Mr. Pickwick,’ said Lowten. ‘Well, will you leave a message,
  • Mr. Watty, or will you call again?’
  • ‘Ask him to be so kind as to leave out word what has been done in my
  • business,’ said the man; ‘for God’s sake don’t neglect it, Mr. Lowten.’
  • ‘No, no; I won’t forget it,’ replied the clerk. ‘Walk in, Mr. Pickwick.
  • Good-morning, Mr. Watty; it’s a fine day for walking, isn’t it?’ Seeing
  • that the stranger still lingered, he beckoned Sam Weller to follow his
  • master in, and shut the door in his face.
  • ‘There never was such a pestering bankrupt as that since the world
  • began, I do believe!’ said Lowten, throwing down his pen with the air of
  • an injured man. ‘His affairs haven’t been in Chancery quite four years
  • yet, and I’m d----d if he don’t come worrying here twice a week. Step
  • this way, Mr. Pickwick. Perker _is_ in, and he’ll see you, I know.
  • Devilish cold,’ he added pettishly, ‘standing at that door, wasting
  • one’s time with such seedy vagabonds!’ Having very vehemently stirred a
  • particularly large fire with a particularly small poker, the clerk led
  • the way to his principal’s private room, and announced Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Ah, my dear Sir,’ said little Mr. Perker, bustling up from his chair.
  • ‘Well, my dear sir, and what’s the news about your matter, eh? Anything
  • more about our friends in Freeman’s Court? They’ve not been sleeping, I
  • know that. Ah, they’re very smart fellows; very smart, indeed.’
  • As the little man concluded, he took an emphatic pinch of snuff, as a
  • tribute to the smartness of Messrs. Dodson and Fogg.
  • ‘They are great scoundrels,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Aye, aye,’ said the little man; ‘that’s a matter of opinion, you know,
  • and we won’t dispute about terms; because of course you can’t be
  • expected to view these subjects with a professional eye. Well, we’ve
  • done everything that’s necessary. I have retained Serjeant Snubbin.’
  • ‘Is he a good man?’ inquired Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Good man!’ replied Perker; ‘bless your heart and soul, my dear Sir,
  • Serjeant Snubbin is at the very top of his profession. Gets treble the
  • business of any man in court--engaged in every case. You needn’t mention
  • it abroad; but we say--we of the profession--that Serjeant Snubbin leads
  • the court by the nose.’
  • The little man took another pinch of snuff as he made this
  • communication, and nodded mysteriously to Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘They have subpoenaed my three friends,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Ah! of course they would,’ replied Perker. ‘Important witnesses; saw
  • you in a delicate situation.’
  • ‘But she fainted of her own accord,’ said Mr. Pickwick. ‘She threw
  • herself into my arms.’
  • ‘Very likely, my dear Sir,’ replied Perker; ‘very likely and very
  • natural. Nothing more so, my dear Sir, nothing. But who’s to prove it?’
  • ‘They have subpoenaed my servant, too,’ said Mr. Pickwick, quitting the
  • other point; for there Mr. Perker’s question had somewhat staggered him.
  • ‘Sam?’ said Perker.
  • Mr. Pickwick replied in the affirmative.
  • ‘Of course, my dear Sir; of course. I knew they would. I could have told
  • you that, a month ago. You know, my dear Sir, if you _will _take the
  • management of your affairs into your own hands after entrusting them to
  • your solicitor, you must also take the consequences.’ Here Mr. Perker
  • drew himself up with conscious dignity, and brushed some stray grains of
  • snuff from his shirt frill.
  • ‘And what do they want him to prove?’ asked Mr. Pickwick, after two or
  • three minutes’ silence.
  • ‘That you sent him up to the plaintiff ‘s to make some offer of a
  • compromise, I suppose,’ replied Perker. ‘It don’t matter much, though; I
  • don’t think many counsel could get a great deal out of _him_.’
  • ‘I don’t think they could,’ said Mr. Pickwick, smiling, despite his
  • vexation, at the idea of Sam’s appearance as a witness. ‘What course do
  • we pursue?’
  • ‘We have only one to adopt, my dear Sir,’ replied Perker; ‘cross-examine
  • the witnesses; trust to Snubbin’s eloquence; throw dust in the eyes of
  • the judge; throw ourselves on the jury.’
  • ‘And suppose the verdict is against me?’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • Mr. Perker smiled, took a very long pinch of snuff, stirred the fire,
  • shrugged his shoulders, and remained expressively silent.
  • ‘You mean that in that case I must pay the damages?’ said Mr. Pickwick,
  • who had watched this telegraphic answer with considerable sternness.
  • Perker gave the fire another very unnecessary poke, and said, ‘I am
  • afraid so.’
  • ‘Then I beg to announce to you my unalterable determination to pay no
  • damages whatever,’ said Mr. Pickwick, most emphatically. ‘None, Perker.
  • Not a pound, not a penny of my money, shall find its way into the
  • pockets of Dodson and Fogg. That is my deliberate and irrevocable
  • determination.’ Mr. Pickwick gave a heavy blow on the table before him,
  • in confirmation of the irrevocability of his intention.
  • ‘Very well, my dear Sir, very well,’ said Perker. ‘You know best, of
  • course.’
  • ‘Of course,’ replied Mr. Pickwick hastily. ‘Where does Serjeant Snubbin
  • live?’
  • In Lincoln’s Inn Old Square,’ replied Perker.
  • ‘I should like to see him,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘See Serjeant Snubbin, my dear Sir!’ rejoined Perker, in utter
  • amazement. ‘Pooh, pooh, my dear Sir, impossible. See Serjeant Snubbin!
  • Bless you, my dear Sir, such a thing was never heard of, without a
  • consultation fee being previously paid, and a consultation fixed. It
  • couldn’t be done, my dear Sir; it couldn’t be done.’
  • Mr. Pickwick, however, had made up his mind not only that it could be
  • done, but that it should be done; and the consequence was, that within
  • ten minutes after he had received the assurance that the thing was
  • impossible, he was conducted by his solicitor into the outer office of
  • the great Serjeant Snubbin himself.
  • It was an uncarpeted room of tolerable dimensions, with a large writing-
  • table drawn up near the fire, the baize top of which had long since lost
  • all claim to its original hue of green, and had gradually grown gray
  • with dust and age, except where all traces of its natural colour were
  • obliterated by ink-stains. Upon the table were numerous little bundles
  • of papers tied with red tape; and behind it, sat an elderly clerk, whose
  • sleek appearance and heavy gold watch-chain presented imposing
  • indications of the extensive and lucrative practice of Mr. Serjeant
  • Snubbin.
  • ‘Is the Serjeant in his room, Mr. Mallard?’ inquired Perker, offering
  • his box with all imaginable courtesy.
  • ‘Yes, he is,’ was the reply, ‘but he’s very busy. Look here; not an
  • opinion given yet, on any one of these cases; and an expedition fee paid
  • with all of ‘em.’ The clerk smiled as he said this, and inhaled the
  • pinch of snuff with a zest which seemed to be compounded of a fondness
  • for snuff and a relish for fees.
  • ‘Something like practice that,’ said Perker.
  • ‘Yes,’ said the barrister’s clerk, producing his own box, and offering
  • it with the greatest cordiality; ‘and the best of it is, that as nobody
  • alive except myself can read the serjeant’s writing, they are obliged to
  • wait for the opinions, when he has given them, till I have copied ‘em,
  • ha-ha-ha!’
  • ‘Which makes good for we know who, besides the serjeant, and draws a
  • little more out of the clients, eh?’ said Perker; ‘Ha, ha, ha!’ At this
  • the serjeant’s clerk laughed again--not a noisy boisterous laugh, but a
  • silent, internal chuckle, which Mr. Pickwick disliked to hear. When a
  • man bleeds inwardly, it is a dangerous thing for himself; but when he
  • laughs inwardly, it bodes no good to other people.
  • ‘You haven’t made me out that little list of the fees that I’m in your
  • debt, have you?’ said Perker.
  • ‘No, I have not,’ replied the clerk.
  • ‘I wish you would,’ said Perker. ‘Let me have them, and I’ll send you a
  • cheque. But I suppose you’re too busy pocketing the ready money, to
  • think of the debtors, eh? ha, ha, ha!’ This sally seemed to tickle the
  • clerk amazingly, and he once more enjoyed a little quiet laugh to
  • himself.
  • ‘But, Mr. Mallard, my dear friend,’ said Perker, suddenly recovering his
  • gravity, and drawing the great man’s great man into a Corner, by the
  • lappel of his coat; ‘you must persuade the Serjeant to see me, and my
  • client here.’
  • ‘Come, come,’ said the clerk, ‘that’s not bad either. See the Serjeant!
  • come, that’s too absurd.’ Notwithstanding the absurdity of the proposal,
  • however, the clerk allowed himself to be gently drawn beyond the hearing
  • of Mr. Pickwick; and after a short conversation conducted in whispers,
  • walked softly down a little dark passage, and disappeared into the legal
  • luminary’s sanctum, whence he shortly returned on tiptoe, and informed
  • Mr. Perker and Mr. Pickwick that the Serjeant had been prevailed upon,
  • in violation of all established rules and customs, to admit them at
  • once.
  • Mr. Serjeant Snubbins was a lantern-faced, sallow-complexioned man, of
  • about five-and-forty, or--as the novels say--he might be fifty. He had
  • that dull-looking, boiled eye which is often to be seen in the heads of
  • people who have applied themselves during many years to a weary and
  • laborious course of study; and which would have been sufficient, without
  • the additional eyeglass which dangled from a broad black riband round
  • his neck, to warn a stranger that he was very near-sighted. His hair was
  • thin and weak, which was partly attributable to his having never devoted
  • much time to its arrangement, and partly to his having worn for five-
  • and-twenty years the forensic wig which hung on a block beside him. The
  • marks of hairpowder on his coat-collar, and the ill-washed and worse
  • tied white neckerchief round his throat, showed that he had not found
  • leisure since he left the court to make any alteration in his dress;
  • while the slovenly style of the remainder of his costume warranted the
  • inference that his personal appearance would not have been very much
  • improved if he had. Books of practice, heaps of papers, and opened
  • letters, were scattered over the table, without any attempt at order or
  • arrangement; the furniture of the room was old and rickety; the doors of
  • the book-case were rotting in their hinges; the dust flew out from the
  • carpet in little clouds at every step; the blinds were yellow with age
  • and dirt; the state of everything in the room showed, with a clearness
  • not to be mistaken, that Mr. Serjeant Snubbin was far too much occupied
  • with his professional pursuits to take any great heed or regard of his
  • personal comforts.
  • The Serjeant was writing when his clients entered; he bowed abstractedly
  • when Mr. Pickwick was introduced by his solicitor; and then, motioning
  • them to a seat, put his pen carefully in the inkstand, nursed his left
  • leg, and waited to be spoken to.
  • ‘Mr. Pickwick is the defendant in Bardell and Pickwick, Serjeant
  • Snubbin,’ said Perker.
  • ‘I am retained in that, am I?’ said the Serjeant.
  • ‘You are, Sir,’ replied Perker.
  • The Serjeant nodded his head, and waited for something else.
  • ‘Mr. Pickwick was anxious to call upon you, Serjeant Snubbin,’ said
  • Perker, ‘to state to you, before you entered upon the case, that he
  • denies there being any ground or pretence whatever for the action
  • against him; and that unless he came into court with clean hands, and
  • without the most conscientious conviction that he was right in resisting
  • the plaintiff’s demand, he would not be there at all. I believe I state
  • your views correctly; do I not, my dear Sir?’ said the little man,
  • turning to Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Quite so,’ replied that gentleman.
  • Mr. Serjeant Snubbin unfolded his glasses, raised them to his eyes; and,
  • after looking at Mr. Pickwick for a few seconds with great curiosity,
  • turned to Mr. Perker, and said, smiling slightly as he spoke--
  • ‘Has Mr. Pickwick a strong case?’
  • The attorney shrugged his shoulders.
  • ‘Do you propose calling witnesses?’
  • ‘No.’
  • The smile on the Serjeant’s countenance became more defined; he rocked
  • his leg with increased violence; and, throwing himself back in his easy-
  • chair, coughed dubiously.
  • These tokens of the Serjeant’s presentiments on the subject, slight as
  • they were, were not lost on Mr. Pickwick. He settled the spectacles,
  • through which he had attentively regarded such demonstrations of the
  • barrister’s feelings as he had permitted himself to exhibit, more firmly
  • on his nose; and said with great energy, and in utter disregard of all
  • Mr. Perker’s admonitory winkings and frownings--
  • ‘My wishing to wait upon you, for such a purpose as this, Sir, appears,
  • I have no doubt, to a gentleman who sees so much of these matters as you
  • must necessarily do, a very extraordinary circumstance.’
  • The Serjeant tried to look gravely at the fire, but the smile came back
  • again.
  • ‘Gentlemen of your profession, Sir,’ continued Mr. Pickwick, ‘see the
  • worst side of human nature. All its disputes, all its ill-will and bad
  • blood, rise up before you. You know from your experience of juries (I
  • mean no disparagement to you, or them) how much depends upon effect; and
  • you are apt to attribute to others, a desire to use, for purposes of
  • deception and self-interest, the very instruments which you, in pure
  • honesty and honour of purpose, and with a laudable desire to do your
  • utmost for your client, know the temper and worth of so well, from
  • constantly employing them yourselves. I really believe that to this
  • circumstance may be attributed the vulgar but very general notion of
  • your being, as a body, suspicious, distrustful, and over-cautious.
  • Conscious as I am, sir, of the disadvantage of making such a declaration
  • to you, under such circumstances, I have come here, because I wish you
  • distinctly to understand, as my friend Mr. Perker has said, that I am
  • innocent of the falsehood laid to my charge; and although I am very well
  • aware of the inestimable value of your assistance, Sir, I must beg to
  • add, that unless you sincerely believe this, I would rather be deprived
  • of the aid of your talents than have the advantage of them.’
  • Long before the close of this address, which we are bound to say was of
  • a very prosy character for Mr. Pickwick, the Serjeant had relapsed into
  • a state of abstraction. After some minutes, however, during which he had
  • reassumed his pen, he appeared to be again aware of the presence of his
  • clients; raising his head from the paper, he said, rather snappishly--
  • ‘Who is with me in this case?’
  • ‘Mr. Phunky, Serjeant Snubbin,’ replied the attorney.
  • ‘Phunky--Phunky,’ said the Serjeant, ‘I never heard the name before. He
  • must be a very young man.’
  • ‘Yes, he is a very young man,’ replied the attorney. ‘He was only called
  • the other day. Let me see--he has not been at the Bar eight years yet.’
  • ‘Ah, I thought not,’ said the Serjeant, in that sort of pitying tone in
  • which ordinary folks would speak of a very helpless little child. ‘Mr.
  • Mallard, send round to Mr.--Mr.--’
  • Phunky’s--Holborn Court, Gray’s Inn,’ interposed Perker. (Holborn Court,
  • by the bye, is South Square now.)--‘Mr. Phunky, and say I should be glad
  • if he’d step here, a moment.’
  • Mr. Mallard departed to execute his commission; and Serjeant Snubbin
  • relapsed into abstraction until Mr. Phunky himself was introduced.
  • Although an infant barrister, he was a full-grown man. He had a very
  • nervous manner, and a painful hesitation in his speech; it did not
  • appear to be a natural defect, but seemed rather the result of timidity,
  • arising from the consciousness of being ‘kept down’ by want of means, or
  • interest, or connection, or impudence, as the case might be. He was
  • overawed by the Serjeant, and profoundly courteous to the attorney.
  • ‘I have not had the pleasure of seeing you before, Mr. Phunky,’ said
  • Serjeant Snubbin, with haughty condescension.
  • Mr. Phunky bowed. He _had _had the pleasure of seeing the Serjeant, and
  • of envying him too, with all a poor man’s envy, for eight years and a
  • quarter.
  • ‘You are with me in this case, I understand?’ said the Serjeant.
  • If Mr. Phunky had been a rich man, he would have instantly sent for his
  • clerk to remind him; if he had been a wise one, he would have applied
  • his forefinger to his forehead, and endeavoured to recollect, whether,
  • in the multiplicity of his engagements, he had undertaken this one or
  • not; but as he was neither rich nor wise (in this sense, at all events)
  • he turned red, and bowed.
  • ‘Have you read the papers, Mr. Phunky?’ inquired the Serjeant.
  • Here again, Mr. Phunky should have professed to have forgotten all about
  • the merits of the case; but as he had read such papers as had been laid
  • before him in the course of the action, and had thought of nothing else,
  • waking or sleeping, throughout the two months during which he had been
  • retained as Mr. Serjeant Snubbin’s junior, he turned a deeper red and
  • bowed again.
  • ‘This is Mr. Pickwick,’ said the Serjeant, waving his pen in the
  • direction in which that gentleman was standing.
  • Mr. Phunky bowed to Mr. Pickwick, with a reverence which a first client
  • must ever awaken; and again inclined his head towards his leader.
  • ‘Perhaps you will take Mr. Pickwick away,’ said the Serjeant, ‘and--and-
  • -and--hear anything Mr. Pickwick may wish to communicate. We shall have
  • a consultation, of course.’ With that hint that he had been interrupted
  • quite long enough, Mr. Serjeant Snubbin, who had been gradually growing
  • more and more abstracted, applied his glass to his eyes for an instant,
  • bowed slightly round, and was once more deeply immersed in the case
  • before him, which arose out of an interminable lawsuit, originating in
  • the act of an individual, deceased a century or so ago, who had stopped
  • up a pathway leading from some place which nobody ever came from, to
  • some other place which nobody ever went to.
  • Mr. Phunky would not hear of passing through any door until Mr. Pickwick
  • and his solicitor had passed through before him, so it was some time
  • before they got into the Square; and when they did reach it, they walked
  • up and down, and held a long conference, the result of which was, that
  • it was a very difficult matter to say how the verdict would go; that
  • nobody could presume to calculate on the issue of an action; that it was
  • very lucky they had prevented the other party from getting Serjeant
  • Snubbin; and other topics of doubt and consolation, common in such a
  • position of affairs.
  • Mr. Weller was then roused by his master from a sweet sleep of an hour’s
  • duration; and, bidding adieu to Lowten, they returned to the city.
  • CHAPTER XXXII. DESCRIBES, FAR MORE FULLY THAN THE COURT NEWSMAN EVER
  • DID, A BACHELOR’S PARTY, GIVEN BY MR. BOB SAWYER AT HIS LODGINGS IN THE
  • BOROUGH
  • There is a repose about Lant Street, in the Borough, which sheds a
  • gentle melancholy upon the soul. There are always a good many houses to
  • let in the street: it is a by-street too, and its dulness is soothing. A
  • house in Lant Street would not come within the denomination of a first-
  • rate residence, in the strict acceptation of the term; but it is a most
  • desirable spot nevertheless. If a man wished to abstract himself from
  • the world--to remove himself from within the reach of temptation--to
  • place himself beyond the possibility of any inducement to look out of
  • the window--we should recommend him by all means go to Lant Street.
  • In this happy retreat are colonised a few clear-starchers, a sprinkling
  • of journeymen bookbinders, one or two prison agents for the Insolvent
  • Court, several small housekeepers who are employed in the Docks, a
  • handful of mantua-makers, and a seasoning of jobbing tailors. The
  • majority of the inhabitants either direct their energies to the letting
  • of furnished apartments, or devote themselves to the healthful and
  • invigorating pursuit of mangling. The chief features in the still life
  • of the street are green shutters, lodging-bills, brass door-plates, and
  • bell-handles; the principal specimens of animated nature, the pot-boy,
  • the muffin youth, and the baked-potato man. The population is migratory,
  • usually disappearing on the verge of quarter-day, and generally by
  • night. His Majesty’s revenues are seldom collected in this happy valley;
  • the rents are dubious; and the water communication is very frequently
  • cut off.
  • Mr. Bob Sawyer embellished one side of the fire, in his first-floor
  • front, early on the evening for which he had invited Mr. Pickwick, and
  • Mr. Ben Allen the other. The preparations for the reception of visitors
  • appeared to be completed. The umbrellas in the passage had been heaped
  • into the little corner outside the back-parlour door; the bonnet and
  • shawl of the landlady’s servant had been removed from the bannisters;
  • there were not more than two pairs of pattens on the street-door mat;
  • and a kitchen candle, with a very long snuff, burned cheerfully on the
  • ledge of the staircase window. Mr. Bob Sawyer had himself purchased the
  • spirits at a wine vaults in High Street, and had returned home preceding
  • the bearer thereof, to preclude the possibility of their delivery at the
  • wrong house. The punch was ready-made in a red pan in the bedroom; a
  • little table, covered with a green baize cloth, had been borrowed from
  • the parlour, to play at cards on; and the glasses of the establishment,
  • together with those which had been borrowed for the occasion from the
  • public-house, were all drawn up in a tray, which was deposited on the
  • landing outside the door.
  • Notwithstanding the highly satisfactory nature of all these
  • arrangements, there was a cloud on the countenance of Mr. Bob Sawyer, as
  • he sat by the fireside. There was a sympathising expression, too, in the
  • features of Mr. Ben Allen, as he gazed intently on the coals, and a tone
  • of melancholy in his voice, as he said, after a long silence--
  • ‘Well, it is unlucky she should have taken it in her head to turn sour,
  • just on this occasion. She might at least have waited till to-morrow.’
  • ‘That’s her malevolence--that’s her malevolence,’ returned Mr. Bob
  • Sawyer vehemently. ‘She says that if I can afford to give a party I
  • ought to be able to pay her confounded “little bill.”’
  • How long has it been running?’ inquired Mr. Ben Allen. A bill, by the
  • bye, is the most extraordinary locomotive engine that the genius of man
  • ever produced. It would keep on running during the longest lifetime,
  • without ever once stopping of its own accord.
  • ‘Only a quarter, and a month or so,’ replied Mr. Bob Sawyer.
  • Ben Allen coughed hopelessly, and directed a searching look between the
  • two top bars of the stove.
  • ‘It’ll be a deuced unpleasant thing if she takes it into her head to let
  • out, when those fellows are here, won’t it?’ said Mr. Ben Allen at
  • length.
  • ‘Horrible,’ replied Bob Sawyer, ‘horrible.’
  • A low tap was heard at the room door. Mr. Bob Sawyer looked expressively
  • at his friend, and bade the tapper come in; whereupon a dirty, slipshod
  • girl in black cotton stockings, who might have passed for the neglected
  • daughter of a superannuated dustman in very reduced circumstances,
  • thrust in her head, and said--
  • ‘Please, Mister Sawyer, Missis Raddle wants to speak to you.’
  • Before Mr. Bob Sawyer could return any answer, the girl suddenly
  • disappeared with a jerk, as if somebody had given her a violent pull
  • behind; this mysterious exit was no sooner accomplished, than there was
  • another tap at the door--a smart, pointed tap, which seemed to say,
  • ‘Here I am, and in I’m coming.’
  • Mr. Bob Sawyer glanced at his friend with a look of abject apprehension,
  • and once more cried, ‘Come in.’
  • The permission was not at all necessary, for, before Mr. Bob Sawyer had
  • uttered the words, a little, fierce woman bounced into the room, all in
  • a tremble with passion, and pale with rage.
  • ‘Now, Mr. Sawyer,’ said the little, fierce woman, trying to appear very
  • calm, ‘if you’ll have the kindness to settle that little bill of mine
  • I’ll thank you, because I’ve got my rent to pay this afternoon, and my
  • landlord’s a-waiting below now.’ Here the little woman rubbed her hands,
  • and looked steadily over Mr. Bob Sawyer’s head, at the wall behind him.
  • ‘I am very sorry to put you to any inconvenience, Mrs. Raddle,’ said Bob
  • Sawyer deferentially, ‘but--’
  • ‘Oh, it isn’t any inconvenience,’ replied the little woman, with a
  • shrill titter. ‘I didn’t want it particular before to-day; leastways, as
  • it has to go to my landlord directly, it was as well for you to keep it
  • as me. You promised me this afternoon, Mr. Sawyer, and every gentleman
  • as has ever lived here, has kept his word, Sir, as of course anybody as
  • calls himself a gentleman does.’ Mrs. Raddle tossed her head, bit her
  • lips, rubbed her hands harder, and looked at the wall more steadily than
  • ever. It was plain to see, as Mr. Bob Sawyer remarked in a style of
  • Eastern allegory on a subsequent occasion, that she was ‘getting the
  • steam up.’
  • ‘I am very sorry, Mrs. Raddle,’ said Bob Sawyer, with all imaginable
  • humility, ‘but the fact is, that I have been disappointed in the City
  • to-day.’--Extraordinary place that City. An astonishing number of men
  • always _are _getting disappointed there.
  • ‘Well, Mr. Sawyer,’ said Mrs. Raddle, planting herself firmly on a
  • purple cauliflower in the Kidderminster carpet, ‘and what’s that to me,
  • Sir?’
  • ‘I--I--have no doubt, Mrs. Raddle,’ said Bob Sawyer, blinking this last
  • question, ‘that before the middle of next week we shall be able to set
  • ourselves quite square, and go on, on a better system, afterwards.’
  • This was all Mrs. Raddle wanted. She had bustled up to the apartment of
  • the unlucky Bob Sawyer, so bent upon going into a passion, that, in all
  • probability, payment would have rather disappointed her than otherwise.
  • She was in excellent order for a little relaxation of the kind, having
  • just exchanged a few introductory compliments with Mr. R. in the front
  • kitchen.
  • ‘Do you suppose, Mr. Sawyer,’ said Mrs. Raddle, elevating her voice for
  • the information of the neighbours--‘do you suppose that I’m a-going day
  • after day to let a fellar occupy my lodgings as never thinks of paying
  • his rent, nor even the very money laid out for the fresh butter and lump
  • sugar that’s bought for his breakfast, and the very milk that’s took in,
  • at the street door? Do you suppose a hard-working and industrious woman
  • as has lived in this street for twenty year (ten year over the way, and
  • nine year and three-quarters in this very house) has nothing else to do
  • but to work herself to death after a parcel of lazy idle fellars, that
  • are always smoking and drinking, and lounging, when they ought to be
  • glad to turn their hands to anything that would help ‘em to pay their
  • bills? Do you--’
  • ‘My good soul,’ interposed Mr. Benjamin Allen soothingly.
  • ‘Have the goodness to keep your observashuns to yourself, Sir, I beg,’
  • said Mrs. Raddle, suddenly arresting the rapid torrent of her speech,
  • and addressing the third party with impressive slowness and solemnity.
  • ‘I am not aweer, Sir, that you have any right to address your
  • conversation to me. I don’t think I let these apartments to you, Sir.’
  • ‘No, you certainly did not,’ said Mr. Benjamin Allen.
  • ‘Very good, Sir,’ responded Mrs. Raddle, with lofty politeness. ‘Then
  • p’raps, Sir, you’ll confine yourself to breaking the arms and legs of
  • the poor people in the hospitals, and keep yourself _to_ yourself, Sir,
  • or there may be some persons here as will make you, Sir.’
  • ‘But you are such an unreasonable woman,’ remonstrated Mr. Benjamin
  • Allen.
  • ‘I beg your parding, young man,’ said Mrs. Raddle, in a cold
  • perspiration of anger. ‘But will you have the goodness just to call me
  • that again, sir?’
  • ‘I didn’t make use of the word in any invidious sense, ma’am,’ replied
  • Mr. Benjamin Allen, growing somewhat uneasy on his own account.
  • ‘I beg your parding, young man,’ demanded Mrs. Raddle, in a louder and
  • more imperative tone. ‘But who do you call a woman? Did you make that
  • remark to me, sir?’
  • ‘Why, bless my heart!’ said Mr. Benjamin Allen.
  • ‘Did you apply that name to me, I ask of you, sir?’ interrupted Mrs.
  • Raddle, with intense fierceness, throwing the door wide open.
  • ‘Why, of course I did,’ replied Mr. Benjamin Allen.
  • ‘Yes, of course you did,’ said Mrs. Raddle, backing gradually to the
  • door, and raising her voice to its loudest pitch, for the special behoof
  • of Mr. Raddle in the kitchen. ‘Yes, of course you did! And everybody
  • knows that they may safely insult me in my own ‘ouse while my husband
  • sits sleeping downstairs, and taking no more notice than if I was a dog
  • in the streets. He ought to be ashamed of himself (here Mrs. Raddle
  • sobbed) to allow his wife to be treated in this way by a parcel of young
  • cutters and carvers of live people’s bodies, that disgraces the lodgings
  • (another sob), and leaving her exposed to all manner of abuse; a base,
  • faint-hearted, timorous wretch, that’s afraid to come upstairs, and face
  • the ruffinly creatures--that’s afraid--that’s afraid to come!’ Mrs.
  • Raddle paused to listen whether the repetition of the taunt had roused
  • her better half; and finding that it had not been successful, proceeded
  • to descend the stairs with sobs innumerable; when there came a loud
  • double knock at the street door; whereupon she burst into an hysterical
  • fit of weeping, accompanied with dismal moans, which was prolonged until
  • the knock had been repeated six times, when, in an uncontrollable burst
  • of mental agony, she threw down all the umbrellas, and disappeared into
  • the back parlour, closing the door after her with an awful crash.
  • ‘Does Mr. Sawyer live here?’ said Mr. Pickwick, when the door was
  • opened.
  • ‘Yes,’ said the girl, ‘first floor. It’s the door straight afore you,
  • when you gets to the top of the stairs.’ Having given this instruction,
  • the handmaid, who had been brought up among the aboriginal inhabitants
  • of Southwark, disappeared, with the candle in her hand, down the kitchen
  • stairs, perfectly satisfied that she had done everything that could
  • possibly be required of her under the circumstances.
  • Mr. Snodgrass, who entered last, secured the street door, after several
  • ineffectual efforts, by putting up the chain; and the friends stumbled
  • upstairs, where they were received by Mr. Bob Sawyer, who had been
  • afraid to go down, lest he should be waylaid by Mrs. Raddle.
  • ‘How are you?’ said the discomfited student. ‘Glad to see you--take care
  • of the glasses.’ This caution was addressed to Mr. Pickwick, who had put
  • his hat in the tray.
  • ‘Dear me,’ said Mr. Pickwick, ‘I beg your pardon.’
  • ‘Don’t mention it, don’t mention it,’ said Bob Sawyer. ‘I’m rather
  • confined for room here, but you must put up with all that, when you come
  • to see a young bachelor. Walk in. You’ve seen this gentleman before, I
  • think?’ Mr. Pickwick shook hands with Mr. Benjamin Allen, and his
  • friends followed his example. They had scarcely taken their seats when
  • there was another double knock.
  • ‘I hope that’s Jack Hopkins!’ said Mr. Bob Sawyer. ‘Hush. Yes, it is.
  • Come up, Jack; come up.’
  • A heavy footstep was heard upon the stairs, and Jack Hopkins presented
  • himself. He wore a black velvet waistcoat, with thunder-and-lightning
  • buttons; and a blue striped shirt, with a white false collar.
  • ‘You’re late, Jack?’ said Mr. Benjamin Allen.
  • ‘Been detained at Bartholomew’s,’ replied Hopkins.
  • ‘Anything new?’
  • ‘No, nothing particular. Rather a good accident brought into the
  • casualty ward.’
  • ‘What was that, sir?’ inquired Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Only a man fallen out of a four pair of stairs’ window; but it’s a very
  • fair case indeed.’
  • ‘Do you mean that the patient is in a fair way to recover?’ inquired Mr.
  • Pickwick.
  • ‘No,’ replied Mr. Hopkins carelessly. ‘No, I should rather say he
  • wouldn’t. There must be a splendid operation, though, to-morrow--
  • magnificent sight if Slasher does it.’
  • ‘You consider Mr. Slasher a good operator?’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Best alive,’ replied Hopkins. ‘Took a boy’s leg out of the socket last
  • week--boy ate five apples and a gingerbread cake--exactly two minutes
  • after it was all over, boy said he wouldn’t lie there to be made game
  • of, and he’d tell his mother if they didn’t begin.’
  • ‘Dear me!’ said Mr. Pickwick, astonished.
  • ‘Pooh! That’s nothing, that ain’t,’ said Jack Hopkins. ‘Is it, Bob?’
  • ‘Nothing at all,’ replied Mr. Bob Sawyer.
  • ‘By the bye, Bob,’ said Hopkins, with a scarcely perceptible glance at
  • Mr. Pickwick’s attentive face, ‘we had a curious accident last night. A
  • child was brought in, who had swallowed a necklace.’
  • ‘Swallowed what, Sir?’ interrupted Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘A necklace,’ replied Jack Hopkins. ‘Not all at once, you know, that
  • would be too much--you couldn’t swallow that, if the child did--eh, Mr.
  • Pickwick? ha, ha!’ Mr. Hopkins appeared highly gratified with his own
  • pleasantry, and continued--‘No, the way was this. Child’s parents were
  • poor people who lived in a court. Child’s eldest sister bought a
  • necklace--common necklace, made of large black wooden beads. Child being
  • fond of toys, cribbed the necklace, hid it, played with it, cut the
  • string, and swallowed a bead. Child thought it capital fun, went back
  • next day, and swallowed another bead.’
  • ‘Bless my heart,’ said Mr. Pickwick, ‘what a dreadful thing! I beg your
  • pardon, Sir. Go on.’
  • ‘Next day, child swallowed two beads; the day after that, he treated
  • himself to three, and so on, till in a week’s time he had got through
  • the necklace--five-and-twenty beads in all. The sister, who was an
  • industrious girl, and seldom treated herself to a bit of finery, cried
  • her eyes out, at the loss of the necklace; looked high and low for it;
  • but, I needn’t say, didn’t find it. A few days afterwards, the family
  • were at dinner--baked shoulder of mutton, and potatoes under it--the
  • child, who wasn’t hungry, was playing about the room, when suddenly
  • there was heard a devil of a noise, like a small hailstorm. “Don’t do
  • that, my boy,” said the father. “I ain’t a-doin’ nothing,” said the
  • child. “Well, don’t do it again,” said the father. There was a short
  • silence, and then the noise began again, worse than ever. “If you don’t
  • mind what I say, my boy,” said the father, “you’ll find yourself in bed,
  • in something less than a pig’s whisper.” He gave the child a shake to
  • make him obedient, and such a rattling ensued as nobody ever heard
  • before. “Why, damme, it’s _in_ the child!” said the father, “he’s got
  • the croup in the wrong place!” “No, I haven’t, father,” said the child,
  • beginning to cry, “it’s the necklace; I swallowed it, father.”--The
  • father caught the child up, and ran with him to the hospital; the beads
  • in the boy’s stomach rattling all the way with the jolting; and the
  • people looking up in the air, and down in the cellars, to see where the
  • unusual sound came from. He’s in the hospital now,’ said Jack Hopkins,
  • ‘and he makes such a devil of a noise when he walks about, that they’re
  • obliged to muffle him in a watchman’s coat, for fear he should wake the
  • patients.’
  • ‘That’s the most extraordinary case I ever heard of,’ said Mr. Pickwick,
  • with an emphatic blow on the table.
  • ‘Oh, that’s nothing,’ said Jack Hopkins. ‘Is it, Bob?’
  • ‘Certainly not,’ replied Bob Sawyer.
  • ‘Very singular things occur in our profession, I can assure you, Sir,’
  • said Hopkins.
  • ‘So I should be disposed to imagine,’ replied Mr. Pickwick.
  • Another knock at the door announced a large-headed young man in a black
  • wig, who brought with him a scorbutic youth in a long stock. The next
  • comer was a gentleman in a shirt emblazoned with pink anchors, who was
  • closely followed by a pale youth with a plated watchguard. The arrival
  • of a prim personage in clean linen and cloth boots rendered the party
  • complete. The little table with the green baize cover was wheeled out;
  • the first instalment of punch was brought in, in a white jug; and the
  • succeeding three hours were devoted to _Vingt-et-un_ at sixpence a
  • dozen, which was only once interrupted by a slight dispute between the
  • scorbutic youth and the gentleman with the pink anchors; in the course
  • of which, the scorbutic youth intimated a burning desire to pull the
  • nose of the gentleman with the emblems of hope; in reply to which, that
  • individual expressed his decided unwillingness to accept of any ‘sauce’
  • on gratuitous terms, either from the irascible young gentleman with the
  • scorbutic countenance, or any other person who was ornamented with a
  • head.
  • When the last ‘natural’ had been declared, and the profit and loss
  • account of fish and sixpences adjusted, to the satisfaction of all
  • parties, Mr. Bob Sawyer rang for supper, and the visitors squeezed
  • themselves into corners while it was getting ready.
  • It was not so easily got ready as some people may imagine. First of all,
  • it was necessary to awaken the girl, who had fallen asleep with her face
  • on the kitchen table; this took a little time, and, even when she did
  • answer the bell, another quarter of an hour was consumed in fruitless
  • endeavours to impart to her a faint and distant glimmering of reason.
  • The man to whom the order for the oysters had been sent, had not been
  • told to open them; it is a very difficult thing to open an oyster with a
  • limp knife and a two-pronged fork; and very little was done in this way.
  • Very little of the beef was done either; and the ham (which was also
  • from the German-sausage shop round the corner) was in a similar
  • predicament. However, there was plenty of porter in a tin can; and the
  • cheese went a great way, for it was very strong. So upon the whole,
  • perhaps, the supper was quite as good as such matters usually are.
  • After supper, another jug of punch was put upon the table, together with
  • a paper of cigars, and a couple of bottles of spirits. Then there was an
  • awful pause; and this awful pause was occasioned by a very common
  • occurrence in this sort of place, but a very embarrassing one
  • notwithstanding.
  • The fact is, the girl was washing the glasses. The establishment boasted
  • four: we do not record the circumstance as at all derogatory to Mrs.
  • Raddle, for there never was a lodging-house yet, that was not short of
  • glasses. The landlady’s glasses were little, thin, blown-glass tumblers,
  • and those which had been borrowed from the public-house were great,
  • dropsical, bloated articles, each supported on a huge gouty leg. This
  • would have been in itself sufficient to have possessed the company with
  • the real state of affairs; but the young woman of all work had prevented
  • the possibility of any misconception arising in the mind of any
  • gentleman upon the subject, by forcibly dragging every man’s glass away,
  • long before he had finished his beer, and audibly stating, despite the
  • winks and interruptions of Mr. Bob Sawyer, that it was to be conveyed
  • downstairs, and washed forthwith.
  • It is a very ill wind that blows nobody any good. The prim man in the
  • cloth boots, who had been unsuccessfully attempting to make a joke
  • during the whole time the round game lasted, saw his opportunity, and
  • availed himself of it. The instant the glasses disappeared, he commenced
  • a long story about a great public character, whose name he had
  • forgotten, making a particularly happy reply to another eminent and
  • illustrious individual whom he had never been able to identify. He
  • enlarged at some length and with great minuteness upon divers collateral
  • circumstances, distantly connected with the anecdote in hand, but for
  • the life of him he couldn’t recollect at that precise moment what the
  • anecdote was, although he had been in the habit of telling the story
  • with great applause for the last ten years.
  • ‘Dear me,’ said the prim man in the cloth boots, ‘it is a very
  • extraordinary circumstance.’
  • ‘I am sorry you have forgotten it,’ said Mr. Bob Sawyer, glancing
  • eagerly at the door, as he thought he heard the noise of glasses
  • jingling; ‘very sorry.’
  • ‘So am I,’ responded the prim man, ‘because I know it would have
  • afforded so much amusement. Never mind; I dare say I shall manage to
  • recollect it, in the course of half an hour or so.’
  • The prim man arrived at this point just as the glasses came back, when
  • Mr. Bob Sawyer, who had been absorbed in attention during the whole
  • time, said he should very much like to hear the end of it, for, so far
  • as it went, it was, without exception, the very best story he had ever
  • heard.
  • The sight of the tumblers restored Bob Sawyer to a degree of equanimity
  • which he had not possessed since his interview with his landlady. His
  • face brightened up, and he began to feel quite convivial.
  • ‘Now, Betsy,’ said Mr. Bob Sawyer, with great suavity, and dispersing,
  • at the same time, the tumultuous little mob of glasses the girl had
  • collected in the centre of the table--‘now, Betsy, the warm water; be
  • brisk, there’s a good girl.’
  • ‘You can’t have no warm water,’ replied Betsy.
  • ‘No warm water!’ exclaimed Mr. Bob Sawyer.
  • ‘No,’ said the girl, with a shake of the head which expressed a more
  • decided negative than the most copious language could have conveyed.
  • ‘Missis Raddle said you warn’t to have none.’
  • The surprise depicted on the countenances of his guests imparted new
  • courage to the host.
  • ‘Bring up the warm water instantly--instantly!’ said Mr. Bob Sawyer,
  • with desperate sternness.
  • ‘No. I can’t,’ replied the girl; ‘Missis Raddle raked out the kitchen
  • fire afore she went to bed, and locked up the kittle.’
  • ‘Oh, never mind; never mind. Pray don’t disturb yourself about such a
  • trifle,’ said Mr. Pickwick, observing the conflict of Bob Sawyer’s
  • passions, as depicted in his countenance, ‘cold water will do very
  • well.’
  • ‘Oh, admirably,’ said Mr. Benjamin Allen.
  • ‘My landlady is subject to some slight attacks of mental derangement,’
  • remarked Bob Sawyer, with a ghastly smile; ‘I fear I must give her
  • warning.’
  • ‘No, don’t,’ said Ben Allen.
  • ‘I fear I must,’ said Bob, with heroic firmness. ‘I’ll pay her what I
  • owe her, and give her warning to-morrow morning.’ Poor fellow! how
  • devoutly he wished he could!
  • Mr. Bob Sawyer’s heart-sickening attempts to rally under this last blow,
  • communicated a dispiriting influence to the company, the greater part of
  • whom, with the view of raising their spirits, attached themselves with
  • extra cordiality to the cold brandy-and-water, the first perceptible
  • effects of which were displayed in a renewal of hostilities between the
  • scorbutic youth and the gentleman in the shirt. The belligerents vented
  • their feelings of mutual contempt, for some time, in a variety of
  • frownings and snortings, until at last the scorbutic youth felt it
  • necessary to come to a more explicit understanding on the matter; when
  • the following clear understanding took place.
  • ‘Sawyer,’ said the scorbutic youth, in a loud voice.
  • ‘Well, Noddy,’ replied Mr. Bob Sawyer.
  • ‘I should be very sorry, Sawyer,’ said Mr. Noddy, ‘to create any
  • unpleasantness at any friend’s table, and much less at yours, Sawyer--
  • very; but I must take this opportunity of informing Mr. Gunter that he
  • is no gentleman.’
  • ‘And I should be very sorry, Sawyer, to create any disturbance in the
  • street in which you reside,’ said Mr. Gunter, ‘but I’m afraid I shall be
  • under the necessity of alarming the neighbours by throwing the person
  • who has just spoken, out o’ window.’
  • ‘What do you mean by that, sir?’ inquired Mr. Noddy.
  • ‘What I say, Sir,’ replied Mr. Gunter.
  • ‘I should like to see you do it, Sir,’ said Mr. Noddy.
  • ‘You shall _feel _me do it in half a minute, Sir,’ replied Mr. Gunter.
  • ‘I request that you’ll favour me with your card, Sir,’ said Mr. Noddy.
  • ‘I’ll do nothing of the kind, Sir,’ replied Mr. Gunter.
  • ‘Why not, Sir?’ inquired Mr. Noddy.
  • ‘Because you’ll stick it up over your chimney-piece, and delude your
  • visitors into the false belief that a gentleman has been to see you,
  • Sir,’ replied Mr. Gunter.
  • ‘Sir, a friend of mine shall wait on you in the morning,’ said Mr.
  • Noddy.
  • ‘Sir, I’m very much obliged to you for the caution, and I’ll leave
  • particular directions with the servant to lock up the spoons,’ replied
  • Mr. Gunter.
  • At this point the remainder of the guests interposed, and remonstrated
  • with both parties on the impropriety of their conduct; on which Mr.
  • Noddy begged to state that his father was quite as respectable as Mr.
  • Gunter’s father; to which Mr. Gunter replied that his father was to the
  • full as respectable as Mr. Noddy’s father, and that his father’s son was
  • as good a man as Mr. Noddy, any day in the week. As this announcement
  • seemed the prelude to a recommencement of the dispute, there was another
  • interference on the part of the company; and a vast quantity of talking
  • and clamouring ensued, in the course of which Mr. Noddy gradually
  • allowed his feelings to overpower him, and professed that he had ever
  • entertained a devoted personal attachment towards Mr. Gunter. To this
  • Mr. Gunter replied that, upon the whole, he rather preferred Mr. Noddy
  • to his own brother; on hearing which admission, Mr. Noddy magnanimously
  • rose from his seat, and proffered his hand to Mr. Gunter. Mr. Gunter
  • grasped it with affecting fervour; and everybody said that the whole
  • dispute had been conducted in a manner which was highly honourable to
  • both parties concerned.
  • ‘Now,’ said Jack Hopkins, ‘just to set us going again, Bob, I don’t mind
  • singing a song.’ And Hopkins, incited thereto by tumultuous applause,
  • plunged himself at once into ‘The King, God bless him,’ which he sang as
  • loud as he could, to a novel air, compounded of the ‘Bay of Biscay,’ and
  • ‘A Frog he would.’ The chorus was the essence of the song; and, as each
  • gentleman sang it to the tune he knew best, the effect was very striking
  • indeed.
  • It was at the end of the chorus to the first verse, that Mr. Pickwick
  • held up his hand in a listening attitude, and said, as soon as silence
  • was restored--
  • ‘Hush! I beg your pardon. I thought I heard somebody calling from
  • upstairs.’
  • A profound silence immediately ensued; and Mr. Bob Sawyer was observed
  • to turn pale.
  • ‘I think I hear it now,’ said Mr. Pickwick. ‘Have the goodness to open
  • the door.’
  • The door was no sooner opened than all doubt on the subject was removed.
  • ‘Mr. Sawyer! Mr. Sawyer!’ screamed a voice from the two-pair landing.
  • ‘It’s my landlady,’ said Bob Sawyer, looking round him with great
  • dismay. ‘Yes, Mrs. Raddle.’
  • ‘What do you mean by this, Mr. Sawyer?’ replied the voice, with great
  • shrillness and rapidity of utterance. ‘Ain’t it enough to be swindled
  • out of one’s rent, and money lent out of pocket besides, and abused and
  • insulted by your friends that dares to call themselves men, without
  • having the house turned out of the window, and noise enough made to
  • bring the fire-engines here, at two o’clock in the morning?--Turn them
  • wretches away.’
  • ‘You ought to be ashamed of yourselves,’ said the voice of Mr. Raddle,
  • which appeared to proceed from beneath some distant bed-clothes.
  • ‘Ashamed of themselves!’ said Mrs. Raddle. ‘Why don’t you go down and
  • knock ‘em every one downstairs? You would if you was a man.’
  • I should if I was a dozen men, my dear,’ replied Mr. Raddle pacifically,
  • ‘but they have the advantage of me in numbers, my dear.’
  • ‘Ugh, you coward!’ replied Mrs. Raddle, with supreme contempt. ‘_Do_ you
  • mean to turn them wretches out, or not, Mr. Sawyer?’
  • ‘They’re going, Mrs. Raddle, they’re going,’ said the miserable Bob. ‘I
  • am afraid you’d better go,’ said Mr. Bob Sawyer to his friends. ‘I
  • thought you were making too much noise.’
  • ‘It’s a very unfortunate thing,’ said the prim man. ‘Just as we were
  • getting so comfortable too!’ The prim man was just beginning to have a
  • dawning recollection of the story he had forgotten.
  • ‘It’s hardly to be borne,’ said the prim man, looking round. ‘Hardly to
  • be borne, is it?’
  • ‘Not to be endured,’ replied Jack Hopkins; ‘let’s have the other verse,
  • Bob. Come, here goes!’
  • ‘No, no, Jack, don’t,’ interposed Bob Sawyer; ‘it’s a capital song, but
  • I am afraid we had better not have the other verse. They are very
  • violent people, the people of the house.’
  • ‘Shall I step upstairs, and pitch into the landlord?’ inquired Hopkins,
  • ‘or keep on ringing the bell, or go and groan on the staircase? You may
  • command me, Bob.’
  • ‘I am very much indebted to you for your friendship and good-nature,
  • Hopkins,’ said the wretched Mr. Bob Sawyer, ‘but I think the best plan
  • to avoid any further dispute is for us to break up at once.’
  • ‘Now, Mr. Sawyer,’ screamed the shrill voice of Mrs. Raddle, ‘are them
  • brutes going?’
  • ‘They’re only looking for their hats, Mrs. Raddle,’ said Bob; ‘they are
  • going directly.’
  • ‘Going!’ said Mrs. Raddle, thrusting her nightcap over the banisters
  • just as Mr. Pickwick, followed by Mr. Tupman, emerged from the sitting-
  • room. ‘Going! what did they ever come for?’
  • ‘My dear ma’am,’ remonstrated Mr. Pickwick, looking up.
  • ‘Get along with you, old wretch!’ replied Mrs. Raddle, hastily
  • withdrawing the nightcap. ‘Old enough to be his grandfather, you willin!
  • You’re worse than any of ‘em.’
  • Mr. Pickwick found it in vain to protest his innocence, so hurried
  • downstairs into the street, whither he was closely followed by Mr.
  • Tupman, Mr. Winkle, and Mr. Snodgrass. Mr. Ben Allen, who was dismally
  • depressed with spirits and agitation, accompanied them as far as London
  • Bridge, and in the course of the walk confided to Mr. Winkle, as an
  • especially eligible person to intrust the secret to, that he was
  • resolved to cut the throat of any gentleman, except Mr. Bob Sawyer, who
  • should aspire to the affections of his sister Arabella. Having expressed
  • his determination to perform this painful duty of a brother with proper
  • firmness, he burst into tears, knocked his hat over his eyes, and,
  • making the best of his way back, knocked double knocks at the door of
  • the Borough Market office, and took short naps on the steps alternately,
  • until daybreak, under the firm impression that he lived there, and had
  • forgotten the key.
  • The visitors having all departed, in compliance with the rather pressing
  • request of Mrs. Raddle, the luckless Mr. Bob Sawyer was left alone, to
  • meditate on the probable events of to-morrow, and the pleasures of the
  • evening.
  • CHAPTER XXXIII. MR. WELLER THE ELDER DELIVERS SOME CRITICAL SENTIMENTS
  • RESPECTING LITERARY COMPOSITION; AND, ASSISTED BY HIS SON SAMUEL, PAYS A
  • SMALL INSTALMENT OF RETALIATION TO THE ACCOUNT OF THE REVEREND GENTLEMAN
  • WITH THE RED NOSE
  • The morning of the thirteenth of February, which the readers of this
  • authentic narrative know, as well as we do, to have been the day
  • immediately preceding that which was appointed for the trial of Mrs.
  • Bardell’s action, was a busy time for Mr. Samuel Weller, who was
  • perpetually engaged in travelling from the George and Vulture to Mr.
  • Perker’s chambers and back again, from and between the hours of nine
  • o’clock in the morning and two in the afternoon, both inclusive. Not
  • that there was anything whatever to be done, for the consultation had
  • taken place, and the course of proceeding to be adopted, had been
  • finally determined on; but Mr. Pickwick being in a most extreme state of
  • excitement, persevered in constantly sending small notes to his
  • attorney, merely containing the inquiry, ‘Dear Perker. Is all going on
  • well?’ to which Mr. Perker invariably forwarded the reply, ‘Dear
  • Pickwick. As well as possible’; the fact being, as we have already
  • hinted, that there was nothing whatever to go on, either well or ill,
  • until the sitting of the court on the following morning.
  • But people who go voluntarily to law, or are taken forcibly there, for
  • the first time, may be allowed to labour under some temporary irritation
  • and anxiety; and Sam, with a due allowance for the frailties of human
  • nature, obeyed all his master’s behests with that imperturbable good-
  • humour and unruffable composure which formed one of his most striking
  • and amiable characteristics.
  • Sam had solaced himself with a most agreeable little dinner, and was
  • waiting at the bar for the glass of warm mixture in which Mr. Pickwick
  • had requested him to drown the fatigues of his morning’s walks, when a
  • young boy of about three feet high, or thereabouts, in a hairy cap and
  • fustian overalls, whose garb bespoke a laudable ambition to attain in
  • time the elevation of an hostler, entered the passage of the George and
  • Vulture, and looked first up the stairs, and then along the passage, and
  • then into the bar, as if in search of somebody to whom he bore a
  • commission; whereupon the barmaid, conceiving it not improbable that the
  • said commission might be directed to the tea or table spoons of the
  • establishment, accosted the boy with--
  • ‘Now, young man, what do you want?’
  • ‘Is there anybody here, named Sam?’ inquired the youth, in a loud voice
  • of treble quality.
  • ‘What’s the t’other name?’ said Sam Weller, looking round.
  • ‘How should I know?’ briskly replied the young gentleman below the hairy
  • cap.
  • ‘You’re a sharp boy, you are,’ said Mr. Weller; ‘only I wouldn’t show
  • that wery fine edge too much, if I was you, in case anybody took it off.
  • What do you mean by comin’ to a hot-el, and asking arter Sam, vith as
  • much politeness as a vild Indian?’
  • ‘’Cos an old gen’l’m’n told me to,’ replied the boy.
  • ‘What old gen’l’m’n?’ inquired Sam, with deep disdain.
  • ‘Him as drives a Ipswich coach, and uses our parlour,’ rejoined the boy.
  • ‘He told me yesterday mornin’ to come to the George and Wultur this
  • arternoon, and ask for Sam.’
  • ‘It’s my father, my dear,’ said Mr. Weller, turning with an explanatory
  • air to the young lady in the bar; ‘blessed if I think he hardly knows
  • wot my other name is. Well, young brockiley sprout, wot then?’
  • ‘Why then,’ said the boy, ‘you was to come to him at six o’clock to our
  • ‘ouse, ‘cos he wants to see you--Blue Boar, Leaden’all Markit. Shall I
  • say you’re comin’?’
  • ‘You may wenture on that ‘ere statement, Sir,’ replied Sam. And thus
  • empowered, the young gentleman walked away, awakening all the echoes in
  • George Yard as he did so, with several chaste and extremely correct
  • imitations of a drover’s whistle, delivered in a tone of peculiar
  • richness and volume.
  • Mr. Weller having obtained leave of absence from Mr. Pickwick, who, in
  • his then state of excitement and worry, was by no means displeased at
  • being left alone, set forth, long before the appointed hour, and having
  • plenty of time at his disposal, sauntered down as far as the Mansion
  • House, where he paused and contemplated, with a face of great calmness
  • and philosophy, the numerous cads and drivers of short stages who
  • assemble near that famous place of resort, to the great terror and
  • confusion of the old-lady population of these realms. Having loitered
  • here, for half an hour or so, Mr. Weller turned, and began wending his
  • way towards Leadenhall Market, through a variety of by-streets and
  • courts. As he was sauntering away his spare time, and stopped to look at
  • almost every object that met his gaze, it is by no means surprising that
  • Mr. Weller should have paused before a small stationer’s and print-
  • seller’s window; but without further explanation it does appear
  • surprising that his eyes should have no sooner rested on certain
  • pictures which were exposed for sale therein, than he gave a sudden
  • start, smote his right leg with great vehemence, and exclaimed, with
  • energy, ‘if it hadn’t been for this, I should ha’ forgot all about it,
  • till it was too late!’
  • The particular picture on which Sam Weller’s eyes were fixed, as he said
  • this, was a highly-coloured representation of a couple of human hearts
  • skewered together with an arrow, cooking before a cheerful fire, while a
  • male and female cannibal in modern attire, the gentleman being clad in a
  • blue coat and white trousers, and the lady in a deep red pelisse with a
  • parasol of the same, were approaching the meal with hungry eyes, up a
  • serpentine gravel path leading thereunto. A decidedly indelicate young
  • gentleman, in a pair of wings and nothing else, was depicted as
  • superintending the cooking; a representation of the spire of the church
  • in Langham Place, London, appeared in the distance; and the whole formed
  • a ‘valentine,’ of which, as a written inscription in the window
  • testified, there was a large assortment within, which the shopkeeper
  • pledged himself to dispose of, to his countrymen generally, at the
  • reduced rate of one-and-sixpence each.
  • ‘I should ha’ forgot it; I should certainly ha’ forgot it!’ said Sam; so
  • saying, he at once stepped into the stationer’s shop, and requested to
  • be served with a sheet of the best gilt-edged letter-paper, and a hard-
  • nibbed pen which could be warranted not to splutter. These articles
  • having been promptly supplied, he walked on direct towards Leadenhall
  • Market at a good round pace, very different from his recent lingering
  • one. Looking round him, he there beheld a signboard on which the
  • painter’s art had delineated something remotely resembling a cerulean
  • elephant with an aquiline nose in lieu of trunk. Rightly conjecturing
  • that this was the Blue Boar himself, he stepped into the house, and
  • inquired concerning his parent.
  • ‘He won’t be here this three-quarters of an hour or more,’ said the
  • young lady who superintended the domestic arrangements of the Blue Boar.
  • ‘Wery good, my dear,’ replied Sam. ‘Let me have nine-penn’oth o’ brandy-
  • and-water luke, and the inkstand, will you, miss?’
  • The brandy-and-water luke, and the inkstand, having been carried into
  • the little parlour, and the young lady having carefully flattened down
  • the coals to prevent their blazing, and carried away the poker to
  • preclude the possibility of the fire being stirred, without the full
  • privity and concurrence of the Blue Boar being first had and obtained,
  • Sam Weller sat himself down in a box near the stove, and pulled out the
  • sheet of gilt-edged letter-paper, and the hard-nibbed pen. Then looking
  • carefully at the pen to see that there were no hairs in it, and dusting
  • down the table, so that there might be no crumbs of bread under the
  • paper, Sam tucked up the cuffs of his coat, squared his elbows, and
  • composed himself to write.
  • To ladies and gentlemen who are not in the habit of devoting themselves
  • practically to the science of penmanship, writing a letter is no very
  • easy task; it being always considered necessary in such cases for the
  • writer to recline his head on his left arm, so as to place his eyes as
  • nearly as possible on a level with the paper, and, while glancing
  • sideways at the letters he is constructing, to form with his tongue
  • imaginary characters to correspond. These motions, although
  • unquestionably of the greatest assistance to original composition,
  • retard in some degree the progress of the writer; and Sam had
  • unconsciously been a full hour and a half writing words in small text,
  • smearing out wrong letters with his little finger, and putting in new
  • ones which required going over very often to render them visible through
  • the old blots, when he was roused by the opening of the door and the
  • entrance of his parent.
  • ‘Vell, Sammy,’ said the father.
  • ‘Vell, my Prooshan Blue,’ responded the son, laying down his pen.
  • ‘What’s the last bulletin about mother-in-law?’
  • ‘Mrs. Veller passed a very good night, but is uncommon perwerse, and
  • unpleasant this mornin’. Signed upon oath, Tony Veller, Esquire. That’s
  • the last vun as was issued, Sammy,’ replied Mr. Weller, untying his
  • shawl.
  • ‘No better yet?’ inquired Sam.
  • ‘All the symptoms aggerawated,’ replied Mr. Weller, shaking his head.
  • ‘But wot’s that, you’re a-doin’ of? Pursuit of knowledge under
  • difficulties, Sammy?’
  • ‘I’ve done now,’ said Sam, with slight embarrassment; ‘I’ve been a-
  • writin’.’
  • ‘So I see,’ replied Mr. Weller. ‘Not to any young ‘ooman, I hope,
  • Sammy?’
  • ‘Why, it’s no use a-sayin’ it ain’t,’ replied Sam; ‘it’s a walentine.’
  • ‘A what!’ exclaimed Mr. Weller, apparently horror-stricken by the word.
  • ‘A walentine,’ replied Sam.
  • ‘Samivel, Samivel,’ said Mr. Weller, in reproachful accents, ‘I didn’t
  • think you’d ha’ done it. Arter the warnin’ you’ve had o’ your father’s
  • wicious propensities; arter all I’ve said to you upon this here wery
  • subject; arter actiwally seein’ and bein’ in the company o’ your own
  • mother-in-law, vich I should ha’ thought wos a moral lesson as no man
  • could never ha’ forgotten to his dyin’ day! I didn’t think you’d ha’
  • done it, Sammy, I didn’t think you’d ha’ done it!’ These reflections
  • were too much for the good old man. He raised Sam’s tumbler to his lips
  • and drank off its contents.
  • ‘Wot’s the matter now?’ said Sam.
  • ‘Nev’r mind, Sammy,’ replied Mr. Weller, ‘it’ll be a wery agonisin’
  • trial to me at my time of life, but I’m pretty tough, that’s vun
  • consolation, as the wery old turkey remarked wen the farmer said he wos
  • afeerd he should be obliged to kill him for the London market.’
  • ‘Wot’ll be a trial?’ inquired Sam.
  • ‘To see you married, Sammy--to see you a dilluded wictim, and thinkin’
  • in your innocence that it’s all wery capital,’ replied Mr. Weller. ‘It’s
  • a dreadful trial to a father’s feelin’s, that ‘ere, Sammy--’
  • ‘Nonsense,’ said Sam. ‘I ain’t a-goin’ to get married, don’t you fret
  • yourself about that; I know you’re a judge of these things. Order in
  • your pipe and I’ll read you the letter. There!’
  • We cannot distinctly say whether it was the prospect of the pipe, or the
  • consolatory reflection that a fatal disposition to get married ran in
  • the family, and couldn’t be helped, which calmed Mr. Weller’s feelings,
  • and caused his grief to subside. We should be rather disposed to say
  • that the result was attained by combining the two sources of
  • consolation, for he repeated the second in a low tone, very frequently;
  • ringing the bell meanwhile, to order in the first. He then divested
  • himself of his upper coat; and lighting the pipe and placing himself in
  • front of the fire with his back towards it, so that he could feel its
  • full heat, and recline against the mantel-piece at the same time, turned
  • towards Sam, and, with a countenance greatly mollified by the softening
  • influence of tobacco, requested him to ‘fire away.’
  • Sam dipped his pen into the ink to be ready for any corrections, and
  • began with a very theatrical air--
  • ‘“Lovely--“’
  • ‘Stop,’ said Mr. Weller, ringing the bell. ‘A double glass o’ the
  • inwariable, my dear.’
  • ‘Very well, Sir,’ replied the girl; who with great quickness appeared,
  • vanished, returned, and disappeared.
  • ‘They seem to know your ways here,’ observed Sam.
  • ‘Yes,’ replied his father, ‘I’ve been here before, in my time. Go on,
  • Sammy.’
  • ‘“Lovely creetur,”’ repeated Sam.
  • ‘’Tain’t in poetry, is it?’ interposed his father.
  • ‘No, no,’ replied Sam.
  • ‘Wery glad to hear it,’ said Mr. Weller. ‘Poetry’s unnat’ral; no man
  • ever talked poetry ‘cept a beadle on boxin’-day, or Warren’s blackin’,
  • or Rowland’s oil, or some of them low fellows; never you let yourself
  • down to talk poetry, my boy. Begin agin, Sammy.’
  • Mr. Weller resumed his pipe with critical solemnity, and Sam once more
  • commenced, and read as follows:
  • ‘“Lovely creetur I feel myself a damned--“’
  • That ain’t proper,’ said Mr. Weller, taking his pipe from his mouth.
  • ‘No; it ain’t “damned,”’ observed Sam, holding the letter up to the
  • light, ‘it’s “shamed,” there’s a blot there--“I feel myself ashamed.”’
  • ‘Wery good,’ said Mr. Weller. ‘Go on.’
  • ‘Feel myself ashamed, and completely cir--’ I forget what this here word
  • is,’ said Sam, scratching his head with the pen, in vain attempts to
  • remember.
  • ‘Why don’t you look at it, then?’ inquired Mr. Weller.
  • ‘So I am a-lookin’ at it,’ replied Sam, ‘but there’s another blot.
  • Here’s a “c,” and a “i,” and a “d.”’
  • ‘Circumwented, p’raps,’ suggested Mr. Weller.
  • ‘No, it ain’t that,’ said Sam, ‘“circumscribed”; that’s it.’
  • ‘That ain’t as good a word as “circumwented,” Sammy,’ said Mr. Weller
  • gravely.
  • ‘Think not?’ said Sam.
  • ‘Nothin’ like it,’ replied his father.
  • ‘But don’t you think it means more?’ inquired Sam.
  • ‘Vell p’raps it’s a more tenderer word,’ said Mr. Weller, after a few
  • moments’ reflection. ‘Go on, Sammy.’
  • ‘“Feel myself ashamed and completely circumscribed in a-dressin’ of you,
  • for you are a nice gal and nothin’ but it.”’
  • ‘That’s a wery pretty sentiment,’ said the elder Mr. Weller, removing
  • his pipe to make way for the remark.
  • ‘Yes, I think it is rayther good,’ observed Sam, highly flattered.
  • ‘Wot I like in that ‘ere style of writin’,’ said the elder Mr. Weller,
  • ‘is, that there ain’t no callin’ names in it--no Wenuses, nor nothin’ o’
  • that kind. Wot’s the good o’ callin’ a young ‘ooman a Wenus or a angel,
  • Sammy?’
  • ‘Ah! what, indeed?’ replied Sam.
  • ‘You might jist as well call her a griffin, or a unicorn, or a king’s
  • arms at once, which is wery well known to be a collection o’ fabulous
  • animals,’ added Mr. Weller.
  • ‘Just as well,’ replied Sam.
  • ‘Drive on, Sammy,’ said Mr. Weller.
  • Sam complied with the request, and proceeded as follows; his father
  • continuing to smoke, with a mixed expression of wisdom and complacency,
  • which was particularly edifying.
  • ‘“Afore I see you, I thought all women was alike.”’
  • ‘So they are,’ observed the elder Mr. Weller parenthetically.
  • ‘“But now,”’ continued Sam, ‘“now I find what a reg’lar soft-headed,
  • inkred’lous turnip I must ha’ been; for there ain’t nobody like you,
  • though I like you better than nothin’ at all.” I thought it best to make
  • that rayther strong,’ said Sam, looking up.
  • Mr. Weller nodded approvingly, and Sam resumed.
  • ‘“So I take the privilidge of the day, Mary, my dear--as the gen’l’m’n
  • in difficulties did, ven he valked out of a Sunday--to tell you that the
  • first and only time I see you, your likeness was took on my hart in much
  • quicker time and brighter colours than ever a likeness was took by the
  • profeel macheen (wich p’raps you may have heerd on Mary my dear) altho
  • it _does _finish a portrait and put the frame and glass on complete,
  • with a hook at the end to hang it up by, and all in two minutes and a
  • quarter.”’
  • ‘I am afeerd that werges on the poetical, Sammy,’ said Mr. Weller
  • dubiously.
  • ‘No, it don’t,’ replied Sam, reading on very quickly, to avoid
  • contesting the point--
  • ‘“Except of me Mary my dear as your walentine and think over what I’ve
  • said.--My dear Mary I will now conclude.” That’s all,’ said Sam.
  • ‘That’s rather a Sudden pull-up, ain’t it, Sammy?’ inquired Mr. Weller.
  • ‘Not a bit on it,’ said Sam; ‘she’ll vish there wos more, and that’s the
  • great art o’ letter-writin’.’
  • ‘Well,’ said Mr. Weller, ‘there’s somethin’ in that; and I wish your
  • mother-in-law ‘ud only conduct her conwersation on the same gen-teel
  • principle. Ain’t you a-goin’ to sign it?’
  • ‘That’s the difficulty,’ said Sam; ‘I don’t know what to sign it.’
  • ‘Sign it--“Veller”,’ said the oldest surviving proprietor of that name.
  • ‘Won’t do,’ said Sam. ‘Never sign a walentine with your own name.’
  • ‘Sign it “Pickwick,” then,’ said Mr. Weller; ‘it’s a wery good name, and
  • a easy one to spell.’
  • The wery thing,’ said Sam. ‘I _could _end with a werse; what do you
  • think?’
  • ‘I don’t like it, Sam,’ rejoined Mr. Weller. ‘I never know’d a
  • respectable coachman as wrote poetry, ‘cept one, as made an affectin’
  • copy o’ werses the night afore he was hung for a highway robbery; and he
  • wos only a Cambervell man, so even that’s no rule.’
  • But Sam was not to be dissuaded from the poetical idea that had occurred
  • to him, so he signed the letter--
  • ‘Your love-sick Pickwick.’
  • And having folded it, in a very intricate manner, squeezed a downhill
  • direction in one corner: ‘To Mary, Housemaid, at Mr. Nupkins’s, Mayor’s,
  • Ipswich, Suffolk’; and put it into his pocket, wafered, and ready for
  • the general post. This important business having been transacted, Mr.
  • Weller the elder proceeded to open that, on which he had summoned his
  • son.
  • ‘The first matter relates to your governor, Sammy,’ said Mr. Weller.
  • ‘He’s a-goin’ to be tried to-morrow, ain’t he?’
  • ‘The trial’s a-comin’ on,’ replied Sam.
  • ‘Vell,’ said Mr. Weller, ‘Now I s’pose he’ll want to call some witnesses
  • to speak to his character, or p’rhaps to prove a alleybi. I’ve been a-
  • turnin’ the bis’ness over in my mind, and he may make his-self easy,
  • Sammy. I’ve got some friends as’ll do either for him, but my adwice ‘ud
  • be this here--never mind the character, and stick to the alleybi.
  • Nothing like a alleybi, Sammy, nothing.’ Mr. Weller looked very profound
  • as he delivered this legal opinion; and burying his nose in his tumbler,
  • winked over the top thereof, at his astonished son.
  • ‘Why, what do you mean?’ said Sam; ‘you don’t think he’s a-goin’ to be
  • tried at the Old Bailey, do you?’
  • ‘That ain’t no part of the present consideration, Sammy,’ replied Mr.
  • Weller. ‘Verever he’s a-goin’ to be tried, my boy, a alleybi’s the thing
  • to get him off. Ve got Tom Vildspark off that ‘ere manslaughter, with a
  • alleybi, ven all the big vigs to a man said as nothing couldn’t save
  • him. And my ‘pinion is, Sammy, that if your governor don’t prove a
  • alleybi, he’ll be what the Italians call reg’larly flummoxed, and that’s
  • all about it.’
  • As the elder Mr. Weller entertained a firm and unalterable conviction
  • that the Old Bailey was the supreme court of judicature in this country,
  • and that its rules and forms of proceeding regulated and controlled the
  • practice of all other courts of justice whatsoever, he totally
  • disregarded the assurances and arguments of his son, tending to show
  • that the alibi was inadmissible; and vehemently protested that Mr.
  • Pickwick was being ‘wictimised.’ Finding that it was of no use to
  • discuss the matter further, Sam changed the subject, and inquired what
  • the second topic was, on which his revered parent wished to consult him.
  • ‘That’s a pint o’ domestic policy, Sammy,’ said Mr. Weller. ‘This here
  • Stiggins--’
  • ‘Red-nosed man?’ inquired Sam.
  • ‘The wery same,’ replied Mr. Weller. ‘This here red-nosed man, Sammy,
  • wisits your mother-in-law vith a kindness and constancy I never see
  • equalled. He’s sitch a friend o’ the family, Sammy, that wen he’s avay
  • from us, he can’t be comfortable unless he has somethin’ to remember us
  • by.’
  • ‘And I’d give him somethin’ as ‘ud turpentine and beeswax his memory for
  • the next ten years or so, if I wos you,’ interposed Sam.
  • ‘Stop a minute,’ said Mr. Weller; ‘I wos a-going to say, he always
  • brings now, a flat bottle as holds about a pint and a half, and fills it
  • vith the pine-apple rum afore he goes avay.’
  • ‘And empties it afore he comes back, I s’pose?’ said Sam.
  • ‘Clean!’ replied Mr. Weller; ‘never leaves nothin’ in it but the cork
  • and the smell; trust him for that, Sammy. Now, these here fellows, my
  • boy, are a-goin’ to-night to get up the monthly meetin’ o’ the Brick
  • Lane Branch o’ the United Grand Junction Ebenezer Temperance
  • Association. Your mother-in-law wos a-goin’, Sammy, but she’s got the
  • rheumatics, and can’t; and I, Sammy--I’ve got the two tickets as wos
  • sent her.’ Mr. Weller communicated this secret with great glee, and
  • winked so indefatigably after doing so, that Sam began to think he must
  • have got the _Tic Doloureux_ in his right eyelid.
  • ‘Well?’ said that young gentleman.
  • ‘Well,’ continued his progenitor, looking round him very cautiously,
  • ‘you and I’ll go, punctiwal to the time. The deputy-shepherd won’t,
  • Sammy; the deputy-shepherd won’t.’ Here Mr. Weller was seized with a
  • paroxysm of chuckles, which gradually terminated in as near an approach
  • to a choke as an elderly gentleman can, with safety, sustain.
  • ‘Well, I never see sitch an old ghost in all my born days,’ exclaimed
  • Sam, rubbing the old gentleman’s back, hard enough to set him on fire
  • with the friction. ‘What are you a-laughin’ at, corpilence?’
  • ‘Hush! Sammy,’ said Mr. Weller, looking round him with increased
  • caution, and speaking in a whisper. ‘Two friends o’ mine, as works the
  • Oxford Road, and is up to all kinds o’ games, has got the deputy-
  • shepherd safe in tow, Sammy; and ven he does come to the Ebenezer
  • Junction (vich he’s sure to do: for they’ll see him to the door, and
  • shove him in, if necessary), he’ll be as far gone in rum-and-water, as
  • ever he wos at the Markis o’ Granby, Dorkin’, and that’s not sayin’ a
  • little neither.’ And with this, Mr. Weller once more laughed
  • immoderately, and once more relapsed into a state of partial
  • suffocation, in consequence.
  • Nothing could have been more in accordance with Sam Weller’s feelings
  • than the projected exposure of the real propensities and qualities of
  • the red-nosed man; and it being very near the appointed hour of meeting,
  • the father and son took their way at once to Brick Lane, Sam not
  • forgetting to drop his letter into a general post-office as they walked
  • along.
  • The monthly meetings of the Brick Lane Branch of the United Grand
  • Junction Ebenezer Temperance Association were held in a large room,
  • pleasantly and airily situated at the top of a safe and commodious
  • ladder. The president was the straight-walking Mr. Anthony Humm, a
  • converted fireman, now a schoolmaster, and occasionally an itinerant
  • preacher; and the secretary was Mr. Jonas Mudge, chandler’s shopkeeper,
  • an enthusiastic and disinterested vessel, who sold tea to the members.
  • Previous to the commencement of business, the ladies sat upon forms, and
  • drank tea, till such time as they considered it expedient to leave off;
  • and a large wooden money-box was conspicuously placed upon the green
  • baize cloth of the business-table, behind which the secretary stood, and
  • acknowledged, with a gracious smile, every addition to the rich vein of
  • copper which lay concealed within.
  • On this particular occasion the women drank tea to a most alarming
  • extent; greatly to the horror of Mr. Weller, senior, who, utterly
  • regardless of all Sam’s admonitory nudgings, stared about him in every
  • direction with the most undisguised astonishment.
  • ‘Sammy,’ whispered Mr. Weller, ‘if some o’ these here people don’t want
  • tappin’ to-morrow mornin’, I ain’t your father, and that’s wot it is.
  • Why, this here old lady next me is a-drowndin’ herself in tea.’
  • Be quiet, can’t you?’ murmured Sam.
  • ‘Sam,’ whispered Mr. Weller, a moment afterwards, in a tone of deep
  • agitation, ‘mark my vords, my boy. If that ‘ere secretary fellow keeps
  • on for only five minutes more, he’ll blow hisself up with toast and
  • water.’
  • ‘Well, let him, if he likes,’ replied Sam; ‘it ain’t no bis’ness o’
  • yourn.’
  • ‘If this here lasts much longer, Sammy,’ said Mr. Weller, in the same
  • low voice, ‘I shall feel it my duty, as a human bein’, to rise and
  • address the cheer. There’s a young ‘ooman on the next form but two, as
  • has drunk nine breakfast cups and a half; and she’s a-swellin’ wisibly
  • before my wery eyes.’
  • There is little doubt that Mr. Weller would have carried his benevolent
  • intention into immediate execution, if a great noise, occasioned by
  • putting up the cups and saucers, had not very fortunately announced that
  • the tea-drinking was over. The crockery having been removed, the table
  • with the green baize cover was carried out into the centre of the room,
  • and the business of the evening was commenced by a little emphatic man,
  • with a bald head and drab shorts, who suddenly rushed up the ladder, at
  • the imminent peril of snapping the two little legs incased in the drab
  • shorts, and said--
  • ‘Ladies and gentlemen, I move our excellent brother, Mr. Anthony Humm,
  • into the chair.’
  • The ladies waved a choice selection of pocket-handkerchiefs at this
  • proposition; and the impetuous little man literally moved Mr. Humm into
  • the chair, by taking him by the shoulders and thrusting him into a
  • mahogany-frame which had once represented that article of furniture. The
  • waving of handkerchiefs was renewed; and Mr. Humm, who was a sleek,
  • white-faced man, in a perpetual perspiration, bowed meekly, to the great
  • admiration of the females, and formally took his seat. Silence was then
  • proclaimed by the little man in the drab shorts, and Mr. Humm rose and
  • said--That, with the permission of his Brick Lane Branch brothers and
  • sisters, then and there present, the secretary would read the report of
  • the Brick Lane Branch committee; a proposition which was again received
  • with a demonstration of pocket-handkerchiefs.
  • The secretary having sneezed in a very impressive manner, and the cough
  • which always seizes an assembly, when anything particular is going to be
  • done, having been duly performed, the following document was read:
  • ‘REPORT OF THE COMMITTEE OF THE BRICK LANE BRANCH OF THE UNITED GRAND
  • JUNCTION EBENEZER TEMPERANCE ASSOCIATION
  • ‘Your committee have pursued their grateful labours during the past
  • month, and have the unspeakable pleasure of reporting the following
  • additional cases of converts to Temperance.
  • ‘H. Walker, tailor, wife, and two children. When in better
  • circumstances, owns to having been in the constant habit of drinking ale
  • and beer; says he is not certain whether he did not twice a week, for
  • twenty years, taste “dog’s nose,” which your committee find upon
  • inquiry, to be compounded of warm porter, moist sugar, gin, and nutmeg
  • (a groan, and ‘So it is!’ from an elderly female). Is now out of work
  • and penniless; thinks it must be the porter (cheers) or the loss of the
  • use of his right hand; is not certain which, but thinks it very likely
  • that, if he had drunk nothing but water all his life, his fellow-workman
  • would never have stuck a rusty needle in him, and thereby occasioned his
  • accident (tremendous cheering). Has nothing but cold water to drink, and
  • never feels thirsty (great applause).
  • ‘Betsy Martin, widow, one child, and one eye. Goes out charing and
  • washing, by the day; never had more than one eye, but knows her mother
  • drank bottled stout, and shouldn’t wonder if that caused it (immense
  • cheering). Thinks it not impossible that if she had always abstained
  • from spirits she might have had two eyes by this time (tremendous
  • applause). Used, at every place she went to, to have eighteen-pence a
  • day, a pint of porter, and a glass of spirits; but since she became a
  • member of the Brick Lane Branch, has always demanded three-and-sixpence
  • (the announcement of this most interesting fact was received with
  • deafening enthusiasm).
  • ‘Henry Beller was for many years toast-master at various corporation
  • dinners, during which time he drank a great deal of foreign wine; may
  • sometimes have carried a bottle or two home with him; is not quite
  • certain of that, but is sure if he did, that he drank the contents.
  • Feels very low and melancholy, is very feverish, and has a constant
  • thirst upon him; thinks it must be the wine he used to drink (cheers).
  • Is out of employ now; and never touches a drop of foreign wine by any
  • chance (tremendous plaudits).
  • ‘Thomas Burton is purveyor of cat’s meat to the Lord Mayor and Sheriffs,
  • and several members of the Common Council (the announcement of this
  • gentleman’s name was received with breathless interest). Has a wooden
  • leg; finds a wooden leg expensive, going over the stones; used to wear
  • second-hand wooden legs, and drink a glass of hot gin-and-water
  • regularly every night--sometimes two (deep sighs). Found the second-hand
  • wooden legs split and rot very quickly; is firmly persuaded that their
  • constitution was undermined by the gin-and-water (prolonged cheering).
  • Buys new wooden legs now, and drinks nothing but water and weak tea. The
  • new legs last twice as long as the others used to do, and he attributes
  • this solely to his temperate habits (triumphant cheers).’
  • Anthony Humm now moved that the assembly do regale itself with a song.
  • With a view to their rational and moral enjoyment, Brother Mordlin had
  • adapted the beautiful words of ‘Who hasn’t heard of a Jolly Young
  • Waterman?’ to the tune of the Old Hundredth, which he would request them
  • to join him in singing (great applause). He might take that opportunity
  • of expressing his firm persuasion that the late Mr. Dibdin, seeing the
  • errors of his former life, had written that song to show the advantages
  • of abstinence. It was a temperance song (whirlwinds of cheers). The
  • neatness of the young man’s attire, the dexterity of his feathering, the
  • enviable state of mind which enabled him in the beautiful words of the
  • poet, to
  • ‘Row along, thinking of nothing at all,’
  • all combined to prove that he must have been a water-drinker (cheers).
  • Oh, what a state of virtuous jollity! (rapturous cheering). And what was
  • the young man’s reward? Let all young men present mark this:
  • ‘The maidens all flocked to his boat so readily.’
  • (Loud cheers, in which the ladies joined.) What a bright example! The
  • sisterhood, the maidens, flocking round the young waterman, and urging
  • him along the stream of duty and of temperance. But, was it the maidens
  • of humble life only, who soothed, consoled, and supported him? No!
  • ‘He was always first oars with the fine city ladies.’
  • (Immense cheering.) The soft sex to a man--he begged pardon, to a
  • female--rallied round the young waterman, and turned with disgust from
  • the drinker of spirits (cheers). The Brick Lane Branch brothers were
  • watermen (cheers and laughter). That room was their boat; that audience
  • were the maidens; and he (Mr. Anthony Humm), however unworthily, was
  • ‘first oars’ (unbounded applause).
  • ‘Wot does he mean by the soft sex, Sammy?’ inquired Mr. Weller, in a
  • whisper.
  • ‘The womin,’ said Sam, in the same tone.
  • ‘He ain’t far out there, Sammy,’ replied Mr. Weller; ‘they _must _be a
  • soft sex--a wery soft sex, indeed--if they let themselves be gammoned by
  • such fellers as him.’
  • Any further observations from the indignant old gentleman were cut short
  • by the announcement of the song, which Mr. Anthony Humm gave out two
  • lines at a time, for the information of such of his hearers as were
  • unacquainted with the legend. While it was being sung, the little man
  • with the drab shorts disappeared; he returned immediately on its
  • conclusion, and whispered Mr. Anthony Humm, with a face of the deepest
  • importance.
  • ‘My friends,’ said Mr. Humm, holding up his hand in a deprecatory
  • manner, to bespeak the silence of such of the stout old ladies as were
  • yet a line or two behind; ‘my friends, a delegate from the Dorking
  • Branch of our society, Brother Stiggins, attends below.’
  • Out came the pocket-handkerchiefs again, in greater force than ever; for
  • Mr. Stiggins was excessively popular among the female constituency of
  • Brick Lane.
  • ‘He may approach, I think,’ said Mr. Humm, looking round him, with a fat
  • smile. ‘Brother Tadger, let him come forth and greet us.’
  • The little man in the drab shorts who answered to the name of Brother
  • Tadger, bustled down the ladder with great speed, and was immediately
  • afterwards heard tumbling up with the Reverend Mr. Stiggins.
  • ‘He’s a-comin’, Sammy,’ whispered Mr. Weller, purple in the countenance
  • with suppressed laughter.
  • ‘Don’t say nothin’ to me,’ replied Sam, ‘for I can’t bear it. He’s close
  • to the door. I hear him a-knockin’ his head again the lath and plaster
  • now.’
  • As Sam Weller spoke, the little door flew open, and Brother Tadger
  • appeared, closely followed by the Reverend Mr. Stiggins, who no sooner
  • entered, than there was a great clapping of hands, and stamping of feet,
  • and flourishing of handkerchiefs; to all of which manifestations of
  • delight, Brother Stiggins returned no other acknowledgment than staring
  • with a wild eye, and a fixed smile, at the extreme top of the wick of
  • the candle on the table, swaying his body to and fro, meanwhile, in a
  • very unsteady and uncertain manner.
  • ‘Are you unwell, Brother Stiggins?’ whispered Mr. Anthony Humm.
  • ‘I am all right, Sir,’ replied Mr. Stiggins, in a tone in which ferocity
  • was blended with an extreme thickness of utterance; ‘I am all right,
  • Sir.’
  • ‘Oh, very well,’ rejoined Mr. Anthony Humm, retreating a few paces.
  • ‘I believe no man here has ventured to say that I am not all right,
  • Sir?’ said Mr. Stiggins.
  • ‘Oh, certainly not,’ said Mr. Humm.
  • ‘I should advise him not to, Sir; I should advise him not,’ said Mr.
  • Stiggins.
  • By this time the audience were perfectly silent, and waited with some
  • anxiety for the resumption of business.
  • ‘Will you address the meeting, brother?’ said Mr. Humm, with a smile of
  • invitation.
  • ‘No, sir,’ rejoined Mr. Stiggins; ‘No, sir. I will not, sir.’
  • The meeting looked at each other with raised eyelids; and a murmur of
  • astonishment ran through the room.
  • ‘It’s my opinion, sir,’ said Mr. Stiggins, unbuttoning his coat, and
  • speaking very loudly--‘it’s my opinion, sir, that this meeting is drunk,
  • sir. Brother Tadger, sir!’ said Mr. Stiggins, suddenly increasing in
  • ferocity, and turning sharp round on the little man in the drab shorts,
  • ‘_you _are drunk, sir!’ With this, Mr. Stiggins, entertaining a
  • praiseworthy desire to promote the sobriety of the meeting, and to
  • exclude therefrom all improper characters, hit Brother Tadger on the
  • summit of the nose with such unerring aim, that the drab shorts
  • disappeared like a flash of lightning. Brother Tadger had been knocked,
  • head first, down the ladder.
  • Upon this, the women set up a loud and dismal screaming; and rushing in
  • small parties before their favourite brothers, flung their arms around
  • them to preserve them from danger. An instance of affection, which had
  • nearly proved fatal to Humm, who, being extremely popular, was all but
  • suffocated, by the crowd of female devotees that hung about his neck,
  • and heaped caresses upon him. The greater part of the lights were
  • quickly put out, and nothing but noise and confusion resounded on all
  • sides.
  • ‘Now, Sammy,’ said Mr. Weller, taking off his greatcoat with much
  • deliberation, ‘just you step out, and fetch in a watchman.’
  • ‘And wot are you a-goin’ to do, the while?’ inquired Sam.
  • ‘Never you mind me, Sammy,’ replied the old gentleman; ‘I shall ockipy
  • myself in havin’ a small settlement with that ‘ere Stiggins.’ Before Sam
  • could interfere to prevent it, his heroic parent had penetrated into a
  • remote corner of the room, and attacked the Reverend Mr. Stiggins with
  • manual dexterity.
  • ‘Come off!’ said Sam.
  • ‘Come on!’ cried Mr. Weller; and without further invitation he gave the
  • Reverend Mr. Stiggins a preliminary tap on the head, and began dancing
  • round him in a buoyant and cork-like manner, which in a gentleman at his
  • time of life was a perfect marvel to behold.
  • Finding all remonstrances unavailing, Sam pulled his hat firmly on,
  • threw his father’s coat over his arm, and taking the old man round the
  • waist, forcibly dragged him down the ladder, and into the street; never
  • releasing his hold, or permitting him to stop, until they reached the
  • corner. As they gained it, they could hear the shouts of the populace,
  • who were witnessing the removal of the Reverend Mr. Stiggins to strong
  • lodgings for the night, and could hear the noise occasioned by the
  • dispersion in various directions of the members of the Brick Lane Branch
  • of the United Grand Junction Ebenezer Temperance Association.
  • CHAPTER XXXIV. IS WHOLLY DEVOTED TO A FULL AND FAITHFUL REPORT OF THE
  • MEMORABLE TRIAL OF BARDELL AGAINST PICKWICK
  • I wonder what the foreman of the jury, whoever he’ll be, has got for
  • breakfast,’ said Mr. Snodgrass, by way of keeping up a conversation on
  • the eventful morning of the fourteenth of February.
  • ‘Ah!’ said Perker, ‘I hope he’s got a good one.’
  • Why so?’ inquired Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Highly important--very important, my dear Sir,’ replied Perker. ‘A
  • good, contented, well-breakfasted juryman is a capital thing to get hold
  • of. Discontented or hungry jurymen, my dear sir, always find for the
  • plaintiff.’
  • ‘Bless my heart,’ said Mr. Pickwick, looking very blank, ‘what do they
  • do that for?’
  • ‘Why, I don’t know,’ replied the little man coolly; ‘saves time, I
  • suppose. If it’s near dinner-time, the foreman takes out his watch when
  • the jury has retired, and says, “Dear me, gentlemen, ten minutes to
  • five, I declare! I dine at five, gentlemen.” “So do I,” says everybody
  • else, except two men who ought to have dined at three and seem more than
  • half disposed to stand out in consequence. The foreman smiles, and puts
  • up his watch:--“Well, gentlemen, what do we say, plaintiff or defendant,
  • gentlemen? I rather think, so far as I am concerned, gentlemen,--I say,
  • I rather think--but don’t let that influence you--I _rather_ think the
  • plaintiff’s the man.” Upon this, two or three other men are sure to say
  • that they think so too--as of course they do; and then they get on very
  • unanimously and comfortably. Ten minutes past nine!’ said the little
  • man, looking at his watch. ‘Time we were off, my dear sir; breach of
  • promise trial-court is generally full in such cases. You had better ring
  • for a coach, my dear sir, or we shall be rather late.’
  • Mr. Pickwick immediately rang the bell, and a coach having been
  • procured, the four Pickwickians and Mr. Perker ensconced themselves
  • therein, and drove to Guildhall; Sam Weller, Mr. Lowten, and the blue
  • bag, following in a cab.
  • ‘Lowten,’ said Perker, when they reached the outer hall of the court,
  • ‘put Mr. Pickwick’s friends in the students’ box; Mr. Pickwick himself
  • had better sit by me. This way, my dear sir, this way.’ Taking Mr.
  • Pickwick by the coat sleeve, the little man led him to the low seat just
  • beneath the desks of the King’s Counsel, which is constructed for the
  • convenience of attorneys, who from that spot can whisper into the ear of
  • the leading counsel in the case, any instructions that may be necessary
  • during the progress of the trial. The occupants of this seat are
  • invisible to the great body of spectators, inasmuch as they sit on a
  • much lower level than either the barristers or the audience, whose seats
  • are raised above the floor. Of course they have their backs to both, and
  • their faces towards the judge.
  • ‘That’s the witness-box, I suppose?’ said Mr. Pickwick, pointing to a
  • kind of pulpit, with a brass rail, on his left hand.
  • ‘That’s the witness-box, my dear sir,’ replied Perker, disinterring a
  • quantity of papers from the blue bag, which Lowten had just deposited at
  • his feet.
  • ‘And that,’ said Mr. Pickwick, pointing to a couple of enclosed seats on
  • his right, ‘that’s where the jurymen sit, is it not?’
  • ‘The identical place, my dear Sir,’ replied Perker, tapping the lid of
  • his snuff-box.
  • Mr. Pickwick stood up in a state of great agitation, and took a glance
  • at the court. There were already a pretty large sprinkling of spectators
  • in the gallery, and a numerous muster of gentlemen in wigs, in the
  • barristers’ seats, who presented, as a body, all that pleasing and
  • extensive variety of nose and whisker for which the Bar of England is so
  • justly celebrated. Such of the gentlemen as had a brief to carry,
  • carried it in as conspicuous a manner as possible, and occasionally
  • scratched their noses therewith, to impress the fact more strongly on
  • the observation of the spectators. Other gentlemen, who had no briefs to
  • show, carried under their arms goodly octavos, with a red label behind,
  • and that under-done-pie-crust-coloured cover, which is technically known
  • as ‘law calf.’ Others, who had neither briefs nor books, thrust their
  • hands into their pockets, and looked as wise as they conveniently could;
  • others, again, moved here and there with great restlessness and
  • earnestness of manner, content to awaken thereby the admiration and
  • astonishment of the uninitiated strangers. The whole, to the great
  • wonderment of Mr. Pickwick, were divided into little groups, who were
  • chatting and discussing the news of the day in the most unfeeling manner
  • possible--just as if no trial at all were coming on.
  • A bow from Mr. Phunky, as he entered, and took his seat behind the row
  • appropriated to the King’s Counsel, attracted Mr. Pickwick’s attention;
  • and he had scarcely returned it, when Mr. Serjeant Snubbin appeared,
  • followed by Mr. Mallard, who half hid the Serjeant behind a large
  • crimson bag, which he placed on his table, and, after shaking hands with
  • Perker, withdrew. Then there entered two or three more Serjeants; and
  • among them, one with a fat body and a red face, who nodded in a friendly
  • manner to Mr. Serjeant Snubbin, and said it was a fine morning.
  • ‘Who’s that red-faced man, who said it was a fine morning, and nodded to
  • our counsel?’ whispered Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Mr. Serjeant Buzfuz,’ replied Perker. ‘He’s opposed to us; he leads on
  • the other side. That gentleman behind him is Mr. Skimpin, his junior.’
  • Mr. Pickwick was on the point of inquiring, with great abhorrence of the
  • man’s cold-blooded villainy, how Mr. Serjeant Buzfuz, who was counsel
  • for the opposite party, dared to presume to tell Mr. Serjeant Snubbin,
  • who was counsel for him, that it was a fine morning, when he was
  • interrupted by a general rising of the barristers, and a loud cry of
  • ‘Silence!’ from the officers of the court. Looking round, he found that
  • this was caused by the entrance of the judge.
  • Mr. Justice Stareleigh (who sat in the absence of the Chief Justice,
  • occasioned by indisposition) was a most particularly short man, and so
  • fat, that he seemed all face and waistcoat. He rolled in, upon two
  • little turned legs, and having bobbed gravely to the Bar, who bobbed
  • gravely to him, put his little legs underneath his table, and his little
  • three-cornered hat upon it; and when Mr. Justice Stareleigh had done
  • this, all you could see of him was two queer little eyes, one broad pink
  • face, and somewhere about half of a big and very comical-looking wig.
  • The judge had no sooner taken his seat, than the officer on the floor of
  • the court called out ‘Silence!’ in a commanding tone, upon which another
  • officer in the gallery cried ‘Silence!’ in an angry manner, whereupon
  • three or four more ushers shouted ‘Silence!’ in a voice of indignant
  • remonstrance. This being done, a gentleman in black, who sat below the
  • judge, proceeded to call over the names of the jury; and after a great
  • deal of bawling, it was discovered that only ten special jurymen were
  • present. Upon this, Mr. Serjeant Buzfuz prayed a _tales_; the gentleman
  • in black then proceeded to press into the special jury, two of the
  • common jurymen; and a greengrocer and a chemist were caught directly.
  • ‘Answer to your names, gentlemen, that you may be sworn,’ said the
  • gentleman in black. ‘Richard Upwitch.’
  • ‘Here,’ said the greengrocer.
  • ‘Thomas Groffin.’
  • ‘Here,’ said the chemist.
  • ‘Take the book, gentlemen. You shall well and truly try--’
  • ‘I beg this court’s pardon,’ said the chemist, who was a tall, thin,
  • yellow-visaged man, ‘but I hope this court will excuse my attendance.’
  • ‘On what grounds, Sir?’ said Mr. Justice Stareleigh.
  • ‘I have no assistant, my Lord,’ said the chemist.
  • ‘I can’t help that, Sir,’ replied Mr. Justice Stareleigh. ‘You should
  • hire one.’
  • ‘I can’t afford it, my Lord,’ rejoined the chemist.
  • ‘Then you ought to be able to afford it, Sir,’ said the judge,
  • reddening; for Mr. Justice Stareleigh’s temper bordered on the
  • irritable, and brooked not contradiction.
  • ‘I know I _ought _to do, if I got on as well as I deserved; but I don’t,
  • my Lord,’ answered the chemist.
  • ‘Swear the gentleman,’ said the judge peremptorily.
  • The officer had got no further than the ‘You shall well and truly try,’
  • when he was again interrupted by the chemist.
  • ‘I am to be sworn, my Lord, am I?’ said the chemist.
  • ‘Certainly, sir,’ replied the testy little judge.
  • ‘Very well, my Lord,’ replied the chemist, in a resigned manner. ‘Then
  • there’ll be murder before this trial’s over; that’s all. Swear me, if
  • you please, Sir;’ and sworn the chemist was, before the judge could find
  • words to utter.
  • ‘I merely wanted to observe, my Lord,’ said the chemist, taking his seat
  • with great deliberation, ‘that I’ve left nobody but an errand-boy in my
  • shop. He is a very nice boy, my Lord, but he is not acquainted with
  • drugs; and I know that the prevailing impression on his mind is, that
  • Epsom salts means oxalic acid; and syrup of senna, laudanum. That’s all,
  • my Lord.’ With this, the tall chemist composed himself into a
  • comfortable attitude, and, assuming a pleasant expression of
  • countenance, appeared to have prepared himself for the worst.
  • Mr. Pickwick was regarding the chemist with feelings of the deepest
  • horror, when a slight sensation was perceptible in the body of the
  • court; and immediately afterwards Mrs. Bardell, supported by Mrs.
  • Cluppins, was led in, and placed, in a drooping state, at the other end
  • of the seat on which Mr. Pickwick sat. An extra-sized umbrella was then
  • handed in by Mr. Dodson, and a pair of pattens by Mr. Fogg, each of whom
  • had prepared a most sympathising and melancholy face for the occasion.
  • Mrs. Sanders then appeared, leading in Master Bardell. At sight of her
  • child, Mrs. Bardell started; suddenly recollecting herself, she kissed
  • him in a frantic manner; then relapsing into a state of hysterical
  • imbecility, the good lady requested to be informed where she was. In
  • reply to this, Mrs. Cluppins and Mrs. Sanders turned their heads away
  • and wept, while Messrs. Dodson and Fogg entreated the plaintiff to
  • compose herself. Serjeant Buzfuz rubbed his eyes very hard with a large
  • white handkerchief, and gave an appealing look towards the jury, while
  • the judge was visibly affected, and several of the beholders tried to
  • cough down their emotion.
  • ‘Very good notion that indeed,’ whispered Perker to Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Capital fellows those Dodson and Fogg; excellent ideas of effect, my
  • dear Sir, excellent.’
  • As Perker spoke, Mrs. Bardell began to recover by slow degrees, while
  • Mrs. Cluppins, after a careful survey of Master Bardell’s buttons and
  • the button-holes to which they severally belonged, placed him on the
  • floor of the court in front of his mother--a commanding position in
  • which he could not fail to awaken the full commiseration and sympathy of
  • both judge and jury. This was not done without considerable opposition,
  • and many tears, on the part of the young gentleman himself, who had
  • certain inward misgivings that the placing him within the full glare of
  • the judge’s eye was only a formal prelude to his being immediately
  • ordered away for instant execution, or for transportation beyond the
  • seas, during the whole term of his natural life, at the very least.
  • ‘Bardell and Pickwick,’ cried the gentleman in black, calling on the
  • case, which stood first on the list.
  • ‘I am for the plaintiff, my Lord,’ said Mr. Serjeant Buzfuz.
  • ‘Who is with you, Brother Buzfuz?’ said the judge. Mr. Skimpin bowed, to
  • intimate that he was.
  • ‘I appear for the defendant, my Lord,’ said Mr. Serjeant Snubbin.
  • ‘Anybody with you, Brother Snubbin?’ inquired the court.
  • ‘Mr. Phunky, my Lord,’ replied Serjeant Snubbin.
  • ‘Serjeant Buzfuz and Mr. Skimpin for the plaintiff,’ said the judge,
  • writing down the names in his note-book, and reading as he wrote; ‘for
  • the defendant, Serjeant Snubbin and Mr. Monkey.’
  • ‘Beg your Lordship’s pardon, Phunky.’
  • ‘Oh, very good,’ said the judge; ‘I never had the pleasure of hearing
  • the gentleman’s name before.’ Here Mr. Phunky bowed and smiled, and the
  • judge bowed and smiled too, and then Mr. Phunky, blushing into the very
  • whites of his eyes, tried to look as if he didn’t know that everybody
  • was gazing at him, a thing which no man ever succeeded in doing yet, or
  • in all reasonable probability, ever will.
  • ‘Go on,’ said the judge.
  • The ushers again called silence, and Mr. Skimpin proceeded to ‘open the
  • case’; and the case appeared to have very little inside it when he had
  • opened it, for he kept such particulars as he knew, completely to
  • himself, and sat down, after a lapse of three minutes, leaving the jury
  • in precisely the same advanced stage of wisdom as they were in before.
  • Serjeant Buzfuz then rose with all the majesty and dignity which the
  • grave nature of the proceedings demanded, and having whispered to
  • Dodson, and conferred briefly with Fogg, pulled his gown over his
  • shoulders, settled his wig, and addressed the jury.
  • Serjeant Buzfuz began by saying, that never, in the whole course of his
  • professional experience--never, from the very first moment of his
  • applying himself to the study and practice of the law--had he approached
  • a case with feelings of such deep emotion, or with such a heavy sense of
  • the responsibility imposed upon him--a responsibility, he would say,
  • which he could never have supported, were he not buoyed up and sustained
  • by a conviction so strong, that it amounted to positive certainty that
  • the cause of truth and justice, or, in other words, the cause of his
  • much-injured and most oppressed client, must prevail with the high-
  • minded and intelligent dozen of men whom he now saw in that box before
  • him.
  • Counsel usually begin in this way, because it puts the jury on the very
  • best terms with themselves, and makes them think what sharp fellows they
  • must be. A visible effect was produced immediately, several jurymen
  • beginning to take voluminous notes with the utmost eagerness.
  • ‘You have heard from my learned friend, gentlemen,’ continued Serjeant
  • Buzfuz, well knowing that, from the learned friend alluded to, the
  • gentlemen of the jury had heard just nothing at all--‘you have heard
  • from my learned friend, gentlemen, that this is an action for a breach
  • of promise of marriage, in which the damages are laid at £1,500. But you
  • have not heard from my learned friend, inasmuch as it did not come
  • within my learned friend’s province to tell you, what are the facts and
  • circumstances of the case. Those facts and circumstances, gentlemen, you
  • shall hear detailed by me, and proved by the unimpeachable female whom I
  • will place in that box before you.’
  • Here, Mr. Serjeant Buzfuz, with a tremendous emphasis on the word ‘box,’
  • smote his table with a mighty sound, and glanced at Dodson and Fogg, who
  • nodded admiration of the Serjeant, and indignant defiance of the
  • defendant.
  • ‘The plaintiff, gentlemen,’ continued Serjeant Buzfuz, in a soft and
  • melancholy voice, ‘the plaintiff is a widow; yes, gentlemen, a widow.
  • The late Mr. Bardell, after enjoying, for many years, the esteem and
  • confidence of his sovereign, as one of the guardians of his royal
  • revenues, glided almost imperceptibly from the world, to seek elsewhere
  • for that repose and peace which a custom-house can never afford.’
  • At this pathetic description of the decease of Mr. Bardell, who had been
  • knocked on the head with a quart-pot in a public-house cellar, the
  • learned serjeant’s voice faltered, and he proceeded, with emotion--
  • ‘Some time before his death, he had stamped his likeness upon a little
  • boy. With this little boy, the only pledge of her departed exciseman,
  • Mrs. Bardell shrank from the world, and courted the retirement and
  • tranquillity of Goswell Street; and here she placed in her front parlour
  • window a written placard, bearing this inscription--“Apartments
  • furnished for a single gentleman. Inquire within.”’ Here Serjeant Buzfuz
  • paused, while several gentlemen of the jury took a note of the document.
  • ‘There is no date to that, is there?’ inquired a juror.
  • ‘There is no date, gentlemen,’ replied Serjeant Buzfuz; ‘but I am
  • instructed to say that it was put in the plaintiff’s parlour window just
  • this time three years. I entreat the attention of the jury to the
  • wording of this document--“Apartments furnished for a single gentleman”!
  • Mrs. Bardell’s opinions of the opposite sex, gentlemen, were derived
  • from a long contemplation of the inestimable qualities of her lost
  • husband. She had no fear, she had no distrust, she had no suspicion; all
  • was confidence and reliance. “Mr. Bardell,” said the widow--“Mr. Bardell
  • was a man of honour, Mr. Bardell was a man of his word, Mr. Bardell was
  • no deceiver, Mr. Bardell was once a single gentleman himself; to single
  • gentlemen I look for protection, for assistance, for comfort, and for
  • consolation; in single gentlemen I shall perpetually see something to
  • remind me of what Mr. Bardell was when he first won my young and untried
  • affections; to a single gentleman, then, shall my lodgings be let.”
  • Actuated by this beautiful and touching impulse (among the best impulses
  • of our imperfect nature, gentlemen), the lonely and desolate widow dried
  • her tears, furnished her first floor, caught her innocent boy to her
  • maternal bosom, and put the bill up in her parlour window. Did it remain
  • there long? No. The serpent was on the watch, the train was laid, the
  • mine was preparing, the sapper and miner was at work. Before the bill
  • had been in the parlour window three days--three days, gentlemen--a
  • being, erect upon two legs, and bearing all the outward semblance of a
  • man, and not of a monster, knocked at the door of Mrs. Bardell’s house.
  • He inquired within--he took the lodgings; and on the very next day he
  • entered into possession of them. This man was Pickwick--Pickwick, the
  • defendant.’
  • Serjeant Buzfuz, who had proceeded with such volubility that his face
  • was perfectly crimson, here paused for breath. The silence awoke Mr.
  • Justice Stareleigh, who immediately wrote down something with a pen
  • without any ink in it, and looked unusually profound, to impress the
  • jury with the belief that he always thought most deeply with his eyes
  • shut. Serjeant Buzfuz proceeded--
  • ‘Of this man Pickwick I will say little; the subject presents but few
  • attractions; and I, gentlemen, am not the man, nor are you, gentlemen,
  • the men, to delight in the contemplation of revolting heartlessness, and
  • of systematic villainy.’
  • Here Mr. Pickwick, who had been writhing in silence for some time, gave
  • a violent start, as if some vague idea of assaulting Serjeant Buzfuz, in
  • the august presence of justice and law, suggested itself to his mind. An
  • admonitory gesture from Perker restrained him, and he listened to the
  • learned gentleman’s continuation with a look of indignation, which
  • contrasted forcibly with the admiring faces of Mrs. Cluppins and Mrs.
  • Sanders.
  • ‘I say systematic villainy, gentlemen,’ said Serjeant Buzfuz, looking
  • through Mr. Pickwick, and talking _at_ him; ‘and when I say systematic
  • villainy, let me tell the defendant Pickwick, if he be in court, as I am
  • informed he is, that it would have been more decent in him, more
  • becoming, in better judgment, and in better taste, if he had stopped
  • away. Let me tell him, gentlemen, that any gestures of dissent or
  • disapprobation in which he may indulge in this court will not go down
  • with you; that you will know how to value and how to appreciate them;
  • and let me tell him further, as my Lord will tell you, gentlemen, that a
  • counsel, in the discharge of his duty to his client, is neither to be
  • intimidated nor bullied, nor put down; and that any attempt to do either
  • the one or the other, or the first, or the last, will recoil on the head
  • of the attempter, be he plaintiff or be he defendant, be his name
  • Pickwick, or Noakes, or Stoakes, or Stiles, or Brown, or Thompson.’
  • This little divergence from the subject in hand, had, of course, the
  • intended effect of turning all eyes to Mr. Pickwick. Serjeant Buzfuz,
  • having partially recovered from the state of moral elevation into which
  • he had lashed himself, resumed--
  • ‘I shall show you, gentlemen, that for two years, Pickwick continued to
  • reside constantly, and without interruption or intermission, at Mrs.
  • Bardell’s house. I shall show you that Mrs. Bardell, during the whole of
  • that time, waited on him, attended to his comforts, cooked his meals,
  • looked out his linen for the washerwoman when it went abroad, darned,
  • aired, and prepared it for wear, when it came home, and, in short,
  • enjoyed his fullest trust and confidence. I shall show you that, on many
  • occasions, he gave halfpence, and on some occasions even sixpences, to
  • her little boy; and I shall prove to you, by a witness whose testimony
  • it will be impossible for my learned friend to weaken or controvert,
  • that on one occasion he patted the boy on the head, and, after inquiring
  • whether he had won any “_alley tors_” or “_commoneys_” lately (both of
  • which I understand to be a particular species of marbles much prized by
  • the youth of this town), made use of this remarkable expression, “How
  • should you like to have another father?” I shall prove to you,
  • gentlemen, that about a year ago, Pickwick suddenly began to absent
  • himself from home, during long intervals, as if with the intention of
  • gradually breaking off from my client; but I shall show you also, that
  • his resolution was not at that time sufficiently strong, or that his
  • better feelings conquered, if better feelings he has, or that the charms
  • and accomplishments of my client prevailed against his unmanly
  • intentions, by proving to you, that on one occasion, when he returned
  • from the country, he distinctly and in terms, offered her marriage:
  • previously, however, taking special care that there would be no witness
  • to their solemn contract; and I am in a situation to prove to you, on
  • the testimony of three of his own friends--most unwilling witnesses,
  • gentlemen--most unwilling witnesses--that on that morning he was
  • discovered by them holding the plaintiff in his arms, and soothing her
  • agitation by his caresses and endearments.’
  • A visible impression was produced upon the auditors by this part of the
  • learned Serjeant’s address. Drawing forth two very small scraps of
  • paper, he proceeded--
  • ‘And now, gentlemen, but one word more. Two letters have passed between
  • these parties, letters which are admitted to be in the handwriting of
  • the defendant, and which speak volumes, indeed. The letters, too,
  • bespeak the character of the man. They are not open, fervent, eloquent
  • epistles, breathing nothing but the language of affectionate attachment.
  • They are covert, sly, underhanded communications, but, fortunately, far
  • more conclusive than if couched in the most glowing language and the
  • most poetic imagery--letters that must be viewed with a cautious and
  • suspicious eye--letters that were evidently intended at the time, by
  • Pickwick, to mislead and delude any third parties into whose hands they
  • might fall. Let me read the first: “Garraways, twelve o’clock. Dear Mrs.
  • B.--Chops and tomato sauce. Yours, _Pickwick_.” Gentlemen, what does
  • this mean? Chops and tomato sauce. Yours, Pickwick! Chops! Gracious
  • heavens! and tomato sauce! Gentlemen, is the happiness of a sensitive
  • and confiding female to be trifled away, by such shallow artifices as
  • these? The next has no date whatever, which is in itself suspicious.
  • “Dear Mrs. B., I shall not be at home till to-morrow. Slow coach.” And
  • then follows this very remarkable expression. “Don’t trouble yourself
  • about the warming-pan.” The warming-pan! Why, gentlemen, who _does
  • _trouble himself about a warming-pan? When was the peace of mind of man
  • or woman broken or disturbed by a warming-pan, which is in itself a
  • harmless, a useful, and I will add, gentlemen, a comforting article of
  • domestic furniture? Why is Mrs. Bardell so earnestly entreated not to
  • agitate herself about this warming-pan, unless (as is no doubt the case)
  • it is a mere cover for hidden fire--a mere substitute for some endearing
  • word or promise, agreeably to a preconcerted system of correspondence,
  • artfully contrived by Pickwick with a view to his contemplated
  • desertion, and which I am not in a condition to explain? And what does
  • this allusion to the slow coach mean? For aught I know, it may be a
  • reference to Pickwick himself, who has most unquestionably been a
  • criminally slow coach during the whole of this transaction, but whose
  • speed will now be very unexpectedly accelerated, and whose wheels,
  • gentlemen, as he will find to his cost, will very soon be greased by
  • you!’
  • Mr. Serjeant Buzfuz paused in this place, to see whether the jury smiled
  • at his joke; but as nobody took it but the greengrocer, whose
  • sensitiveness on the subject was very probably occasioned by his having
  • subjected a chaise-cart to the process in question on that identical
  • morning, the learned Serjeant considered it advisable to undergo a
  • slight relapse into the dismals before he concluded.
  • ‘But enough of this, gentlemen,’ said Mr. Serjeant Buzfuz, ‘it is
  • difficult to smile with an aching heart; it is ill jesting when our
  • deepest sympathies are awakened. My client’s hopes and prospects are
  • ruined, and it is no figure of speech to say that her occupation is gone
  • indeed. The bill is down--but there is no tenant. Eligible single
  • gentlemen pass and repass--but there is no invitation for to inquire
  • within or without. All is gloom and silence in the house; even the voice
  • of the child is hushed; his infant sports are disregarded when his
  • mother weeps; his “alley tors” and his “commoneys” are alike neglected;
  • he forgets the long familiar cry of “knuckle down,” and at tip-cheese,
  • or odd and even, his hand is out. But Pickwick, gentlemen, Pickwick, the
  • ruthless destroyer of this domestic oasis in the desert of Goswell
  • Street--Pickwick who has choked up the well, and thrown ashes on the
  • sward--Pickwick, who comes before you to-day with his heartless tomato
  • sauce and warming-pans--Pickwick still rears his head with unblushing
  • effrontery, and gazes without a sigh on the ruin he has made. Damages,
  • gentlemen--heavy damages is the only punishment with which you can visit
  • him; the only recompense you can award to my client. And for those
  • damages she now appeals to an enlightened, a high-minded, a right-
  • feeling, a conscientious, a dispassionate, a sympathising, a
  • contemplative jury of her civilised countrymen.’ With this beautiful
  • peroration, Mr. Serjeant Buzfuz sat down, and Mr. Justice Stareleigh
  • woke up.
  • ‘Call Elizabeth Cluppins,’ said Serjeant Buzfuz, rising a minute
  • afterwards, with renewed vigour.
  • The nearest usher called for Elizabeth Tuppins; another one, at a little
  • distance off, demanded Elizabeth Jupkins; and a third rushed in a
  • breathless state into King Street, and screamed for Elizabeth Muffins
  • till he was hoarse.
  • Meanwhile Mrs. Cluppins, with the combined assistance of Mrs. Bardell,
  • Mrs. Sanders, Mr. Dodson, and Mr. Fogg, was hoisted into the witness-
  • box; and when she was safely perched on the top step, Mrs. Bardell stood
  • on the bottom one, with the pocket-handkerchief and pattens in one hand,
  • and a glass bottle that might hold about a quarter of a pint of
  • smelling-salts in the other, ready for any emergency. Mrs. Sanders,
  • whose eyes were intently fixed on the judge’s face, planted herself
  • close by, with the large umbrella, keeping her right thumb pressed on
  • the spring with an earnest countenance, as if she were fully prepared to
  • put it up at a moment’s notice.
  • ‘Mrs. Cluppins,’ said Serjeant Buzfuz, ‘pray compose yourself, ma’am.’
  • Of course, directly Mrs. Cluppins was desired to compose herself, she
  • sobbed with increased vehemence, and gave divers alarming manifestations
  • of an approaching fainting fit, or, as she afterwards said, of her
  • feelings being too many for her.
  • ‘Do you recollect, Mrs. Cluppins,’ said Serjeant Buzfuz, after a few
  • unimportant questions--‘do you recollect being in Mrs. Bardell’s back
  • one pair of stairs, on one particular morning in July last, when she was
  • dusting Pickwick’s apartment?’
  • ‘Yes, my Lord and jury, I do,’ replied Mrs. Cluppins.
  • ‘Mr. Pickwick’s sitting-room was the first-floor front, I believe?’
  • ‘Yes, it were, Sir,’ replied Mrs. Cluppins.
  • ‘What were you doing in the back room, ma’am?’ inquired the little
  • judge.
  • ‘My Lord and jury,’ said Mrs. Cluppins, with interesting agitation, ‘I
  • will not deceive you.’
  • ‘You had better not, ma’am,’ said the little judge.
  • ‘I was there,’ resumed Mrs. Cluppins, ‘unbeknown to Mrs. Bardell; I had
  • been out with a little basket, gentlemen, to buy three pound of red
  • kidney pertaties, which was three pound tuppence ha’penny, when I see
  • Mrs. Bardell’s street door on the jar.’
  • ‘On the what?’ exclaimed the little judge.
  • ‘Partly open, my Lord,’ said Serjeant Snubbin.
  • ‘She said on the jar,’ said the little judge, with a cunning look.
  • ‘It’s all the same, my Lord,’ said Serjeant Snubbin. The little judge
  • looked doubtful, and said he’d make a note of it. Mrs. Cluppins then
  • resumed--
  • ‘I walked in, gentlemen, just to say good-mornin’, and went, in a
  • permiscuous manner, upstairs, and into the back room. Gentlemen, there
  • was the sound of voices in the front room, and--’
  • ‘And you listened, I believe, Mrs. Cluppins?’ said Serjeant Buzfuz.
  • ‘Beggin’ your pardon, Sir,’ replied Mrs. Cluppins, in a majestic manner,
  • ‘I would scorn the haction. The voices was very loud, Sir, and forced
  • themselves upon my ear.’
  • ‘Well, Mrs. Cluppins, you were not listening, but you heard the voices.
  • Was one of those voices Pickwick’s?’
  • ‘Yes, it were, Sir.’ And Mrs. Cluppins, after distinctly stating that
  • Mr. Pickwick addressed himself to Mrs. Bardell, repeated by slow
  • degrees, and by dint of many questions, the conversation with which our
  • readers are already acquainted.
  • The jury looked suspicious, and Mr. Serjeant Buzfuz smiled as he sat
  • down. They looked positively awful when Serjeant Snubbin intimated that
  • he should not cross-examine the witness, for Mr. Pickwick wished it to
  • be distinctly stated that it was due to her to say, that her account was
  • in substance correct.
  • Mrs. Cluppins having once broken the ice, thought it a favourable
  • opportunity for entering into a short dissertation on her own domestic
  • affairs; so she straightway proceeded to inform the court that she was
  • the mother of eight children at that present speaking, and that she
  • entertained confident expectations of presenting Mr. Cluppins with a
  • ninth, somewhere about that day six months. At this interesting point,
  • the little judge interposed most irascibly; and the effect of the
  • interposition was, that both the worthy lady and Mrs. Sanders were
  • politely taken out of court, under the escort of Mr. Jackson, without
  • further parley.
  • ‘Nathaniel Winkle!’ said Mr. Skimpin.
  • ‘Here!’ replied a feeble voice. Mr. Winkle entered the witness-box, and
  • having been duly sworn, bowed to the judge with considerable deference.
  • ‘Don’t look at me, Sir,’ said the judge sharply, in acknowledgment of
  • the salute; ‘look at the jury.’
  • Mr. Winkle obeyed the mandate, and looked at the place where he thought
  • it most probable the jury might be; for seeing anything in his then
  • state of intellectual complication was wholly out of the question.
  • Mr. Winkle was then examined by Mr. Skimpin, who, being a promising
  • young man of two or three-and-forty, was of course anxious to confuse a
  • witness who was notoriously predisposed in favour of the other side, as
  • much as he could.
  • ‘Now, Sir,’ said Mr. Skimpin, ‘have the goodness to let his Lordship
  • know what your name is, will you?’ and Mr. Skimpin inclined his head on
  • one side to listen with great sharpness to the answer, and glanced at
  • the jury meanwhile, as if to imply that he rather expected Mr. Winkle’s
  • natural taste for perjury would induce him to give some name which did
  • not belong to him.
  • ‘Winkle,’ replied the witness.
  • ‘What’s your Christian name, Sir?’ angrily inquired the little judge.
  • ‘Nathaniel, Sir.’
  • ‘Daniel--any other name?’
  • ‘Nathaniel, sir--my Lord, I mean.’
  • ‘Nathaniel Daniel, or Daniel Nathaniel?’
  • ‘No, my Lord, only Nathaniel--not Daniel at all.’
  • ‘What did you tell me it was Daniel for, then, sir?’ inquired the judge.
  • ‘I didn’t, my Lord,’ replied Mr. Winkle.
  • ‘You did, Sir,’ replied the judge, with a severe frown. ‘How could I
  • have got Daniel on my notes, unless you told me so, Sir?’
  • This argument was, of course, unanswerable.
  • ‘Mr. Winkle has rather a short memory, my Lord,’ interposed Mr. Skimpin,
  • with another glance at the jury. ‘We shall find means to refresh it
  • before we have quite done with him, I dare say.’
  • ‘You had better be careful, Sir,’ said the little judge, with a sinister
  • look at the witness.
  • Poor Mr. Winkle bowed, and endeavoured to feign an easiness of manner,
  • which, in his then state of confusion, gave him rather the air of a
  • disconcerted pickpocket.
  • ‘Now, Mr. Winkle,’ said Mr. Skimpin, ‘attend to me, if you please, Sir;
  • and let me recommend you, for your own sake, to bear in mind his
  • Lordship’s injunctions to be careful. I believe you are a particular
  • friend of Mr. Pickwick, the defendant, are you not?’
  • ‘I have known Mr. Pickwick now, as well as I recollect at this moment,
  • nearly--’
  • ‘Pray, Mr. Winkle, do not evade the question. Are you, or are you not, a
  • particular friend of the defendant’s?’
  • ‘I was just about to say, that--’
  • ‘Will you, or will you not, answer my question, Sir?’
  • If you don’t answer the question, you’ll be committed, Sir,’ interposed
  • the little judge, looking over his note-book.
  • ‘Come, Sir,’ said Mr. Skimpin, ‘yes or no, if you please.’
  • ‘Yes, I am,’ replied Mr. Winkle.
  • ‘Yes, you are. And why couldn’t you say that at once, Sir? Perhaps you
  • know the plaintiff too? Eh, Mr. Winkle?’
  • ‘I don’t know her; I’ve seen her.’
  • ‘Oh, you don’t know her, but you’ve seen her? Now, have the goodness to
  • tell the gentlemen of the jury what you mean by that, Mr. Winkle.’
  • ‘I mean that I am not intimate with her, but I have seen her when I went
  • to call on Mr. Pickwick, in Goswell Street.’
  • ‘How often have you seen her, Sir?’
  • ‘How often?’
  • ‘Yes, Mr. Winkle, how often? I’ll repeat the question for you a dozen
  • times, if you require it, Sir.’ And the learned gentleman, with a firm
  • and steady frown, placed his hands on his hips, and smiled suspiciously
  • to the jury.
  • On this question there arose the edifying brow-beating, customary on
  • such points. First of all, Mr. Winkle said it was quite impossible for
  • him to say how many times he had seen Mrs. Bardell. Then he was asked if
  • he had seen her twenty times, to which he replied, ‘Certainly--more than
  • that.’ Then he was asked whether he hadn’t seen her a hundred times--
  • whether he couldn’t swear that he had seen her more than fifty times--
  • whether he didn’t know that he had seen her at least seventy-five times,
  • and so forth; the satisfactory conclusion which was arrived at, at last,
  • being, that he had better take care of himself, and mind what he was
  • about. The witness having been by these means reduced to the requisite
  • ebb of nervous perplexity, the examination was continued as follows--
  • ‘Pray, Mr. Winkle, do you remember calling on the defendant Pickwick at
  • these apartments in the plaintiff’s house in Goswell Street, on one
  • particular morning, in the month of July last?’
  • ‘Yes, I do.’
  • ‘Were you accompanied on that occasion by a friend of the name of
  • Tupman, and another by the name of Snodgrass?’
  • ‘Yes, I was.’
  • ‘Are they here?’
  • Yes, they are,’ replied Mr. Winkle, looking very earnestly towards the
  • spot where his friends were stationed.
  • ‘Pray attend to me, Mr. Winkle, and never mind your friends,’ said Mr.
  • Skimpin, with another expressive look at the jury. ‘They must tell their
  • stories without any previous consultation with you, if none has yet
  • taken place (another look at the jury). Now, Sir, tell the gentlemen of
  • the jury what you saw on entering the defendant’s room, on this
  • particular morning. Come; out with it, Sir; we must have it, sooner or
  • later.’
  • ‘The defendant, Mr. Pickwick, was holding the plaintiff in his arms,
  • with his hands clasping her waist,’ replied Mr. Winkle with natural
  • hesitation, ‘and the plaintiff appeared to have fainted away.’
  • ‘Did you hear the defendant say anything?’
  • ‘I heard him call Mrs. Bardell a good creature, and I heard him ask her
  • to compose herself, for what a situation it was, if anybody should come,
  • or words to that effect.’
  • ‘Now, Mr. Winkle, I have only one more question to ask you, and I beg
  • you to bear in mind his Lordship’s caution. Will you undertake to swear
  • that Pickwick, the defendant, did not say on the occasion in question--
  • “My dear Mrs. Bardell, you’re a good creature; compose yourself to this
  • situation, for to this situation you must come,” or words to that
  • effect?’
  • ‘I--I didn’t understand him so, certainly,’ said Mr. Winkle, astounded
  • on this ingenious dove-tailing of the few words he had heard. ‘I was on
  • the staircase, and couldn’t hear distinctly; the impression on my mind
  • is--’
  • ‘The gentlemen of the jury want none of the impressions on your mind,
  • Mr. Winkle, which I fear would be of little service to honest,
  • straightforward men,’ interposed Mr. Skimpin. ‘You were on the
  • staircase, and didn’t distinctly hear; but you will not swear that
  • Pickwick did not make use of the expressions I have quoted? Do I
  • understand that?’
  • ‘No, I will not,’ replied Mr. Winkle; and down sat Mr. Skimpin with a
  • triumphant countenance.
  • Mr. Pickwick’s case had not gone off in so particularly happy a manner,
  • up to this point, that it could very well afford to have any additional
  • suspicion cast upon it. But as it could afford to be placed in a rather
  • better light, if possible, Mr. Phunky rose for the purpose of getting
  • something important out of Mr. Winkle in cross-examination. Whether he
  • did get anything important out of him, will immediately appear.
  • ‘I believe, Mr. Winkle,’ said Mr. Phunky, ‘that Mr. Pickwick is not a
  • young man?’
  • ‘Oh, no,’ replied Mr. Winkle; ‘old enough to be my father.’
  • ‘You have told my learned friend that you have known Mr. Pickwick a long
  • time. Had you ever any reason to suppose or believe that he was about to
  • be married?’
  • ‘Oh, no; certainly not;’ replied Mr. Winkle with so much eagerness, that
  • Mr. Phunky ought to have got him out of the box with all possible
  • dispatch. Lawyers hold that there are two kinds of particularly bad
  • witnesses--a reluctant witness, and a too-willing witness; it was Mr.
  • Winkle’s fate to figure in both characters.
  • ‘I will even go further than this, Mr. Winkle,’ continued Mr. Phunky, in
  • a most smooth and complacent manner. ‘Did you ever see anything in Mr.
  • Pickwick’s manner and conduct towards the opposite sex, to induce you to
  • believe that he ever contemplated matrimony of late years, in any case?’
  • ‘Oh, no; certainly not,’ replied Mr. Winkle.
  • ‘Has his behaviour, when females have been in the case, always been that
  • of a man, who, having attained a pretty advanced period of life, content
  • with his own occupations and amusements, treats them only as a father
  • might his daughters?’
  • ‘Not the least doubt of it,’ replied Mr. Winkle, in the fulness of his
  • heart. ‘That is--yes--oh, yes--certainly.’
  • ‘You have never known anything in his behaviour towards Mrs. Bardell, or
  • any other female, in the least degree suspicious?’ said Mr. Phunky,
  • preparing to sit down; for Serjeant Snubbin was winking at him.
  • ‘N-n-no,’ replied Mr. Winkle, ‘except on one trifling occasion, which, I
  • have no doubt, might be easily explained.’
  • Now, if the unfortunate Mr. Phunky had sat down when Serjeant Snubbin
  • had winked at him, or if Serjeant Buzfuz had stopped this irregular
  • cross-examination at the outset (which he knew better than to do;
  • observing Mr. Winkle’s anxiety, and well knowing it would, in all
  • probability, lead to something serviceable to him), this unfortunate
  • admission would not have been elicited. The moment the words fell from
  • Mr. Winkle’s lips, Mr. Phunky sat down, and Serjeant Snubbin rather
  • hastily told him he might leave the box, which Mr. Winkle prepared to do
  • with great readiness, when Serjeant Buzfuz stopped him.
  • ‘Stay, Mr. Winkle, stay!’ said Serjeant Buzfuz, ‘will your Lordship have
  • the goodness to ask him, what this one instance of suspicious behaviour
  • towards females on the part of this gentleman, who is old enough to be
  • his father, was?’
  • ‘You hear what the learned counsel says, Sir,’ observed the judge,
  • turning to the miserable and agonised Mr. Winkle. ‘Describe the occasion
  • to which you refer.’
  • ‘My Lord,’ said Mr. Winkle, trembling with anxiety, ‘I--I’d rather not.’
  • ‘Perhaps so,’ said the little judge; ‘but you must.’
  • Amid the profound silence of the whole court, Mr. Winkle faltered out,
  • that the trifling circumstance of suspicion was Mr. Pickwick’s being
  • found in a lady’s sleeping-apartment at midnight; which had terminated,
  • he believed, in the breaking off of the projected marriage of the lady
  • in question, and had led, he knew, to the whole party being forcibly
  • carried before George Nupkins, Esq., magistrate and justice of the
  • peace, for the borough of Ipswich!
  • ‘You may leave the box, Sir,’ said Serjeant Snubbin. Mr. Winkle did
  • leave the box, and rushed with delirious haste to the George and
  • Vulture, where he was discovered some hours after, by the waiter,
  • groaning in a hollow and dismal manner, with his head buried beneath the
  • sofa cushions.
  • Tracy Tupman, and Augustus Snodgrass, were severally called into the
  • box; both corroborated the testimony of their unhappy friend; and each
  • was driven to the verge of desperation by excessive badgering.
  • Susannah Sanders was then called, and examined by Serjeant Buzfuz, and
  • cross-examined by Serjeant Snubbin. Had always said and believed that
  • Pickwick would marry Mrs. Bardell; knew that Mrs. Bardell’s being
  • engaged to Pickwick was the current topic of conversation in the
  • neighbourhood, after the fainting in July; had been told it herself by
  • Mrs. Mudberry which kept a mangle, and Mrs. Bunkin which clear-starched,
  • but did not see either Mrs. Mudberry or Mrs. Bunkin in court. Had heard
  • Pickwick ask the little boy how he should like to have another father.
  • Did not know that Mrs. Bardell was at that time keeping company with the
  • baker, but did know that the baker was then a single man and is now
  • married. Couldn’t swear that Mrs. Bardell was not very fond of the
  • baker, but should think that the baker was not very fond of Mrs.
  • Bardell, or he wouldn’t have married somebody else. Thought Mrs. Bardell
  • fainted away on the morning in July, because Pickwick asked her to name
  • the day: knew that she (witness) fainted away stone dead when Mr.
  • Sanders asked her to name the day, and believed that everybody as called
  • herself a lady would do the same, under similar circumstances. Heard
  • Pickwick ask the boy the question about the marbles, but upon her oath
  • did not know the difference between an ‘alley tor’ and a ‘commoney.’
  • By the _court_.--During the period of her keeping company with Mr.
  • Sanders, had received love letters, like other ladies. In the course of
  • their correspondence Mr. Sanders had often called her a ‘duck,’ but
  • never ‘chops,’ nor yet ‘tomato sauce.’ He was particularly fond of
  • ducks. Perhaps if he had been as fond of chops and tomato sauce, he
  • might have called her that, as a term of affection.
  • Serjeant Buzfuz now rose with more importance than he had yet exhibited,
  • if that were possible, and vociferated; ‘Call Samuel Weller.’
  • It was quite unnecessary to call Samuel Weller; for Samuel Weller
  • stepped briskly into the box the instant his name was pronounced; and
  • placing his hat on the floor, and his arms on the rail, took a bird’s-
  • eye view of the Bar, and a comprehensive survey of the Bench, with a
  • remarkably cheerful and lively aspect.
  • ‘What’s your name, sir?’ inquired the judge.
  • ‘Sam Weller, my Lord,’ replied that gentleman.
  • ‘Do you spell it with a “V” or a “W”?’ inquired the judge.
  • ‘That depends upon the taste and fancy of the speller, my Lord,’ replied
  • Sam; ‘I never had occasion to spell it more than once or twice in my
  • life, but I spells it with a “V.”’
  • Here a voice in the gallery exclaimed aloud, ‘Quite right too, Samivel,
  • quite right. Put it down a “we,” my Lord, put it down a “we.”’
  • Who is that, who dares address the court?’ said the little judge,
  • looking up. ‘Usher.’
  • ‘Yes, my Lord.’
  • ‘Bring that person here instantly.’
  • ‘Yes, my Lord.’
  • But as the usher didn’t find the person, he didn’t bring him; and, after
  • a great commotion, all the people who had got up to look for the
  • culprit, sat down again. The little judge turned to the witness as soon
  • as his indignation would allow him to speak, and said--
  • ‘Do you know who that was, sir?’
  • ‘I rayther suspect it was my father, my lord,’ replied Sam.
  • ‘Do you see him here now?’ said the judge.
  • ‘No, I don’t, my Lord,’ replied Sam, staring right up into the lantern
  • at the roof of the court.
  • ‘If you could have pointed him out, I would have committed him
  • instantly,’ said the judge. Sam bowed his acknowledgments and turned,
  • with unimpaired cheerfulness of countenance, towards Serjeant Buzfuz.
  • ‘Now, Mr. Weller,’ said Serjeant Buzfuz.
  • ‘Now, sir,’ replied Sam.
  • ‘I believe you are in the service of Mr. Pickwick, the defendant in this
  • case? Speak up, if you please, Mr. Weller.’
  • ‘I mean to speak up, Sir,’ replied Sam; ‘I am in the service o’ that
  • ‘ere gen’l’man, and a wery good service it is.’
  • ‘Little to do, and plenty to get, I suppose?’ said Serjeant Buzfuz, with
  • jocularity.
  • ‘Oh, quite enough to get, Sir, as the soldier said ven they ordered him
  • three hundred and fifty lashes,’ replied Sam.
  • ‘You must not tell us what the soldier, or any other man, said, Sir,’
  • interposed the judge; ‘it’s not evidence.’
  • ‘Wery good, my Lord,’ replied Sam.
  • ‘Do you recollect anything particular happening on the morning when you
  • were first engaged by the defendant; eh, Mr. Weller?’ said Serjeant
  • Buzfuz.
  • ‘Yes, I do, sir,’ replied Sam.
  • ‘Have the goodness to tell the jury what it was.’
  • ‘I had a reg’lar new fit out o’ clothes that mornin’, gen’l’men of the
  • jury,’ said Sam, ‘and that was a wery partickler and uncommon
  • circumstance vith me in those days.’
  • Hereupon there was a general laugh; and the little judge, looking with
  • an angry countenance over his desk, said, ‘You had better be careful,
  • Sir.’
  • ‘So Mr. Pickwick said at the time, my Lord,’ replied Sam; ‘and I was
  • wery careful o’ that ‘ere suit o’ clothes; wery careful indeed, my
  • Lord.’
  • The judge looked sternly at Sam for full two minutes, but Sam’s features
  • were so perfectly calm and serene that the judge said nothing, and
  • motioned Serjeant Buzfuz to proceed.
  • ‘Do you mean to tell me, Mr. Weller,’ said Serjeant Buzfuz, folding his
  • arms emphatically, and turning half-round to the jury, as if in mute
  • assurance that he would bother the witness yet--‘do you mean to tell me,
  • Mr. Weller, that you saw nothing of this fainting on the part of the
  • plaintiff in the arms of the defendant, which you have heard described
  • by the witnesses?’
  • Certainly not,’ replied Sam; ‘I was in the passage till they called me
  • up, and then the old lady was not there.’
  • ‘Now, attend, Mr. Weller,’ said Serjeant Buzfuz, dipping a large pen
  • into the inkstand before him, for the purpose of frightening Sam with a
  • show of taking down his answer. ‘You were in the passage, and yet saw
  • nothing of what was going forward. Have you a pair of eyes, Mr. Weller?’
  • ‘Yes, I have a pair of eyes,’ replied Sam, ‘and that’s just it. If they
  • wos a pair o’ patent double million magnifyin’ gas microscopes of hextra
  • power, p’raps I might be able to see through a flight o’ stairs and a
  • deal door; but bein’ only eyes, you see, my wision ‘s limited.’
  • At this answer, which was delivered without the slightest appearance of
  • irritation, and with the most complete simplicity and equanimity of
  • manner, the spectators tittered, the little judge smiled, and Serjeant
  • Buzfuz looked particularly foolish. After a short consultation with
  • Dodson & Fogg, the learned Serjeant again turned towards Sam, and said,
  • with a painful effort to conceal his vexation, ‘Now, Mr. Weller, I’ll
  • ask you a question on another point, if you please.’
  • ‘If you please, Sir,’ rejoined Sam, with the utmost good-humour.
  • ‘Do you remember going up to Mrs. Bardell’s house, one night in November
  • last?’
  • Oh, yes, wery well.’
  • ‘Oh, you do remember that, Mr. Weller,’ said Serjeant Buzfuz, recovering
  • his spirits; ‘I thought we should get at something at last.’
  • ‘I rayther thought that, too, sir,’ replied Sam; and at this the
  • spectators tittered again.
  • ‘Well; I suppose you went up to have a little talk about this trial--eh,
  • Mr. Weller?’ said Serjeant Buzfuz, looking knowingly at the jury.
  • ‘I went up to pay the rent; but we did get a-talkin’ about the trial,’
  • replied Sam.
  • ‘Oh, you did get a-talking about the trial,’ said Serjeant Buzfuz,
  • brightening up with the anticipation of some important discovery. ‘Now,
  • what passed about the trial; will you have the goodness to tell us, Mr.
  • Weller’?’
  • ‘Vith all the pleasure in life, sir,’ replied Sam. ‘Arter a few
  • unimportant obserwations from the two wirtuous females as has been
  • examined here to-day, the ladies gets into a very great state o’
  • admiration at the honourable conduct of Mr. Dodson and Fogg--them two
  • gen’l’men as is settin’ near you now.’ This, of course, drew general
  • attention to Dodson & Fogg, who looked as virtuous as possible.
  • ‘The attorneys for the plaintiff,’ said Mr. Serjeant Buzfuz. ‘Well! They
  • spoke in high praise of the honourable conduct of Messrs. Dodson and
  • Fogg, the attorneys for the plaintiff, did they?’
  • ‘Yes,’ said Sam, ‘they said what a wery gen’rous thing it was o’ them to
  • have taken up the case on spec, and to charge nothing at all for costs,
  • unless they got ‘em out of Mr. Pickwick.’
  • At this very unexpected reply, the spectators tittered again, and Dodson
  • & Fogg, turning very red, leaned over to Serjeant Buzfuz, and in a
  • hurried manner whispered something in his ear.
  • ‘You are quite right,’ said Serjeant Buzfuz aloud, with affected
  • composure. ‘It’s perfectly useless, my Lord, attempting to get at any
  • evidence through the impenetrable stupidity of this witness. I will not
  • trouble the court by asking him any more questions. Stand down, sir.’
  • ‘Would any other gen’l’man like to ask me anythin’?’ inquired Sam,
  • taking up his hat, and looking round most deliberately.
  • ‘Not I, Mr. Weller, thank you,’ said Serjeant Snubbin, laughing.
  • ‘You may go down, sir,’ said Serjeant Buzfuz, waving his hand
  • impatiently. Sam went down accordingly, after doing Messrs. Dodson &
  • Fogg’s case as much harm as he conveniently could, and saying just as
  • little respecting Mr. Pickwick as might be, which was precisely the
  • object he had had in view all along.
  • ‘I have no objection to admit, my Lord,’ said Serjeant Snubbin, ‘if it
  • will save the examination of another witness, that Mr. Pickwick has
  • retired from business, and is a gentleman of considerable independent
  • property.’
  • ‘Very well,’ said Serjeant Buzfuz, putting in the two letters to be
  • read, ‘then that’s my case, my Lord.’
  • Serjeant Snubbin then addressed the jury on behalf of the defendant; and
  • a very long and a very emphatic address he delivered, in which he
  • bestowed the highest possible eulogiums on the conduct and character of
  • Mr. Pickwick; but inasmuch as our readers are far better able to form a
  • correct estimate of that gentleman’s merits and deserts, than Serjeant
  • Snubbin could possibly be, we do not feel called upon to enter at any
  • length into the learned gentleman’s observations. He attempted to show
  • that the letters which had been exhibited, merely related to Mr.
  • Pickwick’s dinner, or to the preparations for receiving him in his
  • apartments on his return from some country excursion. It is sufficient
  • to add in general terms, that he did the best he could for Mr. Pickwick;
  • and the best, as everybody knows, on the infallible authority of the old
  • adage, could do no more.
  • Mr. Justice Stareleigh summed up, in the old-established and most
  • approved form. He read as much of his notes to the jury as he could
  • decipher on so short a notice, and made running-comments on the evidence
  • as he went along. If Mrs. Bardell were right, it was perfectly clear
  • that Mr. Pickwick was wrong, and if they thought the evidence of Mrs.
  • Cluppins worthy of credence they would believe it, and, if they didn’t,
  • why, they wouldn’t. If they were satisfied that a breach of promise of
  • marriage had been committed they would find for the plaintiff with such
  • damages as they thought proper; and if, on the other hand, it appeared
  • to them that no promise of marriage had ever been given, they would find
  • for the defendant with no damages at all. The jury then retired to their
  • private room to talk the matter over, and the judge retired to _his
  • _private room, to refresh himself with a mutton chop and a glass of
  • sherry.
  • An anxious quarter of a hour elapsed; the jury came back; the judge was
  • fetched in. Mr. Pickwick put on his spectacles, and gazed at the foreman
  • with an agitated countenance and a quickly-beating heart.
  • ‘Gentlemen,’ said the individual in black, ‘are you all agreed upon your
  • verdict?’
  • ‘We are,’ replied the foreman.
  • ‘Do you find for the plaintiff, gentlemen, or for the defendant?’
  • For the plaintiff.’
  • ‘With what damages, gentlemen?’
  • ‘Seven hundred and fifty pounds.’
  • Mr. Pickwick took off his spectacles, carefully wiped the glasses,
  • folded them into their case, and put them in his pocket; then, having
  • drawn on his gloves with great nicety, and stared at the foreman all the
  • while, he mechanically followed Mr. Perker and the blue bag out of
  • court.
  • They stopped in a side room while Perker paid the court fees; and here,
  • Mr. Pickwick was joined by his friends. Here, too, he encountered
  • Messrs. Dodson & Fogg, rubbing their hands with every token of outward
  • satisfaction.
  • ‘Well, gentlemen,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Well, Sir,’ said Dodson, for self and partner.
  • ‘You imagine you’ll get your costs, don’t you, gentlemen?’ said Mr.
  • Pickwick.
  • Fogg said they thought it rather probable. Dodson smiled, and said
  • they’d try.
  • ‘You may try, and try, and try again, Messrs. Dodson and Fogg,’ said Mr.
  • Pickwick vehemently, ‘but not one farthing of costs or damages do you
  • ever get from me, if I spend the rest of my existence in a debtor’s
  • prison.’
  • ‘Ha! ha!’ laughed Dodson. ‘You’ll think better of that, before next
  • term, Mr. Pickwick.’
  • ‘He, he, he! We’ll soon see about that, Mr. Pickwick,’ grinned Fogg.
  • Speechless with indignation, Mr. Pickwick allowed himself to be led by
  • his solicitor and friends to the door, and there assisted into a
  • hackney-coach, which had been fetched for the purpose, by the ever-
  • watchful Sam Weller.
  • Sam had put up the steps, and was preparing to jump upon the box, when
  • he felt himself gently touched on the shoulder; and, looking round, his
  • father stood before him. The old gentleman’s countenance wore a mournful
  • expression, as he shook his head gravely, and said, in warning accents--
  • ‘I know’d what ‘ud come o’ this here mode o’ doin’ bisness. Oh, Sammy,
  • Sammy, vy worn’t there a alleybi!’
  • CHAPTER XXXV. IN WHICH MR. PICKWICK THINKS HE HAD BETTER GO TO BATH; AND
  • GOES ACCORDINGLY
  • But surely, my dear sir,’ said little Perker, as he stood in Mr.
  • Pickwick’s apartment on the morning after the trial, ‘surely you don’t
  • really mean--really and seriously now, and irritation apart--that you
  • won’t pay these costs and damages?’
  • ‘Not one halfpenny,’ said Mr. Pickwick firmly; ‘not one halfpenny.’
  • ‘Hooroar for the principle, as the money-lender said ven he vouldn’t
  • renew the bill,’ observed Mr. Weller, who was clearing away the
  • breakfast-things.
  • ‘Sam,’ said Mr. Pickwick, ‘have the goodness to step downstairs.’
  • ‘Cert’nly, sir,’ replied Mr. Weller; and acting on Mr. Pickwick’s gentle
  • hint, Sam retired.
  • ‘No, Perker,’ said Mr. Pickwick, with great seriousness of manner, ‘my
  • friends here have endeavoured to dissuade me from this determination,
  • but without avail. I shall employ myself as usual, until the opposite
  • party have the power of issuing a legal process of execution against me;
  • and if they are vile enough to avail themselves of it, and to arrest my
  • person, I shall yield myself up with perfect cheerfulness and content of
  • heart. When can they do this?’
  • ‘They can issue execution, my dear Sir, for the amount of the damages
  • and taxed costs, next term,’ replied Perker, ‘just two months hence, my
  • dear sir.’
  • ‘Very good,’ said Mr. Pickwick. ‘Until that time, my dear fellow, let me
  • hear no more of the matter. And now,’ continued Mr. Pickwick, looking
  • round on his friends with a good-humoured smile, and a sparkle in the
  • eye which no spectacles could dim or conceal, ‘the only question is,
  • Where shall we go next?’
  • Mr. Tupman and Mr. Snodgrass were too much affected by their friend’s
  • heroism to offer any reply. Mr. Winkle had not yet sufficiently
  • recovered the recollection of his evidence at the trial, to make any
  • observation on any subject, so Mr. Pickwick paused in vain.
  • ‘Well,’ said that gentleman, ‘if you leave me to suggest our
  • destination, I say Bath. I think none of us have ever been there.’
  • Nobody had; and as the proposition was warmly seconded by Perker, who
  • considered it extremely probable that if Mr. Pickwick saw a little
  • change and gaiety he would be inclined to think better of his
  • determination, and worse of a debtor’s prison, it was carried
  • unanimously; and Sam was at once despatched to the White Horse Cellar,
  • to take five places by the half-past seven o’clock coach, next morning.
  • There were just two places to be had inside, and just three to be had
  • out; so Sam Weller booked for them all, and having exchanged a few
  • compliments with the booking-office clerk on the subject of a pewter
  • half-crown which was tendered him as a portion of his ‘change,’ walked
  • back to the George and Vulture, where he was pretty busily employed
  • until bed-time in reducing clothes and linen into the smallest possible
  • compass, and exerting his mechanical genius in constructing a variety of
  • ingenious devices for keeping the lids on boxes which had neither locks
  • nor hinges.
  • The next was a very unpropitious morning for a journey--muggy, damp, and
  • drizzly. The horses in the stages that were going out, and had come
  • through the city, were smoking so, that the outside passengers were
  • invisible. The newspaper-sellers looked moist, and smelled mouldy; the
  • wet ran off the hats of the orange-vendors as they thrust their heads
  • into the coach windows, and diluted the insides in a refreshing manner.
  • The Jews with the fifty-bladed penknives shut them up in despair; the
  • men with the pocket-books made pocket-books of them. Watch-guards and
  • toasting-forks were alike at a discount, and pencil-cases and sponges
  • were a drug in the market.
  • Leaving Sam Weller to rescue the luggage from the seven or eight porters
  • who flung themselves savagely upon it, the moment the coach stopped, and
  • finding that they were about twenty minutes too early, Mr. Pickwick and
  • his friends went for shelter into the travellers’ room--the last
  • resource of human dejection.
  • The travellers’ room at the White Horse Cellar is of course
  • uncomfortable; it would be no travellers’ room if it were not. It is the
  • right-hand parlour, into which an aspiring kitchen fireplace appears to
  • have walked, accompanied by a rebellious poker, tongs, and shovel. It is
  • divided into boxes, for the solitary confinement of travellers, and is
  • furnished with a clock, a looking-glass, and a live waiter, which latter
  • article is kept in a small kennel for washing glasses, in a corner of
  • the apartment.
  • One of these boxes was occupied, on this particular occasion, by a
  • stern-eyed man of about five-and-forty, who had a bald and glossy
  • forehead, with a good deal of black hair at the sides and back of his
  • head, and large black whiskers. He was buttoned up to the chin in a
  • brown coat; and had a large sealskin travelling-cap, and a greatcoat and
  • cloak, lying on the seat beside him. He looked up from his breakfast as
  • Mr. Pickwick entered, with a fierce and peremptory air, which was very
  • dignified; and, having scrutinised that gentleman and his companions to
  • his entire satisfaction, hummed a tune, in a manner which seemed to say
  • that he rather suspected somebody wanted to take advantage of him, but
  • it wouldn’t do.
  • ‘Waiter,’ said the gentleman with the whiskers.
  • ‘Sir?’ replied a man with a dirty complexion, and a towel of the same,
  • emerging from the kennel before mentioned.
  • ‘Some more toast.’
  • ‘Yes, sir.’
  • ‘Buttered toast, mind,’ said the gentleman fiercely.
  • ‘Directly, sir,’ replied the waiter.
  • The gentleman with the whiskers hummed a tune in the same manner as
  • before, and pending the arrival of the toast, advanced to the front of
  • the fire, and, taking his coat tails under his arms, looked at his boots
  • and ruminated.
  • ‘I wonder whereabouts in Bath this coach puts up,’ said Mr. Pickwick,
  • mildly addressing Mr. Winkle.
  • ‘Hum--eh--what’s that?’ said the strange man.
  • ‘I made an observation to my friend, sir,’ replied Mr. Pickwick, always
  • ready to enter into conversation. ‘I wondered at what house the Bath
  • coach put up. Perhaps you can inform me.’
  • Are you going to Bath?’ said the strange man.
  • ‘I am, sir,’ replied Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘And those other gentlemen?’
  • ‘They are going also,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Not inside--I’ll be damned if you’re going inside,’ said the strange
  • man.
  • ‘Not all of us,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘No, not all of you,’ said the strange man emphatically. ‘I’ve taken two
  • places. If they try to squeeze six people into an infernal box that only
  • holds four, I’ll take a post-chaise and bring an action. I’ve paid my
  • fare. It won’t do; I told the clerk when I took my places that it
  • wouldn’t do. I know these things have been done. I know they are done
  • every day; but I never was done, and I never will be. Those who know me
  • best, best know it; crush me!’ Here the fierce gentleman rang the bell
  • with great violence, and told the waiter he’d better bring the toast in
  • five seconds, or he’d know the reason why.
  • ‘My good sir,’ said Mr. Pickwick, ‘you will allow me to observe that
  • this is a very unnecessary display of excitement. I have only taken
  • places inside for two.’
  • ‘I am glad to hear it,’ said the fierce man. ‘I withdraw my expressions.
  • I tender an apology. There’s my card. Give me your acquaintance.’
  • ‘With great pleasure, Sir,’ replied Mr. Pickwick. ‘We are to be fellow-
  • travellers, and I hope we shall find each other’s society mutually
  • agreeable.’
  • ‘I hope we shall,’ said the fierce gentleman. ‘I know we shall. I like
  • your looks; they please me. Gentlemen, your hands and names. Know me.’
  • Of course, an interchange of friendly salutations followed this gracious
  • speech; and the fierce gentleman immediately proceeded to inform the
  • friends, in the same short, abrupt, jerking sentences, that his name was
  • Dowler; that he was going to Bath on pleasure; that he was formerly in
  • the army; that he had now set up in business as a gentleman; that he
  • lived upon the profits; and that the individual for whom the second
  • place was taken, was a personage no less illustrious than Mrs. Dowler,
  • his lady wife.
  • ‘She’s a fine woman,’ said Mr. Dowler. ‘I am proud of her. I have
  • reason.’
  • ‘I hope I shall have the pleasure of judging,’ said Mr. Pickwick, with a
  • smile.
  • ‘You shall,’ replied Dowler. ‘She shall know you. She shall esteem you.
  • I courted her under singular circumstances. I won her through a rash
  • vow. Thus. I saw her; I loved her; I proposed; she refused me.--“You
  • love another?”--“Spare my blushes.”--“I know him.”--“You do.”--“Very
  • good; if he remains here, I’ll skin him.”’
  • ‘Lord bless me!’ exclaimed Mr. Pickwick involuntarily.
  • ‘Did you skin the gentleman, Sir?’ inquired Mr. Winkle, with a very pale
  • face.
  • ‘I wrote him a note, I said it was a painful thing. And so it was.’
  • ‘Certainly,’ interposed Mr. Winkle.
  • ‘I said I had pledged my word as a gentleman to skin him. My character
  • was at stake. I had no alternative. As an officer in His Majesty’s
  • service, I was bound to skin him. I regretted the necessity, but it must
  • be done. He was open to conviction. He saw that the rules of the service
  • were imperative. He fled. I married her. Here’s the coach. That’s her
  • head.’
  • As Mr. Dowler concluded, he pointed to a stage which had just driven up,
  • from the open window of which a rather pretty face in a bright blue
  • bonnet was looking among the crowd on the pavement, most probably for
  • the rash man himself. Mr. Dowler paid his bill, and hurried out with his
  • travelling cap, coat, and cloak; and Mr. Pickwick and his friends
  • followed to secure their places.
  • Mr. Tupman and Mr. Snodgrass had seated themselves at the back part of
  • the coach; Mr. Winkle had got inside; and Mr. Pickwick was preparing to
  • follow him, when Sam Weller came up to his master, and whispering in his
  • ear, begged to speak to him, with an air of the deepest mystery.
  • ‘Well, Sam,’ said Mr. Pickwick, ‘what’s the matter now?’
  • ‘Here’s rayther a rum go, sir,’ replied Sam.
  • ‘What?’ inquired Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘This here, Sir,’ rejoined Sam. ‘I’m wery much afeerd, sir, that the
  • properiator o’ this here coach is a playin’ some imperence vith us.’
  • ‘How is that, Sam?’ said Mr. Pickwick; ‘aren’t the names down on the
  • way-bill?’
  • ‘The names is not only down on the vay-bill, Sir,’ replied Sam, ‘but
  • they’ve painted vun on ‘em up, on the door o’ the coach.’ As Sam spoke,
  • he pointed to that part of the coach door on which the proprietor’s name
  • usually appears; and there, sure enough, in gilt letters of a goodly
  • size, was the magic name of _Pickwick_!
  • ‘Dear me,’ exclaimed Mr. Pickwick, quite staggered by the coincidence;
  • ‘what a very extraordinary thing!’
  • ‘Yes, but that ain’t all,’ said Sam, again directing his master’s
  • attention to the coach door; ‘not content vith writin’ up “Pick-wick,”
  • they puts “Moses” afore it, vich I call addin’ insult to injury, as the
  • parrot said ven they not only took him from his native land, but made
  • him talk the English langwidge arterwards.’
  • ‘It’s odd enough, certainly, Sam,’ said Mr. Pickwick; ‘but if we stand
  • talking here, we shall lose our places.’
  • ‘Wot, ain’t nothin’ to be done in consequence, sir?’ exclaimed Sam,
  • perfectly aghast at the coolness with which Mr. Pickwick prepared to
  • ensconce himself inside.
  • ‘Done!’ said Mr. Pickwick. ‘What should be done?’
  • Ain’t nobody to be whopped for takin’ this here liberty, sir?’ said Mr.
  • Weller, who had expected that at least he would have been commissioned
  • to challenge the guard and the coachman to a pugilistic encounter on the
  • spot.
  • ‘Certainly not,’ replied Mr. Pickwick eagerly; ‘not on any account. Jump
  • up to your seat directly.’
  • ‘I am wery much afeered,’ muttered Sam to himself, as he turned away,
  • ‘that somethin’ queer’s come over the governor, or he’d never ha’ stood
  • this so quiet. I hope that ‘ere trial hasn’t broke his spirit, but it
  • looks bad, wery bad.’ Mr. Weller shook his head gravely; and it is
  • worthy of remark, as an illustration of the manner in which he took this
  • circumstance to heart, that he did not speak another word until the
  • coach reached the Kensington turnpike. Which was so long a time for him
  • to remain taciturn, that the fact may be considered wholly
  • unprecedented.
  • Nothing worthy of special mention occurred during the journey. Mr.
  • Dowler related a variety of anecdotes, all illustrative of his own
  • personal prowess and desperation, and appealed to Mrs. Dowler in
  • corroboration thereof; when Mrs. Dowler invariably brought in, in the
  • form of an appendix, some remarkable fact or circumstance which Mr.
  • Dowler had forgotten, or had perhaps through modesty, omitted; for the
  • addenda in every instance went to show that Mr. Dowler was even a more
  • wonderful fellow than he made himself out to be. Mr. Pickwick and Mr.
  • Winkle listened with great admiration, and at intervals conversed with
  • Mrs. Dowler, who was a very agreeable and fascinating person. So, what
  • between Mr. Dowler’s stories, and Mrs. Dowler’s charms, and Mr.
  • Pickwick’s good-humour, and Mr. Winkle’s good listening, the insides
  • contrived to be very companionable all the way.
  • The outsides did as outsides always do. They were very cheerful and
  • talkative at the beginning of every stage, and very dismal and sleepy in
  • the middle, and very bright and wakeful again towards the end. There was
  • one young gentleman in an India-rubber cloak, who smoked cigars all day;
  • and there was another young gentleman in a parody upon a greatcoat, who
  • lighted a good many, and feeling obviously unsettled after the second
  • whiff, threw them away when he thought nobody was looking at him. There
  • was a third young man on the box who wished to be learned in cattle; and
  • an old one behind, who was familiar with farming. There was a constant
  • succession of Christian names in smock-frocks and white coats, who were
  • invited to have a ‘lift’ by the guard, and who knew every horse and
  • hostler on the road and off it; and there was a dinner which would have
  • been cheap at half-a-crown a mouth, if any moderate number of mouths
  • could have eaten it in the time. And at seven o’clock P.M. Mr. Pickwick
  • and his friends, and Mr. Dowler and his wife, respectively retired to
  • their private sitting-rooms at the White Hart Hotel, opposite the Great
  • Pump Room, Bath, where the waiters, from their costume, might be
  • mistaken for Westminster boys, only they destroy the illusion by
  • behaving themselves much better.
  • Breakfast had scarcely been cleared away on the succeeding morning, when
  • a waiter brought in Mr. Dowler’s card, with a request to be allowed
  • permission to introduce a friend. Mr. Dowler at once followed up the
  • delivery of the card, by bringing himself and the friend also.
  • The friend was a charming young man of not much more than fifty, dressed
  • in a very bright blue coat with resplendent buttons, black trousers, and
  • the thinnest possible pair of highly-polished boots. A gold eye-glass
  • was suspended from his neck by a short, broad, black ribbon; a gold
  • snuff-box was lightly clasped in his left hand; gold rings innumerable
  • glittered on his fingers; and a large diamond pin set in gold glistened
  • in his shirt frill. He had a gold watch, and a gold curb chain with
  • large gold seals; and he carried a pliant ebony cane with a gold top.
  • His linen was of the very whitest, finest, and stiffest; his wig of the
  • glossiest, blackest, and curliest. His snuff was princes’ mixture; his
  • scent _bouquet du roi_. His features were contracted into a perpetual
  • smile; and his teeth were in such perfect order that it was difficult at
  • a small distance to tell the real from the false.
  • ‘Mr. Pickwick,’ said Mr. Dowler; ‘my friend, Angelo Cyrus Bantam,
  • Esquire, M.C.; Bantam; Mr. Pickwick. Know each other.’
  • ‘Welcome to Ba--ath, Sir. This is indeed an acquisition. Most welcome to
  • Ba--ath, sir. It is long--very long, Mr. Pickwick, since you drank the
  • waters. It appears an age, Mr. Pickwick. Re-markable!’
  • Such were the expressions with which Angelo Cyrus Bantam, Esquire, M.C.,
  • took Mr. Pickwick’s hand; retaining it in his, meantime, and shrugging
  • up his shoulders with a constant succession of bows, as if he really
  • could not make up his mind to the trial of letting it go again.
  • ‘It is a very long time since I drank the waters, certainly,’ replied
  • Mr. Pickwick; ‘for, to the best of my knowledge, I was never here
  • before.’
  • ‘Never in Ba--ath, Mr. Pickwick!’ exclaimed the Grand Master, letting
  • the hand fall in astonishment. ‘Never in Ba--ath! He! he! Mr. Pickwick,
  • you are a wag. Not bad, not bad. Good, good. He! he! he! Re-markable!’
  • ‘To my shame, I must say that I am perfectly serious,’ rejoined Mr.
  • Pickwick. ‘I really never was here before.’
  • ‘Oh, I see,’ exclaimed the Grand Master, looking extremely pleased;
  • ‘yes, yes--good, good--better and better. You are the gentleman of whom
  • we have heard. Yes; we know you, Mr. Pickwick; we know you.’
  • ‘The reports of the trial in those confounded papers,’ thought Mr.
  • Pickwick. ‘They have heard all about me.’
  • You are the gentleman residing on Clapham Green,’ resumed Bantam, ‘who
  • lost the use of his limbs from imprudently taking cold after port wine;
  • who could not be moved in consequence of acute suffering, and who had
  • the water from the king’s bath bottled at one hundred and three degrees,
  • and sent by wagon to his bedroom in town, where he bathed, sneezed, and
  • the same day recovered. Very remarkable!’
  • Mr. Pickwick acknowledged the compliment which the supposition implied,
  • but had the self-denial to repudiate it, notwithstanding; and taking
  • advantage of a moment’s silence on the part of the M.C., begged to
  • introduce his friends, Mr. Tupman, Mr. Winkle, and Mr. Snodgrass. An
  • introduction which overwhelmed the M.C. with delight and honour.
  • ‘Bantam,’ said Mr. Dowler, ‘Mr. Pickwick and his friends are strangers.
  • They must put their names down. Where’s the book?’
  • ‘The register of the distinguished visitors in Ba--ath will be at the
  • Pump Room this morning at two o’clock,’ replied the M.C. ‘Will you guide
  • our friends to that splendid building, and enable me to procure their
  • autographs?’
  • ‘I will,’ rejoined Dowler. ‘This is a long call. It’s time to go. I
  • shall be here again in an hour. Come.’
  • ‘This is a ball-night,’ said the M.C., again taking Mr. Pickwick’s hand,
  • as he rose to go. ‘The ball-nights in Ba--ath are moments snatched from
  • paradise; rendered bewitching by music, beauty, elegance, fashion,
  • etiquette, and--and--above all, by the absence of tradespeople, who are
  • quite inconsistent with paradise, and who have an amalgamation of
  • themselves at the Guildhall every fortnight, which is, to say the least,
  • remarkable. Good-bye, good-bye!’ and protesting all the way downstairs
  • that he was most satisfied, and most delighted, and most overpowered,
  • and most flattered, Angelo Cyrus Bantam, Esquire, M.C., stepped into a
  • very elegant chariot that waited at the door, and rattled off.
  • At the appointed hour, Mr. Pickwick and his friends, escorted by Dowler,
  • repaired to the Assembly Rooms, and wrote their names down in the book--
  • an instance of condescension at which Angelo Bantam was even more
  • overpowered than before. Tickets of admission to that evening’s assembly
  • were to have been prepared for the whole party, but as they were not
  • ready, Mr. Pickwick undertook, despite all the protestations to the
  • contrary of Angelo Bantam, to send Sam for them at four o’clock in the
  • afternoon, to the M.C.’s house in Queen Square. Having taken a short
  • walk through the city, and arrived at the unanimous conclusion that Park
  • Street was very much like the perpendicular streets a man sees in a
  • dream, which he cannot get up for the life of him, they returned to the
  • White Hart, and despatched Sam on the errand to which his master had
  • pledged him.
  • Sam Weller put on his hat in a very easy and graceful manner, and,
  • thrusting his hands in his waistcoat pockets, walked with great
  • deliberation to Queen Square, whistling as he went along, several of the
  • most popular airs of the day, as arranged with entirely new movements
  • for that noble instrument the organ, either mouth or barrel. Arriving at
  • the number in Queen Square to which he had been directed, he left off
  • whistling and gave a cheerful knock, which was instantaneously answered
  • by a powdered-headed footman in gorgeous livery, and of symmetrical
  • stature.
  • ‘Is this here Mr. Bantam’s, old feller?’ inquired Sam Weller, nothing
  • abashed by the blaze of splendour which burst upon his sight in the
  • person of the powdered-headed footman with the gorgeous livery.
  • ‘Why, young man?’ was the haughty inquiry of the powdered-headed
  • footman.
  • ‘’Cos if it is, jist you step in to him with that ‘ere card, and say Mr.
  • Veller’s a-waitin’, will you?’ said Sam. And saying it, he very coolly
  • walked into the hall, and sat down.
  • The powdered-headed footman slammed the door very hard, and scowled very
  • grandly; but both the slam and the scowl were lost upon Sam, who was
  • regarding a mahogany umbrella-stand with every outward token of critical
  • approval.
  • Apparently his master’s reception of the card had impressed the
  • powdered-headed footman in Sam’s favour, for when he came back from
  • delivering it, he smiled in a friendly manner, and said that the answer
  • would be ready directly.
  • ‘Wery good,’ said Sam. ‘Tell the old gen’l’m’n not to put himself in a
  • perspiration. No hurry, six-foot. I’ve had my dinner.’
  • ‘You dine early, sir,’ said the powdered-headed footman.
  • ‘I find I gets on better at supper when I does,’ replied Sam.
  • ‘Have you been long in Bath, sir?’ inquired the powdered-headed footman.
  • ‘I have not had the pleasure of hearing of you before.’
  • ‘I haven’t created any wery surprisin’ sensation here, as yet,’ rejoined
  • Sam, ‘for me and the other fash’nables only come last night.’
  • ‘Nice place, Sir,’ said the powdered-headed footman.
  • ‘Seems so,’ observed Sam.
  • ‘Pleasant society, sir,’ remarked the powdered-headed footman. ‘Very
  • agreeable servants, sir.’
  • ‘I should think they wos,’ replied Sam. ‘Affable, unaffected, say-
  • nothin’-to-nobody sorts o’ fellers.’
  • ‘Oh, very much so, indeed, sir,’ said the powdered-headed footman,
  • taking Sam’s remarks as a high compliment. ‘Very much so indeed. Do you
  • do anything in this way, Sir?’ inquired the tall footman, producing a
  • small snuff-box with a fox’s head on the top of it.
  • ‘Not without sneezing,’ replied Sam.
  • ‘Why, it _is_ difficult, sir, I confess,’ said the tall footman. ‘It may
  • be done by degrees, Sir. Coffee is the best practice. I carried coffee,
  • Sir, for a long time. It looks very like rappee, sir.’
  • Here, a sharp peal at the bell reduced the powdered-headed footman to
  • the ignominious necessity of putting the fox’s head in his pocket, and
  • hastening with a humble countenance to Mr. Bantam’s ‘study.’ By the bye,
  • who ever knew a man who never read or wrote either, who hadn’t got some
  • small back parlour which he _would _call a study!
  • ‘There is the answer, sir,’ said the powdered-headed footman. ‘I’m
  • afraid you’ll find it inconveniently large.’
  • ‘Don’t mention it,’ said Sam, taking a letter with a small enclosure.
  • ‘It’s just possible as exhausted natur’ may manage to surwive it.’
  • ‘I hope we shall meet again, Sir,’ said the powdered-headed footman,
  • rubbing his hands, and following Sam out to the door-step.
  • ‘You are wery obligin’, sir,’ replied Sam. ‘Now, don’t allow yourself to
  • be fatigued beyond your powers; there’s a amiable bein’. Consider what
  • you owe to society, and don’t let yourself be injured by too much work.
  • For the sake o’ your feller-creeturs, keep yourself as quiet as you can;
  • only think what a loss you would be!’ With these pathetic words, Sam
  • Weller departed.
  • ‘A very singular young man that,’ said the powdered-headed footman,
  • looking after Mr. Weller, with a countenance which clearly showed he
  • could make nothing of him.
  • Sam said nothing at all. He winked, shook his head, smiled, winked
  • again; and, with an expression of countenance which seemed to denote
  • that he was greatly amused with something or other, walked merrily away.
  • At precisely twenty minutes before eight o’clock that night, Angelo
  • Cyrus Bantam, Esq., the Master of the Ceremonies, emerged from his
  • chariot at the door of the Assembly Rooms in the same wig, the same
  • teeth, the same eye-glass, the same watch and seals, the same rings, the
  • same shirt-pin, and the same cane. The only observable alterations in
  • his appearance were, that he wore a brighter blue coat, with a white
  • silk lining, black tights, black silk stockings, and pumps, and a white
  • waistcoat, and was, if possible, just a thought more scented.
  • Thus attired, the Master of the Ceremonies, in strict discharge of the
  • important duties of his all-important office, planted himself in the
  • room to receive the company.
  • Bath being full, the company, and the sixpences for tea, poured in, in
  • shoals. In the ballroom, the long card-room, the octagonal card-room,
  • the staircases, and the passages, the hum of many voices, and the sound
  • of many feet, were perfectly bewildering. Dresses rustled, feathers
  • waved, lights shone, and jewels sparkled. There was the music--not of
  • the quadrille band, for it had not yet commenced; but the music of soft,
  • tiny footsteps, with now and then a clear, merry laugh--low and gentle,
  • but very pleasant to hear in a female voice, whether in Bath or
  • elsewhere. Brilliant eyes, lighted up with pleasurable expectation,
  • gleamed from every side; and, look where you would, some exquisite form
  • glided gracefully through the throng, and was no sooner lost, than it
  • was replaced by another as dainty and bewitching.
  • In the tea-room, and hovering round the card-tables, were a vast number
  • of queer old ladies, and decrepit old gentlemen, discussing all the
  • small talk and scandal of the day, with a relish and gusto which
  • sufficiently bespoke the intensity of the pleasure they derived from the
  • occupation. Mingled with these groups, were three or four match-making
  • mammas, appearing to be wholly absorbed by the conversation in which
  • they were taking part, but failing not from time to time to cast an
  • anxious sidelong glance upon their daughters, who, remembering the
  • maternal injunction to make the best use of their youth, had already
  • commenced incipient flirtations in the mislaying scarves, putting on
  • gloves, setting down cups, and so forth; slight matters apparently, but
  • which may be turned to surprisingly good account by expert
  • practitioners.
  • Lounging near the doors, and in remote corners, were various knots of
  • silly young men, displaying various varieties of puppyism and stupidity;
  • amusing all sensible people near them with their folly and conceit; and
  • happily thinking themselves the objects of general admiration--a wise
  • and merciful dispensation which no good man will quarrel with.
  • And lastly, seated on some of the back benches, where they had already
  • taken up their positions for the evening, were divers unmarried ladies
  • past their grand climacteric, who, not dancing because there were no
  • partners for them, and not playing cards lest they should be set down as
  • irretrievably single, were in the favourable situation of being able to
  • abuse everybody without reflecting on themselves. In short, they could
  • abuse everybody, because everybody was there. It was a scene of gaiety,
  • glitter, and show; of richly-dressed people, handsome mirrors, chalked
  • floors, girandoles and wax-candles; and in all parts of the scene,
  • gliding from spot to spot in silent softness, bowing obsequiously to
  • this party, nodding familiarly to that, and smiling complacently on all,
  • was the sprucely-attired person of Angelo Cyrus Bantam, Esquire, the
  • Master of the Ceremonies.
  • ‘Stop in the tea-room. Take your sixpenn’orth. Then lay on hot water,
  • and call it tea. Drink it,’ said Mr. Dowler, in a loud voice, directing
  • Mr. Pickwick, who advanced at the head of the little party, with Mrs.
  • Dowler on his arm. Into the tea-room Mr. Pickwick turned; and catching
  • sight of him, Mr. Bantam corkscrewed his way through the crowd and
  • welcomed him with ecstasy.
  • ‘My dear Sir, I am highly honoured. Ba--ath is favoured. Mrs. Dowler,
  • you embellish the rooms. I congratulate you on your feathers. Re-
  • markable!’
  • ‘Anybody here?’ inquired Dowler suspiciously.
  • ‘Anybody! The _elite _of Ba--ath. Mr. Pickwick, do you see the old lady
  • in the gauze turban?’
  • ‘The fat old lady?’ inquired Mr. Pickwick innocently.
  • ‘Hush, my dear sir--nobody’s fat or old in Ba--ath. That’s the Dowager
  • Lady Snuphanuph.’
  • ‘Is it, indeed?’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘No less a person, I assure you,’ said the Master of the Ceremonies.
  • ‘Hush. Draw a little nearer, Mr. Pickwick. You see the splendidly-
  • dressed young man coming this way?’
  • ‘The one with the long hair, and the particularly small forehead?’
  • inquired Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘The same. The richest young man in Ba--ath at this moment. Young Lord
  • Mutanhed.’
  • ‘You don’t say so?’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Yes. You’ll hear his voice in a moment, Mr. Pickwick. He’ll speak to
  • me. The other gentleman with him, in the red under-waistcoat and dark
  • moustache, is the Honourable Mr. Crushton, his bosom friend. How do you
  • do, my Lord?’
  • ‘Veway hot, Bantam,’ said his Lordship.
  • ‘It _is_ very warm, my Lord,’ replied the M.C.
  • ‘Confounded,’ assented the Honourable Mr. Crushton.
  • ‘Have you seen his Lordship’s mail-cart, Bantam?’ inquired the
  • Honourable Mr. Crushton, after a short pause, during which young Lord
  • Mutanhed had been endeavouring to stare Mr. Pickwick out of countenance,
  • and Mr. Crushton had been reflecting what subject his Lordship could
  • talk about best.
  • ‘Dear me, no,’ replied the M.C. ‘A mail-cart! What an excellent idea.
  • Re-markable!’
  • ‘Gwacious heavens!’ said his Lordship, ‘I thought evewebody had seen the
  • new mail-cart; it’s the neatest, pwettiest, gwacefullest thing that ever
  • wan upon wheels. Painted wed, with a cweam piebald.’
  • ‘With a real box for the letters, and all complete,’ said the Honourable
  • Mr. Crushton.
  • ‘And a little seat in fwont, with an iwon wail, for the dwiver,’ added
  • his Lordship. ‘I dwove it over to Bwistol the other morning, in a
  • cwimson coat, with two servants widing a quarter of a mile behind; and
  • confound me if the people didn’t wush out of their cottages, and awest
  • my pwogwess, to know if I wasn’t the post. Glorwious--glorwious!’
  • At this anecdote his Lordship laughed very heartily, as did the
  • listeners, of course. Then, drawing his arm through that of the
  • obsequious Mr. Crushton, Lord Mutanhed walked away.
  • ‘Delightful young man, his Lordship,’ said the Master of the Ceremonies.
  • ‘So I should think,’ rejoined Mr. Pickwick drily.
  • The dancing having commenced, the necessary introductions having been
  • made, and all preliminaries arranged, Angelo Bantam rejoined Mr.
  • Pickwick, and led him into the card-room.
  • Just at the very moment of their entrance, the Dowager Lady Snuphanuph
  • and two other ladies of an ancient and whist-like appearance, were
  • hovering over an unoccupied card-table; and they no sooner set eyes upon
  • Mr. Pickwick under the convoy of Angelo Bantam, than they exchanged
  • glances with each other, seeing that he was precisely the very person
  • they wanted, to make up the rubber.
  • ‘My dear Bantam,’ said the Dowager Lady Snuphanuph coaxingly, ‘find us
  • some nice creature to make up this table; there’s a good soul.’ Mr.
  • Pickwick happened to be looking another way at the moment, so her
  • Ladyship nodded her head towards him, and frowned expressively.
  • ‘My friend Mr. Pickwick, my Lady, will be most happy, I am sure,
  • remarkably so,’ said the M.C., taking the hint. ‘Mr. Pickwick, Lady
  • Snuphanuph--Mrs. Colonel Wugsby--Miss Bolo.’
  • Mr. Pickwick bowed to each of the ladies, and, finding escape
  • impossible, cut. Mr. Pickwick and Miss Bolo against Lady Snuphanuph and
  • Mrs. Colonel Wugsby.
  • As the trump card was turned up, at the commencement of the second deal,
  • two young ladies hurried into the room, and took their stations on
  • either side of Mrs. Colonel Wugsby’s chair, where they waited patiently
  • until the hand was over.
  • ‘Now, Jane,’ said Mrs. Colonel Wugsby, turning to one of the girls,
  • ‘what is it?’
  • I came to ask, ma, whether I might dance with the youngest Mr. Crawley,’
  • whispered the prettier and younger of the two.
  • ‘Good God, Jane, how can you think of such things?’ replied the mamma
  • indignantly. ‘Haven’t you repeatedly heard that his father has eight
  • hundred a year, which dies with him? I am ashamed of you. Not on any
  • account.’
  • ‘Ma,’ whispered the other, who was much older than her sister, and very
  • insipid and artificial, ‘Lord Mutanhed has been introduced to me. I said
  • I thought I wasn’t engaged, ma.’
  • ‘You’re a sweet pet, my love,’ replied Mrs. Colonel Wugsby, tapping her
  • daughter’s cheek with her fan, ‘and are always to be trusted. He’s
  • immensely rich, my dear. Bless you!’ With these words Mrs. Colonel
  • Wugsby kissed her eldest daughter most affectionately, and frowning in a
  • warning manner upon the other, sorted her cards.
  • Poor Mr. Pickwick! he had never played with three thorough-paced female
  • card-players before. They were so desperately sharp, that they quite
  • frightened him. If he played a wrong card, Miss Bolo looked a small
  • armoury of daggers; if he stopped to consider which was the right one,
  • Lady Snuphanuph would throw herself back in her chair, and smile with a
  • mingled glance of impatience and pity to Mrs. Colonel Wugsby, at which
  • Mrs. Colonel Wugsby would shrug up her shoulders, and cough, as much as
  • to say she wondered whether he ever would begin. Then, at the end of
  • every hand, Miss Bolo would inquire with a dismal countenance and
  • reproachful sigh, why Mr. Pickwick had not returned that diamond, or led
  • the club, or roughed the spade, or finessed the heart, or led through
  • the honour, or brought out the ace, or played up to the king, or some
  • such thing; and in reply to all these grave charges, Mr. Pickwick would
  • be wholly unable to plead any justification whatever, having by this
  • time forgotten all about the game. People came and looked on, too, which
  • made Mr. Pickwick nervous. Besides all this, there was a great deal of
  • distracting conversation near the table, between Angelo Bantam and the
  • two Misses Matinter, who, being single and singular, paid great court to
  • the Master of the Ceremonies, in the hope of getting a stray partner now
  • and then. All these things, combined with the noises and interruptions
  • of constant comings in and goings out, made Mr. Pickwick play rather
  • badly; the cards were against him, also; and when they left off at ten
  • minutes past eleven, Miss Bolo rose from the table considerably
  • agitated, and went straight home, in a flood of tears and a sedan-chair.
  • Being joined by his friends, who one and all protested that they had
  • scarcely ever spent a more pleasant evening, Mr. Pickwick accompanied
  • them to the White Hart, and having soothed his feelings with something
  • hot, went to bed, and to sleep, almost simultaneously.
  • CHAPTER XXXVI. THE CHIEF FEATURES OF WHICH WILL BE FOUND TO BE AN
  • AUTHENTIC VERSION OF THE LEGEND OF PRINCE BLADUD, AND A MOST
  • EXTRAORDINARY CALAMITY THAT BEFELL MR. WINKLE
  • As Mr. Pickwick contemplated a stay of at least two months in Bath, he
  • deemed it advisable to take private lodgings for himself and friends for
  • that period; and as a favourable opportunity offered for their securing,
  • on moderate terms, the upper portion of a house in the Royal Crescent,
  • which was larger than they required, Mr. and Mrs. Dowler offered to
  • relieve them of a bedroom and sitting-room. This proposition was at once
  • accepted, and in three days’ time they were all located in their new
  • abode, when Mr. Pickwick began to drink the waters with the utmost
  • assiduity. Mr. Pickwick took them systematically. He drank a quarter of
  • a pint before breakfast, and then walked up a hill; and another quarter
  • of a pint after breakfast, and then walked down a hill; and, after every
  • fresh quarter of a pint, Mr. Pickwick declared, in the most solemn and
  • emphatic terms, that he felt a great deal better; whereat his friends
  • were very much delighted, though they had not been previously aware that
  • there was anything the matter with him.
  • The Great Pump Room is a spacious saloon, ornamented with Corinthian
  • pillars, and a music-gallery, and a Tompion clock, and a statue of Nash,
  • and a golden inscription, to which all the water-drinkers should attend,
  • for it appeals to them in the cause of a deserving charity. There is a
  • large bar with a marble vase, out of which the pumper gets the water;
  • and there are a number of yellow-looking tumblers, out of which the
  • company get it; and it is a most edifying and satisfactory sight to
  • behold the perseverance and gravity with which they swallow it. There
  • are baths near at hand, in which a part of the company wash themselves;
  • and a band plays afterwards, to congratulate the remainder on their
  • having done so. There is another pump room, into which infirm ladies and
  • gentlemen are wheeled, in such an astonishing variety of chairs and
  • chaises, that any adventurous individual who goes in with the regular
  • number of toes, is in imminent danger of coming out without them; and
  • there is a third, into which the quiet people go, for it is less noisy
  • than either. There is an immensity of promenading, on crutches and off,
  • with sticks and without, and a great deal of conversation, and
  • liveliness, and pleasantry.
  • Every morning, the regular water-drinkers, Mr. Pickwick among the
  • number, met each other in the pump room, took their quarter of a pint,
  • and walked constitutionally. At the afternoon’s promenade, Lord
  • Mutanhed, and the Honourable Mr. Crushton, the Dowager Lady Snuphanuph,
  • Mrs. Colonel Wugsby, and all the great people, and all the morning
  • water-drinkers, met in grand assemblage. After this, they walked out, or
  • drove out, or were pushed out in bath-chairs, and met one another again.
  • After this, the gentlemen went to the reading-rooms, and met divisions
  • of the mass. After this, they went home. If it were theatre-night,
  • perhaps they met at the theatre; if it were assembly-night, they met at
  • the rooms; and if it were neither, they met the next day. A very
  • pleasant routine, with perhaps a slight tinge of sameness.
  • Mr. Pickwick was sitting up by himself, after a day spent in this
  • manner, making entries in his journal, his friends having retired to
  • bed, when he was roused by a gentle tap at the room door.
  • ‘Beg your pardon, Sir,’ said Mrs. Craddock, the landlady, peeping in;
  • ‘but did you want anything more, sir?’
  • ‘Nothing more, ma’am,’ replied Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘My young girl is gone to bed, Sir,’ said Mrs. Craddock; ‘and Mr. Dowler
  • is good enough to say that he’ll sit up for Mrs. Dowler, as the party
  • isn’t expected to be over till late; so I was thinking that if you
  • wanted nothing more, Mr. Pickwick, I would go to bed.’
  • ‘By all means, ma’am,’ replied Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Wish you good-night, Sir,’ said Mrs. Craddock.
  • ‘Good-night, ma’am,’ rejoined Mr. Pickwick.
  • Mrs. Craddock closed the door, and Mr. Pickwick resumed his writing.
  • In half an hour’s time the entries were concluded. Mr. Pickwick
  • carefully rubbed the last page on the blotting-paper, shut up the book,
  • wiped his pen on the bottom of the inside of his coat tail, and opened
  • the drawer of the inkstand to put it carefully away. There were a couple
  • of sheets of writing-paper, pretty closely written over, in the inkstand
  • drawer, and they were folded so, that the title, which was in a good
  • round hand, was fully disclosed to him. Seeing from this, that it was no
  • private document; and as it seemed to relate to Bath, and was very
  • short: Mr. Pick-wick unfolded it, lighted his bedroom candle that it
  • might burn up well by the time he finished; and drawing his chair nearer
  • the fire, read as follows--
  • THE TRUE LEGEND OF PRINCE BLADUD
  • ‘Less than two hundred years ago, on one of the public baths in this
  • city, there appeared an inscription in honour of its mighty founder, the
  • renowned Prince Bladud. That inscription is now erased.
  • ‘For many hundred years before that time, there had been handed down,
  • from age to age, an old legend, that the illustrious prince being
  • afflicted with leprosy, on his return from reaping a rich harvest of
  • knowledge in Athens, shunned the court of his royal father, and
  • consorted moodily with husbandman and pigs. Among the herd (so said the
  • legend) was a pig of grave and solemn countenance, with whom the prince
  • had a fellow-feeling--for he too was wise--a pig of thoughtful and
  • reserved demeanour; an animal superior to his fellows, whose grunt was
  • terrible, and whose bite was sharp. The young prince sighed deeply as he
  • looked upon the countenance of the majestic swine; he thought of his
  • royal father, and his eyes were bedewed with tears.
  • ‘This sagacious pig was fond of bathing in rich, moist mud. Not in
  • summer, as common pigs do now, to cool themselves, and did even in those
  • distant ages (which is a proof that the light of civilisation had
  • already begun to dawn, though feebly), but in the cold, sharp days of
  • winter. His coat was ever so sleek, and his complexion so clear, that
  • the prince resolved to essay the purifying qualities of the same water
  • that his friend resorted to. He made the trial. Beneath that black mud,
  • bubbled the hot springs of Bath. He washed, and was cured. Hastening to
  • his father’s court, he paid his best respects, and returning quickly
  • hither, founded this city and its famous baths.
  • ‘He sought the pig with all the ardour of their early friendship--but,
  • alas! the waters had been his death. He had imprudently taken a bath at
  • too high a temperature, and the natural philosopher was no more! He was
  • succeeded by Pliny, who also fell a victim to his thirst for knowledge.
  • ‘This was the legend. Listen to the true one.
  • ‘A great many centuries since, there flourished, in great state, the
  • famous and renowned Lud Hudibras, king of Britain. He was a mighty
  • monarch. The earth shook when he walked--he was so very stout. His
  • people basked in the light of his countenance--it was so red and
  • glowing. He was, indeed, every inch a king. And there were a good many
  • inches of him, too, for although he was not very tall, he was a
  • remarkable size round, and the inches that he wanted in height, he made
  • up in circumference. If any degenerate monarch of modern times could be
  • in any way compared with him, I should say the venerable King Cole would
  • be that illustrious potentate.
  • ‘This good king had a queen, who eighteen years before, had had a son,
  • who was called Bladud. He was sent to a preparatory seminary in his
  • father’s dominions until he was ten years old, and was then despatched,
  • in charge of a trusty messenger, to a finishing school at Athens; and as
  • there was no extra charge for remaining during the holidays, and no
  • notice required previous to the removal of a pupil, there he remained
  • for eight long years, at the expiration of which time, the king his
  • father sent the lord chamberlain over, to settle the bill, and to bring
  • him home; which, the lord chamberlain doing, was received with shouts,
  • and pensioned immediately.
  • ‘When King Lud saw the prince his son, and found he had grown up such a
  • fine young man, he perceived what a grand thing it would be to have him
  • married without delay, so that his children might be the means of
  • perpetuating the glorious race of Lud, down to the very latest ages of
  • the world. With this view, he sent a special embassy, composed of great
  • noblemen who had nothing particular to do, and wanted lucrative
  • employment, to a neighbouring king, and demanded his fair daughter in
  • marriage for his son; stating at the same time that he was anxious to be
  • on the most affectionate terms with his brother and friend, but that if
  • they couldn’t agree in arranging this marriage, he should be under the
  • unpleasant necessity of invading his kingdom and putting his eyes out.
  • To this, the other king (who was the weaker of the two) replied that he
  • was very much obliged to his friend and brother for all his goodness and
  • magnanimity, and that his daughter was quite ready to be married,
  • whenever Prince Bladud liked to come and fetch her.
  • ‘This answer no sooner reached Britain, than the whole nation was
  • transported with joy. Nothing was heard, on all sides, but the sounds of
  • feasting and revelry--except the chinking of money as it was paid in by
  • the people to the collector of the royal treasures, to defray the
  • expenses of the happy ceremony. It was upon this occasion that King Lud,
  • seated on the top of his throne in full council, rose, in the exuberance
  • of his feelings, and commanded the lord chief justice to order in the
  • richest wines and the court minstrels--an act of graciousness which has
  • been, through the ignorance of traditionary historians, attributed to
  • King Cole, in those celebrated lines in which his Majesty is represented
  • as
  • Calling for his pipe, and calling for his pot, And calling for his
  • fiddlers three.
  • Which is an obvious injustice to the memory of King Lud, and a dishonest
  • exaltation of the virtues of King Cole.
  • ‘But, in the midst of all this festivity and rejoicing, there was one
  • individual present, who tasted not when the sparkling wines were poured
  • forth, and who danced not, when the minstrels played. This was no other
  • than Prince Bladud himself, in honour of whose happiness a whole people
  • were, at that very moment, straining alike their throats and purse-
  • strings. The truth was, that the prince, forgetting the undoubted right
  • of the minister for foreign affairs to fall in love on his behalf, had,
  • contrary to every precedent of policy and diplomacy, already fallen in
  • love on his own account, and privately contracted himself unto the fair
  • daughter of a noble Athenian.
  • ‘Here we have a striking example of one of the manifold advantages of
  • civilisation and refinement. If the prince had lived in later days, he
  • might at once have married the object of his father’s choice, and then
  • set himself seriously to work, to relieve himself of the burden which
  • rested heavily upon him. He might have endeavoured to break her heart by
  • a systematic course of insult and neglect; or, if the spirit of her sex,
  • and a proud consciousness of her many wrongs had upheld her under this
  • ill-treatment, he might have sought to take her life, and so get rid of
  • her effectually. But neither mode of relief suggested itself to Prince
  • Bladud; so he solicited a private audience, and told his father.
  • ‘It is an old prerogative of kings to govern everything but their
  • passions. King Lud flew into a frightful rage, tossed his crown up to
  • the ceiling, and caught it again--for in those days kings kept their
  • crowns on their heads, and not in the Tower--stamped the ground, rapped
  • his forehead, wondered why his own flesh and blood rebelled against him,
  • and, finally, calling in his guards, ordered the prince away to instant
  • Confinement in a lofty turret; a course of treatment which the kings of
  • old very generally pursued towards their sons, when their matrimonial
  • inclinations did not happen to point to the same quarter as their own.
  • ‘When Prince Bladud had been shut up in the lofty turret for the greater
  • part of a year, with no better prospect before his bodily eyes than a
  • stone wall, or before his mental vision than prolonged imprisonment, he
  • naturally began to ruminate on a plan of escape, which, after months of
  • preparation, he managed to accomplish; considerately leaving his dinner-
  • knife in the heart of his jailer, lest the poor fellow (who had a
  • family) should be considered privy to his flight, and punished
  • accordingly by the infuriated king.
  • ‘The monarch was frantic at the loss of his son. He knew not on whom to
  • vent his grief and wrath, until fortunately bethinking himself of the
  • lord chamberlain who had brought him home, he struck off his pension and
  • his head together.
  • ‘Meanwhile, the young prince, effectually disguised, wandered on foot
  • through his father’s dominions, cheered and supported in all his
  • hardships by sweet thoughts of the Athenian maid, who was the innocent
  • cause of his weary trials. One day he stopped to rest in a country
  • village; and seeing that there were gay dances going forward on the
  • green, and gay faces passing to and fro, ventured to inquire of a
  • reveller who stood near him, the reason for this rejoicing.
  • ‘“Know you not, O stranger,” was the reply, “of the recent proclamation
  • of our gracious king?”
  • ‘“Proclamation! No. What proclamation?” rejoined the prince--for he had
  • travelled along the by and little-frequented ways, and knew nothing of
  • what had passed upon the public roads, such as they were.
  • ‘“Why,” replied the peasant, “the foreign lady that our prince wished to
  • wed, is married to a foreign noble of her own country, and the king
  • proclaims the fact, and a great public festival besides; for now, of
  • course, Prince Bladud will come back and marry the lady his father
  • chose, who they say is as beautiful as the noonday sun. Your health,
  • sir. God save the king!”
  • ‘The prince remained to hear no more. He fled from the spot, and plunged
  • into the thickest recesses of a neighbouring wood. On, on, he wandered,
  • night and day; beneath the blazing sun, and the cold pale moon; through
  • the dry heat of noon, and the damp cold of night; in the gray light of
  • morn, and the red glare of eve. So heedless was he of time or object,
  • that being bound for Athens, he wandered as far out of his way as Bath.
  • ‘There was no city where Bath stands, then. There was no vestige of
  • human habitation, or sign of man’s resort, to bear the name; but there
  • was the same noble country, the same broad expanse of hill and dale, the
  • same beautiful channel stealing on, far away, the same lofty mountains
  • which, like the troubles of life, viewed at a distance, and partially
  • obscured by the bright mist of its morning, lose their ruggedness and
  • asperity, and seem all ease and softness. Moved by the gentle beauty of
  • the scene, the prince sank upon the green turf, and bathed his swollen
  • feet in his tears.
  • ‘“Oh!” said the unhappy Bladud, clasping his hands, and mournfully
  • raising his eyes towards the sky, “would that my wanderings might end
  • here! Would that these grateful tears with which I now mourn hope
  • misplaced, and love despised, might flow in peace for ever!”
  • ‘The wish was heard. It was in the time of the heathen deities, who used
  • occasionally to take people at their words, with a promptness, in some
  • cases, extremely awkward. The ground opened beneath the prince’s feet;
  • he sank into the chasm; and instantaneously it closed upon his head for
  • ever, save where his hot tears welled up through the earth, and where
  • they have continued to gush forth ever since.
  • ‘It is observable that, to this day, large numbers of elderly ladies and
  • gentlemen who have been disappointed in procuring partners, and almost
  • as many young ones who are anxious to obtain them, repair annually to
  • Bath to drink the waters, from which they derive much strength and
  • comfort. This is most complimentary to the virtue of Prince Bladud’s
  • tears, and strongly corroborative of the veracity of this legend.’
  • Mr. Pickwick yawned several times when he had arrived at the end of this
  • little manuscript, carefully refolded, and replaced it in the inkstand
  • drawer, and then, with a countenance expressive of the utmost weariness,
  • lighted his chamber candle, and went upstairs to bed.
  • He stopped at Mr. Dowler’s door, according to custom, and knocked to say
  • good-night.
  • ‘Ah!’ said Dowler, ‘going to bed? I wish I was. Dismal night. Windy;
  • isn’t it?’
  • ‘Very,’ said Mr. Pickwick. ‘Good-night.’
  • ‘Good-night.’
  • Mr. Pickwick went to his bedchamber, and Mr. Dowler resumed his seat
  • before the fire, in fulfilment of his rash promise to sit up till his
  • wife came home.
  • There are few things more worrying than sitting up for somebody,
  • especially if that somebody be at a party. You cannot help thinking how
  • quickly the time passes with them, which drags so heavily with you; and
  • the more you think of this, the more your hopes of their speedy arrival
  • decline. Clocks tick so loud, too, when you are sitting up alone, and
  • you seem as if you had an under-garment of cobwebs on. First, something
  • tickles your right knee, and then the same sensation irritates your
  • left. You have no sooner changed your position, than it comes again in
  • the arms; when you have fidgeted your limbs into all sorts of queer
  • shapes, you have a sudden relapse in the nose, which you rub as if to
  • rub it off--as there is no doubt you would, if you could. Eyes, too, are
  • mere personal inconveniences; and the wick of one candle gets an inch
  • and a half long, while you are snuffing the other. These, and various
  • other little nervous annoyances, render sitting up for a length of time
  • after everybody else has gone to bed, anything but a cheerful amusement.
  • This was just Mr. Dowler’s opinion, as he sat before the fire, and felt
  • honestly indignant with all the inhuman people at the party who were
  • keeping him up. He was not put into better humour either, by the
  • reflection that he had taken it into his head, early in the evening, to
  • think he had got an ache there, and so stopped at home. At length, after
  • several droppings asleep, and fallings forward towards the bars, and
  • catchings backward soon enough to prevent being branded in the face, Mr.
  • Dowler made up his mind that he would throw himself on the bed in the
  • back room and think--not sleep, of course.
  • ‘I’m a heavy sleeper,’ said Mr. Dowler, as he flung himself on the bed.
  • ‘I must keep awake. I suppose I shall hear a knock here. Yes. I thought
  • so. I can hear the watchman. There he goes. Fainter now, though. A
  • little fainter. He’s turning the corner. Ah!’ When Mr. Dowler arrived at
  • this point, he turned the corner at which he had been long hesitating,
  • and fell fast asleep.
  • Just as the clock struck three, there was blown into the crescent a
  • sedan-chair with Mrs. Dowler inside, borne by one short, fat chairman,
  • and one long, thin one, who had had much ado to keep their bodies
  • perpendicular: to say nothing of the chair. But on that high ground, and
  • in the crescent, which the wind swept round and round as if it were
  • going to tear the paving stones up, its fury was tremendous. They were
  • very glad to set the chair down, and give a good round loud double-knock
  • at the street door.
  • They waited some time, but nobody came.
  • ‘Servants is in the arms o’ Porpus, I think,’ said the short chairman,
  • warming his hands at the attendant link-boy’s torch.
  • ‘I wish he’d give ‘em a squeeze and wake ‘em,’ observed the long one.
  • ‘Knock again, will you, if you please,’ cried Mrs. Dowler from the
  • chair. ‘Knock two or three times, if you please.’
  • The short man was quite willing to get the job over, as soon as
  • possible; so he stood on the step, and gave four or five most startling
  • double-knocks, of eight or ten knocks a-piece, while the long man went
  • into the road, and looked up at the windows for a light.
  • Nobody came. It was all as silent and dark as ever.
  • ‘Dear me!’ said Mrs. Dowler. ‘You must knock again, if you please.’
  • There ain’t a bell, is there, ma’am?’ said the short chairman.
  • ‘Yes, there is,’ interposed the link-boy, ‘I’ve been a-ringing at it
  • ever so long.’
  • ‘It’s only a handle,’ said Mrs. Dowler, ‘the wire’s broken.’
  • ‘I wish the servants’ heads wos,’ growled the long man.
  • ‘I must trouble you to knock again, if you please,’ said Mrs. Dowler,
  • with the utmost politeness.
  • The short man did knock again several times, without producing the
  • smallest effect. The tall man, growing very impatient, then relieved
  • him, and kept on perpetually knocking double-knocks of two loud knocks
  • each, like an insane postman.
  • At length Mr. Winkle began to dream that he was at a club, and that the
  • members being very refractory, the chairman was obliged to hammer the
  • table a good deal to preserve order; then he had a confused notion of an
  • auction room where there were no bidders, and the auctioneer was buying
  • everything in; and ultimately he began to think it just within the
  • bounds of possibility that somebody might be knocking at the street
  • door. To make quite certain, however, he remained quiet in bed for ten
  • minutes or so, and listened; and when he had counted two or three-and-
  • thirty knocks, he felt quite satisfied, and gave himself a great deal of
  • credit for being so wakeful.
  • ‘Rap rap-rap rap-rap rap-ra, ra, ra, ra, ra, rap!’ went the knocker.
  • Mr. Winkle jumped out of bed, wondering very much what could possibly be
  • the matter, and hastily putting on his stockings and slippers, folded
  • his dressing-gown round him, lighted a flat candle from the rush-light
  • that was burning in the fireplace, and hurried downstairs.
  • ‘Here’s somebody comin’ at last, ma’am,’ said the short chairman.
  • ‘I wish I wos behind him vith a bradawl,’ muttered the long one.
  • ‘Who’s there?’ cried Mr. Winkle, undoing the chain.
  • ‘Don’t stop to ask questions, cast-iron head,’ replied the long man,
  • with great disgust, taking it for granted that the inquirer was a
  • footman; ‘but open the door.’
  • ‘Come, look sharp, timber eyelids,’ added the other encouragingly.
  • Mr. Winkle, being half asleep, obeyed the command mechanically, opened
  • the door a little, and peeped out. The first thing he saw, was the red
  • glare of the link-boy’s torch. Startled by the sudden fear that the
  • house might be on fire, he hastily threw the door wide open, and holding
  • the candle above his head, stared eagerly before him, not quite certain
  • whether what he saw was a sedan-chair or a fire-engine. At this instant
  • there came a violent gust of wind; the light was blown out; Mr. Winkle
  • felt himself irresistibly impelled on to the steps; and the door blew
  • to, with a loud crash.
  • ‘Well, young man, now you _have _done it!’ said the short chairman.
  • Mr. Winkle, catching sight of a lady’s face at the window of the sedan,
  • turned hastily round, plied the knocker with all his might and main, and
  • called frantically upon the chairman to take the chair away again.
  • ‘Take it away, take it away,’ cried Mr. Winkle. ‘Here’s somebody coming
  • out of another house; put me into the chair. Hide me! Do something with
  • me!’
  • All this time he was shivering with cold; and every time he raised his
  • hand to the knocker, the wind took the dressing-gown in a most
  • unpleasant manner.
  • ‘The people are coming down the crescent now. There are ladies with ‘em;
  • cover me up with something. Stand before me!’ roared Mr. Winkle. But the
  • chairmen were too much exhausted with laughing to afford him the
  • slightest assistance, and the ladies were every moment approaching
  • nearer and nearer.
  • Mr. Winkle gave a last hopeless knock; the ladies were only a few doors
  • off. He threw away the extinguished candle, which, all this time he had
  • held above his head, and fairly bolted into the sedan-chair where Mrs.
  • Dowler was.
  • Now, Mrs. Craddock had heard the knocking and the voices at last; and,
  • only waiting to put something smarter on her head than her nightcap, ran
  • down into the front drawing-room to make sure that it was the right
  • party. Throwing up the window-sash as Mr. Winkle was rushing into the
  • chair, she no sooner caught sight of what was going forward below, than
  • she raised a vehement and dismal shriek, and implored Mr. Dowler to get
  • up directly, for his wife was running away with another gentleman.
  • Upon this, Mr. Dowler bounced off the bed as abruptly as an India-rubber
  • ball, and rushing into the front room, arrived at one window just as Mr.
  • Pickwick threw up the other, when the first object that met the gaze of
  • both, was Mr. Winkle bolting into the sedan-chair.
  • ‘Watchman,’ shouted Dowler furiously, ‘stop him--hold him--keep him
  • tight--shut him in, till I come down. I’ll cut his throat--give me a
  • knife--from ear to ear, Mrs. Craddock--I will!’ And breaking from the
  • shrieking landlady, and from Mr. Pickwick, the indignant husband seized
  • a small supper-knife, and tore into the street.
  • But Mr. Winkle didn’t wait for him. He no sooner heard the horrible
  • threat of the valorous Dowler, than he bounced out of the sedan, quite
  • as quickly as he had bounced in, and throwing off his slippers into the
  • road, took to his heels and tore round the crescent, hotly pursued by
  • Dowler and the watchman. He kept ahead; the door was open as he came
  • round the second time; he rushed in, slammed it in Dowler’s face,
  • mounted to his bedroom, locked the door, piled a wash-hand-stand, chest
  • of drawers, and a table against it, and packed up a few necessaries
  • ready for flight with the first ray of morning.
  • Dowler came up to the outside of the door; avowed, through the keyhole,
  • his steadfast determination of cutting Mr. Winkle’s throat next day;
  • and, after a great confusion of voices in the drawing-room, amidst which
  • that of Mr. Pickwick was distinctly heard endeavouring to make peace,
  • the inmates dispersed to their several bed-chambers, and all was quiet
  • once more.
  • It is not unlikely that the inquiry may be made, where Mr. Weller was,
  • all this time? We will state where he was, in the next chapter.
  • CHAPTER XXXVII. HONOURABLY ACCOUNTS FOR MR. WELLER’S ABSENCE, BY
  • DESCRIBING A SOIREE TO WHICH HE WAS INVITED AND WENT; ALSO RELATES HOW
  • HE WAS ENTRUSTED BY MR. PICKWICK WITH A PRIVATE MISSION OF DELICACY AND
  • IMPORTANCE
  • Mr. Weller,’ said Mrs. Craddock, upon the morning of this very eventful
  • day, ‘here’s a letter for you.’
  • ‘Wery odd that,’ said Sam; ‘I’m afeerd there must be somethin’ the
  • matter, for I don’t recollect any gen’l’m’n in my circle of acquaintance
  • as is capable o’ writin’ one.’
  • ‘Perhaps something uncommon has taken place,’ observed Mrs. Craddock.
  • ‘It must be somethin’ wery uncommon indeed, as could perduce a letter
  • out o’ any friend o’ mine,’ replied Sam, shaking his head dubiously;
  • ‘nothin’ less than a nat’ral conwulsion, as the young gen’l’m’n observed
  • ven he wos took with fits. It can’t be from the gov’ner,’ said Sam,
  • looking at the direction. ‘He always prints, I know, ‘cos he learnt
  • writin’ from the large bills in the booking-offices. It’s a wery strange
  • thing now, where this here letter can ha’ come from.’
  • As Sam said this, he did what a great many people do when they are
  • uncertain about the writer of a note--looked at the seal, and then at
  • the front, and then at the back, and then at the sides, and then at the
  • superscription; and, as a last resource, thought perhaps he might as
  • well look at the inside, and try to find out from that.
  • ‘It’s wrote on gilt-edged paper,’ said Sam, as he unfolded it, ‘and
  • sealed in bronze vax vith the top of a door key. Now for it.’ And, with
  • a very grave face, Mr. Weller slowly read as follows--
  • ‘A select company of the Bath footmen presents their compliments to Mr.
  • Weller, and requests the pleasure of his company this evening, to a
  • friendly swarry, consisting of a boiled leg of mutton with the usual
  • trimmings. The swarry to be on table at half-past nine o’clock
  • punctually.’
  • This was inclosed in another note, which ran thus--
  • ‘Mr. John Smauker, the gentleman who had the pleasure of meeting Mr.
  • Weller at the house of their mutual acquaintance, Mr. Bantam, a few days
  • since, begs to inclose Mr. Weller the herewith invitation. If Mr. Weller
  • will call on Mr. John Smauker at nine o’clock, Mr. John Smauker will
  • have the pleasure of introducing Mr. Weller.
  • (Signed) ‘_John Smauker_.’
  • The envelope was directed to blank Weller, Esq., at Mr. Pickwick’s; and
  • in a parenthesis, in the left hand corner, were the words ‘airy bell,’
  • as an instruction to the bearer.
  • ‘Vell,’ said Sam, ‘this is comin’ it rayther powerful, this is. I never
  • heerd a biled leg o’ mutton called a swarry afore. I wonder wot they’d
  • call a roast one.’
  • However, without waiting to debate the point, Sam at once betook himself
  • into the presence of Mr. Pickwick, and requested leave of absence for
  • that evening, which was readily granted. With this permission and the
  • street-door key, Sam Weller issued forth a little before the appointed
  • time, and strolled leisurely towards Queen Square, which he no sooner
  • gained than he had the satisfaction of beholding Mr. John Smauker
  • leaning his powdered head against a lamp-post at a short distance off,
  • smoking a cigar through an amber tube.
  • ‘How do you do, Mr. Weller?’ said Mr. John Smauker, raising his hat
  • gracefully with one hand, while he gently waved the other in a
  • condescending manner. ‘How do you do, Sir?’
  • ‘Why, reasonably conwalessent,’ replied Sam. ‘How do _you _find
  • yourself, my dear feller?’
  • ‘Only so so,’ said Mr. John Smauker.
  • ‘Ah, you’ve been a-workin’ too hard,’ observed Sam. ‘I was fearful you
  • would; it won’t do, you know; you must not give way to that ‘ere
  • uncompromisin’ spirit o’ yourn.’
  • ‘It’s not so much that, Mr. Weller,’ replied Mr. John Smauker, ‘as bad
  • wine; I’m afraid I’ve been dissipating.’
  • ‘Oh! that’s it, is it?’ said Sam; ‘that’s a wery bad complaint, that.’
  • ‘And yet the temptation, you see, Mr. Weller,’ observed Mr. John
  • Smauker.
  • ‘Ah, to be sure,’ said Sam.
  • ‘Plunged into the very vortex of society, you know, Mr. Weller,’ said
  • Mr. John Smauker, with a sigh.
  • ‘Dreadful, indeed!’ rejoined Sam.
  • ‘But it’s always the way,’ said Mr. John Smauker; ‘if your destiny leads
  • you into public life, and public station, you must expect to be
  • subjected to temptations which other people is free from, Mr. Weller.’
  • ‘Precisely what my uncle said, ven he vent into the public line,’
  • remarked Sam, ‘and wery right the old gen’l’m’n wos, for he drank
  • hisself to death in somethin’ less than a quarter.’
  • Mr. John Smauker looked deeply indignant at any parallel being drawn
  • between himself and the deceased gentleman in question; but, as Sam’s
  • face was in the most immovable state of calmness, he thought better of
  • it, and looked affable again.
  • ‘Perhaps we had better be walking,’ said Mr. Smauker, consulting a
  • copper timepiece which dwelt at the bottom of a deep watch-pocket, and
  • was raised to the surface by means of a black string, with a copper key
  • at the other end.
  • ‘P’raps we had,’ replied Sam, ‘or they’ll overdo the swarry, and that’ll
  • spile it.’
  • ‘Have you drank the waters, Mr. Weller?’ inquired his companion, as they
  • walked towards High Street.
  • ‘Once,’ replied Sam.
  • ‘What did you think of ‘em, Sir?’
  • ‘I thought they was particklery unpleasant,’ replied Sam.
  • ‘Ah,’ said Mr. John Smauker, ‘you disliked the killibeate taste,
  • perhaps?’
  • ‘I don’t know much about that ‘ere,’ said Sam. ‘I thought they’d a wery
  • strong flavour o’ warm flat irons.’
  • ‘That _is_ the killibeate, Mr. Weller,’ observed Mr. John Smauker
  • contemptuously.
  • ‘Well, if it is, it’s a wery inexpressive word, that’s all,’ said Sam.
  • ‘It may be, but I ain’t much in the chimical line myself, so I can’t
  • say.’ And here, to the great horror of Mr. John Smauker, Sam Weller
  • began to whistle.
  • ‘I beg your pardon, Mr. Weller,’ said Mr. John Smauker, agonised at the
  • exceeding ungenteel sound, ‘will you take my arm?’
  • ‘Thank’ee, you’re wery good, but I won’t deprive you of it,’ replied
  • Sam. ‘I’ve rayther a way o’ putting my hands in my pockets, if it’s all
  • the same to you.’ As Sam said this, he suited the action to the word,
  • and whistled far louder than before.
  • ‘This way,’ said his new friend, apparently much relieved as they turned
  • down a by-street; ‘we shall soon be there.’
  • ‘Shall we?’ said Sam, quite unmoved by the announcement of his close
  • vicinity to the select footmen of Bath.
  • ‘Yes,’ said Mr. John Smauker. ‘Don’t be alarmed, Mr. Weller.’
  • ‘Oh, no,’ said Sam.
  • ‘You’ll see some very handsome uniforms, Mr. Weller,’ continued Mr. John
  • Smauker; ‘and perhaps you’ll find some of the gentlemen rather high at
  • first, you know, but they’ll soon come round.’
  • ‘That’s wery kind on ‘em,’ replied Sam.
  • ‘And you know,’ resumed Mr. John Smauker, with an air of sublime
  • protection--‘you know, as you’re a stranger, perhaps, they’ll be rather
  • hard upon you at first.’
  • ‘They won’t be wery cruel, though, will they?’ inquired Sam.
  • ‘No, no,’ replied Mr. John Smauker, pulling forth the fox’s head, and
  • taking a gentlemanly pinch. ‘There are some funny dogs among us, and
  • they will have their joke, you know; but you mustn’t mind ‘em, you
  • mustn’t mind ‘em.’
  • ‘I’ll try and bear up agin such a reg’lar knock down o’ talent,’ replied
  • Sam.
  • ‘That’s right,’ said Mr. John Smauker, putting forth his fox’s head, and
  • elevating his own; ‘I’ll stand by you.’
  • By this time they had reached a small greengrocer’s shop, which Mr. John
  • Smauker entered, followed by Sam, who, the moment he got behind him,
  • relapsed into a series of the very broadest and most unmitigated grins,
  • and manifested other demonstrations of being in a highly enviable state
  • of inward merriment.
  • Crossing the greengrocer’s shop, and putting their hats on the stairs in
  • the little passage behind it, they walked into a small parlour; and here
  • the full splendour of the scene burst upon Mr. Weller’s view.
  • A couple of tables were put together in the middle of the parlour,
  • covered with three or four cloths of different ages and dates of
  • washing, arranged to look as much like one as the circumstances of the
  • case would allow. Upon these were laid knives and forks for six or eight
  • people. Some of the knife handles were green, others red, and a few
  • yellow; and as all the forks were black, the combination of colours was
  • exceedingly striking. Plates for a corresponding number of guests were
  • warming behind the fender; and the guests themselves were warming before
  • it: the chief and most important of whom appeared to be a stoutish
  • gentleman in a bright crimson coat with long tails, vividly red
  • breeches, and a cocked hat, who was standing with his back to the fire,
  • and had apparently just entered, for besides retaining his cocked hat on
  • his head, he carried in his hand a high stick, such as gentlemen of his
  • profession usually elevate in a sloping position over the roofs of
  • carriages.
  • ‘Smauker, my lad, your fin,’ said the gentleman with the cocked hat.
  • Mr. Smauker dovetailed the top joint of his right-hand little finger
  • into that of the gentleman with the cocked hat, and said he was charmed
  • to see him looking so well.
  • ‘Well, they tell me I am looking pretty blooming,’ said the man with the
  • cocked hat, ‘and it’s a wonder, too. I’ve been following our old woman
  • about, two hours a day, for the last fortnight; and if a constant
  • contemplation of the manner in which she hooks-and-eyes that infernal
  • lavender-coloured old gown of hers behind, isn’t enough to throw anybody
  • into a low state of despondency for life, stop my quarter’s salary.’
  • At this, the assembled selections laughed very heartily; and one
  • gentleman in a yellow waistcoat, with a coach-trimming border, whispered
  • a neighbour in green-foil smalls, that Tuckle was in spirits to-night.
  • ‘By the bye,’ said Mr. Tuckle, ‘Smauker, my boy, you--’ The remainder of
  • the sentence was forwarded into Mr. John Smauker’s ear, by whisper.
  • ‘Oh, dear me, I quite forgot,’ said Mr. John Smauker. ‘Gentlemen, my
  • friend Mr. Weller.’
  • ‘Sorry to keep the fire off you, Weller,’ said Mr. Tuckle, with a
  • familiar nod. ‘Hope you’re not cold, Weller.’
  • ‘Not by no means, Blazes,’ replied Sam. ‘It ‘ud be a wery chilly subject
  • as felt cold wen you stood opposite. You’d save coals if they put you
  • behind the fender in the waitin’-room at a public office, you would.’
  • As this retort appeared to convey rather a personal allusion to Mr.
  • Tuckle’s crimson livery, that gentleman looked majestic for a few
  • seconds, but gradually edging away from the fire, broke into a forced
  • smile, and said it wasn’t bad.
  • ‘Wery much obliged for your good opinion, sir,’ replied Sam. ‘We shall
  • get on by degrees, I des-say. We’ll try a better one by and bye.’
  • At this point the conversation was interrupted by the arrival of a
  • gentleman in orange-coloured plush, accompanied by another selection in
  • purple cloth, with a great extent of stocking. The new-comers having
  • been welcomed by the old ones, Mr. Tuckle put the question that supper
  • be ordered in, which was carried unanimously.
  • The greengrocer and his wife then arranged upon the table a boiled leg
  • of mutton, hot, with caper sauce, turnips, and potatoes. Mr. Tuckle took
  • the chair, and was supported at the other end of the board by the
  • gentleman in orange plush. The greengrocer put on a pair of wash-leather
  • gloves to hand the plates with, and stationed himself behind Mr.
  • Tuckle’s chair.
  • ‘Harris,’ said Mr. Tuckle, in a commanding tone.
  • ‘Sir,’ said the greengrocer.
  • ‘Have you got your gloves on?’
  • Yes, Sir.’
  • ‘Then take the kiver off.’
  • ‘Yes, Sir.’
  • The greengrocer did as he was told, with a show of great humility, and
  • obsequiously handed Mr. Tuckle the carving-knife; in doing which, he
  • accidentally gaped.
  • ‘What do you mean by that, Sir?’ said Mr. Tuckle, with great asperity.
  • ‘I beg your pardon, Sir,’ replied the crestfallen greengrocer, ‘I didn’t
  • mean to do it, Sir; I was up very late last night, Sir.’
  • ‘I tell you what my opinion of you is, Harris,’ said Mr. Tuckle, with a
  • most impressive air, ‘you’re a wulgar beast.’
  • ‘I hope, gentlemen,’ said Harris, ‘that you won’t be severe with me,
  • gentlemen. I am very much obliged to you indeed, gentlemen, for your
  • patronage, and also for your recommendations, gentlemen, whenever
  • additional assistance in waiting is required. I hope, gentlemen, I give
  • satisfaction.’
  • ‘No, you don’t, Sir,’ said Mr. Tuckle. ‘Very far from it, Sir.’
  • ‘We consider you an inattentive reskel,’ said the gentleman in the
  • orange plush.
  • ‘And a low thief,’ added the gentleman in the green-foil smalls.
  • ‘And an unreclaimable blaygaird,’ added the gentleman in purple.
  • The poor greengrocer bowed very humbly while these little epithets were
  • bestowed upon him, in the true spirit of the very smallest tyranny; and
  • when everybody had said something to show his superiority, Mr. Tuckle
  • proceeded to carve the leg of mutton, and to help the company.
  • This important business of the evening had hardly commenced, when the
  • door was thrown briskly open, and another gentleman in a light-blue
  • suit, and leaden buttons, made his appearance.
  • ‘Against the rules,’ said Mr. Tuckle. ‘Too late, too late.’
  • ‘No, no; positively I couldn’t help it,’ said the gentleman in blue. ‘I
  • appeal to the company. An affair of gallantry now, an appointment at the
  • theayter.’
  • ‘Oh, that indeed,’ said the gentleman in the orange plush.
  • ‘Yes; raly now, honour bright,’ said the man in blue. ‘I made a promese
  • to fetch our youngest daughter at half-past ten, and she is such an
  • uncauminly fine gal, that I raly hadn’t the ‘art to disappint her. No
  • offence to the present company, Sir, but a petticut, sir--a petticut,
  • Sir, is irrevokeable.’
  • ‘I begin to suspect there’s something in that quarter,’ said Tuckle, as
  • the new-comer took his seat next Sam, ‘I’ve remarked, once or twice,
  • that she leans very heavy on your shoulder when she gets in and out of
  • the carriage.’
  • ‘Oh, raly, raly, Tuckle, you shouldn’t,’ said the man in blue. ‘It’s not
  • fair. I may have said to one or two friends that she wos a very divine
  • creechure, and had refused one or two offers without any hobvus cause,
  • but--no, no, no, indeed, Tuckle--before strangers, too--it’s not right--
  • you shouldn’t. Delicacy, my dear friend, delicacy!’ And the man in blue,
  • pulling up his neckerchief, and adjusting his coat cuffs, nodded and
  • frowned as if there were more behind, which he could say if he liked,
  • but was bound in honour to suppress.
  • The man in blue being a light-haired, stiff-necked, free and easy sort
  • of footman, with a swaggering air and pert face, had attracted Mr.
  • Weller’s special attention at first, but when he began to come out in
  • this way, Sam felt more than ever disposed to cultivate his
  • acquaintance; so he launched himself into the conversation at once, with
  • characteristic independence.
  • ‘Your health, Sir,’ said Sam. ‘I like your conversation much. I think
  • it’s wery pretty.’
  • At this the man in blue smiled, as if it were a compliment he was well
  • used to; but looked approvingly on Sam at the same time, and said he
  • hoped he should be better acquainted with him, for without any flattery
  • at all he seemed to have the makings of a very nice fellow about him,
  • and to be just the man after his own heart.
  • ‘You’re wery good, sir,’ said Sam. ‘What a lucky feller you are!’
  • ‘How do you mean?’ inquired the gentleman in blue.
  • ‘That ‘ere young lady,’ replied Sam. ‘She knows wot’s wot, she does. Ah!
  • I see.’ Mr. Weller closed one eye, and shook his head from side to side,
  • in a manner which was highly gratifying to the personal vanity of the
  • gentleman in blue.
  • ‘I’m afraid you’re a cunning fellow, Mr. Weller,’ said that individual.
  • ‘No, no,’ said Sam. ‘I leave all that ‘ere to you. It’s a great deal
  • more in your way than mine, as the gen’l’m’n on the right side o’ the
  • garden vall said to the man on the wrong un, ven the mad bull vos a-
  • comin’ up the lane.’
  • ‘Well, well, Mr. Weller,’ said the gentleman in blue, ‘I think she has
  • remarked my air and manner, Mr. Weller.’
  • ‘I should think she couldn’t wery well be off o’ that,’ said Sam.
  • ‘Have you any little thing of that kind in hand, sir?’ inquired the
  • favoured gentleman in blue, drawing a toothpick from his waistcoat
  • pocket.
  • ‘Not exactly,’ said Sam. ‘There’s no daughters at my place, else o’
  • course I should ha’ made up to vun on ‘em. As it is, I don’t think I can
  • do with anythin’ under a female markis. I might keep up with a young
  • ‘ooman o’ large property as hadn’t a title, if she made wery fierce love
  • to me. Not else.’
  • ‘Of course not, Mr. Weller,’ said the gentleman in blue, ‘one can’t be
  • troubled, you know; and _we_ know, Mr. Weller--we, who are men of the
  • world--that a good uniform must work its way with the women, sooner or
  • later. In fact, that’s the only thing, between you and me, that makes
  • the service worth entering into.’
  • ‘Just so,’ said Sam. ‘That’s it, o’ course.’
  • When this confidential dialogue had gone thus far, glasses were placed
  • round, and every gentleman ordered what he liked best, before the
  • public-house shut up. The gentleman in blue, and the man in orange, who
  • were the chief exquisites of the party, ordered ‘cold shrub and water,’
  • but with the others, gin-and-water, sweet, appeared to be the favourite
  • beverage. Sam called the greengrocer a ‘desp’rate willin,’ and ordered a
  • large bowl of punch--two circumstances which seemed to raise him very
  • much in the opinion of the selections.
  • ‘Gentlemen,’ said the man in blue, with an air of the most consummate
  • dandyism, ‘I’ll give you the ladies; come.’
  • ‘Hear, hear!’ said Sam. ‘The young mississes.’
  • Here there was a loud cry of ‘Order,’ and Mr. John Smauker, as the
  • gentleman who had introduced Mr. Weller into that company, begged to
  • inform him that the word he had just made use of, was unparliamentary.
  • ‘Which word was that ‘ere, Sir?’ inquired Sam.
  • ‘Mississes, Sir,’ replied Mr. John Smauker, with an alarming frown. ‘We
  • don’t recognise such distinctions here.’
  • ‘Oh, wery good,’ said Sam; ‘then I’ll amend the obserwation and call ‘em
  • the dear creeturs, if Blazes vill allow me.’
  • Some doubt appeared to exist in the mind of the gentleman in the green-
  • foil smalls, whether the chairman could be legally appealed to, as
  • ‘Blazes,’ but as the company seemed more disposed to stand upon their
  • own rights than his, the question was not raised. The man with the
  • cocked hat breathed short, and looked long at Sam, but apparently
  • thought it as well to say nothing, in case he should get the worst of
  • it. After a short silence, a gentleman in an embroidered coat reaching
  • down to his heels, and a waistcoat of the same which kept one half of
  • his legs warm, stirred his gin-and-water with great energy, and putting
  • himself upon his feet, all at once by a violent effort, said he was
  • desirous of offering a few remarks to the company, whereupon the person
  • in the cocked hat had no doubt that the company would be very happy to
  • hear any remarks that the man in the long coat might wish to offer.
  • ‘I feel a great delicacy, gentlemen, in coming for’ard,’ said the man in
  • the long coat, ‘having the misforchune to be a coachman, and being only
  • admitted as a honorary member of these agreeable swarrys, but I do feel
  • myself bound, gentlemen--drove into a corner, if I may use the
  • expression--to make known an afflicting circumstance which has come to
  • my knowledge; which has happened I may say within the soap of my
  • everyday contemplation. Gentlemen, our friend Mr. Whiffers (everybody
  • looked at the individual in orange), our friend Mr. Whiffers has
  • resigned.’
  • Universal astonishment fell upon the hearers. Each gentleman looked in
  • his neighbour’s face, and then transferred his glance to the upstanding
  • coachman.
  • ‘You may well be sapparised, gentlemen,’ said the coachman. ‘I will not
  • wenchure to state the reasons of this irrepairabel loss to the service,
  • but I will beg Mr. Whiffers to state them himself, for the improvement
  • and imitation of his admiring friends.’
  • The suggestion being loudly approved of, Mr. Whiffers explained. He said
  • he certainly could have wished to have continued to hold the appointment
  • he had just resigned. The uniform was extremely rich and expensive, the
  • females of the family was most agreeable, and the duties of the
  • situation was not, he was bound to say, too heavy; the principal service
  • that was required of him, being, that he should look out of the hall
  • window as much as possible, in company with another gentleman, who had
  • also resigned. He could have wished to have spared that company the
  • painful and disgusting detail on which he was about to enter, but as the
  • explanation had been demanded of him, he had no alternative but to
  • state, boldly and distinctly, that he had been required to eat cold
  • meat.
  • It is impossible to conceive the disgust which this avowal awakened in
  • the bosoms of the hearers. Loud cries of ‘Shame,’ mingled with groans
  • and hisses, prevailed for a quarter of an hour.
  • Mr. Whiffers then added that he feared a portion of this outrage might
  • be traced to his own forbearing and accommodating disposition. He had a
  • distinct recollection of having once consented to eat salt butter, and
  • he had, moreover, on an occasion of sudden sickness in the house, so far
  • forgotten himself as to carry a coal-scuttle up to the second floor. He
  • trusted he had not lowered himself in the good opinion of his friends by
  • this frank confession of his faults; and he hoped the promptness with
  • which he had resented the last unmanly outrage on his feelings, to which
  • he had referred, would reinstate him in their good opinion, if he had.
  • Mr. Whiffers’s address was responded to, with a shout of admiration, and
  • the health of the interesting martyr was drunk in a most enthusiastic
  • manner; for this, the martyr returned thanks, and proposed their
  • visitor, Mr. Weller--a gentleman whom he had not the pleasure of an
  • intimate acquaintance with, but who was the friend of Mr. John Smauker,
  • which was a sufficient letter of recommendation to any society of
  • gentlemen whatever, or wherever. On this account, he should have been
  • disposed to have given Mr. Weller’s health with all the honours, if his
  • friends had been drinking wine; but as they were taking spirits by way
  • of a change, and as it might be inconvenient to empty a tumbler at every
  • toast, he should propose that the honours be understood.
  • At the conclusion of this speech, everybody took a sip in honour of Sam;
  • and Sam having ladled out, and drunk, two full glasses of punch in
  • honour of himself, returned thanks in a neat speech.
  • ‘Wery much obliged to you, old fellers,’ said Sam, ladling away at the
  • punch in the most unembarrassed manner possible, ‘for this here
  • compliment; which, comin’ from sich a quarter, is wery overvelmin’. I’ve
  • heered a good deal on you as a body, but I will say, that I never
  • thought you was sich uncommon nice men as I find you air. I only hope
  • you’ll take care o’ yourselves, and not compromise nothin’ o’ your
  • dignity, which is a wery charmin’ thing to see, when one’s out a-
  • walkin’, and has always made me wery happy to look at, ever since I was
  • a boy about half as high as the brass-headed stick o’ my wery
  • respectable friend, Blazes, there. As to the wictim of oppression in the
  • suit o’ brimstone, all I can say of him, is, that I hope he’ll get jist
  • as good a berth as he deserves; in vitch case it’s wery little cold
  • swarry as ever he’ll be troubled with agin.’
  • Here Sam sat down with a pleasant smile, and his speech having been
  • vociferously applauded, the company broke up.
  • ‘Wy, you don’t mean to say you’re a-goin’ old feller?’ said Sam Weller
  • to his friend, Mr. John Smauker.
  • ‘I must, indeed,’ said Mr. Smauker; ‘I promised Bantam.’
  • ‘Oh, wery well,’ said Sam; ‘that’s another thing. P’raps he’d resign if
  • you disappinted him. You ain’t a-goin’, Blazes?’
  • ‘Yes, I am,’ said the man with the cocked hat.
  • ‘Wot, and leave three-quarters of a bowl of punch behind you!’ said Sam;
  • ‘nonsense, set down agin.’
  • Mr. Tuckle was not proof against this invitation. He laid aside the
  • cocked hat and stick which he had just taken up, and said he would have
  • one glass, for good fellowship’s sake.
  • As the gentleman in blue went home the same way as Mr. Tuckle, he was
  • prevailed upon to stop too. When the punch was about half gone, Sam
  • ordered in some oysters from the green-grocer’s shop; and the effect of
  • both was so extremely exhilarating, that Mr. Tuckle, dressed out with
  • the cocked hat and stick, danced the frog hornpipe among the shells on
  • the table, while the gentleman in blue played an accompaniment upon an
  • ingenious musical instrument formed of a hair-comb upon a curl-paper. At
  • last, when the punch was all gone, and the night nearly so, they sallied
  • forth to see each other home. Mr. Tuckle no sooner got into the open
  • air, than he was seized with a sudden desire to lie on the curbstone;
  • Sam thought it would be a pity to contradict him, and so let him have
  • his own way. As the cocked hat would have been spoiled if left there,
  • Sam very considerately flattened it down on the head of the gentleman in
  • blue, and putting the big stick in his hand, propped him up against his
  • own street-door, rang the bell, and walked quietly home.
  • At a much earlier hour next morning than his usual time of rising, Mr.
  • Pickwick walked downstairs completely dressed, and rang the bell.
  • ‘Sam,’ said Mr. Pickwick, when Mr. Weller appeared in reply to the
  • summons, ‘shut the door.’
  • Mr. Weller did so.
  • ‘There was an unfortunate occurrence here, last night, Sam,’ said Mr.
  • Pickwick, ‘which gave Mr. Winkle some cause to apprehend violence from
  • Mr. Dowler.’
  • ‘So I’ve heerd from the old lady downstairs, Sir,’ replied Sam.
  • ‘And I’m sorry to say, Sam,’ continued Mr. Pickwick, with a most
  • perplexed countenance, ‘that in dread of this violence, Mr. Winkle has
  • gone away.’
  • ‘Gone avay!’ said Sam.
  • ‘Left the house early this morning, without the slightest previous
  • communication with me,’ replied Mr. Pickwick. ‘And is gone, I know not
  • where.’
  • ‘He should ha’ stopped and fought it out, Sir,’ replied Sam
  • contemptuously. ‘It wouldn’t take much to settle that ‘ere Dowler, Sir.’
  • ‘Well, Sam,’ said Mr. Pickwick, ‘I may have my doubts of his great
  • bravery and determination also. But however that may be, Mr. Winkle is
  • gone. He must be found, Sam. Found and brought back to me.’
  • And s’pose he won’t come back, Sir?’ said Sam.
  • ‘He must be made, Sam,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Who’s to do it, Sir?’ inquired Sam, with a smile.
  • ‘You,’ replied Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Wery good, Sir.’
  • With these words Mr. Weller left the room, and immediately afterwards
  • was heard to shut the street door. In two hours’ time he returned with
  • so much coolness as if he had been despatched on the most ordinary
  • message possible, and brought the information that an individual, in
  • every respect answering Mr. Winkle’s description, had gone over to
  • Bristol that morning, by the branch coach from the Royal Hotel.
  • ‘Sam,’ said Mr. Pickwick, grasping his hand, ‘you’re a capital fellow;
  • an invaluable fellow. You must follow him, Sam.’
  • ‘Cert’nly, Sir,’ replied Mr. Weller.
  • ‘The instant you discover him, write to me immediately, Sam,’ said Mr.
  • Pickwick. ‘If he attempts to run away from you, knock him down, or lock
  • him up. You have my full authority, Sam.’
  • ‘I’ll be wery careful, sir,’ rejoined Sam.
  • ‘You’ll tell him,’ said Mr. Pickwick, ‘that I am highly excited, highly
  • displeased, and naturally indignant, at the very extraordinary course he
  • has thought proper to pursue.’
  • ‘I will, Sir,’ replied Sam.
  • ‘You’ll tell him,’ said Mr. Pickwick, ‘that if he does not come back to
  • this very house, with you, he will come back with me, for I will come
  • and fetch him.’
  • ‘I’ll mention that ‘ere, Sir,’ rejoined Sam.
  • ‘You think you can find him, Sam?’ said Mr. Pickwick, looking earnestly
  • in his face.
  • ‘Oh, I’ll find him if he’s anyvere,’ rejoined Sam, with great
  • confidence.
  • ‘Very well,’ said Mr. Pickwick. ‘Then the sooner you go the better.’
  • With these instructions, Mr. Pickwick placed a sum of money in the hands
  • of his faithful servitor, and ordered him to start for Bristol
  • immediately, in pursuit of the fugitive.
  • Sam put a few necessaries in a carpet-bag, and was ready for starting.
  • He stopped when he had got to the end of the passage, and walking
  • quietly back, thrust his head in at the parlour door.
  • ‘Sir,’ whispered Sam.
  • ‘Well, Sam,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘I fully understands my instructions, do I, Sir?’ inquired Sam.
  • ‘I hope so,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘It’s reg’larly understood about the knockin’ down, is it, Sir?’
  • inquired Sam.
  • ‘Perfectly,’ replied Pickwick. ‘Thoroughly. Do what you think necessary.
  • You have my orders.’
  • Sam gave a nod of intelligence, and withdrawing his head from the door,
  • set forth on his pilgrimage with a light heart.
  • CHAPTER XXXVIII. HOW MR. WINKLE, WHEN HE STEPPED OUT OF THE FRYING-PAN,
  • WALKED GENTLY AND COMFORTABLY INTO THE FIRE
  • The ill-starred gentleman who had been the unfortunate cause of the
  • unusual noise and disturbance which alarmed the inhabitants of the Royal
  • Crescent in manner and form already described, after passing a night of
  • great confusion and anxiety, left the roof beneath which his friends
  • still slumbered, bound he knew not whither. The excellent and
  • considerate feelings which prompted Mr. Winkle to take this step can
  • never be too highly appreciated or too warmly extolled. ‘If,’ reasoned
  • Mr. Winkle with himself--‘if this Dowler attempts (as I have no doubt he
  • will) to carry into execution his threat of personal violence against
  • myself, it will be incumbent on me to call him out. He has a wife; that
  • wife is attached to, and dependent on him. Heavens! If I should kill him
  • in the blindness of my wrath, what would be my feelings ever
  • afterwards!’ This painful consideration operated so powerfully on the
  • feelings of the humane young man, as to cause his knees to knock
  • together, and his countenance to exhibit alarming manifestations of
  • inward emotion. Impelled by such reflections, he grasped his carpet-bag,
  • and creeping stealthily downstairs, shut the detestable street door with
  • as little noise as possible, and walked off. Bending his steps towards
  • the Royal Hotel, he found a coach on the point of starting for Bristol,
  • and, thinking Bristol as good a place for his purpose as any other he
  • could go to, he mounted the box, and reached his place of destination in
  • such time as the pair of horses, who went the whole stage and back
  • again, twice a day or more, could be reasonably supposed to arrive
  • there.
  • He took up his quarters at the Bush, and designing to postpone any
  • communication by letter with Mr. Pickwick until it was probable that Mr.
  • Dowler’s wrath might have in some degree evaporated, walked forth to
  • view the city, which struck him as being a shade more dirty than any
  • place he had ever seen. Having inspected the docks and shipping, and
  • viewed the cathedral, he inquired his way to Clifton, and being directed
  • thither, took the route which was pointed out to him. But as the
  • pavements of Bristol are not the widest or cleanest upon earth, so its
  • streets are not altogether the straightest or least intricate; and Mr.
  • Winkle, being greatly puzzled by their manifold windings and twistings,
  • looked about him for a decent shop in which he could apply afresh for
  • counsel and instruction.
  • His eye fell upon a newly-painted tenement which had been recently
  • converted into something between a shop and a private house, and which a
  • red lamp, projecting over the fanlight of the street door, would have
  • sufficiently announced as the residence of a medical practitioner, even
  • if the word ‘Surgery’ had not been inscribed in golden characters on a
  • wainscot ground, above the window of what, in times bygone, had been the
  • front parlour. Thinking this an eligible place wherein to make his
  • inquiries, Mr. Winkle stepped into the little shop where the gilt-
  • labelled drawers and bottles were; and finding nobody there, knocked
  • with a half-crown on the counter, to attract the attention of anybody
  • who might happen to be in the back parlour, which he judged to be the
  • innermost and peculiar sanctum of the establishment, from the repetition
  • of the word surgery on the door--painted in white letters this time, by
  • way of taking off the monotony.
  • At the first knock, a sound, as of persons fencing with fire-irons,
  • which had until now been very audible, suddenly ceased; at the second, a
  • studious-looking young gentleman in green spectacles, with a very large
  • book in his hand, glided quietly into the shop, and stepping behind the
  • counter, requested to know the visitor’s pleasure.
  • ‘I am sorry to trouble you, Sir,’ said Mr. Winkle, ‘but will you have
  • the goodness to direct me to--’
  • ‘Ha! ha! ha!’ roared the studious young gentleman, throwing the large
  • book up into the air, and catching it with great dexterity at the very
  • moment when it threatened to smash to atoms all the bottles on the
  • counter. ‘Here’s a start!’
  • There was, without doubt; for Mr. Winkle was so very much astonished at
  • the extraordinary behaviour of the medical gentleman, that he
  • involuntarily retreated towards the door, and looked very much disturbed
  • at his strange reception.
  • ‘What, don’t you know me?’ said the medical gentleman.
  • Mr. Winkle murmured, in reply, that he had not that pleasure.
  • ‘Why, then,’ said the medical gentleman, ‘there are hopes for me yet; I
  • may attend half the old women in Bristol, if I’ve decent luck. Get out,
  • you mouldy old villain, get out!’ With this adjuration, which was
  • addressed to the large book, the medical gentleman kicked the volume
  • with remarkable agility to the farther end of the shop, and, pulling off
  • his green spectacles, grinned the identical grin of Robert Sawyer,
  • Esquire, formerly of Guy’s Hospital in the Borough, with a private
  • residence in Lant Street.
  • ‘You don’t mean to say you weren’t down upon me?’ said Mr. Bob Sawyer,
  • shaking Mr. Winkle’s hand with friendly warmth.
  • ‘Upon my word I was not,’ replied Mr. Winkle, returning his pressure.
  • ‘I wonder you didn’t see the name,’ said Bob Sawyer, calling his
  • friend’s attention to the outer door, on which, in the same white paint,
  • were traced the words ‘Sawyer, late Nockemorf.’
  • ‘It never caught my eye,’ returned Mr. Winkle.
  • ‘Lord, if I had known who you were, I should have rushed out, and caught
  • you in my arms,’ said Bob Sawyer; ‘but upon my life, I thought you were
  • the King’s-taxes.’
  • ‘No!’ said Mr. Winkle.
  • ‘I did, indeed,’ responded Bob Sawyer, ‘and I was just going to say that
  • I wasn’t at home, but if you’d leave a message I’d be sure to give it to
  • myself; for he don’t know me; no more does the Lighting and Paving. I
  • think the Church-rates guesses who I am, and I know the Water-works
  • does, because I drew a tooth of his when I first came down here. But
  • come in, come in!’ Chattering in this way, Mr. Bob Sawyer pushed Mr.
  • Winkle into the back room, where, amusing himself by boring little
  • circular caverns in the chimney-piece with a red-hot poker, sat no less
  • a person than Mr. Benjamin Allen.
  • ‘Well!’ said Mr. Winkle. ‘This is indeed a pleasure I did not expect.
  • What a very nice place you have here!’
  • ‘Pretty well, pretty well,’ replied Bob Sawyer. ‘I _passed_, soon after
  • that precious party, and my friends came down with the needful for this
  • business; so I put on a black suit of clothes, and a pair of spectacles,
  • and came here to look as solemn as I could.’
  • ‘And a very snug little business you have, no doubt?’ said Mr. Winkle
  • knowingly.
  • ‘Very,’ replied Bob Sawyer. ‘So snug, that at the end of a few years you
  • might put all the profits in a wine-glass, and cover ‘em over with a
  • gooseberry leaf.’
  • You cannot surely mean that?’ said Mr. Winkle. ‘The stock itself--’
  • Dummies, my dear boy,’ said Bob Sawyer; ‘half the drawers have nothing
  • in ‘em, and the other half don’t open.’
  • ‘Nonsense!’ said Mr. Winkle.
  • ‘Fact--honour!’ returned Bob Sawyer, stepping out into the shop, and
  • demonstrating the veracity of the assertion by divers hard pulls at the
  • little gilt knobs on the counterfeit drawers. ‘Hardly anything real in
  • the shop but the leeches, and _they _are second-hand.’
  • ‘I shouldn’t have thought it!’ exclaimed Mr. Winkle, much surprised.
  • ‘I hope not,’ replied Bob Sawyer, ‘else where’s the use of appearances,
  • eh? But what will you take? Do as we do? That’s right. Ben, my fine
  • fellow, put your hand into the cupboard, and bring out the patent
  • digester.’
  • Mr. Benjamin Allen smiled his readiness, and produced from the closet at
  • his elbow a black bottle half full of brandy.
  • ‘You don’t take water, of course?’ said Bob Sawyer.
  • ‘Thank you,’ replied Mr. Winkle. ‘It’s rather early. I should like to
  • qualify it, if you have no objection.’
  • ‘None in the least, if you can reconcile it to your conscience,’ replied
  • Bob Sawyer, tossing off, as he spoke, a glass of the liquor with great
  • relish. ‘Ben, the pipkin!’
  • Mr. Benjamin Allen drew forth, from the same hiding-place, a small brass
  • pipkin, which Bob Sawyer observed he prided himself upon, particularly
  • because it looked so business-like. The water in the professional pipkin
  • having been made to boil, in course of time, by various little
  • shovelfuls of coal, which Mr. Bob Sawyer took out of a practicable
  • window-seat, labelled ‘Soda Water,’ Mr. Winkle adulterated his brandy;
  • and the conversation was becoming general, when it was interrupted by
  • the entrance into the shop of a boy, in a sober gray livery and a gold-
  • laced hat, with a small covered basket under his arm, whom Mr. Bob
  • Sawyer immediately hailed with, ‘Tom, you vagabond, come here.’
  • The boy presented himself accordingly.
  • ‘You’ve been stopping to “over” all the posts in Bristol, you idle young
  • scamp!’ said Mr. Bob Sawyer.
  • ‘No, sir, I haven’t,’ replied the boy.
  • ‘You had better not!’ said Mr. Bob Sawyer, with a threatening aspect.
  • ‘Who do you suppose will ever employ a professional man, when they see
  • his boy playing at marbles in the gutter, or flying the garter in the
  • horse-road? Have you no feeling for your profession, you groveller? Did
  • you leave all the medicine?’
  • Yes, Sir.’
  • ‘The powders for the child, at the large house with the new family, and
  • the pills to be taken four times a day at the ill-tempered old
  • gentleman’s with the gouty leg?’
  • ‘Yes, sir.’
  • ‘Then shut the door, and mind the shop.’
  • ‘Come,’ said Mr. Winkle, as the boy retired, ‘things are not quite so
  • bad as you would have me believe, either. There is _some _medicine to be
  • sent out.’
  • Mr. Bob Sawyer peeped into the shop to see that no stranger was within
  • hearing, and leaning forward to Mr. Winkle, said, in a low tone--
  • ‘He leaves it all at the wrong houses.’
  • Mr. Winkle looked perplexed, and Bob Sawyer and his friend laughed.
  • ‘Don’t you see?’ said Bob. ‘He goes up to a house, rings the area bell,
  • pokes a packet of medicine without a direction into the servant’s hand,
  • and walks off. Servant takes it into the dining-parlour; master opens
  • it, and reads the label: “Draught to be taken at bedtime--pills as
  • before--lotion as usual--the powder. From Sawyer’s, late Nockemorf’s.
  • Physicians’ prescriptions carefully prepared,” and all the rest of it.
  • Shows it to his wife--she reads the label; it goes down to the servants-
  • -_they_ read the label. Next day, boy calls: “Very sorry--his mistake--
  • immense business--great many parcels to deliver--Mr. Sawyer’s
  • compliments--late Nockemorf.” The name gets known, and that’s the thing,
  • my boy, in the medical way. Bless your heart, old fellow, it’s better
  • than all the advertising in the world. We have got one four-ounce bottle
  • that’s been to half the houses in Bristol, and hasn’t done yet.’
  • ‘Dear me, I see,’ observed Mr. Winkle; ‘what an excellent plan!’
  • ‘Oh, Ben and I have hit upon a dozen such,’ replied Bob Sawyer, with
  • great glee. ‘The lamplighter has eighteenpence a week to pull the night-
  • bell for ten minutes every time he comes round; and my boy always rushes
  • into the church just before the psalms, when the people have got nothing
  • to do but look about ‘em, and calls me out, with horror and dismay
  • depicted on his countenance. “Bless my soul,” everybody says, “somebody
  • taken suddenly ill! Sawyer, late Nockemorf, sent for. What a business
  • that young man has!”’
  • At the termination of this disclosure of some of the mysteries of
  • medicine, Mr. Bob Sawyer and his friend, Ben Allen, threw themselves
  • back in their respective chairs, and laughed boisterously. When they had
  • enjoyed the joke to their heart’s content, the discourse changed to
  • topics in which Mr. Winkle was more immediately interested.
  • We think we have hinted elsewhere, that Mr. Benjamin Allen had a way of
  • becoming sentimental after brandy. The case is not a peculiar one, as we
  • ourself can testify, having, on a few occasions, had to deal with
  • patients who have been afflicted in a similar manner. At this precise
  • period of his existence, Mr. Benjamin Allen had perhaps a greater
  • predisposition to maudlinism than he had ever known before; the cause of
  • which malady was briefly this. He had been staying nearly three weeks
  • with Mr. Bob Sawyer; Mr. Bob Sawyer was not remarkable for temperance,
  • nor was Mr. Benjamin Allen for the ownership of a very strong head; the
  • consequence was that, during the whole space of time just mentioned, Mr.
  • Benjamin Allen had been wavering between intoxication partial, and
  • intoxication complete.
  • ‘My dear friend,’ said Mr. Ben Allen, taking advantage of Mr. Bob
  • Sawyer’s temporary absence behind the counter, whither he had retired to
  • dispense some of the second-hand leeches, previously referred to; ‘my
  • dear friend, I am very miserable.’
  • Mr. Winkle professed his heartfelt regret to hear it, and begged to know
  • whether he could do anything to alleviate the sorrows of the suffering
  • student.
  • ‘Nothing, my dear boy, nothing,’ said Ben. ‘You recollect Arabella,
  • Winkle? My sister Arabella--a little girl, Winkle, with black eyes--when
  • we were down at Wardle’s? I don’t know whether you happened to notice
  • her--a nice little girl, Winkle. Perhaps my features may recall her
  • countenance to your recollection?’
  • Mr. Winkle required nothing to recall the charming Arabella to his mind;
  • and it was rather fortunate he did not, for the features of her brother
  • Benjamin would unquestionably have proved but an indifferent refresher
  • to his memory. He answered, with as much calmness as he could assume,
  • that he perfectly remembered the young lady referred to, and sincerely
  • trusted she was in good health.
  • ‘Our friend Bob is a delightful fellow, Winkle,’ was the only reply of
  • Mr. Ben Allen.
  • ‘Very,’ said Mr. Winkle, not much relishing this close connection of the
  • two names.
  • ‘I designed ‘em for each other; they were made for each other, sent into
  • the world for each other, born for each other, Winkle,’ said Mr. Ben
  • Allen, setting down his glass with emphasis. ‘There’s a special destiny
  • in the matter, my dear sir; there’s only five years’ difference between
  • ‘em, and both their birthdays are in August.’
  • Mr. Winkle was too anxious to hear what was to follow to express much
  • wonderment at this extraordinary coincidence, marvellous as it was; so
  • Mr. Ben Allen, after a tear or two, went on to say that, notwithstanding
  • all his esteem and respect and veneration for his friend, Arabella had
  • unaccountably and undutifully evinced the most determined antipathy to
  • his person.
  • ‘And I think,’ said Mr. Ben Allen, in conclusion. ‘I think there’s a
  • prior attachment.’
  • ‘Have you any idea who the object of it might be?’ asked Mr. Winkle,
  • with great trepidation.
  • Mr. Ben Allen seized the poker, flourished it in a warlike manner above
  • his head, inflicted a savage blow on an imaginary skull, and wound up by
  • saying, in a very expressive manner, that he only wished he could guess;
  • that was all.
  • ‘I’d show him what I thought of him,’ said Mr. Ben Allen. And round went
  • the poker again, more fiercely than before.
  • All this was, of course, very soothing to the feelings of Mr. Winkle,
  • who remained silent for a few minutes; but at length mustered up
  • resolution to inquire whether Miss Allen was in Kent.
  • ‘No, no,’ said Mr. Ben Allen, laying aside the poker, and looking very
  • cunning; ‘I didn’t think Wardle’s exactly the place for a headstrong
  • girl; so, as I am her natural protector and guardian, our parents being
  • dead, I have brought her down into this part of the country to spend a
  • few months at an old aunt’s, in a nice, dull, close place. I think that
  • will cure her, my boy. If it doesn’t, I’ll take her abroad for a little
  • while, and see what that’ll do.’
  • ‘Oh, the aunt’s is in Bristol, is it?’ faltered Mr. Winkle.
  • ‘No, no, not in Bristol,’ replied Mr. Ben Allen, jerking his thumb over
  • his right shoulder; ‘over that way--down there. But, hush, here’s Bob.
  • Not a word, my dear friend, not a word.’
  • Short as this conversation was, it roused in Mr. Winkle the highest
  • degree of excitement and anxiety. The suspected prior attachment rankled
  • in his heart. Could he be the object of it? Could it be for him that the
  • fair Arabella had looked scornfully on the sprightly Bob Sawyer, or had
  • he a successful rival? He determined to see her, cost what it might; but
  • here an insurmountable objection presented itself, for whether the
  • explanatory ‘over that way,’ and ‘down there,’ of Mr. Ben Allen, meant
  • three miles off, or thirty, or three hundred, he could in no wise guess.
  • But he had no opportunity of pondering over his love just then, for Bob
  • Sawyer’s return was the immediate precursor of the arrival of a meat-pie
  • from the baker’s, of which that gentleman insisted on his staying to
  • partake. The cloth was laid by an occasional charwoman, who officiated
  • in the capacity of Mr. Bob Sawyer’s housekeeper; and a third knife and
  • fork having been borrowed from the mother of the boy in the gray livery
  • (for Mr. Sawyer’s domestic arrangements were as yet conducted on a
  • limited scale), they sat down to dinner; the beer being served up, as
  • Mr. Sawyer remarked, ‘in its native pewter.’
  • After dinner, Mr. Bob Sawyer ordered in the largest mortar in the shop,
  • and proceeded to brew a reeking jorum of rum-punch therein, stirring up
  • and amalgamating the materials with a pestle in a very creditable and
  • apothecary-like manner. Mr. Sawyer, being a bachelor, had only one
  • tumbler in the house, which was assigned to Mr. Winkle as a compliment
  • to the visitor, Mr. Ben Allen being accommodated with a funnel with a
  • cork in the narrow end, and Bob Sawyer contented himself with one of
  • those wide-lipped crystal vessels inscribed with a variety of cabalistic
  • characters, in which chemists are wont to measure out their liquid drugs
  • in compounding prescriptions. These preliminaries adjusted, the punch
  • was tasted, and pronounced excellent; and it having been arranged that
  • Bob Sawyer and Ben Allen should be considered at liberty to fill twice
  • to Mr. Winkle’s once, they started fair, with great satisfaction and
  • good-fellowship.
  • There was no singing, because Mr. Bob Sawyer said it wouldn’t look
  • professional; but to make amends for this deprivation there was so much
  • talking and laughing that it might have been heard, and very likely was,
  • at the end of the street. Which conversation materially lightened the
  • hours and improved the mind of Mr. Bob Sawyer’s boy, who, instead of
  • devoting the evening to his ordinary occupation of writing his name on
  • the counter, and rubbing it out again, peeped through the glass door,
  • and thus listened and looked on at the same time.
  • The mirth of Mr. Bob Sawyer was rapidly ripening into the furious, Mr.
  • Ben Allen was fast relapsing into the sentimental, and the punch had
  • well-nigh disappeared altogether, when the boy hastily running in,
  • announced that a young woman had just come over, to say that Sawyer late
  • Nockemorf was wanted directly, a couple of streets off. This broke up
  • the party. Mr. Bob Sawyer, understanding the message, after some twenty
  • repetitions, tied a wet cloth round his head to sober himself, and,
  • having partially succeeded, put on his green spectacles and issued
  • forth. Resisting all entreaties to stay till he came back, and finding
  • it quite impossible to engage Mr. Ben Allen in any intelligible
  • conversation on the subject nearest his heart, or indeed on any other,
  • Mr. Winkle took his departure, and returned to the Bush.
  • The anxiety of his mind, and the numerous meditations which Arabella had
  • awakened, prevented his share of the mortar of punch producing that
  • effect upon him which it would have had under other circumstances. So,
  • after taking a glass of soda-water and brandy at the bar, he turned into
  • the coffee-room, dispirited rather than elevated by the occurrences of
  • the evening.
  • Sitting in front of the fire, with his back towards him, was a tallish
  • gentleman in a greatcoat: the only other occupant of the room. It was
  • rather a cool evening for the season of the year, and the gentleman drew
  • his chair aside to afford the new-comer a sight of the fire. What were
  • Mr. Winkle’s feelings when, in doing so, he disclosed to view the face
  • and figure of the vindictive and sanguinary Dowler!
  • Mr. Winkle’s first impulse was to give a violent pull at the nearest
  • bell-handle, but that unfortunately happened to be immediately behind
  • Mr. Dowler’s head. He had made one step towards it, before he checked
  • himself. As he did so, Mr. Dowler very hastily drew back.
  • ‘Mr. Winkle, Sir. Be calm. Don’t strike me. I won’t bear it. A blow!
  • Never!’ said Mr. Dowler, looking meeker than Mr. Winkle had expected in
  • a gentleman of his ferocity.
  • ‘A blow, Sir?’ stammered Mr. Winkle.
  • ‘A blow, Sir,’ replied Dowler. ‘Compose your feelings. Sit down. Hear
  • me.’
  • ‘Sir,’ said Mr. Winkle, trembling from head to foot, ‘before I consent
  • to sit down beside, or opposite you, without the presence of a waiter, I
  • must be secured by some further understanding. You used a threat against
  • me last night, Sir, a dreadful threat, Sir.’ Here Mr. Winkle turned very
  • pale indeed, and stopped short.
  • ‘I did,’ said Dowler, with a countenance almost as white as Mr.
  • Winkle’s. ‘Circumstances were suspicious. They have been explained. I
  • respect your bravery. Your feeling is upright. Conscious innocence.
  • There’s my hand. Grasp it.’
  • ‘Really, Sir,’ said Mr. Winkle, hesitating whether to give his hand or
  • not, and almost fearing that it was demanded in order that he might be
  • taken at an advantage, ‘really, Sir, I--’
  • ‘I know what you mean,’ interposed Dowler. ‘You feel aggrieved. Very
  • natural. So should I. I was wrong. I beg your pardon. Be friendly.
  • Forgive me.’ With this, Dowler fairly forced his hand upon Mr. Winkle,
  • and shaking it with the utmost vehemence, declared he was a fellow of
  • extreme spirit, and he had a higher opinion of him than ever.
  • ‘Now,’ said Dowler, ‘sit down. Relate it all. How did you find me? When
  • did you follow? Be frank. Tell me.’
  • ‘It’s quite accidental,’ replied Mr. Winkle, greatly perplexed by the
  • curious and unexpected nature of the interview. ‘Quite.’
  • ‘Glad of it,’ said Dowler. ‘I woke this morning. I had forgotten my
  • threat. I laughed at the accident. I felt friendly. I said so.’
  • ‘To whom?’ inquired Mr. Winkle.
  • ‘To Mrs. Dowler. “You made a vow,” said she. “I did,” said I. “It was a
  • rash one,” said she. “It was,” said I. “I’ll apologise. Where is he?”’
  • ‘Who?’ inquired Mr. Winkle.
  • ‘You,’ replied Dowler. ‘I went downstairs. You were not to be found.
  • Pickwick looked gloomy. Shook his head. Hoped no violence would be
  • committed. I saw it all. You felt yourself insulted. You had gone, for a
  • friend perhaps. Possibly for pistols. “High spirit,” said I. “I admire
  • him.”’
  • Mr. Winkle coughed, and beginning to see how the land lay, assumed a
  • look of importance.
  • ‘I left a note for you,’ resumed Dowler. ‘I said I was sorry. So I was.
  • Pressing business called me here. You were not satisfied. You followed.
  • You required a verbal explanation. You were right. It’s all over now. My
  • business is finished. I go back to-morrow. Join me.’
  • As Dowler progressed in his explanation, Mr. Winkle’s countenance grew
  • more and more dignified. The mysterious nature of the commencement of
  • their conversation was explained; Mr. Dowler had as great an objection
  • to duelling as himself; in short, this blustering and awful personage
  • was one of the most egregious cowards in existence, and interpreting Mr.
  • Winkle’s absence through the medium of his own fears, had taken the same
  • step as himself, and prudently retired until all excitement of feeling
  • should have subsided.
  • As the real state of the case dawned upon Mr. Winkle’s mind, he looked
  • very terrible, and said he was perfectly satisfied; but at the same
  • time, said so with an air that left Mr. Dowler no alternative but to
  • infer that if he had not been, something most horrible and destructive
  • must inevitably have occurred. Mr. Dowler appeared to be impressed with
  • a becoming sense of Mr. Winkle’s magnanimity and condescension; and the
  • two belligerents parted for the night, with many protestations of
  • eternal friendship.
  • About half-past twelve o’clock, when Mr. Winkle had been revelling some
  • twenty minutes in the full luxury of his first sleep, he was suddenly
  • awakened by a loud knocking at his chamber door, which, being repeated
  • with increased vehemence, caused him to start up in bed, and inquire who
  • was there, and what the matter was.
  • ‘Please, Sir, here’s a young man which says he must see you directly,’
  • responded the voice of the chambermaid.
  • ‘A young man!’ exclaimed Mr. Winkle.
  • ‘No mistake about that ‘ere, Sir,’ replied another voice through the
  • keyhole; ‘and if that wery same interestin’ young creetur ain’t let in
  • vithout delay, it’s wery possible as his legs vill enter afore his
  • countenance.’ The young man gave a gentle kick at one of the lower
  • panels of the door, after he had given utterance to this hint, as if to
  • add force and point to the remark.
  • ‘Is that you, Sam?’ inquired Mr. Winkle, springing out of bed.
  • ‘Quite unpossible to identify any gen’l’m’n vith any degree o’ mental
  • satisfaction, vithout lookin’ at him, Sir,’ replied the voice
  • dogmatically.
  • Mr. Winkle, not much doubting who the young man was, unlocked the door;
  • which he had no sooner done than Mr. Samuel Weller entered with great
  • precipitation, and carefully relocking it on the inside, deliberately
  • put the key in his waistcoat pocket; and, after surveying Mr. Winkle
  • from head to foot, said--
  • ‘You’re a wery humorous young gen’l’m’n, you air, Sir!’
  • ‘What do you mean by this conduct, Sam?’ inquired Mr. Winkle
  • indignantly. ‘Get out, sir, this instant. What do you mean, Sir?’
  • ‘What do I mean,’ retorted Sam; ‘come, Sir, this is rayther too rich, as
  • the young lady said when she remonstrated with the pastry-cook, arter
  • he’d sold her a pork pie as had got nothin’ but fat inside. What do I
  • mean! Well, that ain’t a bad ‘un, that ain’t.’
  • ‘Unlock that door, and leave this room immediately, Sir,’ said Mr.
  • Winkle.
  • ‘I shall leave this here room, sir, just precisely at the wery same
  • moment as you leaves it,’ responded Sam, speaking in a forcible manner,
  • and seating himself with perfect gravity. ‘If I find it necessary to
  • carry you away, pick-a-back, o’ course I shall leave it the least bit o’
  • time possible afore you; but allow me to express a hope as you won’t
  • reduce me to extremities; in saying wich, I merely quote wot the
  • nobleman said to the fractious pennywinkle, ven he vouldn’t come out of
  • his shell by means of a pin, and he conseqvently began to be afeered
  • that he should be obliged to crack him in the parlour door.’ At the end
  • of this address, which was unusually lengthy for him, Mr. Weller planted
  • his hands on his knees, and looked full in Mr. Winkle’s face, with an
  • expression of countenance which showed that he had not the remotest
  • intention of being trifled with.
  • ‘You’re a amiably-disposed young man, Sir, I don’t think,’ resumed Mr.
  • Weller, in a tone of moral reproof, ‘to go inwolving our precious
  • governor in all sorts o’ fanteegs, wen he’s made up his mind to go
  • through everythink for principle. You’re far worse nor Dodson, Sir; and
  • as for Fogg, I consider him a born angel to you!’ Mr. Weller having
  • accompanied this last sentiment with an emphatic slap on each knee,
  • folded his arms with a look of great disgust, and threw himself back in
  • his chair, as if awaiting the criminal’s defence.
  • ‘My good fellow,’ said Mr. Winkle, extending his hand--his teeth
  • chattering all the time he spoke, for he had been standing, during the
  • whole of Mr. Weller’s lecture, in his night-gear--‘my good fellow, I
  • respect your attachment to my excellent friend, and I am very sorry
  • indeed to have added to his causes for disquiet. There, Sam, there!’
  • ‘Well,’ said Sam, rather sulkily, but giving the proffered hand a
  • respectful shake at the same time--‘well, so you ought to be, and I am
  • very glad to find you air; for, if I can help it, I won’t have him put
  • upon by nobody, and that’s all about it.’
  • ‘Certainly not, Sam,’ said Mr. Winkle. ‘There! Now go to bed, Sam, and
  • we’ll talk further about this in the morning.’
  • ‘I’m wery sorry,’ said Sam, ‘but I can’t go to bed.’
  • ‘Not go to bed!’ repeated Mr. Winkle.
  • ‘No,’ said Sam, shaking his head. ‘Can’t be done.’
  • ‘You don’t mean to say you’re going back to-night, Sam?’ urged Mr.
  • Winkle, greatly surprised.
  • ‘Not unless you particklerly wish it,’ replied Sam; ‘but I mustn’t leave
  • this here room. The governor’s orders wos peremptory.’
  • ‘Nonsense, Sam,’ said Mr. Winkle, ‘I must stop here two or three days;
  • and more than that, Sam, you must stop here too, to assist me in gaining
  • an interview with a young lady--Miss Allen, Sam; you remember her--whom
  • I must and will see before I leave Bristol.’
  • But in reply to each of these positions, Sam shook his head with great
  • firmness, and energetically replied, ‘It can’t be done.’
  • After a great deal of argument and representation on the part of Mr.
  • Winkle, however, and a full disclosure of what had passed in the
  • interview with Dowler, Sam began to waver; and at length a compromise
  • was effected, of which the following were the main and principal
  • conditions:--
  • That Sam should retire, and leave Mr. Winkle in the undisturbed
  • possession of his apartment, on the condition that he had permission to
  • lock the door on the outside, and carry off the key; provided always,
  • that in the event of an alarm of fire, or other dangerous contingency,
  • the door should be instantly unlocked. That a letter should be written
  • to Mr. Pickwick early next morning, and forwarded per Dowler, requesting
  • his consent to Sam and Mr. Winkle’s remaining at Bristol, for the
  • purpose and with the object already assigned, and begging an answer by
  • the next coach--, if favourable, the aforesaid parties to remain
  • accordingly, and if not, to return to Bath immediately on the receipt
  • thereof. And, lastly, that Mr. Winkle should be understood as distinctly
  • pledging himself not to resort to the window, fireplace, or other
  • surreptitious mode of escape in the meanwhile. These stipulations having
  • been concluded, Sam locked the door and departed.
  • He had nearly got downstairs, when he stopped, and drew the key from his
  • pocket.
  • ‘I quite forgot about the knockin’ down,’ said Sam, half turning back.
  • ‘The governor distinctly said it was to be done. Amazin’ stupid o’ me,
  • that ‘ere! Never mind,’ said Sam, brightening up, ‘it’s easily done to-
  • morrow, anyvays.’
  • Apparently much consoled by this reflection, Mr. Weller once more
  • deposited the key in his pocket, and descending the remainder of the
  • stairs without any fresh visitations of conscience, was soon, in common
  • with the other inmates of the house, buried in profound repose.
  • CHAPTER XXXIX. MR. SAMUEL WELLER, BEING INTRUSTED WITH A MISSION OF
  • LOVE, PROCEEDS TO EXECUTE IT; WITH WHAT SUCCESS WILL HEREINAFTER APPEAR
  • During the whole of next day, Sam kept Mr. Winkle steadily in sight,
  • fully determined not to take his eyes off him for one instant, until he
  • should receive express instructions from the fountain-head. However
  • disagreeable Sam’s very close watch and great vigilance were to Mr.
  • Winkle, he thought it better to bear with them, than, by any act of
  • violent opposition, to hazard being carried away by force, which Mr.
  • Weller more than once strongly hinted was the line of conduct that a
  • strict sense of duty prompted him to pursue. There is little reason to
  • doubt that Sam would very speedily have quieted his scruples, by bearing
  • Mr. Winkle back to Bath, bound hand and foot, had not Mr. Pickwick’s
  • prompt attention to the note, which Dowler had undertaken to deliver,
  • forestalled any such proceeding. In short, at eight o’clock in the
  • evening, Mr. Pickwick himself walked into the coffee-room of the Bush
  • Tavern, and told Sam with a smile, to his very great relief, that he had
  • done quite right, and it was unnecessary for him to mount guard any
  • longer.
  • ‘I thought it better to come myself,’ said Mr. Pickwick, addressing Mr.
  • Winkle, as Sam disencumbered him of his great-coat and travelling-shawl,
  • ‘to ascertain, before I gave my consent to Sam’s employment in this
  • matter, that you are quite in earnest and serious, with respect to this
  • young lady.’
  • ‘Serious, from my heart--from my soul!’ returned Mr. Winkle, with great
  • energy.
  • ‘Remember,’ said Mr. Pickwick, with beaming eyes, ‘we met her at our
  • excellent and hospitable friend’s, Winkle. It would be an ill return to
  • tamper lightly, and without due consideration, with this young lady’s
  • affections. I’ll not allow that, sir. I’ll not allow it.’
  • ‘I have no such intention, indeed,’ exclaimed Mr. Winkle warmly. ‘I have
  • considered the matter well, for a long time, and I feel that my
  • happiness is bound up in her.’
  • ‘That’s wot we call tying it up in a small parcel, sir,’ interposed Mr.
  • Weller, with an agreeable smile.
  • Mr. Winkle looked somewhat stern at this interruption, and Mr. Pickwick
  • angrily requested his attendant not to jest with one of the best
  • feelings of our nature; to which Sam replied, ‘That he wouldn’t, if he
  • was aware on it; but there were so many on ‘em, that he hardly know’d
  • which was the best ones wen he heerd ‘em mentioned.’
  • Mr. Winkle then recounted what had passed between himself and Mr. Ben
  • Allen, relative to Arabella; stated that his object was to gain an
  • interview with the young lady, and make a formal disclosure of his
  • passion; and declared his conviction, founded on certain dark hints and
  • mutterings of the aforesaid Ben, that, wherever she was at present
  • immured, it was somewhere near the Downs. And this was his whole stock
  • of knowledge or suspicion on the subject.
  • With this very slight clue to guide him, it was determined that Mr.
  • Weller should start next morning on an expedition of discovery; it was
  • also arranged that Mr. Pickwick and Mr. Winkle, who were less confident
  • of their powers, should parade the town meanwhile, and accidentally drop
  • in upon Mr. Bob Sawyer in the course of the day, in the hope of seeing
  • or hearing something of the young lady’s whereabouts.
  • Accordingly, next morning, Sam Weller issued forth upon his quest, in no
  • way daunted by the very discouraging prospect before him; and away he
  • walked, up one street and down another--we were going to say, up one
  • hill and down another, only it’s all uphill at Clifton--without meeting
  • with anything or anybody that tended to throw the faintest light on the
  • matter in hand. Many were the colloquies into which Sam entered with
  • grooms who were airing horses on roads, and nursemaids who were airing
  • children in lanes; but nothing could Sam elicit from either the first-
  • mentioned or the last, which bore the slightest reference to the object
  • of his artfully-prosecuted inquiries. There were a great many young
  • ladies in a great many houses, the greater part whereof were shrewdly
  • suspected by the male and female domestics to be deeply attached to
  • somebody, or perfectly ready to become so, if opportunity afforded. But
  • as none among these young ladies was Miss Arabella Allen, the
  • information left Sam at exactly the old point of wisdom at which he had
  • stood before.
  • Sam struggled across the Downs against a good high wind, wondering
  • whether it was always necessary to hold your hat on with both hands in
  • that part of the country, and came to a shady by-place, about which were
  • sprinkled several little villas of quiet and secluded appearance.
  • Outside a stable door at the bottom of a long back lane without a
  • thoroughfare, a groom in undress was idling about, apparently persuading
  • himself that he was doing something with a spade and a wheel-barrow. We
  • may remark, in this place, that we have scarcely ever seen a groom near
  • a stable, in his lazy moments, who has not been, to a greater or less
  • extent, the victim of this singular delusion.
  • Sam thought he might as well talk to this groom as to any one else,
  • especially as he was very tired with walking, and there was a good large
  • stone just opposite the wheel-barrow; so he strolled down the lane, and,
  • seating himself on the stone, opened a conversation with the ease and
  • freedom for which he was remarkable.
  • ‘Mornin’, old friend,’ said Sam.
  • ‘Arternoon, you mean,’ replied the groom, casting a surly look at Sam.
  • ‘You’re wery right, old friend,’ said Sam; ‘I _do_ mean arternoon. How
  • are you?’
  • ‘Why, I don’t find myself much the better for seeing of you,’ replied
  • the ill-tempered groom.
  • ‘That’s wery odd--that is,’ said Sam, ‘for you look so uncommon
  • cheerful, and seem altogether so lively, that it does vun’s heart good
  • to see you.’
  • The surly groom looked surlier still at this, but not sufficiently so to
  • produce any effect upon Sam, who immediately inquired, with a
  • countenance of great anxiety, whether his master’s name was not Walker.
  • ‘No, it ain’t,’ said the groom.
  • ‘Nor Brown, I s’pose?’ said Sam.
  • ‘No, it ain’t.’
  • ‘Nor Vilson?’
  • ‘No; nor that either,’ said the groom.
  • ‘Vell,’ replied Sam, ‘then I’m mistaken, and he hasn’t got the honour o’
  • my acquaintance, which I thought he had. Don’t wait here out o’
  • compliment to me,’ said Sam, as the groom wheeled in the barrow, and
  • prepared to shut the gate. ‘Ease afore ceremony, old boy; I’ll excuse
  • you.’
  • ‘I’d knock your head off for half-a-crown,’ said the surly groom,
  • bolting one half of the gate.
  • ‘Couldn’t afford to have it done on those terms,’ rejoined Sam. ‘It ‘ud
  • be worth a life’s board wages at least, to you, and ‘ud be cheap at
  • that. Make my compliments indoors. Tell ‘em not to vait dinner for me,
  • and say they needn’t mind puttin’ any by, for it’ll be cold afore I come
  • in.’
  • In reply to this, the groom waxing very wroth, muttered a desire to
  • damage somebody’s person; but disappeared without carrying it into
  • execution, slamming the door angrily after him, and wholly unheeding
  • Sam’s affectionate request, that he would leave him a lock of his hair
  • before he went.
  • Sam continued to sit on the large stone, meditating upon what was best
  • to be done, and revolving in his mind a plan for knocking at all the
  • doors within five miles of Bristol, taking them at a hundred and fifty
  • or two hundred a day, and endeavouring to find Miss Arabella by that
  • expedient, when accident all of a sudden threw in his way what he might
  • have sat there for a twelvemonth and yet not found without it.
  • Into the lane where he sat, there opened three or four garden gates,
  • belonging to as many houses, which though detached from each other, were
  • only separated by their gardens. As these were large and long, and well
  • planted with trees, the houses were not only at some distance off, but
  • the greater part of them were nearly concealed from view. Sam was
  • sitting with his eyes fixed upon the dust-heap outside the next gate to
  • that by which the groom had disappeared, profoundly turning over in his
  • mind the difficulties of his present undertaking, when the gate opened,
  • and a female servant came out into the lane to shake some bedside
  • carpets.
  • Sam was so very busy with his own thoughts, that it is probable he would
  • have taken no more notice of the young woman than just raising his head
  • and remarking that she had a very neat and pretty figure, if his
  • feelings of gallantry had not been most strongly roused by observing
  • that she had no one to help her, and that the carpets seemed too heavy
  • for her single strength. Mr. Weller was a gentleman of great gallantry
  • in his own way, and he no sooner remarked this circumstance than he
  • hastily rose from the large stone, and advanced towards her.
  • ‘My dear,’ said Sam, sliding up with an air of great respect, ‘you’ll
  • spile that wery pretty figure out o’ all perportion if you shake them
  • carpets by yourself. Let me help you.’
  • The young lady, who had been coyly affecting not to know that a
  • gentleman was so near, turned round as Sam spoke--no doubt (indeed she
  • said so, afterwards) to decline this offer from a perfect stranger--when
  • instead of speaking, she started back, and uttered a half-suppressed
  • scream. Sam was scarcely less staggered, for in the countenance of the
  • well-shaped female servant, he beheld the very features of his
  • valentine, the pretty housemaid from Mr. Nupkins’s.
  • ‘Wy, Mary, my dear!’ said Sam.
  • ‘Lauk, Mr. Weller,’ said Mary, ‘how you do frighten one!’
  • Sam made no verbal answer to this complaint, nor can we precisely say
  • what reply he did make. We merely know that after a short pause Mary
  • said, ‘Lor, do adun, Mr. Weller!’ and that his hat had fallen off a few
  • moments before--from both of which tokens we should be disposed to infer
  • that one kiss, or more, had passed between the parties.
  • ‘Why, how did you come here?’ said Mary, when the conversation to which
  • this interruption had been offered, was resumed.
  • ‘O’ course I came to look arter you, my darlin’,’ replied Mr. Weller;
  • for once permitting his passion to get the better of his veracity.
  • ‘And how did you know I was here?’ inquired Mary. ‘Who could have told
  • you that I took another service at Ipswich, and that they afterwards
  • moved all the way here? Who _could _have told you that, Mr. Weller?’
  • ‘Ah, to be sure,’ said Sam, with a cunning look, ‘that’s the pint. Who
  • could ha’ told me?’
  • ‘It wasn’t Mr. Muzzle, was it?’ inquired Mary.
  • ‘Oh, no.’ replied Sam, with a solemn shake of the head, ‘it warn’t him.’
  • ‘It must have been the cook,’ said Mary.
  • ‘O’ course it must,’ said Sam.
  • ‘Well, I never heard the like of that!’ exclaimed Mary.
  • ‘No more did I,’ said Sam. ‘But Mary, my dear’--here Sam’s manner grew
  • extremely affectionate--‘Mary, my dear, I’ve got another affair in hand
  • as is wery pressin’. There’s one o’ my governor’s friends--Mr. Winkle,
  • you remember him?’
  • ‘Him in the green coat?’ said Mary. ‘Oh, yes, I remember him.’
  • ‘Well,’ said Sam, ‘he’s in a horrid state o’ love; reg’larly comfoozled,
  • and done over vith it.’
  • ‘Lor!’ interposed Mary.
  • ‘Yes,’ said Sam; ‘but that’s nothin’ if we could find out the young
  • ‘ooman;’ and here Sam, with many digressions upon the personal beauty of
  • Mary, and the unspeakable tortures he had experienced since he last saw
  • her, gave a faithful account of Mr. Winkle’s present predicament.
  • ‘Well,’ said Mary, ‘I never did!’
  • ‘O’ course not,’ said Sam, ‘and nobody never did, nor never vill
  • neither; and here am I a-walkin’ about like the wandering Jew--a
  • sportin’ character you have perhaps heerd on Mary, my dear, as vos
  • alvays doin’ a match agin’ time, and never vent to sleep--looking arter
  • this here Miss Arabella Allen.’
  • ‘Miss who?’ said Mary, in great astonishment.
  • ‘Miss Arabella Allen,’ said Sam.
  • ‘Goodness gracious!’ said Mary, pointing to the garden door which the
  • sulky groom had locked after him. ‘Why, it’s that very house; she’s been
  • living there these six weeks. Their upper house-maid, which is lady’s-
  • maid too, told me all about it over the wash-house palin’s before the
  • family was out of bed, one mornin’.’
  • ‘Wot, the wery next door to you?’ said Sam.
  • ‘The very next,’ replied Mary.
  • Mr. Weller was so deeply overcome on receiving this intelligence that he
  • found it absolutely necessary to cling to his fair informant for
  • support; and divers little love passages had passed between them, before
  • he was sufficiently collected to return to the subject.
  • ‘Vell,’ said Sam at length, ‘if this don’t beat cock-fightin’ nothin’
  • never vill, as the lord mayor said, ven the chief secretary o’ state
  • proposed his missis’s health arter dinner. That wery next house! Wy,
  • I’ve got a message to her as I’ve been a-trying all day to deliver.’
  • ‘Ah,’ said Mary, ‘but you can’t deliver it now, because she only walks
  • in the garden in the evening, and then only for a very little time; she
  • never goes out, without the old lady.’
  • Sam ruminated for a few moments, and finally hit upon the following plan
  • of operations; that he should return just at dusk--the time at which
  • Arabella invariably took her walk--and, being admitted by Mary into the
  • garden of the house to which she belonged, would contrive to scramble up
  • the wall, beneath the overhanging boughs of a large pear-tree, which
  • would effectually screen him from observation; would there deliver his
  • message, and arrange, if possible, an interview on behalf of Mr. Winkle
  • for the ensuing evening at the same hour. Having made this arrangement
  • with great despatch, he assisted Mary in the long-deferred occupation of
  • shaking the carpets.
  • It is not half as innocent a thing as it looks, that shaking little
  • pieces of carpet--at least, there may be no great harm in the shaking,
  • but the folding is a very insidious process. So long as the shaking
  • lasts, and the two parties are kept the carpet’s length apart, it is as
  • innocent an amusement as can well be devised; but when the folding
  • begins, and the distance between them gets gradually lessened from one
  • half its former length to a quarter, and then to an eighth, and then to
  • a sixteenth, and then to a thirty-second, if the carpet be long enough,
  • it becomes dangerous. We do not know, to a nicety, how many pieces of
  • carpet were folded in this instance, but we can venture to state that as
  • many pieces as there were, so many times did Sam kiss the pretty
  • housemaid.
  • Mr. Weller regaled himself with moderation at the nearest tavern until
  • it was nearly dusk, and then returned to the lane without the
  • thoroughfare. Having been admitted into the garden by Mary, and having
  • received from that lady sundry admonitions concerning the safety of his
  • limbs and neck, Sam mounted into the pear-tree, to wait until Arabella
  • should come into sight.
  • He waited so long without this anxiously-expected event occurring, that
  • he began to think it was not going to take place at all, when he heard
  • light footsteps upon the gravel, and immediately afterwards beheld
  • Arabella walking pensively down the garden. As soon as she came nearly
  • below the tree, Sam began, by way of gently indicating his presence, to
  • make sundry diabolical noises similar to those which would probably be
  • natural to a person of middle age who had been afflicted with a
  • combination of inflammatory sore throat, croup, and whooping-cough, from
  • his earliest infancy.
  • Upon this, the young lady cast a hurried glance towards the spot whence
  • the dreadful sounds proceeded; and her previous alarm being not at all
  • diminished when she saw a man among the branches, she would most
  • certainly have decamped, and alarmed the house, had not fear fortunately
  • deprived her of the power of moving, and caused her to sink down on a
  • garden seat, which happened by good luck to be near at hand.
  • ‘She’s a-goin’ off,’ soliloquised Sam in great perplexity. ‘Wot a thing
  • it is, as these here young creeturs will go a-faintin’ avay just ven
  • they oughtn’t to. Here, young ‘ooman, Miss Sawbones, Mrs. Vinkle,
  • don’t!’
  • Whether it was the magic of Mr. Winkle’s name, or the coolness of the
  • open air, or some recollection of Mr. Weller’s voice, that revived
  • Arabella, matters not. She raised her head and languidly inquired,
  • ‘Who’s that, and what do you want?’
  • ‘Hush,’ said Sam, swinging himself on to the wall, and crouching there
  • in as small a compass as he could reduce himself to, ‘only me, miss,
  • only me.’
  • ‘Mr. Pickwick’s servant!’ said Arabella earnestly.
  • ‘The wery same, miss,’ replied Sam. ‘Here’s Mr. Vinkle reg’larly sewed
  • up vith desperation, miss.’
  • ‘Ah!’ said Arabella, drawing nearer the wall.
  • ‘Ah, indeed,’ said Sam. ‘Ve thought ve should ha’ been obliged to
  • strait-veskit him last night; he’s been a-ravin’ all day; and he says if
  • he can’t see you afore to-morrow night’s over, he vishes he may be
  • somethin’ unpleasanted if he don’t drownd hisself.’
  • ‘Oh, no, no, Mr. Weller!’ said Arabella, clasping her hands.
  • ‘That’s wot he says, miss,’ replied Sam coolly. ‘He’s a man of his word,
  • and it’s my opinion he’ll do it, miss. He’s heerd all about you from the
  • sawbones in barnacles.’
  • ‘From my brother!’ said Arabella, having some faint recognition of Sam’s
  • description.
  • ‘I don’t rightly know which is your brother, miss,’ replied Sam. ‘Is it
  • the dirtiest vun o’ the two?’
  • ‘Yes, yes, Mr. Weller,’ returned Arabella, ‘go on. Make haste, pray.’
  • ‘Well, miss,’ said Sam, ‘he’s heerd all about it from him; and it’s the
  • gov’nor’s opinion that if you don’t see him wery quick, the sawbones as
  • we’ve been a-speakin’ on, ‘ull get as much extra lead in his head as’ll
  • rayther damage the dewelopment o’ the orgins if they ever put it in
  • spirits artervards.’
  • ‘Oh, what can I do to prevent these dreadful quarrels!’ exclaimed
  • Arabella.
  • ‘It’s the suspicion of a priory ‘tachment as is the cause of it all,’
  • replied Sam. ‘You’d better see him, miss.’
  • ‘But how?--where?’ cried Arabella. ‘I dare not leave the house alone. My
  • brother is so unkind, so unreasonable! I know how strange my talking
  • thus to you may appear, Mr. Weller, but I am very, very unhappy--’ and
  • here poor Arabella wept so bitterly that Sam grew chivalrous.
  • ‘It may seem wery strange talkin’ to me about these here affairs, miss,’
  • said Sam, with great vehemence; ‘but all I can say is, that I’m not only
  • ready but villin’ to do anythin’ as’ll make matters agreeable; and if
  • chuckin’ either o’ them sawboneses out o’ winder ‘ull do it, I’m the
  • man.’ As Sam Weller said this, he tucked up his wristbands, at the
  • imminent hazard of falling off the wall in so doing, to intimate his
  • readiness to set to work immediately.
  • Flattering as these professions of good feeling were, Arabella
  • resolutely declined (most unaccountably, as Sam thought) to avail
  • herself of them. For some time she strenuously refused to grant Mr.
  • Winkle the interview Sam had so pathetically requested; but at length,
  • when the conversation threatened to be interrupted by the unwelcome
  • arrival of a third party, she hurriedly gave him to understand, with
  • many professions of gratitude, that it was barely possible she might be
  • in the garden an hour later, next evening. Sam understood this perfectly
  • well; and Arabella, bestowing upon him one of her sweetest smiles,
  • tripped gracefully away, leaving Mr. Weller in a state of very great
  • admiration of her charms, both personal and mental.
  • Having descended in safety from the wall, and not forgotten to devote a
  • few moments to his own particular business in the same department, Mr.
  • Weller then made the best of his way back to the Bush, where his
  • prolonged absence had occasioned much speculation and some alarm.
  • ‘We must be careful,’ said Mr. Pickwick, after listening attentively to
  • Sam’s tale, ‘not for our sakes, but for that of the young lady. We must
  • be very cautious.’
  • ‘_We_!’ said Mr. Winkle, with marked emphasis.
  • Mr. Pickwick’s momentary look of indignation at the tone of this remark,
  • subsided into his characteristic expression of benevolence, as he
  • replied--
  • ‘_We_, Sir! I shall accompany you.’
  • ‘You!’ said Mr. Winkle.
  • ‘I,’ replied Mr. Pickwick mildly. ‘In affording you this interview, the
  • young lady has taken a natural, perhaps, but still a very imprudent
  • step. If I am present at the meeting--a mutual friend, who is old enough
  • to be the father of both parties--the voice of calumny can never be
  • raised against her hereafter.’
  • Mr. Pickwick’s eyes lightened with honest exultation at his own
  • foresight, as he spoke thus. Mr. Winkle was touched by this little trait
  • of his delicate respect for the young _protegee _of his friend, and took
  • his hand with a feeling of regard, akin to veneration.
  • ‘You _SHALL _ go,’ said Mr. Winkle.
  • ‘I will,’ said Mr. Pickwick. ‘Sam, have my greatcoat and shawl ready,
  • and order a conveyance to be at the door to-morrow evening, rather
  • earlier than is absolutely necessary, in order that we may be in good
  • time.’
  • Mr. Weller touched his hat, as an earnest of his obedience, and withdrew
  • to make all needful preparations for the expedition.
  • The coach was punctual to the time appointed; and Mr. Weller, after duly
  • installing Mr. Pickwick and Mr. Winkle inside, took his seat on the box
  • by the driver. They alighted, as had been agreed on, about a quarter of
  • a mile from the place of rendezvous, and desiring the coachman to await
  • their return, proceeded the remaining distance on foot.
  • It was at this stage of the undertaking that Mr. Pickwick, with many
  • smiles and various other indications of great self-satisfaction,
  • produced from one of his coat pockets a dark lantern, with which he had
  • specially provided himself for the occasion, and the great mechanical
  • beauty of which he proceeded to explain to Mr. Winkle, as they walked
  • along, to the no small surprise of the few stragglers they met.
  • ‘I should have been the better for something of this kind, in my last
  • garden expedition, at night; eh, Sam?’ said Mr. Pickwick, looking good-
  • humouredly round at his follower, who was trudging behind.
  • ‘Wery nice things, if they’re managed properly, Sir,’ replied Mr.
  • Weller; ‘but wen you don’t want to be seen, I think they’re more useful
  • arter the candle’s gone out, than wen it’s alight.’
  • Mr. Pickwick appeared struck by Sam’s remarks, for he put the lantern
  • into his pocket again, and they walked on in silence.
  • ‘Down here, Sir,’ said Sam. ‘Let me lead the way. This is the lane,
  • Sir.’
  • Down the lane they went, and dark enough it was. Mr. Pickwick brought
  • out the lantern, once or twice, as they groped their way along, and
  • threw a very brilliant little tunnel of light before them, about a foot
  • in diameter. It was very pretty to look at, but seemed to have the
  • effect of rendering surrounding objects rather darker than before.
  • At length they arrived at the large stone. Here Sam recommended his
  • master and Mr. Winkle to seat themselves, while he reconnoitred, and
  • ascertained whether Mary was yet in waiting.
  • After an absence of five or ten minutes, Sam returned to say that the
  • gate was opened, and all quiet. Following him with stealthy tread, Mr.
  • Pickwick and Mr. Winkle soon found themselves in the garden. Here
  • everybody said, ‘Hush!’ a good many times; and that being done, no one
  • seemed to have any very distinct apprehension of what was to be done
  • next.
  • ‘Is Miss Allen in the garden yet, Mary?’ inquired Mr. Winkle, much
  • agitated.
  • ‘I don’t know, sir,’ replied the pretty housemaid. ‘The best thing to be
  • done, sir, will be for Mr. Weller to give you a hoist up into the tree,
  • and perhaps Mr. Pickwick will have the goodness to see that nobody comes
  • up the lane, while I watch at the other end of the garden. Goodness
  • gracious, what’s that?’
  • ‘That ‘ere blessed lantern ‘ull be the death on us all,’ exclaimed Sam
  • peevishly. ‘Take care wot you’re a-doin’ on, sir; you’re a-sendin’ a
  • blaze o’ light, right into the back parlour winder.’
  • ‘Dear me!’ said Mr. Pickwick, turning hastily aside, ‘I didn’t mean to
  • do that.’
  • ‘Now, it’s in the next house, sir,’ remonstrated Sam.
  • ‘Bless my heart!’ exclaimed Mr. Pickwick, turning round again.
  • ‘Now, it’s in the stable, and they’ll think the place is afire,’ said
  • Sam. ‘Shut it up, sir, can’t you?’
  • ‘It’s the most extraordinary lantern I ever met with, in all my life!’
  • exclaimed Mr. Pickwick, greatly bewildered by the effects he had so
  • unintentionally produced. ‘I never saw such a powerful reflector.’
  • ‘It’ll be vun too powerful for us, if you keep blazin’ avay in that
  • manner, sir,’ replied Sam, as Mr. Pickwick, after various unsuccessful
  • efforts, managed to close the slide. ‘There’s the young lady’s
  • footsteps. Now, Mr. Winkle, sir, up vith you.’
  • ‘Stop, stop!’ said Mr. Pickwick, ‘I must speak to her first. Help me up,
  • Sam.’
  • ‘Gently, Sir,’ said Sam, planting his head against the wall, and making
  • a platform of his back. ‘Step atop o’ that ‘ere flower-pot, Sir. Now
  • then, up vith you.’
  • ‘I’m afraid I shall hurt you, Sam,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Never mind me, Sir,’ replied Sam. ‘Lend him a hand, Mr. Winkle, sir.
  • Steady, sir, steady! That’s the time o’ day!’
  • As Sam spoke, Mr. Pickwick, by exertions almost supernatural in a
  • gentleman of his years and weight, contrived to get upon Sam’s back; and
  • Sam gently raising himself up, and Mr. Pickwick holding on fast by the
  • top of the wall, while Mr. Winkle clasped him tight by the legs, they
  • contrived by these means to bring his spectacles just above the level of
  • the coping.
  • ‘My dear,’ said Mr. Pickwick, looking over the wall, and catching sight
  • of Arabella, on the other side, ‘don’t be frightened, my dear, it’s only
  • me.’ ‘Oh, pray go away, Mr. Pickwick,’ said Arabella. ‘Tell them all to
  • go away. I am so dreadfully frightened. Dear, dear Mr. Pickwick, don’t
  • stop there. You’ll fall down and kill yourself, I know you will.’
  • ‘Now, pray don’t alarm yourself, my dear,’ said Mr. Pickwick soothingly.
  • ‘There is not the least cause for fear, I assure you. Stand firm, Sam,’
  • said Mr. Pickwick, looking down.
  • ‘All right, sir,’ replied Mr. Weller. ‘Don’t be longer than you can
  • conweniently help, sir. You’re rayther heavy.’
  • ‘Only another moment, Sam,’ replied Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘I merely wished you to know, my dear, that I should not have allowed my
  • young friend to see you in this clandestine way, if the situation in
  • which you are placed had left him any alternative; and, lest the
  • impropriety of this step should cause you any uneasiness, my love, it
  • may be a satisfaction to you, to know that I am present. That’s all, my
  • dear.’
  • ‘Indeed, Mr. Pickwick, I am very much obliged to you for your kindness
  • and consideration,’ replied Arabella, drying her tears with her
  • handkerchief. She would probably have said much more, had not Mr.
  • Pickwick’s head disappeared with great swiftness, in consequence of a
  • false step on Sam’s shoulder which brought him suddenly to the ground.
  • He was up again in an instant however; and bidding Mr. Winkle make haste
  • and get the interview over, ran out into the lane to keep watch, with
  • all the courage and ardour of youth. Mr. Winkle himself, inspired by the
  • occasion, was on the wall in a moment, merely pausing to request Sam to
  • be careful of his master.
  • ‘I’ll take care on him, sir,’ replied Sam. ‘Leave him to me.’
  • ‘Where is he? What’s he doing, Sam?’ inquired Mr. Winkle.
  • ‘Bless his old gaiters,’ rejoined Sam, looking out at the garden door.
  • ‘He’s a-keepin’ guard in the lane vith that ‘ere dark lantern, like a
  • amiable Guy Fawkes! I never see such a fine creetur in my days. Blessed
  • if I don’t think his heart must ha’ been born five-and-twenty year arter
  • his body, at least!’
  • Mr. Winkle stayed not to hear the encomium upon his friend. He had
  • dropped from the wall; thrown himself at Arabella’s feet; and by this
  • time was pleading the sincerity of his passion with an eloquence worthy
  • even of Mr. Pickwick himself.
  • While these things were going on in the open air, an elderly gentleman
  • of scientific attainments was seated in his library, two or three houses
  • off, writing a philosophical treatise, and ever and anon moistening his
  • clay and his labours with a glass of claret from a venerable-looking
  • bottle which stood by his side. In the agonies of composition, the
  • elderly gentleman looked sometimes at the carpet, sometimes at the
  • ceiling, and sometimes at the wall; and when neither carpet, ceiling,
  • nor wall afforded the requisite degree of inspiration, he looked out of
  • the window.
  • In one of these pauses of invention, the scientific gentleman was gazing
  • abstractedly on the thick darkness outside, when he was very much
  • surprised by observing a most brilliant light glide through the air, at
  • a short distance above the ground, and almost instantaneously vanish.
  • After a short time the phenomenon was repeated, not once or twice, but
  • several times; at last the scientific gentleman, laying down his pen,
  • began to consider to what natural causes these appearances were to be
  • assigned.
  • They were not meteors; they were too low. They were not glow-worms; they
  • were too high. They were not will-o’-the-wisps; they were not fireflies;
  • they were not fireworks. What could they be? Some extraordinary and
  • wonderful phenomenon of nature, which no philosopher had ever seen
  • before; something which it had been reserved for him alone to discover,
  • and which he should immortalise his name by chronicling for the benefit
  • of posterity. Full of this idea, the scientific gentleman seized his pen
  • again, and committed to paper sundry notes of these unparalleled
  • appearances, with the date, day, hour, minute, and precise second at
  • which they were visible: all of which were to form the data of a
  • voluminous treatise of great research and deep learning, which should
  • astonish all the atmospherical wiseacres that ever drew breath in any
  • part of the civilised globe.
  • He threw himself back in his easy-chair, wrapped in contemplations of
  • his future greatness. The mysterious light appeared more brilliantly
  • than before, dancing, to all appearance, up and down the lane, crossing
  • from side to side, and moving in an orbit as eccentric as comets
  • themselves.
  • The scientific gentleman was a bachelor. He had no wife to call in and
  • astonish, so he rang the bell for his servant.
  • ‘Pruffle,’ said the scientific gentleman, ‘there is something very
  • extraordinary in the air to-night? Did you see that?’ said the
  • scientific gentleman, pointing out of the window, as the light again
  • became visible.
  • ‘Yes, I did, Sir.’
  • ‘What do you think of it, Pruffle?’
  • ‘Think of it, Sir?’
  • ‘Yes. You have been bred up in this country. What should you say was the
  • cause for those lights, now?’
  • The scientific gentleman smilingly anticipated Pruffle’s reply that he
  • could assign no cause for them at all. Pruffle meditated.
  • ‘I should say it was thieves, Sir,’ said Pruffle at length.
  • ‘You’re a fool, and may go downstairs,’ said the scientific gentleman.
  • ‘Thank you, Sir,’ said Pruffle. And down he went.
  • But the scientific gentleman could not rest under the idea of the
  • ingenious treatise he had projected being lost to the world, which must
  • inevitably be the case if the speculation of the ingenious Mr. Pruffle
  • were not stifled in its birth. He put on his hat and walked quickly down
  • the garden, determined to investigate the matter to the very bottom.
  • Now, shortly before the scientific gentleman walked out into the garden,
  • Mr. Pickwick had run down the lane as fast as he could, to convey a
  • false alarm that somebody was coming that way; occasionally drawing back
  • the slide of the dark lantern to keep himself from the ditch. The alarm
  • was no sooner given, than Mr. Winkle scrambled back over the wall, and
  • Arabella ran into the house; the garden gate was shut, and the three
  • adventurers were making the best of their way down the lane, when they
  • were startled by the scientific gentleman unlocking his garden gate.
  • ‘Hold hard,’ whispered Sam, who was, of course, the first of the party.
  • ‘Show a light for just vun second, Sir.’
  • Mr. Pickwick did as he was desired, and Sam, seeing a man’s head peeping
  • out very cautiously within half a yard of his own, gave it a gentle tap
  • with his clenched fist, which knocked it, with a hollow sound, against
  • the gate. Having performed this feat with great suddenness and
  • dexterity, Mr. Weller caught Mr. Pickwick up on his back, and followed
  • Mr. Winkle down the lane at a pace which, considering the burden he
  • carried, was perfectly astonishing.
  • ‘Have you got your vind back agin, Sir,’ inquired Sam, when they had
  • reached the end.
  • ‘Quite. Quite, now,’ replied Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Then come along, Sir,’ said Sam, setting his master on his feet again.
  • ‘Come betveen us, sir. Not half a mile to run. Think you’re vinnin’ a
  • cup, sir. Now for it.’
  • Thus encouraged, Mr. Pickwick made the very best use of his legs. It may
  • be confidently stated that a pair of black gaiters never got over the
  • ground in better style than did those of Mr. Pickwick on this memorable
  • occasion.
  • The coach was waiting, the horses were fresh, the roads were good, and
  • the driver was willing. The whole party arrived in safety at the Bush
  • before Mr. Pickwick had recovered his breath.
  • ‘In with you at once, sir,’ said Sam, as he helped his master out.
  • ‘Don’t stop a second in the street, arter that ‘ere exercise. Beg your
  • pardon, sir,’ continued Sam, touching his hat as Mr. Winkle descended,
  • ‘hope there warn’t a priory ‘tachment, sir?’
  • Mr. Winkle grasped his humble friend by the hand, and whispered in his
  • ear, ‘It’s all right, Sam; quite right.’ Upon which Mr. Weller struck
  • three distinct blows upon his nose in token of intelligence, smiled,
  • winked, and proceeded to put the steps up, with a countenance expressive
  • of lively satisfaction.
  • As to the scientific gentleman, he demonstrated, in a masterly treatise,
  • that these wonderful lights were the effect of electricity; and clearly
  • proved the same by detailing how a flash of fire danced before his eyes
  • when he put his head out of the gate, and how he received a shock which
  • stunned him for a quarter of an hour afterwards; which demonstration
  • delighted all the scientific associations beyond measure, and caused him
  • to be considered a light of science ever afterwards.
  • CHAPTER XL. INTRODUCES MR. PICKWICK TO A NEW AND NOT UNINTERESTING SCENE
  • IN THE GREAT DRAMA OF LIFE
  • The remainder of the period which Mr. Pickwick had assigned as the
  • duration of the stay at Bath passed over without the occurrence of
  • anything material. Trinity term commenced. On the expiration of its
  • first week, Mr. Pickwick and his friends returned to London; and the
  • former gentleman, attended of course by Sam, straightway repaired to his
  • old quarters at the George and Vulture.
  • On the third morning after their arrival, just as all the clocks in the
  • city were striking nine individually, and somewhere about nine hundred
  • and ninety-nine collectively, Sam was taking the air in George Yard,
  • when a queer sort of fresh-painted vehicle drove up, out of which there
  • jumped with great agility, throwing the reins to a stout man who sat
  • beside him, a queer sort of gentleman, who seemed made for the vehicle,
  • and the vehicle for him.
  • The vehicle was not exactly a gig, neither was it a stanhope. It was not
  • what is currently denominated a dog-cart, neither was it a taxed cart,
  • nor a chaise-cart, nor a guillotined cabriolet; and yet it had something
  • of the character of each and every of these machines. It was painted a
  • bright yellow, with the shafts and wheels picked out in black; and the
  • driver sat in the orthodox sporting style, on cushions piled about two
  • feet above the rail. The horse was a bay, a well-looking animal enough;
  • but with something of a flash and dog-fighting air about him,
  • nevertheless, which accorded both with the vehicle and his master.
  • The master himself was a man of about forty, with black hair, and
  • carefully combed whiskers. He was dressed in a particularly gorgeous
  • manner, with plenty of articles of jewellery about him--all about three
  • sizes larger than those which are usually worn by gentlemen--and a rough
  • greatcoat to crown the whole. Into one pocket of this greatcoat, he
  • thrust his left hand the moment he dismounted, while from the other he
  • drew forth, with his right, a very bright and glaring silk handkerchief,
  • with which he whisked a speck or two of dust from his boots, and then,
  • crumpling it in his hand, swaggered up the court.
  • It had not escaped Sam’s attention that, when this person dismounted, a
  • shabby-looking man in a brown greatcoat shorn of divers buttons, who had
  • been previously slinking about, on the opposite side of the way, crossed
  • over, and remained stationary close by. Having something more than a
  • suspicion of the object of the gentleman’s visit, Sam preceded him to
  • the George and Vulture, and, turning sharp round, planted himself in the
  • centre of the doorway.
  • ‘Now, my fine fellow!’ said the man in the rough coat, in an imperious
  • tone, attempting at the same time to push his way past.
  • ‘Now, Sir, wot’s the matter?’ replied Sam, returning the push with
  • compound interest.
  • ‘Come, none of this, my man; this won’t do with me,’ said the owner of
  • the rough coat, raising his voice, and turning white. ‘Here, Smouch!’
  • ‘Well, wot’s amiss here?’ growled the man in the brown coat, who had
  • been gradually sneaking up the court during this short dialogue.
  • ‘Only some insolence of this young man’s,’ said the principal, giving
  • Sam another push.
  • ‘Come, none o’ this gammon,’ growled Smouch, giving him another, and a
  • harder one.
  • This last push had the effect which it was intended by the experienced
  • Mr. Smouch to produce; for while Sam, anxious to return the compliment,
  • was grinding that gentleman’s body against the door-post, the principal
  • crept past, and made his way to the bar, whither Sam, after bandying a
  • few epithetical remarks with Mr. Smouch, followed at once.
  • ‘Good-morning, my dear,’ said the principal, addressing the young lady
  • at the bar, with Botany Bay ease, and New South Wales gentility; ‘which
  • is Mr. Pickwick’s room, my dear?’
  • ‘Show him up,’ said the barmaid to a waiter, without deigning another
  • look at the exquisite, in reply to his inquiry.
  • The waiter led the way upstairs as he was desired, and the man in the
  • rough coat followed, with Sam behind him, who, in his progress up the
  • staircase, indulged in sundry gestures indicative of supreme contempt
  • and defiance, to the unspeakable gratification of the servants and other
  • lookers-on. Mr. Smouch, who was troubled with a hoarse cough, remained
  • below, and expectorated in the passage.
  • Mr. Pickwick was fast asleep in bed, when his early visitor, followed by
  • Sam, entered the room. The noise they made, in so doing, awoke him.
  • ‘Shaving-water, Sam,’ said Mr. Pickwick, from within the curtains.
  • ‘Shave you directly, Mr. Pickwick,’ said the visitor, drawing one of
  • them back from the bed’s head. ‘I’ve got an execution against you, at
  • the suit of Bardell.--Here’s the warrant.--Common Pleas.--Here’s my
  • card. I suppose you’ll come over to my house.’ Giving Mr. Pickwick a
  • friendly tap on the shoulder, the sheriff’s officer (for such he was)
  • threw his card on the counterpane, and pulled a gold toothpick from his
  • waistcoat pocket.
  • ‘Namby’s the name,’ said the sheriff’s deputy, as Mr. Pickwick took his
  • spectacles from under the pillow, and put them on, to read the card.
  • ‘Namby, Bell Alley, Coleman Street.’
  • At this point, Sam Weller, who had had his eyes fixed hitherto on Mr.
  • Namby’s shining beaver, interfered.
  • ‘Are you a Quaker?’ said Sam.
  • ‘I’ll let you know I am, before I’ve done with you,’ replied the
  • indignant officer. ‘I’ll teach you manners, my fine fellow, one of these
  • fine mornings.’
  • ‘Thank’ee,’ said Sam. ‘I’ll do the same to you. Take your hat off.’ With
  • this, Mr. Weller, in the most dexterous manner, knocked Mr. Namby’s hat
  • to the other side of the room, with such violence, that he had very
  • nearly caused him to swallow the gold toothpick into the bargain.
  • ‘Observe this, Mr. Pickwick,’ said the disconcerted officer, gasping for
  • breath. ‘I’ve been assaulted in the execution of my dooty by your
  • servant in your chamber. I’m in bodily fear. I call you to witness
  • this.’
  • ‘Don’t witness nothin’, Sir,’ interposed Sam. ‘Shut your eyes up tight,
  • Sir. I’d pitch him out o’ winder, only he couldn’t fall far enough,
  • ‘cause o’ the leads outside.’
  • ‘Sam,’ said Mr. Pickwick, in an angry voice, as his attendant made
  • various demonstrations of hostilities, ‘if you say another word, or
  • offer the slightest interference with this person, I discharge you that
  • instant.’
  • ‘But, Sir!’ said Sam.
  • ‘Hold your tongue,’ interposed Mr. Pickwick. ‘Take that hat up again.’
  • But this Sam flatly and positively refused to do; and, after he had been
  • severely reprimanded by his master, the officer, being in a hurry,
  • condescended to pick it up himself, venting a great variety of threats
  • against Sam meanwhile, which that gentleman received with perfect
  • composure, merely observing that if Mr. Namby would have the goodness to
  • put his hat on again, he would knock it into the latter end of next
  • week. Mr. Namby, perhaps thinking that such a process might be
  • productive of inconvenience to himself, declined to offer the
  • temptation, and, soon after, called up Smouch. Having informed him that
  • the capture was made, and that he was to wait for the prisoner until he
  • should have finished dressing, Namby then swaggered out, and drove away.
  • Smouch, requesting Mr. Pickwick in a surly manner ‘to be as alive as he
  • could, for it was a busy time,’ drew up a chair by the door and sat
  • there, until he had finished dressing. Sam was then despatched for a
  • hackney-coach, and in it the triumvirate proceeded to Coleman Street. It
  • was fortunate the distance was short; for Mr. Smouch, besides possessing
  • no very enchanting conversational powers, was rendered a decidedly
  • unpleasant companion in a limited space, by the physical weakness to
  • which we have elsewhere adverted.
  • The coach having turned into a very narrow and dark street, stopped
  • before a house with iron bars to all the windows; the door-posts of
  • which were graced by the name and title of ‘Namby, Officer to the
  • Sheriffs of London’; the inner gate having been opened by a gentleman
  • who might have passed for a neglected twin-brother of Mr. Smouch, and
  • who was endowed with a large key for the purpose, Mr. Pickwick was shown
  • into the ‘coffee-room.’
  • This coffee-room was a front parlour, the principal features of which
  • were fresh sand and stale tobacco smoke. Mr. Pickwick bowed to the three
  • persons who were seated in it when he entered; and having despatched Sam
  • for Perker, withdrew into an obscure corner, and looked thence with some
  • curiosity upon his new companions.
  • One of these was a mere boy of nineteen or twenty, who, though it was
  • yet barely ten o’clock, was drinking gin-and-water, and smoking a cigar-
  • -amusements to which, judging from his inflamed countenance, he had
  • devoted himself pretty constantly for the last year or two of his life.
  • Opposite him, engaged in stirring the fire with the toe of his right
  • boot, was a coarse, vulgar young man of about thirty, with a sallow face
  • and harsh voice; evidently possessed of that knowledge of the world, and
  • captivating freedom of manner, which is to be acquired in public-house
  • parlours, and at low billiard tables. The third tenant of the apartment
  • was a middle-aged man in a very old suit of black, who looked pale and
  • haggard, and paced up and down the room incessantly; stopping, now and
  • then, to look with great anxiety out of the window as if he expected
  • somebody, and then resuming his walk.
  • ‘You’d better have the loan of my razor this morning, Mr. Ayresleigh,’
  • said the man who was stirring the fire, tipping the wink to his friend
  • the boy.
  • ‘Thank you, no, I shan’t want it; I expect I shall be out, in the course
  • of an hour or so,’ replied the other in a hurried manner. Then, walking
  • again up to the window, and once more returning disappointed, he sighed
  • deeply, and left the room; upon which the other two burst into a loud
  • laugh.
  • ‘Well, I never saw such a game as that,’ said the gentleman who had
  • offered the razor, whose name appeared to be Price. ‘Never!’ Mr. Price
  • confirmed the assertion with an oath, and then laughed again, when of
  • course the boy (who thought his companion one of the most dashing
  • fellows alive) laughed also.
  • ‘You’d hardly think, would you now,’ said Price, turning towards Mr.
  • Pickwick, ‘that that chap’s been here a week yesterday, and never once
  • shaved himself yet, because he feels so certain he’s going out in half
  • an hour’s time, thinks he may as well put it off till he gets home?’
  • ‘Poor man!’ said Mr. Pickwick. ‘Are his chances of getting out of his
  • difficulties really so great?’
  • ‘Chances be d----d,’ replied Price; ‘he hasn’t half the ghost of one. I
  • wouldn’t give _that _for his chance of walking about the streets this
  • time ten years.’ With this, Mr. Price snapped his fingers
  • contemptuously, and rang the bell.
  • ‘Give me a sheet of paper, Crookey,’ said Mr. Price to the attendant,
  • who in dress and general appearance looked something between a bankrupt
  • glazier, and a drover in a state of insolvency; ‘and a glass of brandy-
  • and-water, Crookey, d’ye hear? I’m going to write to my father, and I
  • must have a stimulant, or I shan’t be able to pitch it strong enough
  • into the old boy.’ At this facetious speech, the young boy, it is almost
  • needless to say, was fairly convulsed.
  • ‘That’s right,’ said Mr. Price. ‘Never say die. All fun, ain’t it?’
  • ‘Prime!’ said the young gentleman.
  • ‘You’ve got some spirit about you, you have,’ said Price. ‘You’ve seen
  • something of life.’
  • ‘I rather think I have!’ replied the boy. He had looked at it through
  • the dirty panes of glass in a bar door.
  • Mr. Pickwick, feeling not a little disgusted with this dialogue, as well
  • as with the air and manner of the two beings by whom it had been carried
  • on, was about to inquire whether he could not be accommodated with a
  • private sitting-room, when two or three strangers of genteel appearance
  • entered, at sight of whom the boy threw his cigar into the fire, and
  • whispering to Mr. Price that they had come to ‘make it all right’ for
  • him, joined them at a table in the farther end of the room.
  • It would appear, however, that matters were not going to be made all
  • right quite so speedily as the young gentleman anticipated; for a very
  • long conversation ensued, of which Mr. Pickwick could not avoid hearing
  • certain angry fragments regarding dissolute conduct, and repeated
  • forgiveness. At last, there were very distinct allusions made by the
  • oldest gentleman of the party to one Whitecross Street, at which the
  • young gentleman, notwithstanding his primeness and his spirit, and his
  • knowledge of life into the bargain, reclined his head upon the table,
  • and howled dismally.
  • Very much satisfied with this sudden bringing down of the youth’s
  • valour, and this effectual lowering of his tone, Mr. Pickwick rang the
  • bell, and was shown, at his own request, into a private room furnished
  • with a carpet, table, chairs, sideboard and sofa, and ornamented with a
  • looking-glass, and various old prints. Here he had the advantage of
  • hearing Mrs. Namby’s performance on a square piano overhead, while the
  • breakfast was getting ready; when it came, Mr. Perker came too.
  • ‘Aha, my dear sir,’ said the little man, ‘nailed at last, eh? Come,
  • come, I’m not sorry for it either, because now you’ll see the absurdity
  • of this conduct. I’ve noted down the amount of the taxed costs and
  • damages for which the ca-sa was issued, and we had better settle at once
  • and lose no time. Namby is come home by this time, I dare say. What say
  • you, my dear sir? Shall I draw a cheque, or will you?’ The little man
  • rubbed his hands with affected cheerfulness as he said this, but
  • glancing at Mr. Pickwick’s countenance, could not forbear at the same
  • time casting a desponding look towards Sam Weller.
  • ‘Perker,’ said Mr. Pickwick, ‘let me hear no more of this, I beg. I see
  • no advantage in staying here, so I shall go to prison to-night.’
  • ‘You can’t go to Whitecross Street, my dear Sir,’ said Perker.
  • ‘Impossible! There are sixty beds in a ward; and the bolt’s on, sixteen
  • hours out of the four-and-twenty.’
  • ‘I would rather go to some other place of confinement if I can,’ said
  • Mr. Pickwick. ‘If not, I must make the best I can of that.’
  • ‘You can go to the Fleet, my dear Sir, if you’re determined to go
  • somewhere,’ said Perker.
  • ‘That’ll do,’ said Mr. Pickwick. ‘I’ll go there directly I have finished
  • my breakfast.’
  • ‘Stop, stop, my dear Sir; not the least occasion for being in such a
  • violent hurry to get into a place that most other men are as eager to
  • get out of,’ said the good-natured little attorney. ‘We must have a
  • habeas-corpus. There’ll be no judge at chambers till four o’clock this
  • afternoon. You must wait till then.’
  • ‘Very good,’ said Mr. Pickwick, with unmoved patience. ‘Then we will
  • have a chop here, at two. See about it, Sam, and tell them to be
  • punctual.’
  • Mr. Pickwick remaining firm, despite all the remonstrances and arguments
  • of Perker, the chops appeared and disappeared in due course; he was then
  • put into another hackney coach, and carried off to Chancery Lane, after
  • waiting half an hour or so for Mr. Namby, who had a select dinner-party
  • and could on no account be disturbed before.
  • There were two judges in attendance at Serjeant’s Inn--one King’s Bench,
  • and one Common Pleas--and a great deal of business appeared to be
  • transacting before them, if the number of lawyer’s clerks who were
  • hurrying in and out with bundles of papers, afforded any test. When they
  • reached the low archway which forms the entrance to the inn, Perker was
  • detained a few moments parlaying with the coachman about the fare and
  • the change; and Mr. Pickwick, stepping to one side to be out of the way
  • of the stream of people that were pouring in and out, looked about him
  • with some curiosity.
  • The people that attracted his attention most, were three or four men of
  • shabby-genteel appearance, who touched their hats to many of the
  • attorneys who passed, and seemed to have some business there, the nature
  • of which Mr. Pickwick could not divine. They were curious-looking
  • fellows. One was a slim and rather lame man in rusty black, and a white
  • neckerchief; another was a stout, burly person, dressed in the same
  • apparel, with a great reddish-black cloth round his neck; a third was a
  • little weazen, drunken-looking body, with a pimply face. They were
  • loitering about, with their hands behind them, and now and then with an
  • anxious countenance whispered something in the ear of some of the
  • gentlemen with papers, as they hurried by. Mr. Pickwick remembered to
  • have very often observed them lounging under the archway when he had
  • been walking past; and his curiosity was quite excited to know to what
  • branch of the profession these dingy-looking loungers could possibly
  • belong.
  • He was about to propound the question to Namby, who kept close beside
  • him, sucking a large gold ring on his little finger, when Perker bustled
  • up, and observing that there was no time to lose, led the way into the
  • inn. As Mr. Pickwick followed, the lame man stepped up to him, and
  • civilly touching his hat, held out a written card, which Mr. Pickwick,
  • not wishing to hurt the man’s feelings by refusing, courteously accepted
  • and deposited in his waistcoat pocket.
  • ‘Now,’ said Perker, turning round before he entered one of the offices,
  • to see that his companions were close behind him. ‘In here, my dear sir.
  • Hallo, what do you want?’
  • This last question was addressed to the lame man, who, unobserved by Mr.
  • Pickwick, made one of the party. In reply to it, the lame man touched
  • his hat again, with all imaginable politeness, and motioned towards Mr.
  • Pickwick.
  • ‘No, no,’ said Perker, with a smile. ‘We don’t want you, my dear friend,
  • we don’t want you.’
  • ‘I beg your pardon, sir,’ said the lame man. ‘The gentleman took my
  • card. I hope you will employ me, sir. The gentleman nodded to me. I’ll
  • be judged by the gentleman himself. You nodded to me, sir?’
  • ‘Pooh, pooh, nonsense. You didn’t nod to anybody, Pickwick? A mistake, a
  • mistake,’ said Perker.
  • ‘The gentleman handed me his card,’ replied Mr. Pickwick, producing it
  • from his waistcoat pocket. ‘I accepted it, as the gentleman seemed to
  • wish it--in fact I had some curiosity to look at it when I should be at
  • leisure. I--’
  • The little attorney burst into a loud laugh, and returning the card to
  • the lame man, informing him it was all a mistake, whispered to Mr.
  • Pickwick as the man turned away in dudgeon, that he was only a bail.
  • ‘A what!’ exclaimed Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘A bail,’ replied Perker.
  • ‘A bail!’
  • Yes, my dear sir--half a dozen of ‘em here. Bail you to any amount, and
  • only charge half a crown. Curious trade, isn’t it?’ said Perker,
  • regaling himself with a pinch of snuff.
  • ‘What! Am I to understand that these men earn a livelihood by waiting
  • about here, to perjure themselves before the judges of the land, at the
  • rate of half a crown a crime?’ exclaimed Mr. Pickwick, quite aghast at
  • the disclosure.
  • ‘Why, I don’t exactly know about perjury, my dear sir,’ replied the
  • little gentleman. ‘Harsh word, my dear sir, very harsh word indeed. It’s
  • a legal fiction, my dear sir, nothing more.’ Saying which, the attorney
  • shrugged his shoulders, smiled, took a second pinch of snuff, and led
  • the way into the office of the judge’s clerk.
  • This was a room of specially dirty appearance, with a very low ceiling
  • and old panelled walls; and so badly lighted, that although it was broad
  • day outside, great tallow candles were burning on the desks. At one end,
  • was a door leading to the judge’s private apartment, round which were
  • congregated a crowd of attorneys and managing clerks, who were called
  • in, in the order in which their respective appointments stood upon the
  • file. Every time this door was opened to let a party out, the next party
  • made a violent rush to get in; and, as in addition to the numerous
  • dialogues which passed between the gentlemen who were waiting to see the
  • judge, a variety of personal squabbles ensued between the greater part
  • of those who had seen him, there was as much noise as could well be
  • raised in an apartment of such confined dimensions.
  • Nor were the conversations of these gentlemen the only sounds that broke
  • upon the ear. Standing on a box behind a wooden bar at another end of
  • the room was a clerk in spectacles who was ‘taking the affidavits’;
  • large batches of which were, from time to time, carried into the private
  • room by another clerk for the judge’s signature. There were a large
  • number of attorneys’ clerks to be sworn, and it being a moral
  • impossibility to swear them all at once, the struggles of these
  • gentlemen to reach the clerk in spectacles, were like those of a crowd
  • to get in at the pit door of a theatre when Gracious Majesty honours it
  • with its presence. Another functionary, from time to time, exercised his
  • lungs in calling over the names of those who had been sworn, for the
  • purpose of restoring to them their affidavits after they had been signed
  • by the judge, which gave rise to a few more scuffles; and all these
  • things going on at the same time, occasioned as much bustle as the most
  • active and excitable person could desire to behold. There were yet
  • another class of persons--those who were waiting to attend summonses
  • their employers had taken out, which it was optional to the attorney on
  • the opposite side to attend or not--and whose business it was, from time
  • to time, to cry out the opposite attorney’s name; to make certain that
  • he was not in attendance without their knowledge.
  • For example. Leaning against the wall, close beside the seat Mr.
  • Pickwick had taken, was an office-lad of fourteen, with a tenor voice;
  • near him a common-law clerk with a bass one.
  • A clerk hurried in with a bundle of papers, and stared about him.
  • ‘Sniggle and Blink,’ cried the tenor.
  • ‘Porkin and Snob,’ growled the bass.
  • ‘Stumpy and Deacon,’ said the new-comer.
  • Nobody answered; the next man who came in, was bailed by the whole
  • three; and he in his turn shouted for another firm; and then somebody
  • else roared in a loud voice for another; and so forth.
  • All this time, the man in the spectacles was hard at work, swearing the
  • clerks; the oath being invariably administered, without any effort at
  • punctuation, and usually in the following terms:--
  • ‘Take the book in your right hand this is your name and hand-writing you
  • swear that the contents of this your affidavit are true so help you God
  • a shilling you must get change I haven’t got it.’
  • ‘Well, Sam,’ said Mr. Pickwick, ‘I suppose they are getting the _Habeas-
  • corpus_ ready?’
  • ‘Yes,’ said Sam, ‘and I vish they’d bring out the have-his-carcase. It’s
  • wery unpleasant keepin’ us vaitin’ here. I’d ha’ got half a dozen have-
  • his-carcases ready, pack’d up and all, by this time.’
  • What sort of cumbrous and unmanageable machine, Sam Weller imagined a
  • habeas-corpus to be, does not appear; for Perker, at that moment, walked
  • up and took Mr. Pickwick away.
  • The usual forms having been gone through, the body of Samuel Pickwick
  • was soon afterwards confided to the custody of the tipstaff, to be by
  • him taken to the warden of the Fleet Prison, and there detained until
  • the amount of the damages and costs in the action of Bardell against
  • Pickwick was fully paid and satisfied.
  • ‘And that,’ said Mr. Pickwick, laughing, ‘will be a very long time. Sam,
  • call another hackney-coach. Perker, my dear friend, good-bye.’
  • ‘I shall go with you, and see you safe there,’ said Perker.
  • ‘Indeed,’ replied Mr. Pickwick, ‘I would rather go without any other
  • attendant than Sam. As soon as I get settled, I will write and let you
  • know, and I shall expect you immediately. Until then, good-bye.’
  • As Mr. Pickwick said this, he got into the coach which had by this time
  • arrived, followed by the tipstaff. Sam having stationed himself on the
  • box, it rolled away.
  • ‘A most extraordinary man that!’ said Perker, as he stopped to pull on
  • his gloves.
  • ‘What a bankrupt he’d make, Sir,’ observed Mr. Lowten, who was standing
  • near. ‘How he would bother the commissioners! He’d set ‘em at defiance
  • if they talked of committing him, Sir.’
  • The attorney did not appear very much delighted with his clerk’s
  • professional estimate of Mr. Pickwick’s character, for he walked away
  • without deigning any reply.
  • The hackney-coach jolted along Fleet Street, as hackney-coaches usually
  • do. The horses ‘went better’, the driver said, when they had anything
  • before them (they must have gone at a most extraordinary pace when there
  • was nothing), and so the vehicle kept behind a cart; when the cart
  • stopped, it stopped; and when the cart went on again, it did the same.
  • Mr. Pickwick sat opposite the tipstaff; and the tipstaff sat with his
  • hat between his knees, whistling a tune, and looking out of the coach
  • window.
  • Time performs wonders. By the powerful old gentleman’s aid, even a
  • hackney-coach gets over half a mile of ground. They stopped at length,
  • and Mr. Pickwick alighted at the gate of the Fleet.
  • The tipstaff, just looking over his shoulder to see that his charge was
  • following close at his heels, preceded Mr. Pickwick into the prison;
  • turning to the left, after they had entered, they passed through an open
  • door into a lobby, from which a heavy gate, opposite to that by which
  • they had entered, and which was guarded by a stout turnkey with the key
  • in his hand, led at once into the interior of the prison.
  • Here they stopped, while the tipstaff delivered his papers; and here Mr.
  • Pickwick was apprised that he would remain, until he had undergone the
  • ceremony, known to the initiated as ‘sitting for your portrait.’
  • ‘Sitting for my portrait?’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Having your likeness taken, sir,’ replied the stout turnkey.
  • ‘We’re capital hands at likenesses here. Take ‘em in no time, and always
  • exact. Walk in, sir, and make yourself at home.’
  • Mr. Pickwick complied with the invitation, and sat himself down; when
  • Mr. Weller, who stationed himself at the back of the chair, whispered
  • that the sitting was merely another term for undergoing an inspection by
  • the different turnkeys, in order that they might know prisoners from
  • visitors.
  • ‘Well, Sam,’ said Mr. Pickwick, ‘then I wish the artists would come.
  • This is rather a public place.’
  • ‘They von’t be long, Sir, I des-say,’ replied Sam. ‘There’s a Dutch
  • clock, sir.’
  • ‘So I see,’ observed Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘And a bird-cage, sir,’ says Sam. ‘Veels vithin veels, a prison in a
  • prison. Ain’t it, Sir?’
  • As Mr. Weller made this philosophical remark, Mr. Pickwick was aware
  • that his sitting had commenced. The stout turnkey having been relieved
  • from the lock, sat down, and looked at him carelessly, from time to
  • time, while a long thin man who had relieved him, thrust his hands
  • beneath his coat tails, and planting himself opposite, took a good long
  • view of him. A third rather surly-looking gentleman, who had apparently
  • been disturbed at his tea, for he was disposing of the last remnant of a
  • crust and butter when he came in, stationed himself close to Mr.
  • Pickwick; and, resting his hands on his hips, inspected him narrowly;
  • while two others mixed with the group, and studied his features with
  • most intent and thoughtful faces. Mr. Pickwick winced a good deal under
  • the operation, and appeared to sit very uneasily in his chair; but he
  • made no remark to anybody while it was being performed, not even to Sam,
  • who reclined upon the back of the chair, reflecting, partly on the
  • situation of his master, and partly on the great satisfaction it would
  • have afforded him to make a fierce assault upon all the turnkeys there
  • assembled, one after the other, if it were lawful and peaceable so to
  • do.
  • At length the likeness was completed, and Mr. Pickwick was informed that
  • he might now proceed into the prison.
  • ‘Where am I to sleep to-night?’ inquired Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Why, I don’t rightly know about to-night,’ replied the stout turnkey.
  • ‘You’ll be chummed on somebody to-morrow, and then you’ll be all snug
  • and comfortable. The first night’s generally rather unsettled, but
  • you’ll be set all squares to-morrow.’
  • After some discussion, it was discovered that one of the turnkeys had a
  • bed to let, which Mr. Pickwick could have for that night. He gladly
  • agreed to hire it.
  • ‘If you’ll come with me, I’ll show it you at once,’ said the man. ‘It
  • ain’t a large ‘un; but it’s an out-and-outer to sleep in. This way,
  • sir.’
  • They passed through the inner gate, and descended a short flight of
  • steps. The key was turned after them; and Mr. Pickwick found himself,
  • for the first time in his life, within the walls of a debtors’ prison.
  • CHAPTER XLI. WHAT BEFELL MR. PICKWICK WHEN HE GOT INTO THE FLEET; WHAT
  • PRISONERS HE SAW THERE, AND HOW HE PASSED THE NIGHT
  • Mr. Tom Roker, the gentleman who had accompanied Mr. Pickwick into the
  • prison, turned sharp round to the right when he got to the bottom of the
  • little flight of steps, and led the way, through an iron gate which
  • stood open, and up another short flight of steps, into a long narrow
  • gallery, dirty and low, paved with stone, and very dimly lighted by a
  • window at each remote end.
  • ‘This,’ said the gentleman, thrusting his hands into his pockets, and
  • looking carelessly over his shoulder to Mr. Pickwick--‘this here is the
  • hall flight.’
  • ‘Oh,’ replied Mr. Pickwick, looking down a dark and filthy staircase,
  • which appeared to lead to a range of damp and gloomy stone vaults,
  • beneath the ground, ‘and those, I suppose, are the little cellars where
  • the prisoners keep their small quantities of coals. Unpleasant places to
  • have to go down to; but very convenient, I dare say.’
  • ‘Yes, I shouldn’t wonder if they was convenient,’ replied the gentleman,
  • ‘seeing that a few people live there, pretty snug. That’s the Fair, that
  • is.’
  • ‘My friend,’ said Mr. Pickwick, ‘you don’t really mean to say that human
  • beings live down in those wretched dungeons?’
  • ‘Don’t I?’ replied Mr. Roker, with indignant astonishment; ‘why
  • shouldn’t I?’
  • ‘Live!--live down there!’ exclaimed Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Live down there! Yes, and die down there, too, very often!’ replied Mr.
  • Roker; ‘and what of that? Who’s got to say anything agin it? Live down
  • there! Yes, and a wery good place it is to live in, ain’t it?’
  • As Roker turned somewhat fiercely upon Mr. Pickwick in saying this, and
  • moreover muttered in an excited fashion certain unpleasant invocations
  • concerning his own eyes, limbs, and circulating fluids, the latter
  • gentleman deemed it advisable to pursue the discourse no further. Mr.
  • Roker then proceeded to mount another staircase, as dirty as that which
  • led to the place which has just been the subject of discussion, in which
  • ascent he was closely followed by Mr. Pickwick and Sam.
  • ‘There,’ said Mr. Roker, pausing for breath when they reached another
  • gallery of the same dimensions as the one below, ‘this is the coffee-
  • room flight; the one above’s the third, and the one above that’s the
  • top; and the room where you’re a-going to sleep to-night is the warden’s
  • room, and it’s this way--come on.’ Having said all this in a breath, Mr.
  • Roker mounted another flight of stairs with Mr. Pickwick and Sam Weller
  • following at his heels.
  • These staircases received light from sundry windows placed at some
  • little distance above the floor, and looking into a gravelled area
  • bounded by a high brick wall, with iron _chevaux-de-frise_ at the top.
  • This area, it appeared from Mr. Roker’s statement, was the racket-
  • ground; and it further appeared, on the testimony of the same gentleman,
  • that there was a smaller area in that portion of the prison which was
  • nearest Farringdon Street, denominated and called ‘the Painted Ground,’
  • from the fact of its walls having once displayed the semblance of
  • various men-of-war in full sail, and other artistical effects achieved
  • in bygone times by some imprisoned draughtsman in his leisure hours.
  • Having communicated this piece of information, apparently more for the
  • purpose of discharging his bosom of an important fact, than with any
  • specific view of enlightening Mr. Pickwick, the guide, having at length
  • reached another gallery, led the way into a small passage at the extreme
  • end, opened a door, and disclosed an apartment of an appearance by no
  • means inviting, containing eight or nine iron bedsteads.
  • ‘There,’ said Mr. Roker, holding the door open, and looking triumphantly
  • round at Mr. Pickwick, ‘there’s a room!’
  • Mr. Pickwick’s face, however, betokened such a very trifling portion of
  • satisfaction at the appearance of his lodging, that Mr. Roker looked,
  • for a reciprocity of feeling, into the countenance of Samuel Weller,
  • who, until now, had observed a dignified silence.
  • ‘There’s a room, young man,’ observed Mr. Roker.
  • ‘I see it,’ replied Sam, with a placid nod of the head.
  • ‘You wouldn’t think to find such a room as this in the Farringdon Hotel,
  • would you?’ said Mr. Roker, with a complacent smile.
  • To this Mr. Weller replied with an easy and unstudied closing of one
  • eye; which might be considered to mean, either that he would have
  • thought it, or that he would not have thought it, or that he had never
  • thought anything at all about it, as the observer’s imagination
  • suggested. Having executed this feat, and reopened his eye, Mr. Weller
  • proceeded to inquire which was the individual bedstead that Mr. Roker
  • had so flatteringly described as an out-and-outer to sleep in.
  • ‘That’s it,’ replied Mr. Roker, pointing to a very rusty one in a
  • corner. ‘It would make any one go to sleep, that bedstead would, whether
  • they wanted to or not.’
  • ‘I should think,’ said Sam, eyeing the piece of furniture in question
  • with a look of excessive disgust--‘I should think poppies was nothing to
  • it.’
  • ‘Nothing at all,’ said Mr. Roker.
  • ‘And I s’pose,’ said Sam, with a sidelong glance at his master, as if to
  • see whether there were any symptoms of his determination being shaken by
  • what passed, ‘I s’pose the other gen’l’men as sleeps here _are
  • _gen’l’men.’
  • ‘Nothing but it,’ said Mr. Roker. ‘One of ‘em takes his twelve pints of
  • ale a day, and never leaves off smoking even at his meals.’
  • ‘He must be a first-rater,’ said Sam.
  • ‘A1,’ replied Mr. Roker.
  • Nothing daunted, even by this intelligence, Mr. Pickwick smilingly
  • announced his determination to test the powers of the narcotic bedstead
  • for that night; and Mr. Roker, after informing him that he could retire
  • to rest at whatever hour he thought proper, without any further notice
  • or formality, walked off, leaving him standing with Sam in the gallery.
  • It was getting dark; that is to say, a few gas jets were kindled in this
  • place which was never light, by way of compliment to the evening, which
  • had set in outside. As it was rather warm, some of the tenants of the
  • numerous little rooms which opened into the gallery on either hand, had
  • set their doors ajar. Mr. Pickwick peeped into them as he passed along,
  • with great curiosity and interest. Here, four or five great hulking
  • fellows, just visible through a cloud of tobacco smoke, were engaged in
  • noisy and riotous conversation over half-emptied pots of beer, or
  • playing at all-fours with a very greasy pack of cards. In the adjoining
  • room, some solitary tenant might be seen poring, by the light of a
  • feeble tallow candle, over a bundle of soiled and tattered papers,
  • yellow with dust and dropping to pieces from age, writing, for the
  • hundredth time, some lengthened statement of his grievances, for the
  • perusal of some great man whose eyes it would never reach, or whose
  • heart it would never touch. In a third, a man, with his wife and a whole
  • crowd of children, might be seen making up a scanty bed on the ground,
  • or upon a few chairs, for the younger ones to pass the night in. And in
  • a fourth, and a fifth, and a sixth, and a seventh, the noise, and the
  • beer, and the tobacco smoke, and the cards, all came over again in
  • greater force than before.
  • In the galleries themselves, and more especially on the stair-cases,
  • there lingered a great number of people, who came there, some because
  • their rooms were empty and lonesome, others because their rooms were
  • full and hot; the greater part because they were restless and
  • uncomfortable, and not possessed of the secret of exactly knowing what
  • to do with themselves. There were many classes of people here, from the
  • labouring man in his fustian jacket, to the broken-down spendthrift in
  • his shawl dressing-gown, most appropriately out at elbows; but there was
  • the same air about them all--a kind of listless, jail-bird, careless
  • swagger, a vagabondish who’s-afraid sort of bearing, which is wholly
  • indescribable in words, but which any man can understand in one moment
  • if he wish, by setting foot in the nearest debtors’ prison, and looking
  • at the very first group of people he sees there, with the same interest
  • as Mr. Pickwick did.
  • ‘It strikes me, Sam,’ said Mr. Pickwick, leaning over the iron rail at
  • the stair-head, ‘it strikes me, Sam, that imprisonment for debt is
  • scarcely any punishment at all.’
  • ‘Think not, sir?’ inquired Mr. Weller.
  • ‘You see how these fellows drink, and smoke, and roar,’ replied Mr.
  • Pickwick. ‘It’s quite impossible that they can mind it much.’
  • ‘Ah, that’s just the wery thing, Sir,’ rejoined Sam, ‘they don’t mind
  • it; it’s a reg’lar holiday to them--all porter and skittles. It’s the
  • t’other vuns as gets done over vith this sort o’ thing; them down-
  • hearted fellers as can’t svig avay at the beer, nor play at skittles
  • neither; them as vould pay if they could, and gets low by being boxed
  • up. I’ll tell you wot it is, sir; them as is always a-idlin’ in public-
  • houses it don’t damage at all, and them as is alvays a-workin’ wen they
  • can, it damages too much. “It’s unekal,” as my father used to say wen
  • his grog worn’t made half-and-half: “it’s unekal, and that’s the fault
  • on it.”’
  • ‘I think you’re right, Sam,’ said Mr. Pickwick, after a few moments’
  • reflection, ‘quite right.’
  • ‘P’raps, now and then, there’s some honest people as likes it,’ observed
  • Mr. Weller, in a ruminative tone, ‘but I never heerd o’ one as I can
  • call to mind, ‘cept the little dirty-faced man in the brown coat; and
  • that was force of habit.’
  • ‘And who was he?’ inquired Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Wy, that’s just the wery point as nobody never know’d,’ replied Sam.
  • ‘But what did he do?’
  • ‘Wy, he did wot many men as has been much better know’d has done in
  • their time, Sir,’ replied Sam, ‘he run a match agin the constable, and
  • vun it.’
  • ‘In other words, I suppose,’ said Mr. Pickwick, ‘he got into debt.’
  • ‘Just that, Sir,’ replied Sam, ‘and in course o’ time he come here in
  • consekens. It warn’t much--execution for nine pound nothin’, multiplied
  • by five for costs; but hows’ever here he stopped for seventeen year. If
  • he got any wrinkles in his face, they were stopped up vith the dirt, for
  • both the dirty face and the brown coat wos just the same at the end o’
  • that time as they wos at the beginnin’. He wos a wery peaceful,
  • inoffendin’ little creetur, and wos alvays a-bustlin’ about for
  • somebody, or playin’ rackets and never vinnin’; till at last the
  • turnkeys they got quite fond on him, and he wos in the lodge ev’ry
  • night, a-chattering vith ‘em, and tellin’ stories, and all that ‘ere.
  • Vun night he wos in there as usual, along vith a wery old friend of his,
  • as wos on the lock, ven he says all of a sudden, “I ain’t seen the
  • market outside, Bill,” he says (Fleet Market wos there at that time)--“I
  • ain’t seen the market outside, Bill,” he says, “for seventeen year.” “I
  • know you ain’t,” says the turnkey, smoking his pipe. “I should like to
  • see it for a minit, Bill,” he says. “Wery probable,” says the turnkey,
  • smoking his pipe wery fierce, and making believe he warn’t up to wot the
  • little man wanted. “Bill,” says the little man, more abrupt than afore,
  • “I’ve got the fancy in my head. Let me see the public streets once more
  • afore I die; and if I ain’t struck with apoplexy, I’ll be back in five
  • minits by the clock.” “And wot ‘ud become o’ me if you _wos _struck with
  • apoplexy?” said the turnkey. “Wy,” says the little creetur, “whoever
  • found me, ‘ud bring me home, for I’ve got my card in my pocket, Bill,”
  • he says, “No. 20, Coffee-room Flight”: and that wos true, sure enough,
  • for wen he wanted to make the acquaintance of any new-comer, he used to
  • pull out a little limp card vith them words on it and nothin’ else; in
  • consideration of vich, he vos alvays called Number Tventy. The turnkey
  • takes a fixed look at him, and at last he says in a solemn manner,
  • “Tventy,” he says, “I’ll trust you; you Won’t get your old friend into
  • trouble.” “No, my boy; I hope I’ve somethin’ better behind here,” says
  • the little man; and as he said it he hit his little vesket wery hard,
  • and then a tear started out o’ each eye, which wos wery extraordinary,
  • for it wos supposed as water never touched his face. He shook the
  • turnkey by the hand; out he vent--’
  • ‘And never came back again,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Wrong for vunce, sir,’ replied Mr. Weller, ‘for back he come, two
  • minits afore the time, a-bilin’ with rage, sayin’ how he’d been nearly
  • run over by a hackney-coach that he warn’t used to it; and he was blowed
  • if he wouldn’t write to the lord mayor. They got him pacified at last;
  • and for five years arter that, he never even so much as peeped out o’
  • the lodge gate.’
  • ‘At the expiration of that time he died, I suppose,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘No, he didn’t, Sir,’ replied Sam. ‘He got a curiosity to go and taste
  • the beer at a new public-house over the way, and it wos such a wery nice
  • parlour, that he took it into his head to go there every night, which he
  • did for a long time, always comin’ back reg’lar about a quarter of an
  • hour afore the gate shut, which was all wery snug and comfortable. At
  • last he began to get so precious jolly, that he used to forget how the
  • time vent, or care nothin’ at all about it, and he went on gettin’ later
  • and later, till vun night his old friend wos just a-shuttin’ the gate--
  • had turned the key in fact--wen he come up. “Hold hard, Bill,” he says.
  • “Wot, ain’t you come home yet, Tventy?” says the turnkey, “I thought you
  • wos in, long ago.” “No, I wasn’t,” says the little man, with a smile.
  • “Well, then, I’ll tell you wot it is, my friend,” says the turnkey,
  • openin’ the gate wery slow and sulky, “it’s my ‘pinion as you’ve got
  • into bad company o’ late, which I’m wery sorry to see. Now, I don’t wish
  • to do nothing harsh,” he says, “but if you can’t confine yourself to
  • steady circles, and find your vay back at reg’lar hours, as sure as
  • you’re a-standin’ there, I’ll shut you out altogether!” The little man
  • was seized vith a wiolent fit o’ tremblin’, and never vent outside the
  • prison walls artervards!’
  • As Sam concluded, Mr. Pickwick slowly retraced his steps downstairs.
  • After a few thoughtful turns in the Painted Ground, which, as it was now
  • dark, was nearly deserted, he intimated to Mr. Weller that he thought it
  • high time for him to withdraw for the night; requesting him to seek a
  • bed in some adjacent public-house, and return early in the morning, to
  • make arrangements for the removal of his master’s wardrobe from the
  • George and Vulture. This request Mr. Samuel Weller prepared to obey,
  • with as good a grace as he could assume, but with a very considerable
  • show of reluctance nevertheless. He even went so far as to essay sundry
  • ineffectual hints regarding the expediency of stretching himself on the
  • gravel for that night; but finding Mr. Pickwick obstinately deaf to any
  • such suggestions, finally withdrew.
  • There is no disguising the fact that Mr. Pickwick felt very low-spirited
  • and uncomfortable--not for lack of society, for the prison was very
  • full, and a bottle of wine would at once have purchased the utmost good-
  • fellowship of a few choice spirits, without any more formal ceremony of
  • introduction; but he was alone in the coarse, vulgar crowd, and felt the
  • depression of spirits and sinking of heart, naturally consequent on the
  • reflection that he was cooped and caged up, without a prospect of
  • liberation. As to the idea of releasing himself by ministering to the
  • sharpness of Dodson & Fogg, it never for an instant entered his
  • thoughts.
  • In this frame of mind he turned again into the coffee-room gallery, and
  • walked slowly to and fro. The place was intolerably dirty, and the smell
  • of tobacco smoke perfectly suffocating. There was a perpetual slamming
  • and banging of doors as the people went in and out; and the noise of
  • their voices and footsteps echoed and re-echoed through the passages
  • constantly. A young woman, with a child in her arms, who seemed scarcely
  • able to crawl, from emaciation and misery, was walking up and down the
  • passage in conversation with her husband, who had no other place to see
  • her in. As they passed Mr. Pickwick, he could hear the female sob
  • bitterly; and once she burst into such a passion of grief, that she was
  • compelled to lean against the wall for support, while the man took the
  • child in his arms, and tried to soothe her.
  • Mr. Pickwick’s heart was really too full to bear it, and he went
  • upstairs to bed.
  • Now, although the warder’s room was a very uncomfortable one (being, in
  • every point of decoration and convenience, several hundred degrees
  • inferior to the common infirmary of a county jail), it had at present
  • the merit of being wholly deserted save by Mr. Pickwick himself. So, he
  • sat down at the foot of his little iron bedstead, and began to wonder
  • how much a year the warder made out of the dirty room. Having satisfied
  • himself, by mathematical calculation, that the apartment was about equal
  • in annual value to the freehold of a small street in the suburbs of
  • London, he took to wondering what possible temptation could have induced
  • a dingy-looking fly that was crawling over his pantaloons, to come into
  • a close prison, when he had the choice of so many airy situations--a
  • course of meditation which led him to the irresistible conclusion that
  • the insect was insane. After settling this point, he began to be
  • conscious that he was getting sleepy; whereupon he took his nightcap out
  • of the pocket in which he had had the precaution to stow it in the
  • morning, and, leisurely undressing himself, got into bed and fell
  • asleep.
  • ‘Bravo! Heel over toe--cut and shuffle--pay away at it, Zephyr! I’m
  • smothered if the opera house isn’t your proper hemisphere. Keep it up!
  • Hooray!’ These expressions, delivered in a most boisterous tone, and
  • accompanied with loud peals of laughter, roused Mr. Pickwick from one of
  • those sound slumbers which, lasting in reality some half-hour, seem to
  • the sleeper to have been protracted for three weeks or a month.
  • The voice had no sooner ceased than the room was shaken with such
  • violence that the windows rattled in their frames, and the bedsteads
  • trembled again. Mr. Pickwick started up, and remained for some minutes
  • fixed in mute astonishment at the scene before him.
  • On the floor of the room, a man in a broad-skirted green coat, with
  • corduroy knee-smalls and gray cotton stockings, was performing the most
  • popular steps of a hornpipe, with a slang and burlesque caricature of
  • grace and lightness, which, combined with the very appropriate character
  • of his costume, was inexpressibly absurd. Another man, evidently very
  • drunk, who had probably been tumbled into bed by his companions, was
  • sitting up between the sheets, warbling as much as he could recollect of
  • a comic song, with the most intensely sentimental feeling and
  • expression; while a third, seated on one of the bedsteads, was
  • applauding both performers with the air of a profound connoisseur, and
  • encouraging them by such ebullitions of feeling as had already roused
  • Mr. Pickwick from his sleep.
  • This last man was an admirable specimen of a class of gentry which never
  • can be seen in full perfection but in such places--they may be met with,
  • in an imperfect state, occasionally about stable-yards and Public-
  • houses; but they never attain their full bloom except in these hot-beds,
  • which would almost seem to be considerately provided by the legislature
  • for the sole purpose of rearing them.
  • He was a tall fellow, with an olive complexion, long dark hair, and very
  • thick bushy whiskers meeting under his chin. He wore no neckerchief, as
  • he had been playing rackets all day, and his open shirt collar displayed
  • their full luxuriance. On his head he wore one of the common
  • eighteenpenny French skull-caps, with a gaudy tassel dangling therefrom,
  • very happily in keeping with a common fustian coat. His legs, which,
  • being long, were afflicted with weakness, graced a pair of Oxford-
  • mixture trousers, made to show the full symmetry of those limbs. Being
  • somewhat negligently braced, however, and, moreover, but imperfectly
  • buttoned, they fell in a series of not the most graceful folds over a
  • pair of shoes sufficiently down at heel to display a pair of very soiled
  • white stockings. There was a rakish, vagabond smartness, and a kind of
  • boastful rascality, about the whole man, that was worth a mine of gold.
  • This figure was the first to perceive that Mr. Pickwick was looking on;
  • upon which he winked to the Zephyr, and entreated him, with mock
  • gravity, not to wake the gentleman.
  • ‘Why, bless the gentleman’s honest heart and soul!’ said the Zephyr,
  • turning round and affecting the extremity of surprise; ‘the gentleman is
  • awake. Hem, Shakespeare! How do you do, Sir? How is Mary and Sarah, sir?
  • and the dear old lady at home, Sir? Will you have the kindness to put my
  • compliments into the first little parcel you’re sending that way, sir,
  • and say that I would have sent ‘em before, only I was afraid they might
  • be broken in the wagon, sir?’
  • ‘Don’t overwhelm the gentlemen with ordinary civilities when you see
  • he’s anxious to have something to drink,’ said the gentleman with the
  • whiskers, with a jocose air. ‘Why don’t you ask the gentleman what he’ll
  • take?’
  • ‘Dear me, I quite forgot,’ replied the other. ‘What will you take, sir?
  • Will you take port wine, sir, or sherry wine, sir? I can recommend the
  • ale, sir; or perhaps you’d like to taste the porter, sir? Allow me to
  • have the felicity of hanging up your nightcap, Sir.’
  • With this, the speaker snatched that article of dress from Mr.
  • Pickwick’s head, and fixed it in a twinkling on that of the drunken man,
  • who, firmly impressed with the belief that he was delighting a numerous
  • assembly, continued to hammer away at the comic song in the most
  • melancholy strains imaginable.
  • Taking a man’s nightcap from his brow by violent means, and adjusting it
  • on the head of an unknown gentleman, of dirty exterior, however
  • ingenious a witticism in itself, is unquestionably one of those which
  • come under the denomination of practical jokes. Viewing the matter
  • precisely in this light, Mr. Pickwick, without the slightest intimation
  • of his purpose, sprang vigorously out of bed, struck the Zephyr so smart
  • a blow in the chest as to deprive him of a considerable portion of the
  • commodity which sometimes bears his name, and then, recapturing his
  • nightcap, boldly placed himself in an attitude of defence.
  • ‘Now,’ said Mr. Pickwick, gasping no less from excitement than from the
  • expenditure of so much energy, ‘come on--both of you--both of you!’ With
  • this liberal invitation the worthy gentleman communicated a revolving
  • motion to his clenched fists, by way of appalling his antagonists with a
  • display of science.
  • It might have been Mr. Pickwick’s very unexpected gallantry, or it might
  • have been the complicated manner in which he had got himself out of bed,
  • and fallen all in a mass upon the hornpipe man, that touched his
  • adversaries. Touched they were; for, instead of then and there making an
  • attempt to commit man-slaughter, as Mr. Pickwick implicitly believed
  • they would have done, they paused, stared at each other a short time,
  • and finally laughed outright.
  • ‘Well, you’re a trump, and I like you all the better for it,’ said the
  • Zephyr. ‘Now jump into bed again, or you’ll catch the rheumatics. No
  • malice, I hope?’ said the man, extending a hand the size of the yellow
  • clump of fingers which sometimes swings over a glover’s door.
  • ‘Certainly not,’ said Mr. Pickwick, with great alacrity; for, now that
  • the excitement was over, he began to feel rather cool about the legs.
  • ‘Allow me the H-onour,’ said the gentleman with the whiskers, presenting
  • his dexter hand, and aspirating the h.
  • ‘With much pleasure, sir,’ said Mr. Pickwick; and having executed a very
  • long and solemn shake, he got into bed again.
  • ‘My name is Smangle, sir,’ said the man with the whiskers.
  • ‘Oh,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Mine is Mivins,’ said the man in the stockings.
  • ‘I am delighted to hear it, sir,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Hem,’ coughed Mr. Smangle.
  • ‘Did you speak, sir?’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘No, I did not, sir,’ said Mr. Smangle.
  • All this was very genteel and pleasant; and, to make matters still more
  • comfortable, Mr. Smangle assured Mr. Pickwick a great many more times
  • that he entertained a very high respect for the feelings of a gentleman;
  • which sentiment, indeed, did him infinite credit, as he could be in no
  • wise supposed to understand them.
  • ‘Are you going through the court, sir?’ inquired Mr. Smangle.
  • ‘Through the what?’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Through the court--Portugal Street--the Court for Relief of--you know.’
  • ‘Oh, no,’ replied Mr. Pickwick. ‘No, I am not.’
  • ‘Going out, perhaps?’ suggested Mr. Mivins.
  • ‘I fear not,’ replied Mr. Pickwick. ‘I refuse to pay some damages, and
  • am here in consequence.’
  • ‘Ah,’ said Mr. Smangle, ‘paper has been my ruin.’
  • ‘A stationer, I presume, Sir?’ said Mr. Pickwick innocently.
  • ‘Stationer! No, no; confound and curse me! Not so low as that. No trade.
  • When I say paper, I mean bills.’
  • ‘Oh, you use the word in that sense. I see,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Damme! A gentleman must expect reverses,’ said Smangle. ‘What of that?
  • Here am I in the Fleet Prison. Well; good. What then? I’m none the worse
  • for that, am I?’
  • ‘Not a bit,’ replied Mr. Mivins. And he was quite right; for, so far
  • from Mr. Smangle being any the worse for it, he was something the
  • better, inasmuch as to qualify himself for the place, he had attained
  • gratuitous possession of certain articles of jewellery, which, long
  • before that, had found their way to the pawnbroker’s.
  • ‘Well; but come,’ said Mr. Smangle; ‘this is dry work. Let’s rinse our
  • mouths with a drop of burnt sherry; the last-comer shall stand it,
  • Mivins shall fetch it, and I’ll help to drink it. That’s a fair and
  • gentlemanlike division of labour, anyhow. Curse me!’
  • Unwilling to hazard another quarrel, Mr. Pickwick gladly assented to the
  • proposition, and consigned the money to Mr. Mivins, who, as it was
  • nearly eleven o’clock, lost no time in repairing to the coffee-room on
  • his errand.
  • ‘I say,’ whispered Smangle, the moment his friend had left the room;
  • ‘what did you give him?’
  • ‘Half a sovereign,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘He’s a devilish pleasant gentlemanly dog,’ said Mr. Smangle;--‘infernal
  • pleasant. I don’t know anybody more so; but--’ Here Mr. Smangle stopped
  • short, and shook his head dubiously.
  • ‘You don’t think there is any probability of his appropriating the money
  • to his own use?’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Oh, no! Mind, I don’t say that; I expressly say that he’s a devilish
  • gentlemanly fellow,’ said Mr. Smangle. ‘But I think, perhaps, if
  • somebody went down, just to see that he didn’t dip his beak into the jug
  • by accident, or make some confounded mistake in losing the money as he
  • came upstairs, it would be as well. Here, you sir, just run downstairs,
  • and look after that gentleman, will you?’
  • This request was addressed to a little timid-looking, nervous man, whose
  • appearance bespoke great poverty, and who had been crouching on his
  • bedstead all this while, apparently stupefied by the novelty of his
  • situation.
  • ‘You know where the coffee-room is,’ said Smangle; ‘just run down, and
  • tell that gentleman you’ve come to help him up with the jug. Or--stop--
  • I’ll tell you what--I’ll tell you how we’ll do him,’ said Smangle, with
  • a cunning look.
  • ‘How?’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Send down word that he’s to spend the change in cigars. Capital
  • thought. Run and tell him that; d’ye hear? They shan’t be wasted,’
  • continued Smangle, turning to Mr. Pickwick. ‘_I’ll_ smoke ‘em.’
  • This manoeuvring was so exceedingly ingenious and, withal, performed
  • with such immovable composure and coolness, that Mr. Pickwick would have
  • had no wish to disturb it, even if he had had the power. In a short time
  • Mr. Mivins returned, bearing the sherry, which Mr. Smangle dispensed in
  • two little cracked mugs; considerately remarking, with reference to
  • himself, that a gentleman must not be particular under such
  • circumstances, and that, for his part, he was not too proud to drink out
  • of the jug. In which, to show his sincerity, he forthwith pledged the
  • company in a draught which half emptied it.
  • An excellent understanding having been by these means promoted, Mr.
  • Smangle proceeded to entertain his hearers with a relation of divers
  • romantic adventures in which he had been from time to time engaged,
  • involving various interesting anecdotes of a thoroughbred horse, and a
  • magnificent Jewess, both of surpassing beauty, and much coveted by the
  • nobility and gentry of these kingdoms.
  • Long before these elegant extracts from the biography of a gentleman
  • were concluded, Mr. Mivins had betaken himself to bed, and had set in
  • snoring for the night, leaving the timid stranger and Mr. Pickwick to
  • the full benefit of Mr. Smangle’s experiences.
  • Nor were the two last-named gentlemen as much edified as they might have
  • been by the moving passages narrated. Mr. Pickwick had been in a state
  • of slumber for some time, when he had a faint perception of the drunken
  • man bursting out afresh with the comic song, and receiving from Mr.
  • Smangle a gentle intimation, through the medium of the water-jug, that
  • his audience was not musically disposed. Mr. Pickwick then once again
  • dropped off to sleep, with a confused consciousness that Mr. Smangle was
  • still engaged in relating a long story, the chief point of which
  • appeared to be that, on some occasion particularly stated and set forth,
  • he had ‘done’ a bill and a gentleman at the same time.
  • CHAPTER XLII. ILLUSTRATIVE, LIKE THE PRECEDING ONE, OF THE OLD PROVERB,
  • THAT ADVERSITY BRINGS A MAN ACQUAINTED WITH STRANGE BEDFELLOWS--
  • LIKEWISE CONTAINING MR. PICKWICK’S EXTRAORDINARY AND STARTLING
  • ANNOUNCEMENT TO MR. SAMUEL WELLER
  • When Mr. Pickwick opened his eyes next morning, the first object upon
  • which they rested was Samuel Weller, seated upon a small black
  • portmanteau, intently regarding, apparently in a condition of profound
  • abstraction, the stately figure of the dashing Mr. Smangle; while Mr.
  • Smangle himself, who was already partially dressed, was seated on his
  • bedstead, occupied in the desperately hopeless attempt of staring Mr.
  • Weller out of countenance. We say desperately hopeless, because Sam,
  • with a comprehensive gaze which took in Mr. Smangle’s cap, feet, head,
  • face, legs, and whiskers, all at the same time, continued to look
  • steadily on, with every demonstration of lively satisfaction, but with
  • no more regard to Mr. Smangle’s personal sentiments on the subject than
  • he would have displayed had he been inspecting a wooden statue, or a
  • straw-embowelled Guy Fawkes.
  • ‘Well; will you know me again?’ said Mr. Smangle, with a frown.
  • ‘I’d svear to you anyveres, Sir,’ replied Sam cheerfully.
  • ‘Don’t be impertinent to a gentleman, Sir,’ said Mr. Smangle.
  • ‘Not on no account,’ replied Sam. ‘If you’ll tell me wen he wakes, I’ll
  • be upon the wery best extra-super behaviour!’ This observation, having a
  • remote tendency to imply that Mr. Smangle was no gentleman, kindled his
  • ire.
  • ‘Mivins!’ said Mr. Smangle, with a passionate air.
  • ‘What’s the office?’ replied that gentleman from his couch.
  • ‘Who the devil is this fellow?’
  • ‘’Gad,’ said Mr. Mivins, looking lazily out from under the bed-clothes,
  • ‘I ought to ask _you _that. Hasn’t he any business here?’
  • ‘No,’ replied Mr. Smangle.
  • ‘Then knock him downstairs, and tell him not to presume to get up till I
  • come and kick him,’ rejoined Mr. Mivins; with this prompt advice that
  • excellent gentleman again betook himself to slumber.
  • The conversation exhibiting these unequivocal symptoms of verging on the
  • personal, Mr. Pickwick deemed it a fit point at which to interpose.
  • ‘Sam,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Sir,’ rejoined that gentleman.
  • ‘Has anything new occurred since last night?’
  • ‘Nothin’ partickler, sir,’ replied Sam, glancing at Mr. Smangle’s
  • whiskers; ‘the late prewailance of a close and confined atmosphere has
  • been rayther favourable to the growth of veeds, of an alarmin’ and
  • sangvinary natur; but vith that ‘ere exception things is quiet enough.’
  • ‘I shall get up,’ said Mr. Pickwick; ‘give me some clean things.’
  • Whatever hostile intentions Mr. Smangle might have entertained, his
  • thoughts were speedily diverted by the unpacking of the portmanteau; the
  • contents of which appeared to impress him at once with a most favourable
  • opinion, not only of Mr. Pickwick, but of Sam also, who, he took an
  • early opportunity of declaring in a tone of voice loud enough for that
  • eccentric personage to overhear, was a regular thoroughbred original,
  • and consequently the very man after his own heart. As to Mr. Pickwick,
  • the affection he conceived for him knew no limits.
  • ‘Now is there anything I can do for you, my dear Sir?’ said Smangle.
  • ‘Nothing that I am aware of, I am obliged to you,’ replied Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘No linen that you want sent to the washerwoman’s? I know a delightful
  • washerwoman outside, that comes for my things twice a week; and, by
  • Jove!--how devilish lucky!--this is the day she calls. Shall I put any
  • of those little things up with mine? Don’t say anything about the
  • trouble. Confound and curse it! if one gentleman under a cloud is not to
  • put himself a little out of the way to assist another gentleman in the
  • same condition, what’s human nature?’
  • Thus spake Mr. Smangle, edging himself meanwhile as near as possible to
  • the portmanteau, and beaming forth looks of the most fervent and
  • disinterested friendship.
  • ‘There’s nothing you want to give out for the man to brush, my dear
  • creature, is there?’ resumed Smangle.
  • ‘Nothin’ whatever, my fine feller,’ rejoined Sam, taking the reply into
  • his own mouth. ‘P’raps if vun of us wos to brush, without troubling the
  • man, it ‘ud be more agreeable for all parties, as the schoolmaster said
  • when the young gentleman objected to being flogged by the butler.’
  • ‘And there’s nothing I can send in my little box to the washer-woman’s,
  • is there?’ said Smangle, turning from Sam to Mr. Pickwick, with an air
  • of some discomfiture.
  • ‘Nothin’ whatever, Sir,’ retorted Sam; ‘I’m afeered the little box must
  • be chock full o’ your own as it is.’
  • This speech was accompanied with such a very expressive look at that
  • particular portion of Mr. Smangle’s attire, by the appearance of which
  • the skill of laundresses in getting up gentlemen’s linen is generally
  • tested, that he was fain to turn upon his heel, and, for the present at
  • any rate, to give up all design on Mr. Pickwick’s purse and wardrobe. He
  • accordingly retired in dudgeon to the racket-ground, where he made a
  • light and whole-some breakfast on a couple of the cigars which had been
  • purchased on the previous night.
  • Mr. Mivins, who was no smoker, and whose account for small articles of
  • chandlery had also reached down to the bottom of the slate, and been
  • ‘carried over’ to the other side, remained in bed, and, in his own
  • words, ‘took it out in sleep.’
  • After breakfasting in a small closet attached to the coffee-room, which
  • bore the imposing title of the Snuggery, the temporary inmate of which,
  • in consideration of a small additional charge, had the unspeakable
  • advantage of overhearing all the conversation in the coffee-room
  • aforesaid; and, after despatching Mr. Weller on some necessary errands,
  • Mr. Pickwick repaired to the lodge, to consult Mr. Roker concerning his
  • future accommodation.
  • ‘Accommodation, eh?’ said that gentleman, consulting a large book.
  • ‘Plenty of that, Mr. Pickwick. Your chummage ticket will be on twenty-
  • seven, in the third.’
  • ‘Oh,’ said Mr. Pickwick. ‘My what, did you say?’
  • ‘Your chummage ticket,’ replied Mr. Roker; ‘you’re up to that?’
  • ‘Not quite,’ replied Mr. Pickwick, with a smile.
  • ‘Why,’ said Mr. Roker, ‘it’s as plain as Salisbury. You’ll have a
  • chummage ticket upon twenty-seven in the third, and them as is in the
  • room will be your chums.’
  • ‘Are there many of them?’ inquired Mr. Pickwick dubiously.
  • ‘Three,’ replied Mr. Roker.
  • Mr. Pickwick coughed.
  • ‘One of ‘em’s a parson,’ said Mr. Roker, filling up a little piece of
  • paper as he spoke; ‘another’s a butcher.’
  • ‘Eh?’ exclaimed Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘A butcher,’ repeated Mr. Roker, giving the nib of his pen a tap on the
  • desk to cure it of a disinclination to mark. ‘What a thorough-paced goer
  • he used to be sure-ly! You remember Tom Martin, Neddy?’ said Roker,
  • appealing to another man in the lodge, who was paring the mud off his
  • shoes with a five-and-twenty-bladed pocket-knife.
  • ‘I should think so,’ replied the party addressed, with a strong emphasis
  • on the personal pronoun.
  • ‘Bless my dear eyes!’ said Mr. Roker, shaking his head slowly from side
  • to side, and gazing abstractedly out of the grated windows before him,
  • as if he were fondly recalling some peaceful scene of his early youth;
  • ‘it seems but yesterday that he whopped the coal-heaver down Fox-under-
  • the-Hill by the wharf there. I think I can see him now, a-coming up the
  • Strand between the two street-keepers, a little sobered by the bruising,
  • with a patch o’ winegar and brown paper over his right eyelid, and that
  • ‘ere lovely bulldog, as pinned the little boy arterwards, a-following at
  • his heels. What a rum thing time is, ain’t it, Neddy?’
  • The gentleman to whom these observations were addressed, who appeared of
  • a taciturn and thoughtful cast, merely echoed the inquiry; Mr. Roker,
  • shaking off the poetical and gloomy train of thought into which he had
  • been betrayed, descended to the common business of life, and resumed his
  • pen.
  • ‘Do you know what the third gentlemen is?’ inquired Mr. Pickwick, not
  • very much gratified by this description of his future associates.
  • ‘What is that Simpson, Neddy?’ said Mr. Roker, turning to his companion.
  • ‘What Simpson?’ said Neddy.
  • ‘Why, him in twenty-seven in the third, that this gentleman’s going to
  • be chummed on.’
  • ‘Oh, him!’ replied Neddy; ‘he’s nothing exactly. He _was _a horse
  • chaunter: he’s a leg now.’
  • ‘Ah, so I thought,’ rejoined Mr. Roker, closing the book, and placing
  • the small piece of paper in Mr. Pickwick’s hands. ‘That’s the ticket,
  • sir.’
  • Very much perplexed by this summary disposition of this person, Mr.
  • Pickwick walked back into the prison, revolving in his mind what he had
  • better do. Convinced, however, that before he took any other steps it
  • would be advisable to see, and hold personal converse with, the three
  • gentlemen with whom it was proposed to quarter him, he made the best of
  • his way to the third flight.
  • After groping about in the gallery for some time, attempting in the dim
  • light to decipher the numbers on the different doors, he at length
  • appealed to a pot-boy, who happened to be pursuing his morning
  • occupation of gleaning for pewter.
  • ‘Which is twenty-seven, my good fellow?’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Five doors farther on,’ replied the pot-boy. ‘There’s the likeness of a
  • man being hung, and smoking the while, chalked outside the door.’
  • Guided by this direction, Mr. Pickwick proceeded slowly along the
  • gallery until he encountered the ‘portrait of a gentleman,’ above
  • described, upon whose countenance he tapped, with the knuckle of his
  • forefinger--gently at first, and then audibly. After repeating this
  • process several times without effect, he ventured to open the door and
  • peep in.
  • There was only one man in the room, and he was leaning out of window as
  • far as he could without overbalancing himself, endeavouring, with great
  • perseverance, to spit upon the crown of the hat of a personal friend on
  • the parade below. As neither speaking, coughing, sneezing, knocking, nor
  • any other ordinary mode of attracting attention, made this person aware
  • of the presence of a visitor, Mr. Pickwick, after some delay, stepped up
  • to the window, and pulled him gently by the coat tail. The individual
  • brought in his head and shoulders with great swiftness, and surveying
  • Mr. Pickwick from head to foot, demanded in a surly tone what the--
  • something beginning with a capital H--he wanted.
  • ‘I believe,’ said Mr. Pickwick, consulting his ticket--‘I believe this
  • is twenty-seven in the third?’
  • ‘Well?’ replied the gentleman.
  • ‘I have come here in consequence of receiving this bit of paper,’
  • rejoined Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Hand it over,’ said the gentleman.
  • Mr. Pickwick complied.
  • ‘I think Roker might have chummed you somewhere else,’ said Mr. Simpson
  • (for it was the leg), after a very discontented sort of a pause.
  • Mr. Pickwick thought so also; but, under all the circumstances, he
  • considered it a matter of sound policy to be silent.
  • Mr. Simpson mused for a few moments after this, and then, thrusting his
  • head out of the window, gave a shrill whistle, and pronounced some word
  • aloud, several times. What the word was, Mr. Pickwick could not
  • distinguish; but he rather inferred that it must be some nickname which
  • distinguished Mr. Martin, from the fact of a great number of gentlemen
  • on the ground below, immediately proceeding to cry ‘Butcher!’ in
  • imitation of the tone in which that useful class of society are wont,
  • diurnally, to make their presence known at area railings.
  • Subsequent occurrences confirmed the accuracy of Mr. Pickwick’s
  • impression; for, in a few seconds, a gentleman, prematurely broad for
  • his years, clothed in a professional blue jean frock and top-boots with
  • circular toes, entered the room nearly out of breath, closely followed
  • by another gentleman in very shabby black, and a sealskin cap. The
  • latter gentleman, who fastened his coat all the way up to his chin by
  • means of a pin and a button alternately, had a very coarse red face, and
  • looked like a drunken chaplain; which, indeed, he was.
  • These two gentlemen having by turns perused Mr. Pickwick’s billet, the
  • one expressed his opinion that it was ‘a rig,’ and the other his
  • conviction that it was ‘a go.’ Having recorded their feelings in these
  • very intelligible terms, they looked at Mr. Pickwick and each other in
  • awkward silence.
  • ‘It’s an aggravating thing, just as we got the beds so snug,’ said the
  • chaplain, looking at three dirty mattresses, each rolled up in a
  • blanket; which occupied one corner of the room during the day, and
  • formed a kind of slab, on which were placed an old cracked basin, ewer,
  • and soap-dish, of common yellow earthenware, with a blue flower--‘very
  • aggravating.’
  • Mr. Martin expressed the same opinion in rather stronger terms; Mr.
  • Simpson, after having let a variety of expletive adjectives loose upon
  • society without any substantive to accompany them, tucked up his
  • sleeves, and began to wash the greens for dinner.
  • While this was going on, Mr. Pickwick had been eyeing the room, which
  • was filthily dirty, and smelt intolerably close. There was no vestige of
  • either carpet, curtain, or blind. There was not even a closet in it.
  • Unquestionably there were but few things to put away, if there had been
  • one; but, however few in number, or small in individual amount, still,
  • remnants of loaves and pieces of cheese, and damp towels, and scrags of
  • meat, and articles of wearing apparel, and mutilated crockery, and
  • bellows without nozzles, and toasting-forks without prongs, do present
  • somewhat of an uncomfortable appearance when they are scattered about
  • the floor of a small apartment, which is the common sitting and sleeping
  • room of three idle men.
  • ‘I suppose this can be managed somehow,’ said the butcher, after a
  • pretty long silence. ‘What will you take to go out?’
  • I beg your pardon,’ replied Mr. Pickwick. ‘What did you say? I hardly
  • understand you.’
  • ‘What will you take to be paid out?’ said the butcher. ‘The regular
  • chummage is two-and-six. Will you take three bob?’
  • ‘And a bender,’ suggested the clerical gentleman.
  • ‘Well, I don’t mind that; it’s only twopence a piece more,’ said Mr.
  • Martin. ‘What do you say, now? We’ll pay you out for three-and-sixpence
  • a week. Come!’
  • ‘And stand a gallon of beer down,’ chimed in Mr. Simpson. ‘There!’
  • ‘And drink it on the spot,’ said the chaplain. ‘Now!’
  • ‘I really am so wholly ignorant of the rules of this place,’ returned
  • Mr. Pickwick, ‘that I do not yet comprehend you. Can I live anywhere
  • else? I thought I could not.’
  • At this inquiry Mr. Martin looked, with a countenance of excessive
  • surprise, at his two friends, and then each gentleman pointed with his
  • right thumb over his left shoulder. This action imperfectly described in
  • words by the very feeble term of ‘over the left,’ when performed by any
  • number of ladies or gentlemen who are accustomed to act in unison, has a
  • very graceful and airy effect; its expression is one of light and
  • playful sarcasm.
  • ‘_Can _you!’ repeated Mr. Martin, with a smile of pity.
  • ‘Well, if I knew as little of life as that, I’d eat my hat and swallow
  • the buckle whole,’ said the clerical gentleman.
  • ‘So would I,’ added the sporting one solemnly.
  • After this introductory preface, the three chums informed Mr. Pickwick,
  • in a breath, that money was, in the Fleet, just what money was out of
  • it; that it would instantly procure him almost anything he desired; and
  • that, supposing he had it, and had no objection to spend it, if he only
  • signified his wish to have a room to himself, he might take possession
  • of one, furnished and fitted to boot, in half an hour’s time.
  • With this the parties separated, very much to their common satisfaction;
  • Mr. Pickwick once more retracing his steps to the lodge, and the three
  • companions adjourning to the coffee-room, there to spend the five
  • shillings which the clerical gentleman had, with admirable prudence and
  • foresight, borrowed of him for the purpose.
  • ‘I knowed it!’ said Mr. Roker, with a chuckle, when Mr. Pickwick stated
  • the object with which he had returned. ‘Didn’t I say so, Neddy?’
  • The philosophical owner of the universal penknife growled an
  • affirmative.
  • ‘I knowed you’d want a room for yourself, bless you!’ said Mr. Roker.
  • ‘Let me see. You’ll want some furniture. You’ll hire that of me, I
  • suppose? That’s the reg’lar thing.’
  • ‘With great pleasure,’ replied Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘There’s a capital room up in the coffee-room flight, that belongs to a
  • Chancery prisoner,’ said Mr. Roker. ‘It’ll stand you in a pound a week.
  • I suppose you don’t mind that?’
  • ‘Not at all,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Just step there with me,’ said Roker, taking up his hat with great
  • alacrity; ‘the matter’s settled in five minutes. Lord! why didn’t you
  • say at first that you was willing to come down handsome?’
  • The matter was soon arranged, as the turnkey had foretold. The Chancery
  • prisoner had been there long enough to have lost his friends, fortune,
  • home, and happiness, and to have acquired the right of having a room to
  • himself. As he laboured, however, under the inconvenience of often
  • wanting a morsel of bread, he eagerly listened to Mr. Pickwick’s
  • proposal to rent the apartment, and readily covenanted and agreed to
  • yield him up the sole and undisturbed possession thereof, in
  • consideration of the weekly payment of twenty shillings; from which fund
  • he furthermore contracted to pay out any person or persons that might be
  • chummed upon it.
  • As they struck the bargain, Mr. Pickwick surveyed him with a painful
  • interest. He was a tall, gaunt, cadaverous man, in an old greatcoat and
  • slippers, with sunken cheeks, and a restless, eager eye. His lips were
  • bloodless, and his bones sharp and thin. God help him! the iron teeth of
  • confinement and privation had been slowly filing him down for twenty
  • years.
  • ‘And where will you live meanwhile, Sir?’ said Mr. Pickwick, as he laid
  • the amount of the first week’s rent, in advance, on the tottering table.
  • The man gathered up the money with a trembling hand, and replied that he
  • didn’t know yet; he must go and see where he could move his bed to.
  • ‘I am afraid, sir,’ said Mr. Pickwick, laying his hand gently and
  • compassionately on his arm--‘I am afraid you will have to live in some
  • noisy, crowded place. Now, pray, consider this room your own when you
  • want quiet, or when any of your friends come to see you.’
  • ‘Friends!’ interposed the man, in a voice which rattled in his throat.
  • ‘if I lay dead at the bottom of the deepest mine in the world; tight
  • screwed down and soldered in my coffin; rotting in the dark and filthy
  • ditch that drags its slime along, beneath the foundations of this
  • prison; I could not be more forgotten or unheeded than I am here. I am a
  • dead man; dead to society, without the pity they bestow on those whose
  • souls have passed to judgment. Friends to see me! My God! I have sunk,
  • from the prime of life into old age, in this place, and there is not one
  • to raise his hand above my bed when I lie dead upon it, and say, “It is
  • a blessing he is gone!”’
  • The excitement, which had cast an unwonted light over the man’s face,
  • while he spoke, subsided as he concluded; and pressing his withered
  • hands together in a hasty and disordered manner, he shuffled from the
  • room.
  • ‘Rides rather rusty,’ said Mr. Roker, with a smile. ‘Ah! they’re like
  • the elephants. They feel it now and then, and it makes ‘em wild!’
  • Having made this deeply-sympathising remark, Mr. Roker entered upon his
  • arrangements with such expedition, that in a short time the room was
  • furnished with a carpet, six chairs, a table, a sofa bedstead, a tea-
  • kettle, and various small articles, on hire, at the very reasonable rate
  • of seven-and-twenty shillings and sixpence per week.
  • ‘Now, is there anything more we can do for you?’ inquired Mr. Roker,
  • looking round with great satisfaction, and gaily chinking the first
  • week’s hire in his closed fist.
  • ‘Why, yes,’ said Mr. Pickwick, who had been musing deeply for some time.
  • ‘Are there any people here who run on errands, and so forth?’
  • ‘Outside, do you mean?’ inquired Mr. Roker.
  • ‘Yes. I mean who are able to go outside. Not prisoners.’
  • ‘Yes, there is,’ said Roker. ‘There’s an unfortunate devil, who has got
  • a friend on the poor side, that’s glad to do anything of that sort. He’s
  • been running odd jobs, and that, for the last two months. Shall I send
  • him?’
  • ‘If you please,’ rejoined Mr. Pickwick. ‘Stay; no. The poor side, you
  • say? I should like to see it. I’ll go to him myself.’
  • The poor side of a debtor’s prison is, as its name imports, that in
  • which the most miserable and abject class of debtors are confined. A
  • prisoner having declared upon the poor side, pays neither rent nor
  • chummage. His fees, upon entering and leaving the jail, are reduced in
  • amount, and he becomes entitled to a share of some small quantities of
  • food: to provide which, a few charitable persons have, from time to
  • time, left trifling legacies in their wills. Most of our readers will
  • remember, that, until within a very few years past, there was a kind of
  • iron cage in the wall of the Fleet Prison, within which was posted some
  • man of hungry looks, who, from time to time, rattled a money-box, and
  • exclaimed in a mournful voice, ‘Pray, remember the poor debtors; pray
  • remember the poor debtors.’ The receipts of this box, when there were
  • any, were divided among the poor prisoners; and the men on the poor side
  • relieved each other in this degrading office.
  • Although this custom has been abolished, and the cage is now boarded up,
  • the miserable and destitute condition of these unhappy persons remains
  • the same. We no longer suffer them to appeal at the prison gates to the
  • charity and compassion of the passersby; but we still leave unblotted
  • the leaves of our statute book, for the reverence and admiration of
  • succeeding ages, the just and wholesome law which declares that the
  • sturdy felon shall be fed and clothed, and that the penniless debtor
  • shall be left to die of starvation and nakedness. This is no fiction.
  • Not a week passes over our head, but, in every one of our prisons for
  • debt, some of these men must inevitably expire in the slow agonies of
  • want, if they were not relieved by their fellow-prisoners.
  • Turning these things in his mind, as he mounted the narrow staircase at
  • the foot of which Roker had left him, Mr. Pickwick gradually worked
  • himself to the boiling-over point; and so excited was he with his
  • reflections on this subject, that he had burst into the room to which he
  • had been directed, before he had any distinct recollection, either of
  • the place in which he was, or of the object of his visit.
  • The general aspect of the room recalled him to himself at once; but he
  • had no sooner cast his eye on the figure of a man who was brooding over
  • the dusty fire, than, letting his hat fall on the floor, he stood
  • perfectly fixed and immovable with astonishment.
  • Yes; in tattered garments, and without a coat; his common calico shirt,
  • yellow and in rags; his hair hanging over his face; his features changed
  • with suffering, and pinched with famine--there sat Mr. Alfred Jingle;
  • his head resting on his hands, his eyes fixed upon the fire, and his
  • whole appearance denoting misery and dejection!
  • Near him, leaning listlessly against the wall, stood a strong-built
  • countryman, flicking with a worn-out hunting-whip the top-boot that
  • adorned his right foot; his left being thrust into an old slipper.
  • Horses, dogs, and drink had brought him there, pell-mell. There was a
  • rusty spur on the solitary boot, which he occasionally jerked into the
  • empty air, at the same time giving the boot a smart blow, and muttering
  • some of the sounds by which a sportsman encourages his horse. He was
  • riding, in imagination, some desperate steeplechase at that moment. Poor
  • wretch! He never rode a match on the swiftest animal in his costly stud,
  • with half the speed at which he had torn along the course that ended in
  • the Fleet.
  • On the opposite side of the room an old man was seated on a small wooden
  • box, with his eyes riveted on the floor, and his face settled into an
  • expression of the deepest and most hopeless despair. A young girl--his
  • little grand-daughter--was hanging about him, endeavouring, with a
  • thousand childish devices, to engage his attention; but the old man
  • neither saw nor heard her. The voice that had been music to him, and the
  • eyes that had been light, fell coldly on his senses. His limbs were
  • shaking with disease, and the palsy had fastened on his mind.
  • There were two or three other men in the room, congregated in a little
  • knot, and noiselessly talking among themselves. There was a lean and
  • haggard woman, too--a prisoner’s wife--who was watering, with great
  • solicitude, the wretched stump of a dried-up, withered plant, which, it
  • was plain to see, could never send forth a green leaf again--too true an
  • emblem, perhaps, of the office she had come there to discharge.
  • Such were the objects which presented themselves to Mr. Pickwick’s view,
  • as he looked round him in amazement. The noise of some one stumbling
  • hastily into the room, roused him. Turning his eyes towards the door,
  • they encountered the new-comer; and in him, through his rags and dirt,
  • he recognised the familiar features of Mr. Job Trotter.
  • ‘Mr. Pickwick!’ exclaimed Job aloud.
  • ‘Eh?’ said Jingle, starting from his seat.
  • ‘Mr ----! So it is--queer place--strange things--serves me right--very.’
  • Mr. Jingle thrust his hands into the place where his trousers pockets
  • used to be, and, dropping his chin upon his breast, sank back into his
  • chair.
  • Mr. Pickwick was affected; the two men looked so very miserable. The
  • sharp, involuntary glance Jingle had cast at a small piece of raw loin
  • of mutton, which Job had brought in with him, said more of their reduced
  • state than two hours’ explanation could have done. Mr. Pickwick looked
  • mildly at Jingle, and said--
  • ‘I should like to speak to you in private. Will you step out for an
  • instant?’
  • ‘Certainly,’ said Jingle, rising hastily. ‘Can’t step far--no danger of
  • overwalking yourself here--spike park--grounds pretty--romantic, but not
  • extensive--open for public inspection--family always in town--
  • housekeeper desperately careful--very.’
  • ‘You have forgotten your coat,’ said Mr. Pickwick, as they walked out to
  • the staircase, and closed the door after them.
  • ‘Eh?’ said Jingle. ‘Spout--dear relation--uncle Tom--couldn’t help it--
  • must eat, you know. Wants of nature--and all that.’
  • ‘What do you mean?’
  • ‘Gone, my dear sir--last coat--can’t help it. Lived on a pair of boots,
  • whole fortnight. Silk umbrella--ivory handle--week--fact--honour--ask
  • Job--knows it.’
  • ‘Lived for three weeks upon a pair of boots, and a silk umbrella with an
  • ivory handle!’ exclaimed Mr. Pickwick, who had only heard of such things
  • in shipwrecks or read of them in Constable’s Miscellany.
  • ‘True,’ said Jingle, nodding his head. ‘Pawnbroker’s shop--duplicates
  • here--small sums--mere nothing--all rascals.’
  • ‘Oh,’ said Mr. Pickwick, much relieved by this explanation; ‘I
  • understand you. You have pawned your wardrobe.’
  • ‘Everything--Job’s too--all shirts gone--never mind--saves washing.
  • Nothing soon--lie in bed--starve--die--inquest--little bone-house--poor
  • prisoner--common necessaries--hush it up--gentlemen of the jury--
  • warden’s tradesmen--keep it snug--natural death--coroner’s order--
  • workhouse funeral--serve him right--all over--drop the curtain.’
  • Jingle delivered this singular summary of his prospects in life, with
  • his accustomed volubility, and with various twitches of the countenance
  • to counterfeit smiles. Mr. Pickwick easily perceived that his
  • recklessness was assumed, and looking him full, but not unkindly, in the
  • face, saw that his eyes were moist with tears.
  • ‘Good fellow,’ said Jingle, pressing his hand, and turning his head
  • away. ‘Ungrateful dog--boyish to cry--can’t help it--bad fever--weak--
  • ill--hungry. Deserved it all--but suffered much--very.’ Wholly unable to
  • keep up appearances any longer, and perhaps rendered worse by the effort
  • he had made, the dejected stroller sat down on the stairs, and, covering
  • his face with his hands, sobbed like a child.
  • ‘Come, come,’ said Mr. Pickwick, with considerable emotion, ‘we will see
  • what can be done, when I know all about the matter. Here, Job; where is
  • that fellow?’
  • ‘Here, sir,’ replied Job, presenting himself on the staircase. We have
  • described him, by the bye, as having deeply-sunken eyes, in the best of
  • times. In his present state of want and distress, he looked as if those
  • features had gone out of town altogether.
  • ‘Here, sir,’ cried Job.
  • ‘Come here, sir,’ said Mr. Pickwick, trying to look stern, with four
  • large tears running down his waistcoat. ‘Take that, sir.’
  • Take what? In the ordinary acceptation of such language, it should have
  • been a blow. As the world runs, it ought to have been a sound, hearty
  • cuff; for Mr. Pickwick had been duped, deceived, and wronged by the
  • destitute outcast who was now wholly in his power. Must we tell the
  • truth? It was something from Mr. Pickwick’s waistcoat pocket, which
  • chinked as it was given into Job’s hand, and the giving of which,
  • somehow or other imparted a sparkle to the eye, and a swelling to the
  • heart, of our excellent old friend, as he hurried away.
  • Sam had returned when Mr. Pickwick reached his own room, and was
  • inspecting the arrangements that had been made for his comfort, with a
  • kind of grim satisfaction which was very pleasant to look upon. Having a
  • decided objection to his master’s being there at all, Mr. Weller
  • appeared to consider it a high moral duty not to appear too much pleased
  • with anything that was done, said, suggested, or proposed.
  • ‘Well, Sam,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Well, sir,’ replied Mr. Weller.
  • ‘Pretty comfortable now, eh, Sam?’
  • ‘Pretty vell, sir,’ responded Sam, looking round him in a disparaging
  • manner.
  • ‘Have you seen Mr. Tupman and our other friends?’
  • ‘Yes, I _have _seen ‘em, sir, and they’re a-comin’ to-morrow, and wos
  • wery much surprised to hear they warn’t to come to-day,’ replied Sam.
  • ‘You have brought the things I wanted?’
  • Mr. Weller in reply pointed to various packages which he had arranged,
  • as neatly as he could, in a corner of the room.
  • ‘Very well, Sam,’ said Mr. Pickwick, after a little hesitation; ‘listen
  • to what I am going to say, Sam.’
  • ‘Cert’nly, Sir,’ rejoined Mr. Weller; ‘fire away, Sir.’
  • ‘I have felt from the first, Sam,’ said Mr. Pickwick, with much
  • solemnity, ‘that this is not the place to bring a young man to.’
  • ‘Nor an old ‘un neither, Sir,’ observed Mr. Weller.
  • ‘You’re quite right, Sam,’ said Mr. Pickwick; ‘but old men may come here
  • through their own heedlessness and unsuspicion, and young men may be
  • brought here by the selfishness of those they serve. It is better for
  • those young men, in every point of view, that they should not remain
  • here. Do you understand me, Sam?’
  • ‘Vy no, Sir, I do _not_,’ replied Mr. Weller doggedly.
  • ‘Try, Sam,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Vell, sir,’ rejoined Sam, after a short pause, ‘I think I see your
  • drift; and if I do see your drift, it’s my ‘pinion that you’re a-comin’
  • it a great deal too strong, as the mail-coachman said to the snowstorm,
  • ven it overtook him.’
  • ‘I see you comprehend me, Sam,’ said Mr. Pickwick. ‘Independently of my
  • wish that you should not be idling about a place like this, for years to
  • come, I feel that for a debtor in the Fleet to be attended by his
  • manservant is a monstrous absurdity. Sam,’ said Mr. Pickwick, ‘for a
  • time you must leave me.’
  • ‘Oh, for a time, eh, sir?’ rejoined Mr. Weller rather sarcastically.
  • ‘Yes, for the time that I remain here,’ said Mr. Pickwick. ‘Your wages I
  • shall continue to pay. Any one of my three friends will be happy to take
  • you, were it only out of respect to me. And if I ever do leave this
  • place, Sam,’ added Mr. Pickwick, with assumed cheerfulness--‘if I do, I
  • pledge you my word that you shall return to me instantly.’
  • ‘Now I’ll tell you wot it is, Sir,’ said Mr. Weller, in a grave and
  • solemn voice. ‘This here sort o’ thing won’t do at all, so don’t let’s
  • hear no more about it.’
  • I am serious, and resolved, Sam,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘You air, air you, sir?’ inquired Mr. Weller firmly. ‘Wery good, Sir;
  • then so am I.’
  • Thus speaking, Mr. Weller fixed his hat on his head with great
  • precision, and abruptly left the room.
  • ‘Sam!’ cried Mr. Pickwick, calling after him, ‘Sam! Here!’
  • But the long gallery ceased to re-echo the sound of footsteps. Sam
  • Weller was gone.
  • CHAPTER XLIII. SHOWING HOW MR. SAMUEL WELLER GOT INTO DIFFICULTIES
  • In a lofty room, ill-lighted and worse ventilated, situated in Portugal
  • Street, Lincoln’s Inn Fields, there sit nearly the whole year round,
  • one, two, three, or four gentlemen in wigs, as the case may be, with
  • little writing-desks before them, constructed after the fashion of those
  • used by the judges of the land, barring the French polish. There is a
  • box of barristers on their right hand; there is an enclosure of
  • insolvent debtors on their left; and there is an inclined plane of most
  • especially dirty faces in their front. These gentlemen are the
  • Commissioners of the Insolvent Court, and the place in which they sit,
  • is the Insolvent Court itself.
  • It is, and has been, time out of mind, the remarkable fate of this court
  • to be, somehow or other, held and understood, by the general consent of
  • all the destitute shabby-genteel people in London, as their common
  • resort, and place of daily refuge. It is always full. The steams of beer
  • and spirits perpetually ascend to the ceiling, and, being condensed by
  • the heat, roll down the walls like rain; there are more old suits of
  • clothes in it at one time, than will be offered for sale in all
  • Houndsditch in a twelvemonth; more unwashed skins and grizzly beards
  • than all the pumps and shaving-shops between Tyburn and Whitechapel
  • could render decent, between sunrise and sunset.
  • It must not be supposed that any of these people have the least shadow
  • of business in, or the remotest connection with, the place they so
  • indefatigably attend. If they had, it would be no matter of surprise,
  • and the singularity of the thing would cease. Some of them sleep during
  • the greater part of the sitting; others carry small portable dinners
  • wrapped in pocket-handkerchiefs or sticking out of their worn-out
  • pockets, and munch and listen with equal relish; but no one among them
  • was ever known to have the slightest personal interest in any case that
  • was ever brought forward. Whatever they do, there they sit from the
  • first moment to the last. When it is heavy, rainy weather, they all come
  • in, wet through; and at such times the vapours of the court are like
  • those of a fungus-pit.
  • A casual visitor might suppose this place to be a temple dedicated to
  • the Genius of Seediness. There is not a messenger or process-server
  • attached to it, who wears a coat that was made for him; not a tolerably
  • fresh, or wholesome-looking man in the whole establishment, except a
  • little white-headed apple-faced tipstaff, and even he, like an ill-
  • conditioned cherry preserved in brandy, seems to have artificially dried
  • and withered up into a state of preservation to which he can lay no
  • natural claim. The very barristers’ wigs are ill-powdered, and their
  • curls lack crispness.
  • But the attorneys, who sit at a large bare table below the
  • commissioners, are, after all, the greatest curiosities. The
  • professional establishment of the more opulent of these gentlemen,
  • consists of a blue bag and a boy; generally a youth of the Jewish
  • persuasion. They have no fixed offices, their legal business being
  • transacted in the parlours of public-houses, or the yards of prisons,
  • whither they repair in crowds, and canvass for customers after the
  • manner of omnibus cads. They are of a greasy and mildewed appearance;
  • and if they can be said to have any vices at all, perhaps drinking and
  • cheating are the most conspicuous among them. Their residences are
  • usually on the outskirts of ‘the Rules,’ chiefly lying within a circle
  • of one mile from the obelisk in St. George’s Fields. Their looks are not
  • prepossessing, and their manners are peculiar.
  • Mr. Solomon Pell, one of this learned body, was a fat, flabby, pale man,
  • in a surtout which looked green one minute, and brown the next, with a
  • velvet collar of the same chameleon tints. His forehead was narrow, his
  • face wide, his head large, and his nose all on one side, as if Nature,
  • indignant with the propensities she observed in him in his birth, had
  • given it an angry tweak which it had never recovered. Being short-necked
  • and asthmatic, however, he respired principally through this feature;
  • so, perhaps, what it wanted in ornament, it made up in usefulness.
  • ‘I’m sure to bring him through it,’ said Mr. Pell.
  • ‘Are you, though?’ replied the person to whom the assurance was pledged.
  • ‘Certain sure,’ replied Pell; ‘but if he’d gone to any irregular
  • practitioner, mind you, I wouldn’t have answered for the consequences.’
  • ‘Ah!’ said the other, with open mouth.
  • ‘No, that I wouldn’t,’ said Mr. Pell; and he pursed up his lips,
  • frowned, and shook his head mysteriously.
  • Now, the place where this discourse occurred was the public-house just
  • opposite to the Insolvent Court; and the person with whom it was held
  • was no other than the elder Mr. Weller, who had come there, to comfort
  • and console a friend, whose petition to be discharged under the act, was
  • to be that day heard, and whose attorney he was at that moment
  • consulting.
  • ‘And vere is George?’ inquired the old gentleman.
  • Mr. Pell jerked his head in the direction of a back parlour, whither Mr.
  • Weller at once repairing, was immediately greeted in the warmest and
  • most flattering manner by some half-dozen of his professional brethren,
  • in token of their gratification at his arrival. The insolvent gentleman,
  • who had contracted a speculative but imprudent passion for horsing long
  • stages, which had led to his present embarrassments, looked extremely
  • well, and was soothing the excitement of his feelings with shrimps and
  • porter.
  • The salutation between Mr. Weller and his friends was strictly confined
  • to the freemasonry of the craft; consisting of a jerking round of the
  • right wrist, and a tossing of the little finger into the air at the same
  • time. We once knew two famous coachmen (they are dead now, poor fellows)
  • who were twins, and between whom an unaffected and devoted attachment
  • existed. They passed each other on the Dover road, every day, for
  • twenty-four years, never exchanging any other greeting than this; and
  • yet, when one died, the other pined away, and soon afterwards followed
  • him!
  • ‘Vell, George,’ said Mr. Weller senior, taking off his upper coat, and
  • seating himself with his accustomed gravity. ‘How is it? All right
  • behind, and full inside?’
  • ‘All right, old feller,’ replied the embarrassed gentleman.
  • ‘Is the gray mare made over to anybody?’ inquired Mr. Weller anxiously.
  • George nodded in the affirmative.
  • ‘Vell, that’s all right,’ said Mr. Weller. ‘Coach taken care on, also?’
  • ‘Con-signed in a safe quarter,’ replied George, wringing the heads off
  • half a dozen shrimps, and swallowing them without any more ado.
  • ‘Wery good, wery good,’ said Mr. Weller. ‘Alvays see to the drag ven you
  • go downhill. Is the vay-bill all clear and straight for’erd?’
  • ‘The schedule, sir,’ said Pell, guessing at Mr. Weller’s meaning, ‘the
  • schedule is as plain and satisfactory as pen and ink can make it.’
  • Mr. Weller nodded in a manner which bespoke his inward approval of these
  • arrangements; and then, turning to Mr. Pell, said, pointing to his
  • friend George--
  • ‘Ven do you take his cloths off?’
  • ‘Why,’ replied Mr. Pell, ‘he stands third on the opposed list, and I
  • should think it would be his turn in about half an hour. I told my clerk
  • to come over and tell us when there was a chance.’
  • Mr. Weller surveyed the attorney from head to foot with great
  • admiration, and said emphatically--
  • ‘And what’ll you take, sir?’
  • ‘Why, really,’ replied Mr. Pell, ‘you’re very--. Upon my word and
  • honour, I’m not in the habit of--. It’s so very early in the morning,
  • that, actually, I am almost--. Well, you may bring me threepenn’orth of
  • rum, my dear.’
  • The officiating damsel, who had anticipated the order before it was
  • given, set the glass of spirits before Pell, and retired.
  • ‘Gentlemen,’ said Mr. Pell, looking round upon the company, ‘success to
  • your friend! I don’t like to boast, gentlemen; it’s not my way; but I
  • can’t help saying, that, if your friend hadn’t been fortunate enough to
  • fall into hands that--But I won’t say what I was going to say.
  • Gentlemen, my service to you.’ Having emptied the glass in a twinkling,
  • Mr. Pell smacked his lips, and looked complacently round on the
  • assembled coachmen, who evidently regarded him as a species of divinity.
  • ‘Let me see,’ said the legal authority. ‘What was I a-saying,
  • gentlemen?’
  • ‘I think you was remarkin’ as you wouldn’t have no objection to another
  • o’ the same, Sir,’ said Mr. Weller, with grave facetiousness.
  • ‘Ha, ha!’ laughed Mr. Pell. ‘Not bad, not bad. A professional man, too!
  • At this time of the morning, it would be rather too good a--Well, I
  • don’t know, my dear--you may do that again, if you please. Hem!’
  • This last sound was a solemn and dignified cough, in which Mr. Pell,
  • observing an indecent tendency to mirth in some of his auditors,
  • considered it due to himself to indulge.
  • ‘The late Lord Chancellor, gentlemen, was very fond of me,’ said Mr.
  • Pell.
  • ‘And wery creditable in him, too,’ interposed Mr. Weller.
  • ‘Hear, hear,’ assented Mr. Pell’s client. ‘Why shouldn’t he be?
  • ‘Ah! Why, indeed!’ said a very red-faced man, who had said nothing yet,
  • and who looked extremely unlikely to say anything more. ‘Why shouldn’t
  • he?’
  • A murmur of assent ran through the company.
  • ‘I remember, gentlemen,’ said Mr. Pell, ‘dining with him on one
  • occasion; there was only us two, but everything as splendid as if twenty
  • people had been expected--the great seal on a dumb-waiter at his right
  • hand, and a man in a bag-wig and suit of armour guarding the mace with a
  • drawn sword and silk stockings--which is perpetually done, gentlemen,
  • night and day; when he said, “Pell,” he said, “no false delicacy, Pell.
  • You’re a man of talent; you can get anybody through the Insolvent Court,
  • Pell; and your country should be proud of you.” Those were his very
  • words. “My Lord,” I said, “you flatter me.”--“Pell,” he said, “if I do,
  • I’m damned.”’
  • ‘Did he say that?’ inquired Mr. Weller.
  • ‘He did,’ replied Pell.
  • ‘Vell, then,’ said Mr. Weller, ‘I say Parliament ought to ha’ took it
  • up; and if he’d been a poor man, they would ha’ done it.’
  • ‘But, my dear friend,’ argued Mr. Pell, ‘it was in confidence.’
  • ‘In what?’ said Mr. Weller.
  • ‘In confidence.’
  • ‘Oh! wery good,’ replied Mr. Weller, after a little reflection. ‘If he
  • damned hisself in confidence, o’ course that was another thing.’
  • ‘Of course it was,’ said Mr. Pell. ‘The distinction’s obvious, you will
  • perceive.’
  • ‘Alters the case entirely,’ said Mr. Weller. ‘Go on, Sir.’
  • No, I will not go on, Sir,’ said Mr. Pell, in a low and serious tone.
  • ‘You have reminded me, Sir, that this conversation was private--private
  • and confidential, gentlemen. Gentlemen, I am a professional man. It may
  • be that I am a good deal looked up to, in my profession--it may be that
  • I am not. Most people know. I say nothing. Observations have already
  • been made, in this room, injurious to the reputation of my noble friend.
  • You will excuse me, gentlemen; I was imprudent. I feel that I have no
  • right to mention this matter without his concurrence. Thank you, Sir;
  • thank you.’ Thus delivering himself, Mr. Pell thrust his hands into his
  • pockets, and, frowning grimly around, rattled three halfpence with
  • terrible determination.
  • This virtuous resolution had scarcely been formed, when the boy and the
  • blue bag, who were inseparable companions, rushed violently into the
  • room, and said (at least the boy did, for the blue bag took no part in
  • the announcement) that the case was coming on directly. The intelligence
  • was no sooner received than the whole party hurried across the street,
  • and began to fight their way into court--a preparatory ceremony, which
  • has been calculated to occupy, in ordinary cases, from twenty-five
  • minutes to thirty.
  • Mr. Weller, being stout, cast himself at once into the crowd, with the
  • desperate hope of ultimately turning up in some place which would suit
  • him. His success was not quite equal to his expectations; for having
  • neglected to take his hat off, it was knocked over his eyes by some
  • unseen person, upon whose toes he had alighted with considerable force.
  • Apparently this individual regretted his impetuosity immediately
  • afterwards, for, muttering an indistinct exclamation of surprise, he
  • dragged the old man out into the hall, and, after a violent struggle,
  • released his head and face.
  • ‘Samivel!’ exclaimed Mr. Weller, when he was thus enabled to behold his
  • rescuer.
  • Sam nodded.
  • ‘You’re a dutiful and affectionate little boy, you are, ain’t you,’ said
  • Mr. Weller, ‘to come a-bonnetin’ your father in his old age?’
  • ‘How should I know who you wos?’ responded the son. ‘Do you s’pose I wos
  • to tell you by the weight o’ your foot?’
  • ‘Vell, that’s wery true, Sammy,’ replied Mr. Weller, mollified at once;
  • ‘but wot are you a-doin’ on here? Your gov’nor can’t do no good here,
  • Sammy. They won’t pass that werdick, they won’t pass it, Sammy.’ And Mr.
  • Weller shook his head with legal solemnity.
  • ‘Wot a perwerse old file it is!’ exclaimed Sam, ‘always a-goin’ on about
  • werdicks and alleybis and that. Who said anything about the werdick?’
  • Mr. Weller made no reply, but once more shook his head most learnedly.
  • ‘Leave off rattlin’ that ‘ere nob o’ yourn, if you don’t want it to come
  • off the springs altogether,’ said Sam impatiently, ‘and behave
  • reasonable. I vent all the vay down to the Markis o’ Granby, arter you,
  • last night.’
  • ‘Did you see the Marchioness o’ Granby, Sammy?’ inquired Mr. Weller,
  • with a sigh.
  • ‘Yes, I did,’ replied Sam.
  • ‘How wos the dear creetur a-lookin’?’
  • ‘Wery queer,’ said Sam. ‘I think she’s a-injurin’ herself gradivally
  • vith too much o’ that ‘ere pine-apple rum, and other strong medicines of
  • the same natur.’
  • ‘You don’t mean that, Sammy?’ said the senior earnestly.
  • ‘I do, indeed,’ replied the junior.
  • Mr. Weller seized his son’s hand, clasped it, and let it fall. There was
  • an expression on his countenance in doing so--not of dismay or
  • apprehension, but partaking more of the sweet and gentle character of
  • hope. A gleam of resignation, and even of cheerfulness, passed over his
  • face too, as he slowly said, ‘I ain’t quite certain, Sammy; I wouldn’t
  • like to say I wos altogether positive, in case of any subsekent
  • disappointment, but I rayther think, my boy, I rayther think, that the
  • shepherd’s got the liver complaint!’
  • ‘Does he look bad?’ inquired Sam.
  • ‘He’s uncommon pale,’ replied his father, ‘’cept about the nose, which
  • is redder than ever. His appetite is wery so-so, but he imbibes
  • wonderful.’
  • Some thoughts of the rum appeared to obtrude themselves on Mr. Weller’s
  • mind, as he said this; for he looked gloomy and thoughtful; but he very
  • shortly recovered, as was testified by a perfect alphabet of winks, in
  • which he was only wont to indulge when particularly pleased.
  • ‘Vell, now,’ said Sam, ‘about my affair. Just open them ears o’ yourn,
  • and don’t say nothin’ till I’ve done.’ With this preface, Sam related,
  • as succinctly as he could, the last memorable conversation he had had
  • with Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Stop there by himself, poor creetur!’ exclaimed the elder Mr. Weller,
  • ‘without nobody to take his part! It can’t be done, Samivel, it can’t be
  • done.’
  • ‘O’ course it can’t,’ asserted Sam: ‘I know’d that, afore I came.’
  • Why, they’ll eat him up alive, Sammy,’ exclaimed Mr. Weller.
  • Sam nodded his concurrence in the opinion.
  • ‘He goes in rayther raw, Sammy,’ said Mr. Weller metaphorically, ‘and
  • he’ll come out, done so ex-ceedin’ brown, that his most formiliar
  • friends won’t know him. Roast pigeon’s nothin’ to it, Sammy.’
  • Again Sam Weller nodded.
  • ‘It oughtn’t to be, Samivel,’ said Mr. Weller gravely.
  • ‘It mustn’t be,’ said Sam.
  • ‘Cert’nly not,’ said Mr. Weller.
  • ‘Vell now,’ said Sam, ‘you’ve been a-prophecyin’ away, wery fine, like a
  • red-faced Nixon, as the sixpenny books gives picters on.’
  • ‘Who wos he, Sammy?’ inquired Mr. Weller.
  • ‘Never mind who he was,’ retorted Sam; ‘he warn’t a coachman; that’s
  • enough for you.’
  • I know’d a ostler o’ that name,’ said Mr. Weller, musing.
  • ‘It warn’t him,’ said Sam. ‘This here gen’l’m’n was a prophet.’
  • ‘Wot’s a prophet?’ inquired Mr. Weller, looking sternly on his son.
  • ‘Wy, a man as tells what’s a-goin’ to happen,’ replied Sam.
  • ‘I wish I’d know’d him, Sammy,’ said Mr. Weller. ‘P’raps he might ha’
  • throw’d a small light on that ‘ere liver complaint as we wos a-speakin’
  • on, just now. Hows’ever, if he’s dead, and ain’t left the bisness to
  • nobody, there’s an end on it. Go on, Sammy,’ said Mr. Weller, with a
  • sigh.
  • ‘Well,’ said Sam, ‘you’ve been a-prophecyin’ avay about wot’ll happen to
  • the gov’ner if he’s left alone. Don’t you see any way o’ takin’ care on
  • him?’
  • ‘No, I don’t, Sammy,’ said Mr. Weller, with a reflective visage.
  • ‘No vay at all?’ inquired Sam.
  • ‘No vay,’ said Mr. Weller, ‘unless’--and a gleam of intelligence lighted
  • up his countenance as he sank his voice to a whisper, and applied his
  • mouth to the ear of his offspring--‘unless it is getting him out in a
  • turn-up bedstead, unbeknown to the turnkeys, Sammy, or dressin’ him up
  • like a old ‘ooman vith a green wail.’
  • Sam Weller received both of these suggestions with unexpected contempt,
  • and again propounded his question.
  • ‘No,’ said the old gentleman; ‘if he von’t let you stop there, I see no
  • vay at all. It’s no thoroughfare, Sammy, no thoroughfare.’
  • ‘Well, then, I’ll tell you wot it is,’ said Sam, ‘I’ll trouble you for
  • the loan of five-and-twenty pound.’
  • ‘Wot good’ll that do?’ inquired Mr. Weller.
  • ‘Never mind,’ replied Sam. ‘P’raps you may ask for it five minits
  • arterwards; p’raps I may say I von’t pay, and cut up rough. You von’t
  • think o’ arrestin’ your own son for the money, and sendin’ him off to
  • the Fleet, will you, you unnat’ral wagabone?’
  • At this reply of Sam’s, the father and son exchanged a complete code of
  • telegraph nods and gestures, after which, the elder Mr. Weller sat
  • himself down on a stone step and laughed till he was purple.
  • ‘Wot a old image it is!’ exclaimed Sam, indignant at this loss of time.
  • ‘What are you a-settin’ down there for, con-wertin’ your face into a
  • street-door knocker, wen there’s so much to be done. Where’s the money?’
  • ‘In the boot, Sammy, in the boot,’ replied Mr. Weller, composing his
  • features. ‘Hold my hat, Sammy.’
  • Having divested himself of this encumbrance, Mr. Weller gave his body a
  • sudden wrench to one side, and by a dexterous twist, contrived to get
  • his right hand into a most capacious pocket, from whence, after a great
  • deal of panting and exertion, he extricated a pocket-book of the large
  • octavo size, fastened by a huge leathern strap. From this ledger he drew
  • forth a couple of whiplashes, three or four buckles, a little sample-bag
  • of corn, and, finally, a small roll of very dirty bank-notes, from which
  • he selected the required amount, which he handed over to Sam.
  • ‘And now, Sammy,’ said the old gentleman, when the whip-lashes, and the
  • buckles, and the samples, had been all put back, and the book once more
  • deposited at the bottom of the same pocket, ‘now, Sammy, I know a
  • gen’l’m’n here, as’ll do the rest o’ the bisness for us, in no time--a
  • limb o’ the law, Sammy, as has got brains like the frogs, dispersed all
  • over his body, and reachin’ to the wery tips of his fingers; a friend of
  • the Lord Chancellorship’s, Sammy, who’d only have to tell him what he
  • wanted, and he’d lock you up for life, if that wos all.’
  • ‘I say,’ said Sam, ‘none o’ that.’
  • ‘None o’ wot?’ inquired Mr. Weller.
  • ‘Wy, none o’ them unconstitootional ways o’ doin’ it,’ retorted Sam.
  • ‘The have-his-carcass, next to the perpetual motion, is vun of the
  • blessedest things as wos ever made. I’ve read that ‘ere in the
  • newspapers wery of’en.’
  • ‘Well, wot’s that got to do vith it?’ inquired Mr. Weller.
  • ‘Just this here,’ said Sam, ‘that I’ll patronise the inwention, and go
  • in, that vay. No visperin’s to the Chancellorship--I don’t like the
  • notion. It mayn’t be altogether safe, vith reference to gettin’ out
  • agin.’
  • Deferring to his son’s feeling upon this point, Mr. Weller at once
  • sought the erudite Solomon Pell, and acquainted him with his desire to
  • issue a writ, instantly, for the _sum _of twenty-five pounds, and costs
  • of process; to be executed without delay upon the body of one Samuel
  • Weller; the charges thereby incurred, to be paid in advance to Solomon
  • Pell.
  • The attorney was in high glee, for the embarrassed coach-horser was
  • ordered to be discharged forthwith. He highly approved of Sam’s
  • attachment to his master; declared that it strongly reminded him of his
  • own feelings of devotion to his friend, the Chancellor; and at once led
  • the elder Mr. Weller down to the Temple, to swear the affidavit of debt,
  • which the boy, with the assistance of the blue bag, had drawn up on the
  • spot.
  • Meanwhile, Sam, having been formally introduced to the whitewashed
  • gentleman and his friends, as the offspring of Mr. Weller, of the Belle
  • Savage, was treated with marked distinction, and invited to regale
  • himself with them in honour of the occasion--an invitation which he was
  • by no means backward in accepting.
  • The mirth of gentlemen of this class is of a grave and quiet character,
  • usually; but the present instance was one of peculiar festivity, and
  • they relaxed in proportion. After some rather tumultuous toasting of the
  • Chief Commissioner and Mr. Solomon Pell, who had that day displayed such
  • transcendent abilities, a mottled-faced gentleman in a blue shawl
  • proposed that somebody should sing a song. The obvious suggestion was,
  • that the mottled-faced gentleman, being anxious for a song, should sing
  • it himself; but this the mottled-faced gentleman sturdily, and somewhat
  • offensively, declined to do. Upon which, as is not unusual in such
  • cases, a rather angry colloquy ensued.
  • ‘Gentlemen,’ said the coach-horser, ‘rather than disturb the harmony of
  • this delightful occasion, perhaps Mr. Samuel Weller will oblige the
  • company.’
  • ‘Raly, gentlemen,’ said Sam, ‘I’m not wery much in the habit o’ singin’
  • without the instrument; but anythin’ for a quiet life, as the man said
  • wen he took the sitivation at the lighthouse.’
  • With this prelude, Mr. Samuel Weller burst at once into the following
  • wild and beautiful legend, which, under the impression that it is not
  • generally known, we take the liberty of quoting. We would beg to call
  • particular attention to the monosyllable at the end of the second and
  • fourth lines, which not only enables the singer to take breath at those
  • points, but greatly assists the metre.
  • ROMANCE
  • I
  • Bold Turpin vunce, on Hounslow Heath, His bold mare Bess bestrode--er;
  • Ven there he see’d the Bishop’s coach A-coming along the road--er. So he
  • gallops close to the ‘orse’s legs, And he claps his head vithin; And the
  • Bishop says, ‘Sure as eggs is eggs, This here’s the bold Turpin!’
  • CHORUS
  • And the Bishop says, ‘Sure as eggs is eggs, This here’s the bold
  • Turpin!’
  • II
  • Says Turpin, ‘You shall eat your words, With a sarse of leaden bul--
  • let;’ So he puts a pistol to his mouth, And he fires it down his gul--
  • let. The coachman he not likin’ the job, Set off at full gal-lop, But
  • Dick put a couple of balls in his nob, And perwailed on him to stop.
  • CHORUS (sarcastically)
  • But Dick put a couple of balls in his nob, And perwailed on him to stop.
  • ‘I maintain that that ‘ere song’s personal to the cloth,’ said the
  • mottled-faced gentleman, interrupting it at this point. ‘I demand the
  • name o’ that coachman.’
  • ‘Nobody know’d,’ replied Sam. ‘He hadn’t got his card in his pocket.’
  • ‘I object to the introduction o’ politics,’ said the mottled-faced
  • gentleman. ‘I submit that, in the present company, that ‘ere song’s
  • political; and, wot’s much the same, that it ain’t true. I say that that
  • coachman did not run away; but that he died game--game as pheasants; and
  • I won’t hear nothin’ said to the contrairey.’
  • As the mottled-faced gentleman spoke with great energy and
  • determination, and as the opinions of the company seemed divided on the
  • subject, it threatened to give rise to fresh altercation, when Mr.
  • Weller and Mr. Pell most opportunely arrived.
  • ‘All right, Sammy,’ said Mr. Weller.
  • ‘The officer will be here at four o’clock,’ said Mr. Pell. ‘I suppose
  • you won’t run away meanwhile, eh? Ha! ha!’
  • ‘P’raps my cruel pa ‘ull relent afore then,’ replied Sam, with a broad
  • grin.
  • ‘Not I,’ said the elder Mr. Weller.
  • ‘Do,’ said Sam.
  • ‘Not on no account,’ replied the inexorable creditor.
  • ‘I’ll give bills for the amount, at sixpence a month,’ said Sam.
  • ‘I won’t take ‘em,’ said Mr. Weller.
  • ‘Ha, ha, ha! very good, very good,’ said Mr. Solomon Pell, who was
  • making out his little bill of costs; ‘a very amusing incident indeed!
  • Benjamin, copy that.’ And Mr. Pell smiled again, as he called Mr.
  • Weller’s attention to the amount.
  • ‘Thank you, thank you,’ said the professional gentleman, taking up
  • another of the greasy notes as Mr. Weller took it from the pocket-book.
  • ‘Three ten and one ten is five. Much obliged to you, Mr. Weller. Your
  • son is a most deserving young man, very much so indeed, Sir. It’s a very
  • pleasant trait in a young man’s character, very much so,’ added Mr.
  • Pell, smiling smoothly round, as he buttoned up the money.
  • ‘Wot a game it is!’ said the elder Mr. Weller, with a chuckle. ‘A
  • reg’lar prodigy son!’
  • ‘Prodigal--prodigal son, Sir,’ suggested Mr. Pell, mildly.
  • ‘Never mind, Sir,’ said Mr. Weller, with dignity. ‘I know wot’s o’clock,
  • Sir. Wen I don’t, I’ll ask you, Sir.’
  • By the time the officer arrived, Sam had made himself so extremely
  • popular, that the congregated gentlemen determined to see him to prison
  • in a body. So off they set; the plaintiff and defendant walking arm in
  • arm, the officer in front, and eight stout coachmen bringing up the
  • rear. At Serjeant’s Inn Coffee-house the whole party halted to refresh,
  • and, the legal arrangements being completed, the procession moved on
  • again.
  • Some little commotion was occasioned in Fleet Street, by the pleasantry
  • of the eight gentlemen in the flank, who persevered in walking four
  • abreast; it was also found necessary to leave the mottled-faced
  • gentleman behind, to fight a ticket-porter, it being arranged that his
  • friends should call for him as they came back. Nothing but these little
  • incidents occurred on the way. When they reached the gate of the Fleet,
  • the cavalcade, taking the time from the plaintiff, gave three tremendous
  • cheers for the defendant, and, after having shaken hands all round, left
  • him.
  • Sam, having been formally delivered into the warder’s custody, to the
  • intense astonishment of Roker, and to the evident emotion of even the
  • phlegmatic Neddy, passed at once into the prison, walked straight to his
  • master’s room, and knocked at the door.
  • ‘Come in,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • Sam appeared, pulled off his hat, and smiled.
  • ‘Ah, Sam, my good lad!’ said Mr. Pickwick, evidently delighted to see
  • his humble friend again; ‘I had no intention of hurting your feelings
  • yesterday, my faithful fellow, by what I said. Put down your hat, Sam,
  • and let me explain my meaning, a little more at length.’
  • ‘Won’t presently do, sir?’ inquired Sam.
  • ‘Certainly,’ said Mr. Pickwick; ‘but why not now?’
  • ‘I’d rayther not now, sir,’ rejoined Sam.
  • ‘Why?’ inquired Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘’Cause--’ said Sam, hesitating.
  • ‘Because of what?’ inquired Mr. Pickwick, alarmed at his follower’s
  • manner. ‘Speak out, Sam.’
  • ‘’Cause,’ rejoined Sam--‘’cause I’ve got a little bisness as I want to
  • do.’
  • ‘What business?’ inquired Mr. Pickwick, surprised at Sam’s confused
  • manner.
  • ‘Nothin’ partickler, Sir,’ replied Sam.
  • ‘Oh, if it’s nothing particular,’ said Mr. Pickwick, with a smile, ‘you
  • can speak with me first.’
  • ‘I think I’d better see arter it at once,’ said Sam, still hesitating.
  • Mr. Pickwick looked amazed, but said nothing.
  • ‘The fact is--’ said Sam, stopping short.
  • ‘Well!’ said Mr. Pickwick. ‘Speak out, Sam.’
  • ‘Why, the fact is,’ said Sam, with a desperate effort, ‘perhaps I’d
  • better see arter my bed afore I do anythin’ else.’
  • ‘_Your bed!_’ exclaimed Mr. Pickwick, in astonishment.
  • ‘Yes, my bed, Sir,’ replied Sam, ‘I’m a prisoner. I was arrested this
  • here wery arternoon for debt.’
  • ‘You arrested for debt!’ exclaimed Mr. Pickwick, sinking into a chair.
  • ‘Yes, for debt, Sir,’ replied Sam. ‘And the man as puts me in, ‘ull
  • never let me out till you go yourself.’
  • ‘Bless my heart and soul!’ ejaculated Mr. Pickwick. ‘What do you mean?’
  • ‘Wot I say, Sir,’ rejoined Sam. ‘If it’s forty years to come, I shall be
  • a prisoner, and I’m very glad on it; and if it had been Newgate, it
  • would ha’ been just the same. Now the murder’s out, and, damme, there’s
  • an end on it!’
  • With these words, which he repeated with great emphasis and violence,
  • Sam Weller dashed his hat upon the ground, in a most unusual state of
  • excitement; and then, folding his arms, looked firmly and fixedly in his
  • master’s face.
  • CHAPTER LXIV. TREATS OF DIVERS LITTLE MATTERS WHICH OCCURRED IN THE
  • FLEET, AND OF MR. WINKLE’S MYSTERIOUS BEHAVIOUR; AND SHOWS HOW THE POOR
  • CHANCERY PRISONER OBTAINED HIS RELEASE AT LAST
  • Mr. Pickwick felt a great deal too much touched by the warmth of Sam’s
  • attachment, to be able to exhibit any manifestation of anger or
  • displeasure at the precipitate course he had adopted, in voluntarily
  • consigning himself to a debtor’s prison for an indefinite period. The
  • only point on which he persevered in demanding an explanation, was, the
  • name of Sam’s detaining creditor; but this Mr. Weller as perseveringly
  • withheld.
  • ‘It ain’t o’ no use, sir,’ said Sam, again and again; ‘he’s a malicious,
  • bad-disposed, vorldly-minded, spiteful, windictive creetur, with a hard
  • heart as there ain’t no soft’nin’, as the wirtuous clergyman remarked of
  • the old gen’l’m’n with the dropsy, ven he said, that upon the whole he
  • thought he’d rayther leave his property to his vife than build a chapel
  • vith it.’
  • ‘But consider, Sam,’ Mr. Pickwick remonstrated, ‘the sum is so small
  • that it can very easily be paid; and having made up my mind that you
  • shall stop with me, you should recollect how much more useful you would
  • be, if you could go outside the walls.’
  • Wery much obliged to you, sir,’ replied Mr. Weller gravely; ‘but I’d
  • rayther not.’
  • ‘Rather not do what, Sam?’
  • ‘Wy, I’d rayther not let myself down to ask a favour o’ this here
  • unremorseful enemy.’
  • ‘But it is no favour asking him to take his money, Sam,’ reasoned Mr.
  • Pickwick.
  • ‘Beg your pardon, sir,’ rejoined Sam, ‘but it ‘ud be a wery great favour
  • to pay it, and he don’t deserve none; that’s where it is, sir.’
  • Here Mr. Pickwick, rubbing his nose with an air of some vexation, Mr.
  • Weller thought it prudent to change the theme of the discourse.
  • ‘I takes my determination on principle, Sir,’ remarked Sam, ‘and you
  • takes yours on the same ground; wich puts me in mind o’ the man as
  • killed his-self on principle, wich o’ course you’ve heerd on, Sir.’ Mr.
  • Weller paused when he arrived at this point, and cast a comical look at
  • his master out of the corners of his eyes.
  • ‘There is no “of course” in the case, Sam,’ said Mr. Pickwick, gradually
  • breaking into a smile, in spite of the uneasiness which Sam’s obstinacy
  • had given him. ‘The fame of the gentleman in question, never reached my
  • ears.’
  • ‘No, sir!’ exclaimed Mr. Weller. ‘You astonish me, Sir; he wos a clerk
  • in a gov’ment office, sir.’
  • ‘Was he?’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Yes, he wos, Sir,’ rejoined Mr. Weller; ‘and a wery pleasant gen’l’m’n
  • too--one o’ the precise and tidy sort, as puts their feet in little
  • India-rubber fire-buckets wen it’s wet weather, and never has no other
  • bosom friends but hare-skins; he saved up his money on principle, wore a
  • clean shirt ev’ry day on principle; never spoke to none of his relations
  • on principle, ‘fear they shou’d want to borrow money of him; and wos
  • altogether, in fact, an uncommon agreeable character. He had his hair
  • cut on principle vunce a fortnight, and contracted for his clothes on
  • the economic principle--three suits a year, and send back the old uns.
  • Being a wery reg’lar gen’l’m’n, he din’d ev’ry day at the same place,
  • where it was one-and-nine to cut off the joint, and a wery good one-and-
  • nine’s worth he used to cut, as the landlord often said, with the tears
  • a-tricklin’ down his face, let alone the way he used to poke the fire in
  • the vinter time, which wos a dead loss o’ four-pence ha’penny a day, to
  • say nothin’ at all o’ the aggrawation o’ seein’ him do it. So uncommon
  • grand with it too! “_Post _arter the next gen’l’m’n,” he sings out ev’ry
  • day ven he comes in. “See arter the TIMES, Thomas; let me look at the
  • MORNIN’ HERALD, when it’s out o’ hand; don’t forget to bespeak the
  • CHRONICLE; and just bring the ‘TIZER, vill you:” and then he’d set vith
  • his eyes fixed on the clock, and rush out, just a quarter of a minit
  • ‘fore the time to waylay the boy as wos a-comin’ in with the evenin’
  • paper, which he’d read with sich intense interest and persewerance as
  • worked the other customers up to the wery confines o’ desperation and
  • insanity, ‘specially one i-rascible old gen’l’m’n as the vaiter wos
  • always obliged to keep a sharp eye on, at sich times, fear he should be
  • tempted to commit some rash act with the carving-knife. Vell, Sir, here
  • he’d stop, occupyin’ the best place for three hours, and never takin’
  • nothin’ arter his dinner, but sleep, and then he’d go away to a coffee-
  • house a few streets off, and have a small pot o’ coffee and four
  • crumpets, arter wich he’d walk home to Kensington and go to bed. One
  • night he wos took very ill; sends for a doctor; doctor comes in a green
  • fly, with a kind o’ Robinson Crusoe set o’ steps, as he could let down
  • wen he got out, and pull up arter him wen he got in, to perwent the
  • necessity o’ the coachman’s gettin’ down, and thereby undeceivin’ the
  • public by lettin’ ‘em see that it wos only a livery coat as he’d got on,
  • and not the trousers to match. “Wot’s the matter?” says the doctor.
  • “Wery ill,” says the patient. “Wot have you been a-eatin’ on?” says the
  • doctor. “Roast weal,” says the patient. “Wot’s the last thing you
  • dewoured?” says the doctor. “Crumpets,” says the patient. “That’s it!”
  • says the doctor. “I’ll send you a box of pills directly, and don’t you
  • never take no more of ‘em,” he says. “No more o’ wot?” says the patient-
  • -“pills?” “No; crumpets,” says the doctor. “Wy?” says the patient,
  • starting up in bed; “I’ve eat four crumpets, ev’ry night for fifteen
  • year, on principle.” “Well, then, you’d better leave ‘em off, on
  • principle,” says the doctor. “Crumpets is _not _wholesome, Sir,” says
  • the doctor, wery fierce. “But they’re so cheap,” says the patient,
  • comin’ down a little, “and so wery fillin’ at the price.” “They’d be
  • dear to you, at any price; dear if you wos paid to eat ‘em,” says the
  • doctor. “Four crumpets a night,” he says, “vill do your business in six
  • months!” The patient looks him full in the face, and turns it over in
  • his mind for a long time, and at last he says, “Are you sure o’ that
  • ‘ere, Sir?” “I’ll stake my professional reputation on it,” says the
  • doctor. “How many crumpets, at a sittin’, do you think ‘ud kill me off
  • at once?” says the patient. “I don’t know,” says the doctor. “Do you
  • think half-a-crown’s wurth ‘ud do it?” says the patient. “I think it
  • might,” says the doctor. “Three shillins’ wurth ‘ud be sure to do it, I
  • s’pose?” says the patient. “Certainly,” says the doctor. “Wery good,”
  • says the patient; “good-night.” Next mornin’ he gets up, has a fire lit,
  • orders in three shillins’ wurth o’ crumpets, toasts ‘em all, eats ‘em
  • all, and blows his brains out.’
  • ‘What did he do that for?’ inquired Mr. Pickwick abruptly; for he was
  • considerably startled by this tragical termination of the narrative.
  • ‘Wot did he do it for, Sir?’ reiterated Sam. ‘Wy, in support of his
  • great principle that crumpets wos wholesome, and to show that he
  • wouldn’t be put out of his way for nobody!’
  • With such like shiftings and changings of the discourse, did Mr. Weller
  • meet his master’s questioning on the night of his taking up his
  • residence in the Fleet. Finding all gentle remonstrance useless, Mr.
  • Pickwick at length yielded a reluctant consent to his taking lodgings by
  • the week, of a bald-headed cobbler, who rented a small slip room in one
  • of the upper galleries. To this humble apartment Mr. Weller moved a
  • mattress and bedding, which he hired of Mr. Roker; and, by the time he
  • lay down upon it at night, was as much at home as if he had been bred in
  • the prison, and his whole family had vegetated therein for three
  • generations.
  • ‘Do you always smoke arter you goes to bed, old cock?’ inquired Mr.
  • Weller of his landlord, when they had both retired for the night.
  • ‘Yes, I does, young bantam,’ replied the cobbler.
  • ‘Will you allow me to in-quire wy you make up your bed under that ‘ere
  • deal table?’ said Sam.
  • ‘’Cause I was always used to a four-poster afore I came here, and I find
  • the legs of the table answer just as well,’ replied the cobbler.
  • ‘You’re a character, sir,’ said Sam.
  • ‘I haven’t got anything of the kind belonging to me,’ rejoined the
  • cobbler, shaking his head; ‘and if you want to meet with a good one, I’m
  • afraid you’ll find some difficulty in suiting yourself at this register
  • office.’
  • The above short dialogue took place as Mr. Weller lay extended on his
  • mattress at one end of the room, and the cobbler on his, at the other;
  • the apartment being illumined by the light of a rush-candle, and the
  • cobbler’s pipe, which was glowing below the table, like a red-hot coal.
  • The conversation, brief as it was, predisposed Mr. Weller strongly in
  • his landlord’s favour; and, raising himself on his elbow, he took a more
  • lengthened survey of his appearance than he had yet had either time or
  • inclination to make.
  • He was a sallow man--all cobblers are; and had a strong bristly beard--
  • all cobblers have. His face was a queer, good-tempered, crooked-featured
  • piece of workmanship, ornamented with a couple of eyes that must have
  • worn a very joyous expression at one time, for they sparkled yet. The
  • man was sixty, by years, and Heaven knows how old by imprisonment, so
  • that his having any look approaching to mirth or contentment, was
  • singular enough. He was a little man, and, being half doubled up as he
  • lay in bed, looked about as long as he ought to have been without his
  • legs. He had a great red pipe in his mouth, and was smoking, and staring
  • at the rush-light, in a state of enviable placidity.
  • ‘Have you been here long?’ inquired Sam, breaking the silence which had
  • lasted for some time.
  • ‘Twelve year,’ replied the cobbler, biting the end of his pipe as he
  • spoke.
  • ‘Contempt?’ inquired Sam.
  • The cobbler nodded.
  • ‘Well, then,’ said Sam, with some sternness, ‘wot do you persevere in
  • bein’ obstinit for, vastin’ your precious life away, in this here
  • magnified pound? Wy don’t you give in, and tell the Chancellorship that
  • you’re wery sorry for makin’ his court contemptible, and you won’t do so
  • no more?’
  • The cobbler put his pipe in the corner of his mouth, while he smiled,
  • and then brought it back to its old place again; but said nothing.
  • ‘Wy don’t you?’ said Sam, urging his question strenuously.
  • ‘Ah,’ said the cobbler, ‘you don’t quite understand these matters. What
  • do you suppose ruined me, now?’
  • ‘Wy,’ said Sam, trimming the rush-light, ‘I s’pose the beginnin’ wos,
  • that you got into debt, eh?’
  • ‘Never owed a farden,’ said the cobbler; ‘try again.’
  • ‘Well, perhaps,’ said Sam, ‘you bought houses, wich is delicate English
  • for goin’ mad; or took to buildin’, wich is a medical term for bein’
  • incurable.’
  • The cobbler shook his head and said, ‘Try again.’
  • ‘You didn’t go to law, I hope?’ said Sam suspiciously.
  • ‘Never in my life,’ replied the cobbler. ‘The fact is, I was ruined by
  • having money left me.’
  • ‘Come, come,’ said Sam, ‘that von’t do. I wish some rich enemy ‘ud try
  • to vork my destruction in that ‘ere vay. I’d let him.’
  • ‘Oh, I dare say you don’t believe it,’ said the cobbler, quietly smoking
  • his pipe. ‘I wouldn’t if I was you; but it’s true for all that.’
  • ‘How wos it?’ inquired Sam, half induced to believe the fact already, by
  • the look the cobbler gave him.
  • ‘Just this,’ replied the cobbler; ‘an old gentleman that I worked for,
  • down in the country, and a humble relation of whose I married--she’s
  • dead, God bless her, and thank Him for it!--was seized with a fit and
  • went off.’
  • ‘Where?’ inquired Sam, who was growing sleepy after the numerous events
  • of the day.
  • ‘How should I know where he went?’ said the cobbler, speaking through
  • his nose in an intense enjoyment of his pipe. ‘He went off dead.’
  • ‘Oh, that indeed,’ said Sam. ‘Well?’
  • ‘Well,’ said the cobbler, ‘he left five thousand pound behind him.’
  • ‘And wery gen-teel in him so to do,’ said Sam.
  • ‘One of which,’ continued the cobbler, ‘he left to me, ‘cause I married
  • his relation, you see.’
  • ‘Wery good,’ murmured Sam.
  • ‘And being surrounded by a great number of nieces and nevys, as was
  • always quarrelling and fighting among themselves for the property, he
  • makes me his executor, and leaves the rest to me in trust, to divide it
  • among ‘em as the will prowided.’
  • ‘Wot do you mean by leavin’ it on trust?’ inquired Sam, waking up a
  • little. ‘If it ain’t ready-money, were’s the use on it?’
  • ‘It’s a law term, that’s all,’ said the cobbler.
  • ‘I don’t think that,’ said Sam, shaking his head. ‘There’s wery little
  • trust at that shop. Hows’ever, go on.’
  • Well,’ said the cobbler, ‘when I was going to take out a probate of the
  • will, the nieces and nevys, who was desperately disappointed at not
  • getting all the money, enters a caveat against it.’
  • What’s that?’ inquired Sam.
  • ‘A legal instrument, which is as much as to say, it’s no go,’ replied
  • the cobbler.
  • ‘I see,’ said Sam, ‘a sort of brother-in-law o’ the have-his-carcass.
  • Well.’
  • ‘But,’ continued the cobbler, ‘finding that they couldn’t agree among
  • themselves, and consequently couldn’t get up a case against the will,
  • they withdrew the caveat, and I paid all the legacies. I’d hardly done
  • it, when one nevy brings an action to set the will aside. The case comes
  • on, some months afterwards, afore a deaf old gentleman, in a back room
  • somewhere down by Paul’s Churchyard; and arter four counsels had taken a
  • day a-piece to bother him regularly, he takes a week or two to consider,
  • and read the evidence in six volumes, and then gives his judgment that
  • how the testator was not quite right in his head, and I must pay all the
  • money back again, and all the costs. I appealed; the case come on before
  • three or four very sleepy gentlemen, who had heard it all before in the
  • other court, where they’re lawyers without work; the only difference
  • being, that, there, they’re called doctors, and in the other place
  • delegates, if you understand that; and they very dutifully confirmed the
  • decision of the old gentleman below. After that, we went into Chancery,
  • where we are still, and where I shall always be. My lawyers have had all
  • my thousand pound long ago; and what between the estate, as they call
  • it, and the costs, I’m here for ten thousand, and shall stop here, till
  • I die, mending shoes. Some gentlemen have talked of bringing it before
  • Parliament, and I dare say would have done it, only they hadn’t time to
  • come to me, and I hadn’t power to go to them, and they got tired of my
  • long letters, and dropped the business. And this is God’s truth, without
  • one word of suppression or exaggeration, as fifty people, both in this
  • place and out of it, very well know.’
  • The cobbler paused to ascertain what effect his story had produced on
  • Sam; but finding that he had dropped asleep, knocked the ashes out of
  • his pipe, sighed, put it down, drew the bed-clothes over his head, and
  • went to sleep, too.
  • Mr. Pickwick was sitting at breakfast, alone, next morning (Sam being
  • busily engaged in the cobbler’s room, polishing his master’s shoes and
  • brushing the black gaiters) when there came a knock at the door, which,
  • before Mr. Pickwick could cry ‘Come in!’ was followed by the appearance
  • of a head of hair and a cotton-velvet cap, both of which articles of
  • dress he had no difficulty in recognising as the personal property of
  • Mr. Smangle.
  • ‘How are you?’ said that worthy, accompanying the inquiry with a score
  • or two of nods; ‘I say--do you expect anybody this morning? Three men--
  • devilish gentlemanly fellows--have been asking after you downstairs, and
  • knocking at every door on the hall flight; for which they’ve been most
  • infernally blown up by the collegians that had the trouble of opening
  • ‘em.’
  • ‘Dear me! How very foolish of them,’ said Mr. Pickwick, rising. ‘Yes; I
  • have no doubt they are some friends whom I rather expected to see,
  • yesterday.’
  • ‘Friends of yours!’ exclaimed Smangle, seizing Mr. Pickwick by the hand.
  • ‘Say no more. Curse me, they’re friends of mine from this minute, and
  • friends of Mivins’s, too. Infernal pleasant, gentlemanly dog, Mivins,
  • isn’t he?’ said Smangle, with great feeling.
  • ‘I know so little of the gentleman,’ said Mr. Pickwick, hesitating,
  • ‘that I--’
  • ‘I know you do,’ interrupted Smangle, clasping Mr. Pickwick by the
  • shoulder. ‘You shall know him better. You’ll be delighted with him. That
  • man, Sir,’ said Smangle, with a solemn countenance, ‘has comic powers
  • that would do honour to Drury Lane Theatre.’
  • ‘Has he indeed?’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Ah, by Jove he has!’ replied Smangle. ‘Hear him come the four cats in
  • the wheel-barrow--four distinct cats, sir, I pledge you my honour. Now
  • you know that’s infernal clever! Damme, you can’t help liking a man,
  • when you see these traits about him. He’s only one fault--that little
  • failing I mentioned to you, you know.’
  • As Mr. Smangle shook his head in a confidential and sympathising manner
  • at this juncture, Mr. Pickwick felt that he was expected to say
  • something, so he said, ‘Ah!’ and looked restlessly at the door.
  • ‘Ah!’ echoed Mr. Smangle, with a long-drawn sigh. ‘He’s delightful
  • company, that man is, sir. I don’t know better company anywhere; but he
  • has that one drawback. If the ghost of his grandfather, Sir, was to rise
  • before him this minute, he’d ask him for the loan of his acceptance on
  • an eightpenny stamp.’
  • Dear me!’ exclaimed Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Yes,’ added Mr. Smangle; ‘and if he’d the power of raising him again,
  • he would, in two months and three days from this time, to renew the
  • bill!’
  • ‘Those are very remarkable traits,’ said Mr. Pickwick; ‘but I’m afraid
  • that while we are talking here, my friends may be in a state of great
  • perplexity at not finding me.’
  • ‘I’ll show ‘em the way,’ said Smangle, making for the door. ‘Good-day. I
  • won’t disturb you while they’re here, you know. By the bye--’
  • As Smangle pronounced the last three words, he stopped suddenly,
  • reclosed the door which he had opened, and, walking softly back to Mr.
  • Pickwick, stepped close up to him on tiptoe, and said, in a very soft
  • whisper--
  • ‘You couldn’t make it convenient to lend me half-a-crown till the latter
  • end of next week, could you?’
  • Mr. Pickwick could scarcely forbear smiling, but managing to preserve
  • his gravity, he drew forth the coin, and placed it in Mr. Smangle’s
  • palm; upon which, that gentleman, with many nods and winks, implying
  • profound mystery, disappeared in quest of the three strangers, with whom
  • he presently returned; and having coughed thrice, and nodded as many
  • times, as an assurance to Mr. Pickwick that he would not forget to pay,
  • he shook hands all round, in an engaging manner, and at length took
  • himself off.
  • ‘My dear friends,’ said Mr. Pickwick, shaking hands alternately with Mr.
  • Tupman, Mr. Winkle, and Mr. Snodgrass, who were the three visitors in
  • question, ‘I am delighted to see you.’
  • The triumvirate were much affected. Mr. Tupman shook his head
  • deploringly, Mr. Snodgrass drew forth his handkerchief, with undisguised
  • emotion; and Mr. Winkle retired to the window, and sniffed aloud.
  • ‘Mornin’, gen’l’m’n,’ said Sam, entering at the moment with the shoes
  • and gaiters. ‘Avay vith melincholly, as the little boy said ven his
  • schoolmissus died. Velcome to the college, gen’l’m’n.’
  • ‘This foolish fellow,’ said Mr. Pickwick, tapping Sam on the head as he
  • knelt down to button up his master’s gaiters--‘this foolish fellow has
  • got himself arrested, in order to be near me.’
  • ‘What!’ exclaimed the three friends.
  • ‘Yes, gen’l’m’n,’ said Sam, ‘I’m a--stand steady, sir, if you please--
  • I’m a prisoner, gen’l’m’n. Con-fined, as the lady said.’
  • ‘A prisoner!’ exclaimed Mr. Winkle, with unaccountable vehemence.
  • ‘Hollo, sir!’ responded Sam, looking up. ‘Wot’s the matter, Sir?’
  • ‘I had hoped, Sam, that--Nothing, nothing,’ said Mr. Winkle
  • precipitately.
  • There was something so very abrupt and unsettled in Mr. Winkle’s manner,
  • that Mr. Pickwick involuntarily looked at his two friends for an
  • explanation.
  • ‘We don’t know,’ said Mr. Tupman, answering this mute appeal aloud. ‘He
  • has been much excited for two days past, and his whole demeanour very
  • unlike what it usually is. We feared there must be something the matter,
  • but he resolutely denies it.’
  • ‘No, no,’ said Mr. Winkle, colouring beneath Mr. Pickwick’s gaze; ‘there
  • is really nothing. I assure you there is nothing, my dear sir. It will
  • be necessary for me to leave town, for a short time, on private
  • business, and I had hoped to have prevailed upon you to allow Sam to
  • accompany me.’
  • Mr. Pickwick looked more astonished than before.
  • ‘I think,’ faltered Mr. Winkle, ‘that Sam would have had no objection to
  • do so; but, of course, his being a prisoner here, renders it impossible.
  • So I must go alone.’
  • As Mr. Winkle said these words, Mr. Pickwick felt, with some
  • astonishment, that Sam’s fingers were trembling at the gaiters, as if he
  • were rather surprised or startled. Sam looked up at Mr. Winkle, too,
  • when he had finished speaking; and though the glance they exchanged was
  • instantaneous, they seemed to understand each other.
  • ‘Do you know anything of this, Sam?’ said Mr. Pickwick sharply.
  • ‘No, I don’t, sir,’ replied Mr. Weller, beginning to button with
  • extraordinary assiduity.
  • ‘Are you sure, Sam?’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Wy, sir,’ responded Mr. Weller; ‘I’m sure so far, that I’ve never heerd
  • anythin’ on the subject afore this moment. If I makes any guess about
  • it,’ added Sam, looking at Mr. Winkle, ‘I haven’t got any right to say
  • what it is, ‘fear it should be a wrong ‘un.’
  • ‘I have no right to make any further inquiry into the private affairs of
  • a friend, however intimate a friend,’ said Mr. Pickwick, after a short
  • silence; ‘at present let me merely say, that I do not understand this at
  • all. There. We have had quite enough of the subject.’
  • Thus expressing himself, Mr. Pickwick led the conversation to different
  • topics, and Mr. Winkle gradually appeared more at ease, though still
  • very far from being completely so. They had all so much to converse
  • about, that the morning very quickly passed away; and when, at three
  • o’clock, Mr. Weller produced upon the little dining-table, a roast leg
  • of mutton and an enormous meat-pie, with sundry dishes of vegetables,
  • and pots of porter, which stood upon the chairs or the sofa bedstead, or
  • where they could, everybody felt disposed to do justice to the meal,
  • notwithstanding that the meat had been purchased, and dressed, and the
  • pie made, and baked, at the prison cookery hard by.
  • To these succeeded a bottle or two of very good wine, for which a
  • messenger was despatched by Mr. Pickwick to the Horn Coffee-house, in
  • Doctors’ Commons. The bottle or two, indeed, might be more properly
  • described as a bottle or six, for by the time it was drunk, and tea
  • over, the bell began to ring for strangers to withdraw.
  • But, if Mr. Winkle’s behaviour had been unaccountable in the morning, it
  • became perfectly unearthly and solemn when, under the influence of his
  • feelings, and his share of the bottle or six, he prepared to take leave
  • of his friend. He lingered behind, until Mr. Tupman and Mr. Snodgrass
  • had disappeared, and then fervently clenched Mr. Pickwick’s hand, with
  • an expression of face in which deep and mighty resolve was fearfully
  • blended with the very concentrated essence of gloom.
  • ‘Good-night, my dear Sir!’ said Mr. Winkle between his set teeth.
  • ‘Bless you, my dear fellow!’ replied the warm-hearted Mr. Pickwick, as
  • he returned the pressure of his young friend’s hand.
  • ‘Now then!’ cried Mr. Tupman from the gallery.
  • ‘Yes, yes, directly,’ replied Mr. Winkle. ‘Good-night!’
  • ‘Good-night,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • There was another good-night, and another, and half a dozen more after
  • that, and still Mr. Winkle had fast hold of his friend’s hand, and was
  • looking into his face with the same strange expression.
  • ‘Is anything the matter?’ said Mr. Pickwick at last, when his arm was
  • quite sore with shaking.
  • ‘Nothing,’ said Mr. Winkle.
  • ‘Well then, good-night,’ said Mr. Pickwick, attempting to disengage his
  • hand.
  • ‘My friend, my benefactor, my honoured companion,’ murmured Mr. Winkle,
  • catching at his wrist. ‘Do not judge me harshly; do not, when you hear
  • that, driven to extremity by hopeless obstacles, I--’
  • ‘Now then,’ said Mr. Tupman, reappearing at the door. ‘Are you coming,
  • or are we to be locked in?’
  • ‘Yes, yes, I am ready,’ replied Mr. Winkle. And with a violent effort he
  • tore himself away.
  • As Mr. Pickwick was gazing down the passage after them in silent
  • astonishment, Sam Weller appeared at the stair-head, and whispered for
  • one moment in Mr. Winkle’s ear.
  • ‘Oh, certainly, depend upon me,’ said that gentleman aloud.
  • ‘Thank’ee, sir. You won’t forget, sir?’ said Sam.
  • ‘Of course not,’ replied Mr. Winkle.
  • ‘Wish you luck, Sir,’ said Sam, touching his hat. ‘I should very much
  • liked to ha’ joined you, Sir; but the gov’nor, o’ course, is paramount.’
  • ‘It is very much to your credit that you remain here,’ said Mr. Winkle.
  • With these words they disappeared down the stairs.
  • ‘Very extraordinary,’ said Mr. Pickwick, going back into his room, and
  • seating himself at the table in a musing attitude. ‘What can that young
  • man be going to do?’
  • He had sat ruminating about the matter for some time, when the voice of
  • Roker, the turnkey, demanded whether he might come in.
  • ‘By all means,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘I’ve brought you a softer pillow, Sir,’ said Mr. Roker, ‘instead of the
  • temporary one you had last night.’
  • ‘Thank you,’ said Mr. Pickwick. ‘Will you take a glass of wine?’
  • ‘You’re wery good, Sir,’ replied Mr. Roker, accepting the proffered
  • glass. ‘Yours, sir.’
  • ‘Thank you,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘I’m sorry to say that your landlord’s wery bad to-night, Sir,’ said
  • Roker, setting down the glass, and inspecting the lining of his hat
  • preparatory to putting it on again.
  • ‘What! The Chancery prisoner!’ exclaimed Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘He won’t be a Chancery prisoner wery long, Sir,’ replied Roker, turning
  • his hat round, so as to get the maker’s name right side upwards, as he
  • looked into it.
  • ‘You make my blood run cold,’ said Mr. Pickwick. ‘What do you mean?’
  • ‘He’s been consumptive for a long time past,’ said Mr. Roker, ‘and he’s
  • taken wery bad in the breath to-night. The doctor said, six months ago,
  • that nothing but change of air could save him.’
  • ‘Great Heaven!’ exclaimed Mr. Pickwick; ‘has this man been slowly
  • murdered by the law for six months?’
  • ‘I don’t know about that,’ replied Roker, weighing the hat by the brim
  • in both hands. ‘I suppose he’d have been took the same, wherever he was.
  • He went into the infirmary, this morning; the doctor says his strength
  • is to be kept up as much as possible; and the warden’s sent him wine and
  • broth and that, from his own house. It’s not the warden’s fault, you
  • know, sir.’
  • ‘Of course not,’ replied Mr. Pickwick hastily.
  • ‘I’m afraid, however,’ said Roker, shaking his head, ‘that it’s all up
  • with him. I offered Neddy two six-penn’orths to one upon it just now,
  • but he wouldn’t take it, and quite right. Thank’ee, Sir. Good-night,
  • sir.’
  • ‘Stay,’ said Mr. Pickwick earnestly. ‘Where is this infirmary?’
  • ‘Just over where you slept, sir,’ replied Roker. ‘I’ll show you, if you
  • like to come.’ Mr. Pickwick snatched up his hat without speaking, and
  • followed at once.
  • The turnkey led the way in silence; and gently raising the latch of the
  • room door, motioned Mr. Pickwick to enter. It was a large, bare,
  • desolate room, with a number of stump bedsteads made of iron, on one of
  • which lay stretched the shadow of a man--wan, pale, and ghastly. His
  • breathing was hard and thick, and he moaned painfully as it came and
  • went. At the bedside sat a short old man in a cobbler’s apron, who, by
  • the aid of a pair of horn spectacles, was reading from the Bible aloud.
  • It was the fortunate legatee.
  • The sick man laid his hand upon his attendant’s arm, and motioned him to
  • stop. He closed the book, and laid it on the bed.
  • ‘Open the window,’ said the sick man.
  • He did so. The noise of carriages and carts, the rattle of wheels, the
  • cries of men and boys, all the busy sounds of a mighty multitude
  • instinct with life and occupation, blended into one deep murmur, floated
  • into the room. Above the hoarse loud hum, arose, from time to time, a
  • boisterous laugh; or a scrap of some jingling song, shouted forth, by
  • one of the giddy crowd, would strike upon the ear, for an instant, and
  • then be lost amidst the roar of voices and the tramp of footsteps; the
  • breaking of the billows of the restless sea of life, that rolled heavily
  • on, without. These are melancholy sounds to a quiet listener at any
  • time; but how melancholy to the watcher by the bed of death!
  • ‘There is no air here,’ said the man faintly. ‘The place pollutes it. It
  • was fresh round about, when I walked there, years ago; but it grows hot
  • and heavy in passing these walls. I cannot breathe it.’
  • ‘We have breathed it together, for a long time,’ said the old man.
  • ‘Come, come.’
  • There was a short silence, during which the two spectators approached
  • the bed. The sick man drew a hand of his old fellow-prisoner towards
  • him, and pressing it affectionately between both his own, retained it in
  • his grasp.
  • ‘I hope,’ he gasped after a while, so faintly that they bent their ears
  • close over the bed to catch the half-formed sounds his pale lips gave
  • vent to--‘I hope my merciful Judge will bear in mind my heavy punishment
  • on earth. Twenty years, my friend, twenty years in this hideous grave!
  • My heart broke when my child died, and I could not even kiss him in his
  • little coffin. My loneliness since then, in all this noise and riot, has
  • been very dreadful. May God forgive me! He has seen my solitary,
  • lingering death.’
  • He folded his hands, and murmuring something more they could not hear,
  • fell into a sleep--only a sleep at first, for they saw him smile.
  • They whispered together for a little time, and the turnkey, stooping
  • over the pillow, drew hastily back. ‘He has got his discharge, by G--!’
  • said the man.
  • He had. But he had grown so like death in life, that they knew not when
  • he died.
  • CHAPTER XLIV. DESCRIPTIVE OF AN AFFECTING INTERVIEW BETWEEN MR. SAMUEL
  • WELLER AND A FAMILY PARTY. MR. PICKWICK MAKES A TOUR OF THE DIMINUTIVE
  • WORLD HE INHABITS, AND RESOLVES TO MIX WITH IT, IN FUTURE, AS LITTLE AS
  • POSSIBLE
  • A few mornings after his incarceration, Mr. Samuel Weller, having
  • arranged his master’s room with all possible care, and seen him
  • comfortably seated over his books and papers, withdrew to employ himself
  • for an hour or two to come, as he best could. It was a fine morning, and
  • it occurred to Sam that a pint of porter in the open air would lighten
  • his next quarter of an hour or so, as well as any little amusement in
  • which he could indulge.
  • Having arrived at this conclusion, he betook himself to the tap. Having
  • purchased the beer, and obtained, moreover, the day-but-one-before-
  • yesterday’s paper, he repaired to the skittle-ground, and seating
  • himself on a bench, proceeded to enjoy himself in a very sedate and
  • methodical manner.
  • First of all, he took a refreshing draught of the beer, and then he
  • looked up at a window, and bestowed a platonic wink on a young lady who
  • was peeling potatoes thereat. Then he opened the paper, and folded it so
  • as to get the police reports outwards; and this being a vexatious and
  • difficult thing to do, when there is any wind stirring, he took another
  • draught of the beer when he had accomplished it. Then, he read two lines
  • of the paper, and stopped short to look at a couple of men who were
  • finishing a game at rackets, which, being concluded, he cried out ‘wery
  • good,’ in an approving manner, and looked round upon the spectators, to
  • ascertain whether their sentiments coincided with his own. This involved
  • the necessity of looking up at the windows also; and as the young lady
  • was still there, it was an act of common politeness to wink again, and
  • to drink to her good health in dumb show, in another draught of the
  • beer, which Sam did; and having frowned hideously upon a small boy who
  • had noted this latter proceeding with open eyes, he threw one leg over
  • the other, and, holding the newspaper in both hands, began to read in
  • real earnest.
  • He had hardly composed himself into the needful state of abstraction,
  • when he thought he heard his own name proclaimed in some distant
  • passage. Nor was he mistaken, for it quickly passed from mouth to mouth,
  • and in a few seconds the air teemed with shouts of ‘Weller!’
  • Here!’ roared Sam, in a stentorian voice. ‘Wot’s the matter? Who wants
  • him? Has an express come to say that his country house is afire?’
  • ‘Somebody wants you in the hall,’ said a man who was standing by.
  • ‘Just mind that ‘ere paper and the pot, old feller, will you?’ said Sam.
  • ‘I’m a-comin’. Blessed, if they was a-callin’ me to the bar, they
  • couldn’t make more noise about it!’
  • Accompanying these words with a gentle rap on the head of the young
  • gentleman before noticed, who, unconscious of his close vicinity to the
  • person in request, was screaming ‘Weller!’ with all his might, Sam
  • hastened across the ground, and ran up the steps into the hall. Here,
  • the first object that met his eyes was his beloved father sitting on a
  • bottom stair, with his hat in his hand, shouting out ‘Weller!’ in his
  • very loudest tone, at half-minute intervals.
  • ‘Wot are you a-roarin’ at?’ said Sam impetuously, when the old gentleman
  • had discharged himself of another shout; ‘making yourself so precious
  • hot that you looks like a aggrawated glass-blower. Wot’s the matter?’
  • ‘Aha!’ replied the old gentleman, ‘I began to be afeerd that you’d gone
  • for a walk round the Regency Park, Sammy.’
  • ‘Come,’ said Sam, ‘none o’ them taunts agin the wictim o’ avarice, and
  • come off that ‘ere step. Wot are you a-settin’ down there for? I don’t
  • live there.’
  • ‘I’ve got such a game for you, Sammy,’ said the elder Mr. Weller,
  • rising.
  • ‘Stop a minit,’ said Sam, ‘you’re all vite behind.’
  • ‘That’s right, Sammy, rub it off,’ said Mr. Weller, as his son dusted
  • him. ‘It might look personal here, if a man walked about with vitevash
  • on his clothes, eh, Sammy?’
  • As Mr. Weller exhibited in this place unequivocal symptoms of an
  • approaching fit of chuckling, Sam interposed to stop it.
  • ‘Keep quiet, do,’ said Sam, ‘there never vos such a old picter-card
  • born. Wot are you bustin’ vith, now?’
  • ‘Sammy,’ said Mr. Weller, wiping his forehead, ‘I’m afeerd that vun o’
  • these days I shall laugh myself into a appleplexy, my boy.’
  • ‘Vell, then, wot do you do it for?’ said Sam. ‘Now, then, wot have you
  • got to say?’
  • ‘Who do you think’s come here with me, Samivel?’ said Mr. Weller,
  • drawing back a pace or two, pursing up his mouth, and extending his
  • eyebrows.
  • ‘Pell?’ said Sam.
  • Mr. Weller shook his head, and his red cheeks expanded with the laughter
  • that was endeavouring to find a vent.
  • ‘Mottled-faced man, p’raps?’ asked Sam.
  • Again Mr. Weller shook his head.
  • ‘Who then?’asked Sam.
  • ‘Your mother-in-law,’ said Mr. Weller; and it was lucky he did say it,
  • or his cheeks must inevitably have cracked, from their most unnatural
  • distension.
  • ‘Your mother-in-law, Sammy,’ said Mr. Weller, ‘and the red-nosed man, my
  • boy; and the red-nosed man. Ho! ho! ho!’
  • With this, Mr. Weller launched into convulsions of laughter, while Sam
  • regarded him with a broad grin gradually over-spreading his whole
  • countenance.
  • ‘They’ve come to have a little serious talk with you, Samivel,’ said Mr.
  • Weller, wiping his eyes. ‘Don’t let out nothin’ about the unnat’ral
  • creditor, Sammy.’
  • ‘Wot, don’t they know who it is?’ inquired Sam.
  • ‘Not a bit on it,’ replied his father.
  • ‘Vere are they?’ said Sam, reciprocating all the old gentleman’s grins.
  • ‘In the snuggery,’ rejoined Mr. Weller. ‘Catch the red-nosed man a-goin’
  • anyvere but vere the liquors is; not he, Samivel, not he. Ve’d a wery
  • pleasant ride along the road from the Markis this mornin’, Sammy,’ said
  • Mr. Weller, when he felt himself equal to the task of speaking in an
  • articulate manner. ‘I drove the old piebald in that ‘ere little chay-
  • cart as belonged to your mother-in-law’s first wenter, into vich a harm-
  • cheer wos lifted for the shepherd; and I’m blessed,’ said Mr. Weller,
  • with a look of deep scorn--‘I’m blessed if they didn’t bring a portable
  • flight o’ steps out into the road a-front o’ our door for him, to get up
  • by.’
  • ‘You don’t mean that?’ said Sam.
  • ‘I do mean that, Sammy,’ replied his father, ‘and I vish you could ha’
  • seen how tight he held on by the sides wen he did get up, as if he wos
  • afeerd o’ being precipitayted down full six foot, and dashed into a
  • million hatoms. He tumbled in at last, however, and avay ve vent; and I
  • rayther think--I say I rayther think, Samivel--that he found his-self a
  • little jolted ven ve turned the corners.’
  • ‘Wot, I s’pose you happened to drive up agin a post or two?’ said Sam.
  • ‘I’m afeerd,’ replied Mr. Weller, in a rapture of winks--‘I’m afeerd I
  • took vun or two on ‘em, Sammy; he wos a-flyin’ out o’ the arm-cheer all
  • the way.’
  • Here the old gentleman shook his head from side to side, and was seized
  • with a hoarse internal rumbling, accompanied with a violent swelling of
  • the countenance, and a sudden increase in the breadth of all his
  • features; symptoms which alarmed his son not a little.
  • ‘Don’t be frightened, Sammy, don’t be frightened,’ said the old
  • gentleman, when by dint of much struggling, and various convulsive
  • stamps upon the ground, he had recovered his voice. ‘It’s only a kind o’
  • quiet laugh as I’m a-tryin’ to come, Sammy.’
  • ‘Well, if that’s wot it is,’ said Sam, ‘you’d better not try to come it
  • agin. You’ll find it rayther a dangerous inwention.’
  • ‘Don’t you like it, Sammy?’ inquired the old gentleman.
  • ‘Not at all,’ replied Sam.
  • ‘Well,’ said Mr. Weller, with the tears still running down his cheeks,
  • ‘it ‘ud ha’ been a wery great accommodation to me if I could ha’ done
  • it, and ‘ud ha’ saved a good many vords atween your mother-in-law and
  • me, sometimes; but I’m afeerd you’re right, Sammy, it’s too much in the
  • appleplexy line--a deal too much, Samivel.’
  • This conversation brought them to the door of the snuggery, into which
  • Sam--pausing for an instant to look over his shoulder, and cast a sly
  • leer at his respected progenitor, who was still giggling behind--at once
  • led the way.
  • ‘Mother-in-law,’ said Sam, politely saluting the lady, ‘wery much
  • obliged to you for this here wisit.--Shepherd, how air you?’
  • ‘Oh, Samuel!’ said Mrs. Weller. ‘This is dreadful.’
  • ‘Not a bit on it, mum,’ replied Sam.--‘Is it, shepherd?’
  • Mr. Stiggins raised his hands, and turned up his eyes, until the whites-
  • -or rather the yellows--were alone visible; but made no reply in words.
  • ‘Is this here gen’l’m’n troubled with any painful complaint?’ said Sam,
  • looking to his mother-in-law for explanation.
  • ‘The good man is grieved to see you here, Samuel,’ replied Mrs. Weller.
  • ‘Oh, that’s it, is it?’ said Sam. ‘I was afeerd, from his manner, that
  • he might ha’ forgotten to take pepper vith that ‘ere last cowcumber he
  • eat. Set down, Sir, ve make no extra charge for settin’ down, as the
  • king remarked wen he blowed up his ministers.’
  • ‘Young man,’ said Mr. Stiggins ostentatiously, ‘I fear you are not
  • softened by imprisonment.’
  • ‘Beg your pardon, Sir,’ replied Sam; ‘wot wos you graciously pleased to
  • hobserve?’
  • ‘I apprehend, young man, that your nature is no softer for this
  • chastening,’ said Mr. Stiggins, in a loud voice.
  • ‘Sir,’ replied Sam, ‘you’re wery kind to say so. I hope my natur is _NOT
  • _ a soft vun, Sir. Wery much obliged to you for your good opinion, Sir.’
  • At this point of the conversation, a sound, indecorously approaching to
  • a laugh, was heard to proceed from the chair in which the elder Mr.
  • Weller was seated; upon which Mrs. Weller, on a hasty consideration of
  • all the circumstances of the case, considered it her bounden duty to
  • become gradually hysterical.
  • ‘Weller,’ said Mrs. W. (the old gentleman was seated in a corner);
  • ‘Weller! Come forth.’
  • ‘Wery much obleeged to you, my dear,’ replied Mr. Weller; ‘but I’m quite
  • comfortable vere I am.’
  • Upon this, Mrs. Weller burst into tears.
  • ‘Wot’s gone wrong, mum?’ said Sam.
  • ‘Oh, Samuel!’ replied Mrs. Weller, ‘your father makes me wretched. Will
  • nothing do him good?’
  • ‘Do you hear this here?’ said Sam. ‘Lady vants to know vether nothin’
  • ‘ull do you good.’
  • ‘Wery much indebted to Mrs. Weller for her po-lite inquiries, Sammy,’
  • replied the old gentleman. ‘I think a pipe vould benefit me a good deal.
  • Could I be accommodated, Sammy?’
  • Here Mrs. Weller let fall some more tears, and Mr. Stiggins groaned.
  • ‘Hollo! Here’s this unfortunate gen’l’m’n took ill agin,’ said Sam,
  • looking round. ‘Vere do you feel it now, sir?’
  • ‘In the same place, young man,’ rejoined Mr. Stiggins, ‘in the same
  • place.’
  • ‘Vere may that be, Sir?’ inquired Sam, with great outward simplicity.
  • ‘In the buzzim, young man,’ replied Mr. Stiggins, placing his umbrella
  • on his waistcoat.
  • At this affecting reply, Mrs. Weller, being wholly unable to suppress
  • her feelings, sobbed aloud, and stated her conviction that the red-nosed
  • man was a saint; whereupon Mr. Weller, senior, ventured to suggest, in
  • an undertone, that he must be the representative of the united parishes
  • of St. Simon Without and St. Walker Within.
  • ‘I’m afeered, mum,’ said Sam, ‘that this here gen’l’m’n, with the twist
  • in his countenance, feels rather thirsty, with the melancholy spectacle
  • afore him. Is it the case, mum?’
  • The worthy lady looked at Mr. Stiggins for a reply; that gentleman, with
  • many rollings of the eye, clenched his throat with his right hand, and
  • mimicked the act of swallowing, to intimate that he was athirst.
  • ‘I am afraid, Samuel, that his feelings have made him so indeed,’ said
  • Mrs. Weller mournfully.
  • ‘Wot’s your usual tap, sir?’ replied Sam.
  • ‘Oh, my dear young friend,’ replied Mr. Stiggins, ‘all taps is
  • vanities!’
  • ‘Too true, too true, indeed,’ said Mrs. Weller, murmuring a groan, and
  • shaking her head assentingly.
  • ‘Well,’ said Sam, ‘I des-say they may be, sir; but wich is your
  • partickler wanity? Wich wanity do you like the flavour on best, sir?’
  • ‘Oh, my dear young friend,’ replied Mr. Stiggins, ‘I despise them all.
  • If,’ said Mr. Stiggins--‘if there is any one of them less odious than
  • another, it is the liquor called rum. Warm, my dear young friend, with
  • three lumps of sugar to the tumbler.’
  • ‘Wery sorry to say, sir,’ said Sam, ‘that they don’t allow that
  • particular wanity to be sold in this here establishment.’
  • ‘Oh, the hardness of heart of these inveterate men!’ ejaculated Mr.
  • Stiggins. ‘Oh, the accursed cruelty of these inhuman persecutors!’
  • With these words, Mr. Stiggins again cast up his eyes, and rapped his
  • breast with his umbrella; and it is but justice to the reverend
  • gentleman to say, that his indignation appeared very real and unfeigned
  • indeed.
  • After Mrs. Weller and the red-nosed gentleman had commented on this
  • inhuman usage in a very forcible manner, and had vented a variety of
  • pious and holy execrations against its authors, the latter recommended a
  • bottle of port wine, warmed with a little water, spice, and sugar, as
  • being grateful to the stomach, and savouring less of vanity than many
  • other compounds. It was accordingly ordered to be prepared, and pending
  • its preparation the red-nosed man and Mrs. Weller looked at the elder W.
  • and groaned.
  • ‘Well, Sammy,’ said the gentleman, ‘I hope you’ll find your spirits rose
  • by this here lively wisit. Wery cheerful and improvin’ conwersation,
  • ain’t it, Sammy?’
  • ‘You’re a reprobate,’ replied Sam; ‘and I desire you won’t address no
  • more o’ them ungraceful remarks to me.’
  • So far from being edified by this very proper reply, the elder Mr.
  • Weller at once relapsed into a broad grin; and this inexorable conduct
  • causing the lady and Mr. Stiggins to close their eyes, and rock
  • themselves to and fro on their chairs, in a troubled manner, he
  • furthermore indulged in several acts of pantomime, indicative of a
  • desire to pummel and wring the nose of the aforesaid Stiggins, the
  • performance of which, appeared to afford him great mental relief. The
  • old gentleman very narrowly escaped detection in one instance; for Mr.
  • Stiggins happening to give a start on the arrival of the negus, brought
  • his head in smart contact with the clenched fist with which Mr. Weller
  • had been describing imaginary fireworks in the air, within two inches of
  • his ear, for some minutes.
  • ‘Wot are you a-reachin’ out, your hand for the tumbler in that ‘ere
  • sawage way for?’ said Sam, with great promptitude. ‘Don’t you see you’ve
  • hit the gen’l’m’n?’
  • ‘I didn’t go to do it, Sammy,’ said Mr. Weller, in some degree abashed
  • by the very unexpected occurrence of the incident.
  • ‘Try an in’ard application, sir,’ said Sam, as the red-nosed gentleman
  • rubbed his head with a rueful visage. ‘Wot do you think o’ that, for a
  • go o’ wanity, warm, Sir?’
  • Mr. Stiggins made no verbal answer, but his manner was expressive. He
  • tasted the contents of the glass which Sam had placed in his hand, put
  • his umbrella on the floor, and tasted it again, passing his hand
  • placidly across his stomach twice or thrice; he then drank the whole at
  • a breath, and smacking his lips, held out the tumbler for more.
  • Nor was Mrs. Weller behind-hand in doing justice to the composition. The
  • good lady began by protesting that she couldn’t touch a drop--then took
  • a small drop--then a large drop--then a great many drops; and her
  • feelings being of the nature of those substances which are powerfully
  • affected by the application of strong waters, she dropped a tear with
  • every drop of negus, and so got on, melting the feelings down, until at
  • length she had arrived at a very pathetic and decent pitch of misery.
  • The elder Mr. Weller observed these signs and tokens with many
  • manifestations of disgust, and when, after a second jug of the same, Mr.
  • Stiggins began to sigh in a dismal manner, he plainly evinced his
  • disapprobation of the whole proceedings, by sundry incoherent ramblings
  • of speech, among which frequent angry repetitions of the word ‘gammon’
  • were alone distinguishable to the ear.
  • ‘I’ll tell you wot it is, Samivel, my boy,’ whispered the old gentleman
  • into his son’s ear, after a long and steadfast contemplation of his lady
  • and Mr. Stiggins; ‘I think there must be somethin’ wrong in your mother-
  • in-law’s inside, as vell as in that o’ the red-nosed man.’
  • ‘Wot do you mean?’ said Sam.
  • ‘I mean this here, Sammy,’ replied the old gentleman, ‘that wot they
  • drink, don’t seem no nourishment to ‘em; it all turns to warm water, and
  • comes a-pourin’ out o’ their eyes. ‘Pend upon it, Sammy, it’s a
  • constitootional infirmity.’
  • Mr. Weller delivered this scientific opinion with many confirmatory
  • frowns and nods; which, Mrs. Weller remarking, and concluding that they
  • bore some disparaging reference either to herself or to Mr. Stiggins, or
  • to both, was on the point of becoming infinitely worse, when Mr.
  • Stiggins, getting on his legs as well as he could, proceeded to deliver
  • an edifying discourse for the benefit of the company, but more
  • especially of Mr. Samuel, whom he adjured in moving terms to be upon his
  • guard in that sink of iniquity into which he was cast; to abstain from
  • all hypocrisy and pride of heart; and to take in all things exact
  • pattern and copy by him (Stiggins), in which case he might calculate on
  • arriving, sooner or later at the comfortable conclusion, that, like him,
  • he was a most estimable and blameless character, and that all his
  • acquaintances and friends were hopelessly abandoned and profligate
  • wretches. Which consideration, he said, could not but afford him the
  • liveliest satisfaction.
  • He furthermore conjured him to avoid, above all things, the vice of
  • intoxication, which he likened unto the filthy habits of swine, and to
  • those poisonous and baleful drugs which being chewed in the mouth, are
  • said to filch away the memory. At this point of his discourse, the
  • reverend and red-nosed gentleman became singularly incoherent, and
  • staggering to and fro in the excitement of his eloquence, was fain to
  • catch at the back of a chair to preserve his perpendicular.
  • Mr. Stiggins did not desire his hearers to be upon their guard against
  • those false prophets and wretched mockers of religion, who, without
  • sense to expound its first doctrines, or hearts to feel its first
  • principles, are more dangerous members of society than the common
  • criminal; imposing, as they necessarily do, upon the weakest and worst
  • informed, casting scorn and contempt on what should be held most sacred,
  • and bringing into partial disrepute large bodies of virtuous and well-
  • conducted persons of many excellent sects and persuasions. But as he
  • leaned over the back of the chair for a considerable time, and closing
  • one eye, winked a good deal with the other, it is presumed that he
  • thought all this, but kept it to himself.
  • During the delivery of the oration, Mrs. Weller sobbed and wept at the
  • end of the paragraphs; while Sam, sitting cross-legged on a chair and
  • resting his arms on the top rail, regarded the speaker with great
  • suavity and blandness of demeanour; occasionally bestowing a look of
  • recognition on the old gentleman, who was delighted at the beginning,
  • and went to sleep about half-way.
  • ‘Brayvo; wery pretty!’ said Sam, when the red-nosed man having finished,
  • pulled his worn gloves on, thereby thrusting his fingers through the
  • broken tops till the knuckles were disclosed to view. ‘Wery pretty.’
  • ‘I hope it may do you good, Samuel,’ said Mrs. Weller solemnly.
  • ‘I think it vill, mum,’ replied Sam.
  • ‘I wish I could hope that it would do your father good,’ said Mrs.
  • Weller.
  • ‘Thank’ee, my dear,’ said Mr. Weller, senior. ‘How do you find yourself
  • arter it, my love?’
  • ‘Scoffer!’ exclaimed Mrs. Weller.
  • ‘Benighted man!’ said the Reverend Mr. Stiggins.
  • ‘If I don’t get no better light than that ‘ere moonshine o’ yourn, my
  • worthy creetur,’ said the elder Mr. Weller, ‘it’s wery likely as I shall
  • continey to be a night coach till I’m took off the road altogether. Now,
  • Mrs. We, if the piebald stands at livery much longer, he’ll stand at
  • nothin’ as we go back, and p’raps that ‘ere harm-cheer ‘ull be tipped
  • over into some hedge or another, with the shepherd in it.’
  • At this supposition, the Reverend Mr. Stiggins, in evident
  • consternation, gathered up his hat and umbrella, and proposed an
  • immediate departure, to which Mrs. Weller assented. Sam walked with them
  • to the lodge gate, and took a dutiful leave.
  • ‘A-do, Samivel,’ said the old gentleman.
  • ‘Wot’s a-do?’ inquired Sammy.
  • ‘Well, good-bye, then,’ said the old gentleman.
  • ‘Oh, that’s wot you’re aimin’ at, is it?’ said Sam. ‘Good-bye!’
  • ‘Sammy,’ whispered Mr. Weller, looking cautiously round; ‘my duty to
  • your gov’nor, and tell him if he thinks better o’ this here bis’ness, to
  • com-moonicate vith me. Me and a cab’net-maker has dewised a plan for
  • gettin’ him out. A pianner, Samivel--a pianner!’ said Mr. Weller,
  • striking his son on the chest with the back of his hand, and falling
  • back a step or two.
  • ‘Wot do you mean?’ said Sam.
  • ‘A pianner-forty, Samivel,’ rejoined Mr. Weller, in a still more
  • mysterious manner, ‘as he can have on hire; vun as von’t play, Sammy.’
  • ‘And wot ‘ud be the good o’ that?’ said Sam.
  • ‘Let him send to my friend, the cabinet-maker, to fetch it back, Sammy,’
  • replied Mr. Weller. ‘Are you avake, now?’
  • ‘No,’ rejoined Sam.
  • ‘There ain’t no vurks in it,’ whispered his father. ‘It ‘ull hold him
  • easy, vith his hat and shoes on, and breathe through the legs, vich his
  • holler. Have a passage ready taken for ‘Merriker. The ‘Merrikin gov’ment
  • will never give him up, ven vunce they find as he’s got money to spend,
  • Sammy. Let the gov’nor stop there, till Mrs. Bardell’s dead, or Mr.
  • Dodson and Fogg’s hung (wich last ewent I think is the most likely to
  • happen first, Sammy), and then let him come back and write a book about
  • the ‘Merrikins as’ll pay all his expenses and more, if he blows ‘em up
  • enough.’
  • Mr. Weller delivered this hurried abstract of his plot with great
  • vehemence of whisper; and then, as if fearful of weakening the effect of
  • the tremendous communication by any further dialogue, he gave the
  • coachman’s salute, and vanished.
  • Sam had scarcely recovered his usual composure of countenance, which had
  • been greatly disturbed by the secret communication of his respected
  • relative, when Mr. Pickwick accosted him.
  • ‘Sam,’ said that gentleman.
  • ‘Sir,’ replied Mr. Weller.
  • ‘I am going for a walk round the prison, and I wish you to attend me. I
  • see a prisoner we know coming this way, Sam,’ said Mr. Pickwick,
  • smiling.
  • ‘Wich, Sir?’ inquired Mr. Weller; ‘the gen’l’m’n vith the head o’ hair,
  • or the interestin’ captive in the stockin’s?’
  • ‘Neither,’ rejoined Mr. Pickwick. ‘He is an older friend of yours, Sam.’
  • ‘O’ mine, Sir?’ exclaimed Mr. Weller.
  • ‘You recollect the gentleman very well, I dare say, Sam,’ replied Mr.
  • Pickwick, ‘or else you are more unmindful of your old acquaintances than
  • I think you are. Hush! not a word, Sam; not a syllable. Here he is.’
  • As Mr. Pickwick spoke, Jingle walked up. He looked less miserable than
  • before, being clad in a half-worn suit of clothes, which, with Mr.
  • Pickwick’s assistance, had been released from the pawnbroker’s. He wore
  • clean linen too, and had had his hair cut. He was very pale and thin,
  • however; and as he crept slowly up, leaning on a stick, it was easy to
  • see that he had suffered severely from illness and want, and was still
  • very weak. He took off his hat as Mr. Pickwick saluted him, and seemed
  • much humbled and abashed at the sight of Sam Weller.
  • Following close at his heels, came Mr. Job Trotter, in the catalogue of
  • whose vices, want of faith and attachment to his companion could at all
  • events find no place. He was still ragged and squalid, but his face was
  • not quite so hollow as on his first meeting with Mr. Pickwick, a few
  • days before. As he took off his hat to our benevolent old friend, he
  • murmured some broken expressions of gratitude, and muttered something
  • about having been saved from starving.
  • ‘Well, well,’ said Mr. Pickwick, impatiently interrupting him, ‘you can
  • follow with Sam. I want to speak to you, Mr. Jingle. Can you walk
  • without his arm?’
  • ‘Certainly, sir--all ready--not too fast--legs shaky--head queer--round
  • and round--earthquaky sort of feeling--very.’
  • ‘Here, give me your arm,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘No, no,’ replied Jingle; ‘won’t indeed--rather not.’
  • ‘Nonsense,’ said Mr. Pickwick; ‘lean upon me, I desire, Sir.’
  • Seeing that he was confused and agitated, and uncertain what to do, Mr.
  • Pickwick cut the matter short by drawing the invalided stroller’s arm
  • through his, and leading him away, without saying another word about it.
  • During the whole of this time the countenance of Mr. Samuel Weller had
  • exhibited an expression of the most overwhelming and absorbing
  • astonishment that the imagination can portray. After looking from Job to
  • Jingle, and from Jingle to Job in profound silence, he softly ejaculated
  • the words, ‘Well, I _am_ damn’d!’ which he repeated at least a score of
  • times; after which exertion, he appeared wholly bereft of speech, and
  • again cast his eyes, first upon the one and then upon the other, in mute
  • perplexity and bewilderment.
  • ‘Now, Sam!’ said Mr. Pickwick, looking back.
  • ‘I’m a-comin’, sir,’ replied Mr. Weller, mechanically following his
  • master; and still he lifted not his eyes from Mr. Job Trotter, who
  • walked at his side in silence.
  • Job kept his eyes fixed on the ground for some time. Sam, with his glued
  • to Job’s countenance, ran up against the people who were walking about,
  • and fell over little children, and stumbled against steps and railings,
  • without appearing at all sensible of it, until Job, looking stealthily
  • up, said--
  • ‘How do you do, Mr. Weller?’
  • ‘It _is_ him!’ exclaimed Sam; and having established Job’s identity
  • beyond all doubt, he smote his leg, and vented his feelings in a long,
  • shrill whistle.
  • ‘Things has altered with me, sir,’ said Job.
  • ‘I should think they had,’ exclaimed Mr. Weller, surveying his
  • companion’s rags with undisguised wonder. ‘This is rayther a change for
  • the worse, Mr. Trotter, as the gen’l’m’n said, wen he got two doubtful
  • shillin’s and sixpenn’orth o’ pocket-pieces for a good half-crown.’
  • ‘It is indeed,’ replied Job, shaking his head. ‘There is no deception
  • now, Mr. Weller. Tears,’ said Job, with a look of momentary slyness--
  • ‘tears are not the only proofs of distress, nor the best ones.’
  • ‘No, they ain’t,’ replied Sam expressively.
  • ‘They may be put on, Mr. Weller,’ said Job.
  • ‘I know they may,’ said Sam; ‘some people, indeed, has ‘em always ready
  • laid on, and can pull out the plug wenever they likes.’
  • ‘Yes,’ replied Job; ‘but these sort of things are not so easily
  • counterfeited, Mr. Weller, and it is a more painful process to get them
  • up.’ As he spoke, he pointed to his sallow, sunken cheeks, and, drawing
  • up his coat sleeve, disclosed an arm which looked as if the bone could
  • be broken at a touch, so sharp and brittle did it appear, beneath its
  • thin covering of flesh.
  • ‘Wot have you been a-doin’ to yourself?’ said Sam, recoiling.
  • ‘Nothing,’ replied Job.
  • ‘Nothin’!’ echoed Sam.
  • ‘I have been doin’ nothing for many weeks past,’ said Job; and eating
  • and drinking almost as little.’
  • Sam took one comprehensive glance at Mr. Trotter’s thin face and
  • wretched apparel; and then, seizing him by the arm, commenced dragging
  • him away with great violence.
  • ‘Where are you going, Mr. Weller?’ said Job, vainly struggling in the
  • powerful grasp of his old enemy.
  • ‘Come on,’ said Sam; ‘come on!’ He deigned no further explanation till
  • they reached the tap, and then called for a pot of porter, which was
  • speedily produced.
  • ‘Now,’ said Sam, ‘drink that up, ev’ry drop on it, and then turn the pot
  • upside down, to let me see as you’ve took the medicine.’
  • ‘But, my dear Mr. Weller,’ remonstrated Job.
  • ‘Down vith it!’ said Sam peremptorily.
  • Thus admonished, Mr. Trotter raised the pot to his lips, and, by gentle
  • and almost imperceptible degrees, tilted it into the air. He paused
  • once, and only once, to draw a long breath, but without raising his face
  • from the vessel, which, in a few moments thereafter, he held out at
  • arm’s length, bottom upward. Nothing fell upon the ground but a few
  • particles of froth, which slowly detached themselves from the rim, and
  • trickled lazily down.
  • ‘Well done!’ said Sam. ‘How do you find yourself arter it?’
  • ‘Better, Sir. I think I am better,’ responded Job.
  • ‘O’ course you air,’ said Sam argumentatively. ‘It’s like puttin’ gas in
  • a balloon. I can see with the naked eye that you gets stouter under the
  • operation. Wot do you say to another o’ the same dimensions?’
  • ‘I would rather not, I am much obliged to you, Sir,’ replied Job--‘much
  • rather not.’
  • ‘Vell, then, wot do you say to some wittles?’ inquired Sam.
  • ‘Thanks to your worthy governor, Sir,’ said Mr. Trotter, ‘we have half a
  • leg of mutton, baked, at a quarter before three, with the potatoes under
  • it to save boiling.’
  • ‘Wot! Has _he_ been a-purwidin’ for you?’ asked Sam emphatically.
  • ‘He has, Sir,’ replied Job. ‘More than that, Mr. Weller; my master being
  • very ill, he got us a room--we were in a kennel before--and paid for it,
  • Sir; and come to look at us, at night, when nobody should know. Mr.
  • Weller,’ said Job, with real tears in his eyes, for once, ‘I could serve
  • that gentleman till I fell down dead at his feet.’
  • ‘I say!’ said Sam, ‘I’ll trouble you, my friend! None o’ that!’
  • Job Trotter looked amazed.
  • ‘None o’ that, I say, young feller,’ repeated Sam firmly. ‘No man serves
  • him but me. And now we’re upon it, I’ll let you into another secret
  • besides that,’ said Sam, as he paid for the beer. ‘I never heerd, mind
  • you, or read of in story-books, nor see in picters, any angel in tights
  • and gaiters--not even in spectacles, as I remember, though that may ha’
  • been done for anythin’ I know to the contrairey--but mark my vords, Job
  • Trotter, he’s a reg’lar thoroughbred angel for all that; and let me see
  • the man as wenturs to tell me he knows a better vun.’ With this
  • defiance, Mr. Weller buttoned up his change in a side pocket, and, with
  • many confirmatory nods and gestures by the way, proceeded in search of
  • the subject of discourse.
  • They found Mr. Pickwick, in company with Jingle, talking very earnestly,
  • and not bestowing a look on the groups who were congregated on the
  • racket-ground; they were very motley groups too, and worth the looking
  • at, if it were only in idle curiosity.
  • ‘Well,’ said Mr. Pickwick, as Sam and his companion drew nigh, ‘you will
  • see how your health becomes, and think about it meanwhile. Make the
  • statement out for me when you feel yourself equal to the task, and I
  • will discuss the subject with you when I have considered it. Now, go to
  • your room. You are tired, and not strong enough to be out long.’
  • Mr. Alfred Jingle, without one spark of his old animation--with nothing
  • even of the dismal gaiety which he had assumed when Mr. Pickwick first
  • stumbled on him in his misery--bowed low without speaking, and,
  • motioning to Job not to follow him just yet, crept slowly away.
  • ‘Curious scene this, is it not, Sam?’ said Mr. Pickwick, looking good-
  • humouredly round.
  • ‘Wery much so, Sir,’ replied Sam. ‘Wonders ‘ull never cease,’ added Sam,
  • speaking to himself. ‘I’m wery much mistaken if that ‘ere Jingle worn’t
  • a-doin somethin’ in the water-cart way!’
  • The area formed by the wall in that part of the Fleet in which Mr.
  • Pickwick stood was just wide enough to make a good racket-court; one
  • side being formed, of course, by the wall itself, and the other by that
  • portion of the prison which looked (or rather would have looked, but for
  • the wall) towards St. Paul’s Cathedral. Sauntering or sitting about, in
  • every possible attitude of listless idleness, were a great number of
  • debtors, the major part of whom were waiting in prison until their day
  • of ‘going up’ before the Insolvent Court should arrive; while others had
  • been remanded for various terms, which they were idling away as they
  • best could. Some were shabby, some were smart, many dirty, a few clean;
  • but there they all lounged, and loitered, and slunk about with as little
  • spirit or purpose as the beasts in a menagerie.
  • Lolling from the windows which commanded a view of this promenade were a
  • number of persons, some in noisy conversation with their acquaintance
  • below, others playing at ball with some adventurous throwers outside,
  • others looking on at the racket-players, or watching the boys as they
  • cried the game. Dirty, slipshod women passed and repassed, on their way
  • to the cooking-house in one corner of the yard; children screamed, and
  • fought, and played together, in another; the tumbling of the skittles,
  • and the shouts of the players, mingled perpetually with these and a
  • hundred other sounds; and all was noise and tumult--save in a little
  • miserable shed a few yards off, where lay, all quiet and ghastly, the
  • body of the Chancery prisoner who had died the night before, awaiting
  • the mockery of an inquest. The body! It is the lawyer’s term for the
  • restless, whirling mass of cares and anxieties, affections, hopes, and
  • griefs, that make up the living man. The law had his body; and there it
  • lay, clothed in grave-clothes, an awful witness to its tender mercy.
  • ‘Would you like to see a whistling-shop, Sir?’ inquired Job Trotter.
  • ‘What do you mean?’ was Mr. Pickwick’s counter inquiry.
  • ‘A vistlin’ shop, Sir,’ interposed Mr. Weller.
  • ‘What is that, Sam?--A bird-fancier’s?’ inquired Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Bless your heart, no, Sir,’ replied Job; ‘a whistling-shop, Sir, is
  • where they sell spirits.’ Mr. Job Trotter briefly explained here, that
  • all persons, being prohibited under heavy penalties from conveying
  • spirits into debtors’ prisons, and such commodities being highly prized
  • by the ladies and gentlemen confined therein, it had occurred to some
  • speculative turnkey to connive, for certain lucrative considerations, at
  • two or three prisoners retailing the favourite article of gin, for their
  • own profit and advantage.
  • ‘This plan, you see, Sir, has been gradually introduced into all the
  • prisons for debt,’ said Mr. Trotter.
  • ‘And it has this wery great advantage,’ said Sam, ‘that the turnkeys
  • takes wery good care to seize hold o’ ev’rybody but them as pays ‘em,
  • that attempts the willainy, and wen it gets in the papers they’re
  • applauded for their wigilance; so it cuts two ways--frightens other
  • people from the trade, and elewates their own characters.’
  • ‘Exactly so, Mr. Weller,’ observed Job.
  • ‘Well, but are these rooms never searched to ascertain whether any
  • spirits are concealed in them?’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Cert’nly they are, Sir,’ replied Sam; ‘but the turnkeys knows
  • beforehand, and gives the word to the wistlers, and you may wistle for
  • it wen you go to look.’
  • By this time, Job had tapped at a door, which was opened by a gentleman
  • with an uncombed head, who bolted it after them when they had walked in,
  • and grinned; upon which Job grinned, and Sam also; whereupon Mr.
  • Pickwick, thinking it might be expected of him, kept on smiling to the
  • end of the interview.
  • The gentleman with the uncombed head appeared quite satisfied with this
  • mute announcement of their business, and, producing a flat stone bottle,
  • which might hold about a couple of quarts, from beneath his bedstead,
  • filled out three glasses of gin, which Job Trotter and Sam disposed of
  • in a most workmanlike manner.
  • ‘Any more?’ said the whistling gentleman.
  • ‘No more,’ replied Job Trotter.
  • Mr. Pickwick paid, the door was unbolted, and out they came; the
  • uncombed gentleman bestowing a friendly nod upon Mr. Roker, who happened
  • to be passing at the moment.
  • From this spot, Mr. Pickwick wandered along all the galleries, up and
  • down all the staircases, and once again round the whole area of the
  • yard. The great body of the prison population appeared to be Mivins, and
  • Smangle, and the parson, and the butcher, and the leg, over and over,
  • and over again. There were the same squalor, the same turmoil and noise,
  • the same general characteristics, in every corner; in the best and the
  • worst alike. The whole place seemed restless and troubled; and the
  • people were crowding and flitting to and fro, like the shadows in an
  • uneasy dream.
  • ‘I have seen enough,’ said Mr. Pickwick, as he threw himself into a
  • chair in his little apartment. ‘My head aches with these scenes, and my
  • heart too. Henceforth I will be a prisoner in my own room.’
  • And Mr. Pickwick steadfastly adhered to this determination. For three
  • long months he remained shut up, all day; only stealing out at night to
  • breathe the air, when the greater part of his fellow-prisoners were in
  • bed or carousing in their rooms. His health was beginning to suffer from
  • the closeness of the confinement, but neither the often-repeated
  • entreaties of Perker and his friends, nor the still more frequently-
  • repeated warnings and admonitions of Mr. Samuel Weller, could induce him
  • to alter one jot of his inflexible resolution.
  • CHAPTER XLVI. RECORDS A TOUCHING ACT OF DELICATE FEELING, NOT UNMIXED
  • WITH PLEASANTRY, ACHIEVED AND PERFORMED BY Messrs. DODSON AND FOGG
  • It was within a week of the close of the month of July, that a hackney
  • cabriolet, number unrecorded, was seen to proceed at a rapid pace up
  • Goswell Street; three people were squeezed into it besides the driver,
  • who sat in his own particular little dickey at the side; over the apron
  • were hung two shawls, belonging to two small vixenish-looking ladies
  • under the apron; between whom, compressed into a very small compass, was
  • stowed away, a gentleman of heavy and subdued demeanour, who, whenever
  • he ventured to make an observation, was snapped up short by one of the
  • vixenish ladies before-mentioned. Lastly, the two vixenish ladies and
  • the heavy gentleman were giving the driver contradictory directions, all
  • tending to the one point, that he should stop at Mrs. Bardell’s door;
  • which the heavy gentleman, in direct opposition to, and defiance of, the
  • vixenish ladies, contended was a green door and not a yellow one.
  • ‘Stop at the house with a green door, driver,’ said the heavy gentleman.
  • ‘Oh! You perwerse creetur!’ exclaimed one of the vixenish ladies. ‘Drive
  • to the ‘ouse with the yellow door, cabmin.’
  • Upon this the cabman, who in a sudden effort to pull up at the house
  • with the green door, had pulled the horse up so high that he nearly
  • pulled him backward into the cabriolet, let the animal’s fore-legs down
  • to the ground again, and paused.
  • ‘Now vere am I to pull up?’ inquired the driver. ‘Settle it among
  • yourselves. All I ask is, vere?’
  • Here the contest was renewed with increased violence; and the horse
  • being troubled with a fly on his nose, the cabman humanely employed his
  • leisure in lashing him about on the head, on the counter-irritation
  • principle.
  • ‘Most wotes carries the day!’ said one of the vixenish ladies at length.
  • ‘The ‘ouse with the yellow door, cabman.’
  • But after the cabriolet had dashed up, in splendid style, to the house
  • with the yellow door, ‘making,’ as one of the vixenish ladies
  • triumphantly said, ‘acterrally more noise than if one had come in one’s
  • own carriage,’ and after the driver had dismounted to assist the ladies
  • in getting out, the small round head of Master Thomas Bardell was thrust
  • out of the one-pair window of a house with a red door, a few numbers
  • off.
  • ‘Aggrawatin’ thing!’ said the vixenish lady last-mentioned, darting a
  • withering glance at the heavy gentleman.
  • ‘My dear, it’s not my fault,’ said the gentleman.
  • ‘Don’t talk to me, you creetur, don’t,’ retorted the lady. ‘The house
  • with the red door, cabmin. Oh! If ever a woman was troubled with a
  • ruffinly creetur, that takes a pride and a pleasure in disgracing his
  • wife on every possible occasion afore strangers, I am that woman!’
  • ‘You ought to be ashamed of yourself, Raddle,’ said the other little
  • woman, who was no other than Mrs. Cluppins.
  • ‘What have I been a-doing of?’ asked Mr. Raddle.
  • ‘Don’t talk to me, don’t, you brute, for fear I should be perwoked to
  • forgit my sect and strike you!’ said Mrs. Raddle.
  • While this dialogue was going on, the driver was most ignominiously
  • leading the horse, by the bridle, up to the house with the red door,
  • which Master Bardell had already opened. Here was a mean and low way of
  • arriving at a friend’s house! No dashing up, with all the fire and fury
  • of the animal; no jumping down of the driver; no loud knocking at the
  • door; no opening of the apron with a crash at the very last moment, for
  • fear of the ladies sitting in a draught; and then the man handing the
  • shawls out, afterwards, as if he were a private coachman! The whole edge
  • of the thing had been taken off--it was flatter than walking.
  • ‘Well, Tommy,’ said Mrs. Cluppins, ‘how’s your poor dear mother?’
  • ‘Oh, she’s very well,’ replied Master Bardell. ‘She’s in the front
  • parlour, all ready. I’m ready too, I am.’ Here Master Bardell put his
  • hands in his pockets, and jumped off and on the bottom step of the door.
  • ‘Is anybody else a-goin’, Tommy?’ said Mrs. Cluppins, arranging her
  • pelerine.
  • ‘Mrs. Sanders is going, she is,’ replied Tommy; ‘I’m going too, I am.’
  • ‘Drat the boy,’ said little Mrs. Cluppins. ‘He thinks of nobody but
  • himself. Here, Tommy, dear.’
  • ‘Well,’ said Master Bardell.
  • ‘Who else is a-goin’, lovey?’ said Mrs. Cluppins, in an insinuating
  • manner.
  • ‘Oh! Mrs. Rogers is a-goin’,’ replied Master Bardell, opening his eyes
  • very wide as he delivered the intelligence.
  • ‘What? The lady as has taken the lodgings!’ ejaculated Mrs. Cluppins.
  • Master Bardell put his hands deeper down into his pockets, and nodded
  • exactly thirty-five times, to imply that it was the lady-lodger, and no
  • other.
  • ‘Bless us!’ said Mrs. Cluppins. ‘It’s quite a party!’
  • ‘Ah, if you knew what was in the cupboard, you’d say so,’ replied Master
  • Bardell.
  • ‘What is there, Tommy?’ said Mrs. Cluppins coaxingly. ‘You’ll tell _me_,
  • Tommy, I know.’
  • No, I won’t,’ replied Master Bardell, shaking his head, and applying
  • himself to the bottom step again.
  • ‘Drat the child!’ muttered Mrs. Cluppins. ‘What a prowokin’ little
  • wretch it is! Come, Tommy, tell your dear Cluppy.’
  • ‘Mother said I wasn’t to,’ rejoined Master Bardell, ‘I’m a-goin’ to have
  • some, I am.’ Cheered by this prospect, the precocious boy applied
  • himself to his infantile treadmill, with increased vigour.
  • The above examination of a child of tender years took place while Mr.
  • and Mrs. Raddle and the cab-driver were having an altercation concerning
  • the fare, which, terminating at this point in favour of the cabman, Mrs.
  • Raddle came up tottering.
  • ‘Lauk, Mary Ann! what’s the matter?’ said Mrs. Cluppins.
  • ‘It’s put me all over in such a tremble, Betsy,’ replied Mrs. Raddle.
  • ‘Raddle ain’t like a man; he leaves everythink to me.’
  • This was scarcely fair upon the unfortunate Mr. Raddle, who had been
  • thrust aside by his good lady in the commencement of the dispute, and
  • peremptorily commanded to hold his tongue. He had no opportunity of
  • defending himself, however, for Mrs. Raddle gave unequivocal signs of
  • fainting; which, being perceived from the parlour window, Mrs. Bardell,
  • Mrs. Sanders, the lodger, and the lodger’s servant, darted precipitately
  • out, and conveyed her into the house, all talking at the same time, and
  • giving utterance to various expressions of pity and condolence, as if
  • she were one of the most suffering mortals on earth. Being conveyed into
  • the front parlour, she was there deposited on a sofa; and the lady from
  • the first floor running up to the first floor, returned with a bottle of
  • sal-volatile, which, holding Mrs. Raddle tight round the neck, she
  • applied in all womanly kindness and pity to her nose, until that lady
  • with many plunges and struggles was fain to declare herself decidedly
  • better.
  • ‘Ah, poor thing!’ said Mrs. Rogers, ‘I know what her feelin’s is, too
  • well.’
  • Ah, poor thing! so do I,’ said Mrs. Sanders; and then all the ladies
  • moaned in unison, and said they knew what it was, and they pitied her
  • from their hearts, they did. Even the lodger’s little servant, who was
  • thirteen years old and three feet high, murmured her sympathy.
  • ‘But what’s been the matter?’ said Mrs. Bardell.
  • ‘Ah, what has decomposed you, ma’am?’ inquired Mrs. Rogers.
  • ‘I have been a good deal flurried,’ replied Mrs. Raddle, in a
  • reproachful manner. Thereupon the ladies cast indignant glances at Mr.
  • Raddle.
  • ‘Why, the fact is,’ said that unhappy gentleman, stepping forward, ‘when
  • we alighted at this door, a dispute arose with the driver of the
  • cabrioily--’ A loud scream from his wife, at the mention of this word,
  • rendered all further explanation inaudible.
  • ‘You’d better leave us to bring her round, Raddle,’ said Mrs. Cluppins.
  • ‘She’ll never get better as long as you’re here.’
  • All the ladies concurred in this opinion; so Mr. Raddle was pushed out
  • of the room, and requested to give himself an airing in the back yard.
  • Which he did for about a quarter of an hour, when Mrs. Bardell announced
  • to him with a solemn face that he might come in now, but that he must be
  • very careful how he behaved towards his wife. She knew he didn’t mean to
  • be unkind; but Mary Ann was very far from strong, and, if he didn’t take
  • care, he might lose her when he least expected it, which would be a very
  • dreadful reflection for him afterwards; and so on. All this, Mr. Raddle
  • heard with great submission, and presently returned to the parlour in a
  • most lamb-like manner.
  • ‘Why, Mrs. Rogers, ma’am,’ said Mrs. Bardell, ‘you’ve never been
  • introduced, I declare! Mr. Raddle, ma’am; Mrs. Cluppins, ma’am; Mrs.
  • Raddle, ma’am.’
  • ‘Which is Mrs. Cluppins’s sister,’ suggested Mrs. Sanders.
  • ‘Oh, indeed!’ said Mrs. Rogers graciously; for she was the lodger, and
  • her servant was in waiting, so she was more gracious than intimate, in
  • right of her position. ‘Oh, indeed!’
  • Mrs. Raddle smiled sweetly, Mr. Raddle bowed, and Mrs. Cluppins said,
  • ‘she was sure she was very happy to have an opportunity of being known
  • to a lady which she had heerd so much in favour of, as Mrs. Rogers.’ A
  • compliment which the last-named lady acknowledged with graceful
  • condescension.
  • ‘Well, Mr. Raddle,’ said Mrs. Bardell; ‘I’m sure you ought to feel very
  • much honoured at you and Tommy being the only gentlemen to escort so
  • many ladies all the way to the Spaniards, at Hampstead. Don’t you think
  • he ought, Mrs. Rogers, ma’am?’
  • Oh, certainly, ma’am,’ replied Mrs. Rogers; after whom all the other
  • ladies responded, ‘Oh, certainly.’
  • ‘Of course I feel it, ma’am,’ said Mr. Raddle, rubbing his hands, and
  • evincing a slight tendency to brighten up a little. ‘Indeed, to tell you
  • the truth, I said, as we was a-coming along in the cabrioily--’
  • At the recapitulation of the word which awakened so many painful
  • recollections, Mrs. Raddle applied her handkerchief to her eyes again,
  • and uttered a half-suppressed scream; so that Mrs. Bardell frowned upon
  • Mr. Raddle, to intimate that he had better not say anything more, and
  • desired Mrs. Rogers’s servant, with an air, to ‘put the wine on.’
  • This was the signal for displaying the hidden treasures of the closet,
  • which comprised sundry plates of oranges and biscuits, and a bottle of
  • old crusted port--that at one-and-nine--with another of the celebrated
  • East India sherry at fourteen-pence, which were all produced in honour
  • of the lodger, and afforded unlimited satisfaction to everybody. After
  • great consternation had been excited in the mind of Mrs. Cluppins, by an
  • attempt on the part of Tommy to recount how he had been cross-examined
  • regarding the cupboard then in action (which was fortunately nipped in
  • the bud by his imbibing half a glass of the old crusted ‘the wrong way,’
  • and thereby endangering his life for some seconds), the party walked
  • forth in quest of a Hampstead stage. This was soon found, and in a
  • couple of hours they all arrived safely in the Spaniards Tea-gardens,
  • where the luckless Mr. Raddle’s very first act nearly occasioned his
  • good lady a relapse; it being neither more nor less than to order tea
  • for seven, whereas (as the ladies one and all remarked), what could have
  • been easier than for Tommy to have drank out of anybody’s cup--or
  • everybody’s, if that was all--when the waiter wasn’t looking, which
  • would have saved one head of tea, and the tea just as good!
  • However, there was no help for it, and the tea-tray came, with seven
  • cups and saucers, and bread-and-butter on the same scale. Mrs. Bardell
  • was unanimously voted into the chair, and Mrs. Rogers being stationed on
  • her right hand, and Mrs. Raddle on her left, the meal proceeded with
  • great merriment and success.
  • ‘How sweet the country is, to be sure!’ sighed Mrs. Rogers; ‘I almost
  • wish I lived in it always.’
  • ‘Oh, you wouldn’t like that, ma’am,’ replied Mrs. Bardell, rather
  • hastily; for it was not at all advisable, with reference to the
  • lodgings, to encourage such notions; ‘you wouldn’t like it, ma’am.’
  • ‘Oh! I should think you was a deal too lively and sought after, to be
  • content with the country, ma’am,’ said little Mrs. Cluppins.
  • ‘Perhaps I am, ma’am. Perhaps I am,’ sighed the first-floor lodger.
  • ‘For lone people as have got nobody to care for them, or take care of
  • them, or as have been hurt in their mind, or that kind of thing,’
  • observed Mr. Raddle, plucking up a little cheerfulness, and looking
  • round, ‘the country is all very well. The country for a wounded spirit,
  • they say.’
  • Now, of all things in the world that the unfortunate man could have
  • said, any would have been preferable to this. Of course Mrs. Bardell
  • burst into tears, and requested to be led from the table instantly; upon
  • which the affectionate child began to cry too, most dismally.
  • ‘Would anybody believe, ma’am,’ exclaimed Mrs. Raddle, turning fiercely
  • to the first-floor lodger, ‘that a woman could be married to such a
  • unmanly creetur, which can tamper with a woman’s feelings as he does,
  • every hour in the day, ma’am?’
  • ‘My dear,’ remonstrated Mr. Raddle, ‘I didn’t mean anything, my dear.’
  • ‘You didn’t mean!’ repeated Mrs. Raddle, with great scorn and contempt.
  • ‘Go away. I can’t bear the sight on you, you brute.’
  • ‘You must not flurry yourself, Mary Ann,’ interposed Mrs. Cluppins. ‘You
  • really must consider yourself, my dear, which you never do. Now go away,
  • Raddle, there’s a good soul, or you’ll only aggravate her.’
  • ‘You had better take your tea by yourself, Sir, indeed,’ said Mrs.
  • Rogers, again applying the smelling-bottle.
  • Mrs. Sanders, who, according to custom, was very busy with the bread-
  • and-butter, expressed the same opinion, and Mr. Raddle quietly retired.
  • After this, there was a great hoisting up of Master Bardell, who was
  • rather a large size for hugging, into his mother’s arms, in which
  • operation he got his boots in the tea-board, and occasioned some
  • confusion among the cups and saucers. But that description of fainting
  • fits, which is contagious among ladies, seldom lasts long; so when he
  • had been well kissed, and a little cried over, Mrs. Bardell recovered,
  • set him down again, wondering how she could have been so foolish, and
  • poured out some more tea.
  • It was at this moment, that the sound of approaching wheels was heard,
  • and that the ladies, looking up, saw a hackney-coach stop at the garden
  • gate.
  • ‘More company!’ said Mrs. Sanders.
  • ‘It’s a gentleman,’ said Mrs. Raddle.
  • ‘Well, if it ain’t Mr. Jackson, the young man from Dodson and Fogg’s!’
  • cried Mrs. Bardell. ‘Why, gracious! Surely Mr. Pickwick can’t have paid
  • the damages.’
  • ‘Or hoffered marriage!’ said Mrs. Cluppins.
  • ‘Dear me, how slow the gentleman is,’ exclaimed Mrs. Rogers. ‘Why
  • doesn’t he make haste!’
  • As the lady spoke these words, Mr. Jackson turned from the coach where
  • he had been addressing some observations to a shabby man in black
  • leggings, who had just emerged from the vehicle with a thick ash stick
  • in his hand, and made his way to the place where the ladies were seated;
  • winding his hair round the brim of his hat, as he came along.
  • ‘Is anything the matter? Has anything taken place, Mr. Jackson?’ said
  • Mrs. Bardell eagerly.
  • ‘Nothing whatever, ma’am,’ replied Mr. Jackson. ‘How de do, ladies? I
  • have to ask pardon, ladies, for intruding--but the law, ladies--the
  • law.’ With this apology Mr. Jackson smiled, made a comprehensive bow,
  • and gave his hair another wind. Mrs. Rogers whispered Mrs. Raddle that
  • he was really an elegant young man.
  • ‘I called in Goswell Street,’ resumed Mr. Jackson, ‘and hearing that you
  • were here, from the slavey, took a coach and came on. Our people want
  • you down in the city directly, Mrs. Bardell.’
  • ‘Lor!’ ejaculated that lady, starting at the sudden nature of the
  • communication.
  • ‘Yes,’ said Mr. Jackson, biting his lip. ‘It’s very important and
  • pressing business, which can’t be postponed on any account. Indeed,
  • Dodson expressly said so to me, and so did Fogg. I’ve kept the coach on
  • purpose for you to go back in.’
  • ‘How very strange!’ exclaimed Mrs. Bardell.
  • The ladies agreed that it _was _ very strange, but were unanimously of
  • opinion that it must be very important, or Dodson & Fogg would never
  • have sent; and further, that the business being urgent, she ought to
  • repair to Dodson & Fogg’s without any delay.
  • There was a certain degree of pride and importance about being wanted by
  • one’s lawyers in such a monstrous hurry, that was by no means
  • displeasing to Mrs. Bardell, especially as it might be reasonably
  • supposed to enhance her consequence in the eyes of the first-floor
  • lodger. She simpered a little, affected extreme vexation and hesitation,
  • and at last arrived at the conclusion that she supposed she must go.
  • ‘But won’t you refresh yourself after your walk, Mr. Jackson?’ said Mrs.
  • Bardell persuasively.
  • ‘Why, really there ain’t much time to lose,’ replied Jackson; ‘and I’ve
  • got a friend here,’ he continued, looking towards the man with the ash
  • stick.
  • ‘Oh, ask your friend to come here, Sir,’ said Mrs. Bardell. ‘Pray ask
  • your friend here, Sir.’
  • ‘Why, thank’ee, I’d rather not,’ said Mr. Jackson, with some
  • embarrassment of manner. ‘He’s not much used to ladies’ society, and it
  • makes him bashful. If you’ll order the waiter to deliver him anything
  • short, he won’t drink it off at once, won’t he!--only try him!’ Mr.
  • Jackson’s fingers wandered playfully round his nose at this portion of
  • his discourse, to warn his hearers that he was speaking ironically.
  • The waiter was at once despatched to the bashful gentleman, and the
  • bashful gentleman took something; Mr. Jackson also took something, and
  • the ladies took something, for hospitality’s sake. Mr. Jackson then said
  • he was afraid it was time to go; upon which, Mrs. Sanders, Mrs.
  • Cluppins, and Tommy (who it was arranged should accompany Mrs. Bardell,
  • leaving the others to Mr. Raddle’s protection), got into the coach.
  • ‘Isaac,’ said Jackson, as Mrs. Bardell prepared to get in, looking up at
  • the man with the ash stick, who was seated on the box, smoking a cigar.
  • ‘Well?’
  • ‘This is Mrs. Bardell.’
  • ‘Oh, I know’d that long ago,’ said the man.
  • Mrs. Bardell got in, Mr. Jackson got in after her, and away they drove.
  • Mrs. Bardell could not help ruminating on what Mr. Jackson’s friend had
  • said. Shrewd creatures, those lawyers. Lord bless us, how they find
  • people out!
  • ‘Sad thing about these costs of our people’s, ain’t it,’ said Jackson,
  • when Mrs. Cluppins and Mrs. Sanders had fallen asleep; ‘your bill of
  • costs, I mean.’
  • ‘I’m very sorry they can’t get them,’ replied Mrs. Bardell. ‘But if you
  • law gentlemen do these things on speculation, why you must get a loss
  • now and then, you know.’
  • ‘You gave them a _cognovit _for the amount of your costs, after the
  • trial, I’m told!’ said Jackson.
  • ‘Yes. Just as a matter of form,’ replied Mrs. Bardell.
  • ‘Certainly,’ replied Jackson drily. ‘Quite a matter of form. Quite.’
  • On they drove, and Mrs. Bardell fell asleep. She was awakened, after
  • some time, by the stopping of the coach.
  • ‘Bless us!’ said the lady. ‘Are we at Freeman’s Court?’
  • ‘We’re not going quite so far,’ replied Jackson. ‘Have the goodness to
  • step out.’
  • Mrs. Bardell, not yet thoroughly awake, complied. It was a curious
  • place: a large wall, with a gate in the middle, and a gas-light burning
  • inside.
  • ‘Now, ladies,’ cried the man with the ash stick, looking into the coach,
  • and shaking Mrs. Sanders to wake her, ‘Come!’ Rousing her friend, Mrs.
  • Sanders alighted. Mrs. Bardell, leaning on Jackson’s arm, and leading
  • Tommy by the hand, had already entered the porch. They followed.
  • The room they turned into was even more odd-looking than the porch. Such
  • a number of men standing about! And they stared so!
  • ‘What place is this?’ inquired Mrs. Bardell, pausing.
  • ‘Only one of our public offices,’ replied Jackson, hurrying her through
  • a door, and looking round to see that the other women were following.
  • ‘Look sharp, Isaac!’
  • ‘Safe and sound,’ replied the man with the ash stick. The door swung
  • heavily after them, and they descended a small flight of steps.
  • ‘Here we are at last. All right and tight, Mrs. Bardell!’ said Jackson,
  • looking exultingly round.
  • ‘What do you mean?’ said Mrs. Bardell, with a palpitating heart.
  • ‘Just this,’ replied Jackson, drawing her a little on one side; ‘don’t
  • be frightened, Mrs. Bardell. There never was a more delicate man than
  • Dodson, ma’am, or a more humane man than Fogg. It was their duty in the
  • way of business, to take you in execution for them costs; but they were
  • anxious to spare your feelings as much as they could. What a comfort it
  • must be, to you, to think how it’s been done! This is the Fleet, ma’am.
  • Wish you good-night, Mrs. Bardell. Good-night, Tommy!’
  • As Jackson hurried away in company with the man with the ash stick
  • another man, with a key in his hand, who had been looking on, led the
  • bewildered female to a second short flight of steps leading to a
  • doorway. Mrs. Bardell screamed violently; Tommy roared; Mrs. Cluppins
  • shrunk within herself; and Mrs. Sanders made off, without more ado. For
  • there stood the injured Mr. Pickwick, taking his nightly allowance of
  • air; and beside him leant Samuel Weller, who, seeing Mrs. Bardell, took
  • his hat off with mock reverence, while his master turned indignantly on
  • his heel.
  • ‘Don’t bother the woman,’ said the turnkey to Weller; ‘she’s just come
  • in.’
  • ‘A prisoner!’ said Sam, quickly replacing his hat. ‘Who’s the
  • plaintives? What for? Speak up, old feller.’
  • ‘Dodson and Fogg,’ replied the man; ‘execution on _cognovit _for costs.’
  • ‘Here, Job, Job!’ shouted Sam, dashing into the passage. ‘Run to Mr.
  • Perker’s, Job. I want him directly. I see some good in this. Here’s a
  • game. Hooray! vere’s the gov’nor?’
  • But there was no reply to these inquiries, for Job had started furiously
  • off, the instant he received his commission, and Mrs. Bardell had
  • fainted in real downright earnest.
  • CHAPTER XLVII. IS CHIEFLY DEVOTED TO MATTERS OF BUSINESS, AND THE
  • TEMPORAL ADVANTAGE OF DODSON AND FOGG--MR. WINKLE REAPPEARS UNDER
  • EXTRAORDINARY CIRCUMSTANCES--MR. PICKWICK’S BENEVOLENCE PROVES STRONGER
  • THAN HIS OBSTINACY
  • Job Trotter, abating nothing of his speed, ran up Holborn, sometimes in
  • the middle of the road, sometimes on the pavement, sometimes in the
  • gutter, as the chances of getting along varied with the press of men,
  • women, children, and coaches, in each division of the thoroughfare, and,
  • regardless of all obstacles stopped not for an instant until he reached
  • the gate of Gray’s Inn. Notwithstanding all the expedition he had used,
  • however, the gate had been closed a good half-hour when he reached it,
  • and by the time he had discovered Mr. Perker’s laundress, who lived with
  • a married daughter, who had bestowed her hand upon a non-resident
  • waiter, who occupied the one-pair of some number in some street closely
  • adjoining to some brewery somewhere behind Gray’s Inn Lane, it was
  • within fifteen minutes of closing the prison for the night. Mr. Lowten
  • had still to be ferreted out from the back parlour of the Magpie and
  • Stump; and Job had scarcely accomplished this object, and communicated
  • Sam Weller’s message, when the clock struck ten.
  • ‘There,’ said Lowten, ‘it’s too late now. You can’t get in to-night;
  • you’ve got the key of the street, my friend.’
  • ‘Never mind me,’ replied Job. ‘I can sleep anywhere. But won’t it be
  • better to see Mr. Perker to-night, so that we may be there, the first
  • thing in the morning?’
  • ‘Why,’ responded Lowten, after a little consideration, ‘if it was in
  • anybody else’s case, Perker wouldn’t be best pleased at my going up to
  • his house; but as it’s Mr. Pickwick’s, I think I may venture to take a
  • cab and charge it to the office.’ Deciding on this line of conduct, Mr.
  • Lowten took up his hat, and begging the assembled company to appoint a
  • deputy-chairman during his temporary absence, led the way to the nearest
  • coach-stand. Summoning the cab of most promising appearance, he directed
  • the driver to repair to Montague Place, Russell Square.
  • Mr. Perker had had a dinner-party that day, as was testified by the
  • appearance of lights in the drawing-room windows, the sound of an
  • improved grand piano, and an improvable cabinet voice issuing therefrom,
  • and a rather overpowering smell of meat which pervaded the steps and
  • entry. In fact, a couple of very good country agencies happening to come
  • up to town, at the same time, an agreeable little party had been got
  • together to meet them, comprising Mr. Snicks, the Life Office Secretary,
  • Mr. Prosee, the eminent counsel, three solicitors, one commissioner of
  • bankrupts, a special pleader from the Temple, a small-eyed peremptory
  • young gentleman, his pupil, who had written a lively book about the law
  • of demises, with a vast quantity of marginal notes and references; and
  • several other eminent and distinguished personages. From this society,
  • little Mr. Perker detached himself, on his clerk being announced in a
  • whisper; and repairing to the dining-room, there found Mr. Lowten and
  • Job Trotter looking very dim and shadowy by the light of a kitchen
  • candle, which the gentleman who condescended to appear in plush shorts
  • and cottons for a quarterly stipend, had, with a becoming contempt for
  • the clerk and all things appertaining to ‘the office,’ placed upon the
  • table.
  • ‘Now, Lowten,’ said little Mr. Perker, shutting the door, ‘what’s the
  • matter? No important letter come in a parcel, is there?’
  • ‘No, Sir,’ replied Lowten. ‘This is a messenger from Mr. Pickwick, Sir.’
  • ‘From Pickwick, eh?’ said the little man, turning quickly to Job. ‘Well,
  • what is it?’
  • ‘Dodson and Fogg have taken Mrs. Bardell in execution for her costs,
  • Sir,’ said Job.
  • ‘No!’ exclaimed Perker, putting his hands in his pockets, and reclining
  • against the sideboard.
  • ‘Yes,’ said Job. ‘It seems they got a cognovit out of her, for the
  • amount of ‘em, directly after the trial.’
  • ‘By Jove!’ said Perker, taking both hands out of his pockets, and
  • striking the knuckles of his right against the palm of his left,
  • emphatically, ‘those are the cleverest scamps I ever had anything to do
  • with!’
  • ‘The sharpest practitioners I ever knew, Sir,’ observed Lowten.
  • ‘Sharp!’ echoed Perker. ‘There’s no knowing where to have them.’
  • ‘Very true, Sir, there is not,’ replied Lowten; and then, both master
  • and man pondered for a few seconds, with animated countenances, as if
  • they were reflecting upon one of the most beautiful and ingenious
  • discoveries that the intellect of man had ever made. When they had in
  • some measure recovered from their trance of admiration, Job Trotter
  • discharged himself of the rest of his commission. Perker nodded his head
  • thoughtfully, and pulled out his watch.
  • ‘At ten precisely, I will be there,’ said the little man. ‘Sam is quite
  • right. Tell him so. Will you take a glass of wine, Lowten?’
  • No, thank you, Sir.’
  • ‘You mean yes, I think,’ said the little man, turning to the sideboard
  • for a decanter and glasses.
  • As Lowten _did _mean yes, he said no more on the subject, but inquired
  • of Job, in an audible whisper, whether the portrait of Perker, which
  • hung opposite the fireplace, wasn’t a wonderful likeness, to which Job
  • of course replied that it was. The wine being by this time poured out,
  • Lowten drank to Mrs. Perker and the children, and Job to Perker. The
  • gentleman in the plush shorts and cottons considering it no part of his
  • duty to show the people from the office out, consistently declined to
  • answer the bell, and they showed themselves out. The attorney betook
  • himself to his drawing-room, the clerk to the Magpie and Stump, and Job
  • to Covent Garden Market to spend the night in a vegetable basket.
  • Punctually at the appointed hour next morning, the good-humoured little
  • attorney tapped at Mr. Pickwick’s door, which was opened with great
  • alacrity by Sam Weller.
  • ‘Mr. Perker, sir,’ said Sam, announcing the visitor to Mr. Pickwick, who
  • was sitting at the window in a thoughtful attitude. ‘Wery glad you’ve
  • looked in accidentally, Sir. I rather think the gov’nor wants to have a
  • word and a half with you, Sir.’
  • Perker bestowed a look of intelligence on Sam, intimating that he
  • understood he was not to say he had been sent for; and beckoning him to
  • approach, whispered briefly in his ear.
  • ‘You don’t mean that ‘ere, Sir?’ said Sam, starting back in excessive
  • surprise.
  • Perker nodded and smiled.
  • Mr. Samuel Weller looked at the little lawyer, then at Mr. Pickwick,
  • then at the ceiling, then at Perker again; grinned, laughed outright,
  • and finally, catching up his hat from the carpet, without further
  • explanation, disappeared.
  • ‘What does this mean?’ inquired Mr. Pickwick, looking at Perker with
  • astonishment. ‘What has put Sam into this extraordinary state?’
  • ‘Oh, nothing, nothing,’ replied Perker. ‘Come, my dear Sir, draw up your
  • chair to the table. I have a good deal to say to you.’
  • ‘What papers are those?’ inquired Mr. Pickwick, as the little man
  • deposited on the table a small bundle of documents tied with red tape.
  • ‘The papers in Bardell and Pickwick,’ replied Perker, undoing the knot
  • with his teeth.
  • Mr. Pickwick grated the legs of his chair against the ground; and
  • throwing himself into it, folded his hands and looked sternly--if Mr.
  • Pickwick ever could look sternly--at his legal friend.
  • ‘You don’t like to hear the name of the cause?’ said the little man,
  • still busying himself with the knot.
  • ‘No, I do not indeed,’ replied Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Sorry for that,’ resumed Perker, ‘because it will form the subject of
  • our conversation.’
  • ‘I would rather that the subject should be never mentioned between us,
  • Perker,’ interposed Mr. Pickwick hastily.
  • ‘Pooh, pooh, my dear Sir,’ said the little man, untying the bundle, and
  • glancing eagerly at Mr. Pickwick out of the corners of his eyes. ‘It
  • must be mentioned. I have come here on purpose. Now, are you ready to
  • hear what I have to say, my dear Sir? No hurry; if you are not, I can
  • wait. I have this morning’s paper here. Your time shall be mine. There!’
  • Hereupon, the little man threw one leg over the other, and made a show
  • of beginning to read with great composure and application.
  • ‘Well, well,’ said Mr. Pickwick, with a sigh, but softening into a smile
  • at the same time. ‘Say what you have to say; it’s the old story, I
  • suppose?’
  • ‘With a difference, my dear Sir; with a difference,’ rejoined Perker,
  • deliberately folding up the paper and putting it into his pocket again.
  • ‘Mrs. Bardell, the plaintiff in the action, is within these walls, Sir.’
  • ‘I know it,’ was Mr. Pickwick’s reply.
  • ‘Very good,’ retorted Perker. ‘And you know how she comes here, I
  • suppose; I mean on what grounds, and at whose suit?’
  • ‘Yes; at least I have heard Sam’s account of the matter,’ said Mr.
  • Pickwick, with affected carelessness.
  • ‘Sam’s account of the matter,’ replied Perker, ‘is, I will venture to
  • say, a perfectly correct one. Well now, my dear Sir, the first question
  • I have to ask, is, whether this woman is to remain here?’
  • ‘To remain here!’ echoed Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘To remain here, my dear Sir,’ rejoined Perker, leaning back in his
  • chair and looking steadily at his client.
  • ‘How can you ask me?’ said that gentleman. ‘It rests with Dodson and
  • Fogg; you know that very well.’
  • ‘I know nothing of the kind,’ retorted Perker firmly. ‘It does _not
  • _rest with Dodson and Fogg; you know the men, my dear Sir, as well as I
  • do. It rests solely, wholly, and entirely with you.’
  • ‘With me!’ ejaculated Mr. Pickwick, rising nervously from his chair, and
  • reseating himself directly afterwards.
  • The little man gave a double-knock on the lid of his snuff-box, opened
  • it, took a great pinch, shut it up again, and repeated the words, ‘With
  • you.’
  • ‘I say, my dear Sir,’ resumed the little man, who seemed to gather
  • confidence from the snuff--‘I say, that her speedy liberation or
  • perpetual imprisonment rests with you, and with you alone. Hear me out,
  • my dear Sir, if you please, and do not be so very energetic, for it will
  • only put you into a perspiration and do no good whatever. I say,’
  • continued Perker, checking off each position on a different finger, as
  • he laid it down--‘I say that nobody but you can rescue her from this den
  • of wretchedness; and that you can only do that, by paying the costs of
  • this suit--both of plaintive and defendant--into the hands of these
  • Freeman Court sharks. Now pray be quiet, my dear sir.’
  • Mr. Pickwick, whose face had been undergoing most surprising changes
  • during this speech, and was evidently on the verge of a strong burst of
  • indignation, calmed his wrath as well as he could. Perker, strengthening
  • his argumentative powers with another pinch of snuff, proceeded--
  • ‘I have seen the woman, this morning. By paying the costs, you can
  • obtain a full release and discharge from the damages; and further--this
  • I know is a far greater object of consideration with you, my dear sir--a
  • voluntary statement, under her hand, in the form of a letter to me, that
  • this business was, from the very first, fomented, and encouraged, and
  • brought about, by these men, Dodson and Fogg; that she deeply regrets
  • ever having been the instrument of annoyance or injury to you; and that
  • she entreats me to intercede with you, and implore your pardon.’
  • ‘If I pay her costs for her,’ said Mr. Pickwick indignantly. ‘A valuable
  • document, indeed!’
  • ‘No “if” in the case, my dear Sir,’ said Perker triumphantly. ‘There is
  • the very letter I speak of. Brought to my office by another woman at
  • nine o’clock this morning, before I had set foot in this place, or held
  • any communication with Mrs. Bardell, upon my honour.’ Selecting the
  • letter from the bundle, the little lawyer laid it at Mr. Pickwick’s
  • elbow, and took snuff for two consecutive minutes, without winking.
  • ‘Is this all you have to say to me?’ inquired Mr. Pickwick mildly.
  • ‘Not quite,’ replied Perker. ‘I cannot undertake to say, at this moment,
  • whether the wording of the cognovit, the nature of the ostensible
  • consideration, and the proof we can get together about the whole conduct
  • of the suit, will be sufficient to justify an indictment for conspiracy.
  • I fear not, my dear Sir; they are too clever for that, I doubt. I do
  • mean to say, however, that the whole facts, taken together, will be
  • sufficient to justify you, in the minds of all reasonable men. And now,
  • my dear Sir, I put it to you. This one hundred and fifty pounds, or
  • whatever it may be--take it in round numbers--is nothing to you. A jury
  • had decided against you; well, their verdict is wrong, but still they
  • decided as they thought right, and it _is_ against you. You have now an
  • opportunity, on easy terms, of placing yourself in a much higher
  • position than you ever could, by remaining here; which would only be
  • imputed, by people who didn’t know you, to sheer dogged, wrongheaded,
  • brutal obstinacy; nothing else, my dear Sir, believe me. Can you
  • hesitate to avail yourself of it, when it restores you to your friends,
  • your old pursuits, your health and amusements; when it liberates your
  • faithful and attached servant, whom you otherwise doom to imprisonment
  • for the whole of your life; and above all, when it enables you to take
  • the very magnanimous revenge--which I know, my dear sir, is one after
  • your own heart--of releasing this woman from a scene of misery and
  • debauchery, to which no man should ever be consigned, if I had my will,
  • but the infliction of which on any woman, is even more frightful and
  • barbarous. Now I ask you, my dear sir, not only as your legal adviser,
  • but as your very true friend, will you let slip the occasion of
  • attaining all these objects, and doing all this good, for the paltry
  • consideration of a few pounds finding their way into the pockets of a
  • couple of rascals, to whom it makes no manner of difference, except that
  • the more they gain, the more they’ll seek, and so the sooner be led into
  • some piece of knavery that must end in a crash? I have put these
  • considerations to you, my dear Sir, very feebly and imperfectly, but I
  • ask you to think of them. Turn them over in your mind as long as you
  • please. I wait here most patiently for your answer.’
  • Before Mr. Pickwick could reply, before Mr. Perker had taken one
  • twentieth part of the snuff with which so unusually long an address
  • imperatively required to be followed up, there was a low murmuring of
  • voices outside, and then a hesitating knock at the door.
  • ‘Dear, dear,’ exclaimed Mr. Pickwick, who had been evidently roused by
  • his friend’s appeal; ‘what an annoyance that door is! Who is that?’
  • ‘Me, Sir,’ replied Sam Weller, putting in his head.
  • ‘I can’t speak to you just now, Sam,’ said Mr. Pickwick. ‘I am engaged
  • at this moment, Sam.’
  • ‘Beg your pardon, Sir,’ rejoined Mr. Weller. ‘But here’s a lady here,
  • Sir, as says she’s somethin’ wery partickler to disclose.’
  • ‘I can’t see any lady,’ replied Mr. Pickwick, whose mind was filled with
  • visions of Mrs. Bardell.
  • ‘I wouldn’t make too sure o’ that, Sir,’ urged Mr. Weller, shaking his
  • head. ‘If you know’d who was near, sir, I rayther think you’d change
  • your note; as the hawk remarked to himself vith a cheerful laugh, ven he
  • heerd the robin-redbreast a-singin’ round the corner.’
  • ‘Who is it?’ inquired Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Will you see her, Sir?’ asked Mr. Weller, holding the door in his hand
  • as if he had some curious live animal on the other side.
  • ‘I suppose I must,’ said Mr. Pickwick, looking at Perker.
  • ‘Well then, all in to begin!’ cried Sam. ‘Sound the gong, draw up the
  • curtain, and enter the two conspiraytors.’
  • As Sam Weller spoke, he threw the door open, and there rushed
  • tumultuously into the room, Mr. Nathaniel Winkle, leading after him by
  • the hand, the identical young lady who at Dingley Dell had worn the
  • boots with the fur round the tops, and who, now a very pleasing compound
  • of blushes and confusion, and lilac silk, and a smart bonnet, and a rich
  • lace veil, looked prettier than ever.
  • ‘Miss Arabella Allen!’ exclaimed Mr. Pickwick, rising from his chair.
  • ‘No,’ replied Mr. Winkle, dropping on his knees. ‘Mrs. Winkle. Pardon,
  • my dear friend, pardon!’
  • Mr. Pickwick could scarcely believe the evidence of his senses, and
  • perhaps would not have done so, but for the corroborative testimony
  • afforded by the smiling countenance of Perker, and the bodily presence,
  • in the background, of Sam and the pretty housemaid; who appeared to
  • contemplate the proceedings with the liveliest satisfaction.
  • ‘Oh, Mr. Pickwick!’ said Arabella, in a low voice, as if alarmed at the
  • silence. ‘Can you forgive my imprudence?’
  • Mr. Pickwick returned no verbal response to this appeal; but he took off
  • his spectacles in great haste, and seizing both the young lady’s hands
  • in his, kissed her a great number of times--perhaps a greater number
  • than was absolutely necessary--and then, still retaining one of her
  • hands, told Mr. Winkle he was an audacious young dog, and bade him get
  • up. This, Mr. Winkle, who had been for some seconds scratching his nose
  • with the brim of his hat, in a penitent manner, did; whereupon Mr.
  • Pickwick slapped him on the back several times, and then shook hands
  • heartily with Perker, who, not to be behind-hand in the compliments of
  • the occasion, saluted both the bride and the pretty housemaid with right
  • good-will, and, having wrung Mr. Winkle’s hand most cordially, wound up
  • his demonstrations of joy by taking snuff enough to set any half-dozen
  • men with ordinarily-constructed noses, a-sneezing for life.
  • ‘Why, my dear girl,’ said Mr. Pickwick, ‘how has all this come about?
  • Come! Sit down, and let me hear it all. How well she looks, doesn’t she,
  • Perker?’ added Mr. Pickwick, surveying Arabella’s face with a look of as
  • much pride and exultation, as if she had been his daughter.
  • ‘Delightful, my dear Sir,’ replied the little man. ‘If I were not a
  • married man myself, I should be disposed to envy you, you dog.’ Thus
  • expressing himself, the little lawyer gave Mr. Winkle a poke in the
  • chest, which that gentleman reciprocated; after which they both laughed
  • very loudly, but not so loudly as Mr. Samuel Weller, who had just
  • relieved his feelings by kissing the pretty housemaid under cover of the
  • cupboard door.
  • ‘I can never be grateful enough to you, Sam, I am sure,’ said Arabella,
  • with the sweetest smile imaginable. ‘I shall not forget your exertions
  • in the garden at Clifton.’
  • ‘Don’t say nothin’ wotever about it, ma’am,’ replied Sam. ‘I only
  • assisted natur, ma’am; as the doctor said to the boy’s mother, after
  • he’d bled him to death.’
  • ‘Mary, my dear, sit down,’ said Mr. Pickwick, cutting short these
  • compliments. ‘Now then; how long have you been married, eh?’
  • Arabella looked bashfully at her lord and master, who replied, ‘Only
  • three days.’
  • ‘Only three days, eh?’ said Mr. Pickwick. ‘Why, what have you been doing
  • these three months?’
  • ‘Ah, to be sure!’ interposed Perker; ‘come, account for this idleness.
  • You see Mr. Pickwick’s only astonishment is, that it wasn’t all over,
  • months ago.’
  • ‘Why the fact is,’ replied Mr. Winkle, looking at his blushing young
  • wife, ‘that I could not persuade Bella to run away, for a long time. And
  • when I had persuaded her, it was a long time more before we could find
  • an opportunity. Mary had to give a month’s warning, too, before she
  • could leave her place next door, and we couldn’t possibly have done it
  • without her assistance.’
  • Upon my word,’ exclaimed Mr. Pickwick, who by this time had resumed his
  • spectacles, and was looking from Arabella to Winkle, and from Winkle to
  • Arabella, with as much delight depicted in his countenance as
  • warmheartedness and kindly feeling can communicate to the human face--
  • ‘upon my word! you seem to have been very systematic in your
  • proceedings. And is your brother acquainted with all this, my dear?’
  • ‘Oh, no, no,’ replied Arabella, changing colour. ‘Dear Mr. Pickwick, he
  • must only know it from you--from your lips alone. He is so violent, so
  • prejudiced, and has been so--so anxious in behalf of his friend, Mr.
  • Sawyer,’ added Arabella, looking down, ‘that I fear the consequences
  • dreadfully.’
  • ‘Ah, to be sure,’ said Perker gravely. ‘You must take this matter in
  • hand for them, my dear sir. These young men will respect you, when they
  • would listen to nobody else. You must prevent mischief, my dear Sir. Hot
  • blood, hot blood.’ And the little man took a warning pinch, and shook
  • his head doubtfully.
  • ‘You forget, my love,’ said Mr. Pickwick gently, ‘you forget that I am a
  • prisoner.’
  • ‘No, indeed I do not, my dear Sir,’ replied Arabella. ‘I never have
  • forgotten it. I have never ceased to think how great your sufferings
  • must have been in this shocking place. But I hoped that what no
  • consideration for yourself would induce you to do, a regard to our
  • happiness might. If my brother hears of this, first, from you, I feel
  • certain we shall be reconciled. He is my only relation in the world, Mr.
  • Pickwick, and unless you plead for me, I fear I have lost even him. I
  • have done wrong, very, very wrong, I know.’ Here poor Arabella hid her
  • face in her handkerchief, and wept bitterly.
  • Mr. Pickwick’s nature was a good deal worked upon, by these same tears;
  • but when Mrs. Winkle, drying her eyes, took to coaxing and entreating in
  • the sweetest tones of a very sweet voice, he became particularly
  • restless, and evidently undecided how to act, as was evinced by sundry
  • nervous rubbings of his spectacle-glasses, nose, tights, head, and
  • gaiters.
  • Taking advantage of these symptoms of indecision, Mr. Perker (to whom,
  • it appeared, the young couple had driven straight that morning) urged
  • with legal point and shrewdness that Mr. Winkle, senior, was still
  • unacquainted with the important rise in life’s flight of steps which his
  • son had taken; that the future expectations of the said son depended
  • entirely upon the said Winkle, senior, continuing to regard him with
  • undiminished feelings of affection and attachment, which it was very
  • unlikely he would, if this great event were long kept a secret from him;
  • that Mr. Pickwick, repairing to Bristol to seek Mr. Allen, might, with
  • equal reason, repair to Birmingham to seek Mr. Winkle, senior; lastly,
  • that Mr. Winkle, senior, had good right and title to consider Mr.
  • Pickwick as in some degree the guardian and adviser of his son, and that
  • it consequently behoved that gentleman, and was indeed due to his
  • personal character, to acquaint the aforesaid Winkle, senior,
  • personally, and by word of mouth, with the whole circumstances of the
  • case, and with the share he had taken in the transaction.
  • Mr. Tupman and Mr. Snodgrass arrived, most opportunely, in this stage of
  • the pleadings, and as it was necessary to explain to them all that had
  • occurred, together with the various reasons pro and con, the whole of
  • the arguments were gone over again, after which everybody urged every
  • argument in his own way, and at his own length. And, at last, Mr.
  • Pickwick, fairly argued and remonstrated out of all his resolutions, and
  • being in imminent danger of being argued and remonstrated out of his
  • wits, caught Arabella in his arms, and declaring that she was a very
  • amiable creature, and that he didn’t know how it was, but he had always
  • been very fond of her from the first, said he could never find it in his
  • heart to stand in the way of young people’s happiness, and they might do
  • with him as they pleased.
  • Mr. Weller’s first act, on hearing this concession, was to despatch Job
  • Trotter to the illustrious Mr. Pell, with an authority to deliver to the
  • bearer the formal discharge which his prudent parent had had the
  • foresight to leave in the hands of that learned gentleman, in case it
  • should be, at any time, required on an emergency; his next proceeding
  • was, to invest his whole stock of ready-money in the purchase of five-
  • and-twenty gallons of mild porter, which he himself dispensed on the
  • racket-ground to everybody who would partake of it; this done, he
  • hurra’d in divers parts of the building until he lost his voice, and
  • then quietly relapsed into his usual collected and philosophical
  • condition.
  • At three o’clock that afternoon, Mr. Pickwick took a last look at his
  • little room, and made his way, as well as he could, through the throng
  • of debtors who pressed eagerly forward to shake him by the hand, until
  • he reached the lodge steps. He turned here, to look about him, and his
  • eye lightened as he did so. In all the crowd of wan, emaciated faces, he
  • saw not one which was not happier for his sympathy and charity.
  • ‘Perker,’ said Mr. Pickwick, beckoning one young man towards him, ‘this
  • is Mr. Jingle, whom I spoke to you about.’
  • ‘Very good, my dear Sir,’ replied Perker, looking hard at Jingle. ‘You
  • will see me again, young man, to-morrow. I hope you may live to remember
  • and feel deeply, what I shall have to communicate, Sir.’
  • Jingle bowed respectfully, trembled very much as he took Mr. Pickwick’s
  • proffered hand, and withdrew.
  • ‘Job you know, I think?’ said Mr. Pickwick, presenting that gentleman.
  • ‘I know the rascal,’ replied Perker good-humouredly. ‘See after your
  • friend, and be in the way to-morrow at one. Do you hear? Now, is there
  • anything more?’
  • ‘Nothing,’ rejoined Mr. Pickwick. ‘You have delivered the little parcel
  • I gave you for your old landlord, Sam?’
  • ‘I have, Sir,’ replied Sam. ‘He bust out a-cryin’, Sir, and said you wos
  • wery gen’rous and thoughtful, and he only wished you could have him
  • innockilated for a gallopin’ consumption, for his old friend as had
  • lived here so long wos dead, and he’d noweres to look for another.’
  • Poor fellow, poor fellow!’ said Mr. Pickwick. ‘God bless you, my
  • friends!’
  • As Mr. Pickwick uttered this adieu, the crowd raised a loud shout. Many
  • among them were pressing forward to shake him by the hand again, when he
  • drew his arm through Perker’s, and hurried from the prison, far more sad
  • and melancholy, for the moment, than when he had first entered it. Alas!
  • how many sad and unhappy beings had he left behind!
  • A happy evening was that for at least one party in the George and
  • Vulture; and light and cheerful were two of the hearts that emerged from
  • its hospitable door next morning. The owners thereof were Mr. Pickwick
  • and Sam Weller, the former of whom was speedily deposited inside a
  • comfortable post-coach, with a little dickey behind, in which the latter
  • mounted with great agility.
  • ‘Sir,’ called out Mr. Weller to his master.
  • ‘Well, Sam,’ replied Mr. Pickwick, thrusting his head out of the window.
  • ‘I wish them horses had been three months and better in the Fleet, Sir.’
  • ‘Why, Sam?’ inquired Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Wy, Sir,’ exclaimed Mr. Weller, rubbing his hands, ‘how they would go
  • if they had been!’
  • CHAPTER XLVIII. RELATES HOW MR. PICKWICK, WITH THE ASSISTANCE OF SAMUEL
  • WELLER, ESSAYED TO SOFTEN THE HEART OF MR. BENJAMIN ALLEN, AND TO
  • MOLLIFY THE WRATH OF MR. ROBERT SAWYER
  • Mr. Ben Allen and Mr. Bob Sawyer sat together in the little surgery
  • behind the shop, discussing minced veal and future prospects, when the
  • discourse, not unnaturally, turned upon the practice acquired by Bob the
  • aforesaid, and his present chances of deriving a competent independence
  • from the honourable profession to which he had devoted himself.
  • ‘Which, I think,’ observed Mr. Bob Sawyer, pursuing the thread of the
  • subject--‘which, I think, Ben, are rather dubious.’
  • ‘What’s rather dubious?’ inquired Mr. Ben Allen, at the same time
  • sharpening his intellect with a draught of beer. ‘What’s dubious?’
  • ‘Why, the chances,’ responded Mr. Bob Sawyer.
  • ‘I forgot,’ said Mr. Ben Allen. ‘The beer has reminded me that I forgot,
  • Bob--yes; they _are _dubious.’
  • ‘It’s wonderful how the poor people patronise me,’ said Mr. Bob Sawyer
  • reflectively. ‘They knock me up, at all hours of the night; they take
  • medicine to an extent which I should have conceived impossible; they put
  • on blisters and leeches with a perseverance worthy of a better cause;
  • they make additions to their families, in a manner which is quite awful.
  • Six of those last-named little promissory notes, all due on the same
  • day, Ben, and all intrusted to me!’
  • ‘It’s very gratifying, isn’t it?’ said Mr. Ben Allen, holding his plate
  • for some more minced veal.
  • ‘Oh, very,’ replied Bob; ‘only not quite so much so as the confidence of
  • patients with a shilling or two to spare would be. This business was
  • capitally described in the advertisement, Ben. It is a practice, a very
  • extensive practice--and that’s all.’
  • ‘Bob,’ said Mr. Ben Allen, laying down his knife and fork, and fixing
  • his eyes on the visage of his friend, ‘Bob, I’ll tell you what it is.’
  • ‘What is it?’ inquired Mr. Bob Sawyer.
  • ‘You must make yourself, with as little delay as possible, master of
  • Arabella’s one thousand pounds.’
  • ‘Three per cent. consolidated bank annuities, now standing in her name
  • in the book or books of the governor and company of the Bank of
  • England,’ added Bob Sawyer, in legal phraseology.
  • ‘Exactly so,’ said Ben. ‘She has it when she comes of age, or marries.
  • She wants a year of coming of age, and if you plucked up a spirit she
  • needn’t want a month of being married.’
  • ‘She’s a very charming and delightful creature,’ quoth Mr. Robert
  • Sawyer, in reply; ‘and has only one fault that I know of, Ben. It
  • happens, unfortunately, that that single blemish is a want of taste. She
  • don’t like me.’
  • ‘It’s my opinion that she don’t know what she does like,’ said Mr. Ben
  • Allen contemptuously.
  • ‘Perhaps not,’ remarked Mr. Bob Sawyer. ‘But it’s my opinion that she
  • does know what she doesn’t like, and that’s of more importance.’
  • ‘I wish,’ said Mr. Ben Allen, setting his teeth together, and speaking
  • more like a savage warrior who fed on raw wolf’s flesh which he carved
  • with his fingers, than a peaceable young gentleman who ate minced veal
  • with a knife and fork--‘I wish I knew whether any rascal really has been
  • tampering with her, and attempting to engage her affections. I think I
  • should assassinate him, Bob.’
  • ‘I’d put a bullet in him, if I found him out,’ said Mr. Sawyer, stopping
  • in the course of a long draught of beer, and looking malignantly out of
  • the porter pot. ‘If that didn’t do his business, I’d extract it
  • afterwards, and kill him that way.’
  • Mr. Benjamin Allen gazed abstractedly on his friend for some minutes in
  • silence, and then said--
  • ‘You have never proposed to her, point-blank, Bob?’
  • ‘No. Because I saw it would be of no use,’ replied Mr. Robert Sawyer.
  • ‘You shall do it, before you are twenty-four hours older,’ retorted Ben,
  • with desperate calmness. ‘She shall have you, or I’ll know the reason
  • why. I’ll exert my authority.’
  • ‘Well,’ said Mr. Bob Sawyer, ‘we shall see.’
  • ‘We shall see, my friend,’ replied Mr. Ben Allen fiercely. He paused for
  • a few seconds, and added in a voice broken by emotion, ‘You have loved
  • her from a child, my friend. You loved her when we were boys at school
  • together, and, even then, she was wayward and slighted your young
  • feelings. Do you recollect, with all the eagerness of a child’s love,
  • one day pressing upon her acceptance, two small caraway-seed biscuits
  • and one sweet apple, neatly folded into a circular parcel with the leaf
  • of a copy-book?’
  • ‘I do,’ replied Bob Sawyer.
  • ‘She slighted that, I think?’ said Ben Allen.
  • ‘She did,’ rejoined Bob. ‘She said I had kept the parcel so long in the
  • pockets of my corduroys, that the apple was unpleasantly warm.’
  • ‘I remember,’ said Mr. Allen gloomily. ‘Upon which we ate it ourselves,
  • in alternate bites.’
  • Bob Sawyer intimated his recollection of the circumstance last alluded
  • to, by a melancholy frown; and the two friends remained for some time
  • absorbed, each in his own meditations.
  • While these observations were being exchanged between Mr. Bob Sawyer and
  • Mr. Benjamin Allen; and while the boy in the gray livery, marvelling at
  • the unwonted prolongation of the dinner, cast an anxious look, from time
  • to time, towards the glass door, distracted by inward misgivings
  • regarding the amount of minced veal which would be ultimately reserved
  • for his individual cravings; there rolled soberly on through the streets
  • of Bristol, a private fly, painted of a sad green colour, drawn by a
  • chubby sort of brown horse, and driven by a surly-looking man with his
  • legs dressed like the legs of a groom, and his body attired in the coat
  • of a coachman. Such appearances are common to many vehicles belonging
  • to, and maintained by, old ladies of economic habits; and in this
  • vehicle sat an old lady who was its mistress and proprietor.
  • ‘Martin!’ said the old lady, calling to the surly man, out of the front
  • window.
  • ‘Well?’ said the surly man, touching his hat to the old lady.
  • ‘Mr. Sawyer’s,’ said the old lady.
  • ‘I was going there,’ said the surly man.
  • The old lady nodded the satisfaction which this proof of the surly man’s
  • foresight imparted to her feelings; and the surly man giving a smart
  • lash to the chubby horse, they all repaired to Mr. Bob Sawyer’s
  • together.
  • ‘Martin!’ said the old lady, when the fly stopped at the door of Mr.
  • Robert Sawyer, late Nockemorf.
  • ‘Well?’ said Martin.
  • ‘Ask the lad to step out, and mind the horse.’
  • ‘I’m going to mind the horse myself,’ said Martin, laying his whip on
  • the roof of the fly.
  • ‘I can’t permit it, on any account,’ said the old lady; ‘your testimony
  • will be very important, and I must take you into the house with me. You
  • must not stir from my side during the whole interview. Do you hear?’
  • ‘I hear,’ replied Martin.
  • ‘Well; what are you stopping for?’
  • ‘Nothing,’ replied Martin. So saying, the surly man leisurely descended
  • from the wheel, on which he had been poising himself on the tops of the
  • toes of his right foot, and having summoned the boy in the gray livery,
  • opened the coach door, flung down the steps, and thrusting in a hand
  • enveloped in a dark wash-leather glove, pulled out the old lady with as
  • much unconcern in his manner as if she were a bandbox.
  • ‘Dear me!’ exclaimed the old lady. ‘I am so flurried, now I have got
  • here, Martin, that I’m all in a tremble.’
  • Mr. Martin coughed behind the dark wash-leather gloves, but expressed no
  • sympathy; so the old lady, composing herself, trotted up Mr. Bob
  • Sawyer’s steps, and Mr. Martin followed. Immediately on the old lady’s
  • entering the shop, Mr. Benjamin Allen and Mr. Bob Sawyer, who had been
  • putting the spirits-and-water out of sight, and upsetting nauseous drugs
  • to take off the smell of the tobacco smoke, issued hastily forth in a
  • transport of pleasure and affection.
  • ‘My dear aunt,’ exclaimed Mr. Ben Allen, ‘how kind of you to look in
  • upon us! Mr. Sawyer, aunt; my friend Mr. Bob Sawyer whom I have spoken
  • to you about, regarding--you know, aunt.’ And here Mr. Ben Allen, who
  • was not at the moment extraordinarily sober, added the word ‘Arabella,’
  • in what was meant to be a whisper, but which was an especially audible
  • and distinct tone of speech which nobody could avoid hearing, if anybody
  • were so disposed.
  • ‘My dear Benjamin,’ said the old lady, struggling with a great shortness
  • of breath, and trembling from head to foot, ‘don’t be alarmed, my dear,
  • but I think I had better speak to Mr. Sawyer, alone, for a moment. Only
  • for one moment.’
  • ‘Bob,’ said Mr. Allen, ‘will you take my aunt into the surgery?’
  • ‘Certainly,’ responded Bob, in a most professional voice. ‘Step this
  • way, my dear ma’am. Don’t be frightened, ma’am. We shall be able to set
  • you to rights in a very short time, I have no doubt, ma’am. Here, my
  • dear ma’am. Now then!’ With this, Mr. Bob Sawyer having handed the old
  • lady to a chair, shut the door, drew another chair close to her, and
  • waited to hear detailed the symptoms of some disorder from which he saw
  • in perspective a long train of profits and advantages.
  • The first thing the old lady did, was to shake her head a great many
  • times, and began to cry.
  • ‘Nervous,’ said Bob Sawyer complacently. ‘Camphor-julep and water three
  • times a day, and composing draught at night.’
  • ‘I don’t know how to begin, Mr. Sawyer,’ said the old lady. ‘It is so
  • very painful and distressing.’
  • ‘You need not begin, ma’am,’ rejoined Mr. Bob Sawyer. ‘I can anticipate
  • all you would say. The head is in fault.’
  • ‘I should be very sorry to think it was the heart,’ said the old lady,
  • with a slight groan.
  • ‘Not the slightest danger of that, ma’am,’ replied Bob Sawyer. ‘The
  • stomach is the primary cause.’
  • ‘Mr. Sawyer!’ exclaimed the old lady, starting.
  • ‘Not the least doubt of it, ma’am,’ rejoined Bob, looking wondrous wise.
  • ‘Medicine, in time, my dear ma’am, would have prevented it all.’
  • ‘Mr. Sawyer,’ said the old lady, more flurried than before, ‘this
  • conduct is either great impertinence to one in my situation, Sir, or it
  • arises from your not understanding the object of my visit. If it had
  • been in the power of medicine, or any foresight I could have used, to
  • prevent what has occurred, I should certainly have done so. I had better
  • see my nephew at once,’ said the old lady, twirling her reticule
  • indignantly, and rising as she spoke.
  • ‘Stop a moment, ma’am,’ said Bob Sawyer; ‘I’m afraid I have not
  • understood you. What _is_ the matter, ma’am?’
  • ‘My niece, Mr. Sawyer,’ said the old lady: ‘your friend’s sister.’
  • ‘Yes, ma’am,’ said Bob, all impatience; for the old lady, although much
  • agitated, spoke with the most tantalising deliberation, as old ladies
  • often do. ‘Yes, ma’am.’
  • ‘Left my home, Mr. Sawyer, three days ago, on a pretended visit to my
  • sister, another aunt of hers, who keeps the large boarding-school, just
  • beyond the third mile-stone, where there is a very large laburnum-tree
  • and an oak gate,’ said the old lady, stopping in this place to dry her
  • eyes.
  • ‘Oh, devil take the laburnum-tree, ma’am!’ said Bob, quite forgetting
  • his professional dignity in his anxiety. ‘Get on a little faster; put a
  • little more steam on, ma’am, pray.’
  • ‘This morning,’ said the old lady slowly--‘this morning, she--’
  • ‘She came back, ma’am, I suppose,’ said Bob, with great animation. ‘Did
  • she come back?’
  • ‘No, she did not; she wrote,’ replied the old lady.
  • ‘What did she say?’ inquired Bob eagerly.
  • ‘She said, Mr. Sawyer,’ replied the old lady--‘and it is this I want to
  • prepare Benjamin’s mind for, gently and by degrees; she said that she
  • was--I have got the letter in my pocket, Mr. Sawyer, but my glasses are
  • in the carriage, and I should only waste your time if I attempted to
  • point out the passage to you, without them; she said, in short, Mr.
  • Sawyer, that she was married.’
  • What!’ said, or rather shouted, Mr. Bob Sawyer.
  • ‘Married,’ repeated the old lady.
  • Mr. Bob Sawyer stopped to hear no more; but darting from the surgery
  • into the outer shop, cried in a stentorian voice, ‘Ben, my boy, she’s
  • bolted!’
  • Mr. Ben Allen, who had been slumbering behind the counter, with his head
  • half a foot or so below his knees, no sooner heard this appalling
  • communication, than he made a precipitate rush at Mr. Martin, and,
  • twisting his hand in the neck-cloth of that taciturn servitor, expressed
  • an obliging intention of choking him where he stood. This intention,
  • with a promptitude often the effect of desperation, he at once commenced
  • carrying into execution, with much vigour and surgical skill.
  • Mr. Martin, who was a man of few words and possessed but little power of
  • eloquence or persuasion, submitted to this operation with a very calm
  • and agreeable expression of countenance, for some seconds; finding,
  • however, that it threatened speedily to lead to a result which would
  • place it beyond his power to claim any wages, board or otherwise, in all
  • time to come, he muttered an inarticulate remonstrance and felled Mr.
  • Benjamin Allen to the ground. As that gentleman had his hands entangled
  • in his cravat, he had no alternative but to follow him to the floor.
  • There they both lay struggling, when the shop door opened, and the party
  • was increased by the arrival of two most unexpected visitors, to wit,
  • Mr. Pickwick and Mr. Samuel Weller.
  • The impression at once produced on Mr. Weller’s mind by what he saw,
  • was, that Mr. Martin was hired by the establishment of Sawyer, late
  • Nockemorf, to take strong medicine, or to go into fits and be
  • experimentalised upon, or to swallow poison now and then with the view
  • of testing the efficacy of some new antidotes, or to do something or
  • other to promote the great science of medicine, and gratify the ardent
  • spirit of inquiry burning in the bosoms of its two young professors. So,
  • without presuming to interfere, Sam stood perfectly still, and looked
  • on, as if he were mightily interested in the result of the then pending
  • experiment. Not so, Mr. Pickwick. He at once threw himself on the
  • astonished combatants, with his accustomed energy, and loudly called
  • upon the bystanders to interpose.
  • This roused Mr. Bob Sawyer, who had been hitherto quite paralysed by the
  • frenzy of his companion. With that gentleman’s assistance, Mr. Pickwick
  • raised Ben Allen to his feet. Mr. Martin finding himself alone on the
  • floor, got up, and looked about him.
  • ‘Mr. Allen,’ said Mr. Pickwick, ‘what is the matter, Sir?’
  • ‘Never mind, Sir!’ replied Mr. Allen, with haughty defiance.
  • ‘What is it?’ inquired Mr. Pickwick, looking at Bob Sawyer. ‘Is he
  • unwell?’
  • Before Bob could reply, Mr. Ben Allen seized Mr. Pickwick by the hand,
  • and murmured, in sorrowful accents, ‘My sister, my dear Sir; my sister.’
  • ‘Oh, is that all!’ said Mr. Pickwick. ‘We shall easily arrange that
  • matter, I hope. Your sister is safe and well, and I am here, my dear
  • Sir, to--’
  • ‘Sorry to do anythin’ as may cause an interruption to such wery pleasant
  • proceedin’s, as the king said wen he dissolved the parliament,’
  • interposed Mr. Weller, who had been peeping through the glass door; ‘but
  • there’s another experiment here, sir. Here’s a wenerable old lady a--
  • lyin’ on the carpet waitin’ for dissection, or galwinism, or some other
  • rewivin’ and scientific inwention.’
  • ‘I forgot,’ exclaimed Mr. Ben Allen. ‘It is my aunt.’
  • ‘Dear me!’ said Mr. Pickwick. ‘Poor lady! Gently Sam, gently.’
  • ‘Strange sitivation for one o’ the family,’ observed Sam Weller,
  • hoisting the aunt into a chair. ‘Now depitty sawbones, bring out the
  • wollatilly!’
  • The latter observation was addressed to the boy in gray, who, having
  • handed over the fly to the care of the street-keeper, had come back to
  • see what all the noise was about. Between the boy in gray, and Mr. Bob
  • Sawyer, and Mr. Benjamin Allen (who having frightened his aunt into a
  • fainting fit, was affectionately solicitous for her recovery) the old
  • lady was at length restored to consciousness; then Mr. Ben Allen,
  • turning with a puzzled countenance to Mr. Pickwick, asked him what he
  • was about to say, when he had been so alarmingly interrupted.
  • ‘We are all friends here, I presume?’ said Mr. Pickwick, clearing his
  • voice, and looking towards the man of few words with the surly
  • countenance, who drove the fly with the chubby horse.
  • This reminded Mr. Bob Sawyer that the boy in gray was looking on, with
  • eyes wide open, and greedy ears. The incipient chemist having been
  • lifted up by his coat collar, and dropped outside the door, Bob Sawyer
  • assured Mr. Pickwick that he might speak without reserve.
  • ‘Your sister, my dear Sir,’ said Mr. Pickwick, turning to Benjamin
  • Allen, ‘is in London; well and happy.’
  • ‘Her happiness is no object to me, sir,’ said Benjamin Allen, with a
  • flourish of the hand.
  • ‘Her husband _is_ an object to _me_, Sir,’ said Bob Sawyer. ‘He shall be
  • an object to me, sir, at twelve paces, and a pretty object I’ll make of
  • him, sir--a mean-spirited scoundrel!’ This, as it stood, was a very
  • pretty denunciation, and magnanimous withal; but Mr. Bob Sawyer rather
  • weakened its effect, by winding up with some general observations
  • concerning the punching of heads and knocking out of eyes, which were
  • commonplace by comparison.
  • ‘Stay, sir,’ said Mr. Pickwick; ‘before you apply those epithets to the
  • gentleman in question, consider, dispassionately, the extent of his
  • fault, and above all remember that he is a friend of mine.’
  • ‘What!’ said Mr. Bob Sawyer. ‘His name!’ cried Ben Allen. ‘His name!’
  • ‘Mr. Nathaniel Winkle,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • Mr. Benjamin Allen deliberately crushed his spectacles beneath the heel
  • of his boot, and having picked up the pieces, and put them into three
  • separate pockets, folded his arms, bit his lips, and looked in a
  • threatening manner at the bland features of Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Then it’s you, is it, Sir, who have encouraged and brought about this
  • match?’ inquired Mr. Benjamin Allen at length.
  • ‘And it’s this gentleman’s servant, I suppose,’ interrupted the old
  • lady, ‘who has been skulking about my house, and endeavouring to entrap
  • my servants to conspire against their mistress.--Martin!’
  • ‘Well?’ said the surly man, coming forward.
  • ‘Is that the young man you saw in the lane, whom you told me about, this
  • morning?’
  • Mr. Martin, who, as it has already appeared, was a man of few words,
  • looked at Sam Weller, nodded his head, and growled forth, ‘That’s the
  • man.’ Mr. Weller, who was never proud, gave a smile of friendly
  • recognition as his eyes encountered those of the surly groom, and
  • admitted in courteous terms, that he had ‘knowed him afore.’
  • ‘And this is the faithful creature,’ exclaimed Mr. Ben Allen, ‘whom I
  • had nearly suffocated!--Mr. Pickwick, how dare you allow your fellow to
  • be employed in the abduction of my sister? I demand that you explain
  • this matter, sir.’
  • ‘Explain it, sir!’ cried Bob Sawyer fiercely.
  • ‘It’s a conspiracy,’ said Ben Allen.
  • ‘A regular plant,’ added Mr. Bob Sawyer.
  • ‘A disgraceful imposition,’ observed the old lady.
  • ‘Nothing but a do,’ remarked Martin.
  • ‘Pray hear me,’ urged Mr. Pickwick, as Mr. Ben Allen fell into a chair
  • that patients were bled in, and gave way to his pocket-handkerchief. ‘I
  • have rendered no assistance in this matter, beyond being present at one
  • interview between the young people which I could not prevent, and from
  • which I conceived my presence would remove any slight colouring of
  • impropriety that it might otherwise have had; this is the whole share I
  • have had in the transaction, and I had no suspicion that an immediate
  • marriage was even contemplated. Though, mind,’ added Mr. Pickwick,
  • hastily checking himself--‘mind, I do not say I should have prevented
  • it, if I had known that it was intended.’
  • ‘You hear that, all of you; you hear that?’ said Mr. Benjamin Allen.
  • ‘I hope they do,’ mildly observed Mr. Pickwick, looking round, ‘and,’
  • added that gentleman, his colour mounting as he spoke, ‘I hope they hear
  • this, Sir, also. That from what has been stated to me, sir, I assert
  • that you were by no means justified in attempting to force your sister’s
  • inclinations as you did, and that you should rather have endeavoured by
  • your kindness and forbearance to have supplied the place of other nearer
  • relations whom she had never known, from a child. As regards my young
  • friend, I must beg to add, that in every point of worldly advantage he
  • is, at least, on an equal footing with yourself, if not on a much better
  • one, and that unless I hear this question discussed with becoming temper
  • and moderation, I decline hearing any more said upon the subject.’
  • ‘I wish to make a wery few remarks in addition to wot has been put
  • for’ard by the honourable gen’l’m’n as has jist give over,’ said Mr.
  • Weller, stepping forth, ‘wich is this here: a indiwidual in company has
  • called me a feller.’
  • ‘That has nothing whatever to do with the matter, Sam,’ interposed Mr.
  • Pickwick. ‘Pray hold your tongue.’
  • ‘I ain’t a-goin’ to say nothin’ on that ‘ere pint, sir,’ replied Sam,
  • ‘but merely this here. P’raps that gen’l’m’n may think as there wos a
  • priory ‘tachment; but there worn’t nothin’ o’ the sort, for the young
  • lady said in the wery beginnin’ o’ the keepin’ company, that she
  • couldn’t abide him. Nobody’s cut him out, and it ‘ud ha’ been jist the
  • wery same for him if the young lady had never seen Mr. Vinkle. That’s
  • what I wished to say, sir, and I hope I’ve now made that ‘ere
  • gen’l’m’n’s mind easy.
  • A short pause followed these consolatory remarks of Mr. Weller. Then Mr.
  • Ben Allen rising from his chair, protested that he would never see
  • Arabella’s face again; while Mr. Bob Sawyer, despite Sam’s flattering
  • assurance, vowed dreadful vengeance on the happy bridegroom.
  • But, just when matters were at their height, and threatening to remain
  • so, Mr. Pickwick found a powerful assistant in the old lady, who,
  • evidently much struck by the mode in which he had advocated her niece’s
  • cause, ventured to approach Mr. Benjamin Allen with a few comforting
  • reflections, of which the chief were, that after all, perhaps, it was
  • well it was no worse; the least said the soonest mended, and upon her
  • word she did not know that it was so very bad after all; what was over
  • couldn’t be begun, and what couldn’t be cured must be endured; with
  • various other assurances of the like novel and strengthening
  • description. To all of these, Mr. Benjamin Allen replied that he meant
  • no disrespect to his aunt, or anybody there, but if it were all the same
  • to them, and they would allow him to have his own way, he would rather
  • have the pleasure of hating his sister till death, and after it.
  • At length, when this determination had been announced half a hundred
  • times, the old lady suddenly bridling up and looking very majestic,
  • wished to know what she had done that no respect was to be paid to her
  • years or station, and that she should be obliged to beg and pray, in
  • that way, of her own nephew, whom she remembered about five-and-twenty
  • years before he was born, and whom she had known, personally, when he
  • hadn’t a tooth in his head; to say nothing of her presence on the first
  • occasion of his having his hair cut, and assistance at numerous other
  • times and ceremonies during his babyhood, of sufficient importance to
  • found a claim upon his affection, obedience, and sympathies, for ever.
  • While the good lady was bestowing this objurgation on Mr. Ben Allen, Bob
  • Sawyer and Mr. Pickwick had retired in close conversation to the inner
  • room, where Mr. Sawyer was observed to apply himself several times to
  • the mouth of a black bottle, under the influence of which, his features
  • gradually assumed a cheerful and even jovial expression. And at last he
  • emerged from the room, bottle in hand, and, remarking that he was very
  • sorry to say he had been making a fool of himself, begged to propose the
  • health and happiness of Mr. and Mrs. Winkle, whose felicity, so far from
  • envying, he would be the first to congratulate them upon. Hearing this,
  • Mr. Ben Allen suddenly arose from his chair, and, seizing the black
  • bottle, drank the toast so heartily, that, the liquor being strong, he
  • became nearly as black in the face as the bottle. Finally, the black
  • bottle went round till it was empty, and there was so much shaking of
  • hands and interchanging of compliments, that even the metal-visaged Mr.
  • Martin condescended to smile.
  • ‘And now,’ said Bob Sawyer, rubbing his hands, ‘we’ll have a jolly
  • night.’
  • ‘I am sorry,’ said Mr. Pickwick, ‘that I must return to my inn. I have
  • not been accustomed to fatigue lately, and my journey has tired me
  • exceedingly.’
  • ‘You’ll take some tea, Mr. Pickwick?’ said the old lady, with
  • irresistible sweetness.
  • ‘Thank you, I would rather not,’ replied that gentleman. The truth is,
  • that the old lady’s evidently increasing admiration was Mr. Pickwick’s
  • principal inducement for going away. He thought of Mrs. Bardell; and
  • every glance of the old lady’s eyes threw him into a cold perspiration.
  • As Mr. Pickwick could by no means be prevailed upon to stay, it was
  • arranged at once, on his own proposition, that Mr. Benjamin Allen should
  • accompany him on his journey to the elder Mr. Winkle’s, and that the
  • coach should be at the door, at nine o’clock next morning. He then took
  • his leave, and, followed by Samuel Weller, repaired to the Bush. It is
  • worthy of remark, that Mr. Martin’s face was horribly convulsed as he
  • shook hands with Sam at parting, and that he gave vent to a smile and an
  • oath simultaneously; from which tokens it has been inferred by those who
  • were best acquainted with that gentleman’s peculiarities, that he
  • expressed himself much pleased with Mr. Weller’s society, and requested
  • the honour of his further acquaintance.
  • ‘Shall I order a private room, Sir?’ inquired Sam, when they reached the
  • Bush.
  • ‘Why, no, Sam,’ replied Mr. Pickwick; ‘as I dined in the coffee-room,
  • and shall go to bed soon, it is hardly worth while. See who there is in
  • the travellers’ room, Sam.’
  • Mr. Weller departed on his errand, and presently returned to say that
  • there was only a gentleman with one eye; and that he and the landlord
  • were drinking a bowl of bishop together.
  • ‘I will join them,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘He’s a queer customer, the vun-eyed vun, sir,’ observed Mr. Weller, as
  • he led the way. ‘He’s a-gammonin’ that ‘ere landlord, he is, sir, till
  • he don’t rightly know wether he’s a-standing on the soles of his boots
  • or the crown of his hat.’
  • The individual to whom this observation referred, was sitting at the
  • upper end of the room when Mr. Pickwick entered, and was smoking a large
  • Dutch pipe, with his eye intently fixed on the round face of the
  • landlord; a jolly-looking old personage, to whom he had recently been
  • relating some tale of wonder, as was testified by sundry disjointed
  • exclamations of, ‘Well, I wouldn’t have believed it! The strangest thing
  • I ever heard! Couldn’t have supposed it possible!’ and other expressions
  • of astonishment which burst spontaneously from his lips, as he returned
  • the fixed gaze of the one-eyed man.
  • ‘Servant, sir,’ said the one-eyed man to Mr. Pickwick. ‘Fine night,
  • sir.’
  • ‘Very much so indeed,’ replied Mr. Pickwick, as the waiter placed a
  • small decanter of brandy, and some hot water before him.
  • While Mr. Pickwick was mixing his brandy-and-water, the one-eyed man
  • looked round at him earnestly, from time to time, and at length said--
  • ‘I think I’ve seen you before.’
  • ‘I don’t recollect you,’ rejoined Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘I dare say not,’ said the one-eyed man. ‘You didn’t know me, but I knew
  • two friends of yours that were stopping at the Peacock at Eatanswill, at
  • the time of the election.’
  • ‘Oh, indeed!’ exclaimed Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Yes,’ rejoined the one-eyed man. ‘I mentioned a little circumstance to
  • them about a friend of mine of the name of Tom Smart. Perhaps you’ve
  • heard them speak of it.’
  • ‘Often,’ rejoined Mr. Pickwick, smiling. ‘He was your uncle, I think?’
  • ‘No, no; only a friend of my uncle’s,’ replied the one-eyed man.
  • ‘He was a wonderful man, that uncle of yours, though,’ remarked the
  • landlord shaking his head.
  • ‘Well, I think he was; I think I may say he was,’ answered the one-eyed
  • man. ‘I could tell you a story about that same uncle, gentlemen, that
  • would rather surprise you.’
  • ‘Could you?’ said Mr. Pickwick. ‘Let us hear it, by all means.’
  • The one-eyed bagman ladled out a glass of negus from the bowl, and drank
  • it; smoked a long whiff out of the Dutch pipe; and then, calling to Sam
  • Weller who was lingering near the door, that he needn’t go away unless
  • he wanted to, because the story was no secret, fixed his eye upon the
  • landlord’s, and proceeded, in the words of the next chapter.
  • CHAPTER XLIX. CONTAINING THE STORY OF THE BAGMAN’S UNCLE
  • My uncle, gentlemen,’ said the bagman, ‘was one of the merriest,
  • pleasantest, cleverest fellows, that ever lived. I wish you had known
  • him, gentlemen. On second thoughts, gentlemen, I don’t wish you had
  • known him, for if you had, you would have been all, by this time, in the
  • ordinary course of nature, if not dead, at all events so near it, as to
  • have taken to stopping at home and giving up company, which would have
  • deprived me of the inestimable pleasure of addressing you at this
  • moment. Gentlemen, I wish your fathers and mothers had known my uncle.
  • They would have been amazingly fond of him, especially your respectable
  • mothers; I know they would. If any two of his numerous virtues
  • predominated over the many that adorned his character, I should say they
  • were his mixed punch and his after-supper song. Excuse my dwelling on
  • these melancholy recollections of departed worth; you won’t see a man
  • like my uncle every day in the week.
  • ‘I have always considered it a great point in my uncle’s character,
  • gentlemen, that he was the intimate friend and companion of Tom Smart,
  • of the great house of Bilson and Slum, Cateaton Street, City. My uncle
  • collected for Tiggin and Welps, but for a long time he went pretty near
  • the same journey as Tom; and the very first night they met, my uncle
  • took a fancy for Tom, and Tom took a fancy for my uncle. They made a bet
  • of a new hat before they had known each other half an hour, who should
  • brew the best quart of punch and drink it the quickest. My uncle was
  • judged to have won the making, but Tom Smart beat him in the drinking by
  • about half a salt-spoonful. They took another quart apiece to drink each
  • other’s health in, and were staunch friends ever afterwards. There’s a
  • destiny in these things, gentlemen; we can’t help it.
  • ‘In personal appearance, my uncle was a trifle shorter than the middle
  • size; he was a thought stouter too, than the ordinary run of people, and
  • perhaps his face might be a shade redder. He had the jolliest face you
  • ever saw, gentleman: something like Punch, with a handsome nose and
  • chin; his eyes were always twinkling and sparkling with good-humour; and
  • a smile--not one of your unmeaning wooden grins, but a real, merry,
  • hearty, good-tempered smile--was perpetually on his countenance. He was
  • pitched out of his gig once, and knocked, head first, against a
  • milestone. There he lay, stunned, and so cut about the face with some
  • gravel which had been heaped up alongside it, that, to use my uncle’s
  • own strong expression, if his mother could have revisited the earth, she
  • wouldn’t have known him. Indeed, when I come to think of the matter,
  • gentlemen, I feel pretty sure she wouldn’t, for she died when my uncle
  • was two years and seven months old, and I think it’s very likely that,
  • even without the gravel, his top-boots would have puzzled the good lady
  • not a little; to say nothing of his jolly red face. However, there he
  • lay, and I have heard my uncle say, many a time, that the man said who
  • picked him up that he was smiling as merrily as if he had tumbled out
  • for a treat, and that after they had bled him, the first faint
  • glimmerings of returning animation, were his jumping up in bed, bursting
  • out into a loud laugh, kissing the young woman who held the basin, and
  • demanding a mutton chop and a pickled walnut. He was very fond of
  • pickled walnuts, gentlemen. He said he always found that, taken without
  • vinegar, they relished the beer.
  • ‘My uncle’s great journey was in the fall of the leaf, at which time he
  • collected debts, and took orders, in the north; going from London to
  • Edinburgh, from Edinburgh to Glasgow, from Glasgow back to Edinburgh,
  • and thence to London by the smack. You are to understand that his second
  • visit to Edinburgh was for his own pleasure. He used to go back for a
  • week, just to look up his old friends; and what with breakfasting with
  • this one, lunching with that, dining with the third, and supping with
  • another, a pretty tight week he used to make of it. I don’t know whether
  • any of you, gentlemen, ever partook of a real substantial hospitable
  • Scotch breakfast, and then went out to a slight lunch of a bushel of
  • oysters, a dozen or so of bottled ale, and a noggin or two of whiskey to
  • close up with. If you ever did, you will agree with me that it requires
  • a pretty strong head to go out to dinner and supper afterwards.
  • ‘But bless your hearts and eyebrows, all this sort of thing was nothing
  • to my uncle! He was so well seasoned, that it was mere child’s play. I
  • have heard him say that he could see the Dundee people out, any day, and
  • walk home afterwards without staggering; and yet the Dundee people have
  • as strong heads and as strong punch, gentlemen, as you are likely to
  • meet with, between the poles. I have heard of a Glasgow man and a Dundee
  • man drinking against each other for fifteen hours at a sitting. They
  • were both suffocated, as nearly as could be ascertained, at the same
  • moment, but with this trifling exception, gentlemen, they were not a bit
  • the worse for it.
  • ‘One night, within four-and-twenty hours of the time when he had settled
  • to take shipping for London, my uncle supped at the house of a very old
  • friend of his, a Bailie Mac something and four syllables after it, who
  • lived in the old town of Edinburgh. There were the bailie’s wife, and
  • the bailie’s three daughters, and the bailie’s grown-up son, and three
  • or four stout, bushy eye-browed, canny, old Scotch fellows, that the
  • bailie had got together to do honour to my uncle, and help to make
  • merry. It was a glorious supper. There was kippered salmon, and Finnan
  • haddocks, and a lamb’s head, and a haggis--a celebrated Scotch dish,
  • gentlemen, which my uncle used to say always looked to him, when it came
  • to table, very much like a Cupid’s stomach--and a great many other
  • things besides, that I forget the names of, but very good things,
  • notwithstanding. The lassies were pretty and agreeable; the bailie’s
  • wife was one of the best creatures that ever lived; and my uncle was in
  • thoroughly good cue. The consequence of which was, that the young ladies
  • tittered and giggled, and the old lady laughed out loud, and the bailie
  • and the other old fellows roared till they were red in the face, the
  • whole mortal time. I don’t quite recollect how many tumblers of whiskey-
  • toddy each man drank after supper; but this I know, that about one
  • o’clock in the morning, the bailie’s grown-up son became insensible
  • while attempting the first verse of “Willie brewed a peck o’ maut”; and
  • he having been, for half an hour before, the only other man visible
  • above the mahogany, it occurred to my uncle that it was almost time to
  • think about going, especially as drinking had set in at seven o’clock,
  • in order that he might get home at a decent hour. But, thinking it might
  • not be quite polite to go just then, my uncle voted himself into the
  • chair, mixed another glass, rose to propose his own health, addressed
  • himself in a neat and complimentary speech, and drank the toast with
  • great enthusiasm. Still nobody woke; so my uncle took a little drop
  • more--neat this time, to prevent the toddy from disagreeing with him--
  • and, laying violent hands on his hat, sallied forth into the street.
  • ‘It was a wild, gusty night when my uncle closed the bailie’s door, and
  • settling his hat firmly on his head to prevent the wind from taking it,
  • thrust his hands into his pockets, and looking upward, took a short
  • survey of the state of the weather. The clouds were drifting over the
  • moon at their giddiest speed; at one time wholly obscuring her; at
  • another, suffering her to burst forth in full splendour and shed her
  • light on all the objects around; anon, driving over her again, with
  • increased velocity, and shrouding everything in darkness. “Really, this
  • won’t do,” said my uncle, addressing himself to the weather, as if he
  • felt himself personally offended. “This is not at all the kind of thing
  • for my voyage. It will not do at any price,” said my uncle, very
  • impressively. Having repeated this, several times, he recovered his
  • balance with some difficulty--for he was rather giddy with looking up
  • into the sky so long--and walked merrily on.
  • ‘The bailie’s house was in the Canongate, and my uncle was going to the
  • other end of Leith Walk, rather better than a mile’s journey. On either
  • side of him, there shot up against the dark sky, tall, gaunt, straggling
  • houses, with time-stained fronts, and windows that seemed to have shared
  • the lot of eyes in mortals, and to have grown dim and sunken with age.
  • Six, seven, eight storey high, were the houses; storey piled upon
  • storey, as children build with cards--throwing their dark shadows over
  • the roughly paved road, and making the dark night darker. A few oil
  • lamps were scattered at long distances, but they only served to mark the
  • dirty entrance to some narrow close, or to show where a common stair
  • communicated, by steep and intricate windings, with the various flats
  • above. Glancing at all these things with the air of a man who had seen
  • them too often before, to think them worthy of much notice now, my uncle
  • walked up the middle of the street, with a thumb in each waistcoat
  • pocket, indulging from time to time in various snatches of song, chanted
  • forth with such good-will and spirit, that the quiet honest folk started
  • from their first sleep and lay trembling in bed till the sound died away
  • in the distance; when, satisfying themselves that it was only some
  • drunken ne’er-do-weel finding his way home, they covered themselves up
  • warm and fell asleep again.
  • ‘I am particular in describing how my uncle walked up the middle of the
  • street, with his thumbs in his waistcoat pockets, gentlemen, because, as
  • he often used to say (and with great reason too) there is nothing at all
  • extraordinary in this story, unless you distinctly understand at the
  • beginning, that he was not by any means of a marvellous or romantic
  • turn.
  • ‘Gentlemen, my uncle walked on with his thumbs in his waistcoat pockets,
  • taking the middle of the street to himself, and singing, now a verse of
  • a love song, and then a verse of a drinking one, and when he was tired
  • of both, whistling melodiously, until he reached the North Bridge,
  • which, at this point, connects the old and new towns of Edinburgh. Here
  • he stopped for a minute, to look at the strange, irregular clusters of
  • lights piled one above the other, and twinkling afar off so high, that
  • they looked like stars, gleaming from the castle walls on the one side
  • and the Calton Hill on the other, as if they illuminated veritable
  • castles in the air; while the old picturesque town slept heavily on, in
  • gloom and darkness below: its palace and chapel of Holyrood, guarded day
  • and night, as a friend of my uncle’s used to say, by old Arthur’s Seat,
  • towering, surly and dark, like some gruff genius, over the ancient city
  • he has watched so long. I say, gentlemen, my uncle stopped here, for a
  • minute, to look about him; and then, paying a compliment to the weather,
  • which had a little cleared up, though the moon was sinking, walked on
  • again, as royally as before; keeping the middle of the road with great
  • dignity, and looking as if he would very much like to meet with somebody
  • who would dispute possession of it with him. There was nobody at all
  • disposed to contest the point, as it happened; and so, on he went, with
  • his thumbs in his waistcoat pockets, like a lamb.
  • ‘When my uncle reached the end of Leith Walk, he had to cross a pretty
  • large piece of waste ground which separated him from a short street
  • which he had to turn down to go direct to his lodging. Now, in this
  • piece of waste ground, there was, at that time, an enclosure belonging
  • to some wheelwright who contracted with the Post Office for the purchase
  • of old, worn-out mail coaches; and my uncle, being very fond of coaches,
  • old, young, or middle-aged, all at once took it into his head to step
  • out of his road for no other purpose than to peep between the palings at
  • these mails--about a dozen of which he remembered to have seen, crowded
  • together in a very forlorn and dismantled state, inside. My uncle was a
  • very enthusiastic, emphatic sort of person, gentlemen; so, finding that
  • he could not obtain a good peep between the palings he got over them,
  • and sitting himself quietly down on an old axle-tree, began to
  • contemplate the mail coaches with a deal of gravity.
  • ‘There might be a dozen of them, or there might be more--my uncle was
  • never quite certain on this point, and being a man of very scrupulous
  • veracity about numbers, didn’t like to say--but there they stood, all
  • huddled together in the most desolate condition imaginable. The doors
  • had been torn from their hinges and removed; the linings had been
  • stripped off, only a shred hanging here and there by a rusty nail; the
  • lamps were gone, the poles had long since vanished, the ironwork was
  • rusty, the paint was worn away; the wind whistled through the chinks in
  • the bare woodwork; and the rain, which had collected on the roofs, fell,
  • drop by drop, into the insides with a hollow and melancholy sound. They
  • were the decaying skeletons of departed mails, and in that lonely place,
  • at that time of night, they looked chill and dismal.
  • ‘My uncle rested his head upon his hands, and thought of the busy,
  • bustling people who had rattled about, years before, in the old coaches,
  • and were now as silent and changed; he thought of the numbers of people
  • to whom one of these crazy, mouldering vehicles had borne, night after
  • night, for many years, and through all weathers, the anxiously expected
  • intelligence, the eagerly looked-for remittance, the promised assurance
  • of health and safety, the sudden announcement of sickness and death. The
  • merchant, the lover, the wife, the widow, the mother, the school-boy,
  • the very child who tottered to the door at the postman’s knock--how had
  • they all looked forward to the arrival of the old coach. And where were
  • they all now?
  • ‘Gentlemen, my uncle used to _say _that he thought all this at the time,
  • but I rather suspect he learned it out of some book afterwards, for he
  • distinctly stated that he fell into a kind of doze, as he sat on the old
  • axle-tree looking at the decayed mail coaches, and that he was suddenly
  • awakened by some deep church bell striking two. Now, my uncle was never
  • a fast thinker, and if he had thought all these things, I am quite
  • certain it would have taken him till full half-past two o’clock at the
  • very least. I am, therefore, decidedly of opinion, gentlemen, that my
  • uncle fell into a kind of doze, without having thought about anything at
  • all.
  • ‘Be this as it may, a church bell struck two. My uncle woke, rubbed his
  • eyes, and jumped up in astonishment.
  • ‘In one instant, after the clock struck two, the whole of this deserted
  • and quiet spot had become a scene of most extraordinary life and
  • animation. The mail coach doors were on their hinges, the lining was
  • replaced, the ironwork was as good as new, the paint was restored, the
  • lamps were alight; cushions and greatcoats were on every coach-box,
  • porters were thrusting parcels into every boot, guards were stowing away
  • letter-bags, hostlers were dashing pails of water against the renovated
  • wheels; numbers of men were pushing about, fixing poles into every
  • coach; passengers arrived, portmanteaus were handed up, horses were put
  • to; in short, it was perfectly clear that every mail there, was to be
  • off directly. Gentlemen, my uncle opened his eyes so wide at all this,
  • that, to the very last moment of his life, he used to wonder how it fell
  • out that he had ever been able to shut ‘em again.
  • ‘“Now then!” said a voice, as my uncle felt a hand on his shoulder,
  • “you’re booked for one inside. You’d better get in.”
  • ‘“I booked!” said my uncle, turning round.
  • ‘“Yes, certainly.”
  • ‘My uncle, gentlemen, could say nothing, he was so very much astonished.
  • The queerest thing of all was that although there was such a crowd of
  • persons, and although fresh faces were pouring in, every moment, there
  • was no telling where they came from. They seemed to start up, in some
  • strange manner, from the ground, or the air, and disappear in the same
  • way. When a porter had put his luggage in the coach, and received his
  • fare, he turned round and was gone; and before my uncle had well begun
  • to wonder what had become of him, half a dozen fresh ones started up,
  • and staggered along under the weight of parcels, which seemed big enough
  • to crush them. The passengers were all dressed so oddly too! Large,
  • broad-skirted laced coats, with great cuffs and no collars; and wigs,
  • gentlemen--great formal wigs with a tie behind. My uncle could make
  • nothing of it.
  • ‘“Now, are you going to get in?” said the person who had addressed my
  • uncle before. He was dressed as a mail guard, with a wig on his head and
  • most enormous cuffs to his coat, and had a lantern in one hand, and a
  • huge blunderbuss in the other, which he was going to stow away in his
  • little arm-chest. “_are _you going to get in, Jack Martin?” said the
  • guard, holding the lantern to my uncle’s face.
  • ‘“Hollo!” said my uncle, falling back a step or two. “That’s familiar!”
  • ‘“It’s so on the way-bill,” said the guard.
  • ‘“Isn’t there a ‘Mister’ before it?” said my uncle. For he felt,
  • gentlemen, that for a guard he didn’t know, to call him Jack Martin, was
  • a liberty which the Post Office wouldn’t have sanctioned if they had
  • known it.
  • ‘“No, there is not,” rejoined the guard coolly.
  • ‘“Is the fare paid?” inquired my uncle.
  • ‘“Of course it is,” rejoined the guard.
  • ‘“It is, is it?” said my uncle. “Then here goes! Which coach?”
  • ‘“This,” said the guard, pointing to an old-fashioned Edinburgh and
  • London mail, which had the steps down and the door open. “Stop! Here are
  • the other passengers. Let them get in first.”
  • ‘As the guard spoke, there all at once appeared, right in front of my
  • uncle, a young gentleman in a powdered wig, and a sky-blue coat trimmed
  • with silver, made very full and broad in the skirts, which were lined
  • with buckram. Tiggin and Welps were in the printed calico and waistcoat
  • piece line, gentlemen, so my uncle knew all the materials at once. He
  • wore knee breeches, and a kind of leggings rolled up over his silk
  • stockings, and shoes with buckles; he had ruffles at his wrists, a
  • three-cornered hat on his head, and a long taper sword by his side. The
  • flaps of his waist-coat came half-way down his thighs, and the ends of
  • his cravat reached to his waist. He stalked gravely to the coach door,
  • pulled off his hat, and held it above his head at arm’s length, cocking
  • his little finger in the air at the same time, as some affected people
  • do, when they take a cup of tea. Then he drew his feet together, and
  • made a low, grave bow, and then put out his left hand. My uncle was just
  • going to step forward, and shake it heartily, when he perceived that
  • these attentions were directed, not towards him, but to a young lady who
  • just then appeared at the foot of the steps, attired in an old-fashioned
  • green velvet dress with a long waist and stomacher. She had no bonnet on
  • her head, gentlemen, which was muffled in a black silk hood, but she
  • looked round for an instant as she prepared to get into the coach, and
  • such a beautiful face as she disclosed, my uncle had never seen--not
  • even in a picture. She got into the coach, holding up her dress with one
  • hand; and as my uncle always said with a round oath, when he told the
  • story, he wouldn’t have believed it possible that legs and feet could
  • have been brought to such a state of perfection unless he had seen them
  • with his own eyes.
  • ‘But, in this one glimpse of the beautiful face, my uncle saw that the
  • young lady cast an imploring look upon him, and that she appeared
  • terrified and distressed. He noticed, too, that the young fellow in the
  • powdered wig, notwithstanding his show of gallantry, which was all very
  • fine and grand, clasped her tight by the wrist when she got in, and
  • followed himself immediately afterwards. An uncommonly ill-looking
  • fellow, in a close brown wig, and a plum-coloured suit, wearing a very
  • large sword, and boots up to his hips, belonged to the party; and when
  • he sat himself down next to the young lady, who shrank into a corner at
  • his approach, my uncle was confirmed in his original impression that
  • something dark and mysterious was going forward, or, as he always said
  • himself, that “there was a screw loose somewhere.” It’s quite surprising
  • how quickly he made up his mind to help the lady at any peril, if she
  • needed any help.
  • ‘“Death and lightning!” exclaimed the young gentleman, laying his hand
  • upon his sword as my uncle entered the coach.
  • ‘“Blood and thunder!” roared the other gentleman. With this, he whipped
  • his sword out, and made a lunge at my uncle without further ceremony. My
  • uncle had no weapon about him, but with great dexterity he snatched the
  • ill-looking gentleman’s three-cornered hat from his head, and, receiving
  • the point of his sword right through the crown, squeezed the sides
  • together, and held it tight.
  • ‘“Pink him behind!” cried the ill-looking gentleman to his companion, as
  • he struggled to regain his sword.
  • ‘“He had better not,” cried my uncle, displaying the heel of one of his
  • shoes, in a threatening manner. “I’ll kick his brains out, if he has
  • any--, or fracture his skull if he hasn’t.” Exerting all his strength,
  • at this moment, my uncle wrenched the ill-looking man’s sword from his
  • grasp, and flung it clean out of the coach window, upon which the
  • younger gentleman vociferated, “Death and lightning!” again, and laid
  • his hand upon the hilt of his sword, in a very fierce manner, but didn’t
  • draw it. Perhaps, gentlemen, as my uncle used to say with a smile,
  • perhaps he was afraid of alarming the lady.
  • ‘“Now, gentlemen,” said my uncle, taking his seat deliberately, “I don’t
  • want to have any death, with or without lightning, in a lady’s presence,
  • and we have had quite blood and thundering enough for one journey; so,
  • if you please, we’ll sit in our places like quiet insides. Here, guard,
  • pick up that gentleman’s carving-knife.”
  • ‘As quickly as my uncle said the words, the guard appeared at the coach
  • window, with the gentleman’s sword in his hand. He held up his lantern,
  • and looked earnestly in my uncle’s face, as he handed it in, when, by
  • its light, my uncle saw, to his great surprise, that an immense crowd of
  • mail-coach guards swarmed round the window, every one of whom had his
  • eyes earnestly fixed upon him too. He had never seen such a sea of white
  • faces, red bodies, and earnest eyes, in all his born days.
  • ‘“This is the strangest sort of thing I ever had anything to do with,”
  • thought my uncle; “allow me to return you your hat, sir.”
  • ‘The ill-looking gentleman received his three-cornered hat in silence,
  • looked at the hole in the middle with an inquiring air, and finally
  • stuck it on the top of his wig with a solemnity the effect of which was
  • a trifle impaired by his sneezing violently at the moment, and jerking
  • it off again.
  • ‘“All right!” cried the guard with the lantern, mounting into his little
  • seat behind. Away they went. My uncle peeped out of the coach window as
  • they emerged from the yard, and observed that the other mails, with
  • coachmen, guards, horses, and passengers, complete, were driving round
  • and round in circles, at a slow trot of about five miles an hour. My
  • uncle burned with indignation, gentlemen. As a commercial man, he felt
  • that the mail-bags were not to be trifled with, and he resolved to
  • memorialise the Post Office on the subject, the very instant he reached
  • London.
  • ‘At present, however, his thoughts were occupied with the young lady who
  • sat in the farthest corner of the coach, with her face muffled closely
  • in her hood; the gentleman with the sky-blue coat sitting opposite to
  • her; the other man in the plum-coloured suit, by her side; and both
  • watching her intently. If she so much as rustled the folds of her hood,
  • he could hear the ill-looking man clap his hand upon his sword, and
  • could tell by the other’s breathing (it was so dark he couldn’t see his
  • face) that he was looking as big as if he were going to devour her at a
  • mouthful. This roused my uncle more and more, and he resolved, come what
  • might, to see the end of it. He had a great admiration for bright eyes,
  • and sweet faces, and pretty legs and feet; in short, he was fond of the
  • whole sex. It runs in our family, gentleman--so am I.
  • ‘Many were the devices which my uncle practised, to attract the lady’s
  • attention, or at all events, to engage the mysterious gentlemen in
  • conversation. They were all in vain; the gentlemen wouldn’t talk, and
  • the lady didn’t dare. He thrust his head out of the coach window at
  • intervals, and bawled out to know why they didn’t go faster. But he
  • called till he was hoarse; nobody paid the least attention to him. He
  • leaned back in the coach, and thought of the beautiful face, and the
  • feet and legs. This answered better; it whiled away the time, and kept
  • him from wondering where he was going, and how it was that he found
  • himself in such an odd situation. Not that this would have worried him
  • much, anyway--he was a mighty free and easy, roving, devil-may-care sort
  • of person, was my uncle, gentlemen.
  • ‘All of a sudden the coach stopped. “Hollo!” said my uncle, “what’s in
  • the wind now?”
  • ‘“Alight here,” said the guard, letting down the steps.
  • ‘“Here!” cried my uncle.
  • ‘“Here,” rejoined the guard.
  • ‘“I’ll do nothing of the sort,” said my uncle.
  • ‘“Very well, then stop where you are,” said the guard.
  • ‘“I will,” said my uncle.
  • ‘“Do,” said the guard.
  • ‘The passengers had regarded this colloquy with great attention, and,
  • finding that my uncle was determined not to alight, the younger man
  • squeezed past him, to hand the lady out. At this moment, the ill-looking
  • man was inspecting the hole in the crown of his three-cornered hat. As
  • the young lady brushed past, she dropped one of her gloves into my
  • uncle’s hand, and softly whispered, with her lips so close to his face
  • that he felt her warm breath on his nose, the single word “Help!”
  • Gentlemen, my uncle leaped out of the coach at once, with such violence
  • that it rocked on the springs again.
  • ‘“Oh! you’ve thought better of it, have you?” said the guard, when he
  • saw my uncle standing on the ground.
  • ‘My uncle looked at the guard for a few seconds, in some doubt whether
  • it wouldn’t be better to wrench his blunderbuss from him, fire it in the
  • face of the man with the big sword, knock the rest of the company over
  • the head with the stock, snatch up the young lady, and go off in the
  • smoke. On second thoughts, however, he abandoned this plan, as being a
  • shade too melodramatic in the execution, and followed the two mysterious
  • men, who, keeping the lady between them, were now entering an old house
  • in front of which the coach had stopped. They turned into the passage,
  • and my uncle followed.
  • ‘Of all the ruinous and desolate places my uncle had ever beheld, this
  • was the most so. It looked as if it had once been a large house of
  • entertainment; but the roof had fallen in, in many places, and the
  • stairs were steep, rugged, and broken. There was a huge fireplace in the
  • room into which they walked, and the chimney was blackened with smoke;
  • but no warm blaze lighted it up now. The white feathery dust of burned
  • wood was still strewed over the hearth, but the stove was cold, and all
  • was dark and gloomy.
  • ‘“Well,” said my uncle, as he looked about him, “a mail travelling at
  • the rate of six miles and a half an hour, and stopping for an indefinite
  • time at such a hole as this, is rather an irregular sort of proceeding,
  • I fancy. This shall be made known. I’ll write to the papers.”
  • ‘My uncle said this in a pretty loud voice, and in an open, unreserved
  • sort of manner, with the view of engaging the two strangers in
  • conversation if he could. But, neither of them took any more notice of
  • him than whispering to each other, and scowling at him as they did so.
  • The lady was at the farther end of the room, and once she ventured to
  • wave her hand, as if beseeching my uncle’s assistance.
  • ‘At length the two strangers advanced a little, and the conversation
  • began in earnest.
  • ‘“You don’t know this is a private room, I suppose, fellow?” said the
  • gentleman in sky-blue.
  • ‘“No, I do not, fellow,” rejoined my uncle. “Only, if this is a private
  • room specially ordered for the occasion, I should think the public room
  • must be a _very _comfortable one;” with this, my uncle sat himself down
  • in a high-backed chair, and took such an accurate measure of the
  • gentleman, with his eyes, that Tiggin and Welps could have supplied him
  • with printed calico for a suit, and not an inch too much or too little,
  • from that estimate alone.
  • ‘“Quit this room,” said both men together, grasping their swords.
  • ‘“Eh?” said my uncle, not at all appearing to comprehend their meaning.
  • ‘“Quit the room, or you are a dead man,” said the ill-looking fellow
  • with the large sword, drawing it at the same time and flourishing it in
  • the air.
  • ‘“Down with him!” cried the gentleman in sky-blue, drawing his sword
  • also, and falling back two or three yards. “Down with him!” The lady
  • gave a loud scream.
  • ‘Now, my uncle was always remarkable for great boldness, and great
  • presence of mind. All the time that he had appeared so indifferent to
  • what was going on, he had been looking slily about for some missile or
  • weapon of defence, and at the very instant when the swords were drawn,
  • he espied, standing in the chimney-corner, an old basket-hilted rapier
  • in a rusty scabbard. At one bound, my uncle caught it in his hand, drew
  • it, flourished it gallantly above his head, called aloud to the lady to
  • keep out of the way, hurled the chair at the man in sky-blue, and the
  • scabbard at the man in plum-colour, and taking advantage of the
  • confusion, fell upon them both, pell-mell.
  • ‘Gentlemen, there is an old story--none the worse for being true--
  • regarding a fine young Irish gentleman, who being asked if he could play
  • the fiddle, replied he had no doubt he could, but he couldn’t exactly
  • say, for certain, because he had never tried. This is not inapplicable
  • to my uncle and his fencing. He had never had a sword in his hand
  • before, except once when he played Richard the Third at a private
  • theatre, upon which occasion it was arranged with Richmond that he was
  • to be run through, from behind, without showing fight at all. But here
  • he was, cutting and slashing with two experienced swordsman, thrusting,
  • and guarding, and poking, and slicing, and acquitting himself in the
  • most manful and dexterous manner possible, although up to that time he
  • had never been aware that he had the least notion of the science. It
  • only shows how true the old saying is, that a man never knows what he
  • can do till he tries, gentlemen.
  • ‘The noise of the combat was terrific; each of the three combatants
  • swearing like troopers, and their swords clashing with as much noise as
  • if all the knives and steels in Newport market were rattling together,
  • at the same time. When it was at its very height, the lady (to encourage
  • my uncle most probably) withdrew her hood entirely from her face, and
  • disclosed a countenance of such dazzling beauty, that he would have
  • fought against fifty men, to win one smile from it and die. He had done
  • wonders before, but now he began to powder away like a raving mad giant.
  • ‘At this very moment, the gentleman in sky-blue turning round, and
  • seeing the young lady with her face uncovered, vented an exclamation of
  • rage and jealousy, and, turning his weapon against her beautiful bosom,
  • pointed a thrust at her heart, which caused my uncle to utter a cry of
  • apprehension that made the building ring. The lady stepped lightly
  • aside, and snatching the young man’s sword from his hand, before he had
  • recovered his balance, drove him to the wall, and running it through
  • him, and the panelling, up to the very hilt, pinned him there, hard and
  • fast. It was a splendid example. My uncle, with a loud shout of triumph,
  • and a strength that was irresistible, made his adversary retreat in the
  • same direction, and plunging the old rapier into the very centre of a
  • large red flower in the pattern of his waistcoat, nailed him beside his
  • friend; there they both stood, gentlemen, jerking their arms and legs
  • about in agony, like the toy-shop figures that are moved by a piece of
  • pack-thread. My uncle always said, afterwards, that this was one of the
  • surest means he knew of, for disposing of an enemy; but it was liable to
  • one objection on the ground of expense, inasmuch as it involved the loss
  • of a sword for every man disabled.
  • ‘“The mail, the mail!” cried the lady, running up to my uncle and
  • throwing her beautiful arms round his neck; “we may yet escape.”
  • ‘“May!” cried my uncle; “why, my dear, there’s nobody else to kill, is
  • there?” My uncle was rather disappointed, gentlemen, for he thought a
  • little quiet bit of love-making would be agreeable after the
  • slaughtering, if it were only to change the subject.
  • ‘“We have not an instant to lose here,” said the young lady. “He
  • (pointing to the young gentleman in sky-blue) is the only son of the
  • powerful Marquess of Filletoville.”
  • ‘“Well then, my dear, I’m afraid he’ll never come to the title,” said my
  • uncle, looking coolly at the young gentleman as he stood fixed up
  • against the wall, in the cockchafer fashion that I have described. “You
  • have cut off the entail, my love.”
  • ‘“I have been torn from my home and my friends by these villains,” said
  • the young lady, her features glowing with indignation. “That wretch
  • would have married me by violence in another hour.”
  • ‘“Confound his impudence!” said my uncle, bestowing a very contemptuous
  • look on the dying heir of Filletoville.
  • ‘“As you may guess from what you have seen,” said the young lady, “the
  • party were prepared to murder me if I appealed to any one for
  • assistance. If their accomplices find us here, we are lost. Two minutes
  • hence may be too late. The mail!” With these words, overpowered by her
  • feelings, and the exertion of sticking the young Marquess of
  • Filletoville, she sank into my uncle’s arms. My uncle caught her up, and
  • bore her to the house door. There stood the mail, with four long-tailed,
  • flowing-maned, black horses, ready harnessed; but no coachman, no guard,
  • no hostler even, at the horses’ heads.
  • ‘Gentlemen, I hope I do no injustice to my uncle’s memory, when I
  • express my opinion, that although he was a bachelor, he had held some
  • ladies in his arms before this time; I believe, indeed, that he had
  • rather a habit of kissing barmaids; and I know, that in one or two
  • instances, he had been seen by credible witnesses, to hug a landlady in
  • a very perceptible manner. I mention the circumstance, to show what a
  • very uncommon sort of person this beautiful young lady must have been,
  • to have affected my uncle in the way she did; he used to say, that as
  • her long dark hair trailed over his arm, and her beautiful dark eyes
  • fixed themselves upon his face when she recovered, he felt so strange
  • and nervous that his legs trembled beneath him. But who can look in a
  • sweet, soft pair of dark eyes, without feeling queer? I can’t,
  • gentlemen. I am afraid to look at some eyes I know, and that’s the truth
  • of it.
  • ‘“You will never leave me,” murmured the young lady.
  • ‘“Never,” said my uncle. And he meant it too.
  • ‘“My dear preserver!” exclaimed the young lady. “My dear, kind, brave
  • preserver!”
  • ‘“Don’t,” said my uncle, interrupting her.
  • ‘“‘Why?” inquired the young lady.
  • ‘“Because your mouth looks so beautiful when you speak,” rejoined my
  • uncle, “that I’m afraid I shall be rude enough to kiss it.”
  • ‘The young lady put up her hand as if to caution my uncle not to do so,
  • and said--No, she didn’t say anything--she smiled. When you are looking
  • at a pair of the most delicious lips in the world, and see them gently
  • break into a roguish smile--if you are very near them, and nobody else
  • by--you cannot better testify your admiration of their beautiful form
  • and colour than by kissing them at once. My uncle did so, and I honour
  • him for it.
  • ‘“Hark!” cried the young lady, starting. “The noise of wheels, and
  • horses!”
  • ‘“So it is,” said my uncle, listening. He had a good ear for wheels, and
  • the trampling of hoofs; but there appeared to be so many horses and
  • carriages rattling towards them, from a distance, that it was impossible
  • to form a guess at their number. The sound was like that of fifty
  • brakes, with six blood cattle in each.
  • ‘“We are pursued!” cried the young lady, clasping her hands. “We are
  • pursued. I have no hope but in you!”
  • ‘There was such an expression of terror in her beautiful face, that my
  • uncle made up his mind at once. He lifted her into the coach, told her
  • not to be frightened, pressed his lips to hers once more, and then
  • advising her to draw up the window to keep the cold air out, mounted to
  • the box.
  • ‘“Stay, love,” cried the young lady.
  • ‘“What’s the matter?” said my uncle, from the coach-box.
  • ‘“I want to speak to you,” said the young lady; “only a word. Only one
  • word, dearest.”
  • ‘“Must I get down?” inquired my uncle. The lady made no answer, but she
  • smiled again. Such a smile, gentlemen! It beat the other one, all to
  • nothing. My uncle descended from his perch in a twinkling.
  • ‘“What is it, my dear?” said my uncle, looking in at the coach window.
  • The lady happened to bend forward at the same time, and my uncle thought
  • she looked more beautiful than she had done yet. He was very close to
  • her just then, gentlemen, so he really ought to know.
  • ‘“What is it, my dear?” said my uncle.
  • ‘“Will you never love any one but me--never marry any one beside?” said
  • the young lady.
  • ‘My uncle swore a great oath that he never would marry anybody else, and
  • the young lady drew in her head, and pulled up the window. He jumped
  • upon the box, squared his elbows, adjusted the ribands, seized the whip
  • which lay on the roof, gave one flick to the off leader, and away went
  • the four long-tailed, flowing-maned black horses, at fifteen good
  • English miles an hour, with the old mail-coach behind them. Whew! How
  • they tore along!
  • ‘The noise behind grew louder. The faster the old mail went, the faster
  • came the pursuers--men, horses, dogs, were leagued in the pursuit. The
  • noise was frightful, but, above all, rose the voice of the young lady,
  • urging my uncle on, and shrieking, “Faster! Faster!”
  • ‘They whirled past the dark trees, as feathers would be swept before a
  • hurricane. Houses, gates, churches, haystacks, objects of every kind
  • they shot by, with a velocity and noise like roaring waters suddenly let
  • loose. But still the noise of pursuit grew louder, and still my uncle
  • could hear the young lady wildly screaming, “Faster! Faster!”
  • ‘My uncle plied whip and rein, and the horses flew onward till they were
  • white with foam; and yet the noise behind increased; and yet the young
  • lady cried, “Faster! Faster!” My uncle gave a loud stamp on the boot in
  • the energy of the moment, and--found that it was gray morning, and he
  • was sitting in the wheelwright’s yard, on the box of an old Edinburgh
  • mail, shivering with the cold and wet and stamping his feet to warm
  • them! He got down, and looked eagerly inside for the beautiful young
  • lady. Alas! There was neither door nor seat to the coach. It was a mere
  • shell.
  • ‘Of course, my uncle knew very well that there was some mystery in the
  • matter, and that everything had passed exactly as he used to relate it.
  • He remained staunch to the great oath he had sworn to the beautiful
  • young lady, refusing several eligible landladies on her account, and
  • dying a bachelor at last. He always said what a curious thing it was
  • that he should have found out, by such a mere accident as his clambering
  • over the palings, that the ghosts of mail-coaches and horses, guards,
  • coachmen, and passengers, were in the habit of making journeys regularly
  • every night. He used to add, that he believed he was the only living
  • person who had ever been taken as a passenger on one of these
  • excursions. And I think he was right, gentlemen--at least I never heard
  • of any other.’
  • ‘I wonder what these ghosts of mail-coaches carry in their bags,’ said
  • the landlord, who had listened to the whole story with profound
  • attention.
  • ‘The dead letters, of course,’ said the bagman.
  • ‘Oh, ah! To be sure,’ rejoined the landlord. ‘I never thought of that.’
  • CHAPTER L. HOW MR. PICKWICK SPED UPON HIS MISSION, AND HOW HE WAS
  • REINFORCED IN THE OUTSET BY A MOST UNEXPECTED AUXILIARY
  • The horses were put to, punctually at a quarter before nine next
  • morning, and Mr. Pickwick and Sam Weller having each taken his seat, the
  • one inside and the other out, the postillion was duly directed to repair
  • in the first instance to Mr. Bob Sawyer’s house, for the purpose of
  • taking up Mr. Benjamin Allen.
  • It was with feelings of no small astonishment, when the carriage drew up
  • before the door with the red lamp, and the very legible inscription of
  • ‘Sawyer, late Nockemorf,’ that Mr. Pickwick saw, on popping his head out
  • of the coach window, the boy in the gray livery very busily employed in
  • putting up the shutters--the which, being an unusual and an
  • unbusinesslike proceeding at that hour of the morning, at once suggested
  • to his mind two inferences: the one, that some good friend and patient
  • of Mr. Bob Sawyer’s was dead; the other, that Mr. Bob Sawyer himself was
  • bankrupt.
  • ‘What is the matter?’ said Mr. Pickwick to the boy.
  • ‘Nothing’s the matter, Sir,’ replied the boy, expanding his mouth to the
  • whole breadth of his countenance.
  • ‘All right, all right!’ cried Bob Sawyer, suddenly appearing at the
  • door, with a small leathern knapsack, limp and dirty, in one hand, and a
  • rough coat and shawl thrown over the other arm. ‘I’m going, old fellow.’
  • ‘You!’ exclaimed Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Yes,’ replied Bob Sawyer, ‘and a regular expedition we’ll make of it.
  • Here, Sam! Look out!’ Thus briefly bespeaking Mr. Weller’s attention,
  • Mr. Bob Sawyer jerked the leathern knapsack into the dickey, where it
  • was immediately stowed away, under the seat, by Sam, who regarded the
  • proceeding with great admiration. This done, Mr. Bob Sawyer, with the
  • assistance of the boy, forcibly worked himself into the rough coat,
  • which was a few sizes too small for him, and then advancing to the coach
  • window, thrust in his head, and laughed boisterously.
  • ‘What a start it is, isn’t it?’ cried Bob, wiping the tears out of his
  • eyes, with one of the cuffs of the rough coat.
  • ‘My dear Sir,’ said Mr. Pickwick, with some embarrassment, ‘I had no
  • idea of your accompanying us.’
  • ‘No, that’s just the very thing,’ replied Bob, seizing Mr. Pickwick by
  • the lappel of his coat. ‘That’s the joke.’
  • ‘Oh, that’s the joke, is it?’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Of course,’ replied Bob. ‘It’s the whole point of the thing, you know--
  • that, and leaving the business to take care of itself, as it seems to
  • have made up its mind not to take care of me.’ With this explanation of
  • the phenomenon of the shutters, Mr. Bob Sawyer pointed to the shop, and
  • relapsed into an ecstasy of mirth.
  • ‘Bless me, you are surely not mad enough to think of leaving your
  • patients without anybody to attend them!’ remonstrated Mr. Pickwick in a
  • very serious tone.
  • ‘Why not?’ asked Bob, in reply. ‘I shall save by it, you know. None of
  • them ever pay. Besides,’ said Bob, lowering his voice to a confidential
  • whisper, ‘they will be all the better for it; for, being nearly out of
  • drugs, and not able to increase my account just now, I should have been
  • obliged to give them calomel all round, and it would have been certain
  • to have disagreed with some of them. So it’s all for the best.’
  • There was a philosophy and a strength of reasoning about this reply,
  • which Mr. Pickwick was not prepared for. He paused a few moments, and
  • added, less firmly than before--
  • ‘But this chaise, my young friend, will only hold two; and I am pledged
  • to Mr. Allen.’
  • ‘Don’t think of me for a minute,’ replied Bob. ‘I’ve arranged it all;
  • Sam and I will share the dickey between us. Look here. This little bill
  • is to be wafered on the shop door: “Sawyer, late Nockemorf. Inquire of
  • Mrs. Cripps over the way.” Mrs. Cripps is my boy’s mother. “Mr. Sawyer’s
  • very sorry,” says Mrs. Cripps, “couldn’t help it--fetched away early
  • this morning to a consultation of the very first surgeons in the
  • country--couldn’t do without him--would have him at any price--
  • tremendous operation.” The fact is,’ said Bob, in conclusion, ‘it’ll do
  • me more good than otherwise, I expect. If it gets into one of the local
  • papers, it will be the making of me. Here’s Ben; now then, jump in!’
  • With these hurried words, Mr. Bob Sawyer pushed the postboy on one side,
  • jerked his friend into the vehicle, slammed the door, put up the steps,
  • wafered the bill on the street door, locked it, put the key in his
  • pocket, jumped into the dickey, gave the word for starting, and did the
  • whole with such extraordinary precipitation, that before Mr. Pickwick
  • had well begun to consider whether Mr. Bob Sawyer ought to go or not,
  • they were rolling away, with Mr. Bob Sawyer thoroughly established as
  • part and parcel of the equipage.
  • So long as their progress was confined to the streets of Bristol, the
  • facetious Bob kept his professional green spectacles on, and conducted
  • himself with becoming steadiness and gravity of demeanour; merely giving
  • utterance to divers verbal witticisms for the exclusive behoof and
  • entertainment of Mr. Samuel Weller. But when they emerged on the open
  • road, he threw off his green spectacles and his gravity together, and
  • performed a great variety of practical jokes, which were calculated to
  • attract the attention of the passersby, and to render the carriage and
  • those it contained objects of more than ordinary curiosity; the least
  • conspicuous among these feats being a most vociferous imitation of a
  • key-bugle, and the ostentatious display of a crimson silk pocket-
  • handkerchief attached to a walking-stick, which was occasionally waved
  • in the air with various gestures indicative of supremacy and defiance.
  • ‘I wonder,’ said Mr. Pickwick, stopping in the midst of a most sedate
  • conversation with Ben Allen, bearing reference to the numerous good
  • qualities of Mr. Winkle and his sister--‘I wonder what all the people we
  • pass, can see in us to make them stare so.’
  • ‘It’s a neat turn-out,’ replied Ben Allen, with something of pride in
  • his tone. ‘They’re not used to see this sort of thing, every day, I dare
  • say.’
  • ‘Possibly,’ replied Mr. Pickwick. ‘It may be so. Perhaps it is.’
  • Mr. Pickwick might very probably have reasoned himself into the belief
  • that it really was, had he not, just then happening to look out of the
  • coach window, observed that the looks of the passengers betokened
  • anything but respectful astonishment, and that various telegraphic
  • communications appeared to be passing between them and some persons
  • outside the vehicle, whereupon it occurred to him that these
  • demonstrations might be, in some remote degree, referable to the
  • humorous deportment of Mr. Robert Sawyer.
  • ‘I hope,’ said Mr. Pickwick, ‘that our volatile friend is committing no
  • absurdities in that dickey behind.’
  • ‘Oh dear, no,’ replied Ben Allen. ‘Except when he’s elevated, Bob’s the
  • quietest creature breathing.’
  • Here a prolonged imitation of a key-bugle broke upon the ear, succeeded
  • by cheers and screams, all of which evidently proceeded from the throat
  • and lungs of the quietest creature breathing, or in plainer designation,
  • of Mr. Bob Sawyer himself.
  • Mr. Pickwick and Mr. Ben Allen looked expressively at each other, and
  • the former gentleman taking off his hat, and leaning out of the coach
  • window until nearly the whole of his waistcoat was outside it, was at
  • length enabled to catch a glimpse of his facetious friend.
  • Mr. Bob Sawyer was seated, not in the dickey, but on the roof of the
  • chaise, with his legs as far asunder as they would conveniently go,
  • wearing Mr. Samuel Weller’s hat on one side of his head, and bearing, in
  • one hand, a most enormous sandwich, while, in the other, he supported a
  • goodly-sized case-bottle, to both of which he applied himself with
  • intense relish, varying the monotony of the occupation by an occasional
  • howl, or the interchange of some lively badinage with any passing
  • stranger. The crimson flag was carefully tied in an erect position to
  • the rail of the dickey; and Mr. Samuel Weller, decorated with Bob
  • Sawyer’s hat, was seated in the centre thereof, discussing a twin
  • sandwich, with an animated countenance, the expression of which
  • betokened his entire and perfect approval of the whole arrangement.
  • This was enough to irritate a gentleman with Mr. Pickwick’s sense of
  • propriety, but it was not the whole extent of the aggravation, for a
  • stage-coach full, inside and out, was meeting them at the moment, and
  • the astonishment of the passengers was very palpably evinced. The
  • congratulations of an Irish family, too, who were keeping up with the
  • chaise, and begging all the time, were of rather a boisterous
  • description, especially those of its male head, who appeared to consider
  • the display as part and parcel of some political or other procession of
  • triumph.
  • ‘Mr. Sawyer!’ cried Mr. Pickwick, in a state of great excitement, ‘Mr.
  • Sawyer, Sir!’
  • ‘Hollo!’ responded that gentleman, looking over the side of the chaise
  • with all the coolness in life.
  • ‘Are you mad, sir?’ demanded Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Not a bit of it,’ replied Bob; ‘only cheerful.’
  • ‘Cheerful, sir!’ ejaculated Mr. Pickwick. ‘Take down that scandalous red
  • handkerchief, I beg. I insist, Sir. Sam, take it down.’
  • Before Sam could interpose, Mr. Bob Sawyer gracefully struck his
  • colours, and having put them in his pocket, nodded in a courteous manner
  • to Mr. Pickwick, wiped the mouth of the case-bottle, and applied it to
  • his own, thereby informing him, without any unnecessary waste of words,
  • that he devoted that draught to wishing him all manner of happiness and
  • prosperity. Having done this, Bob replaced the cork with great care, and
  • looking benignantly down on Mr. Pickwick, took a large bite out of the
  • sandwich, and smiled.
  • ‘Come,’ said Mr. Pickwick, whose momentary anger was not quite proof
  • against Bob’s immovable self-possession, ‘pray let us have no more of
  • this absurdity.’
  • ‘No, no,’ replied Bob, once more exchanging hats with Mr. Weller; ‘I
  • didn’t mean to do it, only I got so enlivened with the ride that I
  • couldn’t help it.’
  • ‘Think of the look of the thing,’ expostulated Mr. Pickwick; ‘have some
  • regard to appearances.’
  • ‘Oh, certainly,’ said Bob, ‘it’s not the sort of thing at all. All over,
  • governor.’
  • Satisfied with this assurance, Mr. Pickwick once more drew his head into
  • the chaise and pulled up the glass; but he had scarcely resumed the
  • conversation which Mr. Bob Sawyer had interrupted, when he was somewhat
  • startled by the apparition of a small dark body, of an oblong form, on
  • the outside of the window, which gave sundry taps against it, as if
  • impatient of admission.
  • ‘What’s this?’ exclaimed Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘It looks like a case-bottle;’ remarked Ben Allen, eyeing the object in
  • question through his spectacles with some interest; ‘I rather think it
  • belongs to Bob.’
  • The impression was perfectly accurate; for Mr. Bob Sawyer, having
  • attached the case-bottle to the end of the walking-stick, was battering
  • the window with it, in token of his wish, that his friends inside would
  • partake of its contents, in all good-fellowship and harmony.
  • ‘What’s to be done?’ said Mr. Pickwick, looking at the bottle. ‘This
  • proceeding is more absurd than the other.’
  • ‘I think it would be best to take it in,’ replied Mr. Ben Allen; ‘it
  • would serve him right to take it in and keep it, wouldn’t it?’
  • ‘It would,’ said Mr. Pickwick; ‘shall I?’
  • ‘I think it the most proper course we could possibly adopt,’ replied
  • Ben.
  • This advice quite coinciding with his own opinion, Mr. Pickwick gently
  • let down the window and disengaged the bottle from the stick; upon which
  • the latter was drawn up, and Mr. Bob Sawyer was heard to laugh heartily.
  • ‘What a merry dog it is!’ said Mr. Pickwick, looking round at his
  • companion, with the bottle in his hand.
  • ‘He is,’ said Mr. Allen.
  • ‘You cannot possibly be angry with him,’ remarked Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Quite out of the question,’ observed Benjamin Allen.
  • During this short interchange of sentiments, Mr. Pickwick had, in an
  • abstracted mood, uncorked the bottle.
  • ‘What is it?’ inquired Ben Allen carelessly.
  • ‘I don’t know,’ replied Mr. Pickwick, with equal carelessness. ‘It
  • smells, I think, like milk-punch.’
  • Oh, indeed?’ said Ben.
  • ‘I _think _so,’ rejoined Mr. Pickwick, very properly guarding himself
  • against the possibility of stating an untruth; ‘mind, I could not
  • undertake to say certainly, without tasting it.’
  • ‘You had better do so,’ said Ben; ‘we may as well know what it is.’
  • ‘Do you think so?’ replied Mr. Pickwick. ‘Well; if you are curious to
  • know, of course I have no objection.’
  • Ever willing to sacrifice his own feelings to the wishes of his friend,
  • Mr. Pickwick at once took a pretty long taste.
  • ‘What is it?’ inquired Ben Allen, interrupting him with some impatience.
  • ‘Curious,’ said Mr. Pickwick, smacking his lips, ‘I hardly know, now.
  • Oh, yes!’ said Mr. Pickwick, after a second taste. ‘It _is_ punch.’
  • Mr. Ben Allen looked at Mr. Pickwick; Mr. Pickwick looked at Mr. Ben
  • Allen; Mr. Ben Allen smiled; Mr. Pickwick did not.
  • ‘It would serve him right,’ said the last-named gentleman, with some
  • severity--‘it would serve him right to drink it every drop.’
  • ‘The very thing that occurred to me,’ said Ben Allen.
  • ‘Is it, indeed?’ rejoined Mr. Pickwick. ‘Then here’s his health!’ With
  • these words, that excellent person took a most energetic pull at the
  • bottle, and handed it to Ben Allen, who was not slow to imitate his
  • example. The smiles became mutual, and the milk-punch was gradually and
  • cheerfully disposed of.
  • ‘After all,’ said Mr. Pickwick, as he drained the last drop, ‘his pranks
  • are really very amusing; very entertaining indeed.’
  • ‘You may say that,’ rejoined Mr. Ben Allen. In proof of Bob Sawyer’s
  • being one of the funniest fellows alive, he proceeded to entertain Mr.
  • Pickwick with a long and circumstantial account how that gentleman once
  • drank himself into a fever and got his head shaved; the relation of
  • which pleasant and agreeable history was only stopped by the stoppage of
  • the chaise at the Bell at Berkeley Heath, to change horses.
  • ‘I say! We’re going to dine here, aren’t we?’ said Bob, looking in at
  • the window.
  • ‘Dine!’ said Mr. Pickwick. ‘Why, we have only come nineteen miles, and
  • have eighty-seven and a half to go.’
  • ‘Just the reason why we should take something to enable us to bear up
  • against the fatigue,’ remonstrated Mr. Bob Sawyer.
  • ‘Oh, it’s quite impossible to dine at half-past eleven o’clock in the
  • day,’ replied Mr. Pickwick, looking at his watch.
  • ‘So it is,’ rejoined Bob, ‘lunch is the very thing. Hollo, you sir!
  • Lunch for three, directly; and keep the horses back for a quarter of an
  • hour. Tell them to put everything they have cold, on the table, and some
  • bottled ale, and let us taste your very best Madeira.’ Issuing these
  • orders with monstrous importance and bustle, Mr. Bob Sawyer at once
  • hurried into the house to superintend the arrangements; in less than
  • five minutes he returned and declared them to be excellent.
  • The quality of the lunch fully justified the eulogium which Bob had
  • pronounced, and very great justice was done to it, not only by that
  • gentleman, but Mr. Ben Allen and Mr. Pickwick also. Under the auspices
  • of the three, the bottled ale and the Madeira were promptly disposed of;
  • and when (the horses being once more put to) they resumed their seats,
  • with the case-bottle full of the best substitute for milk-punch that
  • could be procured on so short a notice, the key-bugle sounded, and the
  • red flag waved, without the slightest opposition on Mr. Pickwick’s part.
  • At the Hop Pole at Tewkesbury, they stopped to dine; upon which occasion
  • there was more bottled ale, with some more Madeira, and some port
  • besides; and here the case-bottle was replenished for the fourth time.
  • Under the influence of these combined stimulants, Mr. Pickwick and Mr.
  • Ben Allen fell fast asleep for thirty miles, while Bob and Mr. Weller
  • sang duets in the dickey.
  • It was quite dark when Mr. Pickwick roused himself sufficiently to look
  • out of the window. The straggling cottages by the road-side, the dingy
  • hue of every object visible, the murky atmosphere, the paths of cinders
  • and brick-dust, the deep-red glow of furnace fires in the distance, the
  • volumes of dense smoke issuing heavily forth from high toppling
  • chimneys, blackening and obscuring everything around; the glare of
  • distant lights, the ponderous wagons which toiled along the road, laden
  • with clashing rods of iron, or piled with heavy goods--all betokened
  • their rapid approach to the great working town of Birmingham.
  • As they rattled through the narrow thoroughfares leading to the heart of
  • the turmoil, the sights and sounds of earnest occupation struck more
  • forcibly on the senses. The streets were thronged with working people.
  • The hum of labour resounded from every house; lights gleamed from the
  • long casement windows in the attic storeys, and the whirl of wheels and
  • noise of machinery shook the trembling walls. The fires, whose lurid,
  • sullen light had been visible for miles, blazed fiercely up, in the
  • great works and factories of the town. The din of hammers, the rushing
  • of steam, and the dead heavy clanking of engines, was the harsh music
  • which arose from every quarter.
  • The postboy was driving briskly through the open streets, and past the
  • handsome and well-lighted shops that intervene between the outskirts of
  • the town and the Old Royal Hotel, before Mr. Pickwick had begun to
  • consider the very difficult and delicate nature of the commission which
  • had carried him thither.
  • The delicate nature of this commission, and the difficulty of executing
  • it in a satisfactory manner, were by no means lessened by the voluntary
  • companionship of Mr. Bob Sawyer. Truth to tell, Mr. Pickwick felt that
  • his presence on the occasion, however considerate and gratifying, was by
  • no means an honour he would willingly have sought; in fact, he would
  • cheerfully have given a reasonable sum of money to have had Mr. Bob
  • Sawyer removed to any place at not less than fifty miles’ distance,
  • without delay.
  • Mr. Pickwick had never held any personal communication with Mr. Winkle,
  • senior, although he had once or twice corresponded with him by letter,
  • and returned satisfactory answers to his inquiries concerning the moral
  • character and behaviour of his son; he felt nervously sensible that to
  • wait upon him, for the first time, attended by Bob Sawyer and Ben Allen,
  • both slightly fuddled, was not the most ingenious and likely means that
  • could have been hit upon to prepossess him in his favour.
  • ‘However,’ said Mr. Pickwick, endeavouring to reassure himself, ‘I must
  • do the best I can. I must see him to-night, for I faithfully promised to
  • do so. If they persist in accompanying me, I must make the interview as
  • brief as possible, and be content that, for their own sakes, they will
  • not expose themselves.’
  • As he comforted himself with these reflections, the chaise stopped at
  • the door of the Old Royal. Ben Allen having been partially awakened from
  • a stupendous sleep, and dragged out by the collar by Mr. Samuel Weller,
  • Mr. Pickwick was enabled to alight. They were shown to a comfortable
  • apartment, and Mr. Pickwick at once propounded a question to the waiter
  • concerning the whereabout of Mr. Winkle’s residence.
  • ‘Close by, Sir,’ said the waiter, ‘not above five hundred yards, Sir.
  • Mr. Winkle is a wharfinger, Sir, at the canal, sir. Private residence is
  • not--oh dear, no, sir, not five hundred yards, sir.’ Here the waiter
  • blew a candle out, and made a feint of lighting it again, in order to
  • afford Mr. Pickwick an opportunity of asking any further questions, if
  • he felt so disposed.
  • ‘Take anything now, Sir?’ said the waiter, lighting the candle in
  • desperation at Mr. Pickwick’s silence. ‘Tea or coffee, Sir? Dinner,
  • sir?’
  • ‘Nothing now.’
  • ‘Very good, sir. Like to order supper, Sir?’
  • ‘Not just now.’
  • ‘Very good, Sir.’ Here, he walked slowly to the door, and then stopping
  • short, turned round and said, with great suavity--
  • ‘Shall I send the chambermaid, gentlemen?’
  • ‘You may if you please,’ replied Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘If _you _please, sir.’
  • ‘And bring some soda-water,’ said Bob Sawyer.
  • ‘Soda-water, Sir! Yes, Sir.’ With his mind apparently relieved from an
  • overwhelming weight, by having at last got an order for something, the
  • waiter imperceptibly melted away. Waiters never walk or run. They have a
  • peculiar and mysterious power of skimming out of rooms, which other
  • mortals possess not.
  • Some slight symptoms of vitality having been awakened in Mr. Ben Allen
  • by the soda-water, he suffered himself to be prevailed upon to wash his
  • face and hands, and to submit to be brushed by Sam. Mr. Pickwick and Bob
  • Sawyer having also repaired the disorder which the journey had made in
  • their apparel, the three started forth, arm in arm, to Mr. Winkle’s; Bob
  • Sawyer impregnating the atmosphere with tobacco smoke as he walked
  • along.
  • About a quarter of a mile off, in a quiet, substantial-looking street,
  • stood an old red brick house with three steps before the door, and a
  • brass plate upon it, bearing, in fat Roman capitals, the words, ‘Mr.
  • Winkle.’ The steps were very white, and the bricks were very red, and
  • the house was very clean; and here stood Mr. Pickwick, Mr. Benjamin
  • Allen, and Mr. Bob Sawyer, as the clock struck ten.
  • A smart servant-girl answered the knock, and started on beholding the
  • three strangers.
  • ‘Is Mr. Winkle at home, my dear?’ inquired Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘He is just going to supper, Sir,’ replied the girl.
  • ‘Give him that card if you please,’ rejoined Mr. Pickwick. ‘Say I am
  • sorry to trouble him at so late an hour; but I am anxious to see him to-
  • night, and have only just arrived.’
  • The girl looked timidly at Mr. Bob Sawyer, who was expressing his
  • admiration of her personal charms by a variety of wonderful grimaces;
  • and casting an eye at the hats and greatcoats which hung in the passage,
  • called another girl to mind the door while she went upstairs. The
  • sentinel was speedily relieved; for the girl returned immediately, and
  • begging pardon of the gentlemen for leaving them in the street, ushered
  • them into a floor-clothed back parlour, half office and half dressing
  • room, in which the principal useful and ornamental articles of furniture
  • were a desk, a wash-hand stand and shaving-glass, a boot-rack and boot-
  • jack, a high stool, four chairs, a table, and an old eight-day clock.
  • Over the mantelpiece were the sunken doors of an iron safe, while a
  • couple of hanging shelves for books, an almanac, and several files of
  • dusty papers, decorated the walls.
  • ‘Very sorry to leave you standing at the door, Sir,’ said the girl,
  • lighting a lamp, and addressing Mr. Pickwick with a winning smile, ‘but
  • you was quite strangers to me; and we have such a many trampers that
  • only come to see what they can lay their hands on, that really--’
  • ‘There is not the least occasion for any apology, my dear,’ said Mr.
  • Pickwick good-humouredly.
  • ‘Not the slightest, my love,’ said Bob Sawyer, playfully stretching
  • forth his arms, and skipping from side to side, as if to prevent the
  • young lady’s leaving the room.
  • The young lady was not at all softened by these allurements, for she at
  • once expressed her opinion, that Mr. Bob Sawyer was an ‘odous creetur;’
  • and, on his becoming rather more pressing in his attentions, imprinted
  • her fair fingers upon his face, and bounced out of the room with many
  • expressions of aversion and contempt.
  • Deprived of the young lady’s society, Mr. Bob Sawyer proceeded to divert
  • himself by peeping into the desk, looking into all the table drawers,
  • feigning to pick the lock of the iron safe, turning the almanac with its
  • face to the wall, trying on the boots of Mr. Winkle, senior, over his
  • own, and making several other humorous experiments upon the furniture,
  • all of which afforded Mr. Pickwick unspeakable horror and agony, and
  • yielded Mr. Bob Sawyer proportionate delight.
  • At length the door opened, and a little old gentleman in a snuff-
  • coloured suit, with a head and face the precise counterpart of those
  • belonging to Mr. Winkle, junior, excepting that he was rather bald,
  • trotted into the room with Mr. Pickwick’s card in one hand, and a silver
  • candlestick in the other.
  • ‘Mr. Pickwick, sir, how do you do?’ said Winkle the elder, putting down
  • the candlestick and proffering his hand. ‘Hope I see you well, sir. Glad
  • to see you. Be seated, Mr. Pickwick, I beg, Sir. This gentleman is--’
  • ‘My friend, Mr. Sawyer,’ interposed Mr. Pickwick, ‘your son’s friend.’
  • ‘Oh,’ said Mr. Winkle the elder, looking rather grimly at Bob. ‘I hope
  • you are well, sir.’
  • ‘Right as a trivet, sir,’ replied Bob Sawyer.
  • ‘This other gentleman,’ cried Mr. Pickwick, ‘is, as you will see when
  • you have read the letter with which I am intrusted, a very near
  • relative, or I should rather say a very particular friend of your son’s.
  • His name is Allen.’
  • ‘_That _gentleman?’ inquired Mr. Winkle, pointing with the card towards
  • Ben Allen, who had fallen asleep in an attitude which left nothing of
  • him visible but his spine and his coat collar.
  • Mr. Pickwick was on the point of replying to the question, and reciting
  • Mr. Benjamin Allen’s name and honourable distinctions at full length,
  • when the sprightly Mr. Bob Sawyer, with a view of rousing his friend to
  • a sense of his situation, inflicted a startling pinch upon the fleshly
  • part of his arm, which caused him to jump up with a shriek. Suddenly
  • aware that he was in the presence of a stranger, Mr. Ben Allen advanced
  • and, shaking Mr. Winkle most affectionately by both hands for about five
  • minutes, murmured, in some half-intelligible fragments of sentences, the
  • great delight he felt in seeing him, and a hospitable inquiry whether he
  • felt disposed to take anything after his walk, or would prefer waiting
  • ‘till dinner-time;’ which done, he sat down and gazed about him with a
  • petrified stare, as if he had not the remotest idea where he was, which
  • indeed he had not.
  • All this was most embarrassing to Mr. Pickwick, the more especially as
  • Mr. Winkle, senior, evinced palpable astonishment at the eccentric--not
  • to say extraordinary--behaviour of his two companions. To bring the
  • matter to an issue at once, he drew a letter from his pocket, and
  • presenting it to Mr. Winkle, senior, said--
  • ‘This letter, Sir, is from your son. You will see, by its contents, that
  • on your favourable and fatherly consideration of it, depend his future
  • happiness and welfare. Will you oblige me by giving it the calmest and
  • coolest perusal, and by discussing the subject afterwards with me, in
  • the tone and spirit in which alone it ought to be discussed? You may
  • judge of the importance of your decision to your son, and his intense
  • anxiety upon the subject, by my waiting upon you, without any previous
  • warning, at so late an hour; and,’ added Mr. Pickwick, glancing slightly
  • at his two companions--‘and under such unfavourable circumstances.’
  • With this prelude, Mr. Pickwick placed four closely-written sides of
  • extra superfine wire-wove penitence in the hands of the astounded Mr.
  • Winkle, senior. Then reseating himself in his chair, he watched his
  • looks and manner: anxiously, it is true, but with the open front of a
  • gentleman who feels he has taken no part which he need excuse or
  • palliate.
  • The old wharfinger turned the letter over, looked at the front, back,
  • and sides, made a microscopic examination of the fat little boy on the
  • seal, raised his eyes to Mr. Pickwick’s face, and then, seating himself
  • on the high stool, and drawing the lamp closer to him, broke the wax,
  • unfolded the epistle, and lifting it to the light, prepared to read.
  • Just at this moment, Mr. Bob Sawyer, whose wit had lain dormant for some
  • minutes, placed his hands on his knees, and made a face after the
  • portraits of the late Mr. Grimaldi, as clown. It so happened that Mr.
  • Winkle, senior, instead of being deeply engaged in reading the letter,
  • as Mr. Bob Sawyer thought, chanced to be looking over the top of it at
  • no less a person than Mr. Bob Sawyer himself; rightly conjecturing that
  • the face aforesaid was made in ridicule and derision of his own person,
  • he fixed his eyes on Bob with such expressive sternness, that the late
  • Mr. Grimaldi’s lineaments gradually resolved themselves into a very fine
  • expression of humility and confusion.
  • ‘Did you speak, Sir?’ inquired Mr. Winkle, senior, after an awful
  • silence.
  • ‘No, sir,’ replied Bob, With no remains of the clown about him, save and
  • except the extreme redness of his cheeks.
  • ‘You are sure you did not, sir?’ said Mr. Winkle, senior.
  • ‘Oh dear, yes, sir, quite,’ replied Bob.
  • ‘I thought you did, Sir,’ replied the old gentleman, with indignant
  • emphasis. ‘Perhaps you _looked _at me, sir?’
  • ‘Oh, no! sir, not at all,’ replied Bob, with extreme civility.
  • ‘I am very glad to hear it, sir,’ said Mr. Winkle, senior. Having
  • frowned upon the abashed Bob with great magnificence, the old gentleman
  • again brought the letter to the light, and began to read it seriously.
  • Mr. Pickwick eyed him intently as he turned from the bottom line of the
  • first page to the top line of the second, and from the bottom of the
  • second to the top of the third, and from the bottom of the third to the
  • top of the fourth; but not the slightest alteration of countenance
  • afforded a clue to the feelings with which he received the announcement
  • of his son’s marriage, which Mr. Pickwick knew was in the very first
  • half-dozen lines.
  • He read the letter to the last word, folded it again with all the
  • carefulness and precision of a man of business, and, just when Mr.
  • Pickwick expected some great outbreak of feeling, dipped a pen in the
  • ink-stand, and said, as quietly as if he were speaking on the most
  • ordinary counting-house topic--
  • ‘What is Nathaniel’s address, Mr. Pickwick?’
  • ‘The George and Vulture, at present,’ replied that gentleman.
  • ‘George and Vulture. Where is that?’
  • ‘George Yard, Lombard Street.’
  • ‘In the city?’
  • ‘Yes.’
  • The old gentleman methodically indorsed the address on the back of the
  • letter; and then, placing it in the desk, which he locked, said, as he
  • got off the stool and put the bunch of keys in his pocket--
  • ‘I suppose there is nothing else which need detain us, Mr. Pickwick?’
  • ‘Nothing else, my dear Sir!’ observed that warm-hearted person in
  • indignant amazement. ‘Nothing else! Have you no opinion to express on
  • this momentous event in our young friend’s life? No assurance to convey
  • to him, through me, of the continuance of your affection and protection?
  • Nothing to say which will cheer and sustain him, and the anxious girl
  • who looks to him for comfort and support? My dear Sir, consider.’
  • ‘I will consider,’ replied the old gentleman. ‘I have nothing to say
  • just now. I am a man of business, Mr. Pickwick. I never commit myself
  • hastily in any affair, and from what I see of this, I by no means like
  • the appearance of it. A thousand pounds is not much, Mr. Pickwick.’
  • ‘You’re very right, Sir,’ interposed Ben Allen, just awake enough to
  • know that he had spent his thousand pounds without the smallest
  • difficulty. ‘You’re an intelligent man. Bob, he’s a very knowing fellow
  • this.’
  • ‘I am very happy to find that you do me the justice to make the
  • admission, sir,’ said Mr. Winkle, senior, looking contemptuously at Ben
  • Allen, who was shaking his head profoundly. ‘The fact is, Mr. Pickwick,
  • that when I gave my son a roving license for a year or so, to see
  • something of men and manners (which he has done under your auspices), so
  • that he might not enter life a mere boarding-school milk-sop to be
  • gulled by everybody, I never bargained for this. He knows that very
  • well, so if I withdraw my countenance from him on this account, he has
  • no call to be surprised. He shall hear from me, Mr. Pickwick. Good-
  • night, sir.--Margaret, open the door.’
  • All this time, Bob Sawyer had been nudging Mr. Ben Allen to say
  • something on the right side; Ben accordingly now burst, without the
  • slightest preliminary notice, into a brief but impassioned piece of
  • eloquence.
  • ‘Sir,’ said Mr. Ben Allen, staring at the old gentleman, out of a pair
  • of very dim and languid eyes, and working his right arm vehemently up
  • and down, ‘you--you ought to be ashamed of yourself.’
  • ‘As the lady’s brother, of course you are an excellent judge of the
  • question,’ retorted Mr. Winkle, senior. ‘There; that’s enough. Pray say
  • no more, Mr. Pickwick. Good-night, gentlemen!’
  • With these words the old gentleman took up the candle-stick and opening
  • the room door, politely motioned towards the passage.
  • ‘You will regret this, Sir,’ said Mr. Pickwick, setting his teeth close
  • together to keep down his choler; for he felt how important the effect
  • might prove to his young friend.
  • ‘I am at present of a different opinion,’ calmly replied Mr. Winkle,
  • senior. ‘Once again, gentlemen, I wish you a good-night.’
  • Mr. Pickwick walked with angry strides into the street. Mr. Bob Sawyer,
  • completely quelled by the decision of the old gentleman’s manner, took
  • the same course. Mr. Ben Allen’s hat rolled down the steps immediately
  • afterwards, and Mr. Ben Allen’s body followed it directly. The whole
  • party went silent and supperless to bed; and Mr. Pickwick thought, just
  • before he fell asleep, that if he had known Mr. Winkle, senior, had been
  • quite so much of a man of business, it was extremely probable he might
  • never have waited upon him, on such an errand.
  • CHAPTER LI. IN WHICH MR. PICKWICK ENCOUNTERS AN OLD ACQUAINTANCE--TO
  • WHICH FORTUNATE CIRCUMSTANCE THE READER IS MAINLY INDEBTED FOR MATTER OF
  • THRILLING INTEREST HEREIN SET DOWN, CONCERNING TWO GREAT PUBLIC MEN OF
  • MIGHT AND POWER
  • The morning which broke upon Mr. Pickwick’s sight at eight o’clock, was
  • not at all calculated to elevate his spirits, or to lessen the
  • depression which the unlooked-for result of his embassy inspired. The
  • sky was dark and gloomy, the air was damp and raw, the streets were wet
  • and sloppy. The smoke hung sluggishly above the chimney-tops as if it
  • lacked the courage to rise, and the rain came slowly and doggedly down,
  • as if it had not even the spirit to pour. A game-cock in the stableyard,
  • deprived of every spark of his accustomed animation, balanced himself
  • dismally on one leg in a corner; a donkey, moping with drooping head
  • under the narrow roof of an outhouse, appeared from his meditative and
  • miserable countenance to be contemplating suicide. In the street,
  • umbrellas were the only things to be seen, and the clicking of pattens
  • and splashing of rain-drops were the only sounds to be heard.
  • The breakfast was interrupted by very little conversation; even Mr. Bob
  • Sawyer felt the influence of the weather, and the previous day’s
  • excitement. In his own expressive language he was ‘floored.’ So was Mr.
  • Ben Allen. So was Mr. Pickwick.
  • In protracted expectation of the weather clearing up, the last evening
  • paper from London was read and re-read with an intensity of interest
  • only known in cases of extreme destitution; every inch of the carpet was
  • walked over with similar perseverance; the windows were looked out of,
  • often enough to justify the imposition of an additional duty upon them;
  • all kinds of topics of conversation were started, and failed; and at
  • length Mr. Pickwick, when noon had arrived, without a change for the
  • better, rang the bell resolutely, and ordered out the chaise.
  • Although the roads were miry, and the drizzling rain came down harder
  • than it had done yet, and although the mud and wet splashed in at the
  • open windows of the carriage to such an extent that the discomfort was
  • almost as great to the pair of insides as to the pair of outsides, still
  • there was something in the motion, and the sense of being up and doing,
  • which was so infinitely superior to being pent in a dull room, looking
  • at the dull rain dripping into a dull street, that they all agreed, on
  • starting, that the change was a great improvement, and wondered how they
  • could possibly have delayed making it as long as they had done.
  • When they stopped to change at Coventry, the steam ascended from the
  • horses in such clouds as wholly to obscure the hostler, whose voice was
  • however heard to declare from the mist, that he expected the first gold
  • medal from the Humane Society on their next distribution of rewards, for
  • taking the postboy’s hat off; the water descending from the brim of
  • which, the invisible gentleman declared, must have drowned him (the
  • postboy), but for his great presence of mind in tearing it promptly from
  • his head, and drying the gasping man’s countenance with a wisp of straw.
  • ‘This is pleasant,’ said Bob Sawyer, turning up his coat collar, and
  • pulling the shawl over his mouth to concentrate the fumes of a glass of
  • brandy just swallowed.
  • ‘Wery,’ replied Sam composedly.
  • ‘You don’t seem to mind it,’ observed Bob.
  • ‘Vy, I don’t exactly see no good my mindin’ on it ‘ud do, sir,’ replied
  • Sam.
  • ‘That’s an unanswerable reason, anyhow,’ said Bob.
  • ‘Yes, sir,’ rejoined Mr. Weller. ‘Wotever is, is right, as the young
  • nobleman sweetly remarked wen they put him down in the pension list ‘cos
  • his mother’s uncle’s vife’s grandfather vunce lit the king’s pipe vith a
  • portable tinder-box.’
  • Not a bad notion that, Sam,’ said Mr. Bob Sawyer approvingly.
  • ‘Just wot the young nobleman said ev’ry quarter-day arterwards for the
  • rest of his life,’ replied Mr. Weller.
  • ‘Wos you ever called in,’ inquired Sam, glancing at the driver, after a
  • short silence, and lowering his voice to a mysterious whisper--‘wos you
  • ever called in, when you wos ‘prentice to a sawbones, to wisit a
  • postboy.’
  • ‘I don’t remember that I ever was,’ replied Bob Sawyer.
  • ‘You never see a postboy in that ‘ere hospital as you _walked _(as they
  • says o’ the ghosts), did you?’ demanded Sam.
  • ‘No,’ replied Bob Sawyer. ‘I don’t think I ever did.’
  • ‘Never know’d a churchyard were there wos a postboy’s tombstone, or see
  • a dead postboy, did you?’ inquired Sam, pursuing his catechism.
  • ‘No,’ rejoined Bob, ‘I never did.’
  • ‘No!’ rejoined Sam triumphantly. ‘Nor never vill; and there’s another
  • thing that no man never see, and that’s a dead donkey. No man never see
  • a dead donkey ‘cept the gen’l’m’n in the black silk smalls as know’d the
  • young ‘ooman as kep’ a goat; and that wos a French donkey, so wery
  • likely he warn’t wun o’ the reg’lar breed.’
  • ‘Well, what has that got to do with the postboys?’ asked Bob Sawyer.
  • ‘This here,’ replied Sam. ‘Without goin’ so far as to as-sert, as some
  • wery sensible people do, that postboys and donkeys is both immortal, wot
  • I say is this: that wenever they feels theirselves gettin’ stiff and
  • past their work, they just rides off together, wun postboy to a pair in
  • the usual way; wot becomes on ‘em nobody knows, but it’s wery probable
  • as they starts avay to take their pleasure in some other vorld, for
  • there ain’t a man alive as ever see either a donkey or a postboy a-
  • takin’ his pleasure in this!’
  • Expatiating upon this learned and remarkable theory, and citing many
  • curious statistical and other facts in its support, Sam Weller beguiled
  • the time until they reached Dunchurch, where a dry postboy and fresh
  • horses were procured; the next stage was Daventry, and the next
  • Towcester; and at the end of each stage it rained harder than it had
  • done at the beginning.
  • ‘I say,’ remonstrated Bob Sawyer, looking in at the coach window, as
  • they pulled up before the door of the Saracen’s Head, Towcester, ‘this
  • won’t do, you know.’
  • ‘Bless me!’ said Mr. Pickwick, just awakening from a nap, ‘I’m afraid
  • you’re wet.’
  • ‘Oh, you are, are you?’ returned Bob. ‘Yes, I am, a little that way,
  • Uncomfortably damp, perhaps.’
  • Bob did look dampish, inasmuch as the rain was streaming from his neck,
  • elbows, cuffs, skirts, and knees; and his whole apparel shone so with
  • the wet, that it might have been mistaken for a full suit of prepared
  • oilskin.
  • ‘I _am_ rather wet,’ said Bob, giving himself a shake and casting a
  • little hydraulic shower around, like a Newfoundland dog just emerged
  • from the water.
  • ‘I think it’s quite impossible to go on to-night,’ interposed Ben.
  • ‘Out of the question, sir,’ remarked Sam Weller, coming to assist in the
  • conference; ‘it’s a cruelty to animals, sir, to ask ‘em to do it.
  • There’s beds here, sir,’ said Sam, addressing his master, ‘everything
  • clean and comfortable. Wery good little dinner, sir, they can get ready
  • in half an hour--pair of fowls, sir, and a weal cutlet; French beans,
  • ‘taturs, tart, and tidiness. You’d better stop vere you are, sir, if I
  • might recommend. Take adwice, sir, as the doctor said.’
  • The host of the Saracen’s Head opportunely appeared at this moment, to
  • confirm Mr. Weller’s statement relative to the accommodations of the
  • establishment, and to back his entreaties with a variety of dismal
  • conjectures regarding the state of the roads, the doubt of fresh horses
  • being to be had at the next stage, the dead certainty of its raining all
  • night, the equally mortal certainty of its clearing up in the morning,
  • and other topics of inducement familiar to innkeepers.
  • ‘Well,’ said Mr. Pickwick; ‘but I must send a letter to London by some
  • conveyance, so that it may be delivered the very first thing in the
  • morning, or I must go forwards at all hazards.’
  • The landlord smiled his delight. Nothing could be easier than for the
  • gentleman to inclose a letter in a sheet of brown paper, and send it on,
  • either by the mail or the night coach from Birmingham. If the gentleman
  • were particularly anxious to have it left as soon as possible, he might
  • write outside, ‘To be delivered immediately,’ which was sure to be
  • attended to; or ‘Pay the bearer half-a-crown extra for instant
  • delivery,’ which was surer still.
  • ‘Very well,’ said Mr. Pickwick, ‘then we will stop here.’
  • ‘Lights in the Sun, John; make up the fire; the gentlemen are wet!’
  • cried the landlord. ‘This way, gentlemen; don’t trouble yourselves about
  • the postboy now, sir. I’ll send him to you when you ring for him, sir.
  • Now, John, the candles.’
  • The candles were brought, the fire was stirred up, and a fresh log of
  • wood thrown on. In ten minutes’ time, a waiter was laying the cloth for
  • dinner, the curtains were drawn, the fire was blazing brightly, and
  • everything looked (as everything always does, in all decent English
  • inns) as if the travellers had been expected, and their comforts
  • prepared, for days beforehand.
  • Mr. Pickwick sat down at a side table, and hastily indited a note to Mr.
  • Winkle, merely informing him that he was detained by stress of weather,
  • but would certainly be in London next day; until when he deferred any
  • account of his proceedings. This note was hastily made into a parcel,
  • and despatched to the bar per Mr. Samuel Weller.
  • Sam left it with the landlady, and was returning to pull his master’s
  • boots off, after drying himself by the kitchen fire, when glancing
  • casually through a half-opened door, he was arrested by the sight of a
  • gentleman with a sandy head who had a large bundle of newspapers lying
  • on the table before him, and was perusing the leading article of one
  • with a settled sneer which curled up his nose and all other features
  • into a majestic expression of haughty contempt.
  • ‘Hollo!’ said Sam, ‘I ought to know that ‘ere head and them features;
  • the eyeglass, too, and the broad-brimmed tile! Eatansvill to vit, or I’m
  • a Roman.’
  • Sam was taken with a troublesome cough, at once, for the purpose of
  • attracting the gentleman’s attention; the gentleman starting at the
  • sound, raised his head and his eyeglass, and disclosed to view the
  • profound and thoughtful features of Mr. Pott, of the Eatanswill
  • _Gazette_.
  • ‘Beggin’ your pardon, sir,’ said Sam, advancing with a bow, ‘my master’s
  • here, Mr. Pott.’
  • ‘Hush! hush!’ cried Pott, drawing Sam into the room, and closing the
  • door, with a countenance of mysterious dread and apprehension.
  • ‘Wot’s the matter, Sir?’ inquired Sam, looking vacantly about him.
  • ‘Not a whisper of my name,’ replied Pott; ‘this is a buff neighbourhood.
  • If the excited and irritable populace knew I was here, I should be torn
  • to pieces.’
  • ‘No! Vould you, sir?’ inquired Sam.
  • ‘I should be the victim of their fury,’ replied Pott. ‘Now young man,
  • what of your master?’
  • ‘He’s a-stopping here to-night on his vay to town, with a couple of
  • friends,’ replied Sam.
  • ‘Is Mr. Winkle one of them?’ inquired Pott, with a slight frown.
  • ‘No, Sir. Mr. Vinkle stops at home now,’ rejoined Sam. ‘He’s married.’
  • ‘Married!’ exclaimed Pott, with frightful vehemence. He stopped, smiled
  • darkly, and added, in a low, vindictive tone, ‘It serves him right!’
  • Having given vent to this cruel ebullition of deadly malice and cold-
  • blooded triumph over a fallen enemy, Mr. Pott inquired whether Mr.
  • Pickwick’s friends were ‘blue?’ Receiving a most satisfactory answer in
  • the affirmative from Sam, who knew as much about the matter as Pott
  • himself, he consented to accompany him to Mr. Pickwick’s room, where a
  • hearty welcome awaited him, and an agreement to club their dinners
  • together was at once made and ratified.
  • ‘And how are matters going on in Eatanswill?’ inquired Mr. Pickwick,
  • when Pott had taken a seat near the fire, and the whole party had got
  • their wet boots off, and dry slippers on. ‘Is the _Independent_ still in
  • being?’
  • ‘The _Independent_, sir,’ replied Pott, ‘is still dragging on a wretched
  • and lingering career. Abhorred and despised by even the few who are
  • cognisant of its miserable and disgraceful existence, stifled by the
  • very filth it so profusely scatters, rendered deaf and blind by the
  • exhalations of its own slime, the obscene journal, happily unconscious
  • of its degraded state, is rapidly sinking beneath that treacherous mud
  • which, while it seems to give it a firm standing with the low and
  • debased classes of society, is nevertheless rising above its detested
  • head, and will speedily engulf it for ever.’
  • Having delivered this manifesto (which formed a portion of his last
  • week’s leader) with vehement articulation, the editor paused to take
  • breath, and looked majestically at Bob Sawyer.
  • ‘You are a young man, sir,’ said Pott.
  • Mr. Bob Sawyer nodded.
  • ‘So are you, sir,’ said Pott, addressing Mr. Ben Allen.
  • Ben admitted the soft impeachment.
  • ‘And are both deeply imbued with those blue principles, which, so long
  • as I live, I have pledged myself to the people of these kingdoms to
  • support and to maintain?’ suggested Pott.
  • ‘Why, I don’t exactly know about that,’ replied Bob Sawyer. ‘I am--’
  • ‘Not buff, Mr. Pickwick,’ interrupted Pott, drawing back his chair,
  • ‘your friend is not buff, sir?’
  • ‘No, no,’ rejoined Bob, ‘I’m a kind of plaid at present; a compound of
  • all sorts of colours.’
  • ‘A waverer,’ said Pott solemnly, ‘a waverer. I should like to show you a
  • series of eight articles, Sir, that have appeared in the Eatanswill
  • _Gazette_. I think I may venture to say that you would not be long in
  • establishing your opinions on a firm and solid blue basis, sir.’
  • I dare say I should turn very blue, long before I got to the end of
  • them,’ responded Bob.
  • Mr. Pott looked dubiously at Bob Sawyer for some seconds, and, turning
  • to Mr. Pickwick, said--
  • ‘You have seen the literary articles which have appeared at intervals in
  • the Eatanswill _Gazette_ in the course of the last three months, and
  • which have excited such general--I may say such universal--attention and
  • admiration?’
  • ‘Why,’ replied Mr. Pickwick, slightly embarrassed by the question, ‘the
  • fact is, I have been so much engaged in other ways, that I really have
  • not had an opportunity of perusing them.’
  • ‘You should do so, Sir,’ said Pott, with a severe countenance.
  • ‘I will,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘They appeared in the form of a copious review of a work on Chinese
  • metaphysics, Sir,’ said Pott.
  • ‘Oh,’ observed Mr. Pickwick; ‘from your pen, I hope?’
  • ‘From the pen of my critic, Sir,’ rejoined Pott, with dignity.
  • ‘An abstruse subject, I should conceive,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Very, Sir,’ responded Pott, looking intensely sage. ‘He _crammed _for
  • it, to use a technical but expressive term; he read up for the subject,
  • at my desire, in the “Encyclopaedia Britannica.”’
  • ‘Indeed!’ said Mr. Pickwick; ‘I was not aware that that valuable work
  • contained any information respecting Chinese metaphysics.’
  • ‘He read, Sir,’ rejoined Pott, laying his hand on Mr. Pickwick’s knee,
  • and looking round with a smile of intellectual superiority--‘he read for
  • metaphysics under the letter M, and for China under the letter C, and
  • combined his information, Sir!’
  • Mr. Pott’s features assumed so much additional grandeur at the
  • recollection of the power and research displayed in the learned
  • effusions in question, that some minutes elapsed before Mr. Pickwick
  • felt emboldened to renew the conversation; at length, as the editor’s
  • countenance gradually relaxed into its customary expression of moral
  • supremacy, he ventured to resume the discourse by asking--
  • ‘Is it fair to inquire what great object has brought you so far from
  • home?’
  • ‘That object which actuates and animates me in all my gigantic labours,
  • Sir,’ replied Pott, with a calm smile: ‘my country’s good.’
  • I supposed it was some public mission,’ observed Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Yes, Sir,’ resumed Pott, ‘it is.’ Here, bending towards Mr. Pickwick,
  • he whispered in a deep, hollow voice, ‘A Buff ball, Sir, will take place
  • in Birmingham to-morrow evening.’
  • ‘God bless me!’ exclaimed Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Yes, Sir, and supper,’ added Pott.
  • ‘You don’t say so!’ ejaculated Mr. Pickwick.
  • Pott nodded portentously.
  • Now, although Mr. Pickwick feigned to stand aghast at this disclosure,
  • he was so little versed in local politics that he was unable to form an
  • adequate comprehension of the importance of the dire conspiracy it
  • referred to; observing which, Mr. Pott, drawing forth the last number of
  • the Eatanswill _Gazette_, and referring to the same, delivered himself
  • of the following paragraph:--
  • HOLE-AND-CORNER BUFFERY.
  • ‘A reptile contemporary has recently sweltered forth his black venom in
  • the vain and hopeless attempt of sullying the fair name of our
  • distinguished and excellent representative, the Honourable Mr. Slumkey--
  • that Slumkey whom we, long before he gained his present noble and
  • exalted position, predicted would one day be, as he now is, at once his
  • country’s brightest honour, and her proudest boast: alike her bold
  • defender and her honest pride--our reptile contemporary, we say, has
  • made himself merry, at the expense of a superbly embossed plated coal-
  • scuttle, which has been presented to that glorious man by his enraptured
  • constituents, and towards the purchase of which, the nameless wretch
  • insinuates, the Honourable Mr. Slumkey himself contributed, through a
  • confidential friend of his butler’s, more than three-fourths of the
  • whole sum subscribed. Why, does not the crawling creature see, that even
  • if this be the fact, the Honourable Mr. Slumkey only appears in a still
  • more amiable and radiant light than before, if that be possible? Does
  • not even his obtuseness perceive that this amiable and touching desire
  • to carry out the wishes of the constituent body, must for ever endear
  • him to the hearts and souls of such of his fellow townsmen as are not
  • worse than swine; or, in other words, who are not as debased as our
  • contemporary himself? But such is the wretched trickery of hole-and-
  • corner Buffery! These are not its only artifices. Treason is abroad. We
  • boldly state, now that we are goaded to the disclosure, and we throw
  • ourselves on the country and its constables for protection--we boldly
  • state that secret preparations are at this moment in progress for a Buff
  • ball; which is to be held in a Buff town, in the very heart and centre
  • of a Buff population; which is to be conducted by a Buff master of the
  • ceremonies; which is to be attended by four ultra Buff members of
  • Parliament, and the admission to which, is to be by Buff tickets! Does
  • our fiendish contemporary wince? Let him writhe, in impotent malice, as
  • we pen the words, _We will be there_.’
  • ‘There, Sir,’ said Pott, folding up the paper quite exhausted, ‘that is
  • the state of the case!’
  • The landlord and waiter entering at the moment with dinner, caused Mr.
  • Pott to lay his finger on his lips, in token that he considered his life
  • in Mr. Pickwick’s hands, and depended on his secrecy. Messrs. Bob Sawyer
  • and Benjamin Allen, who had irreverently fallen asleep during the
  • reading of the quotation from the Eatanswill _Gazette_, and the
  • discussion which followed it, were roused by the mere whispering of the
  • talismanic word ‘Dinner’ in their ears; and to dinner they went with
  • good digestion waiting on appetite, and health on both, and a waiter on
  • all three.
  • In the course of the dinner and the sitting which succeeded it, Mr. Pott
  • descending, for a few moments, to domestic topics, informed Mr. Pickwick
  • that the air of Eatanswill not agreeing with his lady, she was then
  • engaged in making a tour of different fashionable watering-places with a
  • view to the recovery of her wonted health and spirits; this was a
  • delicate veiling of the fact that Mrs. Pott, acting upon her often-
  • repeated threat of separation, had, in virtue of an arrangement
  • negotiated by her brother, the lieutenant, and concluded by Mr. Pott,
  • permanently retired with the faithful bodyguard upon one moiety or half
  • part of the annual income and profits arising from the editorship and
  • sale of the Eatanswill _Gazette_.
  • While the great Mr. Pott was dwelling upon this and other matters,
  • enlivening the conversation from time to time with various extracts from
  • his own lucubrations, a stern stranger, calling from the window of a
  • stage-coach, outward bound, which halted at the inn to deliver packages,
  • requested to know whether if he stopped short on his journey and
  • remained there for the night, he could be furnished with the necessary
  • accommodation of a bed and bedstead.
  • ‘Certainly, sir,’ replied the landlord.
  • ‘I can, can I?’ inquired the stranger, who seemed habitually suspicious
  • in look and manner.
  • ‘No doubt of it, Sir,’ replied the landlord.
  • ‘Good,’ said the stranger. ‘Coachman, I get down here. Guard, my carpet-
  • bag!’
  • Bidding the other passengers good-night, in a rather snappish manner,
  • the stranger alighted. He was a shortish gentleman, with very stiff
  • black hair cut in the porcupine or blacking-brush style, and standing
  • stiff and straight all over his head; his aspect was pompous and
  • threatening; his manner was peremptory; his eyes were sharp and
  • restless; and his whole bearing bespoke a feeling of great confidence in
  • himself, and a consciousness of immeasurable superiority over all other
  • people.
  • This gentleman was shown into the room originally assigned to the
  • patriotic Mr. Pott; and the waiter remarked, in dumb astonishment at the
  • singular coincidence, that he had no sooner lighted the candles than the
  • gentleman, diving into his hat, drew forth a newspaper, and began to
  • read it with the very same expression of indignant scorn, which, upon
  • the majestic features of Pott, had paralysed his energies an hour
  • before. The man observed too, that, whereas Mr. Pott’s scorn had been
  • roused by a newspaper headed the Eatanswill _Independent_, this
  • gentleman’s withering contempt was awakened by a newspaper entitled the
  • Eatanswill _Gazette_.
  • ‘Send the landlord,’ said the stranger.
  • ‘Yes, sir,’ rejoined the waiter.
  • The landlord was sent, and came.
  • ‘Are you the landlord?’ inquired the gentleman.
  • ‘I am sir,’ replied the landlord.
  • ‘Do you know me?’ demanded the gentleman.
  • ‘I have not had that pleasure, Sir,’ rejoined the landlord.
  • ‘My name is Slurk,’ said the gentleman.
  • The landlord slightly inclined his head.
  • ‘Slurk, sir,’ repeated the gentleman haughtily. ‘Do you know me now,
  • man?’
  • The landlord scratched his head, looked at the ceiling, and at the
  • stranger, and smiled feebly.
  • ‘Do you know me, man?’ inquired the stranger angrily.
  • The landlord made a strong effort, and at length replied, ‘Well, Sir, I
  • do _not_ know you.’
  • ‘Great Heaven!’ said the stranger, dashing his clenched fist upon the
  • table. ‘And this is popularity!’
  • The landlord took a step or two towards the door; the stranger fixing
  • his eyes upon him, resumed.
  • ‘This,’ said the stranger--‘this is gratitude for years of labour and
  • study in behalf of the masses. I alight wet and weary; no enthusiastic
  • crowds press forward to greet their champion; the church bells are
  • silent; the very name elicits no responsive feeling in their torpid
  • bosoms. It is enough,’ said the agitated Mr. Slurk, pacing to and fro,
  • ‘to curdle the ink in one’s pen, and induce one to abandon their cause
  • for ever.’
  • ‘Did you say brandy-and-water, Sir?’ said the landlord, venturing a
  • hint.
  • ‘Rum,’ said Mr. Slurk, turning fiercely upon him. ‘Have you got a fire
  • anywhere?’
  • ‘We can light one directly, Sir,’ said the landlord.
  • ‘Which will throw out no heat until it is bed-time,’ interrupted Mr.
  • Slurk. ‘Is there anybody in the kitchen?’
  • Not a soul. There was a beautiful fire. Everybody had gone, and the
  • house door was closed for the night.
  • ‘I will drink my rum-and-water,’ said Mr. Slurk, ‘by the kitchen fire.’
  • So, gathering up his hat and newspaper, he stalked solemnly behind the
  • landlord to that humble apartment, and throwing himself on a settle by
  • the fireside, resumed his countenance of scorn, and began to read and
  • drink in silent dignity.
  • Now, some demon of discord, flying over the Saracen’s Head at that
  • moment, on casting down his eyes in mere idle curiosity, happened to
  • behold Slurk established comfortably by the kitchen fire, and Pott
  • slightly elevated with wine in another room; upon which the malicious
  • demon, darting down into the last-mentioned apartment with inconceivable
  • rapidity, passed at once into the head of Mr. Bob Sawyer, and prompted
  • him for his (the demon’s) own evil purpose to speak as follows:--
  • ‘I say, we’ve let the fire out. It’s uncommonly cold after the rain,
  • isn’t it?’
  • ‘It really is,’ replied Mr. Pickwick, shivering.
  • ‘It wouldn’t be a bad notion to have a cigar by the kitchen fire, would
  • it?’ said Bob Sawyer, still prompted by the demon aforesaid.
  • ‘It would be particularly comfortable, I think,’ replied Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Mr. Pott, what do you say?’
  • Mr. Pott yielded a ready assent; and all four travellers, each with his
  • glass in his hand, at once betook themselves to the kitchen, with Sam
  • Weller heading the procession to show them the way.
  • The stranger was still reading; he looked up and started. Mr. Pott
  • started.
  • ‘What’s the matter?’ whispered Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘That reptile!’ replied Pott.
  • ‘What reptile?’ said Mr. Pickwick, looking about him for fear he should
  • tread on some overgrown black beetle, or dropsical spider.
  • ‘That reptile,’ whispered Pott, catching Mr. Pickwick by the arm, and
  • pointing towards the stranger. ‘That reptile Slurk, of the
  • _Independent_!’
  • ‘Perhaps we had better retire,’ whispered Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Never, Sir,’ rejoined Pott, pot-valiant in a double sense--‘never.’
  • With these words, Mr. Pott took up his position on an opposite settle,
  • and selecting one from a little bundle of newspapers, began to read
  • against his enemy.
  • Mr. Pott, of course read the _Independent_, and Mr. Slurk, of course,
  • read the _Gazette_; and each gentleman audibly expressed his contempt at
  • the other’s compositions by bitter laughs and sarcastic sniffs; whence
  • they proceeded to more open expressions of opinion, such as ‘absurd,’
  • ‘wretched,’ ‘atrocity,’ ‘humbug,’ ‘knavery’, ‘dirt,’ ‘filth,’ ‘slime,’
  • ‘ditch-water,’ and other critical remarks of the like nature.
  • Both Mr. Bob Sawyer and Mr. Ben Allen had beheld these symptoms of
  • rivalry and hatred, with a degree of delight which imparted great
  • additional relish to the cigars at which they were puffing most
  • vigorously. The moment they began to flag, the mischievous Mr. Bob
  • Sawyer, addressing Slurk with great politeness, said--
  • ‘Will you allow me to look at your paper, Sir, when you have quite done
  • with it?’
  • ‘You will find very little to repay you for your trouble in this
  • contemptible _thing_, sir,’ replied Slurk, bestowing a Satanic frown on
  • Pott.
  • ‘You shall have this presently,’ said Pott, looking up, pale with rage,
  • and quivering in his speech, from the same cause. ‘Ha! ha! you will be
  • amused with this _fellow’s_ audacity.’
  • Terrible emphasis was laid upon ‘thing’ and ‘fellow’; and the faces of
  • both editors began to glow with defiance.
  • ‘The ribaldry of this miserable man is despicably disgusting,’ said
  • Pott, pretending to address Bob Sawyer, and scowling upon Slurk.
  • Here, Mr. Slurk laughed very heartily, and folding up the paper so as to
  • get at a fresh column conveniently, said, that the blockhead really
  • amused him.
  • ‘What an impudent blunderer this fellow is,’ said Pott, turning from
  • pink to crimson.
  • ‘Did you ever read any of this man’s foolery, Sir?’ inquired Slurk of
  • Bob Sawyer.
  • ‘Never,’ replied Bob; ‘is it very bad?’
  • ‘Oh, shocking! shocking!’ rejoined Slurk.
  • ‘Really! Dear me, this is too atrocious!’ exclaimed Pott, at this
  • juncture; still feigning to be absorbed in his reading.
  • ‘If you can wade through a few sentences of malice, meanness, falsehood,
  • perjury, treachery, and cant,’ said Slurk, handing the paper to Bob,
  • ‘you will, perhaps, be somewhat repaid by a laugh at the style of this
  • ungrammatical twaddler.’
  • ‘What’s that you said, Sir?’ inquired Mr. Pott, looking up, trembling
  • all over with passion.
  • ‘What’s that to you, sir?’ replied Slurk.
  • ‘Ungrammatical twaddler, was it, sir?’ said Pott.
  • ‘Yes, sir, it was,’ replied Slurk; ‘and _blue bore_, Sir, if you like
  • that better; ha! ha!’
  • Mr. Pott retorted not a word at this jocose insult, but deliberately
  • folded up his copy of the _Independent_, flattened it carefully down,
  • crushed it beneath his boot, spat upon it with great ceremony, and flung
  • it into the fire.
  • ‘There, sir,’ said Pott, retreating from the stove, ‘and that’s the way
  • I would serve the viper who produces it, if I were not, fortunately for
  • him, restrained by the laws of my country.’
  • ‘Serve him so, sir!’ cried Slurk, starting up. ‘Those laws shall never
  • be appealed to by him, sir, in such a case. Serve him so, sir!’
  • ‘Hear! hear!’ said Bob Sawyer.
  • ‘Nothing can be fairer,’ observed Mr. Ben Allen.
  • ‘Serve him so, sir!’ reiterated Slurk, in a loud voice.
  • Mr. Pott darted a look of contempt, which might have withered an anchor.
  • ‘Serve him so, sir!’ reiterated Slurk, in a louder voice than before.
  • ‘I will not, sir,’ rejoined Pott.
  • ‘Oh, you won’t, won’t you, sir?’ said Mr. Slurk, in a taunting manner;
  • ‘you hear this, gentlemen! He won’t; not that he’s afraid--, oh, no! he
  • _won’t_. Ha! ha!’
  • ‘I consider you, sir,’ said Mr. Pott, moved by this sarcasm, ‘I consider
  • you a viper. I look upon you, sir, as a man who has placed himself
  • beyond the pale of society, by his most audacious, disgraceful, and
  • abominable public conduct. I view you, sir, personally and politically,
  • in no other light than as a most unparalleled and unmitigated viper.’
  • The indignant Independent did not wait to hear the end of this personal
  • denunciation; for, catching up his carpet-bag, which was well stuffed
  • with movables, he swung it in the air as Pott turned away, and, letting
  • it fall with a circular sweep on his head, just at that particular angle
  • of the bag where a good thick hairbrush happened to be packed, caused a
  • sharp crash to be heard throughout the kitchen, and brought him at once
  • to the ground.
  • ‘Gentlemen,’ cried Mr. Pickwick, as Pott started up and seized the fire-
  • shovel--‘gentlemen! Consider, for Heaven’s sake--help--Sam--here--pray,
  • gentlemen--interfere, somebody.’
  • Uttering these incoherent exclamations, Mr. Pickwick rushed between the
  • infuriated combatants just in time to receive the carpet-bag on one side
  • of his body, and the fire-shovel on the other. Whether the
  • representatives of the public feeling of Eatanswill were blinded by
  • animosity, or (being both acute reasoners) saw the advantage of having a
  • third party between them to bear all the blows, certain it is that they
  • paid not the slightest attention to Mr. Pickwick, but defying each other
  • with great spirit, plied the carpet-bag and the fire-shovel most
  • fearlessly. Mr. Pickwick would unquestionably have suffered severely for
  • his humane interference, if Mr. Weller, attracted by his master’s cries,
  • had not rushed in at the moment, and, snatching up a meal-sack,
  • effectually stopped the conflict by drawing it over the head and
  • shoulders of the mighty Pott, and clasping him tight round the
  • shoulders.
  • ‘Take away that ‘ere bag from the t’other madman,’ said Sam to Ben Allen
  • and Bob Sawyer, who had done nothing but dodge round the group, each
  • with a tortoise-shell lancet in his hand, ready to bleed the first man
  • stunned. ‘Give it up, you wretched little creetur, or I’ll smother you
  • in it.’
  • Awed by these threats, and quite out of breath, the _Independent_
  • suffered himself to be disarmed; and Mr. Weller, removing the
  • extinguisher from Pott, set him free with a caution.
  • ‘You take yourselves off to bed quietly,’ said Sam, ‘or I’ll put you
  • both in it, and let you fight it out vith the mouth tied, as I vould a
  • dozen sich, if they played these games. And you have the goodness to
  • come this here way, sir, if you please.’
  • Thus addressing his master, Sam took him by the arm, and led him off,
  • while the rival editors were severally removed to their beds by the
  • landlord, under the inspection of Mr. Bob Sawyer and Mr. Benjamin Allen;
  • breathing, as they went away, many sanguinary threats, and making vague
  • appointments for mortal combat next day. When they came to think it
  • over, however, it occurred to them that they could do it much better in
  • print, so they recommenced deadly hostilities without delay; and all
  • Eatanswill rung with their boldness--on paper.
  • They had taken themselves off in separate coaches, early next morning,
  • before the other travellers were stirring; and the weather having now
  • cleared up, the chaise companions once more turned their faces to
  • London.
  • CHAPTER LII. INVOLVING A SERIOUS CHANGE IN THE WELLER FAMILY, AND THE
  • UNTIMELY DOWNFALL OF MR. STIGGINS
  • Considering it a matter of delicacy to abstain from introducing either
  • Bob Sawyer or Ben Allen to the young couple, until they were fully
  • prepared to expect them, and wishing to spare Arabella’s feelings as
  • much as possible, Mr. Pickwick proposed that he and Sam should alight in
  • the neighbourhood of the George and Vulture, and that the two young men
  • should for the present take up their quarters elsewhere. To this they
  • very readily agreed, and the proposition was accordingly acted upon; Mr.
  • Ben Allen and Mr. Bob Sawyer betaking themselves to a sequestered pot-
  • shop on the remotest confines of the Borough, behind the bar door of
  • which their names had in other days very often appeared at the head of
  • long and complex calculations worked in white chalk.
  • ‘Dear me, Mr. Weller,’ said the pretty housemaid, meeting Sam at the
  • door.
  • ‘Dear _me_ I vish it vos, my dear,’ replied Sam, dropping behind, to let
  • his master get out of hearing. ‘Wot a sweet-lookin’ creetur you are,
  • Mary!’
  • ‘Lor’, Mr. Weller, what nonsense you do talk!’ said Mary. ‘Oh! don’t,
  • Mr. Weller.’
  • ‘Don’t what, my dear?’ said Sam.
  • ‘Why, that,’ replied the pretty housemaid. ‘Lor, do get along with you.’
  • Thus admonishing him, the pretty housemaid pushed Sam against the wall,
  • declaring that he had tumbled her cap, and put her hair quite out of
  • curl.
  • ‘And prevented what I was going to say, besides,’ added Mary. ‘There’s a
  • letter been waiting here for you four days; you hadn’t gone away, half
  • an hour, when it came; and more than that, it’s got “immediate,” on the
  • outside.’
  • ‘Vere is it, my love?’ inquired Sam.
  • ‘I took care of it, for you, or I dare say it would have been lost long
  • before this,’ replied Mary. ‘There, take it; it’s more than you
  • deserve.’
  • With these words, after many pretty little coquettish doubts and fears,
  • and wishes that she might not have lost it, Mary produced the letter
  • from behind the nicest little muslin tucker possible, and handed it to
  • Sam, who thereupon kissed it with much gallantry and devotion.
  • ‘My goodness me!’ said Mary, adjusting the tucker, and feigning
  • unconsciousness, ‘you seem to have grown very fond of it all at once.’
  • To this Mr. Weller only replied by a wink, the intense meaning of which
  • no description could convey the faintest idea of; and, sitting himself
  • down beside Mary on a window-seat, opened the letter and glanced at the
  • contents.
  • ‘Hollo!’ exclaimed Sam, ‘wot’s all this?’
  • ‘Nothing the matter, I hope?’ said Mary, peeping over his shoulder.
  • ‘Bless them eyes o’ yourn!’ said Sam, looking up.
  • ‘Never mind my eyes; you had much better read your letter,’ said the
  • pretty housemaid; and as she said so, she made the eyes twinkle with
  • such slyness and beauty that they were perfectly irresistible.
  • Sam refreshed himself with a kiss, and read as follows:--
  • ‘MARKIS GRAN ‘By DORKEN ‘Wensdy.
  • ‘My DEAR SAMMLE,
  • ‘I am wery sorry to have the pleasure of being a Bear of ill news your
  • Mother in law cort cold consekens of imprudently settin too long on the
  • damp grass in the rain a hearin of a shepherd who warnt able to leave
  • off till late at night owen to his having vound his-self up vith brandy
  • and vater and not being able to stop his-self till he got a little sober
  • which took a many hours to do the doctor says that if she’d svallo’d
  • varm brandy and vater artervards insted of afore she mightn’t have been
  • no vus her veels wos immedetly greased and everythink done to set her
  • agoin as could be inwented your father had hopes as she vould have
  • vorked round as usual but just as she wos a turnen the corner my boy she
  • took the wrong road and vent down hill vith a welocity you never see and
  • notvithstandin that the drag wos put on drectly by the medikel man it
  • wornt of no use at all for she paid the last pike at twenty minutes
  • afore six o’clock yesterday evenin havin done the jouney wery much under
  • the reglar time vich praps was partly owen to her haven taken in wery
  • little luggage by the vay your father says that if you vill come and see
  • me Sammy he vill take it as a wery great favor for I am wery lonely
  • Samivel N. B. he _vill _have it spelt that vay vich I say ant right and
  • as there is sich a many things to settle he is sure your guvner wont
  • object of course he vill not Sammy for I knows him better so he sends
  • his dooty in which I join and am Samivel infernally yours
  • ‘TONY VELLER.’
  • ‘Wot a incomprehensible letter,’ said Sam; ‘who’s to know wot it means,
  • vith all this he-ing and I-ing! It ain’t my father’s writin’, ‘cept this
  • here signater in print letters; that’s his.’
  • ‘Perhaps he got somebody to write it for him, and signed it himself
  • afterwards,’ said the pretty housemaid.
  • ‘Stop a minit,’ replied Sam, running over the letter again, and pausing
  • here and there, to reflect, as he did so. ‘You’ve hit it. The gen’l’m’n
  • as wrote it wos a-tellin’ all about the misfortun’ in a proper vay, and
  • then my father comes a-lookin’ over him, and complicates the whole
  • concern by puttin’ his oar in. That’s just the wery sort o’ thing he’d
  • do. You’re right, Mary, my dear.’
  • Having satisfied himself on this point, Sam read the letter all over,
  • once more, and, appearing to form a clear notion of its contents for the
  • first time, ejaculated thoughtfully, as he folded it up--
  • ‘And so the poor creetur’s dead! I’m sorry for it. She warn’t a bad-
  • disposed ‘ooman, if them shepherds had let her alone. I’m wery sorry for
  • it.’
  • Mr. Weller uttered these words in so serious a manner, that the pretty
  • housemaid cast down her eyes and looked very grave.
  • ‘Hows’ever,’ said Sam, putting the letter in his pocket with a gentle
  • sigh, ‘it wos to be--and wos, as the old lady said arter she’d married
  • the footman. Can’t be helped now, can it, Mary?’
  • Mary shook her head, and sighed too.
  • ‘I must apply to the hemperor for leave of absence,’ said Sam.
  • Mary sighed again--the letter was so very affecting.
  • ‘Good-bye!’ said Sam.
  • ‘Good-bye,’ rejoined the pretty housemaid, turning her head away.
  • ‘Well, shake hands, won’t you?’ said Sam.
  • The pretty housemaid put out a hand which, although it was a
  • housemaid’s, was a very small one, and rose to go.
  • ‘I shan’t be wery long avay,’ said Sam.
  • ‘You’re always away,’ said Mary, giving her head the slightest possible
  • toss in the air. ‘You no sooner come, Mr. Weller, than you go again.’
  • Mr. Weller drew the household beauty closer to him, and entered upon a
  • whispering conversation, which had not proceeded far, when she turned
  • her face round and condescended to look at him again. When they parted,
  • it was somehow or other indispensably necessary for her to go to her
  • room, and arrange the cap and curls before she could think of presenting
  • herself to her mistress; which preparatory ceremony she went off to
  • perform, bestowing many nods and smiles on Sam over the banisters as she
  • tripped upstairs.
  • ‘I shan’t be avay more than a day, or two, Sir, at the furthest,’ said
  • Sam, when he had communicated to Mr. Pickwick the intelligence of his
  • father’s loss.
  • ‘As long as may be necessary, Sam,’ replied Mr. Pickwick, ‘you have my
  • full permission to remain.’
  • Sam bowed.
  • ‘You will tell your father, Sam, that if I can be of any assistance to
  • him in his present situation, I shall be most willing and ready to lend
  • him any aid in my power,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Thank’ee, sir,’ rejoined Sam. ‘I’ll mention it, sir.’
  • And with some expressions of mutual good-will and interest, master and
  • man separated.
  • It was just seven o’clock when Samuel Weller, alighting from the box of
  • a stage-coach which passed through Dorking, stood within a few hundred
  • yards of the Marquis of Granby. It was a cold, dull evening; the little
  • street looked dreary and dismal; and the mahogany countenance of the
  • noble and gallant marquis seemed to wear a more sad and melancholy
  • expression than it was wont to do, as it swung to and fro, creaking
  • mournfully in the wind. The blinds were pulled down, and the shutters
  • partly closed; of the knot of loungers that usually collected about the
  • door, not one was to be seen; the place was silent and desolate.
  • Seeing nobody of whom he could ask any preliminary questions, Sam walked
  • softly in, and glancing round, he quickly recognised his parent in the
  • distance.
  • The widower was seated at a small round table in the little room behind
  • the bar, smoking a pipe, with his eyes intently fixed upon the fire. The
  • funeral had evidently taken place that day, for attached to his hat,
  • which he still retained on his head, was a hatband measuring about a
  • yard and a half in length, which hung over the top rail of the chair and
  • streamed negligently down. Mr. Weller was in a very abstracted and
  • contemplative mood. Notwithstanding that Sam called him by name several
  • times, he still continued to smoke with the same fixed and quiet
  • countenance, and was only roused ultimately by his son’s placing the
  • palm of his hand on his shoulder.
  • ‘Sammy,’ said Mr. Weller, ‘you’re welcome.’
  • ‘I’ve been a-callin’ to you half a dozen times,’ said Sam, hanging his
  • hat on a peg, ‘but you didn’t hear me.’
  • ‘No, Sammy,’ replied Mr. Weller, again looking thoughtfully at the fire.
  • ‘I was in a referee, Sammy.’
  • ‘Wot about?’ inquired Sam, drawing his chair up to the fire.
  • ‘In a referee, Sammy,’ replied the elder Mr. Weller, ‘regarding _her_,
  • Samivel.’ Here Mr. Weller jerked his head in the direction of Dorking
  • churchyard, in mute explanation that his words referred to the late Mrs.
  • Weller.
  • ‘I wos a-thinkin’, Sammy,’ said Mr. Weller, eyeing his son, with great
  • earnestness, over his pipe, as if to assure him that however
  • extraordinary and incredible the declaration might appear, it was
  • nevertheless calmly and deliberately uttered. ‘I wos a-thinkin’, Sammy,
  • that upon the whole I wos wery sorry she wos gone.’
  • ‘Vell, and so you ought to be,’ replied Sam.
  • Mr. Weller nodded his acquiescence in the sentiment, and again fastening
  • his eyes on the fire, shrouded himself in a cloud, and mused deeply.
  • ‘Those wos wery sensible observations as she made, Sammy,’ said Mr.
  • Weller, driving the smoke away with his hand, after a long silence.
  • ‘Wot observations?’ inquired Sam.
  • ‘Them as she made, arter she was took ill,’ replied the old gentleman.
  • ‘Wot was they?’
  • ‘Somethin’ to this here effect. “Veller,” she says, “I’m afeered I’ve
  • not done by you quite wot I ought to have done; you’re a wery kind-
  • hearted man, and I might ha’ made your home more comfortabler. I begin
  • to see now,” she says, “ven it’s too late, that if a married ‘ooman
  • vishes to be religious, she should begin vith dischargin’ her dooties at
  • home, and makin’ them as is about her cheerful and happy, and that vile
  • she goes to church, or chapel, or wot not, at all proper times, she
  • should be wery careful not to con-wert this sort o’ thing into a excuse
  • for idleness or self-indulgence. I have done this,” she says, “and I’ve
  • vasted time and substance on them as has done it more than me; but I
  • hope ven I’m gone, Veller, that you’ll think on me as I wos afore I
  • know’d them people, and as I raly wos by natur.” ‘“Susan,” says I--I wos
  • took up wery short by this, Samivel; I von’t deny it, my boy--“Susan,” I
  • says, “you’ve been a wery good vife to me, altogether; don’t say nothin’
  • at all about it; keep a good heart, my dear; and you’ll live to see me
  • punch that ‘ere Stiggins’s head yet.” She smiled at this, Samivel,’ said
  • the old gentleman, stifling a sigh with his pipe, ‘but she died arter
  • all!’
  • ‘Vell,’ said Sam, venturing to offer a little homely consolation, after
  • the lapse of three or four minutes, consumed by the old gentleman in
  • slowly shaking his head from side to side, and solemnly smoking, ‘vell,
  • gov’nor, ve must all come to it, one day or another.’
  • ‘So we must, Sammy,’ said Mr. Weller the elder.
  • ‘There’s a Providence in it all,’ said Sam.
  • ‘O’ course there is,’ replied his father, with a nod of grave approval.
  • ‘Wot ‘ud become of the undertakers vithout it, Sammy?’
  • Lost in the immense field of conjecture opened by this reflection, the
  • elder Mr. Weller laid his pipe on the table, and stirred the fire with a
  • meditative visage.
  • While the old gentleman was thus engaged, a very buxom-looking cook,
  • dressed in mourning, who had been bustling about, in the bar, glided
  • into the room, and bestowing many smirks of recognition upon Sam,
  • silently stationed herself at the back of his father’s chair, and
  • announced her presence by a slight cough, the which, being disregarded,
  • was followed by a louder one.
  • ‘Hollo!’ said the elder Mr. Weller, dropping the poker as he looked
  • round, and hastily drew his chair away. ‘Wot’s the matter now?’
  • ‘Have a cup of tea, there’s a good soul,’ replied the buxom female
  • coaxingly.
  • ‘I von’t,’ replied Mr. Weller, in a somewhat boisterous manner. ‘I’ll
  • see you--’ Mr. Weller hastily checked himself, and added in a low tone,
  • ‘furder fust.’
  • ‘Oh, dear, dear! How adwersity does change people!’ said the lady,
  • looking upwards.
  • ‘It’s the only thing ‘twixt this and the doctor as shall change my
  • condition,’ muttered Mr. Weller.
  • ‘I really never saw a man so cross,’ said the buxom female.
  • ‘Never mind. It’s all for my own good; vich is the reflection vith vich
  • the penitent school-boy comforted his feelin’s ven they flogged him,’
  • rejoined the old gentleman.
  • The buxom female shook her head with a compassionate and sympathising
  • air; and, appealing to Sam, inquired whether his father really ought not
  • to make an effort to keep up, and not give way to that lowness of
  • spirits.
  • ‘You see, Mr. Samuel,’ said the buxom female, ‘as I was telling him
  • yesterday, he will feel lonely, he can’t expect but what he should, sir,
  • but he should keep up a good heart, because, dear me, I’m sure we all
  • pity his loss, and are ready to do anything for him; and there’s no
  • situation in life so bad, Mr. Samuel, that it can’t be mended. Which is
  • what a very worthy person said to me when my husband died.’ Here the
  • speaker, putting her hand before her mouth, coughed again, and looked
  • affectionately at the elder Mr. Weller.
  • ‘As I don’t rekvire any o’ your conversation just now, mum, vill you
  • have the goodness to re-tire?’ inquired Mr. Weller, in a grave and
  • steady voice.
  • ‘Well, Mr. Weller,’ said the buxom female, ‘I’m sure I only spoke to you
  • out of kindness.’
  • ‘Wery likely, mum,’ replied Mr. Weller. ‘Samivel, show the lady out, and
  • shut the door after her.’
  • This hint was not lost upon the buxom female; for she at once left the
  • room, and slammed the door behind her, upon which Mr. Weller, senior,
  • falling back in his chair in a violent perspiration, said--
  • ‘Sammy, if I wos to stop here alone vun week--only vun week, my boy--
  • that ‘ere ‘ooman ‘ud marry me by force and wiolence afore it was over.’
  • ‘Wot! is she so wery fond on you?’ inquired Sam.
  • ‘Fond!’ replied his father. ‘I can’t keep her avay from me. If I was
  • locked up in a fireproof chest vith a patent Brahmin, she’d find means
  • to get at me, Sammy.’
  • ‘Wot a thing it is to be so sought arter!’ observed Sam, smiling.
  • ‘I don’t take no pride out on it, Sammy,’ replied Mr. Weller, poking the
  • fire vehemently, ‘it’s a horrid sitiwation. I’m actiwally drove out o’
  • house and home by it. The breath was scarcely out o’ your poor mother-
  • in-law’s body, ven vun old ‘ooman sends me a pot o’ jam, and another a
  • pot o’ jelly, and another brews a blessed large jug o’ camomile-tea,
  • vich she brings in vith her own hands.’ Mr. Weller paused with an aspect
  • of intense disgust, and looking round, added in a whisper, ‘They wos all
  • widders, Sammy, all on ‘em, ‘cept the camomile-tea vun, as wos a single
  • young lady o’ fifty-three.’
  • Sam gave a comical look in reply, and the old gentleman having broken an
  • obstinate lump of coal, with a countenance expressive of as much
  • earnestness and malice as if it had been the head of one of the widows
  • last-mentioned, said:
  • ‘In short, Sammy, I feel that I ain’t safe anyveres but on the box.’
  • ‘How are you safer there than anyveres else?’ interrupted Sam.
  • ‘’Cos a coachman’s a privileged indiwidual,’ replied Mr. Weller, looking
  • fixedly at his son. ‘’Cos a coachman may do vithout suspicion wot other
  • men may not; ‘cos a coachman may be on the wery amicablest terms with
  • eighty mile o’ females, and yet nobody think that he ever means to marry
  • any vun among ‘em. And wot other man can say the same, Sammy?’
  • ‘Vell, there’s somethin’ in that,’ said Sam.
  • ‘If your gov’nor had been a coachman,’ reasoned Mr. Weller, ‘do you
  • s’pose as that ‘ere jury ‘ud ever ha’ conwicted him, s’posin’ it
  • possible as the matter could ha’ gone to that extremity? They dustn’t
  • ha’ done it.’
  • ‘Wy not?’ said Sam, rather disparagingly.
  • ‘Wy not!’ rejoined Mr. Weller; ‘’cos it ‘ud ha’ gone agin their
  • consciences. A reg’lar coachman’s a sort o’ con-nectin’ link betwixt
  • singleness and matrimony, and every practicable man knows it.’
  • ‘Wot! You mean, they’re gen’ral favorites, and nobody takes adwantage on
  • ‘em, p’raps?’ said Sam.
  • His father nodded.
  • ‘How it ever come to that ‘ere pass,’ resumed the parent Weller, ‘I
  • can’t say. Wy it is that long-stage coachmen possess such insiniwations,
  • and is alvays looked up to--a-dored I may say--by ev’ry young ‘ooman in
  • ev’ry town he vurks through, I don’t know. I only know that so it is.
  • It’s a regulation of natur--a dispensary, as your poor mother-in-law
  • used to say.’
  • ‘A dispensation,’ said Sam, correcting the old gentleman.
  • ‘Wery good, Samivel, a dispensation if you like it better,’ returned Mr.
  • Weller; ‘I call it a dispensary, and it’s always writ up so, at the
  • places vere they gives you physic for nothin’ in your own bottles;
  • that’s all.’
  • With these words, Mr. Weller refilled and relighted his pipe, and once
  • more summoning up a meditative expression of countenance, continued as
  • follows--
  • ‘Therefore, my boy, as I do not see the adwisability o’ stoppin here to
  • be married vether I vant to or not, and as at the same time I do not
  • vish to separate myself from them interestin’ members o’ society
  • altogether, I have come to the determination o’ driving the Safety, and
  • puttin’ up vunce more at the Bell Savage, vich is my nat’ral born
  • element, Sammy.’
  • ‘And wot’s to become o’ the bis’ness?’ inquired Sam.
  • ‘The bis’ness, Samivel,’ replied the old gentleman, ‘good-vill, stock,
  • and fixters, vill be sold by private contract; and out o’ the money, two
  • hundred pound, agreeable to a rekvest o’ your mother-in-law’s to me, a
  • little afore she died, vill be invested in your name in--What do you
  • call them things agin?’
  • ‘Wot things?’ inquired Sam.
  • ‘Them things as is always a-goin’ up and down, in the city.’
  • ‘Omnibuses?’ suggested Sam.
  • ‘Nonsense,’ replied Mr. Weller. ‘Them things as is alvays a-
  • fluctooatin’, and gettin’ theirselves inwolved somehow or another vith
  • the national debt, and the chequers bill; and all that.’
  • ‘Oh! the funds,’ said Sam.
  • ‘Ah!’ rejoined Mr. Weller, ‘the funs; two hundred pounds o’ the money is
  • to be inwested for you, Samivel, in the funs; four and a half per cent.
  • reduced counsels, Sammy.’
  • ‘Wery kind o’ the old lady to think o’ me,’ said Sam, ‘and I’m wery much
  • obliged to her.’
  • ‘The rest will be inwested in my name,’ continued the elder Mr. Weller;
  • ‘and wen I’m took off the road, it’ll come to you, so take care you
  • don’t spend it all at vunst, my boy, and mind that no widder gets a
  • inklin’ o’ your fortun’, or you’re done.’
  • Having delivered this warning, Mr. Weller resumed his pipe with a more
  • serene countenance; the disclosure of these matters appearing to have
  • eased his mind considerably.
  • ‘Somebody’s a-tappin’ at the door,’ said Sam.
  • ‘Let ‘em tap,’ replied his father, with dignity.
  • Sam acted upon the direction. There was another tap, and another, and
  • then a long row of taps; upon which Sam inquired why the tapper was not
  • admitted.
  • ‘Hush,’ whispered Mr. Weller, with apprehensive looks, ‘don’t take no
  • notice on ‘em, Sammy, it’s vun o’ the widders, p’raps.’
  • No notice being taken of the taps, the unseen visitor, after a short
  • lapse, ventured to open the door and peep in. It was no female head that
  • was thrust in at the partially-opened door, but the long black locks and
  • red face of Mr. Stiggins. Mr. Weller’s pipe fell from his hands.
  • The reverend gentleman gradually opened the door by almost imperceptible
  • degrees, until the aperture was just wide enough to admit of the passage
  • of his lank body, when he glided into the room and closed it after him,
  • with great care and gentleness. Turning towards Sam, and raising his
  • hands and eyes in token of the unspeakable sorrow with which he regarded
  • the calamity that had befallen the family, he carried the high-backed
  • chair to his old corner by the fire, and, seating himself on the very
  • edge, drew forth a brown pocket-handkerchief, and applied the same to
  • his optics.
  • While this was going forward, the elder Mr. Weller sat back in his
  • chair, with his eyes wide open, his hands planted on his knees, and his
  • whole countenance expressive of absorbing and overwhelming astonishment.
  • Sam sat opposite him in perfect silence, waiting, with eager curiosity,
  • for the termination of the scene.
  • Mr. Stiggins kept the brown pocket-handkerchief before his eyes for some
  • minutes, moaning decently meanwhile, and then, mastering his feelings by
  • a strong effort, put it in his pocket and buttoned it up. After this, he
  • stirred the fire; after that, he rubbed his hands and looked at Sam.
  • ‘Oh, my young friend,’ said Mr. Stiggins, breaking the silence, in a
  • very low voice, ‘here’s a sorrowful affliction!’
  • Sam nodded very slightly.
  • ‘For the man of wrath, too!’ added Mr. Stiggins; ‘it makes a vessel’s
  • heart bleed!’
  • Mr. Weller was overheard by his son to murmur something relative to
  • making a vessel’s nose bleed; but Mr. Stiggins heard him not.
  • ‘Do you know, young man,’ whispered Mr. Stiggins, drawing his chair
  • closer to Sam, ‘whether she has left Emanuel anything?’
  • ‘Who’s he?’ inquired Sam.
  • ‘The chapel,’ replied Mr. Stiggins; ‘our chapel; our fold, Mr. Samuel.’
  • ‘She hasn’t left the fold nothin’, nor the shepherd nothin’, nor the
  • animals nothin’,’ said Sam decisively; ‘nor the dogs neither.’
  • Mr. Stiggins looked slily at Sam; glanced at the old gentleman, who was
  • sitting with his eyes closed, as if asleep; and drawing his chair still
  • nearer, said--
  • ‘Nothing for _me_, Mr. Samuel?’
  • Sam shook his head.
  • ‘I think there’s something,’ said Stiggins, turning as pale as he could
  • turn. ‘Consider, Mr. Samuel; no little token?’
  • ‘Not so much as the vorth o’ that ‘ere old umberella o’ yourn,’ replied
  • Sam.
  • ‘Perhaps,’ said Mr. Stiggins hesitatingly, after a few moments’ deep
  • thought, ‘perhaps she recommended me to the care of the man of wrath,
  • Mr. Samuel?’
  • ‘I think that’s wery likely, from what he said,’ rejoined Sam; ‘he wos
  • a-speakin’ about you, jist now.’
  • ‘Was he, though?’ exclaimed Stiggins, brightening up. ‘Ah! He’s changed,
  • I dare say. We might live very comfortably together now, Mr. Samuel, eh?
  • I could take care of his property when you are away--good care, you
  • see.’
  • Heaving a long-drawn sigh, Mr. Stiggins paused for a response. Sam
  • nodded, and Mr. Weller the elder gave vent to an extraordinary sound,
  • which, being neither a groan, nor a grunt, nor a gasp, nor a growl,
  • seemed to partake in some degree of the character of all four.
  • Mr. Stiggins, encouraged by this sound, which he understood to betoken
  • remorse or repentance, looked about him, rubbed his hands, wept, smiled,
  • wept again, and then, walking softly across the room to a well-
  • remembered shelf in one corner, took down a tumbler, and with great
  • deliberation put four lumps of sugar in it. Having got thus far, he
  • looked about him again, and sighed grievously; with that, he walked
  • softly into the bar, and presently returning with the tumbler half full
  • of pine-apple rum, advanced to the kettle which was singing gaily on the
  • hob, mixed his grog, stirred it, sipped it, sat down, and taking a long
  • and hearty pull at the rum-and-water, stopped for breath.
  • The elder Mr. Weller, who still continued to make various strange and
  • uncouth attempts to appear asleep, offered not a single word during
  • these proceedings; but when Stiggins stopped for breath, he darted upon
  • him, and snatching the tumbler from his hand, threw the remainder of the
  • rum-and-water in his face, and the glass itself into the grate. Then,
  • seizing the reverend gentleman firmly by the collar, he suddenly fell to
  • kicking him most furiously, accompanying every application of his top-
  • boot to Mr. Stiggins’s person, with sundry violent and incoherent
  • anathemas upon his limbs, eyes, and body.
  • ‘Sammy,’ said Mr. Weller, ‘put my hat on tight for me.’
  • Sam dutifully adjusted the hat with the long hatband more firmly on his
  • father’s head, and the old gentleman, resuming his kicking with greater
  • agility than before, tumbled with Mr. Stiggins through the bar, and
  • through the passage, out at the front door, and so into the street--the
  • kicking continuing the whole way, and increasing in vehemence, rather
  • than diminishing, every time the top-boot was lifted.
  • It was a beautiful and exhilarating sight to see the red-nosed man
  • writhing in Mr. Weller’s grasp, and his whole frame quivering with
  • anguish as kick followed kick in rapid succession; it was a still more
  • exciting spectacle to behold Mr. Weller, after a powerful struggle,
  • immersing Mr. Stiggins’s head in a horse-trough full of water, and
  • holding it there, until he was half suffocated.
  • ‘There!’ said Mr. Weller, throwing all his energy into one most
  • complicated kick, as he at length permitted Mr. Stiggins to withdraw his
  • head from the trough, ‘send any vun o’ them lazy shepherds here, and
  • I’ll pound him to a jelly first, and drownd him artervards! Sammy, help
  • me in, and fill me a small glass of brandy. I’m out o’ breath, my boy.’
  • CHAPTER LIII. COMPRISING THE FINAL EXIT OF MR. JINGLE AND JOB TROTTER,
  • WITH A GREAT MORNING OF BUSINESS IN GRAY’S INN SQUARE--CONCLUDING WITH A
  • DOUBLE KNOCK AT MR. PERKER’S DOOR
  • When Arabella, after some gentle preparation and many assurances that
  • there was not the least occasion for being low-spirited, was at length
  • made acquainted by Mr. Pickwick with the unsatisfactory result of his
  • visit to Birmingham, she burst into tears, and sobbing aloud, lamented
  • in moving terms that she should have been the unhappy cause of any
  • estrangement between a father and his son.
  • ‘My dear girl,’ said Mr. Pickwick kindly, ‘it is no fault of yours. It
  • was impossible to foresee that the old gentleman would be so strongly
  • prepossessed against his son’s marriage, you know. I am sure,’ added Mr.
  • Pickwick, glancing at her pretty face, ‘he can have very little idea of
  • the pleasure he denies himself.’
  • ‘Oh, my dear Mr. Pickwick,’ said Arabella, ‘what shall we do, if he
  • continues to be angry with us?’
  • ‘Why, wait patiently, my dear, until he thinks better of it,’ replied
  • Mr. Pickwick cheerfully.
  • ‘But, dear Mr. Pickwick, what is to become of Nathaniel if his father
  • withdraws his assistance?’ urged Arabella.
  • ‘In that case, my love,’ rejoined Mr. Pickwick, ‘I will venture to
  • prophesy that he will find some other friend who will not be backward in
  • helping him to start in the world.’
  • The significance of this reply was not so well disguised by Mr. Pickwick
  • but that Arabella understood it. So, throwing her arms round his neck,
  • and kissing him affectionately, she sobbed louder than before.
  • ‘Come, come,’ said Mr. Pickwick taking her hand, ‘we will wait here a
  • few days longer, and see whether he writes or takes any other notice of
  • your husband’s communication. If not, I have thought of half a dozen
  • plans, any one of which would make you happy at once. There, my dear,
  • there!’
  • With these words, Mr. Pickwick gently pressed Arabella’s hand, and bade
  • her dry her eyes, and not distress her husband. Upon which, Arabella,
  • who was one of the best little creatures alive, put her handkerchief in
  • her reticule, and by the time Mr. Winkle joined them, exhibited in full
  • lustre the same beaming smiles and sparkling eyes that had originally
  • captivated him.
  • ‘This is a distressing predicament for these young people,’ thought Mr.
  • Pickwick, as he dressed himself next morning. ‘I’ll walk up to Perker’s,
  • and consult him about the matter.’
  • As Mr. Pickwick was further prompted to betake himself to Gray’s Inn
  • Square by an anxious desire to come to a pecuniary settlement with the
  • kind-hearted little attorney without further delay, he made a hurried
  • breakfast, and executed his intention so speedily, that ten o’clock had
  • not struck when he reached Gray’s Inn.
  • It still wanted ten minutes to the hour when he had ascended the
  • staircase on which Perker’s chambers were. The clerks had not arrived
  • yet, and he beguiled the time by looking out of the staircase window.
  • The healthy light of a fine October morning made even the dingy old
  • houses brighten up a little; some of the dusty windows actually looking
  • almost cheerful as the sun’s rays gleamed upon them. Clerk after clerk
  • hastened into the square by one or other of the entrances, and looking
  • up at the Hall clock, accelerated or decreased his rate of walking
  • according to the time at which his office hours nominally commenced; the
  • half-past nine o’clock people suddenly becoming very brisk, and the ten
  • o’clock gentlemen falling into a pace of most aristocratic slowness. The
  • clock struck ten, and clerks poured in faster than ever, each one in a
  • greater perspiration than his predecessor. The noise of unlocking and
  • opening doors echoed and re-echoed on every side; heads appeared as if
  • by magic in every window; the porters took up their stations for the
  • day; the slipshod laundresses hurried off; the postman ran from house to
  • house; and the whole legal hive was in a bustle.
  • ‘You’re early, Mr. Pickwick,’ said a voice behind him.
  • ‘Ah, Mr. Lowten,’ replied that gentleman, looking round, and recognising
  • his old acquaintance.
  • ‘Precious warm walking, isn’t it?’ said Lowten, drawing a Bramah key
  • from his pocket, with a small plug therein, to keep the dust out.
  • ‘You appear to feel it so,’ rejoined Mr. Pickwick, smiling at the clerk,
  • who was literally red-hot.
  • ‘I’ve come along, rather, I can tell you,’ replied Lowten. ‘It went the
  • half hour as I came through the Polygon. I’m here before him, though, so
  • I don’t mind.’
  • Comforting himself with this reflection, Mr. Lowten extracted the plug
  • from the door-key; having opened the door, replugged and repocketed his
  • Bramah, and picked up the letters which the postman had dropped through
  • the box, he ushered Mr. Pickwick into the office. Here, in the twinkling
  • of an eye, he divested himself of his coat, put on a threadbare garment,
  • which he took out of a desk, hung up his hat, pulled forth a few sheets
  • of cartridge and blotting-paper in alternate layers, and, sticking a pen
  • behind his ear, rubbed his hands with an air of great satisfaction.
  • ‘There, you see, Mr. Pickwick,’ he said, ‘now I’m complete. I’ve got my
  • office coat on, and my pad out, and let him come as soon as he likes.
  • You haven’t got a pinch of snuff about you, have you?’
  • ‘No, I have not,’ replied Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘I’m sorry for it,’ said Lowten. ‘Never mind. I’ll run out presently,
  • and get a bottle of soda. Don’t I look rather queer about the eyes, Mr.
  • Pickwick?’
  • The individual appealed to, surveyed Mr. Lowten’s eyes from a distance,
  • and expressed his opinion that no unusual queerness was perceptible in
  • those features.
  • ‘I’m glad of it,’ said Lowten. ‘We were keeping it up pretty tolerably
  • at the Stump last night, and I’m rather out of sorts this morning.
  • Perker’s been about that business of yours, by the bye.’
  • ‘What business?’ inquired Mr. Pickwick. ‘Mrs. Bardell’s costs?’
  • ‘No, I don’t mean that,’ replied Mr. Lowten. ‘About getting that
  • customer that we paid the ten shillings in the pound to the bill-
  • discounter for, on your account--to get him out of the Fleet, you know--
  • about getting him to Demerara.’
  • ‘Oh, Mr. Jingle,’ said Mr. Pickwick hastily. ‘Yes. Well?’
  • ‘Well, it’s all arranged,’ said Lowten, mending his pen. ‘The agent at
  • Liverpool said he had been obliged to you many times when you were in
  • business, and he would be glad to take him on your recommendation.’
  • ‘That’s well,’ said Mr. Pickwick. ‘I am delighted to hear it.’
  • ‘But I say,’ resumed Lowten, scraping the back of the pen preparatory to
  • making a fresh split, ‘what a soft chap that other is!’
  • ‘Which other?’
  • ‘Why, that servant, or friend, or whatever he is; you know, Trotter.’
  • ‘Ah!’ said Mr. Pickwick, with a smile. ‘I always thought him the
  • reverse.’
  • ‘Well, and so did I, from what little I saw of him,’ replied Lowten, ‘it
  • only shows how one may be deceived. What do you think of his going to
  • Demerara, too?’
  • ‘What! And giving up what was offered him here!’ exclaimed Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Treating Perker’s offer of eighteen bob a week, and a rise if he
  • behaved himself, like dirt,’ replied Lowten. ‘He said he must go along
  • with the other one, and so they persuaded Perker to write again, and
  • they’ve got him something on the same estate; not near so good, Perker
  • says, as a convict would get in New South Wales, if he appeared at his
  • trial in a new suit of clothes.’
  • ‘Foolish fellow,’ said Mr. Pickwick, with glistening eyes. ‘Foolish
  • fellow.’
  • ‘Oh, it’s worse than foolish; it’s downright sneaking, you know,’
  • replied Lowten, nibbing the pen with a contemptuous face. ‘He says that
  • he’s the only friend he ever had, and he’s attached to him, and all
  • that. Friendship’s a very good thing in its way--we are all very
  • friendly and comfortable at the Stump, for instance, over our grog,
  • where every man pays for himself; but damn hurting yourself for anybody
  • else, you know! No man should have more than two attachments--the first,
  • to number one, and the second to the ladies; that’s what I say--ha! ha!’
  • Mr. Lowten concluded with a loud laugh, half in jocularity, and half in
  • derision, which was prematurely cut short by the sound of Perker’s
  • footsteps on the stairs, at the first approach of which, he vaulted on
  • his stool with an agility most remarkable, and wrote intensely.
  • The greeting between Mr. Pickwick and his professional adviser was warm
  • and cordial; the client was scarcely ensconced in the attorney’s arm-
  • chair, however, when a knock was heard at the door, and a voice inquired
  • whether Mr. Perker was within.
  • ‘Hark!’ said Perker, ‘that’s one of our vagabond friends--Jingle
  • himself, my dear Sir. Will you see him?’
  • ‘What do you think?’ inquired Mr. Pickwick, hesitating.
  • ‘Yes, I think you had better. Here, you Sir, what’s your name, walk in,
  • will you?’
  • In compliance with this unceremonious invitation, Jingle and Job walked
  • into the room, but, seeing Mr. Pickwick, stopped short in some
  • confusion.
  • ‘Well,’ said Perker, ‘don’t you know that gentleman?’
  • ‘Good reason to,’ replied Mr. Jingle, stepping forward. ‘Mr. Pickwick--
  • deepest obligations--life preserver--made a man of me--you shall never
  • repent it, Sir.’
  • ‘I am happy to hear you say so,’ said Mr. Pickwick. ‘You look much
  • better.’
  • ‘Thanks to you, sir--great change--Majesty’s Fleet--unwholesome place--
  • very,’ said Jingle, shaking his head. He was decently and cleanly
  • dressed, and so was Job, who stood bolt upright behind him, staring at
  • Mr. Pickwick with a visage of iron.
  • ‘When do they go to Liverpool?’ inquired Mr. Pickwick, half aside to
  • Perker.
  • ‘This evening, Sir, at seven o’clock,’ said Job, taking one step
  • forward. ‘By the heavy coach from the city, Sir.’
  • ‘Are your places taken?’
  • ‘They are, sir,’ replied Job.
  • ‘You have fully made up your mind to go?’
  • ‘I have sir,’ answered Job.
  • ‘With regard to such an outfit as was indispensable for Jingle,’ said
  • Perker, addressing Mr. Pickwick aloud. ‘I have taken upon myself to make
  • an arrangement for the deduction of a small sum from his quarterly
  • salary, which, being made only for one year, and regularly remitted,
  • will provide for that expense. I entirely disapprove of your doing
  • anything for him, my dear sir, which is not dependent on his own
  • exertions and good conduct.’
  • ‘Certainly,’ interposed Jingle, with great firmness. ‘Clear head--man of
  • the world--quite right--perfectly.’
  • ‘By compounding with his creditor, releasing his clothes from the
  • pawnbroker’s, relieving him in prison, and paying for his passage,’
  • continued Perker, without noticing Jingle’s observation, ‘you have
  • already lost upwards of fifty pounds.’
  • ‘Not lost,’ said Jingle hastily, ‘Pay it all--stick to business--cash
  • up--every farthing. Yellow fever, perhaps--can’t help that--if not--’
  • Here Mr. Jingle paused, and striking the crown of his hat with great
  • violence, passed his hand over his eyes, and sat down.
  • ‘He means to say,’ said Job, advancing a few paces, ‘that if he is not
  • carried off by the fever, he will pay the money back again. If he lives,
  • he will, Mr. Pickwick. I will see it done. I know he will, Sir,’ said
  • Job, with energy. ‘I could undertake to swear it.’
  • ‘Well, well,’ said Mr. Pickwick, who had been bestowing a score or two
  • of frowns upon Perker, to stop his summary of benefits conferred, which
  • the little attorney obstinately disregarded, ‘you must be careful not to
  • play any more desperate cricket matches, Mr. Jingle, or to renew your
  • acquaintance with Sir Thomas Blazo, and I have little doubt of your
  • preserving your health.’
  • Mr. Jingle smiled at this sally, but looked rather foolish
  • notwithstanding; so Mr. Pickwick changed the subject by saying--
  • ‘You don’t happen to know, do you, what has become of another friend of
  • yours--a more humble one, whom I saw at Rochester?’
  • ‘Dismal Jemmy?’ inquired Jingle.
  • ‘Yes.’
  • Jingle shook his head.
  • ‘Clever rascal--queer fellow, hoaxing genius--Job’s brother.’
  • ‘Job’s brother!’ exclaimed Mr. Pickwick. ‘Well, now I look at him
  • closely, there _is_ a likeness.’
  • ‘We were always considered like each other, Sir,’ said Job, with a
  • cunning look just lurking in the corners of his eyes, ‘only I was really
  • of a serious nature, and he never was. He emigrated to America, Sir, in
  • consequence of being too much sought after here, to be comfortable; and
  • has never been heard of since.’
  • ‘That accounts for my not having received the “page from the romance of
  • real life,” which he promised me one morning when he appeared to be
  • contemplating suicide on Rochester Bridge, I suppose,’ said Mr.
  • Pickwick, smiling. ‘I need not inquire whether his dismal behaviour was
  • natural or assumed.’
  • ‘He could assume anything, Sir,’ said Job. ‘You may consider yourself
  • very fortunate in having escaped him so easily. On intimate terms he
  • would have been even a more dangerous acquaintance than--’ Job looked at
  • Jingle, hesitated, and finally added, ‘than--than-myself even.’
  • ‘A hopeful family yours, Mr. Trotter,’ said Perker, sealing a letter
  • which he had just finished writing.
  • ‘Yes, Sir,’ replied Job. ‘Very much so.’
  • ‘Well,’ said the little man, laughing, ‘I hope you are going to disgrace
  • it. Deliver this letter to the agent when you reach Liverpool, and let
  • me advise you, gentlemen, not to be too knowing in the West Indies. If
  • you throw away this chance, you will both richly deserve to be hanged,
  • as I sincerely trust you will be. And now you had better leave Mr.
  • Pickwick and me alone, for we have other matters to talk over, and time
  • is precious.’ As Perker said this, he looked towards the door, with an
  • evident desire to render the leave-taking as brief as possible.
  • It was brief enough on Mr. Jingle’s part. He thanked the little attorney
  • in a few hurried words for the kindness and promptitude with which he
  • had rendered his assistance, and, turning to his benefactor, stood for a
  • few seconds as if irresolute what to say or how to act. Job Trotter
  • relieved his perplexity; for, with a humble and grateful bow to Mr.
  • Pickwick, he took his friend gently by the arm, and led him away.
  • ‘A worthy couple!’ said Perker, as the door closed behind them.
  • ‘I hope they may become so,’ replied Mr. Pickwick. ‘What do you think?
  • Is there any chance of their permanent reformation?’
  • Perker shrugged his shoulders doubtfully, but observing Mr. Pickwick’s
  • anxious and disappointed look, rejoined--
  • ‘Of course there is a chance. I hope it may prove a good one. They are
  • unquestionably penitent now; but then, you know, they have the
  • recollection of very recent suffering fresh upon them. What they may
  • become, when that fades away, is a problem that neither you nor I can
  • solve. However, my dear Sir,’ added Perker, laying his hand on Mr.
  • Pickwick’s shoulder, ‘your object is equally honourable, whatever the
  • result is. Whether that species of benevolence which is so very cautious
  • and long-sighted that it is seldom exercised at all, lest its owner
  • should be imposed upon, and so wounded in his self-love, be real charity
  • or a worldly counterfeit, I leave to wiser heads than mine to determine.
  • But if those two fellows were to commit a burglary to-morrow, my opinion
  • of this action would be equally high.’
  • With these remarks, which were delivered in a much more animated and
  • earnest manner than is usual in legal gentlemen, Perker drew his chair
  • to his desk, and listened to Mr. Pickwick’s recital of old Mr. Winkle’s
  • obstinacy.
  • ‘Give him a week,’ said Perker, nodding his head prophetically.
  • ‘Do you think he will come round?’ inquired Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘I think he will,’ rejoined Perker. ‘If not, we must try the young
  • lady’s persuasion; and that is what anybody but you would have done at
  • first.’
  • Mr. Perker was taking a pinch of snuff with various grotesque
  • contractions of countenance, eulogistic of the persuasive powers
  • appertaining unto young ladies, when the murmur of inquiry and answer
  • was heard in the outer office, and Lowten tapped at the door.
  • ‘Come in!’ cried the little man.
  • The clerk came in, and shut the door after him, with great mystery.
  • ‘What’s the matter?’ inquired Perker.
  • ‘You’re wanted, Sir.’
  • ‘Who wants me?’
  • Lowten looked at Mr. Pickwick, and coughed.
  • ‘Who wants me? Can’t you speak, Mr. Lowten?’
  • ‘Why, sir,’ replied Lowten, ‘it’s Dodson; and Fogg is with him.’
  • ‘Bless my life!’ said the little man, looking at his watch, ‘I appointed
  • them to be here at half-past eleven, to settle that matter of yours,
  • Pickwick. I gave them an undertaking on which they sent down your
  • discharge; it’s very awkward, my dear Sir; what will you do? Would you
  • like to step into the next room?’
  • The next room being the identical room in which Messrs. Dodson & Fogg
  • were, Mr. Pickwick replied that he would remain where he was: the more
  • especially as Messrs. Dodson & Fogg ought to be ashamed to look him in
  • the face, instead of his being ashamed to see them. Which latter
  • circumstance he begged Mr. Perker to note, with a glowing countenance
  • and many marks of indignation.
  • ‘Very well, my dear Sir, very well,’ replied Perker, ‘I can only say
  • that if you expect either Dodson or Fogg to exhibit any symptom of shame
  • or confusion at having to look you, or anybody else, in the face, you
  • are the most sanguine man in your expectations that I ever met with.
  • Show them in, Mr. Lowten.’
  • Mr. Lowten disappeared with a grin, and immediately returned ushering in
  • the firm, in due form of precedence--Dodson first, and Fogg afterwards.
  • ‘You have seen Mr. Pickwick, I believe?’ said Perker to Dodson,
  • inclining his pen in the direction where that gentleman was seated.
  • ‘How do you do, Mr. Pickwick?’ said Dodson, in a loud voice.
  • ‘Dear me,’ cried Fogg, ‘how do you do, Mr. Pickwick? I hope you are
  • well, Sir. I thought I knew the face,’ said Fogg, drawing up a chair,
  • and looking round him with a smile.
  • Mr. Pickwick bent his head very slightly, in answer to these
  • salutations, and, seeing Fogg pull a bundle of papers from his coat
  • pocket, rose and walked to the window.
  • ‘There’s no occasion for Mr. Pickwick to move, Mr. Perker,’ said Fogg,
  • untying the red tape which encircled the little bundle, and smiling
  • again more sweetly than before. ‘Mr. Pickwick is pretty well acquainted
  • with these proceedings. There are no secrets between us, I think. He!
  • he! he!’
  • ‘Not many, I think,’ said Dodson. ‘Ha! ha! ha!’ Then both the partners
  • laughed together--pleasantly and cheerfully, as men who are going to
  • receive money often do.
  • ‘We shall make Mr. Pickwick pay for peeping,’ said Fogg, with
  • considerable native humour, as he unfolded his papers. ‘The amount of
  • the taxed costs is one hundred and thirty-three, six, four, Mr. Perker.’
  • There was a great comparing of papers, and turning over of leaves, by
  • Fogg and Perker, after this statement of profit and loss. Meanwhile,
  • Dodson said, in an affable manner, to Mr. Pickwick--
  • ‘I don’t think you are looking quite so stout as when I had the pleasure
  • of seeing you last, Mr. Pickwick.’
  • ‘Possibly not, Sir,’ replied Mr. Pickwick, who had been flashing forth
  • looks of fierce indignation, without producing the smallest effect on
  • either of the sharp practitioners; ‘I believe I am not, Sir. I have been
  • persecuted and annoyed by scoundrels of late, Sir.’
  • Perker coughed violently, and asked Mr. Pickwick whether he wouldn’t
  • like to look at the morning paper. To which inquiry Mr. Pickwick
  • returned a most decided negative.
  • ‘True,’ said Dodson, ‘I dare say you have been annoyed in the Fleet;
  • there are some odd gentry there. Whereabouts were your apartments, Mr.
  • Pickwick?’
  • ‘My one room,’ replied that much-injured gentleman, ‘was on the coffee-
  • room flight.’
  • ‘Oh, indeed!’ said Dodson. ‘I believe that is a very pleasant part of
  • the establishment.’
  • ‘Very,’ replied Mr. Pickwick drily.
  • There was a coolness about all this, which, to a gentleman of an
  • excitable temperament, had, under the circumstances, rather an
  • exasperating tendency. Mr. Pickwick restrained his wrath by gigantic
  • efforts; but when Perker wrote a cheque for the whole amount, and Fogg
  • deposited it in a small pocket-book, with a triumphant smile playing
  • over his pimply features, which communicated itself likewise to the
  • stern countenance of Dodson, he felt the blood in his cheeks tingling
  • with indignation.
  • ‘Now, Mr. Dodson,’ said Fogg, putting up the pocket-book and drawing on
  • his gloves, ‘I am at your service.’
  • ‘Very good,’ said Dodson, rising; ‘I am quite ready.’
  • ‘I am very happy,’ said Fogg, softened by the cheque, ‘to have had the
  • pleasure of making Mr. Pickwick’s acquaintance. I hope you don’t think
  • quite so ill of us, Mr. Pickwick, as when we first had the pleasure of
  • seeing you.’
  • ‘I hope not,’ said Dodson, with the high tone of calumniated virtue.
  • ‘Mr. Pickwick now knows us better, I trust; whatever your opinion of
  • gentlemen of our profession may be, I beg to assure you, sir, that I
  • bear no ill-will or vindictive feeling towards you for the sentiments
  • you thought proper to express in our office in Freeman’s Court,
  • Cornhill, on the occasion to which my partner has referred.’
  • ‘Oh, no, no; nor I,’ said Fogg, in a most forgiving manner.
  • ‘Our conduct, Sir,’ said Dodson, ‘will speak for itself, and justify
  • itself, I hope, upon every occasion. We have been in the profession some
  • years, Mr. Pickwick, and have been honoured with the confidence of many
  • excellent clients. I wish you good-morning, Sir.’
  • ‘Good-morning, Mr. Pickwick,’ said Fogg. So saying, he put his umbrella
  • under his arm, drew off his right glove, and extended the hand of
  • reconciliation to that most indignant gentleman; who, thereupon, thrust
  • his hands beneath his coat tails, and eyed the attorney with looks of
  • scornful amazement.
  • ‘Lowten!’ cried Perker, at this moment. ‘Open the door.’
  • ‘Wait one instant,’ said Mr. Pickwick. ‘Perker, I _will _speak.’
  • ‘My dear Sir, pray let the matter rest where it is,’ said the little
  • attorney, who had been in a state of nervous apprehension during the
  • whole interview; ‘Mr. Pickwick, I beg--’
  • ‘I will not be put down, Sir,’ replied Mr. Pickwick hastily. ‘Mr.
  • Dodson, you have addressed some remarks to me.’
  • Dodson turned round, bent his head meekly, and smiled.
  • ‘Some remarks to me,’ repeated Mr. Pickwick, almost breathless; ‘and
  • your partner has tendered me his hand, and you have both assumed a tone
  • of forgiveness and high-mindedness, which is an extent of impudence that
  • I was not prepared for, even in you.’
  • ‘What, sir!’ exclaimed Dodson.
  • ‘What, sir!’ reiterated Fogg.
  • ‘Do you know that I have been the victim of your plots and
  • conspiracies?’ continued Mr. Pickwick. ‘Do you know that I am the man
  • whom you have been imprisoning and robbing? Do you know that you were
  • the attorneys for the plaintiff, in Bardell and Pickwick?’
  • ‘Yes, sir, we do know it,’ replied Dodson.
  • ‘Of course we know it, Sir,’ rejoined Fogg, slapping his pocket--perhaps
  • by accident.
  • ‘I see that you recollect it with satisfaction,’ said Mr. Pickwick,
  • attempting to call up a sneer for the first time in his life, and
  • failing most signally in so doing. ‘Although I have long been anxious to
  • tell you, in plain terms, what my opinion of you is, I should have let
  • even this opportunity pass, in deference to my friend Perker’s wishes,
  • but for the unwarrantable tone you have assumed, and your insolent
  • familiarity. I say insolent familiarity, sir,’ said Mr. Pickwick,
  • turning upon Fogg with a fierceness of gesture which caused that person
  • to retreat towards the door with great expedition.
  • ‘Take care, Sir,’ said Dodson, who, though he was the biggest man of the
  • party, had prudently entrenched himself behind Fogg, and was speaking
  • over his head with a very pale face. ‘Let him assault you, Mr. Fogg;
  • don’t return it on any account.’
  • ‘No, no, I won’t return it,’ said Fogg, falling back a little more as he
  • spoke; to the evident relief of his partner, who by these means was
  • gradually getting into the outer office.
  • ‘You are,’ continued Mr. Pickwick, resuming the thread of his discourse-
  • -’you are a well-matched pair of mean, rascally, pettifogging robbers.’
  • ‘Well,’ interposed Perker, ‘is that all?’
  • ‘It is all summed up in that,’ rejoined Mr. Pickwick; ‘they are mean,
  • rascally, pettifogging robbers.’
  • ‘There!’ said Perker, in a most conciliatory tone. ‘My dear sirs, he has
  • said all he has to say. Now pray go. Lowten, is that door open?’
  • Mr. Lowten, with a distant giggle, replied in the affirmative.
  • ‘There, there--good-morning--good-morning--now pray, my dear sirs--Mr.
  • Lowten, the door!’ cried the little man, pushing Dodson & Fogg, nothing
  • loath, out of the office; ‘this way, my dear sirs--now pray don’t
  • prolong this--Dear me--Mr. Lowten--the door, sir--why don’t you attend?’
  • ‘If there’s law in England, sir,’ said Dodson, looking towards Mr.
  • Pickwick, as he put on his hat, ‘you shall smart for this.’
  • ‘You are a couple of mean--’
  • ‘Remember, sir, you pay dearly for this,’ said Fogg.
  • ‘--Rascally, pettifogging robbers!’ continued Mr. Pickwick, taking not
  • the least notice of the threats that were addressed to him.
  • ‘Robbers!’ cried Mr. Pickwick, running to the stair-head, as the two
  • attorneys descended.
  • ‘Robbers!’ shouted Mr. Pickwick, breaking from Lowten and Perker, and
  • thrusting his head out of the staircase window.
  • When Mr. Pickwick drew in his head again, his countenance was smiling
  • and placid; and, walking quietly back into the office, he declared that
  • he had now removed a great weight from his mind, and that he felt
  • perfectly comfortable and happy.
  • Perker said nothing at all until he had emptied his snuff-box, and sent
  • Lowten out to fill it, when he was seized with a fit of laughing, which
  • lasted five minutes; at the expiration of which time he said that he
  • supposed he ought to be very angry, but he couldn’t think of the
  • business seriously yet--when he could, he would be.
  • ‘Well, now,’ said Mr. Pickwick, ‘let me have a settlement with you.’
  • Of the same kind as the last?’ inquired Perker, with another laugh.
  • ‘Not exactly,’ rejoined Mr. Pickwick, drawing out his pocket-book, and
  • shaking the little man heartily by the hand, ‘I only mean a pecuniary
  • settlement. You have done me many acts of kindness that I can never
  • repay, and have no wish to repay, for I prefer continuing the
  • obligation.’
  • With this preface, the two friends dived into some very complicated
  • accounts and vouchers, which, having been duly displayed and gone
  • through by Perker, were at once discharged by Mr. Pickwick with many
  • professions of esteem and friendship.
  • They had no sooner arrived at this point, than a most violent and
  • startling knocking was heard at the door; it was not an ordinary double-
  • knock, but a constant and uninterrupted succession of the loudest single
  • raps, as if the knocker were endowed with the perpetual motion, or the
  • person outside had forgotten to leave off.
  • ‘Dear me, what’s that?’ exclaimed Perker, starting.
  • ‘I think it is a knock at the door,’ said Mr. Pickwick, as if there
  • could be the smallest doubt of the fact.
  • The knocker made a more energetic reply than words could have yielded,
  • for it continued to hammer with surprising force and noise, without a
  • moment’s cessation.
  • ‘Dear me!’ said Perker, ringing his bell, ‘we shall alarm the inn. Mr.
  • Lowten, don’t you hear a knock?’
  • ‘I’ll answer the door in one moment, Sir,’ replied the clerk.
  • The knocker appeared to hear the response, and to assert that it was
  • quite impossible he could wait so long. It made a stupendous uproar.
  • ‘It’s quite dreadful,’ said Mr. Pickwick, stopping his ears.
  • ‘Make haste, Mr. Lowten,’ Perker called out; ‘we shall have the panels
  • beaten in.’
  • Mr. Lowten, who was washing his hands in a dark closet, hurried to the
  • door, and turning the handle, beheld the appearance which is described
  • in the next chapter.
  • CHAPTER LIV. CONTAINING SOME PARTICULARS RELATIVE TO THE DOUBLE KNOCK,
  • AND OTHER MATTERS: AMONG WHICH CERTAIN INTERESTING DISCLOSURES RELATIVE
  • TO MR. SNODGRASS AND A YOUNG LADY ARE BY NO MEANS IRRELEVANT TO THIS
  • HISTORY
  • The object that presented itself to the eyes of the astonished clerk,
  • was a boy--a wonderfully fat boy--habited as a serving lad, standing
  • upright on the mat, with his eyes closed as if in sleep. He had never
  • seen such a fat boy, in or out of a travelling caravan; and this,
  • coupled with the calmness and repose of his appearance, so very
  • different from what was reasonably to have been expected of the
  • inflicter of such knocks, smote him with wonder.
  • ‘What’s the matter?’ inquired the clerk.
  • The extraordinary boy replied not a word; but he nodded once, and
  • seemed, to the clerk’s imagination, to snore feebly.
  • ‘Where do you come from?’ inquired the clerk.
  • The boy made no sign. He breathed heavily, but in all other respects was
  • motionless.
  • The clerk repeated the question thrice, and receiving no answer,
  • prepared to shut the door, when the boy suddenly opened his eyes, winked
  • several times, sneezed once, and raised his hand as if to repeat the
  • knocking. Finding the door open, he stared about him with astonishment,
  • and at length fixed his eyes on Mr. Lowten’s face.
  • ‘What the devil do you knock in that way for?’ inquired the clerk
  • angrily.
  • ‘Which way?’ said the boy, in a slow and sleepy voice.
  • ‘Why, like forty hackney-coachmen,’ replied the clerk.
  • ‘Because master said, I wasn’t to leave off knocking till they opened
  • the door, for fear I should go to sleep,’ said the boy.
  • ‘Well,’ said the clerk, ‘what message have you brought?’
  • ‘He’s downstairs,’ rejoined the boy.
  • ‘Who?’
  • ‘Master. He wants to know whether you’re at home.’
  • Mr. Lowten bethought himself, at this juncture, of looking out of the
  • window. Seeing an open carriage with a hearty old gentleman in it,
  • looking up very anxiously, he ventured to beckon him; on which, the old
  • gentleman jumped out directly.
  • ‘That’s your master in the carriage, I suppose?’ said Lowten.
  • The boy nodded.
  • All further inquiries were superseded by the appearance of old Wardle,
  • who, running upstairs and just recognising Lowten, passed at once into
  • Mr. Perker’s room.
  • ‘Pickwick!’ said the old gentleman. ‘Your hand, my boy! Why have I never
  • heard until the day before yesterday of your suffering yourself to be
  • cooped up in jail? And why did you let him do it, Perker?’
  • ‘I couldn’t help it, my dear Sir,’ replied Perker, with a smile and a
  • pinch of snuff; ‘you know how obstinate he is?’
  • ‘Of course I do; of course I do,’ replied the old gentleman. ‘I am
  • heartily glad to see him, notwithstanding. I will not lose sight of him
  • again, in a hurry.’
  • With these words, Wardle shook Mr. Pickwick’s hand once more, and,
  • having done the same by Perker, threw himself into an arm-chair, his
  • jolly red face shining again with smiles and health.
  • ‘Well!’ said Wardle. ‘Here are pretty goings on--a pinch of your snuff,
  • Perker, my boy--never were such times, eh?’
  • ‘What do you mean?’ inquired Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Mean!’ replied Wardle. ‘Why, I think the girls are all running mad;
  • that’s no news, you’ll say? Perhaps it’s not; but it’s true, for all
  • that.’
  • ‘You have not come up to London, of all places in the world, to tell us
  • that, my dear Sir, have you?’ inquired Perker.
  • ‘No, not altogether,’ replied Wardle; ‘though it was the main cause of
  • my coming. How’s Arabella?’
  • ‘Very well,’ replied Mr. Pickwick, ‘and will be delighted to see you, I
  • am sure.’
  • ‘Black-eyed little jilt!’ replied Wardle. ‘I had a great idea of
  • marrying her myself, one of these odd days. But I am glad of it too,
  • very glad.’
  • ‘How did the intelligence reach you?’ asked Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Oh, it came to my girls, of course,’ replied Wardle. ‘Arabella wrote,
  • the day before yesterday, to say she had made a stolen match without her
  • husband’s father’s consent, and so you had gone down to get it when his
  • refusing it couldn’t prevent the match, and all the rest of it. I
  • thought it a very good time to say something serious to my girls; so I
  • said what a dreadful thing it was that children should marry without
  • their parents’ consent, and so forth; but, bless your hearts, I couldn’t
  • make the least impression upon them. They thought it such a much more
  • dreadful thing that there should have been a wedding without
  • bridesmaids, that I might as well have preached to Joe himself.’
  • Here the old gentleman stopped to laugh; and having done so to his
  • heart’s content, presently resumed--
  • ‘But this is not the best of it, it seems. This is only half the love-
  • making and plotting that have been going forward. We have been walking
  • on mines for the last six months, and they’re sprung at last.’
  • ‘What do you mean?’ exclaimed Mr. Pickwick, turning pale; ‘no other
  • secret marriage, I hope?’
  • ‘No, no,’ replied old Wardle; ‘not so bad as that; no.’
  • ‘What then?’ inquired Mr. Pickwick; ‘am I interested in it?’
  • ‘Shall I answer that question, Perker?’ said Wardle.
  • ‘If you don’t commit yourself by doing so, my dear Sir.’
  • ‘Well then, you are,’ said Wardle.
  • ‘How?’ asked Mr. Pickwick anxiously. ‘In what way?’
  • ‘Really,’ replied Wardle, ‘you’re such a fiery sort of a young fellow
  • that I am almost afraid to tell you; but, however, if Perker will sit
  • between us to prevent mischief, I’ll venture.’
  • Having closed the room door, and fortified himself with another
  • application to Perker’s snuff-box, the old gentleman proceeded with his
  • great disclosure in these words--
  • ‘The fact is, that my daughter Bella--Bella, who married young Trundle,
  • you know.’
  • ‘Yes, yes, we know,’ said Mr. Pickwick impatiently.
  • ‘Don’t alarm me at the very beginning. My daughter Bella--Emily having
  • gone to bed with a headache after she had read Arabella’s letter to me--
  • sat herself down by my side the other evening, and began to talk over
  • this marriage affair. “Well, pa,” she says, “what do you think of it?”
  • “Why, my dear,” I said, “I suppose it’s all very well; I hope it’s for
  • the best.” I answered in this way because I was sitting before the fire
  • at the time, drinking my grog rather thoughtfully, and I knew my
  • throwing in an undecided word now and then, would induce her to continue
  • talking. Both my girls are pictures of their dear mother, and as I grow
  • old I like to sit with only them by me; for their voices and looks carry
  • me back to the happiest period of my life, and make me, for the moment,
  • as young as I used to be then, though not quite so light-hearted. “It’s
  • quite a marriage of affection, pa,” said Bella, after a short silence.
  • “Yes, my dear,” said I, “but such marriages do not always turn out the
  • happiest.”’
  • ‘I question that, mind!’ interposed Mr. Pickwick warmly.
  • ‘Very good,’ responded Wardle, ‘question anything you like when it’s
  • your turn to speak, but don’t interrupt me.’
  • ‘I beg your pardon,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Granted,’ replied Wardle. ‘“I am sorry to hear you express your opinion
  • against marriages of affection, pa,” said Bella, colouring a little. “I
  • was wrong; I ought not to have said so, my dear, either,” said I,
  • patting her cheek as kindly as a rough old fellow like me could pat it,
  • “for your mother’s was one, and so was yours.” “It’s not that I meant,
  • pa,” said Bella. “The fact is, pa, I wanted to speak to you about
  • Emily.”’
  • Mr. Pickwick started.
  • ‘What’s the matter now?’ inquired Wardle, stopping in his narrative.
  • ‘Nothing,’ replied Mr. Pickwick. ‘Pray go on.’
  • ‘I never could spin out a story,’ said Wardle abruptly. ‘It must come
  • out, sooner or later, and it’ll save us all a great deal of time if it
  • comes at once. The long and the short of it is, then, that Bella at last
  • mustered up courage to tell me that Emily was very unhappy; that she and
  • your young friend Snodgrass had been in constant correspondence and
  • communication ever since last Christmas; that she had very dutifully
  • made up her mind to run away with him, in laudable imitation of her old
  • friend and school-fellow; but that having some compunctions of
  • conscience on the subject, inasmuch as I had always been rather kindly
  • disposed to both of them, they had thought it better in the first
  • instance to pay me the compliment of asking whether I would have any
  • objection to their being married in the usual matter-of-fact manner.
  • There now, Mr. Pickwick, if you can make it convenient to reduce your
  • eyes to their usual size again, and to let me hear what you think we
  • ought to do, I shall feel rather obliged to you!’
  • The testy manner in which the hearty old gentleman uttered this last
  • sentence was not wholly unwarranted; for Mr. Pickwick’s face had settled
  • down into an expression of blank amazement and perplexity, quite curious
  • to behold.
  • ‘Snodgrass!--since last Christmas!’ were the first broken words that
  • issued from the lips of the confounded gentleman.
  • ‘Since last Christmas,’ replied Wardle; ‘that’s plain enough, and very
  • bad spectacles we must have worn, not to have discovered it before.’
  • ‘I don’t understand it,’ said Mr. Pickwick, ruminating; ‘I cannot really
  • understand it.’
  • ‘It’s easy enough to understand it,’ replied the choleric old gentleman.
  • ‘If you had been a younger man, you would have been in the secret long
  • ago; and besides,’ added Wardle, after a moment’s hesitation, ‘the truth
  • is, that, knowing nothing of this matter, I have rather pressed Emily
  • for four or five months past, to receive favourably (if she could; I
  • would never attempt to force a girl’s inclinations) the addresses of a
  • young gentleman down in our neighbourhood. I have no doubt that, girl-
  • like, to enhance her own value and increase the ardour of Mr. Snodgrass,
  • she has represented this matter in very glowing colours, and that they
  • have both arrived at the conclusion that they are a terribly-persecuted
  • pair of unfortunates, and have no resource but clandestine matrimony, or
  • charcoal. Now the question is, what’s to be done?’
  • ‘What have _you _done?’ inquired Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘_I!_’
  • ‘I mean what did you do when your married daughter told you this?’
  • ‘Oh, I made a fool of myself of course,’ rejoined Wardle.
  • ‘Just so,’ interposed Perker, who had accompanied this dialogue with
  • sundry twitchings of his watch-chain, vindictive rubbings of his nose,
  • and other symptoms of impatience. ‘That’s very natural; but how?’
  • ‘I went into a great passion and frightened my mother into a fit,’ said
  • Wardle.
  • ‘That was judicious,’ remarked Perker; ‘and what else?’
  • ‘I fretted and fumed all next day, and raised a great disturbance,’
  • rejoined the old gentleman. ‘At last I got tired of rendering myself
  • unpleasant and making everybody miserable; so I hired a carriage at
  • Muggleton, and, putting my own horses in it, came up to town, under
  • pretence of bringing Emily to see Arabella.’
  • ‘Miss Wardle is with you, then?’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘To be sure she is,’ replied Wardle. ‘She is at Osborne’s Hotel in the
  • Adelphi at this moment, unless your enterprising friend has run away
  • with her since I came out this morning.’
  • ‘You are reconciled then?’ said Perker.
  • ‘Not a bit of it,’ answered Wardle; ‘she has been crying and moping ever
  • since, except last night, between tea and supper, when she made a great
  • parade of writing a letter that I pretended to take no notice of.’
  • ‘You want my advice in this matter, I suppose?’ said Perker, looking
  • from the musing face of Mr. Pickwick to the eager countenance of Wardle,
  • and taking several consecutive pinches of his favourite stimulant.
  • ‘I suppose so,’ said Wardle, looking at Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Certainly,’ replied that gentleman.
  • ‘Well then,’ said Perker, rising and pushing his chair back, ‘my advice
  • is, that you both walk away together, or ride away, or get away by some
  • means or other, for I’m tired of you, and just talk this matter over
  • between you. If you have not settled it by the next time I see you, I’ll
  • tell you what to do.’
  • ‘This is satisfactory,’ said Wardle, hardly knowing whether to smile or
  • be offended.
  • ‘Pooh, pooh, my dear Sir,’ returned Perker. ‘I know you both a great
  • deal better than you know yourselves. You have settled it already, to
  • all intents and purposes.’
  • Thus expressing himself, the little gentleman poked his snuff-box first
  • into the chest of Mr. Pickwick, and then into the waistcoat of Mr.
  • Wardle, upon which they all three laughed, especially the two last-named
  • gentlemen, who at once shook hands again, without any obvious or
  • particular reason.
  • ‘You dine with me to-day,’ said Wardle to Perker, as he showed them out.
  • ‘Can’t promise, my dear Sir, can’t promise,’ replied Perker. ‘I’ll look
  • in, in the evening, at all events.’
  • ‘I shall expect you at five,’ said Wardle. ‘Now, Joe!’ And Joe having
  • been at length awakened, the two friends departed in Mr. Wardle’s
  • carriage, which in common humanity had a dickey behind for the fat boy,
  • who, if there had been a footboard instead, would have rolled off and
  • killed himself in his very first nap.
  • Driving to the George and Vulture, they found that Arabella and her maid
  • had sent for a hackney-coach immediately on the receipt of a short note
  • from Emily announcing her arrival in town, and had proceeded straight to
  • the Adelphi. As Wardle had business to transact in the city, they sent
  • the carriage and the fat boy to his hotel, with the information that he
  • and Mr. Pickwick would return together to dinner at five o’clock.
  • Charged with this message, the fat boy returned, slumbering as peaceably
  • in his dickey, over the stones, as if it had been a down bed on watch
  • springs. By some extraordinary miracle he awoke of his own accord, when
  • the coach stopped, and giving himself a good shake to stir up his
  • faculties, went upstairs to execute his commission.
  • Now, whether the shake had jumbled the fat boy’s faculties together,
  • instead of arranging them in proper order, or had roused such a quantity
  • of new ideas within him as to render him oblivious of ordinary forms and
  • ceremonies, or (which is also possible) had proved unsuccessful in
  • preventing his falling asleep as he ascended the stairs, it is an
  • undoubted fact that he walked into the sitting-room without previously
  • knocking at the door; and so beheld a gentleman with his arms clasping
  • his young mistress’s waist, sitting very lovingly by her side on a sofa,
  • while Arabella and her pretty handmaid feigned to be absorbed in looking
  • out of a window at the other end of the room. At the sight of this
  • phenomenon, the fat boy uttered an interjection, the ladies a scream,
  • and the gentleman an oath, almost simultaneously.
  • ‘Wretched creature, what do you want here?’ said the gentleman, who it
  • is needless to say was Mr. Snodgrass.
  • To this the fat boy, considerably terrified, briefly responded,
  • ‘Missis.’
  • ‘What do you want me for,’ inquired Emily, turning her head aside, ‘you
  • stupid creature?’
  • ‘Master and Mr. Pickwick is a-going to dine here at five,’ replied the
  • fat boy.
  • ‘Leave the room!’ said Mr. Snodgrass, glaring upon the bewildered youth.
  • ‘No, no, no,’ added Emily hastily. ‘Bella, dear, advise me.’
  • Upon this, Emily and Mr. Snodgrass, and Arabella and Mary, crowded into
  • a corner, and conversed earnestly in whispers for some minutes, during
  • which the fat boy dozed.
  • ‘Joe,’ said Arabella, at length, looking round with a most bewitching
  • smile, ‘how do you do, Joe?’
  • ‘Joe,’ said Emily, ‘you’re a very good boy; I won’t forget you, Joe.’
  • ‘Joe,’ said Mr. Snodgrass, advancing to the astonished youth, and
  • seizing his hand, ‘I didn’t know you before. There’s five shillings for
  • you, Joe!”
  • ‘I’ll owe you five, Joe,’ said Arabella, ‘for old acquaintance sake, you
  • know;’ and another most captivating smile was bestowed upon the
  • corpulent intruder.
  • The fat boy’s perception being slow, he looked rather puzzled at first
  • to account for this sudden prepossession in his favour, and stared about
  • him in a very alarming manner. At length his broad face began to show
  • symptoms of a grin of proportionately broad dimensions; and then,
  • thrusting half-a-crown into each of his pockets, and a hand and wrist
  • after it, he burst into a horse laugh: being for the first and only time
  • in his existence.
  • ‘He understands us, I see,’ said Arabella.
  • ‘He had better have something to eat, immediately,’ remarked Emily.
  • The fat boy almost laughed again when he heard this suggestion. Mary,
  • after a little more whispering, tripped forth from the group and said--
  • ‘I am going to dine with you to-day, sir, if you have no objection.’
  • ‘This way,’ said the fat boy eagerly. ‘There is such a jolly meat-pie!’
  • With these words, the fat boy led the way downstairs; his pretty
  • companion captivating all the waiters and angering all the chambermaids
  • as she followed him to the eating-room.
  • There was the meat-pie of which the youth had spoken so feelingly, and
  • there were, moreover, a steak, and a dish of potatoes, and a pot of
  • porter.
  • ‘Sit down,’ said the fat boy. ‘Oh, my eye, how prime! I am _so_ hungry.’
  • Having apostrophised his eye, in a species of rapture, five or six
  • times, the youth took the head of the little table, and Mary seated
  • herself at the bottom.
  • ‘Will you have some of this?’ said the fat boy, plunging into the pie up
  • to the very ferules of the knife and fork.
  • ‘A little, if you please,’ replied Mary.
  • The fat boy assisted Mary to a little, and himself to a great deal, and
  • was just going to begin eating when he suddenly laid down his knife and
  • fork, leaned forward in his chair, and letting his hands, with the knife
  • and fork in them, fall on his knees, said, very slowly--
  • ‘I say! How nice you look!’
  • This was said in an admiring manner, and was, so far, gratifying; but
  • still there was enough of the cannibal in the young gentleman’s eyes to
  • render the compliment a double one.
  • ‘Dear me, Joseph,’ said Mary, affecting to blush, ‘what do you mean?’
  • The fat boy, gradually recovering his former position, replied with a
  • heavy sigh, and, remaining thoughtful for a few moments, drank a long
  • draught of the porter. Having achieved this feat, he sighed again, and
  • applied himself assiduously to the pie.
  • ‘What a nice young lady Miss Emily is!’ said Mary, after a long silence.
  • The fat boy had by this time finished the pie. He fixed his eyes on
  • Mary, and replied--
  • ‘I knows a nicerer.’
  • ‘Indeed!’ said Mary.
  • ‘Yes, indeed!’ replied the fat boy, with unwonted vivacity.
  • ‘What’s her name?’ inquired Mary.
  • ‘What’s yours?’
  • ‘Mary.’
  • ‘So’s hers,’ said the fat boy. ‘You’re her.’ The boy grinned to add
  • point to the compliment, and put his eyes into something between a
  • squint and a cast, which there is reason to believe he intended for an
  • ogle.
  • ‘You mustn’t talk to me in that way,’ said Mary; ‘you don’t mean it.’
  • ‘Don’t I, though?’ replied the fat boy. ‘I say?’
  • ‘Well?’
  • ‘Are you going to come here regular?’
  • ‘No,’ rejoined Mary, shaking her head, ‘I’m going away again to-night.
  • Why?’
  • ‘Oh,’ said the fat boy, in a tone of strong feeling; ‘how we should have
  • enjoyed ourselves at meals, if you had been!’
  • ‘I might come here sometimes, perhaps, to see you,’ said Mary, plaiting
  • the table-cloth in assumed coyness, ‘if you would do me a favour.’
  • The fat boy looked from the pie-dish to the steak, as if he thought a
  • favour must be in a manner connected with something to eat; and then
  • took out one of the half-crowns and glanced at it nervously.
  • ‘Don’t you understand me?’ said Mary, looking slily in his fat face.
  • Again he looked at the half-crown, and said faintly, ‘No.’
  • ‘The ladies want you not to say anything to the old gentleman about the
  • young gentleman having been upstairs; and I want you too.’
  • ‘Is that all?’ said the fat boy, evidently very much relieved, as he
  • pocketed the half-crown again. ‘Of course I ain’t a-going to.’
  • ‘You see,’ said Mary, ‘Mr. Snodgrass is very fond of Miss Emily, and
  • Miss Emily’s very fond of him, and if you were to tell about it, the old
  • gentleman would carry you all away miles into the country, where you’d
  • see nobody.’
  • ‘No, no, I won’t tell,’ said the fat boy stoutly.
  • ‘That’s a dear,’ said Mary. ‘Now it’s time I went upstairs, and got my
  • lady ready for dinner.’
  • ‘Don’t go yet,’ urged the fat boy.
  • ‘I must,’ replied Mary. ‘Good-bye, for the present.’
  • The fat boy, with elephantine playfulness, stretched out his arms to
  • ravish a kiss; but as it required no great agility to elude him, his
  • fair enslaver had vanished before he closed them again; upon which the
  • apathetic youth ate a pound or so of steak with a sentimental
  • countenance, and fell fast asleep.
  • There was so much to say upstairs, and there were so many plans to
  • concert for elopement and matrimony in the event of old Wardle
  • continuing to be cruel, that it wanted only half an hour of dinner when
  • Mr. Snodgrass took his final adieu. The ladies ran to Emily’s bedroom to
  • dress, and the lover, taking up his hat, walked out of the room. He had
  • scarcely got outside the door, when he heard Wardle’s voice talking
  • loudly, and looking over the banisters beheld him, followed by some
  • other gentlemen, coming straight upstairs. Knowing nothing of the house,
  • Mr. Snodgrass in his confusion stepped hastily back into the room he had
  • just quitted, and passing thence into an inner apartment (Mr. Wardle’s
  • bedchamber), closed the door softly, just as the persons he had caught a
  • glimpse of entered the sitting-room. These were Mr. Wardle, Mr.
  • Pickwick, Mr. Nathaniel Winkle, and Mr. Benjamin Allen, whom he had no
  • difficulty in recognising by their voices.
  • ‘Very lucky I had the presence of mind to avoid them,’ thought Mr.
  • Snodgrass with a smile, and walking on tiptoe to another door near the
  • bedside; ‘this opens into the same passage, and I can walk quietly and
  • comfortably away.’
  • There was only one obstacle to his walking quietly and comfortably away,
  • which was that the door was locked and the key gone.
  • ‘Let us have some of your best wine to-day, waiter,’ said old Wardle,
  • rubbing his hands.
  • ‘You shall have some of the very best, sir,’ replied the waiter.
  • ‘Let the ladies know we have come in.’
  • ‘Yes, Sir.’
  • Devoutly and ardently did Mr. Snodgrass wish that the ladies could know
  • he had come in. He ventured once to whisper, ‘Waiter!’ through the
  • keyhole, but the probability of the wrong waiter coming to his relief,
  • flashed upon his mind, together with a sense of the strong resemblance
  • between his own situation and that in which another gentleman had been
  • recently found in a neighbouring hotel (an account of whose misfortunes
  • had appeared under the head of ‘Police’ in that morning’s paper), he sat
  • himself on a portmanteau, and trembled violently.
  • ‘We won’t wait a minute for Perker,’ said Wardle, looking at his watch;
  • ‘he is always exact. He will be here, in time, if he means to come; and
  • if he does not, it’s of no use waiting. Ha! Arabella!’
  • ‘My sister!’ exclaimed Mr. Benjamin Allen, folding her in a most
  • romantic embrace.
  • ‘Oh, Ben, dear, how you do smell of tobacco,’ said Arabella, rather
  • overcome by this mark of affection.
  • ‘Do I?’ said Mr. Benjamin Allen. ‘Do I, Bella? Well, perhaps I do.’
  • Perhaps he did, having just left a pleasant little smoking-party of
  • twelve medical students, in a small back parlour with a large fire.
  • ‘But I am delighted to see you,’ said Mr. Ben Allen. ‘Bless you, Bella!’
  • ‘There,’ said Arabella, bending forward to kiss her brother; ‘don’t take
  • hold of me again, Ben, dear, because you tumble me so.’
  • At this point of the reconciliation, Mr. Ben Allen allowed his feelings
  • and the cigars and porter to overcome him, and looked round upon the
  • beholders with damp spectacles.
  • ‘Is nothing to be said to me?’ cried Wardle, with open arms.
  • ‘A great deal,’ whispered Arabella, as she received the old gentleman’s
  • hearty caress and congratulation. ‘You are a hard-hearted, unfeeling,
  • cruel monster.’
  • ‘You are a little rebel,’ replied Wardle, in the same tone, ‘and I am
  • afraid I shall be obliged to forbid you the house. People like you, who
  • get married in spite of everybody, ought not to be let loose on society.
  • But come!’ added the old gentleman aloud, ‘here’s the dinner; you shall
  • sit by me. Joe; why, damn the boy, he’s awake!’
  • To the great distress of his master, the fat boy was indeed in a state
  • of remarkable vigilance, his eyes being wide open, and looking as if
  • they intended to remain so. There was an alacrity in his manner, too,
  • which was equally unaccountable; every time his eyes met those of Emily
  • or Arabella, he smirked and grinned; once, Wardle could have sworn, he
  • saw him wink.
  • This alteration in the fat boy’s demeanour originated in his increased
  • sense of his own importance, and the dignity he acquired from having
  • been taken into the confidence of the young ladies; and the smirks, and
  • grins, and winks were so many condescending assurances that they might
  • depend upon his fidelity. As these tokens were rather calculated to
  • awaken suspicion than allay it, and were somewhat embarrassing besides,
  • they were occasionally answered by a frown or shake of the head from
  • Arabella, which the fat boy, considering as hints to be on his guard,
  • expressed his perfect understanding of, by smirking, grinning, and
  • winking, with redoubled assiduity.
  • ‘Joe,’ said Mr. Wardle, after an unsuccessful search in all his pockets,
  • ‘is my snuff-box on the sofa?’
  • ‘No, sir,’ replied the fat boy.
  • ‘Oh, I recollect; I left it on my dressing-table this morning,’ said
  • Wardle. ‘Run into the next room and fetch it.’
  • The fat boy went into the next room; and, having been absent about a
  • minute, returned with the snuff-box, and the palest face that ever a fat
  • boy wore.
  • ‘What’s the matter with the boy?’ exclaimed Wardle.
  • ‘Nothen’s the matter with me,’ replied Joe nervously.
  • ‘Have you been seeing any spirits?’ inquired the old gentleman.
  • ‘Or taking any?’ added Ben Allen.
  • ‘I think you’re right,’ whispered Wardle across the table. ‘He is
  • intoxicated, I’m sure.’
  • Ben Allen replied that he thought he was; and, as that gentleman had
  • seen a vast deal of the disease in question, Wardle was confirmed in an
  • impression which had been hovering about his mind for half an hour, and
  • at once arrived at the conclusion that the fat boy was drunk.
  • ‘Just keep your eye upon him for a few minutes,’ murmured Wardle. ‘We
  • shall soon find out whether he is or not.’
  • The unfortunate youth had only interchanged a dozen words with Mr.
  • Snodgrass, that gentleman having implored him to make a private appeal
  • to some friend to release him, and then pushed him out with the snuff-
  • box, lest his prolonged absence should lead to a discovery. He ruminated
  • a little with a most disturbed expression of face, and left the room in
  • search of Mary.
  • But Mary had gone home after dressing her mistress, and the fat boy came
  • back again more disturbed than before.
  • Wardle and Mr. Ben Allen exchanged glances.
  • ‘Joe!’ said Wardle.
  • ‘Yes, sir.’
  • ‘What did you go away for?’
  • The fat boy looked hopelessly in the face of everybody at table, and
  • stammered out that he didn’t know.
  • ‘Oh,’ said Wardle, ‘you don’t know, eh? Take this cheese to Mr.
  • Pickwick.’
  • Now, Mr. Pickwick being in the very best health and spirits, had been
  • making himself perfectly delightful all dinner-time, and was at this
  • moment engaged in an energetic conversation with Emily and Mr. Winkle;
  • bowing his head, courteously, in the emphasis of his discourse, gently
  • waving his left hand to lend force to his observations, and all glowing
  • with placid smiles. He took a piece of cheese from the plate, and was on
  • the point of turning round to renew the conversation, when the fat boy,
  • stooping so as to bring his head on a level with that of Mr. Pickwick,
  • pointed with his thumb over his shoulder, and made the most horrible and
  • hideous face that was ever seen out of a Christmas pantomime.
  • ‘Dear me!’ said Mr. Pickwick, starting, ‘what a very--Eh?’ He stopped,
  • for the fat boy had drawn himself up, and was, or pretended to be, fast
  • asleep.
  • ‘What’s the matter?’ inquired Wardle.
  • ‘This is such an extremely singular lad!’ replied Mr. Pickwick, looking
  • uneasily at the boy. ‘It seems an odd thing to say, but upon my word I
  • am afraid that, at times, he is a little deranged.’
  • ‘Oh! Mr. Pickwick, pray don’t say so,’ cried Emily and Arabella, both at
  • once.
  • ‘I am not certain, of course,’ said Mr. Pickwick, amidst profound
  • silence and looks of general dismay; ‘but his manner to me this moment
  • really was very alarming. Oh!’ ejaculated Mr. Pickwick, suddenly jumping
  • up with a short scream. ‘I beg your pardon, ladies, but at that moment
  • he ran some sharp instrument into my leg. Really, he is not safe.’
  • ‘He’s drunk,’ roared old Wardle passionately. ‘Ring the bell! Call the
  • waiters! He’s drunk.’
  • ‘I ain’t,’ said the fat boy, falling on his knees as his master seized
  • him by the collar. ‘I ain’t drunk.’
  • ‘Then you’re mad; that’s worse. Call the waiters,’ said the old
  • gentleman.
  • ‘I ain’t mad; I’m sensible,’ rejoined the fat boy, beginning to cry.
  • ‘Then, what the devil did you run sharp instruments into Mr. Pickwick’s
  • legs for?’ inquired Wardle angrily.
  • ‘He wouldn’t look at me,’ replied the boy. ‘I wanted to speak to him.’
  • ‘What did you want to say?’ asked half a dozen voices at once.
  • The fat boy gasped, looked at the bedroom door, gasped again, and wiped
  • two tears away with the knuckle of each of his forefingers.
  • ‘What did you want to say?’ demanded Wardle, shaking him.
  • ‘Stop!’ said Mr. Pickwick; ‘allow me. What did you wish to communicate
  • to me, my poor boy?’
  • ‘I want to whisper to you,’ replied the fat boy.
  • ‘You want to bite his ear off, I suppose,’ said Wardle. ‘Don’t come near
  • him; he’s vicious; ring the bell, and let him be taken downstairs.’
  • Just as Mr. Winkle caught the bell-rope in his hand, it was arrested by
  • a general expression of astonishment; the captive lover, his face
  • burning with confusion, suddenly walked in from the bedroom, and made a
  • comprehensive bow to the company.
  • ‘Hollo!’ cried Wardle, releasing the fat boy’s collar, and staggering
  • back. ‘What’s this?’
  • ‘I have been concealed in the next room, sir, since you returned,’
  • explained Mr. Snodgrass.
  • ‘Emily, my girl,’ said Wardle reproachfully, ‘I detest meanness and
  • deceit; this is unjustifiable and indelicate in the highest degree. I
  • don’t deserve this at your hands, Emily, indeed!’
  • ‘Dear papa,’ said Emily, ‘Arabella knows--everybody here knows--Joe
  • knows--that I was no party to this concealment. Augustus, for Heaven’s
  • sake, explain it!’
  • Mr. Snodgrass, who had only waited for a hearing, at once recounted how
  • he had been placed in his then distressing predicament; how the fear of
  • giving rise to domestic dissensions had alone prompted him to avoid Mr.
  • Wardle on his entrance; how he merely meant to depart by another door,
  • but, finding it locked, had been compelled to stay against his will. It
  • was a painful situation to be placed in; but he now regretted it the
  • less, inasmuch as it afforded him an opportunity of acknowledging,
  • before their mutual friends, that he loved Mr. Wardle’s daughter deeply
  • and sincerely; that he was proud to avow that the feeling was mutual;
  • and that if thousands of miles were placed between them, or oceans
  • rolled their waters, he could never for an instant forget those happy
  • days, when first--et cetera, et cetera.
  • Having delivered himself to this effect, Mr. Snodgrass bowed again,
  • looked into the crown of his hat, and stepped towards the door.
  • ‘Stop!’ shouted Wardle. ‘Why, in the name of all that’s--’
  • ‘Inflammable,’ mildly suggested Mr. Pickwick, who thought something
  • worse was coming.
  • ‘Well--that’s inflammable,’ said Wardle, adopting the substitute;
  • ‘couldn’t you say all this to me in the first instance?’
  • ‘Or confide in me?’ added Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Dear, dear,’ said Arabella, taking up the defence, ‘what is the use of
  • asking all that now, especially when you know you had set your covetous
  • old heart on a richer son-in-law, and are so wild and fierce besides,
  • that everybody is afraid of you, except me? Shake hands with him, and
  • order him some dinner, for goodness gracious’ sake, for he looks half
  • starved; and pray have your wine up at once, for you’ll not be tolerable
  • until you have taken two bottles at least.’
  • The worthy old gentleman pulled Arabella’s ear, kissed her without the
  • smallest scruple, kissed his daughter also with great affection, and
  • shook Mr. Snodgrass warmly by the hand.
  • ‘She is right on one point at all events,’ said the old gentleman
  • cheerfully. ‘Ring for the wine!’
  • The wine came, and Perker came upstairs at the same moment. Mr.
  • Snodgrass had dinner at a side table, and, when he had despatched it,
  • drew his chair next Emily, without the smallest opposition on the old
  • gentleman’s part.
  • The evening was excellent. Little Mr. Perker came out wonderfully, told
  • various comic stories, and sang a serious song which was almost as funny
  • as the anecdotes. Arabella was very charming, Mr. Wardle very jovial,
  • Mr. Pickwick very harmonious, Mr. Ben Allen very uproarious, the lovers
  • very silent, Mr. Winkle very talkative, and all of them very happy.
  • CHAPTER LV. MR. SOLOMON PELL, ASSISTED BY A SELECT COMMITTEE OF
  • COACHMEN, ARRANGES THE AFFAIRS OF THE ELDER MR. WELLER
  • Samivel,’ said Mr. Weller, accosting his son on the morning after the
  • funeral, ‘I’ve found it, Sammy. I thought it wos there.’
  • ‘Thought wot wos there?’ inquired Sam.
  • ‘Your mother-in-law’s vill, Sammy,’ replied Mr. Weller. ‘In wirtue o’
  • vich, them arrangements is to be made as I told you on, last night,
  • respectin’ the funs.’
  • ‘Wot, didn’t she tell you were it wos?’ inquired Sam.
  • ‘Not a bit on it, Sammy,’ replied Mr. Weller. ‘We wos a adjestin’ our
  • little differences, and I wos a-cheerin’ her spirits and bearin’ her up,
  • so that I forgot to ask anythin’ about it. I don’t know as I should ha’
  • done it, indeed, if I had remembered it,’ added Mr. Weller, ‘for it’s a
  • rum sort o’ thing, Sammy, to go a-hankerin’ arter anybody’s property,
  • ven you’re assistin’ ‘em in illness. It’s like helping an outside
  • passenger up, ven he’s been pitched off a coach, and puttin’ your hand
  • in his pocket, vile you ask him, vith a sigh, how he finds his-self,
  • Sammy.’
  • With this figurative illustration of his meaning, Mr. Weller unclasped
  • his pocket-book, and drew forth a dirty sheet of letter-paper, on which
  • were inscribed various characters crowded together in remarkable
  • confusion.
  • ‘This here is the dockyment, Sammy,’ said Mr. Weller. ‘I found it in the
  • little black tea-pot, on the top shelf o’ the bar closet. She used to
  • keep bank-notes there, ‘fore she vos married, Samivel. I’ve seen her
  • take the lid off, to pay a bill, many and many a time. Poor creetur, she
  • might ha’ filled all the tea-pots in the house vith vills, and not have
  • inconwenienced herself neither, for she took wery little of anythin’ in
  • that vay lately, ‘cept on the temperance nights, ven they just laid a
  • foundation o’ tea to put the spirits atop on!’
  • ‘What does it say?’ inquired Sam.
  • ‘Jist vot I told you, my boy,’ rejoined his parent. ‘Two hundred pound
  • vurth o’ reduced counsels to my son-in-law, Samivel, and all the rest o’
  • my property, of ev’ry kind and description votsoever, to my husband, Mr.
  • Tony Veller, who I appint as my sole eggzekiter.’
  • ‘That’s all, is it?’ said Sam.
  • ‘That’s all,’ replied Mr. Weller. ‘And I s’pose as it’s all right and
  • satisfactory to you and me as is the only parties interested, ve may as
  • vell put this bit o’ paper into the fire.’
  • ‘Wot are you a-doin’ on, you lunatic?’ said Sam, snatching the paper
  • away, as his parent, in all innocence, stirred the fire preparatory to
  • suiting the action to the word. ‘You’re a nice eggzekiter, you are.’
  • ‘Vy not?’ inquired Mr. Weller, looking sternly round, with the poker in
  • his hand.
  • ‘Vy not?’ exclaimed Sam. ‘’Cos it must be proved, and probated, and
  • swore to, and all manner o’ formalities.’
  • ‘You don’t mean that?’ said Mr. Weller, laying down the poker.
  • Sam buttoned the will carefully in a side pocket; intimating by a look,
  • meanwhile, that he did mean it, and very seriously too.
  • ‘Then I’ll tell you wot it is,’ said Mr. Weller, after a short
  • meditation, ‘this is a case for that ‘ere confidential pal o’ the
  • Chancellorship’s. Pell must look into this, Sammy. He’s the man for a
  • difficult question at law. Ve’ll have this here brought afore the
  • Solvent Court, directly, Samivel.’
  • ‘I never did see such a addle-headed old creetur!’ exclaimed Sam
  • irritably; ‘Old Baileys, and Solvent Courts, and alleybis, and ev’ry
  • species o’ gammon alvays a-runnin’ through his brain. You’d better get
  • your out o’ door clothes on, and come to town about this bisness, than
  • stand a-preachin’ there about wot you don’t understand nothin’ on.’
  • ‘Wery good, Sammy,’ replied Mr. Weller, ‘I’m quite agreeable to anythin’
  • as vill hexpedite business, Sammy. But mind this here, my boy, nobody
  • but Pell--nobody but Pell as a legal adwiser.’
  • ‘I don’t want anybody else,’ replied Sam. ‘Now, are you a-comin’?’
  • ‘Vait a minit, Sammy,’ replied Mr. Weller, who, having tied his shawl
  • with the aid of a small glass that hung in the window, was now, by dint
  • of the most wonderful exertions, struggling into his upper garments.
  • ‘Vait a minit’ Sammy; ven you grow as old as your father, you von’t get
  • into your veskit quite as easy as you do now, my boy.’
  • ‘If I couldn’t get into it easier than that, I’m blessed if I’d vear vun
  • at all,’ rejoined his son.
  • ‘You think so now,’ said Mr. Weller, with the gravity of age, ‘but
  • you’ll find that as you get vider, you’ll get viser. Vidth and visdom,
  • Sammy, alvays grows together.’
  • As Mr. Weller delivered this infallible maxim--the result of many years’
  • personal experience and observation--he contrived, by a dexterous twist
  • of his body, to get the bottom button of his coat to perform its office.
  • Having paused a few seconds to recover breath, he brushed his hat with
  • his elbow, and declared himself ready.
  • ‘As four heads is better than two, Sammy,’ said Mr. Weller, as they
  • drove along the London Road in the chaise-cart, ‘and as all this here
  • property is a wery great temptation to a legal gen’l’m’n, ve’ll take a
  • couple o’ friends o’ mine vith us, as’ll be wery soon down upon him if
  • he comes anythin’ irreg’lar; two o’ them as saw you to the Fleet that
  • day. They’re the wery best judges,’ added Mr. Weller, in a half-whisper-
  • -’the wery best judges of a horse, you ever know’d.’
  • ‘And of a lawyer too?’ inquired Sam.
  • ‘The man as can form a ackerate judgment of a animal, can form a
  • ackerate judgment of anythin’,’ replied his father, so dogmatically,
  • that Sam did not attempt to controvert the position.
  • In pursuance of this notable resolution, the services of the mottled-
  • faced gentleman and of two other very fat coachmen--selected by Mr.
  • Weller, probably, with a view to their width and consequent wisdom--were
  • put into requisition; and this assistance having been secured, the party
  • proceeded to the public-house in Portugal Street, whence a messenger was
  • despatched to the Insolvent Court over the way, requiring Mr. Solomon
  • Pell’s immediate attendance.
  • The messenger fortunately found Mr. Solomon Pell in court, regaling
  • himself, business being rather slack, with a cold collation of an
  • Abernethy biscuit and a saveloy. The message was no sooner whispered in
  • his ear than he thrust them in his pocket among various professional
  • documents, and hurried over the way with such alacrity that he reached
  • the parlour before the messenger had even emancipated himself from the
  • court.
  • ‘Gentlemen,’ said Mr. Pell, touching his hat, ‘my service to you all. I
  • don’t say it to flatter you, gentlemen, but there are not five other men
  • in the world, that I’d have come out of that court for, to-day.’
  • ‘So busy, eh?’ said Sam.
  • ‘Busy!’ replied Pell; ‘I’m completely sewn up, as my friend the late
  • Lord Chancellor many a time used to say to me, gentlemen, when he came
  • out from hearing appeals in the House of Lords. Poor fellow; he was very
  • susceptible to fatigue; he used to feel those appeals uncommonly. I
  • actually thought more than once that he’d have sunk under ‘em; I did,
  • indeed.’
  • Here Mr. Pell shook his head and paused; on which, the elder Mr. Weller,
  • nudging his neighbour, as begging him to mark the attorney’s high
  • connections, asked whether the duties in question produced any permanent
  • ill effects on the constitution of his noble friend.
  • ‘I don’t think he ever quite recovered them,’ replied Pell; ‘in fact I’m
  • sure he never did. “Pell,” he used to say to me many a time, “how the
  • blazes you can stand the head-work you do, is a mystery to me.”--“Well,”
  • I used to answer, “I hardly know how I do it, upon my life.”--“Pell,”
  • he’d add, sighing, and looking at me with a little envy--friendly envy,
  • you know, gentlemen, mere friendly envy; I never minded it--“Pell,
  • you’re a wonder; a wonder.” Ah! you’d have liked him very much if you
  • had known him, gentlemen. Bring me three-penn’orth of rum, my dear.’
  • Addressing this latter remark to the waitress, in a tone of subdued
  • grief, Mr. Pell sighed, looked at his shoes and the ceiling; and, the
  • rum having by that time arrived, drank it up.
  • ‘However,’ said Pell, drawing a chair to the table, ‘a professional man
  • has no right to think of his private friendships when his legal
  • assistance is wanted. By the bye, gentlemen, since I saw you here
  • before, we have had to weep over a very melancholy occurrence.’
  • Mr. Pell drew out a pocket-handkerchief, when he came to the word weep,
  • but he made no further use of it than to wipe away a slight tinge of rum
  • which hung upon his upper lip.
  • ‘I saw it in the ADVERTISER, Mr. Weller,’ continued Pell. ‘Bless my
  • soul, not more than fifty-two! Dear me--only think.’
  • These indications of a musing spirit were addressed to the mottled-faced
  • man, whose eyes Mr. Pell had accidentally caught; on which, the mottled-
  • faced man, whose apprehension of matters in general was of a foggy
  • nature, moved uneasily in his seat, and opined that, indeed, so far as
  • that went, there was no saying how things was brought about; which
  • observation, involving one of those subtle propositions which it is
  • difficult to encounter in argument, was controverted by nobody.
  • ‘I have heard it remarked that she was a very fine woman, Mr. Weller,’
  • said Pell, in a sympathising manner.
  • ‘Yes, sir, she wos,’ replied the elder Mr. Weller, not much relishing
  • this mode of discussing the subject, and yet thinking that the attorney,
  • from his long intimacy with the late Lord Chancellor, must know best on
  • all matters of polite breeding. ‘She wos a wery fine ‘ooman, sir, ven I
  • first know’d her. She wos a widder, sir, at that time.’
  • ‘Now, it’s curious,’ said Pell, looking round with a sorrowful smile;
  • ‘Mrs. Pell was a widow.’
  • ‘That’s very extraordinary,’ said the mottled-faced man.
  • ‘Well, it is a curious coincidence,’ said Pell.
  • ‘Not at all,’ gruffly remarked the elder Mr. Weller. ‘More widders is
  • married than single wimin.’
  • ‘Very good, very good,’ said Pell, ‘you’re quite right, Mr. Weller. Mrs.
  • Pell was a very elegant and accomplished woman; her manners were the
  • theme of universal admiration in our neighbourhood. I was proud to see
  • that woman dance; there was something so firm and dignified, and yet
  • natural, in her motion. Her cutting, gentlemen, was simplicity itself.
  • Ah! well, well! Excuse my asking the question, Mr. Samuel,’ continued
  • the attorney in a lower voice, ‘was your mother-in-law tall?’
  • ‘Not wery,’ replied Sam.
  • ‘Mrs. Pell was a tall figure,’ said Pell, ‘a splendid woman, with a
  • noble shape, and a nose, gentlemen, formed to command and be majestic.
  • She was very much attached to me--very much--highly connected, too. Her
  • mother’s brother, gentlemen, failed for eight hundred pounds, as a law
  • stationer.’
  • ‘Vell,’ said Mr. Weller, who had grown rather restless during this
  • discussion, ‘vith regard to bis’ness.’
  • The word was music to Pell’s ears. He had been revolving in his mind
  • whether any business was to be transacted, or whether he had been merely
  • invited to partake of a glass of brandy-and-water, or a bowl of punch,
  • or any similar professional compliment, and now the doubt was set at
  • rest without his appearing at all eager for its solution. His eyes
  • glistened as he laid his hat on the table, and said--
  • ‘What is the business upon which--um? Either of these gentlemen wish to
  • go through the court? We require an arrest; a friendly arrest will do,
  • you know; we are all friends here, I suppose?’
  • ‘Give me the dockyment, Sammy,’ said Mr. Weller, taking the will from
  • his son, who appeared to enjoy the interview amazingly. ‘Wot we rekvire,
  • sir, is a probe o’ this here.’
  • ‘Probate, my dear Sir, probate,’ said Pell.
  • ‘Well, sir,’ replied Mr. Weller sharply, ‘probe and probe it, is wery
  • much the same; if you don’t understand wot I mean, sir, I des-say I can
  • find them as does.’
  • ‘No offence, I hope, Mr. Weller,’ said Pell meekly. ‘You are the
  • executor, I see,’ he added, casting his eyes over the paper.
  • ‘I am, sir,’ replied Mr. Weller.
  • ‘These other gentlemen, I presume, are legatees, are they?’ inquired
  • Pell, with a congratulatory smile.
  • ‘Sammy is a leg-at-ease,’ replied Mr. Weller; ‘these other gen’l’m’n is
  • friends o’ mine, just come to see fair; a kind of umpires.’
  • ‘Oh!’ said Pell, ‘very good. I have no objections, I’m sure. I shall
  • want a matter of five pound of you before I begin, ha! ha! ha!’
  • It being decided by the committee that the five pound might be advanced,
  • Mr. Weller produced that sum; after which, a long consultation about
  • nothing particular took place, in the course whereof Mr. Pell
  • demonstrated to the perfect satisfaction of the gentlemen who saw fair,
  • that unless the management of the business had been intrusted to him, it
  • must all have gone wrong, for reasons not clearly made out, but no doubt
  • sufficient. This important point being despatched, Mr. Pell refreshed
  • himself with three chops, and liquids both malt and spirituous, at the
  • expense of the estate; and then they all went away to Doctors’ Commons.
  • The next day there was another visit to Doctors’ Commons, and a great
  • to-do with an attesting hostler, who, being inebriated, declined
  • swearing anything but profane oaths, to the great scandal of a proctor
  • and surrogate. Next week, there were more visits to Doctors’ Commons,
  • and there was a visit to the Legacy Duty Office besides, and there were
  • treaties entered into, for the disposal of the lease and business, and
  • ratifications of the same, and inventories to be made out, and lunches
  • to be taken, and dinners to be eaten, and so many profitable things to
  • be done, and such a mass of papers accumulated that Mr. Solomon Pell,
  • and the boy, and the blue bag to boot, all got so stout that scarcely
  • anybody would have known them for the same man, boy, and bag, that had
  • loitered about Portugal Street, a few days before.
  • At length all these weighty matters being arranged, a day was fixed for
  • selling out and transferring the stock, and of waiting with that view
  • upon Wilkins Flasher, Esquire, stock-broker, of somewhere near the bank,
  • who had been recommended by Mr. Solomon Pell for the purpose.
  • It was a kind of festive occasion, and the parties were attired
  • accordingly. Mr. Weller’s tops were newly cleaned, and his dress was
  • arranged with peculiar care; the mottled-faced gentleman wore at his
  • button-hole a full-sized dahlia with several leaves; and the coats of
  • his two friends were adorned with nosegays of laurel and other
  • evergreens. All three were habited in strict holiday costume; that is to
  • say, they were wrapped up to the chins, and wore as many clothes as
  • possible, which is, and has been, a stage-coachman’s idea of full dress
  • ever since stage-coaches were invented.
  • Mr. Pell was waiting at the usual place of meeting at the appointed
  • time; even he wore a pair of gloves and a clean shirt, much frayed at
  • the collar and wristbands by frequent washings.
  • ‘A quarter to two,’ said Pell, looking at the parlour clock. ‘If we are
  • with Mr. Flasher at a quarter past, we shall just hit the best time.’
  • ‘What should you say to a drop o’ beer, gen’l’m’n?’ suggested the
  • mottled-faced man.
  • ‘And a little bit o’ cold beef,’ said the second coachman.
  • ‘Or a oyster,’ added the third, who was a hoarse gentleman, supported by
  • very round legs.
  • ‘Hear, hear!’ said Pell; ‘to congratulate Mr. Weller, on his coming into
  • possession of his property, eh? Ha! ha!’
  • ‘I’m quite agreeable, gen’l’m’n,’ answered Mr. Weller. ‘Sammy, pull the
  • bell.’
  • Sammy complied; and the porter, cold beef, and oysters being promptly
  • produced, the lunch was done ample justice to. Where everybody took so
  • active a part, it is almost invidious to make a distinction; but if one
  • individual evinced greater powers than another, it was the coachman with
  • the hoarse voice, who took an imperial pint of vinegar with his oysters,
  • without betraying the least emotion.
  • ‘Mr. Pell, Sir,’ said the elder Mr. Weller, stirring a glass of brandy-
  • and-water, of which one was placed before every gentleman when the
  • oyster shells were removed--‘Mr. Pell, Sir, it wos my intention to have
  • proposed the funs on this occasion, but Samivel has vispered to me--’
  • Here Mr. Samuel Weller, who had silently eaten his oysters with tranquil
  • smiles, cried, ‘Hear!’ in a very loud voice.
  • ‘--Has vispered to me,’ resumed his father, ‘that it vould be better to
  • dewote the liquor to vishin’ you success and prosperity, and thankin’
  • you for the manner in which you’ve brought this here business through.
  • Here’s your health, sir.’
  • ‘Hold hard there,’ interposed the mottled-faced gentleman, with sudden
  • energy; ‘your eyes on me, gen’l’m’n!’
  • Saying this, the mottled-faced gentleman rose, as did the other
  • gentlemen. The mottled-faced gentleman reviewed the company, and slowly
  • lifted his hand, upon which every man (including him of the mottled
  • countenance) drew a long breath, and lifted his tumbler to his lips. In
  • one instant, the mottled-faced gentleman depressed his hand again, and
  • every glass was set down empty. It is impossible to describe the
  • thrilling effect produced by this striking ceremony. At once dignified,
  • solemn, and impressive, it combined every element of grandeur.
  • ‘Well, gentlemen,’ said Mr. Pell, ‘all I can say is, that such marks of
  • confidence must be very gratifying to a professional man. I don’t wish
  • to say anything that might appear egotistical, gentlemen, but I’m very
  • glad, for your own sakes, that you came to me; that’s all. If you had
  • gone to any low member of the profession, it’s my firm conviction, and I
  • assure you of it as a fact, that you would have found yourselves in
  • Queer Street before this. I could have wished my noble friend had been
  • alive to have seen my management of this case. I don’t say it out of
  • pride, but I think--However, gentlemen, I won’t trouble you with that.
  • I’m generally to be found here, gentlemen, but if I’m not here, or over
  • the way, that’s my address. You’ll find my terms very cheap and
  • reasonable, and no man attends more to his clients than I do, and I hope
  • I know a little of my profession besides. If you have any opportunity of
  • recommending me to any of your friends, gentlemen, I shall be very much
  • obliged to you, and so will they too, when they come to know me. Your
  • healths, gentlemen.’
  • With this expression of his feelings, Mr. Solomon Pell laid three small
  • written cards before Mr. Weller’s friends, and, looking at the clock
  • again, feared it was time to be walking. Upon this hint Mr. Weller
  • settled the bill, and, issuing forth, the executor, legatee, attorney,
  • and umpires, directed their steps towards the city.
  • The office of Wilkins Flasher, Esquire, of the Stock Exchange, was in a
  • first floor up a court behind the Bank of England; the house of Wilkins
  • Flasher, Esquire, was at Brixton, Surrey; the horse and stanhope of
  • Wilkins Flasher, Esquire, were at an adjacent livery stable; the groom
  • of Wilkins Flasher, Esquire, was on his way to the West End to deliver
  • some game; the clerk of Wilkins Flasher, Esquire, had gone to his
  • dinner; and so Wilkins Flasher, Esquire, himself, cried, ‘Come in,’ when
  • Mr. Pell and his companions knocked at the counting-house door.
  • ‘Good-morning, Sir,’ said Pell, bowing obsequiously. ‘We want to make a
  • little transfer, if you please.’
  • ‘Oh, just come in, will you?’ said Mr. Flasher. ‘Sit down a minute; I’ll
  • attend to you directly.’
  • ‘Thank you, Sir,’ said Pell, ‘there’s no hurry. Take a chair, Mr.
  • Weller.’
  • Mr. Weller took a chair, and Sam took a box, and the umpires took what
  • they could get, and looked at the almanac and one or two papers which
  • were wafered against the wall, with as much open-eyed reverence as if
  • they had been the finest efforts of the old masters.
  • ‘Well, I’ll bet you half a dozen of claret on it; come!’ said Wilkins
  • Flasher, Esquire, resuming the conversation to which Mr. Pell’s entrance
  • had caused a momentary interruption.
  • This was addressed to a very smart young gentleman who wore his hat on
  • his right whisker, and was lounging over the desk, killing flies with a
  • ruler. Wilkins Flasher, Esquire, was balancing himself on two legs of an
  • office stool, spearing a wafer-box with a penknife, which he dropped
  • every now and then with great dexterity into the very centre of a small
  • red wafer that was stuck outside. Both gentlemen had very open
  • waistcoats and very rolling collars, and very small boots, and very big
  • rings, and very little watches, and very large guard-chains, and
  • symmetrical inexpressibles, and scented pocket-handkerchiefs.
  • ‘I never bet half a dozen!’ said the other gentleman. ‘I’ll take a
  • dozen.’
  • ‘Done, Simmery, done!’ said Wilkins Flasher, Esquire.
  • ‘P. P., mind,’ observed the other.
  • ‘Of course,’ replied Wilkins Flasher, Esquire. Wilkins Flasher, Esquire,
  • entered it in a little book, with a gold pencil-case, and the other
  • gentleman entered it also, in another little book with another gold
  • pencil-case.
  • ‘I see there’s a notice up this morning about Boffer,’ observed Mr.
  • Simmery. ‘Poor devil, he’s expelled the house!’
  • ‘I’ll bet you ten guineas to five, he cuts his throat,’ said Wilkins
  • Flasher, Esquire.
  • ‘Done,’ replied Mr. Simmery.
  • ‘Stop! I bar,’ said Wilkins Flasher, Esquire, thoughtfully. ‘Perhaps he
  • may hang himself.’
  • ‘Very good,’ rejoined Mr. Simmery, pulling out the gold pencil-case
  • again. ‘I’ve no objection to take you that way. Say, makes away with
  • himself.’
  • ‘Kills himself, in fact,’ said Wilkins Flasher, Esquire.
  • ‘Just so,’ replied Mr. Simmery, putting it down. ‘“Flasher--ten guineas
  • to five, Boffer kills himself.” Within what time shall we say?’
  • ‘A fortnight?’ suggested Wilkins Flasher, Esquire.
  • ‘Con-found it, no,’ rejoined Mr. Simmery, stopping for an instant to
  • smash a fly with the ruler. ‘Say a week.’
  • ‘Split the difference,’ said Wilkins Flasher, Esquire. ‘Make it ten
  • days.’
  • ‘Well; ten days,’ rejoined Mr. Simmery.
  • So it was entered down on the little books that Boffer was to kill
  • himself within ten days, or Wilkins Flasher, Esquire, was to hand over
  • to Frank Simmery, Esquire, the sum of ten guineas; and that if Boffer
  • did kill himself within that time, Frank Simmery, Esquire, would pay to
  • Wilkins Flasher, Esquire, five guineas, instead.
  • ‘I’m very sorry he has failed,’ said Wilkins Flasher, Esquire. ‘Capital
  • dinners he gave.’
  • ‘Fine port he had too,’ remarked Mr. Simmery. ‘We are going to send our
  • butler to the sale to-morrow, to pick up some of that sixty-four.’
  • ‘The devil you are!’ said Wilkins Flasher, Esquire. ‘My man’s going too.
  • Five guineas my man outbids your man.’
  • ‘Done.’
  • Another entry was made in the little books, with the gold pencil-cases;
  • and Mr. Simmery, having by this time killed all the flies and taken all
  • the bets, strolled away to the Stock Exchange to see what was going
  • forward.
  • Wilkins Flasher, Esquire, now condescended to receive Mr. Solomon Pell’s
  • instructions, and having filled up some printed forms, requested the
  • party to follow him to the bank, which they did: Mr. Weller and his
  • three friends staring at all they beheld in unbounded astonishment, and
  • Sam encountering everything with a coolness which nothing could disturb.
  • Crossing a courtyard which was all noise and bustle, and passing a
  • couple of porters who seemed dressed to match the red fire engine which
  • was wheeled away into a corner, they passed into an office where their
  • business was to be transacted, and where Pell and Mr. Flasher left them
  • standing for a few moments, while they went upstairs into the Will
  • Office.
  • ‘Wot place is this here?’ whispered the mottled-faced gentleman to the
  • elder Mr. Weller.
  • ‘Counsel’s Office,’ replied the executor in a whisper.
  • ‘Wot are them gen’l’men a-settin’ behind the counters?’ asked the hoarse
  • coachman.
  • ‘Reduced counsels, I s’pose,’ replied Mr. Weller. ‘Ain’t they the
  • reduced counsels, Samivel?’
  • ‘Wy, you don’t suppose the reduced counsels is alive, do you?’ inquired
  • Sam, with some disdain.
  • ‘How should I know?’ retorted Mr. Weller; ‘I thought they looked wery
  • like it. Wot are they, then?’
  • ‘Clerks,’ replied Sam.
  • ‘Wot are they all a-eatin’ ham sangwidges for?’ inquired his father.
  • ‘’Cos it’s in their dooty, I suppose,’ replied Sam, ‘it’s a part o’ the
  • system; they’re alvays a-doin’ it here, all day long!’
  • Mr. Weller and his friends had scarcely had a moment to reflect upon
  • this singular regulation as connected with the monetary system of the
  • country, when they were rejoined by Pell and Wilkins Flasher, Esquire,
  • who led them to a part of the counter above which was a round blackboard
  • with a large ‘W.’ on it.
  • ‘Wot’s that for, Sir?’ inquired Mr. Weller, directing Pell’s attention
  • to the target in question.
  • ‘The first letter of the name of the deceased,’ replied Pell.
  • ‘I say,’ said Mr. Weller, turning round to the umpires, there’s
  • somethin’ wrong here. We’s our letter--this won’t do.’
  • The referees at once gave it as their decided opinion that the business
  • could not be legally proceeded with, under the letter W., and in all
  • probability it would have stood over for one day at least, had it not
  • been for the prompt, though, at first sight, undutiful behaviour of Sam,
  • who, seizing his father by the skirt of the coat, dragged him to the
  • counter, and pinned him there, until he had affixed his signature to a
  • couple of instruments; which, from Mr. Weller’s habit of printing, was a
  • work of so much labour and time, that the officiating clerk peeled and
  • ate three Ribstone pippins while it was performing.
  • As the elder Mr. Weller insisted on selling out his portion forthwith,
  • they proceeded from the bank to the gate of the Stock Exchange, to which
  • Wilkins Flasher, Esquire, after a short absence, returned with a cheque
  • on Smith, Payne, & Smith, for five hundred and thirty pounds; that being
  • the money to which Mr. Weller, at the market price of the day, was
  • entitled, in consideration of the balance of the second Mrs. Weller’s
  • funded savings. Sam’s two hundred pounds stood transferred to his name,
  • and Wilkins Flasher, Esquire, having been paid his commission, dropped
  • the money carelessly into his coat pocket, and lounged back to his
  • office.
  • Mr. Weller was at first obstinately determined on cashing the cheque in
  • nothing but sovereigns; but it being represented by the umpires that by
  • so doing he must incur the expense of a small sack to carry them home
  • in, he consented to receive the amount in five-pound notes.
  • ‘My son,’ said Mr. Weller, as they came out of the banking-house--‘my
  • son and me has a wery partickler engagement this arternoon, and I should
  • like to have this here bis’ness settled out of hand, so let’s jest go
  • straight avay someveres, vere ve can hordit the accounts.’
  • A quiet room was soon found, and the accounts were produced and audited.
  • Mr. Pell’s bill was taxed by Sam, and some charges were disallowed by
  • the umpires; but, notwithstanding Mr. Pell’s declaration, accompanied
  • with many solemn asseverations that they were really too hard upon him,
  • it was by very many degrees the best professional job he had ever had,
  • and one on which he boarded, lodged, and washed, for six months
  • afterwards.
  • The umpires having partaken of a dram, shook hands and departed, as they
  • had to drive out of town that night. Mr. Solomon Pell, finding that
  • nothing more was going forward, either in the eating or drinking way,
  • took a friendly leave, and Sam and his father were left alone.
  • ‘There!’ said Mr. Weller, thrusting his pocket-book in his side pocket.
  • ‘Vith the bills for the lease, and that, there’s eleven hundred and
  • eighty pound here. Now, Samivel, my boy, turn the horses’ heads to the
  • George and Wulter!’
  • CHAPTER LVI. AN IMPORTANT CONFERENCE TAKES PLACE BETWEEN MR. PICKWICK
  • AND SAMUEL WELLER, AT WHICH HIS PARENT ASSISTS--AN OLD GENTLEMAN IN A
  • SNUFF-COLOURED SUIT ARRIVES UNEXPECTEDLY
  • Mr. Pickwick was sitting alone, musing over many things, and thinking
  • among other considerations how he could best provide for the young
  • couple whose present unsettled condition was matter of constant regret
  • and anxiety to him, when Mary stepped lightly into the room, and,
  • advancing to the table, said, rather hastily--
  • ‘Oh, if you please, Sir, Samuel is downstairs, and he says may his
  • father see you?’
  • ‘Surely,’ replied Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Thank you, Sir,’ said Mary, tripping towards the door again.
  • ‘Sam has not been here long, has he?’ inquired Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Oh, no, Sir,’ replied Mary eagerly. ‘He has only just come home. He is
  • not going to ask you for any more leave, Sir, he says.’
  • Mary might have been conscious that she had communicated this last
  • intelligence with more warmth than seemed actually necessary, or she
  • might have observed the good-humoured smile with which Mr. Pickwick
  • regarded her, when she had finished speaking. She certainly held down
  • her head, and examined the corner of a very smart little apron, with
  • more closeness than there appeared any absolute occasion for.
  • ‘Tell them they can come up at once, by all means,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • Mary, apparently much relieved, hurried away with her message.
  • Mr. Pickwick took two or three turns up and down the room; and, rubbing
  • his chin with his left hand as he did so, appeared lost in thought.
  • ‘Well, well,’ said Mr. Pickwick, at length in a kind but somewhat
  • melancholy tone, ‘it is the best way in which I could reward him for his
  • attachment and fidelity; let it be so, in Heaven’s name. It is the fate
  • of a lonely old man, that those about him should form new and different
  • attachments and leave him. I have no right to expect that it should be
  • otherwise with me. No, no,’ added Mr. Pickwick more cheerfully, ‘it
  • would be selfish and ungrateful. I ought to be happy to have an
  • opportunity of providing for him so well. I am. Of course I am.’
  • Mr. Pickwick had been so absorbed in these reflections, that a knock at
  • the door was three or four times repeated before he heard it. Hastily
  • seating himself, and calling up his accustomed pleasant looks, he gave
  • the required permission, and Sam Weller entered, followed by his father.
  • ‘Glad to see you back again, Sam,’ said Mr. Pickwick. ‘How do you do,
  • Mr. Weller?’
  • ‘Wery hearty, thank’ee, sir,’ replied the widower; ‘hope I see you well,
  • sir.’
  • ‘Quite, I thank you,’ replied Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘I wanted to have a little bit o’ conwersation with you, sir,’ said Mr.
  • Weller, ‘if you could spare me five minits or so, sir.’
  • ‘Certainly,’ replied Mr. Pickwick. ‘Sam, give your father a chair.’
  • ‘Thank’ee, Samivel, I’ve got a cheer here,’ said Mr. Weller, bringing
  • one forward as he spoke; ‘uncommon fine day it’s been, sir,’ added the
  • old gentleman, laying his hat on the floor as he sat himself down.
  • ‘Remarkably so, indeed,’ replied Mr. Pickwick. ‘Very seasonable.’
  • ‘Seasonablest veather I ever see, sir,’ rejoined Mr. Weller. Here, the
  • old gentleman was seized with a violent fit of coughing, which, being
  • terminated, he nodded his head and winked and made several supplicatory
  • and threatening gestures to his son, all of which Sam Weller steadily
  • abstained from seeing.
  • Mr. Pickwick, perceiving that there was some embarrassment on the old
  • gentleman’s part, affected to be engaged in cutting the leaves of a book
  • that lay beside him, and waited patiently until Mr. Weller should arrive
  • at the object of his visit.
  • ‘I never see sich a aggrawatin’ boy as you are, Samivel,’ said Mr.
  • Weller, looking indignantly at his son; ‘never in all my born days.’
  • ‘What is he doing, Mr. Weller?’ inquired Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘He von’t begin, sir,’ rejoined Mr. Weller; ‘he knows I ain’t ekal to
  • ex-pressin’ myself ven there’s anythin’ partickler to be done, and yet
  • he’ll stand and see me a-settin’ here taking up your walable time, and
  • makin’ a reg’lar spectacle o’ myself, rayther than help me out vith a
  • syllable. It ain’t filial conduct, Samivel,’ said Mr. Weller, wiping his
  • forehead; ‘wery far from it.’
  • ‘You said you’d speak,’ replied Sam; ‘how should I know you wos done up
  • at the wery beginnin’?’
  • ‘You might ha’ seen I warn’t able to start,’ rejoined his father; ‘I’m
  • on the wrong side of the road, and backin’ into the palin’s, and all
  • manner of unpleasantness, and yet you von’t put out a hand to help me.
  • I’m ashamed on you, Samivel.’
  • ‘The fact is, Sir,’ said Sam, with a slight bow, ‘the gov’nor’s been a-
  • drawin’ his money.’
  • ‘Wery good, Samivel, wery good,’ said Mr. Weller, nodding his head with
  • a satisfied air, ‘I didn’t mean to speak harsh to you, Sammy. Wery good.
  • That’s the vay to begin. Come to the pint at once. Wery good indeed,
  • Samivel.’
  • Mr. Weller nodded his head an extraordinary number of times, in the
  • excess of his gratification, and waited in a listening attitude for Sam
  • to resume his statement.
  • ‘You may sit down, Sam,’ said Mr. Pickwick, apprehending that the
  • interview was likely to prove rather longer than he had expected.
  • Sam bowed again and sat down; his father looking round, he continued--
  • ‘The gov’nor, sir, has drawn out five hundred and thirty pound.’
  • ‘Reduced counsels,’ interposed Mr. Weller, senior, in an undertone.
  • ‘It don’t much matter vether it’s reduced counsels, or wot not,’ said
  • Sam; ‘five hundred and thirty pounds is the sum, ain’t it?’
  • ‘All right, Samivel,’ replied Mr. Weller.
  • ‘To vich sum, he has added for the house and bisness--’
  • ‘Lease, good-vill, stock, and fixters,’ interposed Mr. Weller.
  • ‘As much as makes it,’ continued Sam, ‘altogether, eleven hundred and
  • eighty pound.’
  • ‘Indeed!’ said Mr. Pickwick. ‘I am delighted to hear it. I congratulate
  • you, Mr. Weller, on having done so well.’
  • ‘Vait a minit, Sir,’ said Mr. Weller, raising his hand in a deprecatory
  • manner. ‘Get on, Samivel.’
  • ‘This here money,’ said Sam, with a little hesitation, ‘he’s anxious to
  • put someveres, vere he knows it’ll be safe, and I’m wery anxious too,
  • for if he keeps it, he’ll go a-lendin’ it to somebody, or inwestin’
  • property in horses, or droppin’ his pocket-book down an airy, or makin’
  • a Egyptian mummy of his-self in some vay or another.’
  • ‘Wery good, Samivel,’ observed Mr. Weller, in as complacent a manner as
  • if Sam had been passing the highest eulogiums on his prudence and
  • foresight. ‘Wery good.’
  • ‘For vich reasons,’ continued Sam, plucking nervously at the brim of his
  • hat--‘for vich reasons, he’s drawn it out to-day, and come here vith me
  • to say, leastvays to offer, or in other vords--’
  • ‘To say this here,’ said the elder Mr. Weller impatiently, ‘that it
  • ain’t o’ no use to me. I’m a-goin’ to vork a coach reg’lar, and ha’n’t
  • got noveres to keep it in, unless I vos to pay the guard for takin’ care
  • on it, or to put it in vun o’ the coach pockets, vich ‘ud be a
  • temptation to the insides. If you’ll take care on it for me, sir, I
  • shall be wery much obliged to you. P’raps,’ said Mr. Weller, walking up
  • to Mr. Pickwick and whispering in his ear--‘p’raps it’ll go a little vay
  • towards the expenses o’ that ‘ere conwiction. All I say is, just you
  • keep it till I ask you for it again.’ With these words, Mr. Weller
  • placed the pocket-book in Mr. Pickwick’s hands, caught up his hat, and
  • ran out of the room with a celerity scarcely to be expected from so
  • corpulent a subject.
  • ‘Stop him, Sam!’ exclaimed Mr. Pickwick earnestly. ‘Overtake him; bring
  • him back instantly! Mr. Weller--here--come back!’
  • Sam saw that his master’s injunctions were not to be disobeyed; and,
  • catching his father by the arm as he was descending the stairs, dragged
  • him back by main force.
  • ‘My good friend,’ said Mr. Pickwick, taking the old man by the hand,
  • ‘your honest confidence overpowers me.’
  • ‘I don’t see no occasion for nothin’ o’ the kind, Sir,’ replied Mr.
  • Weller obstinately.
  • ‘I assure you, my good friend, I have more money than I can ever need;
  • far more than a man at my age can ever live to spend,’ said Mr.
  • Pickwick.
  • ‘No man knows how much he can spend, till he tries,’ observed Mr.
  • Weller.
  • ‘Perhaps not,’ replied Mr. Pickwick; ‘but as I have no intention of
  • trying any such experiments, I am not likely to come to want. I must beg
  • you to take this back, Mr. Weller.’
  • Wery well,’ said Mr. Weller, with a discontented look. ‘Mark my vords,
  • Sammy, I’ll do somethin’ desperate vith this here property; somethin’
  • desperate!’
  • ‘You’d better not,’ replied Sam.
  • Mr. Weller reflected for a short time, and then, buttoning up his coat
  • with great determination, said--
  • ‘I’ll keep a pike.’
  • ‘Wot!’ exclaimed Sam.
  • ‘A pike!’ rejoined Mr. Weller, through his set teeth; ‘I’ll keep a pike.
  • Say good-bye to your father, Samivel. I dewote the remainder of my days
  • to a pike.’
  • This threat was such an awful one, and Mr. Weller, besides appearing
  • fully resolved to carry it into execution, seemed so deeply mortified by
  • Mr. Pickwick’s refusal, that that gentleman, after a short reflection,
  • said--
  • ‘Well, well, Mr. Weller, I will keep your money. I can do more good with
  • it, perhaps, than you can.’
  • ‘Just the wery thing, to be sure,’ said Mr. Weller, brightening up; ‘o’
  • course you can, sir.’
  • ‘Say no more about it,’ said Mr. Pickwick, locking the pocket-book in
  • his desk; ‘I am heartily obliged to you, my good friend. Now sit down
  • again. I want to ask your advice.’
  • The internal laughter occasioned by the triumphant success of his visit,
  • which had convulsed not only Mr. Weller’s face, but his arms, legs, and
  • body also, during the locking up of the pocket-book, suddenly gave place
  • to the most dignified gravity as he heard these words.
  • ‘Wait outside a few minutes, Sam, will you?’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • Sam immediately withdrew.
  • Mr. Weller looked uncommonly wise and very much amazed, when Mr.
  • Pickwick opened the discourse by saying--
  • ‘You are not an advocate for matrimony, I think, Mr. Weller?’
  • Mr. Weller shook his head. He was wholly unable to speak; vague thoughts
  • of some wicked widow having been successful in her designs on Mr.
  • Pickwick, choked his utterance.
  • ‘Did you happen to see a young girl downstairs when you came in just now
  • with your son?’ inquired Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Yes. I see a young gal,’ replied Mr. Weller shortly.
  • ‘What did you think of her, now? Candidly, Mr. Weller, what did you
  • think of her?’
  • ‘I thought she wos wery plump, and vell made,’ said Mr. Weller, with a
  • critical air.
  • ‘So she is,’ said Mr. Pickwick, ‘so she is. What did you think of her
  • manners, from what you saw of her?’
  • ‘Wery pleasant,’ rejoined Mr. Weller. ‘Wery pleasant and comformable.’
  • The precise meaning which Mr. Weller attached to this last-mentioned
  • adjective, did not appear; but, as it was evident from the tone in which
  • he used it that it was a favourable expression, Mr. Pickwick was as well
  • satisfied as if he had been thoroughly enlightened on the subject.
  • ‘I take a great interest in her, Mr. Weller,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • Mr. Weller coughed.
  • ‘I mean an interest in her doing well,’ resumed Mr. Pickwick; ‘a desire
  • that she may be comfortable and prosperous. You understand?’
  • ‘Wery clearly,’ replied Mr. Weller, who understood nothing yet.
  • ‘That young person,’ said Mr. Pickwick, ‘is attached to your son.’
  • ‘To Samivel Veller!’ exclaimed the parent.
  • ‘Yes,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘It’s nat’ral,’ said Mr. Weller, after some consideration, ‘nat’ral, but
  • rayther alarmin’. Sammy must be careful.’
  • ‘How do you mean?’ inquired Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Wery careful that he don’t say nothin’ to her,’ responded Mr. Weller.
  • ‘Wery careful that he ain’t led avay, in a innocent moment, to say
  • anythin’ as may lead to a conwiction for breach. You’re never safe vith
  • ‘em, Mr. Pickwick, ven they vunce has designs on you; there’s no knowin’
  • vere to have ‘em; and vile you’re a-considering of it, they have you. I
  • wos married fust, that vay myself, Sir, and Sammy wos the consekens o’
  • the manoover.’
  • ‘You give me no great encouragement to conclude what I have to say,’
  • observed Mr. Pickwick, ‘but I had better do so at once. This young
  • person is not only attached to your son, Mr. Weller, but your son is
  • attached to her.’
  • ‘Vell,’ said Mr. Weller, ‘this here’s a pretty sort o’ thing to come to
  • a father’s ears, this is!’
  • ‘I have observed them on several occasions,’ said Mr. Pickwick, making
  • no comment on Mr. Weller’s last remark; ‘and entertain no doubt at all
  • about it. Supposing I were desirous of establishing them comfortably as
  • man and wife in some little business or situation, where they might hope
  • to obtain a decent living, what should you think of it, Mr. Weller?’
  • At first, Mr. Weller received with wry faces a proposition involving the
  • marriage of anybody in whom he took an interest; but, as Mr. Pickwick
  • argued the point with him, and laid great stress on the fact that Mary
  • was not a widow, he gradually became more tractable. Mr. Pickwick had
  • great influence over him, and he had been much struck with Mary’s
  • appearance; having, in fact, bestowed several very unfatherly winks upon
  • her, already. At length he said that it was not for him to oppose Mr.
  • Pickwick’s inclination, and that he would be very happy to yield to his
  • advice; upon which, Mr. Pickwick joyfully took him at his word, and
  • called Sam back into the room.
  • ‘Sam,’ said Mr. Pickwick, clearing his throat, ‘your father and I have
  • been having some conversation about you.’
  • ‘About you, Samivel,’ said Mr. Weller, in a patronising and impressive
  • voice.
  • ‘I am not so blind, Sam, as not to have seen, a long time since, that
  • you entertain something more than a friendly feeling towards Mrs.
  • Winkle’s maid,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘You hear this, Samivel?’ said Mr. Weller, in the same judicial form of
  • speech as before.
  • ‘I hope, Sir,’ said Sam, addressing his master, ‘I hope there’s no harm
  • in a young man takin’ notice of a young ‘ooman as is undeniably good-
  • looking and well-conducted.’
  • ‘Certainly not,’ said Mr. Pickwick.
  • ‘Not by no means,’ acquiesced Mr. Weller, affably but magisterially.
  • ‘So far from thinking there is anything wrong in conduct so natural,’
  • resumed Mr. Pickwick, ‘it is my wish to assist and promote your wishes
  • in this respect. With this view, I have had a little conversation with
  • your father; and finding that he is of my opinion--’
  • ‘The lady not bein’ a widder,’ interposed Mr. Weller in explanation.
  • ‘The lady not being a widow,’ said Mr. Pickwick, smiling. ‘I wish to
  • free you from the restraint which your present position imposes upon
  • you, and to mark my sense of your fidelity and many excellent qualities,
  • by enabling you to marry this girl at once, and to earn an independent
  • livelihood for yourself and family. I shall be proud, Sam,’ said Mr.
  • Pickwick, whose voice had faltered a little hitherto, but now resumed
  • its customary tone, ‘proud and happy to make your future prospects in
  • life my grateful and peculiar care.’
  • There was a profound silence for a short time, and then Sam said, in a
  • low, husky sort of voice, but firmly withal--
  • ‘I’m very much obliged to you for your goodness, Sir, as is only like
  • yourself; but it can’t be done.’
  • ‘Can’t be done!’ ejaculated Mr. Pickwick in astonishment.
  • ‘Samivel!’ said Mr. Weller, with dignity.
  • ‘I say it can’t be done,’ repeated Sam in a louder key. ‘Wot’s to become
  • of you, Sir?’
  • ‘My good fellow,’ replied Mr. Pickwick, ‘the recent changes among my
  • friends will alter my mode of life in future, entirely; besides, I am
  • growing older, and want repose and quiet. My rambles, Sam, are over.’
  • ‘How do I know that ‘ere, sir?’ argued Sam. ‘You think so now! S’pose
  • you wos to change your mind, vich is not unlikely, for you’ve the spirit
  • o’ five-and-twenty in you still, what ‘ud become on you vithout me? It
  • can’t be done, Sir, it can’t be done.’
  • ‘Wery good, Samivel, there’s a good deal in that,’ said Mr. Weller
  • encouragingly.
  • ‘I speak after long deliberation, Sam, and with the certainty that I
  • shall keep my word,’ said Mr. Pickwick, shaking his head. ‘New scenes
  • have closed upon me; my rambles are at an end.’
  • ‘Wery good,’ rejoined Sam. ‘Then, that’s the wery best reason wy you
  • should alvays have somebody by you as understands you, to keep you up
  • and make you comfortable. If you vant a more polished sort o’ feller,
  • vell and good, have him; but vages or no vages, notice or no notice,
  • board or no board, lodgin’ or no lodgin’, Sam Veller, as you took from
  • the old inn in the Borough, sticks by you, come what may; and let
  • ev’rythin’ and ev’rybody do their wery fiercest, nothin’ shall ever
  • perwent it!’
  • At the close of this declaration, which Sam made with great emotion, the
  • elder Mr. Weller rose from his chair, and, forgetting all considerations
  • of time, place, or propriety, waved his hat above his head, and gave
  • three vehement cheers.
  • ‘My good fellow,’ said Mr. Pickwick, when Mr. Weller had sat down again,
  • rather abashed at his own enthusiasm, ‘you are bound to consider the
  • young woman also.’
  • ‘I do consider the young ‘ooman, Sir,’ said Sam. ‘I have considered the
  • young ‘ooman. I’ve spoke to her. I’ve told her how I’m sitivated; she’s
  • ready to vait till I’m ready, and I believe she vill. If she don’t,
  • she’s not the young ‘ooman I take her for, and I give her up vith
  • readiness. You’ve know’d me afore, Sir. My mind’s made up, and nothin’
  • can ever alter it.’
  • Who could combat this resolution? Not Mr. Pickwick. He derived, at that
  • moment, more pride and luxury of feeling from the disinterested
  • attachment of his humble friends, than ten thousand protestations from
  • the greatest men living could have awakened in his heart.
  • While this conversation was passing in Mr. Pickwick’s room, a little old
  • gentleman in a suit of snuff-coloured clothes, followed by a porter
  • carrying a small portmanteau, presented himself below; and, after
  • securing a bed for the night, inquired of the waiter whether one Mrs.
  • Winkle was staying there, to which question the waiter of course
  • responded in the affirmative.
  • ‘Is she alone?’ inquired the old gentleman.
  • ‘I believe she is, Sir,’ replied the waiter; ‘I can call her own maid,
  • Sir, if you--’
  • ‘No, I don’t want her,’ said the old gentleman quickly. ‘Show me to her
  • room without announcing me.’
  • ‘Eh, Sir?’ said the waiter.
  • ‘Are you deaf?’ inquired the little old gentleman.
  • ‘No, sir.’
  • ‘Then listen, if you please. Can you hear me now?’
  • ‘Yes, Sir.’
  • ‘That’s well. Show me to Mrs. Winkle’s room, without announcing me.’
  • As the little old gentleman uttered this command, he slipped five
  • shillings into the waiter’s hand, and looked steadily at him.
  • ‘Really, sir,’ said the waiter, ‘I don’t know, sir, whether--’
  • ‘Ah! you’ll do it, I see,’ said the little old gentleman. ‘You had
  • better do it at once. It will save time.’
  • There was something so very cool and collected in the gentleman’s
  • manner, that the waiter put the five shillings in his pocket, and led
  • him upstairs without another word.
  • ‘This is the room, is it?’ said the gentleman. ‘You may go.’
  • The waiter complied, wondering much who the gentleman could be, and what
  • he wanted; the little old gentleman, waiting till he was out of sight,
  • tapped at the door.
  • ‘Come in,’ said Arabella.
  • ‘Um, a pretty voice, at any rate,’ murmured the little old gentleman;
  • ‘but that’s nothing.’ As he said this, he opened the door and walked in.
  • Arabella, who was sitting at work, rose on beholding a stranger--a
  • little confused--but by no means ungracefully so.
  • ‘Pray don’t rise, ma’am,’ said the unknown, walking in, and closing the
  • door after him. ‘Mrs. Winkle, I believe?’
  • Arabella inclined her head.
  • ‘Mrs. Nathaniel Winkle, who married the son of the old man at
  • Birmingham?’ said the stranger, eyeing Arabella with visible curiosity.
  • Again Arabella inclined her head, and looked uneasily round, as if
  • uncertain whether to call for assistance.
  • ‘I surprise you, I see, ma’am,’ said the old gentleman.
  • ‘Rather, I confess,’ replied Arabella, wondering more and more.
  • ‘I’ll take a chair, if you’ll allow me, ma’am,’ said the stranger.
  • He took one; and drawing a spectacle-case from his pocket, leisurely
  • pulled out a pair of spectacles, which he adjusted on his nose.
  • ‘You don’t know me, ma’am?’ he said, looking so intently at Arabella
  • that she began to feel alarmed.
  • ‘No, sir,’ she replied timidly.
  • ‘No,’ said the gentleman, nursing his left leg; ‘I don’t know how you
  • should. You know my name, though, ma’am.’
  • ‘Do I?’ said Arabella, trembling, though she scarcely knew why. ‘May I
  • ask what it is?’
  • ‘Presently, ma’am, presently,’ said the stranger, not having yet removed
  • his eyes from her countenance. ‘You have been recently married, ma’am?’
  • ‘I have,’ replied Arabella, in a scarcely audible tone, laying aside her
  • work, and becoming greatly agitated as a thought, that had occurred to
  • her before, struck more forcibly upon her mind.
  • ‘Without having represented to your husband the propriety of first
  • consulting his father, on whom he is dependent, I think?’ said the
  • stranger.
  • Arabella applied her handkerchief to her eyes.
  • ‘Without an endeavour, even, to ascertain, by some indirect appeal, what
  • were the old man’s sentiments on a point in which he would naturally
  • feel much interested?’ said the stranger.
  • ‘I cannot deny it, Sir,’ said Arabella.
  • ‘And without having sufficient property of your own to afford your
  • husband any permanent assistance in exchange for the worldly advantages
  • which you knew he would have gained if he had married agreeably to his
  • father’s wishes?’ said the old gentleman. ‘This is what boys and girls
  • call disinterested affection, till they have boys and girls of their
  • own, and then they see it in a rougher and very different light!’
  • Arabella’s tears flowed fast, as she pleaded in extenuation that she was
  • young and inexperienced; that her attachment had alone induced her to
  • take the step to which she had resorted; and that she had been deprived
  • of the counsel and guidance of her parents almost from infancy.
  • ‘It was wrong,’ said the old gentleman in a milder tone, ‘very wrong. It
  • was romantic, unbusinesslike, foolish.’
  • ‘It was my fault; all my fault, Sir,’ replied poor Arabella, weeping.
  • ‘Nonsense,’ said the old gentleman; ‘it was not your fault that he fell
  • in love with you, I suppose? Yes it was, though,’ said the old
  • gentleman, looking rather slily at Arabella. ‘It was your fault. He
  • couldn’t help it.’
  • This little compliment, or the little gentleman’s odd way of paying it,
  • or his altered manner--so much kinder than it was, at first--or all
  • three together, forced a smile from Arabella in the midst of her tears.
  • ‘Where’s your husband?’ inquired the old gentleman, abruptly; stopping a
  • smile which was just coming over his own face.
  • ‘I expect him every instant, sir,’ said Arabella. ‘I persuaded him to
  • take a walk this morning. He is very low and wretched at not having
  • heard from his father.’
  • ‘Low, is he?’ said the old gentlemen. ‘Serve him right!’
  • ‘He feels it on my account, I am afraid,’ said Arabella; ‘and indeed,
  • Sir, I feel it deeply on his. I have been the sole means of bringing him
  • to his present condition.’
  • ‘Don’t mind it on his account, my dear,’ said the old gentleman. ‘It
  • serves him right. I am glad of it--actually glad of it, as far as he is
  • concerned.’
  • The words were scarcely out of the old gentleman’s lips, when footsteps
  • were heard ascending the stairs, which he and Arabella seemed both to
  • recognise at the same moment. The little gentleman turned pale; and,
  • making a strong effort to appear composed, stood up, as Mr. Winkle
  • entered the room.
  • ‘Father!’ cried Mr. Winkle, recoiling in amazement.
  • ‘Yes, sir,’ replied the little old gentleman. ‘Well, Sir, what have you
  • got to say to me?’
  • Mr. Winkle remained silent.
  • ‘You are ashamed of yourself, I hope, Sir?’ said the old gentleman.
  • Still Mr. Winkle said nothing.
  • ‘Are you ashamed of yourself, Sir, or are you not?’ inquired the old
  • gentleman.
  • ‘No, Sir,’ replied Mr. Winkle, drawing Arabella’s arm through his. ‘I am
  • not ashamed of myself, or of my wife either.’
  • ‘Upon my word!’ cried the old gentleman ironically.
  • ‘I am very sorry to have done anything which has lessened your affection
  • for me, Sir,’ said Mr. Winkle; ‘but I will say, at the same time, that I
  • have no reason to be ashamed of having this lady for my wife, nor you of
  • having her for a daughter.’
  • ‘Give me your hand, Nat,’ said the old gentleman, in an altered voice.
  • ‘Kiss me, my love. You are a very charming little daughter-in-law after
  • all!’
  • In a few minutes’ time Mr. Winkle went in search of Mr. Pickwick, and
  • returning with that gentleman, presented him to his father, whereupon
  • they shook hands for five minutes incessantly.
  • ‘Mr. Pickwick, I thank you most heartily for all your kindness to my
  • son,’ said old Mr. Winkle, in a bluff, straightforward way. ‘I am a
  • hasty fellow, and when I saw you last, I was vexed and taken by
  • surprise. I have judged for myself now, and am more than satisfied.
  • Shall I make any more apologies, Mr. Pickwick?’
  • ‘Not one,’ replied that gentleman. ‘You have done the only thing wanting
  • to complete my happiness.’
  • Hereupon there was another shaking of hands for five minutes longer,
  • accompanied by a great number of complimentary speeches, which, besides
  • being complimentary, had the additional and very novel recommendation of
  • being sincere.
  • Sam had dutifully seen his father to the Belle Sauvage, when, on
  • returning, he encountered the fat boy in the court, who had been charged
  • with the delivery of a note from Emily Wardle.
  • ‘I say,’ said Joe, who was unusually loquacious, ‘what a pretty girl
  • Mary is, isn’t she? I am _so_ fond of her, I am!’
  • Mr. Weller made no verbal remark in reply; but eyeing the fat boy for a
  • moment, quite transfixed at his presumption, led him by the collar to
  • the corner, and dismissed him with a harmless but ceremonious kick.
  • After which, he walked home, whistling.
  • CHAPTER LVII. IN WHICH THE PICKWICK CLUB IS FINALLY DISSOLVED, AND
  • EVERYTHING CONCLUDED TO THE SATISFACTION OF EVERYBODY
  • For a whole week after the happy arrival of Mr. Winkle from Birmingham,
  • Mr. Pickwick and Sam Weller were from home all day long, only returning
  • just in time for dinner, and then wearing an air of mystery and
  • importance quite foreign to their natures. It was evident that very
  • grave and eventful proceedings were on foot; but various surmises were
  • afloat, respecting their precise character. Some (among whom was Mr.
  • Tupman) were disposed to think that Mr. Pickwick contemplated a
  • matrimonial alliance; but this idea the ladies most strenuously
  • repudiated. Others rather inclined to the belief that he had projected
  • some distant tour, and was at present occupied in effecting the
  • preliminary arrangements; but this again was stoutly denied by Sam
  • himself, who had unequivocally stated, when cross-examined by Mary, that
  • no new journeys were to be undertaken. At length, when the brains of the
  • whole party had been racked for six long days, by unavailing
  • speculation, it was unanimously resolved that Mr. Pickwick should be
  • called upon to explain his conduct, and to state distinctly why he had
  • thus absented himself from the society of his admiring friends.
  • With this view, Mr. Wardle invited the full circle to dinner at the
  • Adelphi; and the decanters having been thrice sent round, opened the
  • business.
  • ‘We are all anxious to know,’ said the old gentleman, ‘what we have done
  • to offend you, and to induce you to desert us and devote yourself to
  • these solitary walks.’
  • ‘Are you?’ said Mr. Pickwick. ‘It is singular enough that I had intended
  • to volunteer a full explanation this very day; so, if you will give me
  • another glass of wine, I will satisfy your curiosity.’
  • The decanters passed from hand to hand with unwonted briskness, and Mr.
  • Pickwick, looking round on the faces of his friends with a cheerful
  • smile, proceeded--
  • ‘All the changes that have taken place among us,’ said Mr. Pickwick, ‘I
  • mean the marriage that _has _taken place, and the marriage that WILL
  • take place, with the changes they involve, rendered it necessary for me
  • to think, soberly and at once, upon my future plans. I determined on
  • retiring to some quiet, pretty neighbourhood in the vicinity of London;
  • I saw a house which exactly suited my fancy; I have taken it and
  • furnished it. It is fully prepared for my reception, and I intend
  • entering upon it at once, trusting that I may yet live to spend many
  • quiet years in peaceful retirement, cheered through life by the society
  • of my friends, and followed in death by their affectionate remembrance.’
  • Here Mr. Pickwick paused, and a low murmur ran round the table.
  • ‘The house I have taken,’ said Mr. Pickwick, ‘is at Dulwich. It has a
  • large garden, and is situated in one of the most pleasant spots near
  • London. It has been fitted up with every attention to substantial
  • comfort; perhaps to a little elegance besides; but of that you shall
  • judge for yourselves. Sam accompanies me there. I have engaged, on
  • Perker’s representation, a housekeeper--a very old one--and such other
  • servants as she thinks I shall require. I propose to consecrate this
  • little retreat, by having a ceremony in which I take a great interest,
  • performed there. I wish, if my friend Wardle entertains no objection,
  • that his daughter should be married from my new house, on the day I take
  • possession of it. The happiness of young people,’ said Mr. Pickwick, a
  • little moved, ‘has ever been the chief pleasure of my life. It will warm
  • my heart to witness the happiness of those friends who are dearest to
  • me, beneath my own roof.’
  • Mr. Pickwick paused again: Emily and Arabella sobbed audibly.
  • ‘I have communicated, both personally and by letter, with the club,’
  • resumed Mr. Pickwick, ‘acquainting them with my intention. During our
  • long absence, it has suffered much from internal dissentions; and the
  • withdrawal of my name, coupled with this and other circumstances, has
  • occasioned its dissolution. The Pickwick Club exists no longer.
  • ‘I shall never regret,’ said Mr. Pickwick in a low voice, ‘I shall never
  • regret having devoted the greater part of two years to mixing with
  • different varieties and shades of human character, frivolous as my
  • pursuit of novelty may have appeared to many. Nearly the whole of my
  • previous life having been devoted to business and the pursuit of wealth,
  • numerous scenes of which I had no previous conception have dawned upon
  • me--I hope to the enlargement of my mind, and the improvement of my
  • understanding. If I have done but little good, I trust I have done less
  • harm, and that none of my adventures will be other than a source of
  • amusing and pleasant recollection to me in the decline of life. God
  • bless you all!’
  • With these words, Mr. Pickwick filled and drained a bumper with a
  • trembling hand; and his eyes moistened as his friends rose with one
  • accord, and pledged him from their hearts.
  • There were few preparatory arrangements to be made for the marriage of
  • Mr. Snodgrass. As he had neither father nor mother, and had been in his
  • minority a ward of Mr. Pickwick’s, that gentleman was perfectly well
  • acquainted with his possessions and prospects. His account of both was
  • quite satisfactory to Wardle--as almost any other account would have
  • been, for the good old gentleman was overflowing with hilarity and
  • kindness--and a handsome portion having been bestowed upon Emily, the
  • marriage was fixed to take place on the fourth day from that time--the
  • suddenness of which preparations reduced three dressmakers and a tailor
  • to the extreme verge of insanity.
  • Getting post-horses to the carriage, old Wardle started off, next day,
  • to bring his mother back to town. Communicating his intelligence to the
  • old lady with characteristic impetuosity, she instantly fainted away;
  • but being promptly revived, ordered the brocaded silk gown to be packed
  • up forthwith, and proceeded to relate some circumstances of a similar
  • nature attending the marriage of the eldest daughter of Lady
  • Tollimglower, deceased, which occupied three hours in the recital, and
  • were not half finished at last.
  • Mrs. Trundle had to be informed of all the mighty preparations that were
  • making in London; and, being in a delicate state of health, was informed
  • thereof through Mr. Trundle, lest the news should be too much for her;
  • but it was not too much for her, inasmuch as she at once wrote off to
  • Muggleton, to order a new cap and a black satin gown, and moreover
  • avowed her determination of being present at the ceremony. Hereupon, Mr.
  • Trundle called in the doctor, and the doctor said Mrs. Trundle ought to
  • know best how she felt herself, to which Mrs. Trundle replied that she
  • felt herself quite equal to it, and that she had made up her mind to go;
  • upon which the doctor, who was a wise and discreet doctor, and knew what
  • was good for himself, as well as for other people, said that perhaps if
  • Mrs. Trundle stopped at home, she might hurt herself more by fretting,
  • than by going, so perhaps she had better go. And she did go; the doctor
  • with great attention sending in half a dozen of medicine, to be drunk
  • upon the road.
  • In addition to these points of distraction, Wardle was intrusted with
  • two small letters to two small young ladies who were to act as
  • bridesmaids; upon the receipt of which, the two young ladies were driven
  • to despair by having no ‘things’ ready for so important an occasion, and
  • no time to make them in--a circumstance which appeared to afford the two
  • worthy papas of the two small young ladies rather a feeling of
  • satisfaction than otherwise. However, old frocks were trimmed, and new
  • bonnets made, and the young ladies looked as well as could possibly have
  • been expected of them. And as they cried at the subsequent ceremony in
  • the proper places, and trembled at the right times, they acquitted
  • themselves to the admiration of all beholders.
  • How the two poor relations ever reached London--whether they walked, or
  • got behind coaches, or procured lifts in wagons, or carried each other
  • by turns--is uncertain; but there they were, before Wardle; and the very
  • first people that knocked at the door of Mr. Pickwick’s house, on the
  • bridal morning, were the two poor relations, all smiles and shirt
  • collar.
  • They were welcomed heartily though, for riches or poverty had no
  • influence on Mr. Pickwick; the new servants were all alacrity and
  • readiness; Sam was in a most unrivalled state of high spirits and
  • excitement; Mary was glowing with beauty and smart ribands.
  • The bridegroom, who had been staying at the house for two or three days
  • previous, sallied forth gallantly to Dulwich Church to meet the bride,
  • attended by Mr. Pickwick, Ben Allen, Bob Sawyer, and Mr. Tupman; with
  • Sam Weller outside, having at his button-hole a white favour, the gift
  • of his lady-love, and clad in a new and gorgeous suit of livery invented
  • for the occasion. They were met by the Wardles, and the Winkles, and the
  • bride and bridesmaids, and the Trundles; and the ceremony having been
  • performed, the coaches rattled back to Mr. Pickwick’s to breakfast,
  • where little Mr. Perker already awaited them.
  • Here, all the light clouds of the more solemn part of the proceedings
  • passed away; every face shone forth joyously; and nothing was to be
  • heard but congratulations and commendations. Everything was so
  • beautiful! The lawn in front, the garden behind, the miniature
  • conservatory, the dining-room, the drawing-room, the bedrooms, the
  • smoking-room, and, above all, the study, with its pictures and easy-
  • chairs, and odd cabinets, and queer tables, and books out of number,
  • with a large cheerful window opening upon a pleasant lawn and commanding
  • a pretty landscape, dotted here and there with little houses almost
  • hidden by the trees; and then the curtains, and the carpets, and the
  • chairs, and the sofas! Everything was so beautiful, so compact, so neat,
  • and in such exquisite taste, said everybody, that there really was no
  • deciding what to admire most.
  • And in the midst of all this, stood Mr. Pickwick, his countenance
  • lighted up with smiles, which the heart of no man, woman, or child,
  • could resist: himself the happiest of the group: shaking hands, over and
  • over again, with the same people, and when his own hands were not so
  • employed, rubbing them with pleasure: turning round in a different
  • direction at every fresh expression of gratification or curiosity, and
  • inspiring everybody with his looks of gladness and delight.
  • Breakfast is announced. Mr. Pickwick leads the old lady (who has been
  • very eloquent on the subject of Lady Tollimglower) to the top of a long
  • table; Wardle takes the bottom; the friends arrange themselves on either
  • side; Sam takes his station behind his master’s chair; the laughter and
  • talking cease; Mr. Pickwick, having said grace, pauses for an instant
  • and looks round him. As he does so, the tears roll down his cheeks, in
  • the fullness of his joy.
  • Let us leave our old friend in one of those moments of unmixed
  • happiness, of which, if we seek them, there are ever some, to cheer our
  • transitory existence here. There are dark shadows on the earth, but its
  • lights are stronger in the contrast. Some men, like bats or owls, have
  • better eyes for the darkness than for the light. We, who have no such
  • optical powers, are better pleased to take our last parting look at the
  • visionary companions of many solitary hours, when the brief sunshine of
  • the world is blazing full upon them.
  • It is the fate of most men who mingle with the world, and attain even
  • the prime of life, to make many real friends, and lose them in the
  • course of nature. It is the fate of all authors or chroniclers to create
  • imaginary friends, and lose them in the course of art. Nor is this the
  • full extent of their misfortunes; for they are required to furnish an
  • account of them besides.
  • In compliance with this custom--unquestionably a bad one--we subjoin a
  • few biographical words, in relation to the party at Mr. Pickwick’s
  • assembled.
  • Mr. and Mrs. Winkle, being fully received into favour by the old
  • gentleman, were shortly afterwards installed in a newly-built house, not
  • half a mile from Mr. Pickwick’s. Mr. Winkle, being engaged in the city
  • as agent or town correspondent of his father, exchanged his old costume
  • for the ordinary dress of Englishmen, and presented all the external
  • appearance of a civilised Christian ever afterwards.
  • Mr. and Mrs. Snodgrass settled at Dingley Dell, where they purchased and
  • cultivated a small farm, more for occupation than profit. Mr. Snodgrass,
  • being occasionally abstracted and melancholy, is to this day reputed a
  • great poet among his friends and acquaintance, although we do not find
  • that he has ever written anything to encourage the belief. There are
  • many celebrated characters, literary, philosophical, and otherwise, who
  • hold a high reputation on a similar tenure.
  • Mr. Tupman, when his friends married, and Mr. Pickwick settled, took
  • lodgings at Richmond, where he has ever since resided. He walks
  • constantly on the terrace during the summer months, with a youthful and
  • jaunty air, which has rendered him the admiration of the numerous
  • elderly ladies of single condition, who reside in the vicinity. He has
  • never proposed again.
  • Mr. Bob Sawyer, having previously passed through the _Gazette_, passed
  • over to Bengal, accompanied by Mr. Benjamin Allen; both gentlemen having
  • received surgical appointments from the East India Company. They each
  • had the yellow fever fourteen times, and then resolved to try a little
  • abstinence; since which period, they have been doing well. Mrs. Bardell
  • let lodgings to many conversable single gentlemen, with great profit,
  • but never brought any more actions for breach of promise of marriage.
  • Her attorneys, Messrs. Dodson & Fogg, continue in business, from which
  • they realise a large income, and in which they are universally
  • considered among the sharpest of the sharp.
  • Sam Weller kept his word, and remained unmarried, for two years. The old
  • housekeeper dying at the end of that time, Mr. Pickwick promoted Mary to
  • the situation, on condition of her marrying Mr. Weller at once, which
  • she did without a murmur. From the circumstance of two sturdy little
  • boys having been repeatedly seen at the gate of the back garden, there
  • is reason to suppose that Sam has some family.
  • The elder Mr. Weller drove a coach for twelve months, but being
  • afflicted with the gout, was compelled to retire. The contents of the
  • pocket-book had been so well invested for him, however, by Mr. Pickwick,
  • that he had a handsome independence to retire on, upon which he still
  • lives at an excellent public-house near Shooter’s Hill, where he is
  • quite reverenced as an oracle, boasting very much of his intimacy with
  • Mr. Pickwick, and retaining a most unconquerable aversion to widows.
  • Mr. Pickwick himself continued to reside in his new house, employing his
  • leisure hours in arranging the memoranda which he afterwards presented
  • to the secretary of the once famous club, or in hearing Sam Weller read
  • aloud, with such remarks as suggested themselves to his mind, which
  • never failed to afford Mr. Pickwick great amusement. He was much
  • troubled at first, by the numerous applications made to him by Mr.
  • Snodgrass, Mr. Winkle, and Mr. Trundle, to act as godfather to their
  • offspring; but he has become used to it now, and officiates as a matter
  • of course. He never had occasion to regret his bounty to Mr. Jingle; for
  • both that person and Job Trotter became, in time, worthy members of
  • society, although they have always steadily objected to return to the
  • scenes of their old haunts and temptations. Mr. Pickwick is somewhat
  • infirm now; but he retains all his former juvenility of spirit, and may
  • still be frequently seen, contemplating the pictures in the Dulwich
  • Gallery, or enjoying a walk about the pleasant neighbourhood on a fine
  • day. He is known by all the poor people about, who never fail to take
  • their hats off, as he passes, with great respect. The children idolise
  • him, and so indeed does the whole neighbourhood. Every year he repairs
  • to a large family merry-making at Mr. Wardle’s; on this, as on all other
  • occasions, he is invariably attended by the faithful Sam, between whom
  • and his master there exists a steady and reciprocal attachment which
  • nothing but death will terminate.
  • End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of The Pickwick Papers, by Charles
  • Dickens
  • *** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE PICKWICK PAPERS ***
  • ***** This file should be named 580-0.txt or 580-0.zip ***** This and all
  • associated files of various formats will be found in:
  • http://www.gutenberg.org/5/8/580/
  • Produced by Jo Churcher, and David Widger
  • Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will be
  • renamed.
  • Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no one
  • owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation (and
  • you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without permission
  • and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules, set forth in the
  • General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to copying and
  • distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the
  • PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a
  • registered trademark, and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks,
  • unless you receive specific permission. If you do not charge anything
  • for copies of this eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You
  • may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative
  • works, reports, performances and research. They may be modified and
  • printed and given away--you may do practically ANYTHING with public
  • domain eBooks. Redistribution is subject to the trademark license,
  • especially commercial redistribution.
  • *** START: FULL LICENSE ***
  • THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU
  • DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
  • To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
  • distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work (or
  • any other work associated in any way with the phrase “Project
  • Gutenberg”), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
  • Gutenberg-tm License (available with this file or online at
  • http://gutenberg.org/license).
  • Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
  • electronic works
  • 1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
  • electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
  • and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
  • (trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
  • the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy
  • all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
  • If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
  • Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
  • terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
  • entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
  • 1.B. “Project Gutenberg” is a registered trademark. It may only be
  • used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
  • agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
  • things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
  • even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
  • paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
  • Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
  • and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
  • works. See paragraph 1.E below.
  • 1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation (“the
  • Foundation” or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of
  • Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works
  • in the collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
  • individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are
  • located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you
  • from copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating
  • derivative works based on the work as long as all references to Project
  • Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the
  • Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic
  • works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with
  • the terms of this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name
  • associated with the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this
  • agreement by keeping this work in the same format with its attached full
  • Project Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with
  • others.
  • 1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
  • what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
  • a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
  • the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
  • before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
  • creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
  • Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
  • the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
  • States.
  • 1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
  • 1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
  • access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
  • whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
  • phrase “Project Gutenberg” appears, or with which the phrase “Project
  • Gutenberg” is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
  • copied or distributed:
  • This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with almost
  • no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
  • under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
  • eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
  • 1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
  • from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
  • posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
  • and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
  • or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work
  • with the phrase “Project Gutenberg” associated with or appearing on the
  • work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1
  • through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the
  • Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or
  • 1.E.9.
  • 1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
  • with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
  • must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
  • terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked
  • to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
  • permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.
  • 1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
  • License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
  • work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
  • 1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
  • electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
  • prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
  • active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
  • Gutenberg-tm License.
  • 1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
  • compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
  • word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
  • distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than
  • “Plain Vanilla ASCII” or other format used in the official version
  • posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site
  • (www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to
  • the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of
  • obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original “Plain
  • Vanilla ASCII” or other form. Any alternate format must include the
  • full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
  • 1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
  • performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
  • unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
  • 1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
  • access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided
  • that
  • - You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from the
  • use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method you
  • already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed to the
  • owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has agreed to donate
  • royalties under this paragraph to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
  • Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid within 60 days following each
  • date on which you prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your
  • periodic tax returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such
  • and sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
  • address specified in Section 4, “Information about donations to the
  • Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation.”
  • - You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies you
  • in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he does not
  • agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm License. You must
  • require such a user to return or destroy all copies of the works
  • possessed in a physical medium and discontinue all use of and all access
  • to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
  • - You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any
  • money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
  • electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
  • receipt of the work.
  • - You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
  • distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
  • 1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
  • electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set forth
  • in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from both the
  • Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael Hart, the
  • owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the Foundation as
  • set forth in Section 3 below.
  • 1.F.
  • 1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
  • effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
  • public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm collection.
  • Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works, and the
  • medium on which they may be stored, may contain “Defects,” such as, but
  • not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or corrupt data, transcription
  • errors, a copyright or other intellectual property infringement, a
  • defective or damaged disk or other medium, a computer virus, or computer
  • codes that damage or cannot be read by your equipment.
  • 1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the “Right
  • of Replacement or Refund” described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
  • Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
  • Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
  • Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
  • liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal fees.
  • YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT LIABILITY,
  • BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE PROVIDED IN
  • PARAGRAPH F3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE TRADEMARK OWNER, AND
  • ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE LIABLE TO YOU FOR
  • ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR INCIDENTAL DAMAGES
  • EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH DAMAGE.
  • 1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
  • defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
  • receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
  • written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
  • received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
  • your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with
  • the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
  • refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
  • providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
  • receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
  • is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
  • opportunities to fix the problem.
  • 1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
  • in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you ‘AS-IS’ WITH NO OTHER
  • WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
  • WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTIBILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
  • 1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
  • warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
  • If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
  • law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
  • interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
  • the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
  • provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
  • 1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
  • trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
  • providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
  • with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
  • promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
  • harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
  • that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
  • or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
  • work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
  • Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
  • Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
  • Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
  • electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
  • including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
  • because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
  • people in all walks of life.
  • Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
  • assistance they need, are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm’s
  • goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will remain
  • freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
  • Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
  • and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations. To
  • learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and
  • how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4 and the
  • Foundation web page at http://www.pglaf.org.
  • Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
  • Foundation
  • The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
  • 501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the state
  • of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal Revenue
  • Service. The Foundation’s EIN or federal tax identification number is
  • 64-6221541. Its 501(c)(3) letter is posted at
  • http://pglaf.org/fundraising. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
  • Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
  • permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state’s laws.
  • The Foundation’s principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
  • Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
  • throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at 809
  • North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887, email
  • business@pglaf.org. Email contact links and up to date contact
  • information can be found at the Foundation’s web site and official page
  • at http://pglaf.org
  • For additional contact information: Dr. Gregory B. Newby Chief Executive
  • and Director gbnewby@pglaf.org
  • Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
  • Literary Archive Foundation
  • Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide spread
  • public support and donations to carry out its mission of increasing the
  • number of public domain and licensed works that can be freely
  • distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest array of
  • equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations ($1 to
  • $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt status with
  • the IRS.
  • The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
  • charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
  • States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
  • considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
  • with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations where
  • we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
  • DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular state
  • visit http://pglaf.org
  • While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
  • have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
  • against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
  • approach us with offers to donate.
  • International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make any
  • statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from outside
  • the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
  • Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
  • methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other ways
  • including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To donate,
  • please visit: http://pglaf.org/donate
  • Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
  • works.
  • Professor Michael S. Hart is the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
  • concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
  • with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project
  • Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
  • Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
  • editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S. unless
  • a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily keep eBooks
  • in compliance with any particular paper edition.
  • Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
  • http://www.gutenberg.org
  • This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm, including
  • how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
  • Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to subscribe to
  • our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.